《Billionaire's Adorable Sweet Wife》 Chapter 1: Entering the Bo Family

Chapter 1: Entering the Bo Family

"Ruanruan, this is your fate." Old Master Su sighed. Because the second son of the Bo family had died in an ident, the family now wanted to find a girl to apany their son. After some contemtion, Su Ruanruan, whose parents had both died, was picked. She was naturally unwilling, but she had yet to find out the cause of her parents'' deaths. That meant that she couldn''t afford topletely cut the Su family off. As such, she had no choice but to obey them. A ck limousine stopped in front of the Bo family''s vi. Su Ruanruan was seated in the backseat of the car. Her ck hair hung down to her shoulders, and her calves under her white dress were tender but firm. She looked exceptionally exquisite and beautiful. In the living room, the Old Madam of the Bo family was excited. "Is the girl for Ziqi here?" Su Ruanruan got out of the car with a small suitcase and stood there gracefully. Beside the Old Madam, Madam Bo''s heart tightened. This girl was ridiculously beautiful. "This child is well-built." The Old Madam was very satisfied. She held her hand and introduced, "These are Ziqi''s parents. This is his younger sister, Jingyuan, who is your age..." Su Ruanruan nodded. The Old Madam then pointed at another beautiful woman and paused for a moment. "This is your second sister, Jingse. She shares the same mother as your eldest brother, Jingyan." Madam Bo''s expression turned ugly. Behind her, Bo Jingyuan didn''t hide her displeasure either. ''Second Brother fell down the cliff to save the third daughter of the Su family, Su Qionglin. The Su family is at fault! Why is the Old Madam still so nice to Su Ruanruan? I have to teach Su Ruanruan a lesson!'' The Bo family''s dining room was grand and majestic, and the long dining table was decorated with silverware and French blue roses. It looked extravagantly stylish. As Su Ruanruan took her seat, even Bo Mingyuan, the children''s father, couldn''t help but remark, "This child looks good." The Old Madam was happy yet sad at the same time. "It''s such a pity for Ziqi." That struck a chord with everyone present, and the mood instantly became somber, making Su Ruanruan very embarrassed. She looked down at the red liquid in the crystal ss. At the bottom of the wine cup, there was a small amount of powder that had yet to dissolve. She quietly looked away and her gazended on Bo Jingyuan''s eager eyes. Thetter looked confident. She had given Su Ruanruan a rather heavy dose of medicine. As long as Su Ruanruan drank it, she would immediately be drenched in sweat and expose her worst side to everyone in the family. At the thought of that, Bo Jingyuan giggled to herself. At that moment, the Old Madam turned to her son, Bo Mingyuan, and asked, "Why isn''t Jingyan back yet?" Thetter was about to say something when a noble voice sounded from the door. "We have someone new in the family, and it''s the Old Madam''s idea. How could I note back?" Everyone looked towards the door and Bo Jingyuan ran over excitedly. Taking advantage of this opportunity, Su Ruanruan quietly swapped her wine ss with Bo Jingyuan''s. A slender figure entered the dining room. He was wearing an expensive handmade suit over his white shirt, and his handsome face was illuminated by the light, making his facial features look even more deep and profound. His aura was cold and distant. He bent down to kiss the olddy''s hair and coaxed her with a smile. "Aren''t I back now?" The Old Madam scolded jokingly, "So you know toe back!" Although the olddy seemed to be scolding him, she doted on her eldest grandson the most. Not only was Bo Jingyan good-looking, but he was also capable. At the age of 28, he was already the CEO of "Imperial View Corporation". There were many socialites anddies in Jiang City who wanted to marry him, but Bo Jingyan did not take a fancy to any of them. At times, even the Old Madam wondered if her grandson had some hidden illness. Otherwise, how could a young and vigorous person not want thepany of women? The Old Madam had her own ideas, so she purposely said during the introduction, "This is Ruanruan, the one for Ziqi." Bo Jingyan stopped his teasing and nced at Su Ruanruan, who looked up at him and called out obediently, "Big Brother." Bo Jingyan frowned slightly. ''It''s her!'' Chapter 2: Only Striking When Hurt

Chapter 2: Only Striking When Hurt

Bo Jingyan''s heart was in turmoil, but his voice was gentle and distant. "You''re quite obedient." With that, he walked over to Su Ruanruan''s side and sat down. Su Ruanruan bit her lip. She was afraid of him. When he looked at her just now, his gaze was pure aggression. Just as Su Ruanruan''s heart was trembling slightly, the Old Madam said to everyone, "Pick a good day and let''s officially put Ruanruan''s name into our family''s genealogy bok." ''The genealogy book?'' Bo Jingyan was surprised. He turned to look at Su Ruanruan, who was fair and slender, and soft and fragile. A child like that would notst long in the Bo family. At this moment, Bo Jingyuan raised her ss and smiled sweetly. "It''s Ruanruan''s first time in our house. We should celebrate this!" ''Hmph! You want to join the Bo Family?! Su Ruanruan? Do you think you''re worthy of that?'' With this interruption, the Old Madam forgot what she had wanted to say, and started drinking merrily with the Bo family. Bo Jingyuan was unusually enthusiastic. "Ruanruan, why aren''t you drinking?" Su Ruanruan had no choice but to take a small sip. Bo Jingyuan sneered. It wouldn''t even take two minutes for those drugs to kick in. Then, Su Ruanruan would not be able to hold it in and the entire family would know how promiscuous she was. However, no matter how much she waited, nothing happened to Su Ruanruan. On the contrary, her own body was heating up and her entire face was burning. Terrified, she cried out for Madam Bo in a daze. "Mom... I-I feel terrible..." Madam Bo was shocked to see her daughter like this. After all, she was experienced and could guess the reason with a nce. She immediately helped her daughter up and instructed the servants, "Call the doctor over." She nced at Su Ruanruan thoughtfully. The young girl was leaning back in her chair and looking at Jingyuan worriedly. ''It can''t be her! She isn''t that capable.'' Madam Bo thought to herself. Madam Bo then left in a hurry with her daughter. The other members of the Bo family were no longer in the mood to eat and left their seats to take a look at what was going on. Upstairs, Bo Jingyuan''s screams, as well as some unspeakable sounds, could be heard from time to time. The servants in the house were all whispering amongst themselves. Su Ruanruan sat alone under the cold lights of the dining room. She looked down calmly and wiped her fingerprints from the ss with a napkin. The corners of her lips curled up into a smirk. She would never harm anyone unless they offended her. This had only happened to Bo Jingyuan because she harbored evil intentions in the first ce. It waste at night when she finally stood up and headed upstairs with the help of the servants. It was then that a slender figure appeared quietly. He wrapped a napkin around his goblet and raised it. After a moment, heughed silently. ''I guess she''s naughtier than I expected.'' He thought inwardly. The secretary came over and whispered, "Young Master Yan, the private ne will take off in an hour." Bo Jingyan put down the cup and looked upstairs for a long time before saying, "Let''s go." ... It was a long night for the Bo family, but Su Ruanruan slept well. Early in the morning, the sun shone through the windows and the rays of sunlight hit the white bed. Su Ruanruan''s ck hair was spread all over the pillow, and the faint smell of gardenia flowers wafted into her nose. It was the fragrance from her hair. She gradually sat up,bing her shoulder-length hair with her fingers while ncing at the clock. It was seven in the morning. It was time for her to get up and greet the elders of the Bo Family. If things went as expected, she would have to face Bo Jingyuan''s usations too. Ten minutester, Su Ruanruan changed into a yellow dress and headed downstairs. The dining room downstairs was very quiet. Only Bo Mingyuan, his wife, and the second daughter of the Bo family, Bo Jingse, were there. Su Ruanruan greeted them softly. Madam Bo only snorted lightly, and her daughter was also slightly cold. Only Bo Mingyuan forced a smile out. "Have you gotten used to this ce?" Chapter 3: Apologize to Ruanruan!

Chapter 3: Apologize to Ruanruan!

Su Ruanruan sat down and smiled. "It''s quite good. Thank you, Uncle." Bo Mingyuan asked a few more questions before saying, "The Old Madam wants to officially enter your name into our family''s genealogy book in three days'' time. What do you think about that?" Upon hearing this, Su Ruanruan''s brows twitched, but she lowered her eyes and said softly, "I''ll do as you say." Bo Mingyuan heaved a sigh of relief. He didn''t expect this child to be so obedient. Madam Bo, however, disagreed. After entering the family register, Su Ruanruan would truly be part of the Bo family. That meant that the Old Madam would definitely leave a portion of the family fortune to this girl. How could she allow an outsider to take away Ziqi''s share? She was about to say something when a flurry of footsteps came from upstairs. Bo Jingyuan rushed down the stairs with her hair in a mess. She stomped up to Su Ruanruan and pped her without any exnation. Su Ruanruan''s skin was delicate, and five distinct finger marks immediately appeared on her face. "Jingyuan!" Bo Mingyuan was furious. He reprimanded his younger daughter, "There must be a limit to your willfulness! Apologize to Ruanruan." Even Madam Bo was unhappy. ''Jingyuan is too impulsive!'' Bo Jingyuan raised her head, her eyes filled with tears. "Dad, I hit her because she was the one who drugged mest night." Bo Mingyuan was bewildered. He stared at his younger daughter for a long time. Bo Jingyuan was resolute! Bo Mingyuan turned to Su Ruanruan with a questioning gaze. It was clear who was more important to him. Su Ruanruan sneered in her heart. She lowered her eyes and said softly, "If you don''t believe me, I can go back to the Su family, Uncle." Bo Mingyuan hesitated. The Old Madam would be the first to disagree about letting Su Ruanruan leave. However, he also had some doubts about letting the girl stay. Why would his daughter drink that kind of thing for no reason? Just as Bo Mingyuan was hesitating, Madam Bo said, "The servants at home are quite smart, so they didn''t wash Jingyuan''s cup. If we investigate, we will definitely find some clues." When Madam Bo said this, Bo Jingyuan immediately shouted, "That''s right, that''s right. Dad, you must help me." She tugged on her father''s arm with a pitiful look. Bo Mingyuan''s heart softened and he looked at Su Ruanruan awkwardly. Thetter couldn''t look any more awkward. Seeing her expression, Bo Mingyuan made up his mind. "Bring the ss over." Bo Jingyuan looked at the other girl smugly. ''Mom''s so smart! As long as Su Ruanruan''s fingerprints are on the cup, not only will she have to scram from our family, but her reputation will also be ruined!'' Then, the maid carefully took the ss and handed it to Bo Mingyuan. Bo Mingyuan carefully examined the cup and found a few fingerprints. Everyone held their breaths. Bo Jingyuan couldn''t help but feel that victory was within her grasp. Even Madam Bo also began to suspect that it had something to do with Su Ruanruan. The servants, on the other hand, were worried that Miss Su would be kicked out of the house soon. Yet, the only fingerprints found were the servant''s and Bo Jingyuan''s! It had nothing to do with Su Ruanruan! Madam Bo didn''t look happy, and Bo Jingyuan was dumbfounded. "How is that possible? That''s impossible!" Before she could say anything else, Su Ruanruan asked softly, "Jingyuan, why did you only suspect this ss of wine and not anything else? Did you already know that there was something wrong with the wine?" Bo Jingyuan''s face was ashen and she could not say a word. Of course, that caused her father toe to a realization, and he red up immediately. "Jingyuan! You''re too much!" He raised his hand and was about to teach his daughter a lesson when his wife stepped in and begged, "Jingyuan is still young and ignorant. Please let her off this time." Bo Mingyuan was still furious. "You pamper her too much. If she can do such a harmful thing, do you think there''s anything she wouldn''t dare to do in the future?" Seeing that she could not stop her husband, Madam Bo red at Su Ruanruan bitterly. Chapter 4: Weak but Never Bullied

Chapter 4: Weak but Never Bullied

Su Ruanruan understood what Bo Mingyuan meant. She lowered her eyes and said softly, "Uncle, I think Jingyuan didn''t do it on purpose." Bo Mingyuan was very protective of his daughter and was about to calm down, but Bo Jingyuan added fuel to the mes. "Su Ruanruan, stop pretending to be kind!" "Jingyuan!" Madam Bo couldn''t help but berate her foolish daughter. However, Bo Jingyuan went on. Su Ruanruan didn''t fuss over it and only softly asked the servant to bring some ice over. When the servant brought it over, she carefully wrapped it up and ced it on her already slightly swollen face, never making a singleint about the matter. She was so sensible that it made one''s heart ache. Bo Mingyuan felt guilty and immediately said angrily, "Jingyuan, go and kneel in the ancestral hall for two hours. Don''t get up until time''s up." Bo Jingyuan was stunned. ''Dad''s never punished me! It''s all Su Ruanruan''s fault!'' Madam Bo wanted to plead for mercy, but that made her husband even angrier. "Teach her properly when you have time. Don''t lead her astray at such a young age." Madam Bo could only swallow her words. After venting his anger, Bo Mingyuan took Bo Jingse to thepany. However, before leaving, thetter took another look at Su Ruanruan. She didn''t know if it was simply her imagination, but she felt that this 18-year-old child was so calm andposed that even ten Jingyuans might not be her match. However, Su Ruanruan stood there weakly, as though she had suffered a great loss. All the servants in the house sympathized with her. ''What a pitiful little girl. She was bullied by Fourth Miss!'' Bo Jingse shook her head. She was clearly overthinking it. ... Bo Jingyuan knelt for two hours, and felt as though her vision was blurring. When had she ever suffered like this? She got up and without even having lunch, she stomped right off in search of Su Ruanruan. She rushed to the second floor and shoved open Su Ruanruan''s door, shouting loudly, "Su Ruanruan, exin yourself." However, there was silence in the bedroom. There was only a small lump on the white bed... Bo Jingyuan gritted her teeth and sneered. She stepped forward and lifted Su Ruanruan''s nket. "You''re still sleeping in in broad daylight. I guess I have to teach you some rules." But the moment she lifted the nket, she was stunned. Su Ruanruan was curled up on the bed, her face unnaturally flushed. Bo Jingyuan took a step back and muttered, "How can you be so useless? You''ve just arrived and you''re already sick." She couldn''t care less about the other girl, and simply turned around to leave. Yet, no sooner had she tried to do so than the Old Madam came with two servants and blocked her at the door. The Old Madam had already found out about what had happened that morning from the servants. Seeing Su Ruanruan''s expression, she was furious. "Jingyuan, you''re still not apologetic, and you even want to bully Ruanruan?" Bo Jingyuan was stumped as tears welled up in her eyes. "It wasn''t me! Grandma, it really wasn''t me." "Who else could it be? You''ve been scheming since you were young," the Old Madam scolded. At this moment, Guizhi, who was beside the olddy, went over to check and immediately reported, "Her forehead''s burning." The Old Madam tapped her walking stick angrily. "She must have been frightened." Immediately, she instructed someone to invite a doctor over to treat Su Ruanruan. As for Bo Jingyuan, she was locked up in the ancestral hall and was not allowed to eat for a long time. When Madam Bo went over, her daughter cried out in anger, "Mom, I''m being punished because of Su Ruanruan again!" She wailed as she kicked up a fuss. "Mom, Su Ruanruan isn''t here to join this family. She''s here to destroy it." Madam Bo hugged her daughter and sighed. "Jingyuan, stop it! That youngdy can''t cause any trouble." Bo Jingyuan was stunned. Her mother did not believe her either! She was so incensed that tears rolled down her cheeks. Su Ruanruan was a born vixen! Her father believed her, her mother believed her, and even her eldest brother had looked at her several timesst night! Her eldest brother never ever looked at women! Chapter 5: Bo Jingyan鈥檚 Secret Love

Chapter 5: Bo Jingyan''s Secret Love

Because Su Ruanruan''s condition was not showing any signs of improvement after two days, the family sent her to the hospital. It was quiet in the ward, and Su Ruanruan was lying on the hospital bed, unconscious. The doctors were helpless. When the family arrived outside, the Old Madam said bitterly, "This child is probably weak and unlucky." She felt hateful towards the girl''s family. "The Su family doesn''t even care about her! She''s so sick, yet they didn''t evene to visit her. She''s still their child after all." Bo Mingyuanforted his mother and said, "Let''s put the matter of putting her name into the family register aside for now. I''m afraid that she might not be able to hold on." The Old Madam agreed. "Of course we shouldn''t talk about that now. We''ll be lucky enough if she doesn''t die." She looked at the sickly young girl lying on the bed through the crack in the door, and said to her son, "It''s still a life after all. Get a good doctor to take a look at her." Bo Mingyuan agreed, and the Old Madam left, heartbroken. Bo Mingyuan talked to the doctor for a while before leaving worriedly. When he reached the parking lot, he bumped into his eldest son. Bo Jingyan was dressed very formally. His white shirt was ironed and his handmade suit looked even more expensive. "Jingyan, why are you here?" Bo Mingyuan got out of his car. Bo Jingyan nced at the hospital building. "I just got off the ne. I heard that the Old Madam is in the hospital." His father sighed. "It''s that child who''s sick! Oh, it''s that child from the Su family." His head ached. "Jingyan, since you''re here, you should go take a look at her." Bo Jingyan smiled faintly. ... There was no one else in the ward. The sickly girl lying on the bed slowly opened her eyes. She lifted the nket and got off the bed. Her straight ck hair formed a charming arc behind her back, and her slender body looked even more exquisite. She walked towards the washroom. The white pill gently fell into the toilet bowl and as she gently pressed the button, the pills were gone without a trace. She looked down and smiled faintly. She had fallen ill because of a cold shower. She had secretly flushed away all the medicine prescribed by the doctor and even changed the drip to saline water. That was also why she wasn''t recovering as expected. She wanted to stay in the Bo family and use the family''s influence to investigate the cause of her father''s death. However, she did not want her name in the Bo family''s register. She was Su Ruanruan, not Bo Ziqi''s woman. After getting rid of the medicine, Su Ruanruan took a basin of cold water to wipe her body. Her ck hair fell down her shoulders and she removed her clothes. Outside the door, Bo Jingyan signaled his subordinate not to follow him into the room. He pushed the door open and entered the room, only to be greeted by an empty bed. All he heard was the sound of water from the bathroom. Bo Jingyan walked to the bathroom door, his eyes narrowing. Su Ruanruan leaned her back against the sink. With her clothes were half off and her straight ck hair scattered behind her back, she looked like the most beautiful water demon. Her shoulders were tender, her waist was slender, and those two nests... Bo Jingyan silently retreated to the floor-to-ceiling window in the ward. He closed his eyes and thought of the past. Four years ago, he had just entered the Imperial View Corporation. He had been utterly exhausted by all sorts of internal and external conflicts in thepany. One day, he pulled open the office''s blinds and spotted a girl in the square across the road. She was merely sitting there to draw, but her slender figure was like the morning dew. He instructed his secretary not to speak while he observed her quietly. She visited the same spot every day, rain or shine. He watched her for two years, until he took down those old men, and climbed up to the position of CEO. He wanted to go downstairs to talk to her, but she never appeared again... In fact, she didn''t even know he existed! Bo Jingyan suddenly felt the urge to smoke. When Su Ruanruan came out of the bathroom, she froze when she spotted Bo Jingyan. ''Bo Jingyan, why are you Chapter 6: Bullied

Chapter 6: Bullied

Bo Jingyan''s voice was slightly hoarse. "Come here." Su Ruanruan refused. His gaze on her was too direct. Bo Jingyan reached out and pulled her in front of him. Her forehead was covered by a warm hand. She was already burning, and that only intensified with the presence of his hand. "How did you fall sick?" Bo Jingyan asked her in a low voice. "Did you deliberately take a cold shower to make yourself sick?" Su Ruanruan wanted to deny it but he nced at her and said, "The olddy is worried about you." Su Ruanruan was about to say something when he walked to the bedside and pressed the nurse''s bell. A minuteter, the nurse came over. She was surprised to see Bo Jingyan. Bo Jingyan said calmly, "Bring another portion of Miss Su''s medicine here." The nurse was stunned. "Young Master Yan?" Bo Jingyan''s voice became even colder. "I''ll feed Miss Su the medicine myself. I think she''ll recover faster." "I don''t want it," Su Ruanruan refused without thinking. Bo Jingyan gestured for the nurse to get it, then looked at Su Ruanruan and ordered, "Go lie on the bed." Su Ruanruan stomped over to the bed. Bo Jingyanughed silently. ''Is she toozy to put on an act now?'' At that moment, the nurse came in with a medicine tray. She put it down and left immediately. Bo Jingyan sat on the side of the bed, taking the medicine and grinding it in the bowl. He then poured warm water over to dissolve it, and the water instantly turned pale yellow. "It must be bitter." He looked at her. Su Ruanruan was stunned. ''How perverted! I''m not going to drink this!'' Bo Jingyan calmly fed her with a spoon. "Drink it." She turned her head away. Bo Jingyan put down the spoon in his hand and smiled slightly. "It''s fine if you don''t drink it. If we draw your blood now, we''ll soon find out that there''s no drug content in your blood. How are you going to exin it to the Old Madam?" Su Ruanruan red at him. Bo Jingyan ced the spoon against her lips. After a long time, she finally opened her mouth. Her little tongue licked the silver spoon and she drank the bitter medicine. Bo Jingyan''s eyes lit up and he continued to feed her the medicine until she down the entire bowl. After drinking it, Su Ruanruan felt bitter all over. She leaned her face against the pillow. Her face was pale and her body was soft. Bo Jingyan watched silently for a while, then got up and smoothed the wrinkles on his clothes. "I''lle back tomorrow to feed you your medicine." Su Ruanruan was embarrassed. "I can eat it myself." He bent down and his scorching breathnded on her lips. "Stop being so childish!" Su Ruanruan turned her face away. She hated him! He was a bully! Because Bo Jingyan was in a good mood, he did not continue to make things difficult for her. As he was leaving, he suddenly said, "You don''t have to worry about entering the family register. Someone will take care of it for you." Su Ruanruan was stunned. When she turned to look at Bo Jingyan again, he had already left. Silence returned to the bedroom. The absurd incident earlier was like a dream, but the tip of her tongue still tasted bitter. Su Ruanruan lowered her gaze, thinking about Bo Jingyan''s words. She wondered who that person was... ... Right outside the hospital, Bo Jingse happened to bump into Bo Jingyan when she came to deliver the documents. She was surprised to see a faint smile on her brother''s face. It was a gentle smile! She murmured, "Big Brother." Bo Jingyan regained his usual coldness and took the document from her hands to read. He said casually, "It''s not particrly important. Why did you send it to the hospital?" Bo Jingse said calmly, "Dad asked me toe and see Ruanruan." Bo Jingyan lifted his eyelids. "She''s asleep." He said it casually, but Bo Jingse''s heart was in turmoil. After careful consideration, she asked, "Brother, do you like her?" Bo Jingyan looked at his sister for a long while before he said calmly, "No." Bo Jingse did not dare to ask further and simply followed her brother back to thepany. Chapter 7: He Wanted to Support Her

Chapter 7: He Wanted to Support Her

Over the next few days, Bo Jingyan still visited the hospital. After grinding the medicine, he would feed it to Su Ruanruan. It was so bitter that it made her doubt her life every time she drank it. Three dayster, she finally recovered. The doctor let out a smile after checking her. "She will be discharged tomorrow morning." Su Ruanruan leaned against the headboard, smiling as she expressed her thanks. The doctor looked at Bo Jingyan by the floor-to-ceiling windows, not daring to stay any longer. This person came every day, and rumor had it that he was here to feed Miss Su medicine. Everyone in the hospital kept their mouths shut about this matter. The Bo family only thought that Bo Jingyan had hired another doctor for Su Ruanruan to get better. After the attending doctor left, Su Ruanruan pretended to be asleep. She was afraid of Bo Jingyan and did not want to be alone with him. Beside the windows, Bo Jingyan gently drew the curtains open, his voice calm. "Do you have anything to say to me?" Su Ruanruan was stunned. Bo Jingyan turned his head and looked at her quietly. "If you want to leave the Bo family, you can look for me." She understood what that meant: He wanted to spend money to support her. Su Ruanruan felt somewhat embarrassed. "I don''t need your help." Bo Jingyan''s eyes darkened as he looked into the distance. A red light shed across the building across from them. He quickly rushed towards the bed and picked Su Ruanruan up from the bed before rolling beneath it with her. Just then, bullets flew past right where they were. Under the bed, Su Ruanruan was trapped in Bo Jingyan''s arms. Her face was on his shoulder and her body was pressed against his. She didn''t dare to move. It was her first time being so intimate with a man. She could still hear the sound of bullets ricocheting past her ears. She asked in a trembling voice, "Are they here for you?" Bo Jingyan suddenly grabbed her neck and forced her to look at him. Under the faint light, he was the most handsome man Su Ruanruan had ever seen. Her heart started racing. "Are you afraid?" He rubbed her neck as though he wasforting a frightened animal. She shook her head slowly. Bo Jingyan smiled. "Good girl." ''I''m not a child!'' She thought indignantly as she pushed him away. A bullet hit his left side and she screamed as she buried herself in his shoulder. Her slender arms wrapped around his neck. The truth was that she was terrified. Bo Jingyan leaned his head against her ear and asked softly, "Su Ruanruan, if I die, will you be mine?" She screamed in fear and anger, "Dream on!" Bo Jingyanughed hoarsely. He rarely smiled like this, yet he had burst out intoughter while someone was trying to assassinate him! The gunshots gradually disappeared. His bodyguards rushed into the ward and Bo Jingyan carried Su Ruanruan out from under the bed. The bodyguard lowered his head. "Young Master Yan, we''ve cleared the other side." Bo Jingyan smirked coldly. "Leave just one of them alive." Su Ruanruan shuddered. Bo Jingyan looked down at her. "We can''t stay here anymore." Then, he carried the youngdy out. She didn''t struggle at all. After all, she cherished her life. Su Ruanruan was carried into the ck SUV, and an hourter, the car arrived at a vi. As soon as the door was opened, all the lights in the mansion were switched on. Su Ruanruan guessed that Bo Jingyan usually stayed here because the servants addressed him as "Sir". Bo Jingyan ced Su Ruanruan on the sofa, loosened his tie, and instructed the servants, "Bring Miss Su upstairs to rest." The servants immediately brought slippers over for Su Ruanruan to change into. As she headed upstairs, Su Ruanruan stole a nce at Bo Jingyan. He stood there, cold and distant. Chapter 8: Help Me Prepare a Big Gift

Chapter 8: Help Me Prepare a Big Gift

That night, Su Ruanruan was kept up by insomnia, and she quietly headed downstairs. The hall on the first floor was frighteningly dark. No sooner had she reached downstairs than her waist was grabbed by arge hand. She fell into a warm embrace. She heard a man''s hoarse voice. "What are you trying to pry into?" Su Ruanruan saw the person in front of her clearly. It was Bo Jingyan! His ck shirt blended into the night, and he was so handsome that he almost looked evil. There was a faint smell of alcohol on him. It was obvious that he had drunk. She instinctively took a step back and asked very softly, "Where''s the survivor?" "Dead." His voice was very calm. Su Ruanruan felt her entire body turn cold. She felt him grab her waist again and the next second, she was pressed down against the sofa.Her petite body was insignificant under his strong control. Bo Jingyan moved closer to her, his hot breath blowing behind her ear. "Why don''t you want to follow me? I can''tpare to a dead person, huh?" As he enunciated each word, it felt as though he was kissing her. Su Ruanruan was so terrified that her body kept trembling. He raised himself slightly, and she could see the evil re in his eyes. Su Ruanruan started crying, her voice trembling, "I don''t want to be a mistress." Bo Jingyan sobered up a little and looked at the little girl under him. Her ck hair was slightly wet and her thin shoulders were trembling slightly. It was a pitiable yet lovable sight. He sat up and rubbed his forehead. "Go upstairs and sleep. I''ll get the chauffeur to send you back to the hospital tomorrow." Su Ruanruan turned around and ran as quickly as she could. Bo Jingyan looked at her back quietly. A close aide came overter and said, "Young Master Yan, are you sure that no one knows that Miss Su is here?" Bo Jingyan was still sitting quietly in the dark. After a long while, he said in a low voice, "Help me prepare a big gift." ... Early in the morning, the chauffeur sent Su Ruanruan back to the hospital. Coincidentally, the Old Madam had sent someone to fetch her from the hospital, so she followed the chauffeur back to the Bo family''s residence. The olddy was delighted and even instructed her servants to set off two firecrackers. Bo Jingyuan pursed her lips. "She''s a jinx. Why would Grandmother like her?" Madam Bo red at her daughter, shutting thetter up immediately. The Old Madam''s heart ached for Su Ruanruan. She held the young girl''s hand and said, "Go have some rest first. Let''s have dinner together tonight." Su Ruanruan obediently returned to her room. Behind her, Bo Jingyuan gritted her teeth. ''How shameless! Let''s see how you''re going to stay here after tonight.'' She then stole a nce at her mother, who looked exceptionally calm. Su Ruanruan rested in her bedroom for a day. At six o''clock in the evening, a servant from the Bo family came knocking on the door. "Miss Su, Sir will be back soon. The Old Madam wants you to go downstairs." Su Ruanruan then changed into an azure-colored waist-length dress, and had her long hair braided into a fishbone braid. She looked gentle and moving. After a while, she strolled downstairs leisurely. By then, Bo Mingyuan had already returned with his children. The Bo family sat on the sofa, drinking tea and chatting. When he saw Su Ruanruan, Bo Mingyuan said gently, "I heard from the Old Madam that Jingyan specially hired a good doctor for you. I didn''t believe it before, but now that I see you, he must be really good." He chuckled again. "Ruanruan, you have to thank Jingyan properly." Su Ruanruan''s gaze fell on Bo Jingyan. The way he looked at her was very indifferent. It was impossible to tell that he had done those hateful things to her. Su Ruanruan cast her gaze downwards as she softly spoke, "Thank you, Big Brother." Bo Jingyan smiled faintly but remained silent. Bo Mingyuan smiled. "That''s great. Our family is so loving! Jingyuan, you have to ept Ruanruan like your brother has and love her." Bo Jingyuan was furious, yet there was nothing she could do! Chapter 9: Ziqi鈥檚 Death Was an Accident!

Chapter 9: Ziqi''s Death Was an ident!

Just as the family was about to move to the dining room, the butler came over with a gift box and said ingratiatingly, "This is a special gift for you, Madam. I wonder which family it''s from." Delighted, Madam Bo could hardly wait to open it. "It''s obvious that the person didn''t send it for no reason. We''ll most likely have to give that person something in return." The Old Madam already understood her daughter-inw''s tricks, so she secretly rolled her eyes and continued drinking her tea. Su Ruanruan was curious as to what kind of gift it was that made Madam Bo so happy. Hence, she paid close attention to it. The moment Madam Bo opened the gift box, her face turned pale and her lips trembled unnaturally. She flung the gift almost half a meter away. Bo Jingyuan screamed and Bo Jingse turned away. Su Ruanruan''s expression changed as well. She clenched her fists and secretly looked at Bo Jingyan, who was sitting there calmly with a sneer on his lips. "Take this thing away! Take it away!" Madam Bo''s voice was shaky and incoherent. Bo Mingyuan was also shocked. He immediately ordered the servants to take the dirty thing away and turned tofort his wife. At this moment, the servant took out a card from the gift box and handed it to Bo Mingyuan. He narrowed his eyes. The card read: "Next time, I don''t mind giving Jingyuan to you, Madam!" Bo Jingyuan froze, then rolled her eyes and fainted. The servants immediately carried her away. Bo Mingyuan flew into a rage. "How dare you! Do we live in awless society?" He stood up and was about to call the police when his wife grabbed his arm. She was wailing. "Mingyuan, I beg you. I have only one child left. I don''t want to lose her." Bo Mingyuan hesitated. Just then, the olddy who had been drinking tea asked shrewdly, "Meiyu, what bad things have you done? Why did that person only threaten you?" Madam Bo was speechless. Bo Mingyuan stared at his wife before shifting his gaze to his eldest son, who was sitting on the sofa, looking elegant and noble. There was a mocking gaze in his eyes. All of a sudden, Bo Mingyuan lost all his strength. After a long while, he said in a hoarse voice, "Meiyu, Ziqi''s death was an ident! Don''t force me to make a choice." Madam Bo was stunned. Her lips trembled as she asked, "Mingyuan, you don''t believe me?" Bo Mingyuan held her shoulders and said in a heavy tone, "You only need to remember one thing. Jingyan is the only heir of the Imperial View Corporation. It would have been the same even if Ziqi was still alive." Madam Bo''s eyes reddened and she left the table angrily. Although Bo Mingyuan hated her for making a move on his eldest son, he still chased after her tofort her because she had indeed lost her son. In the master bedroom on the second floor, Madam Bo was bawling on the bed. Bo Mingyuan pushed the door open and entered. He sat by the bed and pushed her gently. "You''re doing this again!" Madam Bo continued to cry. "I hate you! Ziqi has only left for a year and you have already forgotten about him! You only care about Bo Jingyan! How could you do this to my Ziqi?" Bo Mingyuan said helplessly, "Meiyu, I already said that Jingyan has nothing to do with Ziqi''s ident." "Then it must have something to do with the Su family, right?" Qi Meiyu''s face was full of tears. "The olddy even brought the Su family''s child here. Isn''t she just making things difficult for me?" Bo Mingyuan was in a difficult position. Seeing that he was wavering, Qi Meiyu came over and hugged her husband. In the heat of the moment, Madam Bo sobbed softly. "Ever since Ruanruan arrived, there hasn''t been peace in our family." Bo Mingyuan thought to himself, ''That seems to be the case.'' Madam Bo tried to curry favor with her husband as well as vent her frustrations on Su Ruanruan''s family. Bo Mingyuan was very satisfied with being served. He caressed his wife''s face and seemed to be deep in thought. ''Perhaps that child really shouldn''t stay in our home.'' Chapter 10: I Want Someone Like Ruan Ruan

Chapter 10: I Want Someone Like Ruan Ruan

Although the vi''s soundproofing was good, the rest could still hear some noisesing from their room. The Old Madam said in disgust, "Idiots! Don''t wait for them. Let''s eat." This meal made Su Ruanruan uneasy. The sounds were like a horny wild cat''s in spring, making her heart beat faster. Bo Jingyan''s dark eyes looked towards her, his gaze burning slightly. Su Ruanruan did not dare to meet his gaze. She lowered her eyes and ate quietly. Seeing this, Bo Jingse secretly tightened her grip on her chopsticks. The Old Madam did not notice it. Instead, she said to her eldest grandson, "Jingyan, it''s time for you to find a woman. You''re still single at this age. Others might think that you have different preferences." Bo Jingyan took a sip of his wine and smiled. "I don''t have time! Grandma, why don''t you help me find one?" Now that he had finally relented, the olddy was surprised and delighted. "What kind of girls do you like?" Bo Jingyan''s gaze fell on Su Ruanruan... Su Ruanruan felt a chill run down her spine. Bo Jingyan looked at the Old Madam again and smiled. "The one you got for Ziqi is pretty good. You can look for someone simr!" His grandmother scolded jokingly, "Ruanruan is good, but do you think there will be someone simr to her in this world?" Bo Jingyan was still holding his wine ss, his eyes smiling. Su Ruanruan was shocked. The "gift" he had given Madam Bo was bloody and terrifying! Now, he even wanted her body. She didn''t want anything to do with him! Su Ruanruan could no longer sit still and she quickly found an excuse to leave. Bo Jingyan looked at her back without saying anything. Then, the Old Madam said in a low voice, "Jingyan, there are many girls for you to pick from, but not Ruanruan. She''s Ziqi''s." Besides, Jingyan had the most noble blood flowing in him, and he represented both the Bo and Sun families. The Su family was far from matching up to them. Bo Jingyan put down his cup and smiled. "You''re thinking too much. I was just joking." The olddy heaved a sigh of relief and said unhappily, "Why did you have to joke about Ruanruan? Look, you scared her, didn''t you?" She was still a little afraid and felt that her grandson was testing her. That night, the thought kept the Old Madam awake through the night. ... The next morning, Su Ruanruan went downstairs for breakfast. Bo Mingyuan had be more distant. Su Ruanruan understood what was going on and only addressed the Old Madam. "The Old Madam''s legs are acting up and she''s not feeling well!" Bo Mingyuan deliberated for a moment before saying, "Ruanruan, I''ve already calcted your your birth characters, but it doesn''t really match with Ziqi''s. I''ll get the chauffeur to send you back to the Su familyter. As for the 10% shares in Tongsheng Hospital, consider itpensation from the Bo family." The moment he spoke, Bo Jingyuan was so happy that she was about to jump up. ''Dad''s finally kicking Su Ruanruan out!'' She looked at Su Ruanruan with a smug expression. ''Let''s see what you can do this time!'' Su Ruanruan still looked delicate and gentle and she replied, "I''ll call hometer." Bo Mingyuan nodded in satisfaction. Although he had gotten rid of Su Ruanruan easily, he couldn''t help but feel that this girl had a good appearance and was even obedient. Just then, Su Ruanruan said softly, "I want to bid farewell to the Old Madam." Bo Mingyuan deliberated for a moment before agreeing. "That''s good too. The Old Madam didn''t love you for nothing." After breakfast, Bo Mingyuan personally brought her to the small courtyard where the Old Madam lived. Bo Jingyuan said smugly, "Su Ruanruan''s being chased out. If word gets out, she would be treated as a joke." Madam Bo sipped on her English ck tea and nced at her daughter. "Jingyuan, keep your mouth shut." Bo Jingyuan nodded in agreement, but her heart was still filled with joy. As for Madam Bo, she was confident. Her husband had promised her that he would send Su Ruanruan away. Chapter 11: A Capable Child

Chapter 11: A Capable Child

In the small courtyard, the olddy''s legs were acting up and the doctor was examining her. Bo Mingyuan brought Su Ruanruan over. He bent down and greeted his mother. The olddy forced her eyelids open and her gazended on Su Ruanruan. She felt a pang of pity. Last night, Mingyuan hade to herte at night and told her about the child''s birth characters. No matter how much she thought about it, they couldn''t afford to keep the child. Hence, the olddy got someone to bring a pair of jade bracelets to Su Ruanruan. The young girl understood that the Old Madam was no longer trying to hold her back. She said softly, "Uncle has given me enough." The olddy sighed in her heart. The gifts from the Bo family had long been taken away by the Su family. ''This child doesn''t even have any parents. How pitiful.'' Thinking that the Old Madam was in unbearable pain, the doctor said, "Old Madam is going to suffer for a few days." Bo Mingyuan was a little anxious. "Doctor Gao, I know you''re capable enough to treat her." Doctor Gao was helpless. "The olddy''s illness cannot be cured, so we can only use medicine to ease her pain." Guizhi, who was beside the Old Madam, said, "She took the medicine in the morning but it still hurts." Her heart ached for the olddy, but thetter did not take it to heart. "I''m already so old. So be it." Just then, Su Ruanruan said softly, "Let me try." Bo Mingyuan frowned. ''This girl is going to such an extent just to stay in the Bo family!'' Doctor Gao sneered in his heart. ''If I can''t cure her, no one in Jiang City can! This youngdy''s arrogant words areughable.'' However, the Old Madam shocked everyone by saying, "Why don''t we let Ruanruan take a look?" With that, Guizhi carefully rolled up the Old Madam''s pants, revealing thetter''s knees. The olddy''s legs were so thin that they looked like skin and bones. Su Ruanruan squatted down and reached out her hands to gently cover that area of pain. Her fingernails were round and pink, and clean and cute. The Old Madam was distracted for a moment but when she came back to her senses, she felt pain and cried out. Su Ruanruan''s red lips parted slightly as she spoke in a soft voice, "The Old Madam is experiencing a gout re." That shocked everyone. How could Su Ruanruan tell? The Old Madam eximed excitedly, "This child is actually capable!" She calmed herself down and said, "Jingyuan said that you studied art like her. Why do you know medicine?" Su Ruanruan gently massaged the olddy as she replied, "My father was a doctor when he was still alive. When I was young, I read medical books together with him and learned some basic knowledge." The Old Madam was originally in so much pain that she was on the verge of death. However, Su Ruanruan''s massage had alleviated much of that pain. The former looked at the young girl, who was half-kneeling by her side, and felt that this little girl was as beautiful as a painting, and very moving. The olddy''s heart was filled with love. "Good girl, stop massaging me. Don''t let my old and dirty body dirty your hands." Su Ruanruan shook her head. "It''s fine." She then said to Guizhi beside the olddy, "Bring some ice over." Guizhi looked at Doctor Gao hesitantly. "We usually use warm packs." Unexpectedly, Doctor Gao said, "It''s fine! Hehe, perhaps the youngdy''s method is better." He sneered coldly in his heart. ''How dare a nobody try to prove her worth here? I can''t wait to watch a good show if she drives the olddy into a critical condition.'' With his approval, Guizhi quickly brought the ice over. Su Ruanruan crushed the ice cubes personally and exined, "This way, it won''t be too cold." Then, she took a clean gauze and wrapped the ice up, pressing it t and gently cing it on the olddy''s sore spot. Doctor Gao''s eyes were burning as he waited for the olddy''s condition to worsen. Chapter 12: From Now On, Ruanruan is Part of the Family

Chapter 12: From Now On, Ruanruan is Part of the Family

However, after waiting for a while, the olddy did not show any signs of pain. Instead, she closed her eyesfortably and sighed. "After suffering for more than twenty years, my old bones finally feel at ease." Doctor Gao was dumbfounded! This was impossible! There was no way ice would help the Old Madam''s condition! But why did the Old Madam look so much better? It wasn''t just him. Even Bo Mingyuan also looked at Su Ruanruan in surprise. This child was actually quite capable. While everyone was lost in their own thoughts, a servant came over and said, "Sir, the car to send Miss Su home is already waiting at the door." Bo Mingyuan coughed awkwardly. Su Ruanruan got up and said goodbye to the olddy. Of course, there was no way the Old Madam would allow her to leave. She had been in such great pain only moments earlier, and it was Su Ruanruan who had alleviated her pain. The olddy raged at her son. "Mingyuan, you''ve been listening to that evil woman of yours every day. Are you deliberately trying to make me suffer? She clearly wants to harm Jingyan. Are you too weak to deal with her?" She berated her son viciously. Bo Mingyuan felt helpless. "What are you saying?" Su Ruanruan said softly, "Uncle knows that you''re unwell, so he hasn''t even had breakfast yet. He can''t be any more filial." Bo Mingyuan was stunned for a moment before replying, "Yes, I didn''t even eat breakfast." He looked at Su Ruanruan in surprise. This child was very considerate. The Old Madam was overjoyed. She nced at her son. "At least you have some conscience." However, she continued ruthlessly, "No matter how many times that evil woman tries to change your mind, I''m keeping this child." Bo Mingyuan was filial, so there was no way he could refute her. He could only agree helplessly. He only spoke to Su Ruanruan once the olddy fell asleep. "The Old Madam likes you a lot! Why don''t you go back to the Su family ande back after dinner?" Su Ruanruan agreed obediently. Bo Mingyuan sighed again. "Don''t me me for what I''m doing." He patted her shoulder and walked out of the olddy''s room. Su Ruanruan was about to follow him when Doctor Gao snapped out of his daze and asked, "May I know who you are?" The young girl stopped in her tracks and turned around with a smile. "My father''s Su Peiming." Doctor Gao was stunned. Only after a long time did he regain his senses, and he muttered, "It''s him. No wonder..." Su Ruanruan smiled and left. When they arrived at the Bo family''s front hall, Bo Mingyuan was arranging for the chauffeur and servants. Madam Bo was still sipping her tea. Bo Jingyuan pretended to be sincere. "Although we can''t be a family, we can still meet in school." Bo Jingyan and Bo Jingse happened to hear this as they came down from the study on the second floor. Bo Jingse subconsciously nced at her brother. Bo Jingyan smiled and headed downstairs slowly. After Bo Mingyuan had arranged everything, he turned around and reprimanded his younger daughter. "Don''t talk nonsense! Ruanruan is just going home to visit her family. She wille back soon." At this moment, the servants were moving gifts into the car. All sorts of expensive gifts piled up like a small mountain. Bo Jingyuan was so anxious that she was about to cry. Didn''t he want to send Su Ruanruan away? Why wasn''t she not leaving? Why did her father give Su Ruanruan so many good things? Just as she was about to say something, Bo Mingyuan said in a deep voice, "The Old Madam isn''t in good condition. Ruanruan relieved her pain! The Old Madam likes Ruanruan. She will be part of the Bo family from now on." Madam Bo tightened her grip on her cup and narrowed her eyes. That child had found a way to stay! Bo Mingyuan was still not satisfied and said to his eldest son, "Jingyan, send Ruanruan off personallyter!" He patted his son''s shoulder. "We can''t let others think that there are no men in our Bo family." Chapter 13: Returning to the Su Family in Glory

Chapter 13: Returning to the Su Family in Glory

Bo Jingyan looked at Su Ruanruan, a hint of mockery in his gaze. Ever since that night, Su Ruanruan had been extremely afraid of him. She immediately said, "You must be very busy. Why don''t..." "I do have time this morning." These words were meant for his father. Bo Mingyuan was relieved. "Jingyan, I''ll leave this to you." Bo Jingyan lit a cigarette and looked at the youngdy. "Aren''t you going upstairs to change? I''ll wait for you in the car." Seeing that she couldn''t escape, Su Ruanruan bit her lower lip and could only head upstairs to change. Ten minutester, she came downstairs in a yellow dress, her long hair braided in a fishbone braid. She looked as fresh as morning dew. To her surprise, Bo Jingyan was the one driving the car. He was sitting in the driver''s seat. He had taken off his jacket and was wearing only a white shirt. He looked indescribably handsome. He was smoking while waiting for her. Su Ruanruan wanted to slip into the backseat, but he reached out and opened the door to the front passenger seat. The youngdy refused to get into the car. Bo Jingyan put out the cigarette and lifted his chin slightly. "You want others to realize?" She had no choice but to get into the car. When she got into the car, she realized that something was amiss. Her dress was not short, but when she sat down, her fair skin was revealed. She tried to cover her skin uneasily. Bo Jingyan nced at her, grabbed the coat from the backseat, and threw it at her. The jacket covered her legs lightly, covering her bare skin. "Thank you," she said, her tone stiff. Bo Jingyan chuckled and asked her as he buckled his seatbelt, "What are you thanking me for? For plotting against you?" She turned away angrily. He was evil! Bo Jingyan set the location on his GPS and started the car. A few ck RVs with gifts followed behind, enough to allow Su Ruanruan to return home in glory. In the living room, Bo Jingyuan gritted her teeth in hatred. "Those who don''t know better might think that Su Ruanruan has married Big Brother." Madam Bo ignored her sour words and said softly to her husband, "I don''t even have any say in this family." Bo Mingyuanforted his wife. "She''s just staying here but she won''t be included in the family register." Madam Bo buried her face in her hands and sobbed. "Do you think I don''t want to ept her? If Ziqi was still alive, I would be willing to let her marry Ziqi." Bo Mingyuan''s heart ached at the mention of his second son. Bo Jingse, who had been watching coldly from the sidelines, sneered. Qi Meiyu was skilled, but she had underestimated Su Ruanruan. That girl who looked weak and delicate but the truth was that she really could not be underestimated. The Bo family was about to change. Qi Meiyu''s good days wereing to an end. ... Half an hourter, Bo Jingyan''s car arrived at the Su family''s residence. The Su Family was a family of doctors, and their vi was not as luxurious as the Bo family''s. The car stopped and Bo Jingyan turned to look at Su Ruanruan. "I have a meeting at the hotelter. We''ll leave at 10 o''clock." Su Ruanruan looked away. "I''ll go back after lunch." He was shameless! He clearly said that he was free in the morning. Hearing this, Bo Jingyan unbuckled his seatbelt. "Alright, I''ll eat with you at the Su family''s residence." Su Ruanruan panicked and reached out to hold his arm. "You''re not allowed to get out of the car. Wait for me here." Her hands were soft, causing Bo Jingyan to shudder. He lowered his eyes and his gaze fell on her hand. Realizing that something was wrong, Su Ruanruan hurriedly retracted her hand. However, he was faster than her, and he reached out and pulled her into his arms. She was so scared that she kept dodging around, and tears welled up in her eyes. Bo Jingyan caressed her delicate face and said in a hoarse voice, "The people behind are all my subordinates. They won''t leak a single thing." Chapter 14: Kiss Me and I Won鈥檛 Tell

Chapter 14: Kiss Me and I Won''t Tell

Su Ruanruan turned her face away, "Let go of me! I won''t be your mistress." His gaze deepened. "Su Ruanruan, when did I say I wanted you to be my mistress?" With that, he carried her back to the front passenger seat and looked at her. "You''re so small. What can we do with you?" Su Ruanruan felt humiliated! Bo Jingyan smiled lightly and said in a low voice, "It''s not time yet. I''ll let the Old Madam take care of you first." Bo Ziqi was dead, and now that she was in the Bo family, she belonged to Bo Jingyan?! She was stunned. ''He''s truly shameless to the core. What does he take me for? Am I just a little pet in the Bo family? Is he going to eat me up after rearing me? I''m not going to let that happen!'' Bo Jingyan tugged on her ear. "Why don''t I go to the Old Madam and tell her about you swapping your drink with Jingyuan''s?" Su Ruanruan turned her face away as her voice cracked, "She clearly plotted against me first." Bo Jingyan smiled. "What about pretending to be sick?" Su Ruanruan was so angry that tears welled up in her eyes. "Tell her then! At most, I''ll be chased out of the Bo family." He looked at her quietly and suddenly said, "Come and kiss me, and I won''t say anything." She started to cry. "Bo Jingyan, get someone else." When she cried, she was as weak and pitiful as a baby.But Bo Jingyan knew that Su Ruanruan was not a cub. She was a little rabbit that could bite. This little rabbit was very cute, and he liked her very much. He wiped away her tears and coaxed her. "I won''t mess around with you." She still refused to kiss him. After a long time, Bo Jingyan nced at his watch, and let her out of the car. As soon as the car door opened, Su Ruanruan flew off. The servants of the Bo family followed behind her with gifts in hand. Bo Jingyan smiled and lit a cigarette. He took a deep breath and smiled faintly. Actually, he hadn''t really been right earlier. While she was young, she was already 18 years old. There were many things she could do. ... Su Ruanruan''s return shocked the entire Su family. The Bo Family had arranged for the Su family''s Third Miss, Su Qionglin, to marry into the Bo family. After all, Su Qionglin and Bo Ziqi had been lovers in the first ce. However, Su Qionglin was the daughter of the Su family''s oldest son, Su Yuhua. Besides, she was also a popr model. How could the Su family throw her into the fire pit? Hence, Old Master Su chose to chase Su Ruanruan out. The Su family felt that Su Ruanruan would definitely not have a good life in the Bo family. As such, the Su family simply pretended as though they had never raised this child, so much so that they deliberately ignored Su Ruanruan even when she was sick. But now, Su Ruanruan was backin style! Those gifts piled into a small mountain in the courtyard. Naturally, the Su family now treated Su Ruanruan differently. Old Master Su said gently, "It seems like the Bo family treats you well." Auntie Su was green with envy, but she said, "Ruanruan, now that you''re enjoying life, don''t forget that this fortune was given to you by Qionglin." ''How shameless! Has she really forgotten about how she forced me into doing this?'' Su Ruanruan thought to herself. However, she didn''t lose her temper. She said softly, "If Sister Qionglin wants to go, she can still do so." Auntie Su was a little embarrassed. Ha, how could Qionglin marry a dead person? Qionglin was a beauty and had a whole career ahead of her. She would definitely find a powerful husband to help her two brothers in the future. At this moment, Su Qionglin came down from upstairs. When she saw the house full of presents, she felt a little upset. ''All these should have been mine!'' She thought indignantly. Auntie Su rolled her eyes and said softly, "Ruanruan''s status is different now. Qionglin, if you interact with more people now, you might find a good husband like Ruanruan." Old Master Su approved of this. After all, Qionglin seemed more promising amongst the two girls in the family. Besides, the Su family had raised Ruanruan. It was only right for her to repay their kindness. Chapter 15: Heartache after a Beating

Chapter 15: Heartache after a Beating

At the thought of this, Old Master Su said, "Ruanruan, you must remember your sister if the Bo family hosts any banquets or social events in the future." Su Ruanruan lowered her gaze, her eyes filled with coldness. She looked up again and said obediently, "I understand." Auntie Su covered her mouth andughed. "I knew you were a grateful child, Ruanruan. I know you won''t forget how well we treated you." Even Su Qionglin chimed inzily, "Yeah, Ruanruan is the most obedient." Su Ruanruan saw her chance and said in a low voice to Old Master Su, "Grandpa, I want to work in the Tongsheng Hospital after graduating." Auntie Su''s heart skipped a beat. Did Su Ruanruan know something? She turned to nce at Old Master Su. As expected, Old Master Su flew into a rage and pped her in the face. "You''re a girl! Do you think you can be a doctor? Look at how well Qionglin is doing in her career!" Five angry red marks immediately appeared on Su Ruanruan''s face. She cupped her face but remained silent. Old Master Su felt a little guilty. He had been slightly too heavy-handed. It wouldn''t be good if the Bo family saw this. Seeing that the atmosphere was cold, Auntie Su pretended to persuade her. "Ruanruan, if you can''t find a job in the future, you can always look for your Sister Qionglin! Besides, the Bo Family''s Imperial View Corporation is so big. You don''t have to be afraid of having nowhere to go." She chuckled and continued, "The pharmaceutical research and development department of the Imperial View Corporation is second to none. Ruanruan, don''t forget to fight for the right to use the newest drugs for our hospital in the future." Everything Auntie Su had said was for her own benefit, but to Su Ruanruan, it sounded like a way out. She caressed her slightly swollen face and wondered, ''Why didn''t I think of that?'' At this moment, Old Master Su''s tone softened as well. "I was too anxious just now. Did I hurt you?" He nced at Auntie Su, who immediately went to get some medicine for Su Ruanruan. After applying it, she examined the wound carefully. "The marks are almost gone." Su Ruanruan''s heart turned cold. She stood up gently. "The Old Madam is still waiting for me. I''ll go back first." Old Master Su had many things to tell her, but he was afraid that they would offend Old Madam Bo and ruin Su Qionglin''s future if Su Ruanruan werete, so he had no choice but to agree. As soon as Su Ruanruan left, Auntie Su ced the ointment aside and smiled at Old Master Su, "Ruanruan''s all grown up. She even has a temper now." Old Master Su''s face sank. Su Qionglin, who was watching from the side, sneered as she yed with her nails. ''Does Su Ruanruan think that she has ascended to the top? That''s just something I didn''t want! But now that Su Ruanruan''s valued by the Bo family, I can indeed use her...'' ... Su Ruanruan walked out of the Su family''s residence and was about to get into the car. All of a sudden, a voice came from behind. "Ruanruan!" She spun around, surprised to see him. "Second Brother, you''re back?" It was Su Ru''an. Eldest Uncle Su had three children. His eldest son, Su Minghua, had gotten married and had children. He was now working in the family''s hospital. The second son, Su Ru''an, was obsessed with art and had just returned from overseas recently. Lastly, his youngest daughter was none other than Su Qionglin. No one in the Su family treated Su Ruanruan well, apart from Su Ru''an. The young man walked over and patted her head. "Did you get hit again?" Su Ruanruan shook her head. Her cousin sighed softly and reached out to touch her face. "I saw everything." He ced a tube of ointment in her palm. "Remember to apply this ointment yourself." However, he did not want to let go of her hand. His voice was low. "Ruanruan, I can take you away." Su Ruanruan lowered her head and choked on her words, "The Old Madam treats me very well." She did not mention anything about Madam Bo and Bo Jingyuan making things difficult for her nor did she talk about Bo Jingyan bullying her. Su Ru''an was stunned for a moment. After a while, he patted her head again. "Tell me if you get bullied." He took out another bank card and passed it to her, afraid that she would be aggrieved but have no money to spend on herself. Su Ruanruan refused to ept it but her cousin stuffed it into her hands and left. Su Ruanruan''s gaze remained on the ground for a long time. Chapter 16: Tempting Her

Chapter 16: Tempting Her

When they were in the car, Bo Jingyan turned to look at her. "Why? You can''t bear to leave? Did you cry?" Su Ru''an had chased after her. Bo Jingyan saw it clearlySu Ru''an nced at his cousin with aplicated gaze. However, thetter ignored him and turned her head away, feeling a little sad. Bo Jingyan suddenly narrowed his eyes and reached out to grab her chin. "Who hit you?" Su Ruanruan panicked and stuttered, "No one." Bo Jingyan dragged her over and scrutinized her face. "Did Old Master Su hit you?" "This isn''t the first time." Su Ruanruan''s voice was broken. "Why are you pretending to care about me?" Bo Jingyan had also heard that Bo Jingyuan had pped her, so he immediately said, "I won''t pursue that matter because I know you won''t let Jingyuan take advantage of you, but the Su family is different." Those people bullied and humiliated her because they had raised her. Su Ruanruan didn''t want to rm the members of the Su family here, hence she begged, "I will pay attention in the future." Bo Jingyan did not say anything else. His gaze fell on the bank card she was holding. Su Ru''an had given it to her just now. He took the card and bent it in half. Angry tears rolled down Su Ruanruan''s face. He was too domineering. She wanted to go back alone, but just then, Bo Jingyan''s secretary knocked on the car window. Bo Jingyan rolled down the car window. "Young Master Yan, the meeting is about to start." Bo Jingyan nodded. He turned to look at Su Ruanruan. "There''s a new product meeting. It''s very important." Su Ruanruan''s eyes lit up. ''A new product meeting?'' She bit her lower lip. "Is it a meeting with the research and development department?" Bo Jingyan smiled. "So you know about it." Seeing that she did not object, he started the car and drove towards the hotel. As Su Ruanruan sat beside him, she stole a nce at him. For the first time, she felt that Bo Jingyan was not that scary. 20 minutester, the car stopped in the parking lot of the Imperial View Hotel, and Bo Jingyan brought Su Ruanruan to the conference center on the top floor. The meeting room was not big and was filled with just over 10 people. None of them showed any surprise when they saw Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan thought to herself, ''These people should be Bo Jingyan''s trusted aides.'' She then recalled that the servants of the Bo Family, who had gone to the Su Family with her today, were also following his orders. Her heart sank. How powerful was Bo Jingyan? Bo Jingyan arranged for a female assistant to bring Su Ruanruan to the room next door to rest. Su Ruanruan originally wanted to stay behind, but she was afraid that he would be suspicious, so she obediently followed after the assistant. The room was Bo Jingyan''s private lounge, and there were a living room and a small study room attached to it. Su Ruanruan stood at the entrance of the study and softly asked, "Can I pick a book to read?" The assistant smiled. "You''re the doctor''s guest. Of course you can." ''Doctor? Does she mean Bo Jingyan?'' Su Ruanruan was surprised. Seeing her confusion, the assistant smiled again. "Young Master Yan is a PhD student at the best research institute in America." Su Ruanruan nodded before following her in. The study room was very simple. Besides a desk, there were two rows of medical books on the shelves. Su Ruanruan stood on her tiptoes and picked a book. Then, she sat on the sofa to read. The assistant made her a cup of English ck tea, and left. The study room was very quiet except for the asional sound of Su Ruanruan flipping through a book. When Bo Jingyan returned from his meeting, he was surprised to see her reading medical books. He walked over and sat beside her. He took the book from her hand and looked at it. "Do you like to read this?" He put the book down again. "Haven''t you always painted?" Su Ruanruan was surprised. How did he know about that? Bo Jingyan lowered his voice. "Jingyuan said that you just transferred to Zhongjiang Art Academy." Su Ruanruan hummed in acknowledgment. She didn''t know what else to say. She had never been alone with an adult male before, let alone a man who was after her. Bo Jingyan took a sip of tea from Su Ruanruan''s teacup and said slowly, "But if you like medicine, you cane and take a look. Oh right, we have aboratory in Imperial View too." Chapter 17: Bo Jingyan鈥檚 First Gift

Chapter 17: Bo Jingyan''s First Gift

"Really?" Su Ruanruan stared straight at him. Bo Jingyan leaned against the sofa and looked at her. His gaze was clear and bright, with a hint of the badness of grown men. Su Ruanruan''s heart started racing again. Just as she was at a loss, one of Bo Jingyan''s subordinates came in and whispered, "Young Master Yan, that old man from the Su family identally fell down the stairs and was sent to the hospital for emergency treatment." "I got it." Bo Jingyan gestured for him to leave. Su Ruanruan was stunned. It took her a while to find her voice. "Did you do it?" Bo Jingyan patted his pants and asked calmly, "Are you appeased? I didn''t chop off Jingyuan''s hand to avenge you." Su Ruanruan felt a chill run down her spine. Her instincts told her to run away as quickly as she could. However, she hadn''t even made it more than two steps away when Bo Jingyan hugged her from behind. "You think I''m scary?" His breath was beside her ear, and he sounded wild and seductive. Su Ruanruan trembled uncontrobly in his arms. He spun her around with his hands on her shoulders, and he sneered. "If I wasn''t ruthless, I would have died a hundred times over." Su Ruanruan cried, "I don''t want to know about your past." "It''s toote." Bo Jingyan lowered his head and kissed her lips, his voice hoarse. "Ruanruan, you''re mine." "I''m not!" Su Ruanruan struggled to get away from him. She took two steps back and threw amp at him. She had a premonition that she would not be able to escape if she did not run now. Bo Jingyan easily dodged her attack, and the expensivemp shattered to the ground. He smiled lightly. "What I did to Old Master Su will be my first gift to you." "You''re disgusting!" She threw another pillow at him. Bo Jingyan walked up to you, reaching out to pull her into his arms. His arms were locked around her and she couldn''t move at all. He lowered his head and kissed her. When she refused, he pinched her chin and forced her to ept it. Su Ruanruan had never been in a rtionship before, so how could she have known this? She cried so much that her eyelids were turning pink. It was a very pitiful yet lovable sight. However, Bo Jingyan had made up his mind toplete the kiss, as if it was a deration that she was his woman. In the end, he took her into his arms and gently wiped her slightly swollen red lips. "This is much more realistic than having a dead man as a husband." Su Ruanruan turned her face away in embarrassment. "You''ve already kissed me. Let go of me." Bo Jingyan pulled her into his arms, almost crushing her. Su Ruanruan was extremely afraid and hit him. "Bo Jingyan, you''re a bully! Let go of me! I''m going to tell on you to the Old Madam." After Bo Jingyan recovered from the shock, he leaned on her small shoulders and chuckled. "Do you want to tell the Old Madam that I kissed you, or tell her that I want you to be mine?" Su Ruanruan was so embarrassed that she could only cry. Bo Jingyan looked at her crying face and sighed. "Alright, stop crying! That Su fellow is not someone important. Is it worth it to make such a fuss?" "You investigated me!" she said softly. The manughed lightly. "It''s only natural for me to investigate my future wife." Despite the unbearable scene, Su Ruanruan still blushed. She shoved him away. "Who''s your wife?!" Bo Jingyan''s heart skipped a beat. He squeezed her hand and said, "You will be in the future." "I won''t." Su Ruanruan shrugged her hand away. "Send me back." Bo Jingyan looked at her quietly and smiled. "You have a childish temper." Although he said that, he took his coat and left with her. Su Ruanruan heaved a sigh of relief. Chapter 18: You Have Feelings, Don鈥檛 You?

Chapter 18: You Have Feelings, Don''t You?

In the car, Bo Jingyan suddenly took out a card and ced it in her hands. "I don''t want it." Su Ruanruan threw the card back at him. If she took his card, she would be his. She would rather die! Bo Jingyan lowered his head and lit a cigarette. "How are you nning to leave after entering the Bo family?" Su Ruanruan was stunned. The man chuckled. "What if the Old Madam suddenly wants to add you into the family register one day? The only way you''ll ever leave the Bo family in this lifetime is in a coffin." Su Ruanruan felt her blood run cold. Bo Jingyan freed one hand to stroke her hair. "Ruanruan, I will make you the mistress of the Bo family, the most respected woman in Jiang City." The youngdy was stunned for a long time before she turned away. "I don''t care for any of that!" "You''ll figure it out." He leaned toward her suddenly. Su Ruanruan screamed in fear, "What are you trying to do now?!" "Your seat belt isn''t fastened." he said as he pinched her cheek. Su Ruanruan pped his hand away. "I can do it myself." Although she said so, her hands were shaking so badly she couldn''t fasten her own seat belt. Bo Jingyan chuckled as he held her hand and helped her buckle it. When she looked up, his bright eyes locked onto hers and his voice was hoarse. "You have feelings for me too, don''t you?" "No! Of course not!" she screamed softly. Bo Jingyan looked at the reserved girl beside him and felt something again, but he suppressed it after thinking about it. ''She''s still too young. I''ll raise her for a while longer.'' It was already three in the afternoon by the time he sent her back. The moment the car stopped at the parking lot, Su Ruanruan opened the door and leaped out of the car as if she was escaping. Bo Jingyan was not in a hurry to leave. Instead, he lit himself a few cigarettes in the car. Amidst the smoke, his handsome face was deep in thought. His little one was reserved and not easily moved. She would only obediently stay by his side if he gave her what she wanted. ... Su Ruanruan ran to the second floor quickly. She did not even hear the servants greeting her along the way. After returning to her bedroom, she leaned her back against the door and stroked her lips, feeling both angry and frustrated. That person looked serious, but his actions were extremely vile. He had even taken away her first kiss! For a long time, Su Ruanruan was unwilling to go downstairs. In the evening, more cars arrived at the vi, and the servants were thrown into a frenzy. From downstairs came the sound of crying. Upon listening closely, Su Ruanraun realized that it was the voices of Madam Bo and the Old Madam! Su Ruanruan was curious and slowly headed downstairs. Along the way, she grabbed a servant. The servant wiped her tears and she stammered, "Young Master Ziqi is back." Su Ruanruan felt as though she had been struck by lightning. The maid continued, "Young Master Ziqi fell down the cliff and was picked up by someone. He lost his memory for a period of time, so he couldn''te back. Madam and Old Madam are overjoyed!" Su Ruanruan clenched her fists. Bo Ziqi was still alive? He had actually returned! Just then, a young man walked into the hall surrounded by the crowd. He was about the same size as Bo Jingyan. Although he was thin and out of shape, it was still possible to tell that he was an extremely good-looking man. Madam Bo hugged her son and cried. "Ziqi! I thought you... would nevere back." She held her son''s face as she cried. "You''ve lost so much weight! I heard from Old Zhang that you aren''t in good health. You must have suffered a lot!" The Old Madam reprimanded her daughter-inw, "Young people recover so quickly! Don''t say such unlucky things." Madam Bo cried with joy. "You''re right." She kept caressing her son''s face, unwilling to let go. Su Ruanruan had been standing at the staircase and watching. Coincidentally, Bo Ziqi looked over at her. Bo Ziqi''s gaze was cold and arrogant, and he looked at Su Ruanruan like she was someone unrted to him. For a moment, the atmosphere was a little strange. Chapter 19: Bo Ziqi鈥檚 Hate

Chapter 19: Bo Ziqi''s Hate

It was the Old Madam who spoke first. "This is Ruanruan." She tried to matchmake the two juniors, and chuckled as she said, "Ruanruan is still young. You have plenty of time to develop your feelings for her." Bo Ziqi was about to speak when Madam Boined, "Mom, did you forget that Ziqi has a girlfriend?" The olddy red at Madam Bo. "Where did his girlfriend go when Ziqi got into trouble?" Bo Ziqi pursed his lips. Because her grandson had just returned after going through trials and tribtions, the olddy didn''t want to dampen his spirits, so she quickly changed the topic. "Hurry and call your father and the rest. They don''t know about this news yet." Madam Bo smiled apologetically. "I''ve already called them." Just then, a car horn sounded at the door. In less than half a minute, Bo Mingyuan walked into the hall. He was obviously overwhelmed with emotions. He hugged his son and said in a trembling voice, "It''s good that you''re back! It''s good that you''re back!" Bo Ziqi''s voice was slightly depressed. "Dad, I''m back!" Su Ruanruan secretly squeezed her hand. Bo Ziqi was back, and he was her Third Sister''s boyfriend. She was now treading on thin ice. Then, she heard footsteps. It was Bo Jingyan and Bo Jingse. The siblings were expressionless. Bo Jingyan nced at Su Ruanruan, then stood at the side. Bo Mingyuan recovered hisposure, held his two sons and said emotionally, "Ziqi is finally back. Our whole family is finally together." He asked his eldest son cheerfully, "Jingyan, aren''t you happy?" "I am." Bo Jingyan nced at his younger brother. Then, his gaze swept past Su Ruanruan. Thetter simply pretended not to notice it. Bo Mingyuan patted his eldest son and escorted him to the dining room. Everyone was happy tonight and drank freely, especially Bo Mingyuan, who got drunk. In high spirits, he called his youngest son to the study. After closing the door, the conversation flowed naturally between the father and son. Bo Mingyuan took a puff of his cigarette and went straight to the point. "I like Ruanruan more! This child is good looking and has a gentle temperament. It''s rare for the Old Madam to like someone so much too!" Although Bo Ziqi was still recuperating, he also took a puff of a cigarette. He pinched his cigarette and frowned. "I don''t know her." Su Ruanruan could marry a dead man just so that she would live in riches and glory. He hated that. Besides, Su Qionglin was beautiful and tall. He was infatuated with Su Qionglin. Bo Mingyuan felt a headacheing on. Bo Ziqi added, "Since I''m back, there''s no need to keep her in the Bo family. Send her back." "I can''t make the decision on this matter." Bo Mingyuan blew out a smoke ring. "Only she can treat the Old Madam''s leg." Bo Ziqi''s expression darkened. After a moment, he said, "I''ll talk to herter." However, his father was persistent. "Ziqi, have you really thought about it? I think that child is quite smart and suitable to marry you." From a man''s point of view, Bo Mingyuan felt that Su Ruanruan''s looks were more attractive. Su Qionglin was beautiful, but she was too eye-catching, not to mention that she was showing herself in public. Besides, Ruanruan had just entered the house when Ziqi came back. Wasn''t she a blessing to the family? Bo Ziqi was helpless. "Dad!" Bo Mingyuan waved his hand. "Alright, if you''re not willing, then forget it." He added, "Let''s talk about your rtionship with Su Qionglinter! Firstly, you have to take care of your body. Secondly, I''m afraid the olddy won''t agree to it easily." Bo Ziqi agreed. He put out his cigarette and walked out of the study. As the door opened, he was greeted by Su Ruanruan standing right outside. She was dressed casually in an off-white home dress. Her ck hair fell to her shoulders, making her look a little ethereal. However, Bo Ziqi felt nothing but disgust. He looked at the fruit tter in her hands and said coldly, "Did you hear that? You don''t have to do this. It''s useless!" He walked past her. Su Ruanruan stood there, unmoving. After a long while, she smiled. What she wanted was Bo Ziqi''s disgust. It would be more troublesome if he was really attracted to her. Chapter 20: Ruanruan, It鈥檚 Inconvenient to Remain in the Bo Family

Chapter 20: Ruanruan, Its Inconvenient to Remain in the Bo Family

Editor: As Studios

The next day was thest day of Su Ruanruans vacation, and she decided to pay Old Master Su a visit. There were very few people at breakfast. Bo Jingse, who had always been cold, actually asked her about her ns for the day, and wanted to send her to the hospital. Su Ruanruan knew that she was in cahoots with Bo Jingyan, so she declined the others offer politely. "Ill just take a taxi there. Thank you, Sister Jingse." Bo Jingse smiled faintly but came over to stroke her hair. "Youre quite obedient." Bo Mingyuan smiled and said, "Jingse rarely praises people." However, Su Ruanruan only felt disgust. Bo Jingyan often said that she was obedient... Bo Mingyuan was concerned about the development of the new medicine. so he brought Jingse out without even finishing breakfast. In the end, Su Ruanruan hailed a cab to the hospital. Old Master Su was staying in the VIP ward. When Su Ruanruan reached the door of the ward, she heard some voicesing from inside. She eavesdropped silently for a while before knocking on the door. The one who opened the door was none other than her eldest aunt, who was somewhat surprised to see Su Ruanruan. She looked a little ufortable as she turned around and said, "Old Master, Ruanruan is here." Su Ruanruan walked in. The sight stunned her. Bo Ziqi was there too! He had changed into a white casual outfit today and looked much more energetic. At this moment, Bo Ziqi was sitting in an armchair while Su Qionglin was leaning against the armrest, looking intimate with each other. Upon seeing Su Ruanruan, Bo Ziqi frowned but remained silent. Su Ruanruan pretended not to see him and put down the fruit basket in her hands. "Grandpa, hows your leg?" Eldest Auntie Su interrupted, "Your eldest uncle operated on him himself. What problem could there be? He just has to remain on bedrest for a few months." Old Master Su replied indifferently, "Im getting old and useless." Su Ruanruan was not close to them, but she said a fewforting words. The moment she finished speaking, Old Master Su asked in a deep voice, "Oh right, have you seen Ziqi?" Su Ruanruan lowered her eyes, "I have." Old Master Su red at her. "What are you thinking?" Just as Su Ruanruan was about to speak, Auntie Su spoke up. "Ruanruan, I let you go to the Bo family to live afortable life. But now, Ziqi is back." She pretended to be troubled and said, "Ziqi and Qionglin will get married eventually. Ruanruan, will it be inconvenient for you to remain in the Bo family?" Both Su Qionglin and Bo Ziqi looked at Su Ruanruan as soon as the elder woman finished her sentence. Su Ruanruan understood that they were forcing her to leave the Bo family. She hid the coldness in her eyes and said obediently, "Dont worry, Eldest Auntue. I wont ruin Third Sisters rtionship." She bit down on her lower lip and address Bo Ziqi, "Brother-inw." Auntie Su was relieved. "I knew Ruanruan wasnt an ungrateful child." Even though Su Qionglin was open-minded, her face was flushed with embarrassment. "We havent even confirmed anything!" Bo Ziqi frowned. The Su family had happily epted him as their son-inw. However, had no one realized that Su Ruanruan had never agreed to leave the Bo family? This girl was too scheming. He was upset, and his expression soon turned ugly. Su Ruanruan naturally wouldnt stay here to cause trouble. After a while, she spoke, "Im going to look for my uncle." She left after receiving permission. After she left, she headed down the corridor, took the elevator down a few floors, and arrived at Su Yuguos office. Su Yuguo was the director of Tongsheng Hospital and had an office to himself. Su Ruanruan knocked on the door, but no one answered. She gently grasped the doorknob and twisted it. The door was locked. Su Ruanruan was a little disappointed. Su Yuguo had his guard up, so it wouldnt be easy for her to find an opportunity. Just as she was about to leave, she heard footsteps behind her. She turned around. It was Bo Ziqi. Chapter 21: My Third Sister鈥檚 Feelings are Worth This Much

Chapter 21: My Third Sisters Feelings are Worth This Much

Editor: As Studios

Bo Ziqi nced at her before lowering his head to light a cigarette. Smoke rose between the two of them, and his gaze was deep and unreadable. After a long while, he finally spoke, "Who allowed you to call me your brother-inw?" Su Ruanruan saw the disdain in his eyes and asked, "Then what should I call you?" Bo Ziqi narrowed his eyes. He put the cigarette between his lips, took out a checkbook, and wrote a number on the wall. With a rip, he passed it to Su Ruanruan. "Two million dors. You know what to do!" Su Ruanruan lowered her head to look at the check. After a moment, she looked up at Bo Ziqi. "I want 50 million." "You have a big appetite." Bo Ziqis eyes were filled with disgust. Su Ruanruan said softly, "My third sisters feelings are worth that much." "But youre not worth that much," Bo Ziqi replied coldly. His voice turned colder. "Theres no point in staying in the family! Theres no ce for you." Su Ruanruan did not retort him. Bo Ziqi turned around and left without sparing her a second nce. After walking for a while, his head started to hurt. However, Bo Ziqi did not want to show his fear in front of a young brat, and forced himself to enter the elevator.Only then did he take out his painkillers with trembling hands and stuff them into his mouth. After a while, he felt slightly better. He leaned against the carriage, panting heavily. When Su Qionglin came over to look for him, she was frightened by what she saw. "Ziqi, whats wrong?" Bo Ziqi closed his eyes to calm himself down and said in a hoarse voice, "Its an old problem! Ill be fine after taking some medicine." Su Qionglin helped him out of the elevator and asked worriedly, "Why dont you let my dad take a look at you?" Bo Ziqi suddenly stopped in his tracks and pulled his girlfriend into his arms. "Whats wrong?" Su Qionglin bit her lower lip and blushed. She had been in love with Bo Ziqi for a year, and they had already gone all the way. Of course, she was pleased that he was hugging her like this. But after waiting for a long time, he still did not take any action. She looked up to see his handsome face was tensed, as if he was suppressing something. Su Qionglin caressed his face and asked gently, "Whats wrong?" "Nothing!" Bo Ziqis voice was slightly cold. "I have something on, so Ill leave first." Su Qionglin panicked and called him from behind, "Didnt you say you were going to see my father?" But Bo Ziqi was already far away. Su Qionglin stomped her feet. She couldnt help but feel as though that his personality had changed slightly after returning. Just as she was about to leave, a piece of paper on the floor caught her attention. Frowning, she picked it up. It was a check! When she saw it clearly, her face twisted in anger. Is this for Su Ruanruan? If Su Ruanruan didnt want it, it means that shes determined topete with me! Wasnt she going to give up? Su Qionglin shredded the check into pieces and sneered. Su Ruanruan was an orphan. How could shepete with her? ... After Bo Ziqi left, Su Ruanruan followed suit. As she arrived downstairs, she thought of Old Master Su lying there motionless, and couldnt help but think that Bo Jingyan was indeed cruel. She left the hospital and was about to hail a cab when a white Bentley stopped beside her. "Get in." The car window rolled down, revealing Bo Jingyans handsome face. Su Ruanruan took a step back. Bo Jingyan looked at the time. "Do you want me toe down and carry you?" Because this was the Su familys territory, she could only get into the car. When she got into the car, Bo Jingyan did not start the car immediately but looked at her. Su Ruanruan was not wearing a skirt, but a pair of light blue pants, and a white shirt with a soft yellow cardigan. She looked young and tender. Bo Jingyan looked at her for a moment, then took out a cigarette box from the cab and lit one. He slowly puffed out smoke rings that rippled around him. He then asked her, "Did you see Bo Ziqi just now?" Chapter 22: Bo Jingyan is Jealous

Chapter 22: Bo Jingyan is Jealous

Editor: As Studios

Su Ruanruan was in disbelief. "You sent someone to follow me?" He grabbed her waist and pulled her into his arms. Su Ruanruan was extremely embarrassed and her eyes turned red. "Bo Jingyan! Let go of me!" "No." He held a cigarette in one hand and pinched her chin with the other. "You even gave him a fruit tterst night, didnt you?" She kicked him angrily but Bo Jingyan held her, not allowing her to move. She waspletely under his control. He took another puff of smoke, his gaze cutting her like a blunt knife. Su Ruanruan could not hold it in any longer. "Bo Jingyan, Im not like you! You cant control me like this!" "Is that so?" He stubbed out his cigarette and caressed her smooth little face. "Then, who can control you? Bo Ziqi, that good-for-nothing?" Su Ruanruan turned her face away. She said nothing. The corners of her eyes were wet. She didnt like him putting her and Bo Ziqi together. Seeing her like this, Bo Jingyans heart softened. Lowering his gaze, he could not resist his desire and leaned over to kiss her lips. Terrified, the young girl didnt even dare to move an inch. After all, she was still young and could not appreciate it. Not to mention, she was pretty much being forced into doing it. Bo Jingyan kissed her for a long while before finally letting her go. His gloomy expression eased a little. When he started the car, Su Ruanruan quickly tidied her clothes. "I want to go home." Bo Jingyan lit another cigarette, his voice calm. "Is that your home?" She was embarrassed and did not speak. Bo Jingyan turned to look at her and slowly stopped the car at the red light. His hand found hers and held it gently. She wanted to move away, but he held her fingers even tighter. "Follow me to the office." Su Ruanruan turned her head to look at him. Bo Jingyan leaned his elbow on the car window and flicked off the cigarette ash. He chuckled. "Why? Are you still unwilling to give up your status as the Second Young Madam?" She was furious and did not want to bother with him. He suddenly whispered into her ear, "Then be the Eldest Young Madam. In the future, Bo Ziqi will have to call you Sister-inw." "Bo Jingyan, youre shameless!" Her voice was soft and her face was even redder. Bo Jingyans mood was much better, but he still made a rule for her. "Youre not allowed to see him alone in the future!" Su Ruanruan bit her lip. "Hes with my third sister. What are you afraid of?!" She regretted it as soon as she finished speaking. Indeed, Bo Jingyan smiled lightly and asked, "What do you think Im afraid of?" Su Ruanruan fell silent. If it werent for the fact that she wanted to enter the research and development department of Imperial View Corporation, she wouldnt even be anywhere near him! ... Bo Jingyan took her to the Imperial View Corporation via a special elevator, out of sight of other employees. When she entered the office, the same secretary from her previous visit was there too. Upon seeing Su Ruanruan, the secretary greeted her but Su Ruanruan was still young and felt a little ufortable. The secretary smiled and poured a cup of ck coffee for her. Bo Jingyan drank his ck coffee as he listened to Secretary Xiaos report. Finally, he said, "Ill go to theboratory in two days." The secretary nodded. Su Ruanruan could tell that he had encountered a bottleneck in the development of new drugs. She wanted to ask what had happened, but was afraid that it would be too abrupt. Bo Jingyan nced at her. "Why, are you interested too?" Su Ruanruan did not express her intentions explicitly and only stared at him. Bo Jingyan did not say anything else. He then left for a meeting. Su Ruanruan felt a little bored staying in the office alone, so she sat on his office chair. There was a document on the table from the research and development department of the Imperial View Corporation. Su Ruanruan was a little surprised. How could he just leave such important information out in the open? Chapter 23: Bo Jingyan, You Can鈥檛 Do That

Chapter 23: Bo Jingyan, You Cant Do That

Editor: As Studios

Su Ruanruan hesitated for a moment before flipping the document open. Su Ruanruan had studied medicine with Su Peiming since she was young, so she knew the ingredients of all kinds of medicine like the back of her hand. Just by looking at it, she fell into a trance... That was the scene that Bo Jingyan saw after returning from his meeting. His little one was seated in his seat, focused on the document he had specially left behind for her. Bo Jingyanughed silently. She had fallen into his trap! He walked over and knocked her head. "What are you looking at?" Su Ruanruan was shocked. When she saw that it was him, she asked softly, "Can I see this?" Bo Jingyan took the document from her hand and said slowly, "Its a confidential document." She was a little annoyed. It was obvious that he had ced it there on purpose. She bit her lower lip. "I wont look at it then." "Its not like Im not allowing you to see it." the man replied. Bo Jingyan leaned against the table. "Did you gain anything from reading it?" Su Ruanruan thought for a moment, "Yes, but I havent sorted my thoughts out yet." He didnt say anything and insteadbed her long hair with his fingers thoughtfully. His fingers were elegant, and even this unconscious movement was pleasing to the eye. Su Ruanruan had something to ask of him, so she didnt avoid him. A momentter, Bo Jingyan leaned forward and pressed the button on the table, and Xiao Ran entered the room. He said calmly, "Make a copy of this document." Secretary Xiao nced at Su Ruanruan and said, "CEO Bo, Im afraid..." "Do as I say," Bo Jingyan said firmly. Secretary Xiao nodded. "Alright." After she left, Su Ruanruan felt a little uneasy. "You dont have to do this..." Getting too much at once made her uneasy. Bo Jingyan was still leaning against the table, his dark eyes staring at her. After a moment, he took out a cigarette and lit it. Su Ruanruan felt that she was always inhaling second-hand smoke from his cigarettes, so she stopped him. "Youre not allowed to smoke." Bo Jingyan held the cigarette between his slender fingers and took a deep puff. His thin cheeks were sunken and he looked very manly. "Why? Are you trying to control me now?" Despite saying that, he put out the cigarette. Then, he held her shoulders and pressed her into the wide seat. Her vision cked out as he loomed over her. The warmth turned to heat. Su Ruanruan ced her hand in front of him and stuttered, "Bo Jingyan... Dont do this." He let out a deep chuckle as he held her down. "What are you referring to?" ... "This or this?" ... The young girl felt so humiliated that she wanted to cry, yet she couldnt. Neither could she escape his grasp! All she could do was lean on his shoulder and not let him touch her. Bo Jingyan hugged her and coaxed, "Dont cry! I didnt do anything." That infuriated Su Ruanruan even more. He hasnt done anything yet? What does he really want to do? She was afraid of him and hated him for messing around, but she had no choice but to remain close to him. After Xiao Ran finished copying the information, she pushed open the door to be greeted by this scene. She was very surprised. She had never seen this side of her boss. It was rather... She retreated silently, leaving the space for the couple inside. The luxurious and spacious office was filled with a charming atmosphere. After a long while, Bo Jingyan was finally willing to let her go. He carefully tidied her clothes and kissed her again. "Alright, stop crying." He looked at the door and called Xiao Ran in. Su Ruanruan was reserved, and turned her body to the side so that no one could see her tears. Fortunately, Secretary Xiao left after delivering the items. After she left, Su Ruanruan looked at the document and looked up. "Are you really giving this to me?" "Of course." Bo Jingyan said slowly, "I can give you my entire body if you want." She blushed and looked down at the file. "I dont want you." "Then who do you want?" Bo Jingyan ced his elegant fingers on the document and asked her. Chapter 24: My Second Brother Won鈥檛 Like You

Chapter 24: My Second Brother Wont Like You

Editor: As Studios

Su Ruanruan spoke somewhat childishly, "I dont want anyone." Bo Jingyan leaned forward and whispered into her ear, "Ruanruan, Ill wait for you to grow up. Will that do?" Her face instantly heated up, but she didnt push him away. They both understood some things tacitly. However, Su Ruanruan still didnt want his card nor was she willing to spend his money. In the evening, Bo Jingyan asked the chauffeur to send the young girl back. He said that he was going on a business trip for a few days and wanted her to be obedient. She was not allowed to talk to Bo Ziqi or flirt around in school. Su Ruanruan alighted from the car and walked into the main hall of the Bo familys residence. The living room was quiet, with only two or three servants cleaning the furniture. When they saw Su Ruanruan, they called out, "Miss Su." Su Ruanruan nodded at them before going upstairs. A slender figure stood by the stairs on the second floor. It was Bo Ziqi. He had changed into a set of home clothes and was leaning against the railing. The lights shone down from above, illuminating his handsome but gloomy face. He quietly watched Su Ruanruan go upstairs. From a males point of view, she indeed looked pretty. However, it was also true that she was indeed scheming. He had spoken to the olddy earlier, but she had insisted on keeping her in the family. Bo Ziqi liked Su Qionglin and had ns to marry her, but now that Su Ruanruan was staying in the Bo family, Su Qionglin was in an awkward position. Su Ruanruan finally saw him. Bo Ziqi snorted and turned around to leave. Su Ruanruan smiled and was about to return to her room when Bo Jingyuans voice came from downstairs. "Su Ruanruan, stop right there." Not long after, Bo Jingyuan ran up. She looked at Su Ruanruan with an unfriendly and mocking gaze, and demanded, "Su Ruanruan, are you trying to seduce my second brother?" Su Ruanruan remained silent. Bo Jingyuan flicked her braid. "My second brother is a pianist. Your third sister can barely match up to him." Su Ruanruan ignored her and walked towards her bedroom. Bo Jingyuan shouted behind her, "My second brother wont fall for you." However, the corridor was already empty. Bo Jingyuan continued hatefully, "Anyway, everyone in the school knows your identity. If Second Brother gets angry, you can forget about having a good life." Su Ruanruan had already thought about what Bo Jingyuan had said a long time ago. Ever since Bo Ziqi returned, she knew that she was treading on thin ice. She went back to her room and immediately found some medical books. She then took out some documents and read through them carefully. It was gettingte. Su Ruanruan was curled up on the sofa by the window. The dim yellow light shone on her face, casting a gentle glow on her face. That was what Bo Ziqi saw when he opened the door. He was stunned for a moment before saying stiffly, "The Old Madam asked you to go downstairs for dinner." Su Ruanruan was shocked. Bo Ziqis voice turned cold. "My room is next to yours." What he meant was that he was just calling her because he was on the way down. With that, he stuffed his hand into his pocket and strolled downstairs. Su Ruanruan quickly hid the documents and put the medical book away. When she reached the corridor, she heardughtering from downstairs. She stole a peek. Neither Bo Jingyan nor Bo Jing Se were around. Su Ruanruan walked over to greet the Old Madam before taking her seat. The Old Madam then took the initiative to say, "Jingyan doesnt live at home, and Jing Se has her own apartment." Su Ruanruan nodded. It was obvious that the olddy was deliberately trying to matchmake her and Bo Ziqi. She had arranged for them to be seated together, and she would even encourage conversation between the both of them from time to time. Su Ruanruan felt like she was sitting on pins and needles. Bo Ziqi also remained indifferent and ignored her. Although the Old Madam was a little worried, there was nothing she could do. What else could she do if the two children didnt like each other? In private, she advised Su Ruanruan to put in some effort into getting close to Bo Ziqi. The young girl merely cated her before returning to her room. There, she leaned against the door. She thought about her rtionship with Bo Jingyan and felt sorry for the Old Madam, but she couldnt care less. When she finally calmed down, she took out the information that Bo Jingyan had given her and flipped through it. After reading for half an hour, her eyelids twitched and she quickly flipped through the medical book. Somethings not right... She thought as she read through the book. She clutched her hands tightly as she got more engrossed in her readings. She only switched off the lights and went to bedte at night. Chapter 25: Su Ru鈥檃n, Professor Su

Chapter 25: Su Ruan, Professor Su

Editor: As Studios

She woke up early the next morning. Today, she had to go to Zhongjiang Art Academy to resume her schooling. She did some calctions and realized that she had not gone to school for half a month. A white sports car was parked in front of the Bo Family vi. Bo Jingyuan was especially excited today. "Second Brother is sending me to school! Su Ruanruan, do you want to take a ride?" Su Ruanruan knew that Bo Ziqi did not like her, so she shook her head. "Ill just take the bus over." Bo Ziqi happened toe down from the second floor and did not even nce at her. "Jingyuan, why arent you getting in the car?" Bo Jingyuan made a face at Su Ruanruan and hopped into the sports car that quickly sped away. Su Ruanruan carried her backpack and was about to walk to the bus stop when the Old Madam appeared, looking unhappy. "Jingyuan is really insensible." She softened her voice again. "Ill have the driver send you to school." Su Ruanruan rejected her, "Its okay. I can take the bus. I used to take the bus to school in the past." The Old Madams heart ached for the young girl, but she did not force her into epting the offer, only telling her to be careful. After Su Ruanruan left, the olddy sighed. "This child is really not bad! Guizhi, why do you think Ziqi isnt moved?" Guizhi held her and smiled. "Young Master Ziqi will realize how good Miss Su is soon." The olddy chuckled. "Thatd better be the case! Id like to see how hes going to woo his wife then." The Old Madam gave it some thought and decided to hold a banquet for her grandson. Then, she would get Ruanruan to dance with him, so that thatss, Su Qiongzhi, would know to back off. She discussed the matter with Madam Bo. Madam Bo had other thoughts in mind, but agreed to the n. ... Su Ruanruan went to school and canceled her leave of absence with her professor. When she went out, someone came in from the door. "Second Brother." Su Ruanruan was surprised. Su Ruan was holding a cup in his hand while talking to another professor. When he saw Su Ruanruaning over, he smiled slightly. "Did you cancel your leave?" She nodded and asked him, "Second Brother, why are you here?" Su Ruan walked back to his seat but handed her the cup. "I just made it." Su Ruanruan took a sip and heard him say, "I came overst week while you werent around." She knew that her cousin would not be going abroad for the time being. Su Ruan took out a few snacks from his drawer and stuffed them into her hands. "Come over to have lunch with me." She agreed. She looked at the time. Her ss would be starting soon. Once she left, the other professors started asking about her. Su Ruans gaze was gentle. "She is my most beloved sister." The other professors were very envious, and some even asked about her age. Su Ruan recalled that Su Ruanruan was now in the Bo family and sighed. "Shes still young. We dont have such ns." But in less than half a day, under Bo Jingyuans hard work, everyone in the school knew that Su Ruanruan was now the daughter-inw of the Bo Family. There were even rumors that Su Ruanruan was a mistress, and the news spread like wildfire. As Su Ruanruan sat in the ssroom, everyones gaze on her were like knives. If she had not grown up in the Su family, she would not be able to bear it. Su Ruan was a little worried as he had lunch at the school cafeteria. Knowing that he had heard the gossip and said softly, "Second Brother, I want to stay in the Bo family." After a while, Su Ruan asked, "Do you like Bo Ziqi?" "No." Su Ruan breathed a sigh of relief and ruffled her hair. "Stay if you want to." He paused for a moment. "When Qionglin marries him, Ill bring you back." "Thank you, Second Brother." Su Ruanruan smiled faintly. She was good-looking, and her smile was adorable. Su Ruan was stunned for a moment. Chapter 26: Bo Ziqi Barged into Her Bedroom

Chapter 26: Bo Ziqi Barged into Her Bedroom

Editor: As Studios

Not far away, Bo Jingyuan spotted Su Ruanruan immediately. The former gritted her teeth in anger. The girl beside him also eximed, "Su Ruanruans just arrived here but shes already hooked up with Professor Su!" "How shameless! Jingyuan was right! What a vixen," another chimed in. "Do you think Professor Su would fall for her trap?" one of her friends asked. ... Bo Jingyuan gritted her teeth. "Dont worry, I will let my second brother teach her a lesson." Only then did the girls feel relieved. Thats right! Professor Su belongs to everyone, so why should Su Ruanruan monopolize him? they thought inwardly. Because she had a meal with Su Ruan, Su Ruanruan became the public enemy of all the female students in school, especially because of Bo Jingyuans sour and mean words. Su Ruanruan was a little surprised that Bo Jingyuan actually liked her second brother. However, she did not reveal Su Ruans identity immediately and simply headed for her lessons. At four in the afternoon, Su Ruanruan prepared to head home. There was amotion at the school gate. Bo Ziqis sports car was parked there, and Bo Jingyuan got into the car amidst all the envious gazes. Bo Ziqi started the car. In the rearview mirror, he could see Su Ruanruan walking towards the bus stop. She was much thinner than ordinary girls and looked frail, especially because of her fair and slender legs. "Brother." Bo Jingyuan was unhappy that he was distracted. She had a good rtionship with Bo Ziqi and was deliberately trying to sow discord between them. Hence, she told him about Su Ruanruan having a meal with another professor. In the end, Bo Jingyuan pouted. "Su Ruanruan is really greedy! On one hand, shes bragging about her rtionship with you and on the other hand, shes seducing a professor!" Bo Ziqi nced at her. "You like that professor, right?" "Brother." Bo Jingyuan blushed. "I wasnt the one who ate with him." Bo Ziqis expression turned ugly. Bo Jingyuan still wanted to say something, but after seeing her brothers expression, she did not dare to say anything more. Although her second brother doted on her, he could also be quite fierce at times. ... By the time Su Ruanruan returned home, Bo Ziqi had already been home for more than half an hour. He was seated on the sofa, smoking. Su Ruanruan did not say anything and simply headed upstairs. After a while, she went to the Old Madams small courtyard to give thetter a massage. Bo Jingyuan was furious. "Second Brother, look, shes trying so hard to make others like her!" Bo Ziqi nced at her but remained indifferent, which angered the young girl. "Second Brother, you dont believe me." She hugged his arm. "If you dont control her, she will make you a cuckold." The man took a deep puff of his cigarette. "Didnt you say this morning that only Qionglin is worthy of being your second sister-inw?" Bo Jingyuan argued, "But shes living in our house now." "Second Brother... Second Brother..." She nestled in Bo Ziqis arms, looking pitiful. Bo Ziqi put out his cigarette. "Alright, I got it." The young girl cheered in her heart. Great! Second Brother is going to teach Su Ruanruan a lesson... After dinner, Su Ruanruan took a shower and put on a thin dress before leaning against the bed frame to read the document. After scanning through it, she felt that she had a solution. However, it would take time. Just as she was engrossed in reading the document, the bedroom door opened. It was Bo Ziqi. Su Ruanruan was stunned for a moment before she quickly hid the papers under her nket. She was a little angry that he had entered her room without knocking. It was only eight oclock at night, so Bo Ziqi did not expect that she would still be wearing a thin dress after her shower. "Im sorry," Bo Ziqi said, his voice hoarse. However, he did not head out. Su Ruanruan bit her lower lip. She was a reserved youngdy. She did not want a man to enter and leave her bedroom as he wished. Suddenly, an idea shed past her mind. Chapter 27: His Control Became a Joke

Chapter 27: His Control Became a Joke

Editor: As Studios

As she spoke to him, she pressed the inte and instructed the servants to send two cups of coffee over. Bo Ziqi sat on the small sofa by the window and said calmly, "Ill leave after saying a few words." Su Ruanruan put down the phone. "What is it?" Bo Ziqi wanted to tell her directly, but the faint smell of gardenia flowers disrupted him. It smelled veryfortable. All of a sudden, there was a knock at the door. Su Ruanruan nced at Bo Ziqi before lifting her nket and getting off the bed to open the door. There was only a thin dress covering her slender body, and Bo Ziqi felt a lump rise in his throat. Upon opening the door, Su Ruanruan did not take the coffee but let the servant bring it in. She went to the dressing room to put on a night gown. The servant entered and was obviously stunned to see Bo Ziqi sitting on the sofa. She then recalled that Miss Su only had a thin dress on her. Then Young Master Ziqi and Miss Su... The servant put down her things and hurriedly left. Soon after, she went up to the third floor and quietly looked for Madam Bo. ... Over here, Su Ruanruan put on her sleeping robe and walked out. It immediately made her appear much more dignified. However, Bo Ziqi still thought that she was seducing him. He took a sip of coffee and slowly said, "I heard from Jingyuan that youve gotten very close to a professor in school." Su Ruanruan nodded and did not deny it. Bo Ziqi frowned. "Have you forgotten your current identity?" Su Ruanruan unconsciously tugged at the white curtains. She was thinking about that document again. Bo Ziqi repeated his words unhappily. Su Ruanruan came back to her senses and asked gently, "What do you think my identity is now?" Bo Ziqi was furious.The charming and gentle feeling in his heart he had felt moments earlier vanishedpletely. He stood up and said in a heavy tone, "You have to take into consideration the reputation of the Bo family as long as you stay here." As well as my reputation. He thought inwardly. However, he did not say this.With that, he walked out. Su Ruanruan finally spoke as she held the doorknob. "That person is my second brother." She wasnt afraid that he would misunderstand. She just didnt want any trouble. Bo Ziqi stiffened. Then, he was a little annoyed. He hade over in the middle of the night and said such jealous words to her. How ridiculous! Su Ruanruan added, "As for the rumors about you and me in school, I wasnt the one who spread them." Afraid that he wouldnt believe her, she added, "Id never step in between you and my third sister." She had exined so much and promised so much, which only made Bo Ziqi feel even more embarrassed. He opened the door and mmed it shut. Su Ruanruan slowly sat down on the sofa and took a sip of coffee. After a moment, she sighed. "You have quite a temper." Bo Jingyuan was standing guard outside the door and she immediately jumped over when her brother came out. "Brother, how was it? Did you teach her a lesson? Su Ruanruan wont dare to be so hical in the future, right?" Bo Ziqis expression was extremely ugly. He red at his sister, stomped to his bedroom, and mmed the door shut. Bo Jingyuan was locked outside and she pounded on the door. "Brother! You havent said anything yet!" The door suddenly opened. Bo Ziqis face darkened. "Dont mention it again." Bo Jingyuan was stunned. The door was once again mmed shut in her face. Bo Ziqi was standing behind the door. Thinking about how he confronted Su Ruanruan like a jealous husband, he felt embarrassed. He did not like Su Ruanruan and even hated her.He had only gone to look for her today because he did not want her to ruin his reputation. That was all. ... The next morning, Su Ruanruan strolled downstairs leisurely. Thedies of the Bo family were already seated at the dining table and having breakfast. Bo Ziqi was there too. Chapter 28: Su Ruanruan, You Hate Me!

Chapter 28: Su Ruanruan, You Hate Me!

Editor: As Studios

Bo Ziqi stared at Su Ruanruan. Her hair was braided into a fishbone braid, and she was wearing a waist-length dress, entuating her thin waist. Her face was small and delicate, and she looked young. Su Ruanruan had just sat down and exchanged a few words with the Old Madam when Bo Jingyuan asked, "Why isnt Dad down yet?" Madam Bo said helplessly, "Theres a problem with the development of the new medicine. He didnte backst night." Bo Jingyuan stuck out her tongue. The Old Madam sighed. "Its been hard on him and Jingyan." Hearing Bo Jingyans name, Su Ruanruans heart skipped a beat. Madam Bo answered, "Thats right." She suddenly looked at Su Ruanruan and said in a surprisingly gentle voice, "Ruanruan, your uncle has been busy recently. Youll have to take care of the Old Madam." Su Ruanruan nodded obediently. "I will." Madam Bo was very pleased, ced her hand on top of the young girls and said, "I was thinking that you could move into the Old Madams yard so that you wont have to walk back and forth." She then looked straight at Su Ruanruan. She had heard what had happenedst night from the servants. She was very worried. Her son was so outstanding. He couldnt possibly marry an orphan. Su Ruanruan was about to speak when the olddy spoke. "Theres no need to take care of an olddy like me. Its better to let the youngsters develop their feelings." Madam Bo was anxious. The youngsters developing feelings for each other was exactly what she was afraid of. This was her son they were talking about! Madam Bo looked at Su Ruanruan, who said gently, "As long as the Old Madam doesnt find me annoying." Madam Bo let out a long sigh of relief and stole a nce at her son, who was expressionless. After breakfast, Su Ruanruan went upstairs to get her bag. Bo Ziqis sports car was parked at the parking lot but Bo Jingyuan was nowhere to be seen. Su Ruanruan ignored him and walked towards the entrance of the vi. "Get in." The car window rolled down and Bo Ziqis voice was terrifyingly gloomy. Su Ruanruan bit her lip and quickened her pace. Bo Ziqi got out of the car and caught up with her in only a few steps. He gripped her wrist tightly. "Get in." Su Ruanruans brows furrowed in pain. She struggled but couldnt shake him off. Bo Ziqi dragged her into the car before locking the car doors. Su Ruanruan banged on the door a few times before turning to look at him. "What are you doing?" Bo Ziqi remained silent, his gaze resolutely on her. If he had felt embarrassedst night, he was now furious. Last night, he had thought that she was trying to seduce him. However, it turned out to be part of her scheme! She didnt care about him at all! She was even trying to move away from him! Who could be more scheming than Su Ruanruan? She was manipting everyone without even batting an eyelid! Bo Ziqi took out a pack of cigarettes and took one out, but did not light it. Instead, he broke the cigarette between his fingers. Su Ruanruan leaned back against her chair, her body trembling slightly. "Are you scared now?" Bo Ziqi sneered. "Why werent you scared when you plotted against mest night?" "I dont know what youre talking about!" She yed dumb. Bo Ziqi leaned towards her and stared into her eyes. "Su Ruanruan, you hate me!" Su Ruanruan had no way to retreat, and the corners of her eyes turned slightly red. After a long while, she said hoarsely, "Youre Third Sisters boyfriend!" Bo Ziqi red at her. After a moment, he calmed down. Ha! She hates me, but does she think I like her? He sneered inwardly. "Get out," he ordered. The car lock clicked and Su Ruanruan immediately got out of the car. As soon as she got out of the car, Bo Ziqis car drove past her, the wind blowing her long dress up. Su Ruanruan bit her lower lip. She knew that she had dealt with the matter. Chapter 29: Did You Miss Me?

Chapter 29: Did You Miss Me?

Editor: As Studios

After school in the afternoon, Su Ruanruan moved to the Old Madams courtyard. Guizhi tidied up a suite for her to stay in. That night, Su Ruanruan spent the entire night tidying up the ancient books and medical books she had brought from the Su family. By the time she was done, it was almost ten oclock at night. She stretchedzily and was about to take a shower when she felt an arm wrap around her slender waist, and a warm breath by her ears. That shocked her. "Did you miss me?" The mans voice was hoarse. Su Ruanruan was both embarrassed and angry. "Let go of me!" Bo Jingyan pinched her waist lightly before letting go of her. Su Ruanruan took a step back as soon as she regained her freedom. She leaned against the bookcase and looked at him defensively. "H-how did you get in?" Bo Jingyan chuckled. "Bo Ziqi can enter your room, but I cant?" She red at him. He ran his elegant fingers through the bookshelf and finally pulled out an ancient book. When Su Ruanruan saw the book, her face flushed red. Bo Jingyan flipped through a few pages and looked at her in surprise. He raised the book in his hand. "You read such books?" Su Ruanruan tried grabbing it from the man, but she barely reached his shoulders and neck. Bo Jingyan held her in his arms with one hand and casually flipped through the pages with the other. Su Ruanruans face was frighteningly hot. The man lowered his head and looked at her bright and exquisite little face, and he couldnt help but feel moved. He pressed his forehead against hers. "Do you want to try it?" "No way!" Su Ruanruan was really embarrassed. She shoved him away. "This is the Old Madams yard. Dont mess around with me here." He started to kiss her. "Does this count as messing around?" After all, Bo Jingyan was at a young and vigorous age, and the girl he liked was in his arms. He could not control himself from kissing her. Su Ruanruan did not dare to say anything and could only let him do whatever he wanted. The kiss threw her into a daze. By the time she regained her senses, she was in his arms. "Dont..." She was really embarrassed and scared. Bo Jingyan sobered up a little and rested his head against her neck for a while. After a long while, he asked hoarsely, "Did Jingyuan bully you?" "Its not so bad." Bo Jingyan reached out to smooth her hair. "What about Bo Ziqi?" Shey still on his shoulder, her voice thin. "Im sure you know about everything without even asking me." He had many spies in this house. She did not believe that he wouldnt know about what had happened a few days ago. But the fact was indeed that Bo Jingyan didnt know about it. He was very satisfied with her taking the initiative in trying to move out of the main house. However... Su Ruanruans figure was too thin for Ziqi to ignore. At the thought of this, he gritted his teeth and pressed her further into his embrace. Because he had exerted too much force, he identally knocked a chair over. The loud thud broke the silence of the night. Guizhis voice came from the door. "Miss Su, are you alright?" Su Ruanruan shuddered and fell into the mans arms. She bit her lip as she stammered, "Im fine." Guizhi said something before walking away and returning to the Old Madams room. The two olddies nced at each other and smiled happily. The Old Madam sighed. "I really couldnt tell that Ziqi had such a wild side." On the other side, Su Ruanruan heard that there was no movement outside the door and pounded on Bo Jingyans chest, demanding that he let her down. However, thetter held her in his arms, with no intention of loosening his grip. After a moment, he asked in a hoarse voice, "Did you miss me?" Su Ruanruan blushed but remained silent. After a while, she took out the document and pointed at something. "I dont quite understand this." Bo Jingyan looked at her in surprise. She had actually found the problem. Although he wanted to be intimate with her, he did look at the document meticulously. Late that night, he sat on the sofa as he exined the matter slowly to her. Su Ruanruan sat beside him, asionally looking at his beautiful lips as he spoke... The atmosphere made her feel at ease. Chapter 30: Be Good and Let Me Have a Bath

Chapter 30: Be Good and Let Me Have a Bath

Editor: As Studios

After a long while, Bo Jingyan closed the document. "Its gettingte." She looked up at the time. It was already midnight. Bo Jingyan got up and unbuttoned his belt and shirt as he walked towards the bathroom. Su Ruanruan was both embarrassed and angry. She stood in front the bathroom door and bit her red lips. "What are you doing?" "Taking a bath before I sleep," he countered, amused. "What do you want me to do?" Su Ruanruan refused to budge. Bo Jingyan hugged her waist with one hand and carried her to the side. "Be good and let me have a bath." Su Ruanruan blushed. "Go back to your own bedroom to wash up." "Shall Ie over to sleep with you after Im done showering?" He got straight to his point. Su Ruanruan cried out, "Bo Jingyan, youre shameless!" He pulled her into his arms and kissed her. "Didnt you already know that?" With that, he chuckled and headed to the bathroom. Su Ruanruanid on the sofa and red at the bathroom door. She knew that the path she had chosen was not easy, but Bo Jingyan... While she was still lost in her thoughts, the man strolled out, still in the same set of clothes. He ced the lighter and cigarette box on the bedside table and turned to her. "Arent you going to wash up?" She didnt move. Bo Jingyan leaned against the headboard and lit a cigarette. As a thinyer of smoke rose, the expression on his handsome face was unreadable. He finished half the cigarette within a few puffs before turning off the bedsidemp and lying down. Su Ruanruan red at him for a long while before dragging herself to her walk-in closet to get her pajamas. By the time she came out of the shower, Bo Jingyan was already asleep. Su Ruanruany down beside him, carefully maintaining her distance. In the darkness, Bo Jingyan pulled her into his arms. She tried to resist him and quietly shouted, "Bo Jingyan!" "Mmm, dont move! I havent had a good sleep in a few days." She could feel his hot breath behind her ears as he hugged her as though he was hugging a teddy bear. She remained as still as she could and after a long while, his breathing stabilized. Su Ruanruans stiff body finally rxed and she rested her head on his strong arm. However, she couldnt fall asleep. "Sleep." His voice was hoarse as he tightened his grip on her. Su Ruanruan closed her eyes, not daring to think about anything else... All of a sudden, Bo Jingyan opened his eyes in the darkness. He quietly stared at the sleeping girl in his arms. After a long while, he leaned over and gently kissed her forehead. ... Early in the morning, Su Ruanruan awoke, only to realize that there was no one on the other side of the bed. She immediately sat up and nced around. The document was ced beside the pillow. She flipped it open. There were notes written by Bo Jingyan using a fountain pen. He had written the professional terms in his beautiful handwriting. He had clearly exined the points that she did not understand. She looked at it carefully and couldnt help but admire Bo Jingyan. After reading it, she put it away and went to the bathroom to wash up. When she arrived at the dining hall for breakfast, most of the Bo family members were already there. Bo Jingyan had changed into a clean set of clothes, and was now wearing a dark blue shirt paired with gray trousers. He looked fresh and handsome. When Su Ruanruan came over, he stole a nce at her. An inexplicable emotion was hidden in his dark eyes. Bo Jingyan pulled out the seat beside him, and Su Ruanruan thanked him in a low voice. He smiled lightly before continuing his discussion with his father. "I have a new idea." Bo Jingyan took a sip of milk before continuing, "Ill reorganize the experiments." Bo Mingyuan felt a headacheing on. "The new medicine is very important to our corporation. Our shareholders are all waiting for the revenue from it!" Bo Jingyan smiled again before his father continued, "If you really cant do it, you can change the team." Bo Jingyan continued, "I found an assistant whos quite capable. I believe we will have results within two months." That piqued his fathers interest. "Let me meet that person when you have the time." Chapter 31: Big Brother Stayed the Night?

Chapter 31: Big Brother Stayed the Night?

As Studios "Theres no hurry for that," Bo Jingyan said before he turned to Su Ruanruan. "Whats wrong?" Su Ruanruan choked on her food. She shook her head as she replied, "Nothing." Bo Jingyan smiled and spoke to his father again. Bo Mingyuan said in a low voice, "We cant let go of such a talent. Jingyan, you have to treat that person well." Bo Jingyan smiled. He had indeed treated her well. His arms were still sore fromst night. Bo Mingyuan seemed to be more invested in the topic now. He looked up and saw his second soning downstairs. "Ziqi," Bo Mingyuan called out to him happily. "Come and have a seat." His gaze shifted to the seat beside Su Ruanruan, his intentions clear. However, Bo Ziqi sat down opposite him. He frowned as soon as he sat down. Bo Jingyan and Su Ruanruan were seated side by side, and the scene was surprisingly harmonious. For some reason, that scene stung Bo Ziqis eyes. The corners of his mouth curled up in a mocking smile. "Big Brother spent the night at home?" The atmosphere instantly tensed up. Bo Jingyan leaned back and nced at his half-brother. The brothers had always been at odds because of their elders. After a while, Bo Jingyan asked calmly, "Why? Cant Ie back to stay?" Bo Ziqi nced at Su Ruanruan again. "I heard from Jingyuan that youve been spending a lot of time at home recently. Im just curious." Bo Jingyan looked at his younger half-sister. "Jingyuan, did you say that?" The young girl had always been afraid of her eldest brother. Now that she was being questioned, she could not say anything. But in her heart, she couldnt help but hate Su Ruanruan again. Its all her fault. Otherwise, Big Brother wouldnt be so fierce to me! Bo Jingyan retracted his gaze and chuckled. "Ziqi, are you worried about me?" He yed with his cup and said casually, "It seems like youll only be at ease after we have a wedding in the family." Bo Ziqi was clearly provoked by this move. He nced coldly at Su Ruanruan and said, "Big Brother, youre thinking too much." "Really?" Bo Jingyan smiled charmingly. "I thought you liked Ruanruan very much." He turned his head and looked at Su Ruanruan gently. "Ruanruan is quite cute." The youngdy in question bit her lip. Bo Jingyan chuckled once again. He knew Bo Ziqis temper very well. The more Bo Jingyan provoked his brother, the more disgusted thetter would be. Bo Jingyan knew how good Su Ruanruan was. There was no guarantee that Bo Ziqi would find out about that one day. Bo Ziqi was disgusted by how close he was to Su Ruanruan. He stood up with a thud, no longer in the mood for breakfast. Bo Mingyuan looked at his eldest son, his gaze unreadable. His sons did not share a good rtionship, but Jingyan had rarely scolded Ziqi like this. He then looked at Su Ruanruan. That cant be! Jingyans ten years older than Ruanruan! Bo Jingyuan snorted. "Now that Second Brother is gone, who will send me to school?" Madam Bo said unhappily, "Just let the chauffeur send you. Your second brother isnt feeling well." "Whys he meeting Sister Qionglin then?" Bo Jingyuan said, "I know theyre always at the hotel." These words were meant for Su Ruanruan to hear. Hmph, Second Brother will never like you! Second Brother likes long legs. She then added, "Mom, Sister Qionglin attended Sister Shis event a while ago and won the runner-up position in our area." Madam Bo was very pleased. "Your Sister Qionglin is very outstanding." Then, she nced at Bo Mingyuan. Of course, thetter understood what his wife was thinking. Concerned about Su Ruanruans mood, he chuckled. "Our Ruanruan is also very outstanding! She knows how to treat illnesses, and her drawing skills should be pretty good too." Madam Bo let out a faint smile. Bo Jingyuan rolled her eyes. "In a few days, our school will be hosting a charity sale. Dad, Mom, you muste and support us." In other words, she expected her parents to support her by throwing their money away! Chapter 32: I Don鈥檛 Believe You Don鈥檛 Understand Flirting!

Chapter 32: I Dont Believe You Dont Understand Flirting!

Editor: As Studios

Madam Bo had always doted on her daughter, so this money didnt mean much to her. She smiled. "Ill tell your second brother to go too when the timees." Bo Jingyuan hugged her mothers arm and looked at Bo Jingyan. "Big Brother, are you going?" Bo Jingyan took a sip of coffee and remained silent. Bo Mingyuan said, "Your big brother is very busy every day. Do you think hed have the time?" The young girl was slightly disappointed. At that moment, Bo Jingyan took his car keys. "Arent you going to school? Ill send you there." Bo Jingyuan instantly lit up. "Big Brother, youre the best." Even Madam Bo was surprised by the sudden turn of events. Only Bo Mingyuan felt that his eldest son was acting strangely. Just as expected, Bo Jingyan turned to Su Ruanruan. "Arent you leaving?" Bo Jingyuan was instantly upset. Why is he bringing a burden like Su Ruanruan along? She thought to herself. Su Ruanruan wanted to reject him, but Bo Jingyan had already taken her coat and walked out. After a while, the sound of a car engine came from the door. Before running out, Bo Jingyuan sneered. "What a burden." Madam Bo winced. Her husband quicklyforted the young girl, "Jingyuan is still young and insensible. Dont take it to heart." Su Ruanruan shook her head. She followed him out, her back view delicate and beautiful. Bo Mingyuan watched her quietly, and his heart sank... Su Ruanruan walked to the car but Bo Jingyuan had already taken the front passenger seat. Bo Jingyan leaned over and opened the back door for Su Ruanruan, who then got into the car. When she got into the car, her cheek identally brushed against the back of his hand. She blushed. Bo Jingyan chuckled before retracting his hand. That only made the youngdys face grow even hotter. She turned her face away, not wanting to look at him. Bo Jingyuan, who was sitting in the front passenger seat, said arrogantly, "My brother is sending me to school. Su Ruanruan, dont tter yourself." Bo Jingyan drove with one hand and lit a cigarette with the other. He nced in the rearview mirror and their gazes met. Bo Jingyan smiled while taking a puff from the cigarette between his long fingers. Su Ruanruan blushed again. There was an ambiguous atmosphere between them. Bo Jingyan smiled again before putting out the cigarette. He rolled up the car windows, making the enclosed space feel exceptionally cramped. Bo Jingyuan continued to nag. "Su Ruanruan, my second brother doesnt want you. Why are you still staying in our house?" "Jingyuan," Bo Jingyan chided. "What are you saying?" That obviously upset Bo Jingyuan. "Brother, Second Brother doesnt want her. Does she want to be my eldest sister-inw now that she cant be my second sister-inw?" The atmosphere suddenly lightened. Bo Jingyuan did not notice her elder brother looking in the rearview mirror again. The corners of his mouth were curled into a half-smile with a hint of mockery. Su Ruanruan bit her lips, ignoring him. He was too evil! The white Bentley finally arrived at the Zhongjiang Art Academy. Bo Jingyuan got out of the car first and bowed. "Thank you, Big Brother." Of course, she didnt forget to re at Su Ruanruan again before leaving. Su Ruanruan was about to get out of the car when Bo Jingyan asked softly, "How many lessons do you have today?" Su Ruanruan was startled but replied, "Two. School will end at three in the afternoon." Bo Jingyan paused for a moment. "Ill get the chauffeur to pick you up for dinner." This meant that he wasnt going to spend the night at the old residence. Su Ruanruan heaved a sigh of relief as she shook her head, "No need. The Old Madam hasnt been feeling well these past two days." She was about to get out of the car again when Bo Jingyan turned sideways and grabbed her hand. "Su Ruanruan, Im not feeling well too. Why dont you care about me?" There was a hidden meaning in between the lines. She blushed deeply and lowered her head. "What are you talking about?" "Youve read so many medical books, I dont believe you dont understand what Im saying," he said slowly. He was truly shameless. Su Ruanruan was so embarrassed that she couldnt care less about anything else, and she immediately ran out of the car. Chapter 33: Creating Rumors! A Promiscuous Su Ruanruan

Chapter 33: Creating Rumors! A Promiscuous Su Ruanruan

Editor: As Studios

As Su Ruanruan ran away, she thought to herself: One day, Ill leave the Bo family. When that timees, I wont need to listen to such shameful words from Bo Jingyan, nor will he kiss me as he fancies, much less sleep with me at night. At the thought of that, Su Ruanruan felt much lighter. She only had one ss this morning. It was Su Ruans "History of Chinese and Foreign Art". In the lecture hall, more than a hundred seats were already filled. Bo Jingyuan and her little sister, Ke Lan, had managed to grab themselves front seats. Bo Jingyuan propped her chin up and gazed at the new professor in a daze. When Su Ruanruan came in, Su Ruan looked over. His gaze was gentle. Bo Jingyuan almost went crazy when she saw his gaze. What right did Su Ruanruan have to receive that?! Now that she was living with them, she had to be loyal to the Bo family! However, Bo Jingyuan had to maintain her image as ady in front of Professor Su, so she did not re up. After ss, she stood in Su Ruanruans way. "Why? Are you going to look for Professor Su?" Su Ruanruan saw the unfriendly look in her eyes and calmly said, "Jingyuan, step aside." Over a hundred students were looking over. Bo Jingyuan sneered.vShe was going to teach Su Ruanruan a lesson today! She raised her head and mocked, "Su Ruanruan, is it not enough that you seduced my second brother? Why are you still trying to seduce Professor Su?" As she said this, she swept her gaze across the room andughed coldly. "You guys might know but Su Ruanruan seduced my second brother in a nightgown and was chased out of the main building by my mother." As she spoke, she spat, "What a vixen." There was an uproar as everyone stared fixedly at Su Ruanruan. Some thought she was shameless, some were sympathetic, and others were gloating at her. Everyone knew that nobody could afford to offend Bo Jingyuan. It seemed like Su Ruanruan could no longer stay at the Zhongjiang Art Academy! After Bo Jingyuan said that, Ke Lan, who was beside her, added, "Thats right. Su Ruanruan, you clearly know that Jingyuan likes Professor Su too, yet youre still fighting over a man with your sister-inw." Her tone was mocking and sarcastic. If this had happened days earlier, Su Ruanruan might have exined herself. However, she no longer felt the need to do so. If Bo Jingyuan wanted to be envious of her, then so be it. As for Ke Lan, Su Ruanruan remembered seeing a love letter from her in her second brothers drawer. While Su Ruanruan was deep in thought, Ke Lan shoved her aside. "Su Ruanruan, did you hear that?" Shocked cries sounded from all around. They were even trying to hit her now! Someone wanted to persuade her out of it, but Bo Jingyuan swept her gaze over. Who would dare to speak up against her? At this moment, an elegant male voice sounded. "Whats going on?" Bo Jingyuan and Ke Lan instantly became weak. "Professor Su, were discussing our homework." Su Ruan nced at them and said softly to Su Ruanruan, "Follow me to my office." Bo Jingyuan gritted her teeth in anger. She watched as Su Ruanruan packed up her things and followed behind Professor Su as though she was his wife. She could not help but call out from behind, "Su Ruanruan, Ill tell Second Brother that youre fooling around." Su Ruan turned around and frowned. "What nonsense are you spouting? Su Ruanruan is my younger sister." All the students were dumbfounded. Ah, Professor Su... Su Ruanruan... Their surnames were both "Su"! They nced at Bo Jingyuan again, doubting her words. Could it be nothing more than a lie that Su Ruanruan had seduced Bo Jingyuans second brother? Could the truth be that the Bo familys second son had seduced Su Ruanruan instead? Because the most popr professor in the school was Su Ruanruans brother, the students impression of her suddenly changed. Bo Jingyuans face flushed red. Why didnt Su Ruanruan say so earlier? She must have done it on purpose, right? Chapter 34: Counterattack on Bo Jingyuan!

Chapter 34: Counterattack on Bo Jingyuan!

Editor: As Studios

Bo Jingyuan anxiously watched as Su Ruanruan left with Professor Su. Ke Lanforted her. "Dont worry, Jingyuan. With your family background and talent, youll definitely be valued by Professor Su." Bo Jingyuan was a little dejected. "But I just scolded Su Ruanruan. Professor Su must hate me." She quivered. "That wont do. I have to exin myself." Before Ke Lan could stop her, Bo Jingyuan had already run towards the office building. Panting, she arrived at Su Ruans office. There was almost pin-drop silence as the professors had gone off to their meetings. However, Su Ruanruan was there. She was wearing a soft yellow dress and her long ck hair was smooth. She sat obediently in Su Ruans seat, drinking her a cup of tea. Su Ruan had brewed that cup of tea especially for her. Bo Jingyuan held her breath. At that moment, she was extremely envious of Su Ruanruan because she was loved by that man. Su Ruanruan looked up and their gazes met. Bo Jingyuan felt a little ufortable. "Um, wheres Professor Su?" "He went for a meeting." Su Ruanruan did not move. "Whats up?" Bo Jingyuan had something to ask of her, so she could not help but try to suck up to the other girl. "Su Ruanruan, can you say something nice about me to Professor Su?" Su Ruanruan remained calm. "You like him?" Bo Jingyuan blushed. After all, she was not even 20 years old. Su Ruanruan cast her gaze downwards, "I dont have a say about my second brothers marriage." Bo Jingyuan wanted to say something, but her gaze froze. There was a pink envelope on Su Ruans desk. It had Ke Lans signature on it. Bo Jingyuan felt as though she was going crazy. Ke Lan was the one who had encouraged her to pursue Professor Su. In fact, her friend had even told her that her greatest enemy was Su Ruanruan. But it turned out that she was the one who actually liked Professor Su! Bo Jingyuan ripped the letter open and she gritted her teeth while reading it. What a crazy woman! Not only was she infatuated with Professor Su, but she was also secretly badmouthing her. Bo Jingyuan ran out with the letter, infuriated. Peace returned to the office, and Su Ruanruan sat there quietly, and continued drinking her tea... In the ssroom, the students had not yet dispersed. Holding the envelope tightly in her hand, Bo Jingyuan walked towards the ssroom. Ke Lan immediately ran to her andined, "Su Ruanruan must be making things difficult for you, right? Jingyuan, you cant let her off!" Bo Jingyuan sneered, "Ke Lan, I was really blind! I didnt expect you to be someone like that." Ke Lan was stunned for a moment before she asked guiltily, "Jingyuan, whats wrong? Did Su Ruanruan sow discord between us?" An envelope was thrown at her face. Bo Jingyuan tensed up. "This is the love letter you wrote for Professor Su, right? How wonderful. You encouraged me to deal with Su Ruanruan while secretly wooing Professor Su. Ke Lan, I was really wrong about you!" Ke Lan was anxious to exin herself. "Jingyuan, listen to me..." Bo Jingyuan had never been patient, and she did not want to hear her friend make excuses for herself. Their friendship ended with a p. Ke Lan was furious as well. She pounced on Bo Jingyuan and pulled her hair as she screamed, "What right do you have to hit me? Bo Jingyuan, who do you think you are? Who can you me for your own idiocy? Everyone likes Professor Su. Well see whos better then!" Bo Jingyuan got even angrier and started to fight with her friend, dumbfounding everyone around. It turned out that Ke Lan liked Professor Su too! Moreover, she had even written love letters to him in secret! Didnt Ke Lan say that she wouldnt date in university? Besides, how did this love letter end up in Bo Jingyuans hands? Everyone thought about it and finally thought of an unlikely personSu Ruanruan... But that couldnt be true... She looked so gentle and weak! Chapter 35: Coward! Su Ruanruan Is My Sister-in-law!

Chapter 35: Coward! Su Ruanruan Is My Sister-inw!

Editor: As Studios

In less than half an hour, Bo Jingyuan and Ke Lan were called to the Academic Affairs Office. Ke Lans face was covered with palm prints and half of her face was swollen. She was weeping as she covered her face. Bo Jingyuan was not in better shape. Her hair, which had always been neat and straight, was disheveled. She was still kicking and cursing, "Ke Lan, you sl*t! Ill beat you to death." The school leaders could no longer bear to listen to her. Both students could be considered socialites, yet there were now fighting over a man! That was uneptable! When she heard that the staff were going to contact her parents, Bo Jingyuan finally felt afraid. She shouted, "Su Ruanruan is my sister-inw. Just call her over." The person from the Academic Affairs Office was both angry and amused. "No!" Bo Jingyuan rolled her eyes and called her brother, Bo Ziqi, instead. She thought that she would have to convince her brother, but he unexpectedly agreed immediately. Bo Jingyuan hung up the phone, feeling a sense of surrealism. Second Brother had been very concerned about her recently! On the other side, Bo Ziqi was smoking on the hotels luxurious bed. Su Qionglin was wearing only a morning robe as she leaned against him. Her voice was slightly hoarse. "Youre leaving just like that?" Bo Ziqi turned to the side and put out his cigarette. "Something happened to Jingyuan. Im going to her school to take a look." Su Qionglin immediately thought of another person from the Zhongjiang Art Academy and said unhappily, "Cant Auntie do it?" Bo Ziqi nced at her, and thetter didnt dare to say anything else. The disparity in their statuses meant that she was the one who had to pander to his whims. She quickly helped him get dressed before he left. Su Qionglin returned to her bedroom, frustrated. She took out a cigarette from her pocket and lit it before taking a long puff. Over the past few days, she had met her boyfriend every day. However, she couldnt help but feel that he was always distracted! She tried tofort herself again. Maybe he just isnt in a good mood because he hasnt fully recovered yet! ... Bo Ziqi drove to Zhongjiang Art Academy. He lowered his head and stared at his sister. "You like Su Ruanruans second brother?" Guilty, thetter did not dare to admit to it. Bo Ziqis voice was cold. "Dad and Mom wont agree." That pricked Bo Jingyuans nerves. She jumped up immediately. "Why not? Brother, arent you keeping both Su Qionglin and Su Ruanruan?" Bo Ziqis head started to hurt. "Who said Im keeping Su Ruanruan?" Bo Jingyuan shouted, "Brother, I dont believe you have no feelings for her at all!" Although Bo Jingyuan hated Su Ruanruan to the core, he had to admit that Su Ruanruan was a good child. Any man would like her! Bo Ziqi looked at his sister coldly. "Have you gone crazy?" Thetter lowered her head and remained silent. Bo Ziqi took out a cigarette and lit it. "If youre done with your crazy rampage, go off to ss." Tears welled up in Bo Jingyuans eyes. "Second Brother, you dont love me anymore." Bo Ziqi sneered. "Do you want the entire Bo Family to die in the Su familys hands?" Then, he froze. He recalled the scene of Bo Jingyan and Su Ruanruan sitting together this morning. His head hurt even more. Bo Jingyuan cried as she ran away. "Youre the only one who can enjoy life." Bo Ziqi felt that he needed to discipline his sister. However, he had always doted on her. When he heard that something had happened today, he instinctively knew that it had something to do with Su Ruanruan. He found Su Ruanruan, who had propped up an easel and was painting. He stood behind her and looked at her slender back. Her waist was thin and her legs were fair. He felt a lump in his throat. "Can we talk?" Bo Ziqi asked softly. Su Ruanruan felt her blood run cold. She got up and turned around. They looked at each other for a long time before she said, "Theres a coffee shop near the library ahead." With that, Bo Ziqi turned around and left. Picking up her easel, the girl followed suit. Chapter 36: Giving in to Jing Yuan in Order to Stay

Chapter 36: Giving in to Jing Yuan in Order to Stay

Editor: As Studios

In the quiet restaurant, the pair sat opposite each other. A hardworking part-timer handed them two cups of coffee. Bo Ziqi did not even look at her before taking out two 100-yuan notes for her. He took a sip. The taste was naturally not as good as coffee at home. Su Ruanruan tousled her hair and asked softly, "What is it?" Bo Ziqi put down his cup and went straight to the point. "I hope you wont cause trouble for Jingyuan in the future." Su Ruanruan also took a sip of coffee. It tasted a little bitter. Sheughed softly. She naturally wouldnt question him about why he didnt want to listen to how Bo Jingyuan had made things difficult for her. Su Ruanruan said calmly, "As long as she doesnt provoke me, I wont make trouble for her." Bo Ziqi was surprised that the other was so calm. She really wasnt trying to make him like her at all! Was he not worth her effort? For some reason, he was a little angry. "Since you want to stay, shouldnt you give in to her?" Su Ruanruan understood what he meant. She stirred her coffee gently and said softly, "This is just a safe ce for me to stay. Ill definitely leave when you get married to Third Sister. Bo Ziqi..." She looked up at him. "Dont worry." Bo Ziqi pursed his lips tightly. After a moment, he said coldly, "You pretend in front of others. Why? Why arent you pretending in front of me?" Su Ruanruan lowered her head and sighed, "Because youre my third brother-inw, not an outsider." Bo Ziqi was furious. He suddenly stood up and said, "You better know whats good for you! If you do this another time, I wont let it go." Su Ruanruan sat there and finished the rest of her coffee. Just as she was about to leave, her phone rang. It was Bo Jingyan. She did not dare to reject it. Bo Jingyans voice was gentle. "Have you eaten?" "Im about to have my meal." In the office, Bo Jingyan unbuttoned his shirt and said in a low voice, "Youre not allowed to be with your second brother. Do you hear me?" She was used to his domineering attitude. She brushed him off distractedly. Just then, a familiar voice came from the other side. "Who are you calling, Jingyan?" It was Bo Mingyuans voice. "Ill talk to youter." Bo Jingyan hung up after saying that. Su Ruanruans heart skipped a beat. She couldnt help but feel that there was something gnawing at her heart. ... In the office on the top floor of the Imperial View Corporation, Bo Mingyuan opened the door and saw his eldest son on the phone. He smiled. Thetter looked to be in a good mood. Bo Mingyuan waited for him to hang up before asking, "You have a girlfriend?" Bo Jingyan merely smiled and went over to pour a cup of coffee for his father. They sat down together before he said, "That was my assistant." "Then I have to meet your assistant." Bo Mingyuan smiled and said, "Shes impressive! She can even make the CEO of the Imperial View Corporation speak so gently." He teased, "You can marry an assistant too." Bo Jingyan did not speak and continued drinking his coffee. Seeing that his son wasnt budging, Bo Mingyuan gave up and changed the topic. "Hows the new drug experiment going?" Bo Jingyan showed him a document. Bo Mingyuan flipped through it and was a little excited. "Its really not bad. That assistant of yours is indeed quite capable." He looked at the data. At this rate, the new medicine would be sessfully developed in no time. Bo Mingyuan was in a very good mood. He said happily, "Jingyan, treat her well and dont have such high standards." He flicked his cigarette. "Give her a house!" Bo Jingyan smiled. "Ill arrange it." Bo Mingyuanughed and patted his sons shoulder. "Youre still hiding her. Looks like your assistants really ady." He didnt care. He thought that Jingyan would keep her as a mistress at the very most even if he liked her. Chapter 37: Bo Jingyuan Currying Favor

Chapter 37: Bo Jingyuan Currying Favor

Editor: As Studios

Bo Mingyuan left. Bo Jingyan looked at the closed door and fell into a daze. Just then, Bo Jingse pushed the door open and entered. She sat opposite Bo Jingyan. For a long time, Bo Jingyan only drank his coffee without saying a word. Finally, his sister couldnt help but say, "Bo Ziqi is back. Brother, why dont you take the opportunity to fight for Ruanruan?" Bo Jingyan put down the cup in his hand and nced at her. The woman pursed her lips. "Dont say that you dont like her!" Bo Jingyan slowly loosened his tie. "They wont agree. Neither the Old Madam nor Dad would agree." Bo Jingyan took out a cigarette from the cigarette box and looked at his sister. "Jingse, do you know the consequences of saying this now?" Bo Jingse had been treading on thin ice since she was young, so she naturally knew what her brother was referring to. She only asked one thing. "How far have you progressed with her?" Bo Jingyan lowered his head to light the cigarette, which muffled his voice. "To the extent of sleeping together." Bo Jingse was stunned, and only regained her senses after a while. "Su Ruanruan is still so young!" She got up and pushed the door open. Bo Jingyan was still smoking and only smiled. Just then, Bo Jingse opened the door again. "Brother, youre such a beast." The man nearly burned his fingers with his cigarette... ... In the afternoon, Su Ruanruan returned to the Bo familys residence. At dinner, only Madam Bo and Bo Jingyuan were at the dining table. For the first time, Bo Jingyuan did not make things difficult for her. She even took a piece ofmb chop and ced it on her te. "Ruanruan, youre too skinny! Second Brother will like you better if you gain some weight." Su Ruanruan looked up at her. Bo Jingyuan said in a low voice, "Ill go look for youter. Theres something I want to ask you." Madam Bo frowned slightly but did not say anything. After dinner, Su Ruanruan thought that Bo Jingyuan wasing over, so she took a shower and sat on the sofa to read for a while. About ten minutester, Bo Jingyuan came over with her hands behind her back. She had brought a gifta beautiful pearl ne. "I bought it in Japan! Wear it on the day of the ball," Bo Jingyuan emphasized. Su Ruanruan looked up at her. After a while, she closed the gift and said, "Just say what you want." Bo Jingyuan was also impatient, so she anxiously said, "Invite your second brother to the ball that day." Su Ruanruan lowered her eyes. "Do you really like my second brother?" "I do! Of course I do!" Bo Jingyuan sped her hands together. "Professor Su is so good-looking!" She couldnt help but beg, "Su Ruanruan, can you help me?" If Su Ruanruan sold Su Ruan out ruthlessly and helped Bo Jingyuan, her life in the Bo family would definitely improve. However, Su Ruanruan had a conscience. Su Ruan had always been good to her. He was her only warmth in the Su family. Hence, when she heard Bo Jingyuans request, she only smiled. "Does Auntie agree to this?" Bo Jingyuan immediately thought of Bo Ziqis words in the afternoon and retreated slightly. However, she med Su Ruanruan and felt that thetter was the one who refused to help her. She gritted her teeth and said, "Someone told me that you deliberately showed me Ke Lans letter. I didnt believe it at first, but now I do." Then, she stomped her feet. "Su Ruanruan, if you dont help, someone else will." She ran out,pletely forgetting about the pearl ne. Su Ruanruan naturally couldnt take this item for herself. She was about to send it back to Bo Jingyuan, but Madam Bo was right in front of her the moment she opened the door. Madam Bo was a natural beauty, but now she looked mean and unsympathetic in the light, even if she was smiling. "Are you looking for Jingyuan?" Madam Bo asked gently. Su Ruanruan could roughly guess her intentions and stepped back to let her in. Madam Bo closed the door and looked into the room quietly before saying, "It seems like youre doing well." Chapter 38: You鈥檝e Snatched Too Much of Ziqi鈥檚 Attention

Chapter 38: Youve Snatched Too Much of Ziqis Attention

Editor: As Studios

Su Ruanruan poured a cup of tea for Madam Bo. When she turned around, she saw Madam Bo flipping through the book she had been reading. "You like medical books." Madam Bo smiled. "By right, you should get along with Jingyan." Su Ruanruans heart skipped a beat.She sat down quietly. Madam Bo took a sip of tea and asked, "Are you used to living here?" "Its quite good," the youngdy replied. Madam Bo looked at her quietly for a moment before saying slowly, "I heard about Jingyuans incident at school today." Her gaze was like a torch. "You should know the reason she fought with that girl from the Ke family." The younger woman did not answer. She thought Madam Bo would already know the answer given her intelligence. Indeed, Madam Bo continued, "Im not here to scold you." Su Ruanruan looked up. The older woman held her hand lightly. "I dont agree with Jingyuan getting together with your second brother." Su Ruanruans voice was hoarse. "Thank you for being so understanding, Madam." "Its Jingyuans fault." Madam Bos voice was gentle. "Ruanruan, youre a sensible child. Dont indulge her." With this, Su Ruanruan finally understood the mission Madam Bo had given her: to stop Bo Jingyuans crush. She neither agreed nor disagreed. Madam Bos voice was tactful and pleasant. "Its enough that youre not helping her because of Ziqi." Su Ruanruan suddenly felt humiliated. It turned out that Bo Ziqi was the true reason for Madam Bos visit. Madam Bo patted her hand lightly again. "Youre born beautiful and have already taken away too much of Ziqis attention." However, Qi Meiyu would never want an orphan daughter to be her daughter-inw. Marrying Su Ruanruan would not benefit Ziqi at all! Su Qionglin was much stronger than Su Ruanruan! Madam Bo quickly left. Su Ruanruan sat there for a long time, feeling a little cold. The tea on the table had already turned cold. Only after a long while did she take out a small notebook and flip it open. Between its pages was a small world map. She circled a certain ce on itEnnd. After everything was over, she wanted to study there. She wanted to get away from everything, including the Bo family and Bo Jingyan. After feeling sad for a while, Su Ruanruan started to read the information that Bo Jingyan had given her. Whenever she saw a problem, she would mark it out with a pen. She stayed up into the night doing so. As such, it was only natural that she didnt look good the next morning. After breakfast, Bo Jingyuan snorted at her. "Ive already found someone to invite Professor Su to the ball." She took out two invitations and shed them in front of Su Ruanruan, looking very pleased with herself. "Ive invited Sister Qionglin. Shell invite Professor Su for me." Su Ruanruan wasnt angry nor unhappy. Bo Jingyuan taunted her again. "When Second Brother starts dancing with Sister Qionglin, you wont have anything to do." Su Ruanruan took out a box from her bag and handed it to her. Bo Jingyuan was furious. She had tried so hard to give Su Ruanruan onest chance, yet thetter didnt even appreciate it. She snatched it away fiercely. "I tried to let you keep your pride, but you dont care for it." Su Ruanruan did not argue with her and walked towards the entrance of the vi. When she went out, she happened to see Bo Ziqi driving back. Bo Ziqi rolled down his car window as they brushed past each other. But Su Ruanruan had already walked over. Bo Ziqis expression darkened. Bo Jingyuan ran over. "Second Brother." She hid the invitation in her hand. Bo Ziqi looked at his sister. "What are you up to?" The young girl stammered, "Nothing! " Her brother reached out his arm. "What are you hiding behind your Chapter 39: Su Ruanruan was Adopted

Chapter 39: Su Ruanruan was Adopted

Editor: As Studios

Bo Jingyuan refused to show it to him. Bo Ziqis face darkened. "Hand it over." Seeing that he was serious, Bo Jingyuan could only hand over the invitation. When Bo Ziqi flipped through it, she observed him carefully, afraid that he would re up. After a while, she couldnt help but say, "Grandmother doesnt want to invite Sister Qionglin. She wants you to dance with Su Ruanruan. Second Brother, Im doing this for you and Sister Qionglin." Bo Ziqi raised another invitation. "Then whats that about?" Bo Jingyuans face turned red and she remained silent. She thought that her second brother would get angry. However, Bo Ziqi unexpectedly returned the invitation to her. Bo Jingyuan scratched her head as she watched the car drive into the vi. She didnt understand her second brother. However, since he did not object to it, she could boldly invite Sister Qionglin. Anyway, Second Brother would clean up her mess in the end.He doted on her the most. Bo Jingyuan quickly made a call to Su Qionglin and asked her out. ... At a famous cafe in Jiang City, Bo Jingyuan and Su Qionglin were seated opposite each other. For this meeting, thetter had even brought a gift. She had long known that the Bo family would prepare a grand banquet for Bo Ziqis return, but she had never received an invitation. She was upset, but dared not ask Bo Ziqi about it. At this moment, Bo Jingyuan took out an invitation. Su Qionglins eyes lit up, and her cheeks turned red. "Did your second brother ask you to deliver it?" Bo Jingyuan coughed lightly. "Im the one inviting you to this event, Sister Qionglin." Su Qionglin was a little disappointed, but she didnt want to miss this opportunity. She looked up at Bo Jingyuans expectant face and grabbed her hand. "Jingyuan, youve helped me a lot." The younger girl felt guilty. "I like you a lot, Sister Qionglin." Su Qionglin was still looking at the invitation. Bo Jingyuan lowered her voice. "Oh right, Sister Qionglin, I have another invitation. I thought that since I know Professor Su, he shoulde and have some fun too." Su Qionglin immediately understood what the other was getting at. Thetter was doing this for the sake of her second brother! Seeing her hesitation, Bo Jingyuan rolled her eyes. "I want to give this opportunity to you. Youre a model, so youre the mostpatible with Second Brother." Su Qionglin felt much better now. She took the invitation and flicked Bo Jingyuans head. "Youre smart." Bo Jingyuan smiled in embarrassment. She supported her chin with her hand and came up with a terrible idea. "Sister Qionglin, Old Madam hasnt given in yet. Why dont you and Second Brother have a child? Old Madam wont have any reason to object if you guys have a child." She added, "Compared to Su Ruanruan, my mother thinks more highly of you. However, she cant express her opinions so openly." Su Qionglin stirred the coffee in her cup in frustration. These days, although she was always with Bo Ziqi, he rarely wanted her. Besides, she didnt dare to have a child without his consent. If he got upset... As she hesitated, Bo Jingyuan added, "My grandmother and father both like Su Ruanruan." She bit her lip. "On the day Second Brother came back, Dad told my brother that he wanted him to be with Su Ruanruan." Su Qionglin clenched her long nails which pierced into her flesh. She and Bo Ziqi had already been together for such a long time, yet the Bo family was still siding with Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan was just an adopted child! No one knew about her true background! What right did she have topete with her? Su Qionglin said proudly, "Jingyuan, dont worry. I will definitely suppress Su Ruanruan on the day of the ball. I wont let her have a chance to stand out." Bo Jingyuan added, "Remember to bring Professor Su along." Su Qionglins lips twitched... Chapter 40: I Can鈥檛 Give You What You Want!

Chapter 40: I Cant Give You What You Want!

Editor: As Studios

After Bo Jingyuan was done with her business, she happily skipped to school. She was filled with joy as she thought about the ball. When the day came, she would definitely put on a stunning outfit and invite Professor Su to dance with her. It would be perfect! But before that, she had to make a name for herself during Zhongjiang Art Academys charity sale. Once she sold her artwork for a million yuan, Professor Su would definitely remember her! Hmph, Ill still win over Professor Sus heart without Su Ruanruans help! ... While Bo Jingyuan was busy preparing for the charity sale, Su Ruanruan was also preparing a painting. Thetter had spent two full days finishing up her piece of art. The background was exactly what she had seen in the square many years ago. A building that appeared as though it was on fire, and in front of one of the floor-to-ceiling windows was a man. Although she couldnt get a clear view of his face, it was clear that he was a handsome and mature man. Su Ruanruan dried the oil painting and covered it with a canvas. After settling everything, she untied her hair and removed her clothes before heading to the bathroom to take a shower. A figure walked in silently. Hearing the sound of running watering from the bathroom, he wanted to join in too. But thinking about her age, he decided not to do so. He sat on the sofa and flipped through the small notebook she had left there. After flipping through it a few times, his gaze froze. Su Ruanruan had drawn a circle on the small map. Bo Jingyan narrowed his eyes. The circle was on Ennd. He was an extremely intelligent person and could guess what she was thinking. She wanted to leave and go to Ennd. Just then, the bathroom door opened. Su Ruanruan was in her pajamas, wiping her still-damp hair. She looked up and saw Bo Jingyan. He was dressed in a ck shirt and matching casual pants. He looked exceptionally handsome, and even exuded the sexiness of a young man! Su Ruanruan asked softly, "Why are you here?" Bo Jingyan waved her over, but she didnt move. "What are you thinking? Ill dry your hair for you." She moved over slowly. Bo Jingyan reached out and pulled her onto hisp, holding her waist with one hand. He snatched the towel from Su Ruanruans hands and gently dried her hair. When he was almost done, his actions became slow and deliberate. Su Ruanruan couldnt stand it any longer, and she said softly, "Ill do it myself." Bo Jingyan threw the towel aside and hugged her with both hands, turning the young girl to face him. This position made her blush. She tried to refuse him. Usually, he would find her response interesting. But now, his dark eyes were locked on hers as he asked, "You want to go overseas?" She turned her face away. Bo Jingyan could not help but get angry. He tightened his grip on her and repeated himself. Thinking about his despicable and overbearing behavior, Su Ruanruan bit her lip. "Yes, I definitely want to leave." Bo Jingyan kept his gaze on her, causing thetter to lower her head as she said softly, "Bo Jingyan, you cant do this." He smiled at her. "What do you mean?" She said nothing. He stared into her eyes and enunciated his words clearly. "Will you suddenly disappear one day after doing what you have to do?" She was slightly distracted because of his sudden outburst. After a long while, she finally stammered, "Ill tell you before I leave." Bo Jingyan pinched her chin, his breath teasing her lips. "Do you think I want you to bid farewell to me? Ruanruan, dont tell me that you dont know what I want!" "I cant give you what you want," she replied. Bo Jingyan was so angry that heughed and asked in an evil tone, "If you cant give it to me... why are you still sleeping with me?" Su Ruanruan did not expect him to say that. Her eyes were a little red and the corners of her eyes were wet. She was at a loss for words even after a long while. Instead, she chose to slowly move away from him. Chapter 41 The Line to Chase Su Ruanruan Reaches France

Chapter 41: Chapter 41 The Line to Chase Su Ruanruan Reaches France

Bao Jingyan did not stop her, just watching as she stepped back a few steps. His expression was not very pleased as he stared at her for a long while before asking softly, "If you cant give it to me, who are you going to give it to? Bao Ziqi?" He said it casually, "Thats right, Bao Ziqi also performs in Britain all year round." He spat out these sarcastic words and even he felt disdain for himself. So, he simply got up and left. Walking out, Bao Jingyan rubbed his forehead, not knowing what got into him today. Why did he care so much about her rtionship with Bao Ziqi? Perhaps, it was because he saw a photo of her and Bao Ziqi sitting in a cafe drinking coffee! They sat facing each other, eyes locked. Surprisingly well-matched! Inside the bedroom, Su Ruanruan was still standing there. She felt somewhat at a loss. She had always been independent since she was young, but after all, she was still an 18-year-old girl. Emotions, she had never experienced them. Bao Jingyan liked her, she could feel it. But she was also afraid of him. Especially when he kissed her fiercely, she felt as if her whole body was electrified, ufortable yet enduring. She feared that feeling. That night, she did not sleep well. Tossing and turning, her mind full of the words "If you cant give it to me, why do you sleep with me?" Su Ruanruan bit her lip: It wasnt like that, he forcibly made her sleep with him. And nothing happened at all! Having not slept well for two days, Su Ruanruan got up early in the morning, looking somewhat pale. The weather was cool, so she wore a floral dress with a tender yellow cardigan over it and tied her hair in a ponytail. Innocently beautiful! She walked into the dining room, where the Bao family was neatly seated. Her gaze unintentionally fell on Bao Jingyan. He wore a light gray shirt and a dark coffee-colored slim tie. Very handsome and mature. When Su Ruanruan approached, he did not look up, drinking his coffee with a dignified air. As if... he was still upset. Su Ruanruans face grew hot, and she quietly sat down next to him. This time, he did not pull out the chair for her. Bao Jingyuan watched, feeling secretly happy in her heart. Finally, her eldest brother saw the true colors of Su Ruanruan! She wasnt happy enough on her own, she even leaned over to Bao Ziqi and whispered, "Second brother, Su Ruanruan looks pale. Could it be she stayed upte dating someone?" Bao Ziqis gaze fell on Su Ruanruans face. Indeed, that pretty face looked somewhat haggard. Bao Ziqis expression involuntarily tightened. Bao Jingyuan added fuel to the fire, "Second brother, you dont know, the guys pursuing Su Ruanruan at Zhongjiang Academy of Fine Arts could line up from our house to the Su Family." At thisment, Bao Jingyan who was drinking coffee and reading the newspaper paused, his fingers halting. "Is it that exaggerated?" Bao Ziqi asked somewhat teasingly. Bao Jingyuan, with a piece of bread in her mouth, mumbled unclearly, "Youll know if you go see the fundraiser event today." Bao Ziqi took another deep look at Su Ruanruan. To provoke Su Ruanruan, Bao Jingyuan said cheerfully, "I also invited Qionglin." Bao Mingyuan was a bit unhappy, "Why invite someone irrelevant?" Bao Jingyuan quietly called out, "Qionglin is second brothers girlfriend, how is she irrelevant?" Bao Mingyuan, worrying that Su Ruanruan might feel ufortable, said, "Well all go out for lunch together at noon." He patted Su Ruanruans shoulder, his tone gentle, "Ruanruan, youe too." Bao Jingyuans eyes flickered, "So you mean everyone except elder brother is going?" Unexpectedly, Bao Jingyan put down his coffee cup and said indifferently, "Since its a family gathering, I will naturally go too." Chapter 42: Seemingly Close but Actually Distant

Chapter 42: Chapter 42: Seemingly Close but Actually Distant

Bao Jingyuan ran over and hugged Bao Jingyan from behind, lovingly saying, "Big brother loves me the most." Bao Jingyan pushed her away, "Youre grown up now, dont act like a child all the time." Bao Jingyuan stuck out her tongue, unconcerned. On the other hand, Su Ruanruan was somewhat nervous. She stealthily nced at Bao Jingyan Is he really going? Bao Mingyuan cheerfully said, "This is Ruanruans first time participating in a family event, lets make it grand." He briskly instructed the butler to prepare the car. After speaking, he turned to his second son, "Ziqi, since youre not well, try to drive less, and ride with Ruanruan in the car with your mother and me." Bao Ziqi did not object. Bao Jingyuan was unhappy, moring, "Dad, I want to ride with Second Brother in your car." Normally, Bao Mingyuan would have certainly satisfied her request, but this asion was different. "You ride in the car with your eldest brother and Jingse." Bao Jingyuan was very displeased. She wasnt the only one upset. Bao Jingyan pushed his chair away, stood up, and walked towards the parking area outside the vi. Su Ruanruan felt somewhat embarrassed. "Lets go!" A refined voice reached her ears. It was Bao Ziqi hurrying her. His tone wasnt very nice. Su Ruanruan returned to the bedroom to get her painting, and once at the parking area, everyone else had already gotten into their cars, only Bao Jingyan was leaning against the car door smoking. Seeing her walking over, he raised his hand and took a puff of smoke. Su Ruanruans eyes reddened quietly. Bao Jingyan didnt say a word, walked over, took the painting from her hands, and ced it in his trunk. He nced at the painting and felt a slight stir in his heart. After a moment, his voice became much gentler, "Why are you still standing here?" Su Ruanruan bit her lip and walked to the back seat of the car. Mr. and Mrs. Bao Mingyuan were sitting in a stretched Lincoln, very imposing. Su Ruanruan and Bao Ziqi sat side by side, facing Mr. and Mrs. Bao Mingyuan. Mrs. Bao looked at the young girl across her, feeling very displeased. Knowing her husbands thoughts, she still hoped Ziqi would marry Su Ruanruan. She wasnt particrly fond of Su Qionglin either, but she was better than Su Ruanruan. So today, she would let Su Qionglin buy Jingyuans painting to please Bao Mingyuans heart. In the car, Su Ruanruan was somewhat distracted. Bao Ziqi turned his head to the other side. These two very well expressed a semnce of harmony but estrangement in spirit! Bao Mingyuan was quite worried. * Half an hourter, the Bao Familys convoy arrived at Zhongjiang Academy of Fine Arts. The charity event at Zhongjiang Academy of Fine Arts this time was grand, with almost all the celebrities of Jiangcheng attending. In the schools parking lot, luxury cars were as numerous as cloud. However, Bao Jingyuan was still confident. In terms of wealth and power, no one couldpare to the Bao Family. Bao Jingyuan stood tall, ready to wash away yesterdays shame. Just as she was feeling proud, an elegant figure gracefully walked over. It was Su Qionglin. Su Qionglin was dressed in a red long dress, the strap design showcasing her superior figure. Bao Jingyuan pulled her towards her parents, sweetly saying, "Mom and Dad, Sister Qionglin is here." Bao Mingyuan nodded his head nonchntly. However, Mrs. Bao took Su Qionglins hand warmly, saying, "Its been a long time since youst came to visit." Su Qionglins eyes reddened, feeling somewhat aggrieved. Bao Ziqis hands were in his pockets, he spoke indifferently, "Since youre here, lets go in together." Su Qionglin looked uneasy, "Would that be inconvenient?" She deliberately nced at Su Ruanruan. Bao Ziqi took her hand, clutched it in his, and strode towards the inside of the school. This was his deration! Mrs. Bao watched Bao Mingyuan and softly said, "Mingyuan, cant you see? Ziqi likes Qionglin." Bao Jingyuan also chimed in, "Thats right, Dad, you cant ruin Second Brothers happiness." Bao Mingyuans gaze was profound, after a moment he said, "What do children know about happiness!" Bao Jingyuan, holding the hands of both parents, walked forward and coquettishly said, "Just like mom and dad, this is happiness." Mr. and Mrs. Bao Mingyuan exchanged a look, with a touch of sweetness between them. Chapter 43 Are You Still Angry?

Chapter 43: Chapter 43 Are You Still Angry?

Su Ruanruan didnt want to witness the scene, so she followed from afar. Suddenly, her hand was caught. Turning her head, it was Bao Jingyan. She was both embarrassed and annoyed, desperately trying to shake his hand off: "Dont... Dont do this." People wereing and going here, and she was afraid of being discovered. Bao Jingyan did not trouble her further and let go of her hand. He simply walked beside her. Su Ruanruan was still nervous. Around them, quite a few people were staring at Bao Jingyan. Bao Jingyan was displeased; "What, walking with me is shameful? You didnt refuse to ride in the same car with Bao Ziqi, nor did you try to get away from him?" Su Ruanruan bit her lip. Is he jealous? She didnt know how to soothe a jealous man, and besides, this wasnt the ce. She kept silent, and Bao Jingyan gave her a deep look before leaving first. Su Ruanruan breathed a sigh of relief. At that moment, a female ssmate from the same department came running over, her face flushed as she asked, "Su Ruanruan, was that your boyfriend just now?" Su Ruanruan knew she was mistaking him for Bao Ziqi, so she said, "Thats Bao Jingyuans big brother." The female student covered her face and eximed, "Was that Bao Jingyan?" Su Ruanruan was puzzled, "What about him?" The female student grabbed her shoulder and gently shook it, "Its Bao Jingyan, hes very famous, he had published many papers when he was studying abroad, a big shot in the medical field." Seeing that Su Ruanruan had no reaction, the female student stomped her foot: "All the women in Jiangcheng want to marry him." Su Ruanruan hummed in response, her mind elsewhere. The female student was exasperated! Just then, a voice arose, "What are you talking about?" Su Ruanruan looked up. It was Bao Jingyan who had returned. She looked at him, then at the female ssmate next to her whose face was red with embarrassment, unsure whether to introduce her. But Bao Jingyan simply tapped her shoulder lightly, releasing it immediately: "Lets go." Su Ruanruan smiled at the female ssmate and followed Bao Jingyan towards the exhibition hall of the Zhongjiang Academy of Fine Arts. The female ssmate watched them longingly After a moment, she muttered to herself, "Bao Jingyan must like Su Ruanruan." Ahead, Bao Jingyan was leading the way. His posture was exceptional, his countenance noble, attracting the attention of a plethora of female students. Su Ruanruan mouthed the words: A butterfly attractor! Suddenly, he turned around. "What did you say?" She was startled, "I didnt say anything!" He looked deeply at her, lowering his voice: "Are you jealous?" Su Ruanruan was a reserved girl and immediately bristled at his words: "Youre the one whos jealous!" Bao Jingyans gaze deepened. Su Ruanruan hung her head low and asked softly, "Are you still angry?" Somehow, his heart was stirred by her simple question. At this moment, he wanted to hug her, wanted to kiss her. But this wasnt the ce. His voice raspy: "You know Im upset?" Su Ruanruan had a somewhat na?ve look in her eyes. Bao Jingyan suppressed his emotions: "If youre unhappy living in the mansion, you can leave with me." Perhaps he couldnt marry her right now, but she was young, and they could both wait. Su Ruanruan shook her head. Bao Jingyan looked steadily at her. She thought he would get angry after a while, but instead, he reached out and gently tousled her hair, speaking with a husky voice, "You can stay, and when you grow up to be unmatched by anyone, well get married." Her face turned red, she protested softly, "Who wants to marry you!" Shameless! Bao Jingyans eyes were indulgent: "If you like Britain, well go to Britain to get married." Marriage was too far away for Su Ruanruan, and she did not agree. He seemed to dete, no longer pressing the issue. Just as he turned to head to the exhibition hall, someone was standing in front. It was Bao Ziqi. Chapter 44 Mrs. Bo Elevates Su Qionglin

Chapter 44: Chapter 44 Mrs. Bo Elevates Su Qionglin

The person leaned against an old banyan tree ten meters away, no one knew how long they had been looking in this direction. With a gaze so deep and unpredictable. Bao Jingyan hooked up a mocking smile at the corner of his mouth. Bao Ziqi walked over and said to Su Ruanruan, "Why arent you going in yet?" Su Ruanruan didnt say anything and walked past him with her head down. Bao Ziqi didnt follow her, and instead tucked his hands into the pockets of his coat, looking towards Bao Jingyan. "Do you like her?" Bao Jingyan didnt admit nor deny it, but replied with a faint smile, "Why, do you want to share her good fortune?" Bao Ziqi clenched his teeth: "She doesnt know what kind of person you are." Bao Jingyan lit a cigarette and smiled lightly. Bao Ziqi said tensely, "Shes not fit to live amidst your schemes and calctions." "I thought you didnt like her." This provoked Bao Ziqi again, "I indeed dont like her." After saying that, he turned around and left. Bao Jingyan finished the cigarette quietly before pinching out the stub and crushing it with his calfskin shoe. By the time he entered the exhibition hall, it was already full of people. He took a seat next to the open spot beside Su Ruanruan. Bao Ziqi nced over here. Su Qionglin leaned into his ear, her entire being fragrant and soft: "Your older brother seems to like Ruanruan quite a bit." She added another sentence: "But Ruanruan is not worthy of your older brother." "Is that so?" Bao Ziqis tone was sarcastic. Seeing that he was unhappy, Su Qionglin didnt say anything further. Instead, Bao Jingyuan spoke up for her, "Second brother, Qionglin cares about Su Ruanruan too." She then said in a mocking tone: "Someone like Su Ruanruan isnt even qualified to be kept as a mistress by our older brother." Her words struck the heart of Mrs. Bao, as Mrs. Bao herself had been promoted from mistress to wife. Mrs. Baos face didnt look good. Su Qionglin immediately and considerately spoke up: "Not just anyone can enter the Bao Family." She pinched Mrs. Baos hand, hinting at goodwill. Mrs. Baos expression improved slightly. Bao Jingyuan kept chattering, but nobody was listening to her anymore. Mrs. Bao, thinking Su Qionglin was sensible, intended to promote her and whispered, "When Jingyuans paintinges up, dont be too eager to bid; its not good to appear too obvious." Su Qionglin was very proper: "Auntie, if you hadnt mentioned it, I wouldnt have noticed, I didnt know there were so many nuances here." Mrs. Bao was quite pleased with this response. She gently patted the back of Su Qionglins hand, already seeing her as a daughter-inw. Bao Mingyuan was somewhat dissatisfied, feeling that his wife was making decisions on her own. Now, Bao Jingyuans painting was brought up to the stage. Mrs. Bao smiled, "Its our Jingyuans turn now." Su Qionglin immediately focused intently, seeing this as an opportunity to show off in front of the Bao Family. She had previously feigned ignorance to Mrs. Bao, but in truth, she had attended countless auctions over the years. When someone bid two hundred thousand, Su Qionglin raised her paddle and bid three hundred thousand. The other party was also generous, bidding four hundred thousand. "Five hundred thousand," Su Qionglin spoke with a light, chuckling smile. Around them, people whispered to one another. "Does anyone know which familys daughter this is? Shes bidding big." "Dont you know? Its the third young miss from the prestigious Su Family, the famous model." ... Su Qionglin smiled, full of confidence. In the end, she won Bao Jingyuans painting for 1.2 million. Bao Mingyuan was the first to stand up and apud. He looked at Su Qionglin with a smile, showing a hint of appreciation. Mrs. Bao also had a moment of pride, pping along with her husband. Bao Jingyuan was then invited onto the stage, where she participated in a small ceremony with Su Qionglin. Her face flushed with color, as she epted everyones praise. Full of youthful vigor, she said after embracing Su Qionglin, "Thank you to sister Qionglin for appreciating my painting, perhaps its the highest bid tonight, I will continue to work hard." Chapter 45 Su Ruanruan Gains More Attention

Chapter 45: Chapter 45 Su Ruanruan Gains More Attention

Bao Mingyuan frowned. The highest? The auction isnt over yet, Jingyuan saying the highest doesnt seem appropriate, does it? Mrs. Bao whispered, "I think nobody else will outbid herter, its just kids ying after all, Mingyuan, dont take it so seriously." Everyone around was praising. "The Bao family truly has formidable gics." "Brother Mingyuan has a good way of raising his daughter." Bao Mingyuan smiled and greeted the people around him. On stage, Bao Jingyuans cheeks were flushed as she spoke into the microphone, "Actually, Qionglin is also my second brothers girlfriend." There was a buzz of surprise from the audience. So she was the girlfriend of the second son of the Bao family. Suddenly, Su Qionglin was the center of attention. She received everyones congrattions as if it were her wedding with Bao Ziqi. She had be the young mistress of the Bao family, destined for a life of glory and wealth! Downstage, Mrs. Bao hugged her, "Congrattions Qionglin, and Jingyuan." She thought highly of Su Qionglin andpletely looked down on the Bao familys orphaned niece, Su Ruanruan. Su Qionglin just smiled withoutment. She turned her head to look at Bao Ziqi, very much hoping for his praise. But Bao Ziqi was focused on the stage the whole time, unresponsive. Su Qionglin was somewhat disappointed. Bao Jingyuanforted in a low voice, "Its ok, Ill bring Qionglin sister to the family gatheringter. Youll see the difference between her and Su Ruanruan; dad will know how to choose." She was now devoted to Su Ruan and hence unconditionally supportive of Su Qionglin. As for Su Ruanruan, well, shes biting the hand that feeds! Shell be kicked out of the Bao family sooner orter! Just as Bao Jingyuan was indulging in her thoughts, the host on stage, with a cheeky voice, said: "The artist of the next painting also has the surname Su. Su Ruanruan." He spoke for a while, but no one raised their bidding sign. Bao Jingyuan curled her lip. Bao Mingyuan spoke to his wife, "Raise your bidding signter, lets not embarrass Ruanruan too much." Mrs. Bao, touching her husbands arm said, "I n to spend 200,000 to buy Ruanruans painting." Bao Mingyuan felt very pleased and patted the back of his wifes hand. Mrs. Bao smiled. Concealing a touch of scorn! These 200,000 yuan, might as well be alms! She was about to raise her bidding sign when someone beat her to it. That person directly offered, "500,000 yuan." Mrs. Baos smile froze on her face. How could this be! How is it possible? Who would be willing to pay such a high price for Su Ruanruans painting? The leaders from the art academy were also stunned. A starting bid of 500,000 yuan, isnt that too much? Su Ruanruan is just a student, can her painting... bear such a reputation? While everyone was in shock, Bao Mingyuan also raised his bidding sign. "One million yuan." The venue erupted in another wave of surprise. Bao Mingyuan is a very astute businessman, he immediately saw the potential. He pointed at the painting and said, "It looks like its Dijing Group on the painting, buying it can also be a nice talking point." People looked closer. Hmm, it does seem to be the case! Thus, they started praising again, "The Dijing Group really is famous!" Bao Mingyuan smiled and epted thepliments. Mrs. Bao said discontentedly in a low voice, "Mingyuan, have you considered Jingyuans feelings, spending so much to buy Ruanruans painting?" Tears welled up in Bao Jingyuans eyes. Dad is too biased! Her painting was bid on by Qionglin sister, and when it came to Su Ruanruans, dad personally took action. Unfair! This is how Bao Mingyuan replied to his wife, "Shortsighted! All the media houses will report on this auction; its a good opportunity to promote Dijing." Moreover, Bao Mingyuan always had an affinity for culture and elegance, he could really see the skill in Su Ruanruans painting. A profound artistic conception. Not inferior to those famous young contemporary artists. This was both unexpected and pleasantly surprising for him. At this moment, the bit of admiration he had for Su Qionglin, hepletely transferred back to Su Ruanruan. Chapter 46: Unworthy Son Dares to Compete with His Father

Chapter 46: Chapter 46: Unworthy Son Dares to Compete with His Father

Bao Mingyuan made a rough calction, figuring that with a bid of one million, no one would dare topete with him. But there were many who recognized the value of the piece on site, and quite a few followed his bid with their own. "1.2 million." "1.5 million." "2 million." ... "5 million." Bao Mingyuan decided to secure the deal. On stage, the leaders of Zhongjiang Academy of Fine Arts couldnt contain their joy! Who would have thought that Su Ruanruan was a star from South Africa! The more they looked at this painting, the more they liked it. Upon closer inspection, it even had the air of a masterwork! Right, wasnt Su Ruanruan the sister of Professor Su? Professor Su was a contemporary master; naturally, his sister must be outstanding! The president of Zhongjiang Academy of Fine Arts personally stepped down to shake hands with Bao Mingyuan. "Young brother Mingyuan has a good eye!" Bao Mingyuan was gracefullyposed, smiling: "It seems this painting is destined for me?" The president, ttering him, said: "Since it is a scene desired by Di Jing, and it caught the eye of young brother Mingyuan, it should indeed belong to you." The sycophancy was so heavy that it was almost unbearable for others to listen to. Just as Bao Mingyuan was about to ascend the stage to im the painting, a voice rang out: "6 million." Bao Mingyuans stride halted. That voice... He turned around and saw Bao Jingyan. Sitting there, Bao Jingyan nodded with much elegance and style! Bao Mingyuan became furious! This unworthy son dared topete with his father over a possession! Bao Jingyan smiled enchantingly: "That painting is of my former office." Bao Mingyuan touched his nose. He probably guessed Bao Jingyans intention. That morning, he had sensed something was off. Just that he genuinely hadnt expected his eldest son to take a fancy to Su Ruanruan. He disagreed! Su Ruanruan was a good match for Ziqi, but with Jingyan... There was a ten-year age difference! Moreover, he always felt that Jingyan needed a woman who could support him. Ruanruan was too delicate, not suitable. Bao Mingyuan smiled subtly. "Jingyan, it seems today father and son must seriouslypete for a painting." "7 million." Eight million! Bao Jingyan smiled slightly and raised the bid card. Bao Mingyuan looked sidelong at his eldest son. "10 million." He thought it was about enough. But Bao Jingyan stood up, outright dering: "20 million." He looked toward Bao Mingyuan: "I like this painting very much, Dad. You wouldnt really deprive someone of what they like, would you?" His words were loaded with meaning. Bao Mingyuan red at his eldest son. After a moment, his expression rxed: "Its rare for you to like something so much." He gestured, signaling Bao Jingyan to go on stage. Bao Jingyan turned his head and smiled: "Miss Su, please." He extended his arm like a gentleman. Su Ruanruan had no choice but to lightly hold onto him, and led by him, she gracefully ascended the stage. Apuse thundered. The hands of the leaders of Zhongjiang Academy of Fine Arts were nearly raw from pping! million! That was even more expensive than the works of famous artists! Su Ruanruan was incredible! At this moment, who still remembered Bao Jingyuan and Su Qionglin? They were obliterated to dust! Once on stage, a ceremony was conducted. The president of Zhongjiang Academy of Fine Arts personally shook hands with Bao Jingyan and highly praised Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan looked at the man beside her, speaking with ease. Quite unexpected. The one depicted in the painting was him! Then he must have seen her before, right? But he never mentioned it. Below the stage, Bao Ziqi coldly watched the matched pair, his lips tightly pursed. Was Bao Jingyans high-profile behavior really just for a painting? Not necessarily. Beside him, Bao Jingyuan was biting her lip, on the verge of tears... Madam Bao and Su Qionglin also werent in good spirits! Especially Su Qionglin, watching Su Ruanruan being lightly supported by Bao Jingyan as she descended the steps. Like a princess! Chapter 47 Su Ru鈥檃n has someone else in his heart, Jingyuan will not be happy

Chapter 47: Chapter 47 Su Ruan has someone else in his heart, Jingyuan will not be happy

Su Qionglin had thought that being with Bao Ziqi was already ascending to the heavens. But when Bao Jingyan bid 20 million with a wave of his hand, she realized who the truly formidable person in the Bao Family was. However, she believed that Bao Jingyan would not take a liking to Su Ruanruan. What kind of woman couldnt a man like that have? Thinking like this, Su Qionglin felt much morefortable. In the following auction, the Bao Family members did not participate anymore. Bao Jingyan and Bao Ziqi went out of the school gate to smoke, while Bao Mingyuan walked around with his family. Seeing his youngest daughter with red-rimmed eyes, Bao Mingyuan knew she felt wronged. So, he smiled and patted Bao Jingyuans head, "Show me and your mother around." Bao Jingyuan awkwardly said, "Theres really nothing fun to see at Zhongjiang Academy of Fine Arts." Bao Mingyuan, with his hands sped behind his back, smiled and said, "That Professor Su isnt fun either? Didnt you fight for him?" Bao Jingyuans face reddened, and she stomped her foot, "I did not." Mrs. Bao gave her husband a reproachful look, "Mingyuan." Bao Mingyuan suddenly turned to Su Ruanruan, "Its your second brother, right! Lets do this, you take us there, wed like to see Jingyuans heartthrob." Su Ruanruan nced at Bao Jingyuan. Bao Jingyuan, with cheeks flushed, didnt object. Mrs. Bao then said, "Qionglin is also Professor Sus sister, right?" Bao Mingyuan chuckled, "But Qionglin is not a student of Zhongjiang Academy of Fine Arts." Su Qionglin felt his estrangement and felt somewhat ufortable. And hated Su Ruanruan even more! If it wasnt for Su Ruanruan, she and Bao Ziqis marriage would have been a done deal! At this moment, shepletely forgot how the Su Family had forced 18-year-old Su Ruanruan to keep the room for Bao Ziqi. Su Ruanruan was surprised by Bao Mingyuans attitude. But then she understood after a second thought. In Bao Mingyuans heart, whether it was Bao Ziqi, Bao Jingse, or Bao Jingyuan, none were to carry the heavy responsibilities of the Bao Family, so the marriages of these three children mainly depended on their own preferences. But Bao Jingyan was different. Bao Jingyans wife had to be someone approved by Bao Mingyuan. Su Ruanruan thought of the words Bao Jingyan had said, feeling indescribable inside. She was about to lead the group to the office building when Su Ruan happened to walk by. "Second brother," Su Ruanruan called out softly. Su Ruan was surprised, then naturally patted Su Ruanruans hair, "I heard about what happened just now, I was about to look for you." He teased her a bit, his tone carrying a hint of doting. Su Qionglin also called out "Second brother." It was as if Su Ruan only noticed her then, giving a shallow smile, "Qionglin is here, too." In order to show off in front of the Bao Family, Su Qionglin deliberately introduced, "These are Ziqi and Jingyuans parents! Uncle and aunt, this is my second brother, Su Ruan." Bao Mingyuan smiled, "Ive long heard about Ruanruan having an artist for a second brother, and seeing you today, you certainly live up to your reputation!" He went on to say that hed request a work from Su Ruan, not mentioning a single word about his daughters feelings! Bao Jingyuan became somewhat anxious, calling out softly, "Dad!" Bao Mingyuan looked deeply at his youngest daughter. There were some things he couldnt say. Actually, he had quite liked Su Ruan. But the way Su Ruan looked at Ruanruan was not as a brother, but as a man looks at a woman. Bao Mingyuan still had that discernment. If Su Ruans heart was upied by someone else, Jingyuan wouldnt be happy. Bao Mingyuan exchanged pleasantries with Su Ruan for a few words, then turned to Su Ruanruan saying, "When you have time, please invite your second brother toe to our house." He patted Su Ruanruan, with the air of a family elder. Su Ruans gaze flickered. Chapter 48: Have You Liked Me for a Long Time?

Chapter 48: Chapter 48: Have You Liked Me for a Long Time?

Su Ruanruan was oblivious to the undercurrents between the two men as she bid farewell to Su Ruan. Su Ruan patted her head again. As the group left, Bao Mingyuan suddenly smiled and said, "Professor Su seems to favor Ruanruan, his niece, more than Qionglin." Su Ruanruan didnt think much about it. Su Qionglin sneered internally! Everyone in the Su Family knew that Su Ruanruan was not her uncles biological daughter, except for Su Ruanruan herself. Uncle Bao treated Su Ruanruan so well because he thought she was the Su familys precious daughter; once the truthes out, Su Ruanruan will have nothing! While Su Qionglin was thinking, Bao Jingyuan spoke up, "Dad, let Qionglin join us for the family feastter!" Her fathers attitude changed; shed need Su Qionglins help. Naturally, Bao Mingyuan wouldnt embarrass Su Qionglin in public, smiling, "She is Ruanruans sister, of course she can." Su Qionglins expression changed. In Bao Mingyuans words, there was a distance. She could attend, all thanks to Su Ruanruans grace! Mrs. Bao patted her hand tofort her. Honestly, Mrs. Bao also felt quite upset. Today, Mingyuan was overly ttering towards Su Ruanruan. Bao Mingyuan, knowing his wife hadints, said nothing and just took his family for a stroll around Zhongjiang Academy of Fine Arts. At a graffiti wall, Su Ruanruan squatted in a corner, watching. She found it quite interesting. Suddenly, arge palm hooked around her waist and dragged her into a secluded, dark passageway. Su Ruanruan was pinned against the wall. She widened her eyes and stared at the man before her. His gaze was too intense. Su Ruanruan lowered her eyelids, whispering, "Spending 20 million on a painting, youre crazy." Bao Jingyan, with a clear gaze, replied, "I cant stand to see your paintings in someone elses possession." Su Ruanruan blushed, "I dont know what youre talking about." Bao Jingyan, who had been angryst night, had all his frustration dissipate when he saw the painting this morning. His heart stirred, his slender fingers teasing her chin, "You wouldnt know?" He lowered his head to meet her forehead, his voice also heated, "Youve seen me before, havent you? While painting, were you stealing nces at me? Thinking I look good, hmm?" Su Ruanruan, so reserved, how could she withstand his teasing? Her face flushed red, "I didnt see clearly." Bao Jingyan caressed her cheek, his voice raspy, "But Ive seen you clearly for many years." His voice, unclear near her lips, "When you were just so little, you were already so alluring." His rare flirtation mortified and frightened Su Ruanruan, her hands pushing against his chest, "Dont do this... we could be seen." "Is it okay if were not seen?" he countered. Su Ruanruans face turned red, her voice stuttering, "Thats not okay either." Bao Jingyan watched her shy and affectionate expressions, his heart pounding, his elegantly bones hands gently lifting her chin, forcing her to look at him. Their eyes met, and she saw sparks in his eyes. Panicked, her voice shaky, "Dont... let me go, Bao Jingyan." Bao Jingyan nibbled on her ear, "I have somethingter, so wont be joining the meal! Dont sit with Bao Ziqi, and dont go back with him. Later, Ill have the driver take you to my ce for dinner." Su Ruanruan bit her lip, refusing him. But Bao Jingyan was resolute, "Otherwise, shall I announce our rtionshipter?" She was teased to the brink of tears, "Bao Jingyan, dont bully me!" "Im not bullying you, Im cherishing you," Bao Jingyan chuckled, kissing her lips lightly, "Be good, did you hear?" She hesitated in a sobbing manner, unwilling to agree. Turning her head, ying a little temper, she inadvertently saw a person standing in the distance. Tall and graceful. It was Su Ruan. Chapter 49 Provocation, Kissing Her in Front of Su Ru鈥檃n

Chapter 49: Chapter 49 Provocation, Kissing Her in Front of Su Ruan

Su Ruanruan trembled her lips, silently calling out "Second Brother." Bao Jingyan followed her gaze and saw Su Ruan standing about ten meters away, watching them with an expressionless face. Bao Jingyan had long guessed the feelings that Su Familys Second Brother had for Su Ruanruan. He sneered. Right in front of Su Ruan, he leaned down and kissed Su Ruanruans soft lips. Su Ruanruan froze. She widened her eyes at the erged face in front of her, her eyes brimming with tears. She knew he did it on purpose. Deliberately kissing her in front of Second Brother! Disobediently, she pounded on his shoulders, "Mmm... let go of me!" Far from letting her go, Bao Jingyan grasped her small chin, forcing her to ept him. The sensation he brought was electrifying, like a shock. Su Ruanruans hands, which had been on his shoulders, slowly dropped, then suddenly clutched his shirt. Her body was even more obediently pressed against him, very docile. Bao Jingyans actions became a lot gentler as he whispered tenderly against her lips: "So good." She snapped back to reality and pushed him away fiercely. Bao Jingyan took a step back. He was not angry. Su Ruanruans fingers trembled as she fixed herself, utterly embarrassed. Yet Bao Jingyan once again pulled her into his embrace, facing Su Ruan squarely. Su Ruan suppressed himself, telling himself that he must not act now, or it would ruin Ruanruan. But he was furious! He was enraged that the child he had cherished since she was little was being treated so wantonly by someone else, and he hated that he was watching it happen. He knew this man. Bao Jingyan. The most powerful and talented man in Jiangcheng and even the Southern area, also the elder brother of Bao Ziqi. Ruanruan was sent to keep Bao Ziqis room, and now she was being imed by Bao Ziqis elder brother! Su Ruan clenched his fists tightly, his eyes reddened with rage as he stared at Bao Jingyan: "Young Master Jingyan, my sister is young and ignorant, if she has offended you, I apologize on her behalf." Bao Jingyan looked at the gentlemanly man before him and chuckled lightly. So hypocritical. Obviously also fond of Su Ruanruan, yet calling her sister. Clearly having seen him kiss Su Ruanruan, yet talking about apologizing. Bao Jingyan had long disdained him, his lips curling into a cold smile, "Sure, Professor Su, Im up for whatever you propose." Su Ruanruan knew his temper; just because the old Su Master pped her once, he could break someones legs, and if Second Brother made a move, there was no way he woulde out on top. She hastily clutched his sleeve, "Dont you have something to do?" Su Ruan looked at her delicate white fingers holding Bao Jingyans sleeve, feeling a bitter chill in his heart. Ruanruan had never been close to people since she was young. Her feelings towards Bao Jingyan were not unintentional. He looked toward Bao Jingyan. Bao Jingyan lowered his head and smiled gently: "Good girl, just talk to your Second Brother for a bit." He even pinched her soft and tender cheek, "I promise not to fight." Su Ruanruan was still uneasy, and she pulled on him, signaling Su Ruan to leave quickly. With an expressionless face, Su Ruan said, "Asking about a regr boyfriend, Second Brother has that right, doesnt he?" Su Ruanruan wanted to say it wasnt so, but she knew better that if she denied it, Bao Jingyan would probably take it out on Second Brother. Hes so cruel! Holding onto Bao Jingyans arm tightly like that, in Su Ruans eyes, it seemed even more like a tender affection. With eyes swollen with pain, Su Ruan turned and left. "Ill be waiting for Young Master Jingyan in the small woods ahead." Su Ruanruan bit her lip and looked up at Bao Jingyan: "Youre not allowed to go!" Bao Jingyan bit her little neck with pleasure: "Giving orders now, are you?" She was both ashamed and angry. He patted her,forting, "Dont worry, Su Ruan is also nice to you, I wont do anything to him." She was skeptical. But she no longer had the chance to keep him there, as Bao Mingyuans voice rang out not far away: "Ruanruan?" Chapter 50 Mrs. Gu, Mysteriously Affectionate

Chapter 50: Chapter 50 Mrs. Gu, Mysteriously Affectionate

Ruanruan bit her lip as she nced at Bao Jingyan, then quickly dashed out. "Uncle, Im here." Bao Mingyuan smiled, "Where did you run off to? Took a while to find you." Ruanruan responded absentmindedly. In her heart, she was always thinking of her second brother. She did not notice that Bao Ziqi was also by Bao Mingyuans side. His eyesnded on her soft lips. Those lips, soft and tender like jelly, but too crimson. As if someone had kissed them recklessly. The thought pricked Bao Ziqi. Slightly disgruntled. Bao Mingyuan cheerfully said, "You disappeared in the blink of an eye!" At this time, Mrs. Bao said with a smile, "It so happens that we met Mrs. Gu, and your uncle wanted you to meet her." Mrs. Gu, the wife of Gu Yuanpei, the Gu Family primarily engages in import and export trade and is very sessful in business. Mrs. Gu took a liking to Ruanruans painting at the charity sale and happened to meet her on campus, so she wanted to meet her. After a word from Mr. and Mrs. Bao Mingyuan, Ruanruan noticed the beautiful middle-ageddy standing beside them. Very beautiful, and very kind-looking. At this moment, Mrs. Gu was smiling kindly at Ruanruan. For some reason, Ruanruan felt a strange familiarity with Mrs. Gu, especially the kindness in her eyes and brows. Ruanruan liked Mrs. Gu and approached her softly, saying, "Hello, Mrs. Gu." Mrs. Gu took her hand, her eyes filled with indescribable affection. After a moment, she turned to Mrs. Bao and said, "This is Ziqis little cousin, right? Very lovable indeed." Hearing this, Qionglins face changed dramatically. Bao Mingyuan chuckled, clearly pleased. Mrs. Bao immediately said, "The children are still young, its too early to speak of certain matters." Mrs. Gu understood. She truly adored Ruanruan, and thus slid a jade bracelet off her wrist onto Ruanruans hand. The jade bracelet was emerald green and clearly very valuable. Beside her, Qionglin was consumed by jealousy! Why should Ruanruan, an orphan, get such attention from Mrs. Gu? Clearly, she was the legitimate daughter of the Su Family, and clearly, she was Bao Ziqis girlfriend! She fixated on Ruanruan, thinking to herself, This orphan girl had never seen anything so nice before, right? She must be too eager to ept it and disgrace the Bao Family! With a coldugh in her heart, she waited for Ruanruans embarrassment. But unexpectedly, Ruanruan refused, "This is too valuable, Mrs. Gu!" Even Bao Mingyuan remarked with a smile, "Mrs. Gu, you tter Ruanruan too much." Mrs. Gu, after a moments thought, felt she had been too presumptuous and took the bracelet back. She then kindly added, "Do visit my home when you have time." Ruanruan softly agreed. Mrs. Gus gaze lingered on her face, making Ruanruan feel somewhat embarrassed. After a while, Mrs. Gu snapped back to reality, apologizing, "Seeing you reminds me uncontrobly of my lost daughter, who would be about your age if she hadnt gone missing." She spoke with a saddened expression. Ruanruan, having lost her mother at a young age and deeply craving familial affection, softly held Mrs. Gus hand and offered a few words offort. Mrs. Gu perked up, slightly embarrassed, she chuckled, "Didnt mean to make a scene!" She sighed, "My child was beautiful; I hope the family that took her in treats her well. She would be of college age by now." She was genuinely feeling mncholic today, and those with her couldnt help butfort her. Mrs. Gu managed a smile, spoke a few more words with Ruanruan and then left. Chapter 51 - Fifty-One: I Will Make Your Heart Ache! I Will Make Your Heart Ache!

Chapter 51: Chapter Fifty-One: I Will Make Your Heart Ache! I Will Make Your Heart Ache!

As soon as she left, Bao Jingyuan couldnt help but remark with distaste, "Su Ruanruan, you really know how to climb the socialdder. Are you looking down on our Bao Familys status?" She let out a mockingugh, "The affectionate disy between you and Madam Gu earlier would have fooled anyone into thinking you were mother and daughter!" Su Ruanruans lips quivered. This time, Mrs. Bao spoke out: "Jingyuan, watch your words! Madam Gues from a prestigious background, and the Gu Familys import and export business is doing very well. Many people are eager to establish a rtionship with them!" Bao Mingyuan smiled faintly, remaining silent. This was precisely why he married Qi Meiyu after his wifes death; Qi Meiyu was very understanding and considered the Bao Familys interests. As expected, Qi Meiyu continued, "Since Madam Gu is fond of Ruanruan, we should send an invitation and ask her to attend the ball! Mr. Gu cherishes his wife so he mighte along too." She smiled softly, "Doesnt this bring the rtionship a little closer?" Bao Mingyuan stroked his wifes arm in approval, "My wife is absolutely right." Mrs. Bao had other ideas in her heart. It was fine to invite Madam Gu, but afterwards, she would not allow Su Ruanruan to interact with her. She intended to groom Su Qionglin. Su Qionglin was to be her future daughter-inw. As for Su Ruanruan, she was just a disposable piece to be used and discarded. Due to Madam Gus appearance, the luncheon at the Bao Family house took on a different vor. The elderlydy, having heard that Su Qionglin was alsoing, feigned illness to avoid attending, and Bao Jingyan also called to say he had matters to deal with at thepany. When Bao Mingyuan hung up the phone, he was visibly worried, "Jingyan wont make it either, its probably because the experiment isnt going well." Su Ruanruan was preupied with whether or not he had harmed her second elder brother, so her meal was tasteless. After enduring till the end, everyone left. When she was alone, Su Ruanruan called Su Ruans phone. Nobody answered after several attempts. She then called Bao Jingyans mobile, and after a few tones, it was picked up. His voice was hoarse and gravelly from the other side, "Have you eaten?" Su Ruanruan asked tentatively with a bitten lip: "Where are you?" On the other end, Bao Jingyan sat on the vi couch with a cigarette in his mouth, chuckling softly: "At home." He coaxed in a low voice: "Come over and have dinner with me." Su Ruanruan, with her head hanging low, persisted: "What did you do to my second brother?" "We just had a little exchange," Bao Jingyans voice grew even huskier, "Youre so concerned about others, why dont you care for your man?" "Shameless!" She was both embarrassed and infuriated, tempted to hang up the phone. Bao Jingyans voice became gentler: "Ive sent the driver,e over in the car." She wanted to refuse, but as she looked up, a car had already stopped in front of her. The driver got out of the car, simple and polite: "Miss Su, Young Master Jingyan sent me to pick you up." Su Ruanruan didnt want to go. But the driver scratched his head, looking troubled: "Young Master said if Miss Su cant be persuaded, I dont have toe to work tomorrow." "Hes a tyrant!" eximed Su Ruanruan angrily. In the end, she still got into the car. The driver closed the car door for her, then jogged to the other side, got in, and started the vehicle. He smirked to himself: Young Master Jingyan really knew how to handle Miss Sus tender heart. The ck limousine swiftly brought Su Ruanruan to Bao Jingyans vi, and as Su Ruanruan got out, the butler greeted her respectfully: "Sir is waiting for Miss Su to start the meal." Su Ruanruan, with her small handbag, walked into the hall. Bao Jingyan leaned on the sofa reading a magazine, now dressed in white house attire. Handsome and young. Except for a scar at the corner of his mouth. Su Ruanruan was furious, "Bao Jingyan, how childish can you be!" Throwing the magazine aside, Bao Jingyan watched her quietly for a while before slowly asking: "Are you worried about me or your second brother?" "Of course, its my second brother," she said, which struck a nerve in Bao Jingyan. With one pull from him, she toppled into his arms. Then, his lips closed in to kiss her, heedless of his own pain. "Ill make you worry!" "Wuu... Bao Jingyan... let me go!" "Let you worry! Ill make sure you do!" ... His dark eyes fixed on her. Deep and enigmatic, betraying no emotion. Chapter 52: Good girl, don鈥檛 cry anymore

Chapter 52: Chapter 52: Good girl, dont cry anymore

Su Ruanruan gasped for air in his embrace, fussing for him to let her go. His arms forcefully held her tight, and after a while, he gritted his teeth and said softly, "I can be even more of a bastard." Having said that, he actually picked her up and headed upstairs. Su Ruanruan was terrified. She pounded on his arms with all her might, crying and making a scene: "Bao Jingyan, what are you doing! Let me go!" Although she was young, she knew what a man intended when he carried a girl to his bedroom, and she desperately tried to stop him from having his way. Bao Jingyan had been provoked by Su Ruan today. He remembered Su Ruan challenging him with the words, "Ruanruan is not my biological sister, why cant I like her?" Not a biological sister... That became a thorn in Bao Jingyans heart. Su Ruanruan was cold by nature and not close to people, but she trusted Su Ruan. And Su Ruan wasnt rted to her by blood! The very thought made Bao Jingyans blood boil! He carried her, kicked open the door to the master bedroom, then kicked it shut. The heavy solid wood door muffled most of the sound, but the crying and shouting still reached the ears of the servants downstairs... "I hate you to death." "Bao Jingyan... you cant do this..." ... The servants downstairs exchanged nces. Miss Su, such a refined youngdy; was the master being too harsh on her? After an indeterminate amount of time, sounds of a door opening came from the second floor. d in a bathrobe, Bao Jingyan came downstairs. The corners of his mouth turned up slightly, indicating he was in a very good mood. He went to the kitchen, got some food, and took it upstairs on a tray. Pushing open the door, the sealed bedroom was filled with a subtle fragrance. Su Ruanruan curled up on the couch, covered with only a mens shirt. The hem of the shirt barely covered what shouldnt be seen, but the exposed legs were slender and pale, provoking pity. Bao Jingyan set the tray on the coffee table, sat next to her, and tenderly hooked her scattered hair strands behind her ear. His motion was very gentle. "There, see? Nothing really happened! And youre still crying?" While saying this, he yfully tapped her little nose. Su Ruanruan swatted away his hand, still face down, sobbing quietly, unwilling to speak to him. He had held her before, but never like today His animal instincts took over! Bao Jingyan was in a good temper at the moment, and after coaxing her for a long time to no avail, he simply picked her up: "Have something to eat with me." Acting out, she said, "Ive already eaten." "But I havent had my fill," Bao Jingyan nibbled on her little cheek. For some reason, Su Ruanruans face turned red all of a sudden. Like a cooked shrimp. Bao Jingyan looked at her fresh and lovely face, feeling his heart stir again. He leaned over, his forehead against hers, and murmured, "How much longer before you grow up?" Su Ruanruan bit her lip and pushed him away: "I dont know what youre talking about!" But she knew. Bao Jingyan was a mature man. Just now, that was far from enough for him! Yet she was afraid of him, terrified of his passionate demeanor. As though he could swallow her whole. The thought of earlier made the rims of her eyes redden again, on the verge of tears without actually crying. Bao Jingyan felt a bit of heartache, yet satisfied. With one hand, he held her, with the other, he fed her. "The new chef made this truffle fried rice, its pretty good." He patiently and tenderly fed her, bite by bite. Like a husband, yet also like an elder. Su Ruanruan sat in his arms, her face as clean as Song Xue white plum blossoms, her little nose red from crying. Delicate and tender. She only ate half of the te before refusing to eat more. Bao Jingyan held her and finished the rest. After eating, they finally turned to serious matters. Chapter 53: If Not Marrying Me, Then Who?

Chapter 53: Chapter 53: If Not Marrying Me, Then Who?

He teased her to speak, "Did you meet Madam Gu Yuanpei today?" Su Ruanruan didnt want to talk, but she wanted to say a few words about Madam Gu. She leaned against his chest, tearfully saying how wonderful Madam Gu was and how awful Bao Jingyan was. Her voice was tender and as coquettish as it could be. Bao Jingyan pulled her ear and blew on it, "If you really dont like it, why were you holding onto me so tightly just now?" He pulled down her bathrobe slightly and pointing to a scratch on his shoulder, he asked, "Who did this?" Su Ruanruan, with her thin skin, felt both ashamed and aggravated. She started to fuss about going home. It was a rare opportunity to be alone, and Bao Jingyan certainly didnt want her to leave. He held the young girl and coaxed her for a long time, kissing her again when her tantrum eased. Su Ruanruan was dazed for a long while. By the time she came to her senses, a cool feeling wasing from her wrist. She looked down to see a string of exquisite bracelets on her wrist. Purple gems. "Its amethyst," he whispered tenderly by her ear, "It matches Ruanruan the best." Amethyst... it was the first time she had heard of it. But she knew it was too valuable. She did not dare to keep it and wanted to take it off. Bao Jingyan held her hand, his dark eyes full of emotion, "Wear it, dont take it off." "People might suspect," she pleaded softly. She couldnt leave the Bao Family yet, nor could she let others discover her rtionship with Bao Jingyan. She needed to enter the Dijing Research and Development Department, then get into Tongsheng Hospital; there were still truths she needed to uncover. Seeing her plea like this, Bao Jingyans heart softened a bit. He kissed her lips tenderly and said, "You can take it off when you get home, just keep it otherwise." He added, "This is my engagement gift for Ruanruan." She blushed at once, examining the brilliant amethyst. She was delighted, but he was so hateful. Besides, she hadnt thought about getting married. Guessing her thoughts, Bao Jingyan whispered by her ear, "Ive already touched you, who else would you marry?" He thought of Bao Ziqi and Su Ruan, feeling dissatisfied, and his grip tightened. Su Ruanruan yelped in pain. Bao Jingyan bit her little ear, "Dont think about your second brother anymore." With a malicious intent, he added, "Even if your brother is great, hell eventually look for a sister-inw for you." Although Su Ruanruan was angry with him, she still asked, "What did you do to my second brother?" "What could I possibly do?" Bao Jingyan said it lightly, "Just gave him a ck eye, probably cant attend school for a few days." Su Ruanruan was both angry and anxious, trying to break free from his embrace. "Why run?" Bao Jingyan held her back. Su Ruanruan bit her lip. "I need to check on my second brother." "Is the affection that strong?" Bao Jingyans words were dripping with jealousy. This silly girl still doesnt know shes not from the Su family. He naturally wouldnt reveal that, why should he make things easier for Su Ruan? Su Ruanruan calmed down, and after a moment, she said, "I need to go back." She had been out for half a day, which was improper. Bao Jingyan was reluctant to let her leave, kissing her little cheek, "Stay and have dinner with me before you go, hmm?" Afraid that she wouldnt agree, he added, "A few doctors from thebs areing over for a meeting soon, dont you want to listen?" Su Ruanruan was extremely conflicted. She wanted to listen, but what did her being here with him imply? Bao Jingyan didnt care, yfully tweaking her nose: "Bao Ziqi and Su Qionglin are already sleeping together, you dont have any rtion with him. We are together openly and rightfully." Chapter 54 - Fifty-Four: Miss Su Proposes Improvements

Chapter 54: Chapter Fifty-Four: Miss Su Proposes Improvements

She deliberately argued: "Why do you still care about him?" Bao Jingyan let go of her, stood up, and walked towards the changing room. After a moment, he turned back and gently smiled: "Why do I care, dont you know?" Su Ruanruans cheeks uncontrobly flushed again. She also hated herself. He was domineering, he bullied her. Yet, she didnt dislike it that much. Bao Jingyan went to the dressing room and changed his clothes, and when he came out, he also took her clothes. They got dirty during the previous chaos, she was so upset that she cried and feared losing face, Bao Jingyan personally washed and dried them for her. He took the clothes and wanted to help her change, but Su Ruanruan refused. "Turn around," she said charmingly. Bao Jingyans eyes deepened. Still, he turned around, but when she was changing, he lightly coughed: "What havent I seen before?" Su Ruanruan was infuriated, her little hands trembling as she got dressed. She nned to ignore him forever. Just at that moment, Bao Jingses voice came from the bedroom doorway: "Brother, Dr. Zhong and the others have arrived." Bao Jingyan went to open the door and instructed in a calm voice: "Please ask them to wait in the small reception room, I will be there shortly." Bao Jingse nodded. As she left, she caught a glimpse of Su Ruanruan. Lean and delicate, sitting on the sofa, as she swept her ck hair behind her. Her slim, petite shoulders were white and delicate, and her floral dress rested on her slender waist. The scene was indescribably enticing and beautiful. Bao Jingse looked back at her brother, feeling quite speechless. Ruanruan, shes still so young! Bao Jingyan noticed his sisters look and said displeasedly: "Wait downstairs." Bao Jingse couldnt help but whisper, "Shes so young, dont bully her too much." Bao Jingyan watched his sister. She dared not say anything more and hurried downstairs. Bao Jingyan shut the door, turned around: "Come downstairs with me." Su Ruanruan still hesitated. He went over and hugged her from behind, nibbling on her tender earlobe: "You are mine, what are you afraid of?" She blushed, slowly shaking her head. Bao Jingyan smiled, held her hand, and led her downstairs, pushing open the door of the small reception room. Inside, besides the research team, there were Xiao Ran and Bao Jingse. Seeing Bao Jingyan bringing Su Ruanruan in, aside from Xiao Ran, everyone else was surprised. Dr. Zhong, who was quite elderly, couldnt help but say: "Jingyan, is this appropriate?" Doting on a woman shouldnt be like this, should it? With his remark, others agreed. Bao Jingyan took the main seat, his gaze swept around and finally settled on Su Ruanruans face, his voice gentle: "Why arent you sitting down?" Su Ruanruan bit her lip. Bao Jingyan chuckled lightly: "I forgot to tell you all, the proposal for theponent improvement was made by Miss Su." This revtion shocked everyone present. For a long time, no one spoke. Finally, Dr. Zhong was the first to speak, his tone very cautious: "Really?" Bao Jingyan pulled Su Ruanruans arm, letting her sit next to him, and just smiled. Dr. Zhong and the others looked at each other, not saying anything. But in their hearts, doubts remained. Since the asion was not very formal, Bao Jingyan dressed casually. A white shirt with ck trousers, the top two buttons of his shirt undone, sleeves rolled up to the elbows revealing the nice lines of his arms. When he wasnt speaking, he would bite on a cigarette end. Very masculine. Su Ruanruan asionally stole nces at him. He caught her look with a smile that was both teasing and mocking. It was like mocking, yet more like teasing. Su Ruanruans face couldnt help but turn red... When the discussion was almost over, Bao Jingyan turned his head: "You talk to Dr. Zhong and the others." Chapter 55 Don鈥檛 Go to Britain, Stay in Jiangcheng with Me

Chapter 55: Chapter 55 Dont Go to Britain, Stay in Jiangcheng with Me

Xiao Ran timely ced a set of documents in front of Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan flipped through them, voicing her thoughts as she did so. Her voice was delicate, yet piercingly insightful. In the reception room, those dozen or so doctors shifted from initial disbelief to being deeply moved; it was a rapid transformation. Who could have thought that President Baos young niece would have such talent! The problems they had been unable to solve seemed to have feasible solutions when she spoke up. But, it was said she studied fine arts, so how could she be so proficient in the medical field? Then, does Bao Mingyuan know about this? If he knew, would he still turn a blind eye to Bao Ziqis marriage proposal? Bao Jingyan knew what they were thinking and cast a casual nce over them. These confidants understood that this matter was not theirs to gossip about! After Su Ruanruan finished, Bao Jingyan smiled slightly, "Miss Su is the beloved daughter of Academician Su Peiming." Upon hearing this, the doctors immediately showed their respect. Su Peiming had an illustrious career in the medical field and was highly revered; unfortunately, his life was cut short in his prime. Dr. Zhong had once received Su Peimings kindness and couldnt help but get teary-eyed when talking about it. Listening to others recount her fathers past made Su Ruanruan feel both happy and sad. After the meeting, she took the initiative to chat with Dr. Zhong for a while. Bao Jingyan teased her, "You werent willing to participate before, but now you cant bear to let them leave?" Su Ruanruans face turned a slight red, staying quiet. Dr. Zhong liked this young girl and came to her defense, "Jingyan, dont always pick on her." Since she was the child of an old friend, he would naturally take extra care of her. He also asked Su Ruanruan if she was doing well and about her situation at the Su Family. How could Su Ruanruan speak of her warmth and coldness at the Su Family to outsiders? She simply said it was not bad. Dr. Zhong left with a heavy heart. Originally, Bao Jingyan had intended for Bao Jingse to stay for dinner, but remembering the scene he had witnessed upstairs, Bao Jingse declined gently. After everyone had left, Bao Jingyan still sat at the small conference table, reading documents, while Su Ruanruan wanted to run. "Where are you running to? After dinner, Ill take you home." Su Ruanruan nced at the time: "Its almost 7 oclock." Bao Jingyan kept his head down, reading the paperwork, but he pulled her to his side with one hand. "Whats the rush? Are you eager to see your elder brother?" Su Ruanruan, feeling upset, ignored him. Bao Jingyan turned his head, watching her quietly: "The suggestion you made today was very useful. I asked them to revise the experimental protocol." It was then that Su Ruanruan spoke up, "Actually, you already had a direction in mind, why bother having me..." He leaned back in his chair, looking at her with a smile. Su Ruanruan disliked his smile; it felt like a mockery. After a while, he began to speak slowly: "Ive said before, I want to make you a person of significant importance in the Bao Family." At that time, he would marry her. Su Ruanruans face flushed, but she feigned indifference. Any young girl would have a hard time remaining indifferent when a mature and handsome man spoke of marrying her. Especially when they had been so intimate with each other before. Seeing the blush on her cheeks, Bao Jingyan felt moved. He leaned in close to her ear, whispering, "Dont go to Britain, stay in Jiangcheng to be with me." Her nose filled with the pleasant masculine scent of him, and the refreshing fragrance of his aftershave. Su Ruanruans heart raced with a blush. She had never been in love before, and being pressured like this by him, she didnt even know if this was what it felt like to be smitten. She lowered her petite neck, her voice soft, "I havent decided yet." Over this matter, he had been angry and had given her the cold shoulder, but now Bao Jingyan was in such a good mood that he didnt get angry; instead, he tenderly kissed her little cheek, "Then take your time to think!" He added, "Think only of me, and no one else." Chapter 56 - Fifty-six: His Little One is Modest and Timid

Chapter 56: Chapter Fifty-six: His Little One is Modest and Timid

Su Ruanruan still hung her little neck, her small hands fiddling with the buttons on his shirt. That maidens demeanor stirred Bao Jingyans heart. With a sweep of his hand, he pushed the documents on the table aside, then ced her on the conference table. He leaned down to kiss her. Su Ruanruan refused, her little face pressed against his chest, wrapping her arms around his neck to prevent his kisses. "Whats wrong?" Bao Jingyan looked down at her, his voice hoarse beyond recognition. Su Ruanruan remained silent, holding onto his shoulder. Her delicate white fingers, even the nails were pink... After a moment, he kissed her lips gently, "Alright, I wont touch you." He thought that she must have been scared this afternoon! Bao Jingyan sighed inwardly, to be so frightened already, what would she be like on that day. Thinking this, his heart stirred again. But he forcefully suppressed it. His little one is reserved and timid, she needs more nurturing. Bao Jingyan straightened her clothes for her, gave her several instructions before taking her out to dine. The house servants saw his demeanor and naturally treated Su Ruanruan with warmth and politeness. Su Ruanruan felt somewhat unustomed. After her fathers death, she never received a good treatment in the Su Family. Bao Jingyan, usually overbearing, was considerate in this matter. He reached out to hold her hand, whispering, "Youll get used to it eventually." Hearing him say this, Su Ruanruan felt like crying. Bao Jingyan said nothing, only stood up and walked behind her, gently wrapping his arms around her. His embrace was warm. Su Ruanruan didnt feel like pushing him away. The house servants secretly smiled, feeling that the master and Miss Su truly matched each other perfectly. They stayed quietly like this for a while, before Su Ruanruan said in a hoarse voice, "I need to go back." This time, Bao Jingyan did not object. He went upstairs to get the car keys, Su Ruanruan quickly grabbed his arm, "Just let the driver take me back." He knew she was afraid of being discovered, so he took the initiative to say, "I wont drive in." Su Ruanruan let go of his arm, consenting. Bao Jingyan fetched the car keys upstairs, and grabbed a coat as well. Walking back to her side, he draped the coat over her shoulders: "Lets go." Su Ruanruan looked at the coat, he had already started walking ahead. Bao Jingyan felt a craving for a cigarette; he lit one while walking, then sat in the car with the window down, slowly blowing smoke rings. Su Ruanruan silently sat next to him, he then extinguished the half-smoked cigarette. He drove slowly, chatting with her about her experiences in the Su Family. Knowing the reason why Su Ruanruan was willing to stay by his side, after a while he softly suggested, "When the new drug is released, try interning in the development department." She was surprised and bewildered. Turning her head, she stared at him. Bao Jingyan had his left hand on the steering wheel, his right hand holding hers. He said nothing. Su Ruanruan felt a warm flow gently passing through. She leaned back in the seat, her little face rubbing against his coat, as if enveloped by his scent... It turned out, he knew everything. Half an hourter, Bao Jingyans car stopped at the gate of the Bao Family Mansion. Before Su Ruanruan got out of the car, she returned his coat to him; he hesitated but eventually set it aside. "Tomorrow, Ill have the driver pick you up at the school gate," he leaned in and whispered. Su Ruanruan shook her head. Afraid hed be upset, she softly added, "Someone will notice eventually." Bao Jingyan looked at her, silent. Su Ruanruan hesitated, then leaned in and kissed his cheek. After the kiss, her face was burning like fire; she dared not look at him and hurriedly got out of the car. Chapter 57: The Bracelet Found, Worth Over a Hundred Million

Chapter 57: Chapter 57: The Bracelet Found, Worth Over a Hundred Million

Bao Jingyan rolled down the car window, took a cigarette with one hand, and leisurely ced it between his lips before lighting it up. His mood was excellent, and as he blew out smoke rings, his gaze followed the diminutive figure disappearing into the dark night. The Bao Familys gatekeeper had in fact seen, but since this ce was filled with staff arranged by Bao Jingyan, they acted as though they had seen nothing... Su Ruanruan traversed the vast central garden, intending to make her way to the back courtyard. From the hall came the voice of Mrs. Bao: "Is that Ruanruan returning?" Bao Jingyuan leaned out and hummed twice: "Just as we spoke of you, you return! Su Ruanruan, what were you up to skulking around for half the day?" Su Ruanruan had no choice but to enter the hall. Upon entering, she discovered, to her surprise, that Su Qionglin was also there. She was seated right next to Bao Ziqi on the sofa. When Su Ruanruan looked over, Bao Ziqis gaze seemed a bit profound. Sheposed herself and moved her gaze away, speaking to Mrs. Bao, "Is there something you needed, auntie?" Mrs. Bao had an invitation in hand, her tone unusually gentle: "Mrs. Gu is quite fond of you, and after giving it some thought, I decided youd be the most appropriate one to write out this invitation." Su Ruanruans understanding was crystal clear. Mrs. Bao intended to use her to form a connection with Mrs. Gu. Although she was aware, as she was still reliant on the Bao Familys goodwill, she couldnt well refuse. Thus she approached, bent over the coffee table, andposed the invitation. Her handwriting was elegant and crisp. Bao Ziqi watched intently for quite some time. After Su Ruanruan finished writing, she handed the invitation to Mrs. Bao: "Could you please check if its satisfactory?" Mrs. Bao inspected it thoroughly, smiling as she said, "The handwriting is beautiful." She passed the invitation to a servant, instructing them to deliver it the next day. Su Ruanruan felt that her part was over and was about to excuse herself when Su Qionglin suddenly spoke up: "Ruanruan, that bracelet on your hand is quite attractive." Su Ruanruans heart skipped a beat. She looked up. Su Qionglin was leaning on Bao Ziqis shoulder, her exquisite eyes glittering with a subtle malice. "Ruanruan, I recall you never had such a bracelet before." She feigned annoyance as she questioned Bao Ziqi, "Did Ziqi buy it for you?" Before Bao Ziqi could answer, Bao Jingyuan burst out, "The second brother would never buy her anything." At this outburst, both Bao Mingyuan and Mrs. Bao couldnt help but turn to look at Su Ruanruan. Indeed, on her delicate wrist, there was a purple gemstone bracelet. One nce was enough to tell it was extremely valuable. Immediately, Mrs. Baos face darkened. Bao Mingyuan also furrowed his brow, "The bracelet is indeed quite beautiful." Where could Su Ruanruan have obtained such an expensive item? Bao Jingyuan, quick-tongued, immediately added, "It must have been either stolen or gifted by someone." Mrs. Bao murmured in deep thought, "We dont have this item in our house." "Then it must have been given by someone else." ... Su Ruanruan stood there facing usation, feeling utterly cold. Upon her return with a tumultuous heart, she had actually forgotten to remove the bracelet. The household servants, observing the situation, withdrew uneasily. The surroundings became silent and still. Bao Ziqis dark eyes fixed on Su Ruanruan, waiting for her to speak. After a while, Su Ruanruan finally said softly, "Its not anything valuable." Bao Jingyuan, easily deceived, immediately deted, "I thought it was something incredible. Its probably just crystal! Besides, Su Ruanruan, with your shabbiness, you couldnt afford the real deal." No sooner had she finished than Su Qionglin covered her mouth to stifle augh, "Jingyuan, you simpleton." Bao Jingyuan was indignant, "How am I simple?" Su Qionglin smiled faintly, "What Ruanruan has on her wrist is not just some ordinary jewel, its a purple diamond." Purple diamond? Bao Jingyuan, perplexed, asked, "Is it very expensive?" Su Qionglin tapped her forehead lightly, "Thats why youre a simpleton! Ive seen such a gem at an auction once, it was sold for over a hundred million. It cant get any more precious than that." Chapter 58: Split Up! We Must Split Up!

Chapter 58: Chapter 58: Split Up! We Must Split Up!

Bao Jingyuans mouth opened and closed, and after a long time, she finally uttered a sentence: "The bracelet that Su Ruanruan is wearing must be a fake, right?" Su Qionglins gaze fell on Su Ruanruans face, uttering a heart-piercing sentence: "It depends on who gave it." Bao Jingyuan took advantage of the situation and blurted out: "If it wasnt the second brother who gave it, then it must have been some other man." She eximed: "How dare you, Su Ruanruan, not keep to womens virtue! You are cheating on the second brother!" As these words were spoken, the atmosphere froze. Bao Mingyuan reprimanded: "Jingyuan, dont talk nonsense." As the situation escted, he had no choice but to handle it personally. He gently called Su Ruanruan over. Su Ruanruan came forward and took off the bracelet to show him. Bao Mingyuan, being a connoisseur, recognized at a nce that it was a rare treasure. In Jiangcheng, there arent many who could casually give such a gift. His eyebrows twitched violently. The answer was on the verge of emerging. At this moment, he wished he could immediately call over his eldest son and scold him fiercely. Then order them to separate! They must separate! Bao Mingyuans heart was in turmoil, yet his tone remained very gentle. He said to Mrs. Bao: "Please go and invite the olddy here yourself." At this point, he felt somewhat determined. This child could not stay. Departing from the Bao Family, Jingyan would naturally be distant from her. Even so, Bao Mingyuan had already thought of a contingency n... thereafter, he would sponsor the child to study abroad, for three years, at least not to return to Jiangcheng, by which time Jingyan would have married and had children. Mrs. Bao was puzzled by Bao Mingyuans arrangement. She hesitated briefly, then Bao Mingyuan lost his temper: "Go now!" Mrs. Baos heart trembled. Over the years, she had never seen her husband so furious. She dared not dy and immediately went to invite the olddy. Su Ruanruan lowered her eyes, knowing that todays matter was difficult to settle. Bao Mingyuan, he must have guessed something. She thought of her parents who died in obscurity, and the truth she had long sought. All her efforts, were they to be wasted just because of a bracelet? Su Ruanruan couldnt bear it. Her eyes lowered, her long and curled eyshes slightly trembling. After a moment, she had made up her mind. When she lifted her eyes firmly, she met Bao Mingyuans scrutinizing gaze. He sat on the sofa, a cigarette between his fingers. His expression was as still as water. Su Ruanruans lips moved slightly. At this moment, Su Qionglin pretentiously worried, said: "Ruanruan, did the third sister speak out of turn? Do you want me to... exin for you?" Su Ruanruans mind was clear, tonight was clearly Su Qionglin seizing the opportunity to drive her to a dead end. If she could not disclose the origin of the bracelet, not only would she be expelled from Bao Family, she wouldnt be able to return to Su Family either. She responded with a faint smile, "I appreciate the third sisters concern." Su Qionglin seized the opportunity: "I had no idea this bracelet involved so much, Ruanruan, if it was given by some man, just tell your uncle and I think hell forgive you." She hypocritically pleaded on her behalf. Her tricks were not fooling anyone. Bao Mingyuan, feeling irritated, unexpectedly issued an expulsion order: "Qionglin, there are family matters to deal with, its inappropriate for you to stay, go back first!" He instructed the driver to take her home. Su Qionglin felt slighted, her heart full of mixed feelings. However, thinking of Su Ruanruans inability to turn the situation around tonight, she couldnt help but feel relieved. Yet, she was still puzzled, who gave this priceless bracelet? Chapter 59 The Bracelet is a Gift from Sister Jingse

Chapter 59: Chapter 59 The Bracelet is a Gift from Sister Jingse

After Su Qionglin left, Madame Bao helped the olddye over. In the dead of night, the olddy was not pleased to be roused and as soon as she arrived, sheshed out: "What matter is worth such a fuss, to the point of causing chaos at this ungodly hour and disturbing the peace of the household?" She was implicitly criticizing Madame Bao. Madame Bao, uncharacteristically, kept silent. Bao Mingyuan, however, felt somewhat weary and also harbored some resentment towards his mother. If the olddy hadnt brought Ruanruan into the family back then, none of this wouldve happened. He looked up at the olddy without saying a word. After all, they were flesh and blood; that look alone made the olddys heart sink. The olddy sat next to her son, and her voice softened considerably: "Mingyuan, whats wrong with you?" Before Bao Mingyuan could speak, Bao Jingyuan started to chatter away: "What else could be wrong? Su Ruanruan hasmitted theft." She pointed at the precious bracelet and dered: "This is the evidence!" The olddy looked at Su Ruanruan, intending to speak on her behalf, but then Bao Mingyuan shot her a look. His expression was unusually grave. The olddy thought it over and kept quiet. Bao Mingyuan spoke in a low voice, "I asked the olddy toe as a witness." He looked at Su Ruanruan with a gentle expression: "Whoever gave you this bracelet, as an uncle who was once young, I can understand." Su Ruanruan softly replied: "It was given by someone else." Bao Mingyuan didnt expect her to admit it so directly, and he was momentarily stunned. Bao Ziqi, who had been sitting there all along, suddenly tensed his sharply defined facial features. He stared hard at Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan repeated: "It was given by someone else." Bao Mingyuan had harbored some faint hope, but now his heart felt dead inside. Jingyan, he really went behind his back with Su Ruanruan. He silently watched the young girl before him, and after a long pause, finally spoke in a hoarse voice: "Since you and Ziqi are ipatible..." His next line was about to be a blunt suggestion to split up and send her back home. But then Bao Ziqi spoke up: "Its not a problem for her to stay with the olddy." After saying this, he looked at the olddy and spoke softly: "Doesnt the olddy still need someone to take care of her?" When he spoke in this way, everybody was stunned. Bao Jingyuan murmured: "Didnt Second Brother dislike Su Ruanruan the most? Why is he speaking up for her?" She couldnt understand. Madame Bao was anxious! No one knows a son better than his mother; Ziqi seemed to have taken Su Ruanruan to heart. Originally, the olddy had been happy to see a rtionship flourish, but it was clear that now Ziqi was solely enthused. Ruanruans heart wasnt with Ziqi. The olddy had been considerate of Su Ruanruans feelings and hadnt spoken up until now, but she found it necessary to say: "Ruanruan, if you can exin where this bracelet came from, theres still room for negotiation. Your uncle is just worried you might be deceived emotionally." Madame Bao secretly sneered. Who could offer over a hundred million to deceive someones feelings? After the olddy spoke, Bao Ziqi clenched the cup in his hand tightly, suddenly feeling an urge. He wanted to speak up; he wanted to say he was the one who gave her the bracelet. He didnt understand why he feltpelled to do so, but he knew he didnt want Su Ruanruan to leave the Bao Family like this. Just as Bao Ziqi was about to speak up, Su Ruanruan softly said: "It was given by Sister Jingse." At thatment, everyone was taken aback. Jingse? How could it be Jingse? Clearly, the Bao family did not believe it. At that moment, a familiar female voice sounded at the door: "Dad, what are you all doing to make Ruanruan so scared?" Chapter 60: Don鈥檛 Believe? Bao Jingse Has the Receipt

Chapter 60: Chapter 60: Dont Believe? Bao Jingse Has the Receipt

The voice fell, Bao Jingse walked in from the front hall. Bao Mingyuan was momentarily dazed, then forced a smile after snapping out of it: "Why have you returned sote?" Bao Jingse nced at her father, then took the chain from his hand and buckled it onto Su Ruanruans slender wrist. As she buckled it, she said very naturally: "Housekeeper Fu called me, saying that the house was interrogating Ruanruan like a criminal, and I felt uneasy and came over. Indeed, its all about this bracelet." She fastened it and admired it, "I gifted it, doesnt it match Ruanruan perfectly?" "You gifted it?" Bao Mingyuan furrowed his brows, still unconvinced. Bao Jingse nodded: "Yes, I gifted it! I bought it and found it unsuitable for me, so I gave it to Ruanruan." She added purposefully, "Ruanruan is family, Dad, you wouldnt be begrudging about a bracelet, right?" Bao Mingyuan choked. Of course, he minded... It was worth over a hundred million! However, he naturally wouldnt say that, not wanting to undermine his own dignity. At this moment, Bao Jingyuanined discontentedly: "If its unsuitable, you could have gifted it to me, Su Ruanruan is just an outsider." Bao Jingse smiled faintly: "How is she an outsider? The olddy would be the first to be unhappy with that statement." After the suspicion earlier, the olddy now felt reassured with Bao Jingses exnation. Even if Jingyan cared about Ruanruan, he wouldnt act so hastily. Moreover, Ruanruan didnt seem like she would like Jingyans overbearing nature, she seems so delicate! Thus, she believed that the bracelet was a gift from Jingse. Now that Bao Jingse put it this way, she casually said: "How is Ruanruan an outsider? Didnt you see how anxious Ziqi was just now? I think if Jingse hadnt arrived in time, Ziqi might have yed the hero to save her." The olddy joked,ughing to herself. She nced at her son, implying that there was no harm done, so as not to frighten the children. With things havinge this far, Bao Mingyuan was also unable to say much. But did he believe it? Not at all! As Jingses father, it wasnt appropriate for him to say much, but he gave Qi Meiyu a meaningful look. Mrs. Bao, who was on the same side as him, also hoped Su Ruanruan would leave the Bao Family. Given how her son acted earlier, it was clear he was interested in Su Ruanruan. Thus, even at the risk of offending the olddy, Mrs. Bao had to speak up: "Jingse, this matter is serious." She smiled gently: "Could you present some proof? Otherwise, Im afraid Ruanruan cant fully clear her suspicion." Bao Jingse had always disliked her stepmother, she sneered: "Why does aunts words make me feel like I have no say in the Bao Family?" Mrs. Bao was rebuffed, her face stiffened. "Jingse, your aunt merely asked in passing, why are you so angry?" Bao Mingyuan tried to smooth things over. He then turned the conversation, continuing to press on: "However, your aunt isnt wrong! This matter concerns the rtionship between Ziqi and Ruanruan." In his words, he unexpectedly brushed Su Qionglin aside. Bao Jingses smile grew colder: "Are you essentially asking for a receipt?" She turned sideways: "Housekeeper Fu!" Housekeeper Fu, who hade with Bao Jingyans mother as part of her dowry, emerged from nowhere, her posture demure: "Young mistress." Seeing Housekeeper Fu always pained Bao Mingyuan as it reminded him of histe wife. Bao Jingse softly ordered: "Take a trip to my secretary and bring the receipt over, otherwise, some people wont be at ease." Housekeeper Fu rubbed her hands on her clothes: "Alright, Ill go immediately." She was a clever person, having been the one to send the message earlier. She also understood that the bracelet on Miss Sus wrist was gifted by young master Jingyan, and Miss Jingse was merely covering up. Chapter 61: Ruanruan, Reminds Him of His Deceased Wife

Chapter 61: Chapter 61: Ruanruan, Reminds Him of His Deceased Wife

Before Sister Fu left, she stealthily nced at Su Ruanruan. The young girl had been wronged but remainedposed. Sister Fu was slightly moved: This child is worthy of Master Jingyans protection. Thus, the one whom Master Jingyan vows to protect, Sister Fu will protect as well. Sister Fu left, and Madam Bao felt a chill throughout her body. Sun Weilian was dead, but her spirit lingered on. Her servants were still around. Those people had protected the siblings as they grew up into fierce and ambitious individuals. She had nowhere to start her attack. Madam Bao watched Madam Bao intently, and upon seeing her restrained demeanor, sneered coldly. But when she turned to face Su Ruanruan, her tone softened considerably, "Why are you still standing? Has something so trivial scared you like this?" She sat down with Su Ruanruan, saying, "It was just a small matter, and they were interrogating as if they were questioning a criminal. They forgot the time when Ziqi wasnt home, and you were cherished as a lucky charm, and when the olddy had leg pains, and you took meticulous care of her, everyone in the family alsopletely forgot." Su Ruanruan gently shook her head. Bao Jingse felt utterly helpless: "Its because youre too soft-hearted that you get bullied." With these words, she scolded all the members of the Bao Family, especially Bao Mingyuan, who touched his nose, feeling rather ufortable. It wasnt because of Su Ruanruan, but rather he was reminded of his deceased wife. Histe wife, Sun Weilian, was the most famousdy from a prestigious family in the south. She was beautiful and gentle. In this respect, both Jingyan and Jingse did not resemble their mother; instead, they inherited his domineering character. He wronged Sun Weilian; while she was pregnant with Jingse, he had an affair with Qi Meiyu. At that time, Qi Meiyu was his secretary. Moreover, not long after, Qi Meiyu also became pregnant andter gave birth to Ziqi. He had always kept Qi Meiyu outside the home. After Jingyuan was born and Weilian passed away with resentment, the next year he married Qi Meiyu. Contemting the past, Bao Mingyuans eyes became somewhat moist. And looking at Jingse, he felt guilt towards her as well. He had neglected Jingse too much when she was young, and after she had grown up, unfortunate things happened... Jingse wasnt close to him; he had let down both siblings. Bao Mingyuan sighed softly. He felt tired. Raising his eyes again, he looked at Su Ruanruan. For a moment, he seemed to see Sun Weilian in her. This child resembled her mother even more than Jingse. Bao Mingyuans dejection did not go unnoticed by Madam Bao. The situation originated from her husband; it was he who wanted to conduct the investigation, and now, as he took on the role of the good person, it made her seem like the bad one inside and out. Whats more, the expression on his face was clearly one of yearning for Sun Weilian! She felt extremely unhappy in her heart... But no matter how unhappy, she had to apany him. Because the olddy was eagerly waiting for the receipt, to clear Su Ruanruans name. Indeed, half an hourter Sister Fu brought the receipt, and even Bao Jingses name was written on the shopping receipt, which surprised Su Ruanruan herself. Was this something Bao Jingyan had already nned for? So, thats why he wasnt afraid? After the olddy had read the receipt, she angrily mmed the table: "Now what do you have to say?" She was so enraged that she even cursed Bao Ziqi: "It was clear that it was Ziqi and that third girl from the Su Family who were indecent. Instead, they want to frame Ruanruan! In what way is Ruanruan not meeting your and your husbands expectations that you have to harm her like this?" The olddy was furious, firmly believing that Madam Bao insisted on driving away Su Ruanruan, also deliberately to make herself unhappy. Immediately, she scolded harshly, and the Bao Mingyuan couple didnt dare to utter a sound. In the end, the olddy took Bao Jingse and Su Ruanruan to spend the night in her small courtyard. Bao Ziqi watched the retreating figure of Su Ruanruan... "Ziqi, follow me to the study." Bao Ziqi came to his senses and after a moment proceeded to the first-floor study. He pushed open the door, Bao Mingyuan was visibly irritated, holding an unlit cigarette between his fingers. Bao Ziqi leaned over to light it for him, his voice a soft rasp: "Dad, whats happened to you?" Chapter 62 Ziqi, you like Ruanruan, right?

Chapter 62: Chapter 62 Ziqi, you like Ruanruan, right?

Bao Mingyuan took a deep drag on his cigarette, his body slumping against the leather chairback. He was momentarily lost in thought before he said to his youngest son, "Ziqi, you only get one chance to choose a wife." Bao Ziqi furrowed his brows. Bao Mingyuan took another puff of his cigarette, closed his eyes, and slowly exhaled the smoke from the corner of his mouth. His voice was indistinct, "You like Ruanruan, dont you?" Bao Ziqi didnt make a sound. Bao Mingyuan opened his eyes, quietly watching his youngest son... He said in a raspy voice, "I gave the Imperial View to Jingyan! Youve been learning art since you were young, I know youre not convinced in your heart." "Why bring this up, Dad?" Bao Mingyuan covered his eyes with a hand, falling silent for a long while before murmuring, "Dad just hopes that all of you will be well, Jingyan, Jingse, you, and Jingyuan. All of you are my children." He dropped his arm, looking directly at his second son, "Originally, I thought Ruanruan would be mypensation to you." In fact, wasnt she also apensation for himself? The girls every action, so much like Weilian. If Ruanruan could be with Ziqi, Bao Mingyuan felt he would be fulfilled. He expressed it inly; in fact, he had seen his sons heart. His son was now just like him back in those days, loving this one, yet unable to let go of that one... Bao Mingyuan sighed softly, ultimately choosing not to say much more. He waved his hand, "Go get some rest! You decide your own matters." Bao Ziqi didnt leave right away, sitting briefly in the study before he left. Passing by the bedroom that used to belong to Su Ruanruan on the second floor, he paused in his steps. He remembered that night, when he barged into her bedroom and saw her only in a slip. She pretended to be calm, while actually flustered with indignation. Back then, he thought she was trying to seduce him, which was utterlyughable. Standing in the dark night, he pondered: Since when were Jingse and Su Ruanruan so close? As he was thinking, Bao Jingyuan tiptoed down from upstairs, softly calling, "Second brother." "Why arent you asleep?" Bao Jingyan pouted unhappily, "Jingse sis bought Su Ruanruan such an expensive bracelet, second brother, and I didnt get one." Bao Ziqi couldnt be bothered to listen to herints and pushed open the door to his own bedroom to enter. He didnt even turn on the lights, but went straight to the sofa in front of the window and copsed onto it. Pensive. Bao Jingyuan snuggled over, "Second brother." A hint of resentment flickered within her: she was the legitimate daughter of the Bao Family, and she couldnt becking what Su Ruanruan had. Bao Ziqi was silent for a moment before asking, "You want a bracelet?" In a small voice, Bao Jingyuan said, "Its really pretty! I told Mom, but Im sure she wouldnt buy it for me." Bao Ziqi nced at her, his voice indifferent, "You might not be able to buy it." With that said, Bao Jingyuan knew in her heart that her second brother had agreed. She hugged her second brothers face and nted a forceful kiss on it, "Second brother is the best." Having said that, she ran off like a happy butterfly. As for Bao Ziqi, he sat alone in the darkness for a long time, and then, for some inexplicable reason, he became irritated. His father said he liked Su Ruanruan, but he didnt feel that way. He just thought she was a pitiful orphan... * In the small courtyard where the elderly Mrs. Bao lived, Bao Jingse used to live there as a child, right next door to Su Ruanruans room. But this time, when she returned, Bao Jingse went straight into Su Ruanruans bedroom with her. "The room has been unupied for a long time, lets squeeze in together." Su Ruanruan was a bit surprised. After a moment, she softly asked, "Why are you helping me?" Bao Jingse stood in front of the window, looking out at the night for a while before answering her question, "Big brother asked me toe." Chapter 63 I Like Him!

Chapter 63: Chapter 63 I Like Him!

Su Ruanruan felt somewhat uneasy as she smoothed her dress. Bao Jingse started speaking in a deep voice: "Actually, I also dont understand why my brother likes you. I always thought he preferred mature women." Su Ruanruan grew even more ufortable, not knowing how to exin. Bao Jingse suddenly spoke again: "My brother asked me to apany you tonight. Tomorrow after school, the driver wille to pick you up." Su Ruanruan remained silent. She was resistant. Today, she had been truly scared. So no matter what, she didnt want to go to Bao Jingyans ce again. The next day after school, she called Su Ruan. Only after the call got through did she find out that Su Ruan was in the hospital. He had broken a rib and would need to stay in the hospital for three or four days. Su Ruanruan was both angry and anxious. Bao Jingyan had been too rough. She avoided the driver Bao Jingyan had sent and took a taxi by herself. The hospital room was quiet and serene. Su Ruan, wearing a white shirt, was sitting up in bed, his head down with a lock of hair hanging over his forehead. In his schrly appearance, there was a touch of decay. Su Ruanruan softly called out "second brother" from the doorway. Su Ruan lifted his eyes. When their gazes collided, Su Ruanruan felt somewhat guilty. It was because of her that the second brother was beaten. "You came." Su Ruans voice was somewhat hoarse, yet unexpectedly gentle. Su Ruanruan closed the door and absently ced down the fruit te. "What did the doctor say?" Su Ruan stared at her profile and said softly: "The doctor said that mans fist was quite hard." After these words, Su Ruanruans eyes became red: "Second brother." Su Ruan stopped her from saying what she wanted to, stretching out his hand to pull her to sit beside the bed. With her head bowed, she was consumed with guilt. Su Ruan faintly smiled: "Second brother is alright." He then said in a low voice: "Did he force you?" That Bao Jingyan may appear bright and dazzling, but he couldnt hide the malice in his bones. Ruanruan was frail, and being with him, she would be at a disadvantage. Furthermore, Bao Jingyans status was noble, and the Bao Family might not agree to Ruanruan entering their family. After thinking it through from all angles, Su Ruan said: "I do not approve of this." Su Ruanruan shook her head frantically. She wanted to find out the truth about her parents death; currently, only by leaning on Bao Jingyan could she get into Tongsheng Hospital. Her second brother doted on her; if she revealed her purpose, he would not agree. Seeing her like this, Su Ruan felt frustrated as if he was unable to shape metal into steel. And a bit of mncholy. Ruanruan wasnt their biological child; she was adopted, and he had liked Ruanruan for many years. He wasnt worried when Bao Ziqi returned because there was Qionglin, but now Bao Jingyan had appeared. Su Ruan felt somewhat chaotic inside. He looked at the young girl in front of him, as fresh and delicate as a painting. Suddenly, he grasped her hand and said in a hoarse voice: "Second brother will take you away, lets go live abroad." Su Ruanruan bit her lip. Even knowing that it would hurt her second brother, she still said softly: "Second brother, I like him." A vein on Su Ruans forehead bulged. He stared at her. Su Ruanruan bit her lip and said it again: "I like him." Su Ruan suddenly seemed to lose all his strength, leaning back against the head of the bed. After a long while, he said hoarsely: "How long have you two been together?" Without waiting for her answer, he continued: "That time you returned home, it was him who apanied you, right? The card I gave you, you never used it, was it because he didnt allow you to?" All this perfectly fits that mans domineering nature. Su Ruanruan felt embarrassed. But she was helpless. She couldnt leave Bao Jingse now. All she could do was to softly say sorry to her second brother. How could Su Ruan bear to me her, only feeling that Bao Jingse had lured her in. He cherished Su Ruanruan, yet he wished for her well-being in every way possible. Chapter 64: Meeting Madam Gu Again

Chapter 64: Chapter 64: Meeting Madam Gu Again

After a long while, Su Ruan let out a light sigh: "If you like him, just spend time with him properly. No matter what, you still have your second brother." He took out a wallet from the bedside table and handed her a card: "Take this. You cant always spend a mans money; otherwise, you wont have any confidence if you ever argue." Su Ruanruans eyes were sore and dry, and the sadness in her heart had reached its extreme. If it werent for the need to uncover the truth, she truly wished to go abroad with her second brother to live. But now, all she could do was watch as her second brother felt disappointed in her. Holding the card, she could no longer utter any words of refusal. Su Ruan didnt keep her for long, letting her go back after about an hour. When Su Ruanruan left the hospital room, her eyes were red as if she were a little rabbit. She was distracted, and unusually careless, identally bumping into someone when entering the elevator. Only hearing a womans light exmation, she looked up. It turned out to be Mrs. Gu. Mrs. Gu was also surprised, followed by a bit of delight. "Its Ruanruan, what brings you to the hospital? Are you feeling unwell?" Mrs. Gu was extremely concerned. Su Ruanruan felt somewhat ufortable and quietly said: "I came to see my second brother." Mrs. Gu suggested meeting him. Su Ruanruan couldnt possibly let her see him and tactfully declined. As Mrs. Gu genuinely liked her, she then invited her to have a cup of coffee. Mrs. Gu was kind and unpretentious, and after hesitating for a moment, Su Ruanruan agreed. Presently, the two went to a rather nice cafe. Mrs. Gu brought attendants, who waited nearby. Seated and having ordered coffee, the noblewoman looked across at the youngdy more and more fondly but also with increasing mncholy. If her daughter were with her, she would be about the same age as Ruanruan. Her expression turned deste, and an attendant murmured beside her: "Madam, Miss Su is still here." Mrs. Gu snapped back to reality, apologetically saying: "Im sorry Ruanruan." Su Ruanruan shook her head. It was still Mrs. Gus attendant who softly spoke: "Madam is not in good spirits today." Probably because she took a liking to Su Ruanruan, the middle-aged woman added: "Ever since the little miss disappeared, madam has not been well and frequently needs to visit the hospital." Upon hearing this, Su Ruanruan felt a soft sympathy in her heart. Young and unsure how tofort this noblewoman before her, she simply ced her small hand on the back of Mrs. Gus hand. Mrs. Gu foundfort, patting her small hand and whispering, "That year, not long after I gave birth, the child was taken away by someone." "The child was very beautiful from birth. Her father named her Yunxi." "Its been so long now, I dont even know how she is!" Mrs. Gu wiped away tears: "All these years, Ive been going to the temple every month to pray to the bodhisattva. Ive given up hope of finding her, I just hope she is treated well and lives without worries." "Madam," Su Ruanruan, deeply moved, tightened her grip on Mrs. Gus hand. Mrs. Gu forced a smile: "I shouldnt be telling you all this, look at me, I cant seem to control myself." Su Ruanruan considerately said, "Madam, if you feel troubled, you can talk to me about it." Mrs. Gu felt heartened: "You are a good child." She didnt want to trouble Su Ruanruan with her own issues, and instead asked about Su Ruanruans studies and the like, inevitably bringing up Bao Ziqi. Mrs. Gu wasnt foolish, everyone in the entire Jiang City knew about the young Su girl entering the Bao Family to tend to the house, but after Bao Ziqi miraculously returned alive, he was seen in public with Su Qionglin That was unfair of the Bao Family. Mrs. Gu felt quite indignant, with Su Ruanruan lightly biting her lip: "Bao Ziqi and I arent like that." "You dont like him?" Mrs. Gu was surprised. Chapter 65: Be good, can I come over?

Chapter 65: Chapter 65: Be good, can Ie over?

Madam Gus surprise was understandable, given that Bao Ziqicked neither family background, looks, nor talent. Without hesitation, Su Ruanruan spoke softly, "I really didnt mean it that way." Madam Gu then smiled, looked up to a confidante beside her, and said: "That must mean Ruanruan already has someone in her heart, otherwise she wouldnt dismiss Ziqi." Her attendantughed along. Su Ruanruans face reddened, and she took a sip of coffee to hide it. Madam Gus face was full of loving affection as she personally handed over a small pastry: "Have something sweet." Su Ruanruan ummed in response and took a small bite obediently. "Youre such a good girl," Madam Gu said with a smile brimming across her face. Looking at the youngdy in front of her, eating delicately, she felt an immense fondness. "Ruanruan, can Ie to visit you at schoolter?" Thinking it over, Madam Gu corrected herself: "I will wait for you in the car outside the school gate, and we can have afternoon tea together." Su Ruanruan also liked her and agreed cheerfully, "Of course you can." Madam Gu felt a surge of affection and couldnt help but stroke her small head: "You really are a good girl." Treated so gently by her, Su Ruanruan felt somewhat embarrassed. Madam Gu wore a knowing smile. Originally, Madam Gu had wanted to invite Su Ruanruan to have dinner together, but Su Ruanruan, fearing she might run into Bao Jingyan again if it gotte, politely declined. Madam Gu did not insist. After parting, Su Ruanruan took the bus back to the Bao Family. Along the way, Bao Jingyan called several times. Still angry with him, she refused to answer. Later, he sent a WeChat message. [Still angry?] [Didnt I ask Jingse to apany youst night, hmm?] [Or are you mad that I havent made our rtionship public? Ille back tonight?] ... Indeed, Su Ruanruan was both angry and embarrassed; he obviously knew that. She didnt want to deal with him, yet she was afraid he might reallye back. So, she still made a call to him. Once connected, Bao Jingyans domineering voice came through: "Why didnt you wait for Old Zhaos car?" Su Ruanruan stubbornly remained silent. Bao Jingyan originally wanted to say something more, but hearing the faint, shallow breathing on the other side, his heart softened and his voice became much gentler: "Didnt I send Jingse to apany youst night? Are you still scared?" "Im not scared." Her voice was stubborn. Bao Jingyan chuckled lowly: "If youre not scared, why dont you just admit it?" Originally, Su Ruanruan was just angry, but now she truly felt aggrieved. Even, a bit whimsical. She bit her lip: "Bao Jingyan, if I admit it, can you marry me?" On the other end, Bao Jingyan was silent for a long while. On both ends of the phone, there was each others light breathing. He was silent, and Su Ruanruan felt even more aggrieved. He wasnt there when she was questionedst night; even if he was, he probably couldnt protect her directly. She felt sadness in her heart, her little neck drooped and the corners of her eyes became moist. Bao Jingyan, sensing her mood, his voice raspy: "Will youe here, please?" "No," she said with a nasal voice. Bao Jingyan felt a pang of heartache, speaking even more gently: "Then, should Ie over?" "Even less so." "Then what would be good?" his voice gently cooed. Su Ruanruan was somewhat petnt: "I dont want to see you." Bao Jingyan let out a softugh, the sound vibrating right by her eardrum. She was both angry and a bit blushed, abruptly hanging up the phone. After hanging up, she walked into the Bao Family Mansion. At this time, the sky was already shrouded in dusk, the sunset setting the horizon aze with red. From the Bao Familys living room, the sound of a piano drifted through. Chapter 66: That piece of music was played exceptionally well

Chapter 66: Chapter 66: That piece of music was yed exceptionally well

Su Ruanruan stood quietly outside, listening for a while. A passing servant said, "Its the new pianist, preparing for next weeks ball." The servant added with a smile, "Actually, young master Ziqi himself is a pianist, but he will be hosting the ball that day." Su Ruanruan had no interest in Bao Ziqis matters and simply nodded to acknowledge. She entered the hall just as the pianist was packing up to leave; seeing Su Ruanruan, he mistook her for a youngdy from the Bao Family and greeted, "Miss Bao." Su Ruanruan smiled gently, "My surname is Su." So, she was not a miss from the Bao Family... The pianists attitude instantly turned cold, and with a nod, he left. The warmth and chill of human sentiment did not matter much to Su Ruanruan; her gaze returned to the piano in front of the French windows. She walked over, her slender white fingers lightly caressing the keys. Su Ruanruan had learned piano, but after her father, Su Peiming, passed away, she never continued. Her piano teacher had always regretted it. She felt troubled in her heart and suddenly wanted to y a piece of music. Seated, she ced her ten fingers on the keys. In a moment, piano music filled the air. It was "Starry Sky," her fathers favorite. The notes under her delicate fingertips flowed in the vast space, as if breathing new life into this gloomy mansion... everything slowly revived. In the bedroom on the easternmost side of the second floor. Bao Ziqi was originally asleep, but suddenly, he opened his eyes. In his eyes, there was a rare fervor. This piano sound... This piece was yed exceptionally well, at least apart from the originalposer, this was the best rendition Bao Ziqi had heard. He looked at the ceiling, listening quietly. His head didnt seem to hurt as much anymore. Just like that, he unknowingly listened to several pieces. He was amazed by the pianists high talent; if such a talented person received systematic training, their achievements would not be lesser than his own. As Bao Ziqi was contemting, the piano music ceased. He sat up, casually put on a robe, and headed downstairs. He wanted to meet the person ying the piano. But by the time he reached the hall, there was no one, only the piano stood lonesomely in front of the French windows. The white curtains swayed gently with the breeze, like a young girl. Bao Ziqi called over a servant. "Who was ying the piano just now?" The servant replied lightly, "It was the pianist invited by the madam, said to be a top student from Jiangcheng Music Academy. But she has already left." Bao Ziqi nodded. Indeed, it was yed quite well. He turned to go upstairs, then turned back to ask the servant, "Do you have her contact information?" The servant thought for a moment and said, "They should have it at the guard house." She asked Bao Ziqi to wait a moment and ran off to get it. Bao Ziqi simply sat down on the sofa, legs crossedfortably and lit a cigarette. Between puffs of smoke, the servant came back with the number. Bao Ziqi extinguished the cigarette, narrowed his eyes, and nced at it. Hao Keke. The servant, eager to please him, whispered, "Shes quite a young and prettydy." Bao Ziqi gave her a look. The servant dared not say more. Bao Ziqi took the contact information and headed upstairs, then halfway up, he turned back and said, "Dont tell anyone about this." The servant swallowed hard, "Dont worry, young master, I wont say a word." Bao Ziqi went back to his room to change clothes and took his car keys downstairs. He was about to leave directly, but after a thought, he decided to visit the olddy first. In the evening, with only a sliver of light left in the sky, the small courtyard seemed particrly tranquil and elegant. Bao Ziqi strolled towards the main house but found his steps halted in the small garden. Chapter 67: Mistaken Identity! The Scheming Woman Claims Credit

Chapter 67: Chapter 67: Mistaken Identity! The Scheming Woman ims Credit

Su Ruanruan stood in the small courtyard watering flowers, dressed in a tender green long dress, with her long ck hair casually draped over her shoulders, looking like a little fairy that had descended to the mortal world. She held a small watering can in her hand, watering the nts while on a phone call. She tilted her head to the side, revealing one side of her fair neck, her voice soft. Bao Ziqi couldnt make out what she was saying, only knew that it must be someone important to her; otherwise, her expression wouldnt be so joyful... His fingers quietly clenched. He watched silently until Su Ruanruan noticed him. Their eyes met. The atmosphere was somewhat subtle. Bao Ziqi walked over to her and stopped in front of her. Su Ruanruans phone call wasnt hung up, just hanging by her side. She looked up at him, "Is something the matter?" Bao Ziqi hummed coldly, then asked her, "Have you prepared?" Su Ruanruan was puzzled, "Prepared for what?" Bao Ziqi felt a bit awkward, but he still gritted his teeth: "The opening dance." Now, Su Ruanruan understood. After a pause, she spoke softly, "I heard from my second brother that my third sister has been practicing ballroom dancing these days. She would probably hope youd invite her." Bao Ziqis expression turned sour instantly, he stared at her intently for a moment, then without a word, brushed past her. Even, rudely bumped her shoulder lightly. Su Ruanruan took two steps back, not taking issue with him. Bao Ziqi went to see the olddy, emergingter with a spring breeze. Passing by the little courtyard again, he paused for a moment, but didnt see Su Ruanruan... The corners of Bao Ziqis mouth quirked slightly, and he walked up to the parking area in front of the main house, opening the car door and getting in. Before driving off, he dialed Hao Kekes number. The person on the other end was ttered, very surprised. Calling him "Teacher Ziqi" at every turn. Bao Ziqi appreciated her talent and wanted to meet her, so he arranged to meet at a very stylish coffee house in Jiang City. After the call, he nced again in the direction of the little courtyard, pursing his lips. Half an hourter, Bao Ziqi met with that highly talented music academy student indeed as the servant described, pure and cute. Of course, she couldntpare to Su Qionglin. And even less so to Su Ruanruan. Bao Ziqi was displeased that Su Ruanruans name popped up in his mind, but that touch of displeasure vanished in a sh. He looked at the girl in front of him, who had dressed up specially, and said indifferently, "Ive listened to your rendition of Starry Sky along with a few other pieces, youre very talented. I want to sign you up and send you abroad for further study, and I will also rmend you at my concerts in the future." For a music student, this was a huge temptation. Bao Ziqi was well-known both domestically and internationally. Hao Keke was incredibly excited, yet at the same time, she felt a sudden pang in her heart. She was supposed to try out the piano at Bao Familys house today, but she didnt y "Starry Sky"... So, who yed that "Starry Sky"? Thinking it over carefully, Hao Keke remembered that when she left the Bao Familys house, a Miss Su had walked in. Could it be that she yed it? And Bao Ziqi mistook it as her performance? She knew clearly in her heart, but she didnt want to miss such a rare opportunity, so she looked at Bao Ziqi with shy eyes, biting her lip gently, "I would like to study under Teacher Ziqi." Seeing her agreement, Bao Ziqi took out a business card and wrote down his assistants number for her: "Contact my assistant, shell arrange everything for you." He spoke briefly and was prepared to leave. But Hao Keke clearly had more thoughts in her mind. She knew Bao Ziqi had a girlfriend, a famous model named Su Qionglin, but they werent married yet, were they? Chapter 68: You鈥檙e giving such an opportunity to someone else?

Chapter 68: Chapter 68: Youre giving such an opportunity to someone else?

Hao Keke stopped Bao Ziqi, a shy expression on her face and her voice soft and delicate, "I will be ying at the teachers house at the dance party in a few days." Bao Ziqi nodded slightly, his demeanor somewhat cold, and walked away. Hao Keke watched him leave gracefully, getting into that car worth millions, her heart throbbing with excitement. She saw an opportunity to climb the socialdder with a top-level musician who was unmarried. Later, bing his student and being with him day and night, she wouldntck opportunities... In her excitement, Hao Keke dialed her best friend to share the news. Of course, she also mentioned that she didnt y "Starry Sky" herself, not without worry. Her friend immediatelyughed, "Are you silly, Keke? Why would you give such an opportunity to someone else? Of course, you should learn earnestly from Teacher Ziqi." Hao Keke smiled, a hint of sweetness in her voice, "Thats what I thought too." After hanging up, she recalled Bao Ziqis lukewarm attitude and felt that there was admiration but not enough intimacy. She felt a bit distressed Perhaps, she should prepare a decent evening gift for the dance party; that way, he might see her differently! But her savings were limited, and her daily living expenses already took up a big chunkwhere would she get the money for a gown? Even a simple gown would cost at least a few thousand! Hao Keke bit her lip, then suddenly thought of the Bao family. The Bao familys butler had promised her a nights pay of two thousand; she could pay in advance and add a bit more to buy a decent gown... Driven by her desires, she cast aside her shame and soon made a hesitant phone call to exin her intentions. Fortunately, the butler agreed. Hao Keke breathed a sigh of relief; soon after, she lowered her head and giggled shyly. * Bao Mansion. After dinner, Su Ruanruan took a bath and continued to pore over the materials Bao Jingyan had given her, highly concerned about joining Dijing Groups R&D department, even though she was currently at odds with Bao Jingyan. Refusing to answer his calls or see him. She didnt blow-dry her hair, letting her wet hair drape over her shoulders, even dampening her pajamas. She looked like the most radiant water sprite. A tall figure silently entered, unnoticed until he pounced like a big tiger from behind and encircled her in his arms, affectionately nuzzling her little neck. "Dont want to see me anymore?" His voice was especially husky. Su Ruanruan was startled, then somewhat annoyed. His return in such a nonchnt manner, what would others think? Seeming aware of her concerns, Bao Jingyan gently nibbled her earlobe, "You heartless little thing, I climbed the wall toe here." She paused for a moment, then grasped his meaning. Yet she was still upset, pushing him away: "Dont want to see you." Bao Jingyan was aware of her anger due to his confrontation with Su Ruan, and indulged her. Just as she tried to flee, he grabbed her slender waist and pulled her onto hisp, taking the materials in his hand, "Not wanting to see me yet working so hard, arent you wanting to stay by my side day and night?" Her eyes teared up, her face turned away, refusing to speak. Bao Jingyan nced at her and then lowered his head to earnestly review her notes. After a while, he murmured, "Even if I had no improper thoughts towards you, I would still hire you at Dijing Group." Su Ruanruan immediately said, "Then treat me as a pure colleague." Bao Jingyanughed and ruffled her hair, "Such an innocent child." His appreciation for her was merely incidental. The world was filled with talents; did he have to like each and every one of them? Chapter 69 - Sixty-Nine: Feeling Shy?

Chapter 69: Chapter Sixty-Nine: Feeling Shy?

She hadnt paid much attention to him all day, and now in his arms, Bao Jingyan threw the documents aside, holding her little face, wanting to kiss... Su Ruanruan was both scared and angry. After everything that happened yesterday, she just couldnt ept him. Her small hands clutched the expensive fabric of his white shirt, struggling with whimpers... "I dont want this, Bao Jingyan, you cant do this..." "Youre filthy!" "Shameless!" ... Bullying her with his face close to hers, Bao Jingyan taunted: "You met Bao Ziqi tonight, didnt you? He even asked you to dance, right?" Su Ruanruan was stunned, only then remembering that she had forgotten to hang up the phone in the evening, and he had heard everything she said to Bao Ziqi. Immediately, she was both angry and anxious: "You eavesdropped on my conversation." "I listened openly and honestly." He pinched her little chin, warning: "Stay away from him in the future!" Su Ruanruan turned her head away, biting her lip: "I cant leave the Bao Family now." "Then dont speak to him." He was domineering, but not without reason. He knew all too well how tempting his little thing was. Su Ruanruan was angry but helpless against him, silently fuming and ignoring him even more. Bao Jingyan sighed: "Really ignoring me?" Su Ruanruan made no sound. Bao Jingyan ruffled her hair, set her down, and then lit a cigarette, taking a few puffs. A mist formed between them, blurring their eyes. Only then did Su Ruanruan speak with difficulty: "Second Brother is very kind to me! Dont you touch him." "If he doesnt think about touching you, I wont touch him." Bao Jingyan flicked the cigarette ash away, his dark pupils locking onto her clean little face. Su Ruanruans voice nasal: "How can anyone get along with you when youre so overbearing?" "Who? Which person?" He countered, without a change of expression, pulling her wrist to drag her close. He sat, and she stood in front of him. Her eyes red, she looked like a little rabbit. Bao Jingyan touched her eyes with his hand, suddenly gentle: "Why arent you talking?" Su Ruanruan was reserved and simply refused to speak. Besides, she wasnt clear on her own feelings for him. Bao Jingyan applied a little force with his hand, seating her sideways on hisp... He lightly grazed her little nose, "Feeling shy?" Su Ruanruan was a bit ruffled, turning her little face away: "I am not." Bao Jingyan didnt ask anything more, merely pinched out the cigarette, and then carried her towards the bathroom... She got scared, her small hands clutching his shirt tightly: "What are you doing?" "Helping me bathe," he dered confidently. Su Ruanruan was furious yet dared not make a scene, only whispering a protest: "I dont want to, Bao Jingyan, you cant do this!" What happened yesterday at his vi embarrassed her; she knew now he wanted to do that kind of thing again. Even though it wasnt really like that, it was almost... Uncooperatively, she kicked her legs, struggling fiercely. But how could she fend off a man in the prime of his youth? In the end, Bao Jingyan got his way. Very pleased with himself, Su Ruanruan scratched him several times in anger. On his shoulders and back, faint bloodstains appeared... After a long time, he carried her out, gently setting her down on the soft bed, his voice raspy: "Im leaving." Su Ruanruan buried her little face in the pillow, not wanting to bother with him. Her mix of shame and anger pleased him. He chuckled softly, then left. After he left, Su Ruanruan clutched the pillow, vexed in thought. If it werent for the sake of joining Dijing Group, she wouldnt do such things for him. Never! Chapter 70: Ziqi, I heard you took a liking to a girl.

Chapter 70: Chapter 70: Ziqi, I heard you took a liking to a girl.

The next day, Su Ruanruan had school. She got up early, and when she entered the main houses dining room, she saw Bao Jingyan. He hadnt left? At this moment, Bao Jingyan was discussing business affairs with Bao Mingyuan. Seeing Su Ruanruan approaching, Bao Jingyan naturally pulled out a chair beside him. It was inappropriate for Su Ruanruan to sit but even more inappropriate not to sit. Instead, it was Bao Mingyuan who chuckled lightly, "Whats this about? Youre being distant with your brother?" Su Ruanruan smiled faintly and sat next to Bao Jingyan. Her head lifted and identally met eyes with Bao Ziqi. She immediately looked away. Bao Mingyuan then continued to discuss some business affairs with Bao Jingyan, mainly about developing a new drug... After finishing the conversation, he turned to his younger son and straightforwardly spoke, "I heard from the housekeeper that youre fond of the pianist your mother hired and even want to take her abroad for further studies?" Upon hearing this, Bao Ziqi looked towards his mother. Mrs. Bao was elegantly wiping her lips with a pristine napkin and spoke indifferently, "Your rtionship with Qionglin is stable, its not suitable to have another girl around." Bao Ziqi frowned, "What are you thinking? Its just because shes very talented in music." Mrs. Baos voice remained gentle, "A girl from such a small ce might be ambitious, it could be troublesome." Bao Ziqi scoffed, "Your concern should be directed towards dad." He was in a bad mood, pushed back his chair, and headed towards the parking lot. Bao Mingyuan did not call after him. Once he had left, he turned to his wife, "Ziqi isnt a reckless child." Mrs. Bao looked at her husband and spoke softly, "Did you know? Last night, that girl called our home, asking for her wages in advance, probably because Ziqi had been in contact with her." Bao Mingyuan frowned, "Is that so?" Mrs. Baos tone became even lighter, "Such people shouldnt stay near Ziqi; its best to send her away sooner." Besides, her son needs to marry a well-borndy, focusing on family background and appearance, not mere talent. Now that things had reached this point, even Bao Mingyuan felt that the young girl was somewhat scheming. He looked at Su Ruanruan gently, "These days after school,e home early and spend more time with Ziqi." Su Ruanruan was unexpectedly named, and with Bao Mingyuans words carrying an implication, she pretended not to understand. But Mrs. Bao red at her husband, "Mingyuan, you forgot, Qionglin is Ziqis girlfriend. I called her toe over more often." Bao Mingyuan wanted to say something, yet thinking better of it, he gave up. He then looked at his elder son, trying to discern any clues from his expression. However, Bao Jingyan was holding a coffee cup in one hand and a newspaper in the other. It was hard to detect anything. After a moment, Bao Jingyan looked up with a faint smile, "Dad, why are you looking at me?" Bao Mingyuan was somewhat disconcerted. Bao Jingyan smiled again and stood up, "Im off to thepany." Bao Mingyuan watched him leave and then shifted his gaze back to Su Ruanruan. His look was contemtive. Having finished her breakfast, Su Ruanruan also rose, ready to head to school. But just as she exited the vis front gate, she saw a ck sedan parked at the entrance. Biting her lip and contemting avoidance, the rear car window rolled down revealing Bao Jingyans distinguished face. "Get in." With many eyes around, Su Ruanruan dared not disobey. She got into the car. Bao Jingyan sat in the back, examining documents, his demeanor noble. Just when Su Ruanruan sighed in relief thinking he wouldnt speak to her, he spoke softly, "What do you think of the matter between Bao Ziqi and that young girl?" "Its none of my business." Su Ruanruan acknowledged she was somewhat cold-hearted. Chapter 71: Su Ruanruan will be with whoever she wants to be with!

Chapter 71: Chapter 71: Su Ruanruan will be with whoever she wants to be with!

Bao Jingyan smiled faintly, not asking anything further. He must have been very busy; after dropping her off at the school entrance, he left immediately, merely mentioning to let the driver pick her up after school to take her to his ce. Su Ruanruan watched his car drive away, and the phone in her pocket started ringing. She took it out and saw that it was a call from Mrs. Gu. Mrs. Gus voice was very gentle: "Ruanruan, are you free this afternoon to apany Auntie for some shopping?" Unable to bring herself to refuse, Su Ruanruan thought for a moment and then agreed. Mrs. Gu was very pleased and they set the time to meet. Coming out of the school gates around four in the afternoon, Mrs. Gus car was already waiting there. Su Ruanruan got into the car. The interior was filled with fragrant breezes. Mrs. Gu was noble and elegant. Su Ruanruan felt slightly uneasy and softly said, "I could have taken a taxi myself." Mrs. Gu smiled at her confidant and said, "This child is too timid. A little kindness has made her anxious." Her confidant, seeing her so happy, also made a few yful jokes about Su Ruanruan. Embarrassed, Su Ruanruan hung her small neck. Her clean little face, as pure as snow and plum blossoms, blushed a delicate pink, looking very pretty. Mrs. Gu watched her in surprise and murmured, "This child blushes so easily, just like I did when I was young." Su Ruanruan lifted her eyes, filled with shyness. Being favored by such a distinguisheddy, she naturally felt embarrassed. Seeing her like that, Mrs. Guughed, caressing the back of her hand, "Alright, I wont tease you anymore! Tonight, youre going to help me pick out a couple of fitting dresses." She thenined, "Your uncle always says I have no taste and dress too somberly! I think the perspective of a youngdy is always more lively, which is why I thought of you." Mrs. Gus confidant smiled: It was clear thedy wanted to pamper this young girl, to buy her dresses. But Su Ruanruan didnt doubt her sincerity and indeed wanted to apany Mrs. Gu. The elongated ck limousine slowly left the entrance of Zhongjiang Academy of Fine Arts, seen by many students. Including Bao Jingyuan. Bao Jingyuan watched enviously as Su Ruanruan got into a luxury car that wasnt from her family. So, had Su Ruanruan really gotten involved with a man? Enraged, Bao Jingyuan immediately called Bao Ziqi. "Second Brother, Su Ruanruan has really been seeing someone behind our backs!" ... On the other end, Bao Ziqi frowned. Afraid he wouldnt believe her, Bao Jingyuan quickly said, "If Second Brother doesnt believe me, just wait and see at the vi entrance tonight." Bao Ziqi: ... Bao Jingyuan didnt care what he thought; she was, after all, going to report to Mom. She was looking forward to the drama tonight! Meanwhile, Bao Ziqi stared at Su Ruanruans mobile number for a long time but eventually gave up. What did it matter to him with whom Su Ruanruan was involved or who she wished to follow? Frustrated, he put away his phone, only for it to ring again. It was his secretary, asking if he wanted to proceed with signing Hao Keke, following the established procedure. Despite Madame Baos opposition, Bao Ziqi hadnt changed his mind; his career had never tolerated interference from women. He uttered just two words. "Continue." After hanging up the phone, he couldnt help but light a cigarette. In the haze of smoke, he squinted, recalling Su Ruanruans expression that morning when his mother mentioned Hao Keke. Indeed, she was untroubled. Mrs. Gu took Su Ruanruan to a renowned boutique. The shop was well-known, and many celebrities would order custom-made dresses here to wear on the red carpet. Su Ruanruan had never been here before and only felt that the lobby was imposing, the interior luxurious, even the air was filled with a faint scent of perfume. Unexpectedly, Su Ruanruan also encountered someone there. Hao Keke. Su Ruanruan saw her, but the other party didnt pay much attention to her. Simply because she was not a Bao, not a Miss of the Bao Family. At that moment, Hao Keke was choosing dresses with a femalepanion... Chapter 72: Those Who Don鈥檛 Know Might Think They鈥檙e Mother and Daughter

Chapter 72: Chapter 72: Those Who Dont Know Might Think Theyre Mother and Daughter

Su Ruanruan apanied Mrs. Gu inside, and Hao Keke also noticed her. Hao Kekespanion asked softly, "You know her?" "Mm, a brief acquaintance." Hao Keke answered indifferently. Then she couldnt help but add, "Not anyone important." Her friend chuckled, somewhat haughtily. Over there, Mrs. Gu asked in a low voice, "Ruanruan, do you know her?" Su Ruanruan spoke softly, "Shes a student Bao Ziqi has taken interest in, might bring her abroad for further studies." Mrs. Gu pondered, "Thats indeed a stroke of good luck." As they were talking, the store manager came to greet them, respectfully, "Mrs. Gu, wee." Mrs. Gu nodded with modesty, "Just here to see if theres anything suitable." She is a super VIP here, and the store manager personally escorted them to the VIP section to pick and choose. The store manager eagerly looked at Su Ruanruan, "And who might this youngdy be?" Mrs. Gu stroked Su Ruanruans hair, smiling, "A junior from our family." The store manager took the hint. This junior seemed to hold a special ce in Mrs. Gus heart, so she treated Su Ruanruan with utmost hospitality. All this was seen by Hao Keke. She bit her lip, unable to fathom the rtionship between Su Ruanruan and the nobledy. Her friend by her side whispered, "Could they be mother and daughter? They do look quite alike." Hao Keke quickly retorted, "How could that be? Ive inquired; that girl is nothing more than an orphan fostered by the Bao Family, not even favored in her own home." Her friend acknowledged with an "Oh." In the VIP section, the store manager brought over two thick albums, smiling broad, "Mrs. Gu, these are all thetest haute couture designs of the year." Mrs. Gu nced at them indifferently, "Do you have anything suitable for young girls to wear?" The store manager answered with a smile, "Yes, I have just the thing, Ill go fetch it." Only then did Su Ruanruan realize the purpose of Mrs. Gus invitation, feeling both moved and a little anxious. "No need, I can prepare on my own." Mrs. Gu took her hand, "I know others always arrange things for you, but this is my way of showing care. Ruanruan, auntie truly cherishes you." She was like a mother. Su Ruanruans eyes reddened. After a while, she tried to speak in a normal tone, "Then lets pick for you first. I can just look at the ready-to-wear outside." "You child!" Mrs. Gu spoke with affection. She didnt quite understand why, but she just felt a connection and a desire to spoil this child. Yuanpei had said it was a transfer of affection, pouring all her feelings for her lost child into Ruanruan, and upon reflection, it seemed true. Their personalities clicked, they sat close and chatted away happily. The store manager brought over some coffee, aiming to please Mrs. Gu, "Madam, this junior of yours looks so much like you; if I didnt know any better, Id think you were mother and daughter!" Mrs. Gu was surprised. Then she looked carefully at Su Ruanruan and smiled, "There is a resemnce." At that moment, she felt an even stronger sense of kinship. Su Ruanruan helped Mrs. Gu pick out two evening dresses, both elegant and a touch sexy, and also selected two sets of jewelry. Mrs. Gu was full of praise, "The perspective of a young girl really is different." She dragged Su Ruanruan along to pick out some ready-to-wear for her. Su Ruanruan, not wanting Mrs. Gu to overspend, picked from the lower-priced section. At this moment Mrs. Gu stepped away to take a phone call... Su Ruanruan carefully browsed and finally chose a white cocktail dress. Over 4000 yuan, price was right. And the style was nice, too. She turned her head towards the store manager, "Ill try this one on!" Chapter 73 - Seventy-Three: Slap in the Face! We Serve Only Miss Su

Chapter 73: Chapter Seventy-Three: p in the Face! We Serve Only Miss Su

The store manager wanted to make more business, lowering her voice: "Madam Gu adores you so much, why dont you pick a couple of haute couture pieces?" She said this confidently, as Madam Gu spent millions every year here, and a few thousand was truly a trifle. Upon hearing this, Su Ruanruan smiled faintly. It is because she loves me that one needs to know the limits. The store manager noticed that this youngdy had excellent potential, a phoenix rising from the fire, and that currying favor now wouldnt go amiss. So, she didnt push further, quickly fetching a small dress to try on for Su Ruanruan. Just then, a womans voice rang out: "I just tried this one and have decided to take it." Su Ruanruan turned her head. It was Hao Keke. Su Ruanruan lowered her gaze and smiled softly. She remembered what Mrs. Bo mentioned this morning; this Miss Hao had advanced a 2000 yuanmission, apparently for buying the dress. Su Ruanruan smiled faintly, indicating to give the dress to Hao Keke. The store manager wanted to say something, but seeing Su Ruanruans expression, she held back. Such a clear-headed child, no wonder shes so loved by Madam Gu. The store manager did not have a good impression of this Miss Hao, but her professional demeanor still demanded she serve with a smile. It was actually a girl next to Hao Keke who whispered, "Keke, could this offend someone? The woman who came in with her seemed quite wealthy." Hao Keke snorted: "If they were really close, why would she choose something so cheap?" The girl alsoughed, slightly haughty. It was true; Keke was favored by Teacher Ziqi, a stark contrast to the girl before them. At that moment, Madam Gu arrived. Seeing the bustle, she asked what was happening. Su Ruanruan replied casually, "Nothing much, we just took a liking to the same dress." Madam Gu nced at Hao Keke, then understood. Hehe, this young girl is throwing her weight around because of her connection to Ziqi! Those in the know realized it was about grooming, those who dont would assume Ziqi had chosen his bride! Madam Gu was not someone to be trifled with; she immediately sought to give Su Ruanruan support. She turned to the store manager: "I would like to give my Ruanruan a peaceful environment to choose her gown." With that, she called over her personal secretary and signed a million-yuan order. The store manager was dumbfounded. Such love, such extravagance. Without even blinking. She, heh, really hadnt misjudged her. This Miss Su was truly a diamond, possessing the ability to make people spend money on her! The store manager immediately took back the dress from Hao Keke, speaking very dignifiedly: "Sorry, we are closed for the day, serving only Miss Su." Hao Kekes expression froze. She couldnt believe that the noblewoman was so good to Su Ruanruan. Wasnt it just willing to spend a few thousand? Now, she dares to spend a million in one go! She couldnt imagine how much love it would take to spend that money. Hao Keke was extremely embarrassed, tears swirling in her eyes, and she couldnt help but feel envious of Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan was willing to let her off, telling the store manager: "This Miss Hao is an acquaintance." The store manager smiled faintly. This wasnt her call to make. It was up to Madam Gu. Before Madam Gu could express her stance, Hao Kekes fragile heart had already shattered, and she turned and ran. Her friend sighed and had to follow. Su Ruanruan found it quite speechless; she really hadnt said much from start to finish... Madam Gu was ustomed to seeing such scenes, patting Su Ruanruans handfortingly: "Dont mind people and things like this." Su Ruanruan smiled faintly. Chapter 74: Mrs. Gu, The Legendary Adulterer

Chapter 74: Chapter 74: Mrs. Gu, The Legendary Adulterer

Later on, the dress was eventually so annoying that Su Ruanruan picked another one. Madame Gu took her out to eat and then finally sent her back to the Bao Mansion. At eight oclock at night, a ck limousine stopped in front of the gate of the Bao Family Mansion. Su Ruanruan turned her head slightly and said, "I am getting off here." Madame Gu reluctantly said, "I wille to see you again when I have time, dont find auntie annoying." Su Ruanruan softly replied, "How could I? I also like Madame." "This child, still calling me Madame!" Madame Gu yfully tapped her finger on Su Ruanruans forehead. Su Ruanruan smiled awkwardly, opened the car door, and got out. After walking just a few steps, she heard a voice say, "I told you, she went off with some wild man." Su Ruanruan was suddenly startled. Then, she saw Madame Bao and Bao Jingyuaning out together. Bao Ziqi and Su Qionglin were actually following behind them. Bao Jingyuan said excitedly, "Su Ruanruan, what else do you have to say?" A limousine like this, Su Ruanruan really knows how to cling to someone! As she yelled like this, Madame Baos face looked displeased. Her voice was calm yet cold, "It seems, you are no longer suitable to stay with the Bao family." Su Ruanruans lips trembled. Madame Bao looked at her son, "Ziqi, say something." Bao Ziqi clenched his fist and remained silent. The Su Qionglin standing next to him stepped forward... that familiar gaze let Su Ruanruan know what was going to happen next. She lowered her gaze and coldly smiled. Sure enough, Su Qionglin pped her across the face, followed by harsh criticism, "Ruanruan, you have disappointed me so much! The Bao family took you in, yet you dared to do such a thing!" Su Ruanruan didnt care about her face; she just looked at Su Qionglin and asked, "Are you doing this for me, or for yourself?" Su Qionglin stopped short. At this moment, Bao Jingyuan yelled, "Qionglin sister is legitimately Bao Ziqis girlfriend, Su Ruanruan, you are nothing but a caretaker for a house of the dead! You are nothing." "Jingyuan." Madame Bao scolded her daughter and then looked at Su Ruanruan, "With such behavior, our Bao family cannot keep you." She made up her mind and called the butler, "Bring Miss Sus belongings, and arrange a car to take her away." The butler felt awkward. Miss Su was the olddys favorite, and more importantly, sir didnt know about this yet! Madame Bao harshly said, "Am I not in charge of this house?" Su Qionglin immediately added, "The Su family cant keep her either." Su Ruanruan looked down and softly said, "Alright!" Suddenly, Bao Ziqi spoke out, "As long as you break up with that outsider..." Su Ruanruan raised her eyes, her gaze clear. Bao Ziqi then couldnt speak another word. Just when the atmosphere was tense, the nearby ck limousine opened. The sound of high heels clicked. A very elegant rhythm. In the darkness, Madame Gu stepped out bathed in the night light... Just now, she had seen everything from inside the car. She watched as Su Ruanruans third sister pped Ruanruan for no reason, she saw how the Bao family treated Ruanruan harshly. She always thought Ruanruan, though not cherished, at least had basic respect. But what did she see? Did this child grow up like this? Madame Gu, having assessed the people, felt heartbroken. Her appearance shocked Madame Bao and the others. Bao Jingyuan was even more shocked. Why was it Madame Gu in the car? Madame Gu ignored the stammering exnations from Madame Bao and directly turned Su Ruanruans face towards her, feeling immense pity, "Does it hurt?" Chapter 75 Su Ruanruan is clearly capricious and cunning!

Chapter 75: Chapter 75 Su Ruanruan is clearly capricious and cunning!

Su Ruanruan shook her head. She had intentionally let Su Qionglin hit her. Madame Gu felt even more heartbroken, she raised her eyes to look at therge family of the Bao Family, her voice resonating strongly: "So this is the kind of life Ruanruan has been living at the Bao Family, where anyone can scold her and anyone can hit her!" Su Qionglin retorted, "Why didnt she exin herself?" "Did you give her the chance to counter?" Madame Gu sneered coldly, "As Ruanruans sister, you dont protect her but instead, youve been pushing her out. Are you afraid that shell steal Ziqi from you? Today, Im willing to ruin my own reputation to ensure, my Ruanruan would rather stay unmarried than marry Bao Ziqi, is that eptable?" She still felt it wasnt enough, and added, "If the Bao Family feels burdened by an extra pair of chopsticks, the Gu Family doesnt mind taking in another daughter." Mrs. Bao was shocked. How could she have known there would be such a drama? How could she have known the depth of affection between Su Ruanruan and Madame Gu? The Bao Family indeed holds the top status in Jiangcheng, but she is Xu Xuan, whose stature among the elitedies pales inparison to Madame Gu. Now, she has terribly offended Madame Gu. Mrs. Bao wanted to say something else, but Madame Gu had already tight embrace around Su Ruanruan: "Come back with auntie!" Tears were held in Su Ruanruans eyes. Madame Gu was also emotional, "You dont have a family, and I dont have a daughter, from now on, you can consider me as your mother." As soon as she finished speaking, everyone present was stunned. Especially Bao Jingyuan, she could hardly believe what she had heard. What, Su Ruanruan was going to rise high and be on the same level as herself? Anxiety gripped her, and Mrs. Bao was also anxious. She had misunderstood Su Ruanruan, and it would be difficult to exin this to the olddy and Mingyuan. She wanted to stop them, but how could Madame Gu easily be stopped? Without further ado, she took her away and dered that Gu Family would take care of the child hereafter. As the ck car drove away, the members of the Bao Family were still standing in the night wind. Mrs. Bao sighed lightly, "Jingyuan, are you satisfied now? Having offended the Gu Family, I dont even know how to exin to your father." Tears swirled in Bao Jingyuans eyes, she couldnt utter a single word. Then, Su Qionglin spoke up, "It must have been a deliberate act by Su Ruanruan." Mrs. Bao looked at her. Su Qionglin gritted her teeth: "Uncle died early, Ruanruan is very good at reading peoples faces! She did it on purpose, she nned against us." Mrs. Bao did not believe. How could an 18-year-old child have such heavy scheming? She didnt believe it, but Bao Ziqi did. Ever since he returned, he had seen all sorts of Su Ruanruans cunning actions. Others might think that Su Ruanruan was a weak and helpless, pitiful girl, but Bao Ziqi never thought so. Su Ruanruan was clearly cunning and shrewd! But even so, leaving like this, Bao Ziqi was still somewhat agitated. Would she evere back to the Bao Family... * In the car, Madame Gu carefully applied medicine for Su Ruanruan, whileining: "She hit you, why didnt you hit her back?" Su Ruanruan kept her eyes down and remained silent. Madame Gu, infuriated yet amused, "Next time Ive got your back, hit her back directly." Su Ruanruan and she were close, so she smiled: "Actually, Ive secretly gotten back at her before, like making a cut in her favorite dress, causing her to trip on the red carpet." Madame Gu was both irritated and amused. "Youre quite bad." Su Ruanruan seemed to want to say something, Madame Gu patted her hand, "I understand." She seriously asked, "Do you want to stay with your aunt?" Su Ruanruan shook her head, "I havepelling reasons to stay with the Bao Family." Madame Gu read her expression, guessing it was a significant issue; she didnt insist but said, "Stay well at your aunties home for these days, theres only an unreliable brother at home, spends a lot, always unclear with female celebrities." Su Ruanruan smiled lightly. Her smile made Madame Gu feel a wave of emotions. Chapter 76 Ruanruan Cannot Possibly Be Our Child

Chapter 76: Chapter 76 Ruanruan Cannot Possibly Be Our Child

That night, Madam Gu took Su Ruanruan back with her and settled her in the room next to her own bedroom. When going to sleep at night, Madam Gu couldnt help but lean on her husbands shoulder and whisper, "Yuanpei, I really want to keep Ruanruan by my side, but that child said she still has things to do." Gu Yuanpei wrapped his arms around his wife,forting her: "I think that child is very determined! Youd better not be rash." Madam Gu gave her husband a look: "Do you know how it hurts me? You have no idea how her third sister beats her, and the Bao Family people, they dont take her seriously at all. Yuanpei, looking at Ruanruan reminds me of our own daughter. If our daughter were to be beaten and scolded all the time, would you feel heartbroken?" Gu Yuanpei remained silent. Madam Gu began to cry softly: "Our child was taken away at Tongsheng Hospital, and Ruanruan is from the Su Family. I always feel like heaven has its own arrangements, sending Ruanruan to our side." Gu Yuanpei couldnt help but say, "You are deluding yourself! Su Ruanruan is the Su Familys child; its absolutely impossible for her to have any connection with us. Its okay to care for her, but dont lose your sense of proportion." Madam Gu turned away feeling unhappy, turning her back on her husband. Gu Yuanpei stared at her back for a long while before embracing her from behind: "Are you angry? Let me apologize to thedy." "Who dares to be angry!" Madam Gu huffed lightly. Gu Yuanpei chuckled softly, "If youre not angry, please, mydy, fulfill your duties." Teased like this, Madam Gu couldnt help but gently punch his shoulder: "Keep your voice down, the child is in the next room." "Just at the right moment with a child nearby, maybe it could even help us have another one," Mr. Gu started to be unseemly. The noble Madam Gu cursed him a few times, calling him an old rogue... Early in the morning. Su Ruanruan had gotten up early. She changed into the clothes Madam Gu had prepared for her and looked at herself in the mirror. She knew that Madam Gu had covered her with a nket during the night. At that time, she was actually awake. But she didnt dare to make a sound. Afraid of startling Madam Gu. Su Ruanruan was in high spirits, straightening her hair before going downstairs. She had just gone downstairs and greeted Gu Yuanpei and his wife when the sound of a car echoed in front of the vi. "Who could it being over so early?" Madam Gu said. Gu Yuanpei didnt think much of it: "It must be Gu Ze. Dont bother with him." Madam Gu then called Su Ruanruan to have breakfast. At this moment, the house butler came over in a hurry: "The Bao Familys eldest young master hase." Bao Jingyan? Gu Yuanpei and his wife exchanged nces. Bao Jingyan? Why had hee? Su Ruanruans face slowly turned red. Madam Gu saw the expression on Su Ruanruans face and asked very gently, "Is he with you..." Su Ruanruan didnt know what to say; she and Bao Jingyan were actually not... While she was speaking, Bao Jingyan had already entered the hall. He was dressed in a ck and white ssic suit, dignified and handsome. Su Ruanruan dared not look at him. Bao Jingyans arrival was abrupt, and he first apologized to Gu Yuanpei. Gu Yuanpei also came to a realization, ordering someone to prepare an extra set of tableware. Bao Jingyan took his seat unceremoniously, and he turned his head to look at Su Ruanruan. After a moment, with a slightly hoarse voice, he asked, "Does it still hurt?" His tone was very gentle. Gu Yuanpei and his wife were startled. This, Jingyan and Ruanruan were actually... They were truly in disbelief. Aftering back to their senses, Madam Gu smiled: "Ruanruan, it seems youve not been wronged." Su Ruanruans eyes were somewhat red; she couldnt exin. Exining it would only make things worse. She felt that she had let down Madam Gu. But Madam Gu didnt mind, patting the back of her hand: "I believe you are a good child." At this moment, Bao Jingyan reached out and touched Su Ruanruans face, only rxing after making sure there was no problem. He naturally engaged Gu Yuanpei in a conversation about stocks and current affairs, looking asfortable as if he were a son-inw of the Gu Family. Chapter 77: Su Family Members, I鈥檒l Fight Them as I See Them

Chapter 77: Chapter 77: Su Family Members, Ill Fight Them as I See Them

Su Ruanruan was feeling uneasy. How could he want the Gu Family to find out? As she pondered in silence, Bao Jingyan poured her a ss of milk and spoke with indifference, "Have some milk." Su Ruanruan bit her lower lip. Mrs. Gu watched the interaction between the two and covered her mouth with a smile. It was truly unexpected; Jingyan, known for being dispassionate, was actually so attentive to a girl. Mrs. Gu held affection for Su Ruanruan, of course, she had to test Bao Jingyan. After breakfast, Mrs. Gu talked with Bao Jingyan privately for a while before letting him leave. When Bao Jingyan emerged, he did not see Su Ruanruan, so he went upstairs to her bedroom. Su Ruanruan stood in front of the floor-to-ceiling window, silently watching the garden scenery. Bao Jingyan came in and closed the door. He hugged her from behind, his voice hoarse: "Why are you doing this?" Su Ruanruans gaze fell. He kissed her neck: "Why let her hit you? I know youre not incapable of fighting back." Bao Jingyan was not a fool. She allowed the Bao Family to misunderstand, let them scold and beat her, just to stay with the Bao Family. He knew she had things to do, but his heart ached. He was also angry. Su Ruanruan turned in his arms and looked up at him, "Bao Jingyan, if you didnt have these feelings for me, I wouldnt need this." It was precisely because she truly had a man that she needed to disguise. It wasnt that she didnt hurt, but she could only endure. She pleaded with him, "There are girls prettier than me, can you let me go, please?" Bao Jingyan tenderly stroked her delicate face, "Behave, dont let others hit you again in the future. Unless you want to see her disappear." He had methods she had seen before, so she panicked, "You wont...harm her?" "She treats you like that, still concerned about kinship?" Su Ruanruan shook her head: "After all, Im from the Su Family, brought to the Bao Family for Bao Ziqi; with no elder sister around, how can I manage?" Moreover, she was not dull; she could sense Bao Ziqis particr feelings towards her. So, the elder sister would be a good shield. Bao Jingyan heard this and frowned. After a pause, he said hoarsely, "I can spare her, but she must be punished a little." Su Ruanruan bit her lip, "Dont be reckless, okay?" But his eyes darkened, he leaned down and kissed her lips... Su Ruanruan was angry and scared, "Bao Jingyan, you..." This was the Gu Mansion, he still dared to act recklessly! After satisfying his craving, Bao Jingyan murmured against her lips, "Mrs. Gu advised me earlier not to bully you." Su Ruanruan gasped for air, "What did you say?" He indulged a few more moments, then replied, "I said, you like me bullying you." She hit him a few times in anger. He was too odious! Bao Jingyan chuckled lowly, then stared at her seriously: "Youre not allowed to let others hit you on purpose! If it happens again..." He whispered something in her ear, and Su Ruanruan was terrified. Her cheeks, flushedpletely red. Bao Jingyan left, and downstairs, he smoked a cigarette with Gu Yuanpei. Su Ruanruan didnt have sses today, so she stayed at the Gu Mansion, keeping Mrs. Gupany, making flower tea and snacks. In the afternoon, a servant from Gu Mansion came to report that Mrs. Bao had arrived. When a distinguished guest came, Mrs. Gu just slightly lifted her eyelid. "I know." The servant was unsure of her mood and looked at Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan smiled faintly, "I must see her at some point." "You, youre just easy-going and easy to handle!" Mrs. Guughed teasingly: "With her treating you like that, isnt it right to keep her hanging?" As she spoke, her voice dropped a bit: "This trip of hers is probably to give an exnation to Old Madam Bao." Chapter 78 Su Ruanruan鈥檚 Background

Chapter 78: Chapter 78 Su Ruanruans Background

Mentioning the elderly Mrs. Bo, Su Ruanruan felt some guilt inside. The olddy was very fond of her, yet she had deceived her. It was indeed Madam Gu who saw further andforted her gently: "At this moment, its also not suitable for you and Jingyan to go public." Just now, Jingyan had spoken to her about it. She was very happy. Ruanruan, to have such great ability! Hearing Madam Gu say this, Su Ruanruan felt quite embarrassed. Madam Gu patted her hand again before instructing the servants, "Please invite Mrs. Bo in." The servants then went to pass the message. In the front hall, Mrs. Bo was sitting down having tea. She was quite displeased. Madam Gu carried quite an attitude, but no matter what, she had to bear it. That old witch at home was just waiting to find fault with her! After the servant ryed the message, Mrs. Bo gently set down her bone china cup and gracefully got up. "You Gu Family surely keep a strict house." The servant merely smiled. Following the servant, Mrs. Bo arrived at the main hall to see Madam Gu sitting there savoring tea. Su Ruanruan was at her side, keeping herpany. The scene was surprisingly harmonious. Mrs. Bos eyelid twitched. She narrowed her eyes, recalling a piece of the past. Back in the day, Su Peiming of the Su Family was famously devoted to his wife, yet his wife produced no child. In her eagerness to have a child, Mrs. Su actually did the ridiculous deed of taking a baby. This incident, Mrs. Bo learned by chance. Therefore, the unknown origin of Su Ruanruan was also a reason she opposed Ziqi marrying her. Su Ruanruan might just be the daughter of somemon household. How could she be worthy of Ziqi? But this child was truly remarkable, to have found favor with the wealthy Gu Family. Mrs. Bo put aside her thoughts and smiled, "I apologize for the abrupt visit, please dont take offense, Madam Gu." She instructed her attendants to present gifts. Madam Guzily raised her eyes, "I wondered who it was, turns out its you!" Su Ruanruan, however, respectfully called out "Aunt Bo," which made Mrs. Bo feel quiteplex inside. Todays Su Ruanruan was not the same as the Su Ruanruan of the past. With the backing of the Gu Family, she was no longer someone that could be easily dealt with. Mrs. Bo forced a smile and spoke with Madam Gu. After exchanging a few words, Madam Gu turned her head to Su Ruanruan and said, "Child, why are you still standing there, go pour tea for the guest!" This statement ced Su Ruanruan firmly within the Gu Family. Mrs. Bo became anxious and, after Su Ruanruan walked away, whispered softly, "Lin Sheng, if you truly like Ruanruan, you can let here over often, but it would be inappropriate for her to actually stay with the Gu Family." "Where is it inappropriate?" Madam Gu took a sip of tea. Mrs. Bo was left with no choice, "I have to give an exnation to the olddy, right?" Madam Gu chuckled. "If you have to exin, then what about Ruanruans face and the respect for her words?" Madam Gu sneered, "You condone your soon-to-be daughter-inw for beating and scolding Ruanruan, you even wanted to drive Ruanruan away, at that time, why didnt you think of exining to someone? How is it that now, seeing Ruanruan being favored in the Gu Family, you tend to look up to her?" Madam Gu, born into a prominent family, has never taken someone like Qi Meiyu, who climbed her way up through affairs, seriously, and her words were quite rude. Mrs. Bo felt quite embarrassed. After a while, she finally said, "Ziqi... should be matched with someone good! Lin Sheng, as a mother, you should understand my feelings." Having said that, she eagerly watched Madam Gu. Madam Gu quietly sipped her tea. After a long time, she asked softly, "Do you truly think that family background is more important than character and talent?" "In your heart, Ruanruan cannotpare to Su Qionglin?" Mrs. Bo sadly said, "Lin Sheng, you dont understand..." Precisely because she is Xu Xuan, precisely because she came from a poor background, she needs a daughter-inw with a decent family background. Madam Gu understood. She smiled faintly, "People have their own ambitions." Mrs. Bo breathed a sigh of relief. Chapter 79: Su Ruanruan, Something鈥檚 Different!

Chapter 79: Chapter 79: Su Ruanruan, Somethings Different!

Right now, Su Ruanruan came over with fruit tea in hand. The young girls ck hair draped over her shoulders, her figure slender and delicate, a pleasing sight to the eye. Madam Gu patted her hand: "Sit down and join the chat." Su Ruanruan sat down beside her. Madam Bao took a light sip of her tea. Slightly displeased. Ruanruan, to act so detached with me! But although she was upset, she couldnt help but bring up an important matter: "When you have time, go see your third sister." Su Ruanruans heart skipped a beat. What happened to the third sister? Madam Bao said helplessly: "Your third sister injured her foot in a misstep during todays catwalk! The doctor said she has to rest for at least a month, and she shouldnt even think about catwalks for half a year." Upon hearing this, Su Ruanruan was both angry and outraged. Bao Jingyan really did make a move! By count, the Su Family already had three members sent to the hospital by him. Hes so domineering! Madam Baos visit today was not only to hope Su Ruanruan would return home but also to have her give face to Su Qionglin. Su Ruanruan saw through it all like a clear mirror. She was very understanding: "Okay, I will visit the third sister." Madam Bao achieved her goal and left contentedly. As she left, she hesitated. Qionglin said that Ruanruan was very cunning, yet in her eyes, she was still easy to manipte. Just a child, easy to deceive! After Madam Bao left, Madam Gu made some probing remarks in just a few words. Su Ruanruan said lightly: "It was Bao Jingyans doing." Madam Gu was taken aback. Su Ruanruan thought she would condemn Bao Jingyans brutality, but who knew Madam Gu would instead praise him: "Jingyan did the right thing! A man should protect his woman." Su Ruanruan: Is there something wrong here? Madam Gu changed the subject, "About Su Qionglin, are you really going?" Su Ruanruan smiled slightly with downcast eyes: "Of course! But theres no need for pleasantries." Madam Gu praised: "Thats how it should be!" She paused: "Ruanruan, from now on, the Gu Family will be your support." Su Ruanruan shook her head gently. She didnt need it for the time being. It was two dayster that Su Ruanruan went to visit Su Qionglin. At this time, Su Qionglin was lying in the hospital in a bad mood,shing out at the nurses. The reason was that despite her injury, Bao Ziqi didnt take it to heart, but kept seeing that Hao Keke time and again. Just because she can y a few tunes, whats so great about that! Su Qionglin was especially irked by the thought of Hao Keke apanying Bao Ziqi abroad. And now her leg was broken, of all things! Her temper was so fierce that the doctors and nurses were reluctant to be near her. Su Ruanruan approached the hospital room, and immediately she heard a smashing sound. "Take it away, I dont want to eat." ... Su Ruanruan lowered her eyes, with a faint smile emerging. She pushed the door open. The nurse called out "Miss Su" and then her eyes reddened with grievance. Su Ruanruan spoke kindly: "You go out first, I will take care of my third sister." The nurse, extremely grateful, murmured a word of thanks before leaving. Su Ruanruan personally cleaned up the pieces on the floor. Su Qionglin kept staring at her, and eventually couldnt help sneering, "Su Ruanruan, did youe to see my misfortune?" Su Ruanruan put the pieces into the trash bin and looked up with a mild smile: "Third sister is about to marry into a wealthy family, what misfortune is there for others to see?" Su Qionglin scoffed: "Dont tell me youre not aware of Hao Kekes existence! Su Ruanruan, you think you can take over just because my leg is broken? Youve seen that Hao Keke too, sticking shamelessly to Ziqi!" Su Ruanruan elegantly took a seat on the couch, idly ying with her fishbone braid. "If third sister is worried, you could always watch over him 24/7, leaning on crutches." Su Qionglin suddenly narrowed her eyes. Somethings wrong! Somethings not right here! Su Ruanruan, shes different from before! The Su Ruanruan from the past always appeared pitiable, but now, shes mocking me? Chapter 80 I鈥檓 waiting for Third Sister鈥檚 tactics

Chapter 80: Chapter 80 Im waiting for Third Sisters tactics

Su Qionglin rarely looked at Su Ruanruan closely. She didnt think highly of her. But now that she scrutinized her, she found Su Ruanruans youthful face had matured. Her delicately curved eyebrows had a touch of allure, and her slender body more seductively rounded. Given time, she would definitely be a nations downfall. Su Qionglin was rmed. In a moment, she snapped angrily, "Su Ruanruan, how dare you mock me?" "Am I just stating the truth, hurting you, eldest sister?" Su Ruanruan smiled faintly, her temperament pleasant. Su Qionglin, furious, picked up a tablemp and threw it at her. Su Ruanruan easily dodged. Su Qionglin was panting with rage. "I knew long ago you were no good, and today youve shown your true colors." "You did that on purpose to make Jingyuan misunderstand, didnt you? To embarrass me in front of Ziqis mother and show everyone how innocent you are!" ... Furious and distraught, but Su Ruanruan remained calm andposed. "Eldest sister, youve finally smartened up." Su Qionglin widened her eyes, unable to believe she admitted it so inly. Then she grabbed her phone immediately: "Im going to call auntie to tell her you purposefully framed us. Su Ruanruan, you are done for this time." Su Ruanruan let her dial. But after a moment, Su Qionglin threw the phone away. She red fiercely at Su Ruanruan. "Youre so malicious! You just wanted to provoke me to make that call, making me lose face in the Bao Family." "Su Ruanruan, youre just relying on the Gu Family now." Su Ruanruan poured Su Qionglin a ss of cold water and walked back to the bedside to hand it to her: "Eldest sister, drink some water to cool down." Su Qionglin looked up at her: "Not pretending anymore?" "Hmm, not pretending anymore." Su Ruanruan said nonchntly, slowly pouring the ss of water down. From the hair to the clothes, Su Qionglin was soaked. She was shocked! She hadnt expected someone would dare to ssh cold water on her face! But Su Ruanruan had done just that. Su Qionglin, furious, raised her hand to p Su Ruanruan again. Su Ruanruan skillfully dodged. "Eldest sister still wants to hit people?" Su Ruanruan smiled lightly: "Eldest sister, it wont be easy for you to enter the Bao Family unless you be more gentle." Su Qionglins chest heaved violently, "Su Ruanruan, do you no longer wish to return to the Su Family?" "The moment eldest sisterid hands on me, I couldnt go back." Su Qionglin held her head high in arrogance: "I will make sure you have nowhere to stand in Jiangcheng, just wait!" "Really? Ill wait for eldest sisters moves." Su Ruanruan brushed her skirt lightly and gracefully left. She reached the door of the hospital room, and Su Qionglins voice came again: "That Hao Keke yed Starry Sky which won Bao Ziqis favor, Ruanruan, I remember thats uncles favorite tune. Hearing such news must feel unpleasant, right?" Su Ruanruan stiffened. "Starry Sky"? Hao Keke? That day, it was clearly her ying downstairs. So, had Bao Ziqi mistaken her? Su Ruanruan masked the surprise in her eyes, and then, smiled faintly... Mistaken, good. Su Ruanruan ignored Su Qionglin, who was fuming. Unable to walk, she could only vent her anger by smashing things. The room echoed with the sound of things breaking. As Su Ruanruan was about to leave with a sneer, a tall figure blocked her. She looked up. It was Bao Ziqi. He had been standing there for who knows how long. Su Ruanruan tried to sidestep, but Bao Ziqi did too, repeatedly; she got a bit angry: "Arent you going to soothe eldest sister?" Instead, Bao Ziqi hooked his arm around her waist and forcibly pulled her into an empty side room. The door shut, and he pinned her against it. His intensely masculine scent enveloped her, tinged with anger: "Tired of pretending?" Chapter 81: No matter how good she is, he can鈥檛 have her

Chapter 81: Chapter 81: No matter how good she is, he cant have her

Su Ruanruan forcefully pushed him. But she was pressed even harder against the door. She slightly angered: "Bao Ziqi!" He looked down at her from above: "So you intentionally let Jingyuan misunderstand and let Su Qionglin p you just to sever ties with me?" Suddenly, he pinched her small chin: "Su Ruanruan, am I not worth fighting for to you?" Su Ruanruan was about to retort when his head pressed down. She was stunned for a moment then forcefully pushed him, but Bao Ziqi, as if possessed, gripped her waist like iron tongs, one hand supporting the back of her head... This feeling was addictive to him! He didnt know what came over him; he only knew that the young girl in front of him was annoying and detestable, he disliked her, but he also knew he couldnt have her. Men often have a bad streak; if they cant have something, they want to destroy it. Just when Bao Ziqi was about to lose control, a crisp p sounded. Bao Ziqis face turned to the side. The air was fraught with awkwardness. After a long while, he turned his head, his deep eyes quietly watching her. Su Ruanruans back was against the door, her body trembling slightly. If he really wanted to do something at this moment, she was powerless to stop him. "Rest assured!" Bao Ziqi hoarsely spoke: "I wont touch you." After he finished speaking, he let her go and walked straight out of the door. Without looking back. Su Ruanruans legs weakened, leaning against the wall still unable to calm down. After a long time, she finally dragged her limp legs out of the hospital room. In the hallway, Bao Ziqi was still there. He was apanied by a girl. It was none other than Hao Keke. The aggressive girl was soft and cute in front of Bao Ziqi: "Teacher Ziqi, you like the song Starry Sky, I will y it again at the dance." Hao Keke was confident. Even though the version Teacher Ziqi heard that day wasnt hers, she believed as a top music school student, she wouldnt lose to Su Ruanruan. Having seen much of womens ttery, Bao Ziqi indifferently pulled out a cigarette packet intending to smoke, when he caught sight of Su Ruanruan emerging. He changed his mind, gently caressing Hao Kekes hair with his elegantly jointed palm. There was a hint of intimacy. Bao Ziqi sneered inwardly: What you, Su Ruanruan, disdain, others would vie for. Su Ruanruan naturally saw this but pretended not to. She just felt Bao Ziqi was childish! Once Bao Ziqi saw Su Ruanruan leave, his gaze deepened. He bent his head to light a cigarette. Hao Keke, just having been treated so softly, couldnt help harboring ambitions. "Teacher Ziqi, you..." Bao Ziqi exhaled a ring of smoke, his expression cold: "Why are you here?" Hao Keke paused. But she was not discouraged. The gentleness from Bao Ziqi earlier wasnt fake. Hao Keke left before Bao Ziqi walked into Su Qionglins hospital room. Su Qionglin had just thrown a tantrum, and a nurse had already cleaned up inside. Seeing Bao Ziqie in, Su Qionglin immediatelyined: "Ziqi, we were all deceived by Su Ruanruan." Bao Ziqi faintly smiled: "What happened? How did it turn to her?" Su Qionglin clenched her teeth: "That girl deliberately made Jingyuan misunderstand." "Really!" Bao Ziqi smiled coldly: "But that p of yours stillnded solidly on her face." Su Qionglin was stunned: "Shes lying here, dont you feel sorry for her?" As she spoke, she remembered: "Speaking of which, its strange, recently our family has had a lot of misfortunes! Grandfather, my second brother, and I all ended up in the hospital." Bao Ziqi frowned: "Your second brother is also in the hospital? What happened?" Chapter 82 Su Ruanruan, Do You Have Someone You Like?

Chapter 82: Chapter 82 Su Ruanruan, Do You Have Someone You Like?

Su Qionglin coquettishly asked, "Why do you care about my second brother so much?" However, she still said, "I dont know who he encountered, some ruffian, and they got into a fight. As a result, my second brother broke two ribs." It took Bao Ziqi quite a while before he squeezed out a sentence, "That person must have been fierce!" "Exactly!" Su Qionglin said discontentedly, "If it wasnt for coincidence, I would really think the Su Family has offended someone. Why are there so many mishaps?" Speaking unintentionally, Bao Ziqis eyes flickered. This was, after all, too much of a coincidence. Bao Ziqi came down from the hospital building, sitting in the car and smoking intermittently. Suddenly, he narrowed his eyes Su Ruanruan emerged from the office building exit, her figure delicate. She, wasnt she supposed to have left already? As she approached, Bao Ziqi drove the car over to her. "Get in the car." Su Ruanruan was startled. Once she saw it was him, she stepped back, "I have other things to attend to." "Ill drive you," insisted Bao Ziqi. Su Ruanruan still did not want to get into his car, her heart flustered by what had happened in the hospital room just now. Probably guessing what she was thinking, Bao Ziqi gave a coldugh, "Dont worry! Im not interested in children who are wet behind the ears." As he spoke, he looked her up and down, his gaze somewhat disdainful. Su Ruanruan had no choice but to get into the car. As she settled in, Bao Ziqi turned his head to nce at her again. The girl beside him, like a fresh budding flower. Perhaps, one day, someone will pluck her. Bao Ziqis face darkened a bit. He started the car, and after a while, he asked her, "Where to?" Su Ruanruan said back to the Gu Mansion. He changed direction, then his thin lips curved mockingly, "Are you really nning to live in someone elses house forever?" Su Ruanruan sighed softly, "The Bao Family is also someone elses house." Saying this, Bao Ziqis face tightened. He understood her meaning. Sooner orter, she would leave the Bao Family, perhaps on the day he and Su Qionglin got married. His slender hand clenched the steering wheel tighter, his voice even more taut, "If you wish, you can always stay with the olddy." Su Ruanruan remained silent. During this silence, Bao Ziqi felt himself somewhat ridiculous. Staying with the olddy, how many more years could the olddy live? Indeed, what he hadnt told her was His mother was already discussing with his father, thinking of introducing Su Ruanruan to Gu Ze, the only son of Mrs. Gu, which could bothmunicate with the Gu Family and send away Su Ruanruan without stirring any noise. Bao Ziqi told himself, this had nothing to do with him. But still, seeing her, he couldnt help himself. "Su Ruanruan, dont you n for your own future?" His tone was somewhat frantic, Su Ruanruan was surprised, but still honestly replied, "I do." The atmosphere froze. After a moment, the sports car stopped at an intersection. Bao Ziqi sat up straight, and very softly asked her, looking straight ahead, "Su Ruanruan, do you have someone you like?" Su Ruanruan wasnt foolish. She could feel Bao Ziqis indecision, but she really didnt need his affection. One Bao Jingyan had already worn her out. So, she slightly turned her head to the window and hummed, "Yes." The moment the words fell, the atmosphere in the car dropped. Bao Ziqi seemed like a bow drawn taut, ready to snap. He didnt say a word, only when the green light came on, he suddenly pressed the elerator the speed of the sports car terrifyingly fast. Su Ruanruans face turned pale, she grabbed the handrail, her voice trembling, "Bao Ziqi, slow down." Chapter 83: Someone from the Bao Family Came to Pick Up

Chapter 83: Chapter 83: Someone from the Bao Family Came to Pick Up

He seemed not to hear it. The car didnt stop until it reached the entrance of the Gu Mansion. Su Ruanruan clutched her chest, feeling very ufortable. "Get out of the car!" Bao Ziqi said expressionlessly. Su Ruanruans lips moved, but he had already leaned over to open the car door for her and said again, "Get out." Su Ruanruan held back her nausea and got out of the car; as soon as her feet touched the ground, Bao Ziqis sports car sped off... Su Ruanruan bit her lower lip. What a terrible temper! She slowly walked into the Gu Familys hall, only to see someone from the Bao Family had arrived. It was the highly respected Housekeeper Wang. As Su Ruanruan was stunned, Mrs. Gu said with a smile, "Tomorrow night, someone from the Bao Family wille to pick you up for the dance, Ruanruan, do you mean..." Su Ruanruan had been a disturbance for several days, so she said, "I will go upstairs to pack my things." Mrs. Gu immediately agreed, "I will go with you." She truly loved and cared for Su Ruanruan, giving her ample dignity this trip. Various precious nourishments were gifts for the olddy, some antiques were for Bao Mingyuan, and even the servants got red envelopes. As for Su Ruanruan, needless to say, Mrs. Gu had bought her manytest-season clothes; she couldnt even wear them all in days. After packing, Mrs. Gu repeatedly gave her careful instructions. Just when they were about to leave, Gu Ze, the only son of the Gu Family, came down slowly from upstairs, "Is Ruanruan going back?" Mrs. Gu sighed, "Yes, Ruanruan wants to go back." Gu Ze was exceptionally handsome, with a slender good-looking face and phoenix eyes slightly tinted with peach blossoms. He looked at the suitcases by Su Ruanruans feet and said faintly, "Is there someone from the Bao Family who insists you must return?" He added another sentence: "Isnt it good living here?" Gu Ze was naturally debauched, but very close to Su Ruanruan. His question made Su Ruanruan unable to answer. Mrs. Gu intervened, "Gu Ze, why do you ask so much? If you like her, marry Ruanruan then I dont have to wait up every night till midnight for you." Gu Ze hinted, "Im afraid even if Im willing, Ruanruan wont agree." The circle in Jiang City was just so big; everyone knew a bit about the situation between Bao Jingyan and Su Ruanruan. Moreover, Bao Jingyan had visited their home several times; even a blind person could see that! By saying this, Su Ruanruan blushed and lowered her head. Mrs. Gu forbade him from continuing and red at him. Gu Ze made amends, "Alright, Ill just take her back." Su Ruanruan, not wanting to trouble him, quietly said it was not necessary. The Housekeeper of the Bao Family also said with a smile; "The family has sent a car, no need to trouble Young Master Gu! Also, the olddy mentioned she would invite Mrs. Gu for tea sometime soon." Mrs. Gu nodded, personally seeing Su Ruanruan into the car. "If you are not happy,e and stay here! From now on, this is your home," Mrs. Gu said reluctantly. Su Ruanruan was also reluctant, her eyes moist. Mrs. Gu gave a few more instructions before letting her go. The ck limousine slowly started moving, Su Ruanruan sat in the back quietly crying. She indeed wished to stay by Mrs. Gus side and enjoy family happiness, but she had important things to do. The Housekeeper in the front seat noticed her mood and softlyforted her, "The olddy really misses Miss Su, you can rest assured when you go back." Su Ruanruan politely responded. After all, he was a prestigious housekeeper of the Bao Family. Next moment, she realized something was wrong; this was not the way to the Bao Family. She panicked, "Where are you taking me?" "The young master is waiting for Miss Su to have dinner," the housekeeper said sinctly. Su Ruanruan was greatly rmed. Not returning to the Bao Family, how had they ended up going to Bao Jingyans ce? She was not foolish and quickly understood. Housekeeper Wang was Bao Jingyans man. Chapter 84: Bao Jingyan, What鈥檚 Our Relationship?

Chapter 84: Chapter 84: Bao Jingyan, Whats Our Rtionship?

Su Ruanruan was curled up in the back seat, silent. She felt somewhat embarrassed. How many people in the Bao Mansion knew about her little affair with Bao Jingyan? Housekeeper Wang, shrewd as he was, must have understood the youngdys thin face. He spoke eloquently, "Miss Su and the young master are rightfully involved, and theres nothing inappropriate about it. As for young master Ziqi, he and Miss Su Qionglin are the true pair." Su Ruanruan knew his words were just pretense, not making her feel any better. Half an hourter, the car stopped at Bao Jingyans vi parking tform. The vi was brightly lit. It seemed Bao Jingyan had just returned too, still dressed in a white shirt and ck pants, standing in the foyer waiting for her. Su Ruanruan didnt want to get out of the car but didnt want to be a spectacle for the sake of others. Just as she hesitated, Bao Jingyan came over with a cigarette in his mouth to open the car door. Chapter 85: I鈥檓 Ruthless! You Can Leave!

Chapter 85: Chapter 85: Im Ruthless! You Can Leave!

Bao Jingyan was half-seated on the sofa, his eyes slightly reddening as he watched her resolute retreating figure. He pulled out a cigarette but didnt light it, snapping it between his fingers. "Alright, alright, go then! I know I forced you, shamelessly tainted your innocence, Im a brute who resorts to violence at the slightest disagreement, having beaten the three members of the Su Family into the hospital, you must be cursing me in your heart." Bao Jingyans voice was hoarse to the limit, his gaze fixed on her back. Su Ruanruans hand gripped the doorknob. Bao Jingyans handsome thin lips tightened. He felt that he cared too much for this young girl; she cant just walk away so heartlessly. Yet, he underestimated Su Ruanruans determination. The girl actually pulled open the bedroom door and left. Housekeeper Wang was waiting outside, slightly embarrassed to bump into Su Ruanruan leaving. "Miss Su." He urgently nced back into the bedroom at Bao Jingyan. Chapter 86: Evening Dress, Let Me Help You Change

Chapter 86: Chapter 86: Evening Dress, Let Me Help You Change

Bao Jingyan smiled. For a moment, Su Ruanruan took the initiative to say, "Who could ever tolerate your fickle moods?" Bao Jingyan stayed silent, simply gazing at her intently. That look was both gentle and sharp, as if it could prate her soul. Su Ruanruan felt uneasy under his stare, shifting her body down to leave. He held her down, "Dont go, I owe you an apology." Before she could respond, he pulled her onto hisp and carefully undid two of her buttons. Her delicate neck was covered in the messy red marks he had left. Looking at them, Bao Jingyan frowned with concern, "Why didnt you p me at the time?" Furious, Su Ruanruan raised her hand to strike. He caught her little hand, his dark eyes amused, "Youre actually going to hit me!" She awkwardly turned her head away, unwilling to look at him. Bao Jingyans heart stirred with desire to do more, but he held back, concerned about her bashfulness. Chapter 87 Ruanruan, You鈥檝e Come of Age, Right?

Chapter 87: Chapter 87 Ruanruan, Youve Come of Age, Right?

Bao Jingyan kissed her delicate neck, his voice hoarse: "Ruanruan, you really are tormenting me." She was pressed against him like this, feeling somewhat afraid, her voice half crying: "I didnt ask you to change, Bao Jingyan you get out..." Bao Jingyan cooed at her, not letting her move about. Su Ruanruan hated him to death. In the end, Bao Jingyan personally put shoes on for her and carried her in front of the full-length mirror in the dressing room. "So beautiful." He embraced her from behind, his tall frame making her look even more delicate. Su Ruanruan looked at her reflection in the mirror. Her bare shoulders were thin, her skin delicate, and the sight of her back even more dazzling when she slightly turned. But not too revealing. Bao Jingyans voice trembled, low and raspy: "Changing into a pair of high-heeled shoes would look even better." He took out a small exquisite box from his pocket. Upon opening, it was a pair of delicate pearl earrings. Chapter 88 Bao Jingyan Has His Difficulties

Chapter 88: Chapter 88 Bao Jingyan Has His Difficulties

The light was dim, and he was dressed in ck again, not clearly visible unless looked at closely. Bao Ziqis gaze fell on Su Ruanruans face, and he asked indifferently, "You went to pick her up in the evening, why did you onlye back now?" Housekeeper Wang took the initiative to reply, "Mrs. Gu couldnt bear to let her stay a little longer." Bao Ziqi sneered, "Since when have you been so biased towards her?" Housekeeper Wang replied without giving anything away, "Miss Su is the apple of the olddys eye, the olddy said that we cannot let Miss Su suffer the slightest grievance again!... Master Ziqi, if theres nothing else, Ill take Miss Su to the olddy now." Bao Ziqi gave Su Ruanruan a cold look and got up to go upstairs. After he left, Housekeeper Wang lowered his voice and said to Su Ruanruan, "Young Master Jingyan has his reasons for not being able to go public now." After thinking for a moment, he added, "When thedy passed away, she left 30% of Dijing Groups shares to the eldest young master, but the sir holds 40%." After finishing speaking, he looked deeply at Su Ruanruan, "Thedy died tragically, the young master and the young mistress have endured till today, I hope Miss Su can understand the eldest young master." Su Ruanruan bit her lip, "His mother..." Housekeeper Wang sighed, "Its better for the eldest young master to tell you about this! Itste, Miss Su, you should go to bed early." Su Ruanruan nodded her thanks and walked into the bedroom. She took out the gown and hung it properly, continuously pondering Housekeeper Wangs words while stroking the satin. There must be a deep animosity between Bao Jingyan and Bao Mingyuan! Rted to the death of Bao Jingyans mother? Her head was somewhat in turmoil, she took a bath andy in bed, finding it hard to fall asleep. In her restless state, the smartphone beside her pillow rang. Picking it up, it was a WeChat message from Bao Jingyan. [Lets have breakfast together tomorrow morning.] Su Ruanruan thought for a while and replied with a single [Okay]. Sure enough, early the next morning when she went for breakfast, she saw Bao Jingyan. He was wearing a dark blue shirt with a light gray tie, looking very meticulous. He and Bao Mingyuan were discussing business, perhaps because Su Ruanruan felt aggrieved this time, Bao Mingyuan stopped discussing business when he saw hering, and asked warmly, "Are you doing okay at Gu familys?" Su Ruanruan politely replied, "Pretty good." Bao Mingyuan patted her shoulder reassuringly, "Your aunt didnt mean to trouble you, Ive also scolded Jingyuan for that, regarding your third sister... shes lying in the hospital." Su Ruanruan smiled lightly, "Ive visited her." Bao Mingyuan didnt say anything more, only instructing the servant to pour her some milk, then he continued discussing business with Bao Jingyan. Su Ruanruan listened from the side. They were discussing the experiment for a new drug. Bao Jingyan said, "In two more weeks, we should roughly enter the drug testing phase." Bao Mingyuan took a drag of his cigarette and said unhurriedly, "Ive heard news that Luotech Medicine is also researching this type of drug, Jingyan, you cant let them get ahead of us." Bao Jingyan nodded, "Dont worry, Dad." "You handle things, Im never worried." While talking, Bao Ziqi came down from upstairs. Seeing Bao Jingyan at home, he snorted lightly, "Big brother is also here." Bao Jingyan disyed the disposition of an elder brother, slowly saying, "I heard youre interested in a female student." Bao Ziqi sat down opposite him, spread his napkin before replying, "Just a student under contract." He suddenly said, "She ys the piano very well." Su Ruanruan had been silent, slowly drinking her milk. Bao Jingyan actually smiled, "Rare to see you appreciate someone like this, you can meet her at the dance." Bao Ziqi said abruptly, "That night, she will y Starry Sky." Chapter 89: In this world, Bao Jingyan is the kindest to her.

Chapter 89: Chapter 89: In this world, Bao Jingyan is the kindest to her.

Bao Jingyan is a business elite, although he also dabbles in art, but that is merely a cultural affectation. In his eyes, art is nothing more than shares of Dijing Group or Su Ruanruan. He isnt interested in the things Bao Ziqi is into. Yet he still told Su Ruanruan, "Ruanruan might enjoy trying it." Bao Mingyuan found himself having a headache as soon as he saw his eldest son chatting with Su Ruanruan, so he told Bao Ziqi, "Send Ruanruan to schoolter!" Bao Ziqi had been rejected by Su Ruanruan the day before, how could he agree to send her now? He wiped his lips and directly said, "I have other matters." He was the first to leave the table. Bao Mingyuan angrily pped the table, "Whats this behavior!" Bao Ziqi turned his head and retorted sarcastically, "Dad, did you even ask if she wants to?" Bao Mingyuan was left speechless. After Bao Ziqi had left, his tone softened slightly, "Ruanruan, dont take it to heart." Su Ruanruan shook her head. At this moment, Bao Mingyuan had his own calctions. He said very calmly, "Ruanruan, Uncle thinks this! Ziqi and your third sister might be inseparable, but Uncle also cant ignore your future. Your aunt mentionedst night that Gu Ze is quite good, and if you dont oppose, it can be brought up by your aunt and Mrs. Gu." His voice softened further, "Mrs. Gu adores you, marrying into the Gu Family wont mistreat you." He said this deliberately in front of Bao Jingyan. He thought Jingyan would prioritize the bigger picture; any man would know how to choose when a small girl can bring such great benefits. After he finished speaking, Bao Jingyan looked up, his voice soft, "Dad, since when does the Bao Family decide Ruanruans lifelong matters?" Bao Mingyuan smiled, "Your aunt and the Su Family have also discussed this! The old master of the Su Family agrees." Bao Jingyan scoffed, "Just because the Su Family agrees doesnt mean you can proceed this way! The Gu Family is indeed good, Mrs. Gu indeed adores her, but Gu Zes women line up from here to France, do you want Ruanruan to marry and be miserable? If its really that good, then marry Jingyuan off!" Bao Mingyuan countered, "Then tell me, what better future does Ruanruan have?" Veins showed on the back of Bao Jingyans hand, he was about to speak. Su Ruanruan softly said, "Uncle, I only see Gu Ze as a brother." She knew, just now Bao Jingyan almost revealed their rtionship. In the past, she might feel that she did not need to be aggrieved. But she remembered what Housekeeper Wang said, Bao Jingyan had endured many years, his shares are not enough to control Dijing Group. Although her feelings for him werent that deep, and although he was sometimes harsh and shameless towards her, she knew in her heart, in this world except for Su Ruan, Bao Jingyan treated her the best. After Su Ruanruan finished speaking, Bao Mingyuan momentarily didnt know what to say. Continuing the conversation would seem too forceful. However, he couldnt keep Su Ruanruan in the Bao Family anymore...Jingyans intentions were too clear! Bao Mingyuan felt somewhat troubled. He really liked Su Ruanruan, but not enough to ept her as Jingyans wife. She had no chance with Ziqi and did not want to marry into the Gu Family, so there was only one way left. That was to go abroad. Bao Mingyuan had made up his mind. After the dance, he would propose this to her; such a smart child would listen to him. Bao Mingyuan squinted his eyes and changed the subject, "For tomorrows ball, Jingyan, bring your assistant along. Shes made great contributions to this rapid progress in the experiment." His tone was full of appreciation. Bao Jingyan gave a faint smile and agreed. Then, he nced at Su Ruanruan, his gaze carrying a profound meaning. Chapter 90 Bao Jingyan, I Know You Are Jealous

Chapter 90: Chapter 90 Bao Jingyan, I Know You Are Jealous

After breakfast, Su Ruanruan had just walked out the front door when she was led to a car. Bao Jingyan was in a good mood and reminded her to buckle up while driving. No sooner had Su Ruanruan fastened her seatbelt than he casually asked, "Is Ziqi mad at you?" Su Ruanruan knew he had ulterior motives and didnt want to answer, "I dont know if hes mad at me, but I know youre jealous." Bao Jingyan chuckled lightly and surprisingly did not argue back. Su Ruanruan found it boring and stopped talking. However, Bao Jingyan held her hand, his voice gentle, "Jingse will ask a stylist toe over and do your makeup tonight. Ill try to get home early." "No need to bother, Im not the lead," Su Ruanruan didnt want to draw attention. But Bao Jingyan said, "My Ruanruan is naturally the most beautiful." He also reminded her, "Remember to wear that gown." Su Ruanruan agreed. Today Bao Jingyan had to go to theb and dropped Su Ruanruan at the school gate before leaving. Su Ruanruan had sses and was just about to sit down in the public ssroom when Bao Jingyuan rushed up to her. "Su Ruanruan, how did Professor Su get injured?" Bao Jingyuan was both angry and disappointed. She had been looking forward to the dance for days, hoping that Professor Su would attend the ball and dance with her legitimately. For this ball, she had a gown specially chosen and flown in from Paris, and picked the best jewelry. But now Professor Su was injured! She red at Su Ruanruan, demanding an exnation. Even though Su Ruanruan also detested Bao Jingyan for hitting someone, it was not Bao Jingyuans ce to interrogate her. Su Ruanruan softly replied, "If you want to know, you can ask my second brother." Bao Jingyuan was furious, "Su Ruanruan, dont think that just because Sister Qionglin and Professor Su are in the hospital, you can shine tonight. I tell you, theres also Hao Keke, who is the person my brother is currently doting on." Su Ruanruan chose not toment. Bao Jingyuan, teeth clenched, ran out. She wanted to see Professor Su and ask him what had happened. Naturally, she wouldnt find out anything, but Su Ruanruan spaced out for a while watching Bao Jingyuans departing figure. Tonight was destined to be restless. In the afternoon, Bao Jingyuan returned to school with eyes as red as a rabbits. She found Su Ruanruan and fiercely said, "Even though Professor Su didnt say anything, I feel you have something to do with this." Helpless, Su Ruanruan responded, "Bao Jingyuan, do you think I deliberately hurt second brother so he wouldnt meet you?" Bao Jingyuan couldnt answer. She obstinately said, "But Sister Qionglin says you are not a good person." Su Ruanruan smiled faintly. After school, the Bao familys car came to pick them up, Bao Jingyuan deliberately crowded Su Ruanruan out, not allowing her to ride. The driver, concerned, listened as Bao Jingyuan patted her chest and said, "Just drive, shell be kicked out of the house sooner orter." The driver reluctantly drove off. But no sooner had the car left than a more luxurious RV parked beside Su Ruanruan. The driver got out and opened the door for Su Ruanruan, who nodded in acknowledgment before getting in. Unexpectedly, Bao Jingse was sitting in the back. Apparently, he had juste from thepany, dressed in professional attire. Su Ruanruan took a nce C he was lean, with long legs and tall stature. Bao Jingses appearance was as outstanding as Bao Jingyans. Somehow, Su Ruanruan blushed. Bao Jingse nced at her, "Big brother asked me to pick you up." Su Ruanruan responded with a hum. Bao Jingse, usually distant, surprisingly initiated a conversation, "Ive seen the suggestions you made to the R&D department. Theyre quite good." Su Ruanruan was taken aback. Chapter 91 Do you intend to abandon your elder brother after initial infatuation?

Chapter 91: Chapter 91 Do you intend to abandon your elder brother after initial infatuation?

Bao Jingse probably felt awkward too, she turned her face away to look out of the car window, "Big Brother rarely likes a girl." Su Ruanruan didnt know how to follow up. The rtionship between her and Bao Jingyan was delicate, she really didnt dare to say it couldst till the end. She hesitated slightly, but Bao Jingse had already turned her face back to look at her: "Do you n to dump Big Brother after youre done with him?" Su Ruanruan was startled. Bao Jingse spoke again, her voice low: "You better not, Big Brother doesnt have a good temper." Su Ruanruan: ... Bao Jingse did not quiz her further and turned her focus back onto the documents. The car quickly returned to Bao Mansion. Around four or five in the afternoon, the Bao Family was already bustling. Servants were busy inside and out, decorating and cleaning. For this ball, Mrs. Bao had invited a famous orchestra and a Michelin pastry chef, and even the red wine was a vintage treasured by the Bao Family for many years, making the event extremely grand. Seeing Bao Jingse and Su Ruanruan returning together, Mrs. Bao smiled with effort: "Jingse is back." Bao Jingse always looked down on this stepmother and merely nodded lightly before taking Su Ruanruan to the olddys courtyard. The stylist she had hired was already waiting in the makeup room. Su Ruanruan changed into her gown and went over, to which the stylist eximed: "This youngdy is really beautiful, and the gown fits perfectly." Su Ruanruan was somewhat embarrassed. When Bao Jingse saw Su Ruanruan, she was stunned for a moment. Not only because she was so beautiful, but also because Su Ruanruans gown was very familiar. For a moment, her throat tightened. The gown was very simr to the style her mother wore when she was alive. Elegant and delicate. She touched the pristine satin and murmured: "Did Big Brother give this to you?" Su Ruanruan softly hummed a yes, her expression uneasy as she looked at Bao Jingse. Bao Jingse controlled her emotions and smiled slightly: "It looks very nice, very suitable for you." She said to the stylist, "Ruanruan has a beautiful neck,ter help her put her hair up." The stylist agreed with appreciation: "Indeed, such a hairstyle will be absolutely stunning." Bao Jingse watched for a while longer, then went to change into her own gown. Su Ruanruan sat there, being made up, and was starting to feel hungry. The stylist smiled: "Youll have to bear with it a bit longer, at such balls, to present the best figure, its usual not to eat dinner." Su Ruanruan was surprised: "Really?" The stylist said with augh: "This is still considered light, supermodels have to dehydrate themselves days before a show!" Su Ruanruan thought of Su Qionglin and did not speak further. The stylist helped her put her hair up, and then eximed: "This makes your face look even smaller." This really was the most perfect face she had seen, with facial features and contours like wlessly cut diamonds. And the skin, so good it was nearly translucent. Just a light touch of powder and a dab of lip color on the eyebrows was enough to be beautiful. Bao Jingse changed into her dress and came out, also stunned by Su Ruanruan. She could now understand why Big Brother liked Su Ruanruan. Truly capable of taking ones breath away... * At 7:30 in the evening. The parking lot of Bao Mansion gradually filled up with luxury cars, and the elite of the entire Jiang City hade to give face to Bao Mingyuan. Mrs. Bao was dressed elegantly, receiving guests alongside Bao Mingyuan. Bao Jingyuan and Bao Ziqi were there to assist them. When most of the guests had arrived, Mrs. Bao frowned slightly: "The ball is about to start, and Hao Keke still hasnt arrived, shes supposed to y the piano for the opening." She looked at Bao Ziqi: "Are you really going to take in a girl with such ack of punctuality as a student? Ziqi, think it over again." Bao Ziqi was just about to say something when a soft female voice rang out in the front: "Uncle Bao, Auntie, Im sorry for beingte." Chapter 92: You Really Resemble Jingse鈥檚 Mother

Chapter 92: Chapter 92: You Really Resemble Jingses Mother

The Bao Family turned their gaze in that direction. It was Hao Keke who arrived fashionablyte. Hao Keke was dressed beautifully tonight. The couture gown she wore was an off-season rental that she had gone to great lengths to obtain. She had made a deal with the studio to wear it for only two hours before returning it immediately. Thus, these two hours were very important to her. She remembered that Su Ruanruan had bought a dress for a few thousand yuan on that day, and so her couture gown shouldpletely outshine Su Ruanruans... With this thought, Hao Keke smiled happily. She was happy, but Mrs. Bao was not. Mrs. Bao felt that the gown Hao Keke was wearing seemed extravagant; she had invited her as a pianist, not a guest. Why did this girl dress herself up like this? Mrs. Bao disdained her and deliberately made it difficult: "Miss Hao, wont your outfit interfere with your piano ying?" Hao Kekes eyes were fixed on Bao Ziqi, her cheeks flushed red, "Its no trouble at all!" She curtsied, saying, "Uncle, Auntie, Teacher Ziqi, I will head inside first." Before leaving, she also offered a friendly shallow smile towards Bao Jingyuan. Bao Jingyuan was quite pleased. Look, even a poor student knows to curry favor with her, unlike Su Ruanruan, who doesnt know to bow her head. After Hao Keke left, Mrs. Bao expressed her displeasure to her son: "I am a thousand times against keeping such a person around." She spoke harshly, causing Bao Ziqi to be displeased. Mrs. Bao then said: "Qionglin cante because of her leg injury; youll have to invite Ruanruan for the opening dance tonight!" Sheined a lot: "Who knows if Ruanruan can dance. She better not embarrass our Bao family." Bao Mingyuan was also displeased: "How do you know the child wont do well?" Although he didnt regard Su Ruanruan as one of his own, he did appreciate the girl somewhat. Mrs. Bao was about to say more, but Bao Ziqi had already strode off. Mrs. Bao was so angry that she followed to persuade her son. At the entrance hall, only Bao Mingyuan was left standing. Despite the Bao familys event being at its zenith tonight, he felt endless loneliness when alone. He shook his head and sighed with a wry smile. Guided by Housekeeper Wang, Su Ruanruan made her way through the night. She was dressed in white. Youthful, beautiful, and noble. Especially with her long ck hair up, revealing her white neck, her temperament overshadowed everyone else. The cigarette in Bao Mingyuans fingertips trembled and nearly burned him. In a daze, he thought he saw his wife. Not Meiyu, but Sun Weilian. Weilian loved white in her lifetime. She wasposed and graceful, kind, and intelligent. In that instant, Bao Mingyuan, unable to control himself, called out involuntarily, "Weilian." Housekeeper Wang was startled and reminded, "This is Miss Ruanruan." Bao Mingyuan snapped back to reality. Then he felt somewhat ufortable, "Ah, its Ruanruan! Its dark; I mistook you for someone else." His eyes deepened as he looked at Su Ruanruan again and spoke with a husky voice: "Your dress is beautiful! Your earrings match well too; they must be from Jingse, right?" Su Ruanruan was moved: "Uncle?" Bao Mingyuan smiled: "Only Jingse would pick clothes that her mother liked!" He couldnt help but gently touch Su Ruanruans hair, speaking tenderly: "You really resemble Jingses mother." Su Ruanruan looked up: "Doesnt Sister Jingse resemble her?" Bao Mingyuan sighed: "Jingyan and Jingse take after me in temperament, and even though their appearance is somewhat simr, they dont make people feel the resemnce. You resemble her the most in our home..." Such a sentiment led him topletely abandon the thought of sending Su Ruanruan abroad. Men are like that; when they have regrets in their own lives, they always seek topensate elsewhere. He felt guilty towards histe wife, so he unconsciously wanted to make up for this guilt in Su Ruanruan. The gown Bao Jingyan sent had a deep intention... Chapter 93: Crushing Su Ruanruan? Must be Dreaming?

Chapter 93: Chapter 93: Crushing Su Ruanruan? Must be Dreaming?

Bao Mingyuan spoke a few more words before he went inside together with Su Ruanruan... As soon as Su Ruanruan entered, everyone in the hall was stunned. It was said that the second young master of the Bao Family had a housemaid whom nobody had ever seen. Now that she had arrived, her beauty was unexpectedly captivating. That purity and fairness made all the morous flowers in the room lose their color... Especially Hao Keke, she couldnt believe what she was seeing. She had clearly inquired before; Su Ruanruan had only bought a low-priced gown worth a few thousand that day. Why did she now look so noble, and her styling was obviously meticulously crafted? Hao Keke bit her lip. No matter! No matter how beautiful, it was just a in gown, while she herself was wearing a haute couture. At this moment, thedies around started to critique. [Isnt that gown on Miss Su from Versaces haute couture?] [Yes, its obviously their craftsmanship.] [Ive heard that there is only one of those gowns in the world, valued at a million...] ... [Whats a million? The string of purple diamonds on Miss Sus hand is truly valuable. I heard Bao Jingse spent over a hundred million to buy it as a gift! Its surprising, thedy disdained by the second young master of the Bao Family is actually dearly loved by the eldest miss.] ... Hao Keke was dumbfounded. A unique global haute couture. Over a hundred million purple diamonds? Weren those all on Su Ruanruan? She was insanely jealous, to the extent that her facial expressions were somewhat distorted. At this moment, Bao Jingyuan walked over. She looked at Hao Keke: "Cant handle it? Dont worry, if the second brother doesnt like her, shes nothing." She had seen it; the second brother was very annoyed by Su Ruanruan. Now, Hao Keke had lost all her confidence. The outdated haute couture she wore seemed exceptionally shabbypared to Su Ruanruan. Bao Jingyuan intentionally used Hao Keke, and chuckled lightly: "You know what to do right? Since sister Qionglin isnt here, tonight is your chance." She disliked Su Ruanruan and didnt care who became her sister-inw, as long as Su Ruanruan could be embarrassed. Hao Keke was taken aback. Bao Jingyuan leaned in closer, her voice soft: "The second brother likes hearing you y the piano, dont disappoint him." Hao Keke got the hint and immediately opened the piano lid to start ying. The sound of the piano rose, and the guests all praised, saying that Mrs. Baos banquet tonight was well-organized. The food was exquisite, and the invited pianist yed beautifully. However, Bao Ziqi slightly frowned. Others may find it pleasant, but he discerned two words in Hao Kekes piano ying. Mediocre. He could hardly believe this was yed by the same person he had heardst time, which was full of spirit, but now it was nothing but skilled craftsmanship. He frowned and listened for a while, then thought: Perhaps its due to the environment, Hao Keke is too nervous. He wasnt particrly concerned; his attention was almost entirely on Su Ruanruan. Tonight, Su Ruanruan was the most beautiful girl he had ever seen, delicate and noble. He very much wanted to possess her. Even, he thought about taking her to his bedroom, kissing her, touching her. But, reason stopped him. He hadnt forgotten that Su Ruanruan was a cunning woman, her dark side was merely wrapped in an innocent appearance. Such a woman, was not hard to let go of. Bao Ziqi didnt realize how intensely and begrudgingly he was watching Su Ruanruan. He had never been like this. Music yed, Mrs. Bao gave some opening remarks, and then asked her son to open the dance. Although reluctant, todays asion was indeed most suited for Su Ruanruan and Ziqi to start the dance. Chapter 94 Bao Ziqi Invites Others

Chapter 94: Chapter 94 Bao Ziqi Invites Others

She didnt have to say it; everyone understood. So everyone was waiting for Bao Ziqi to invite Su Ruanruan... Just as everyone was eagerly anticipating, Bao Ziqi slowly walked towards Su Ruanruan. His gaze was fixed on her, with a hint of malice in his eyes. He had been rejected by Su Ruanruan, more than once. His pride would never allow him to invite her to dance, so when he nearly reached Su Ruanruan, he turned his steps and unexpectedly approached Hao Keke at the piano. "May I have the pleasure of this dance?" His voice rang out. Everyone in the hall was stunned. Under the crystal chandelier, Bao Ziqi in a ck suit, invited the unfamiliar female pianist like a prince on a white horse. For a moment, everyone looked at Su Ruanruan with sympathy. Without the favor of the Second Young Master Bao, any charm was in vain. Hao Kekes fingertips trembled. She was near tears of joy Did Teacher Ziqis ignoring of Su Ruanruan to invite her to dance indicate that Teacher Ziqi liked her? She restrained herself mightily, smoothing her skirt with the most dignified posture as she stepped forward. "I would be honored." Bao Ziqi smiled faintly and took her hand. Everyone sighed: Su Ruanruan was countless times more beautiful than this girl, Bao Ziqi indeed had eyes yet failed to recognize a pearl. They all looked at Su Ruanruan with sympathy. It seemed after this banquet, Miss Su would have a hard time staying at the Bao Familys. Su Ruanruan epted the sympathetic gazes, her heart very clear. Ever since the day she rejected Bao Ziqi and told him she had someone she liked, she knew Bao Ziqi wouldnt give her any face. She epted it calmly. Amidst this sudden turn, others were still not over the shock. Yet Bao Jingyuan was yfully smiling. Her slender fingers lightly grazed the piano, and lifting her red lips in a slight smile, she said, "My second brother only knows to invite Miss Keke to dance, but has forgotten that no one is ying the piano now." These words gave Mrs. Bao an excuse, as she most certainly did not want a little harlot to entice her son. Having such a person at the Bao Familys dance would tarnish her reputation. Rather than her, Su Ruanruan would be preferable. Mrs. Bao immediately said: "Indeed, Ziqi, if Miss Hao dances, who will y the piano?" Before Bao Ziqi could speak, Bao Jingyuan added, "Ive heard that the Su Familys daughter is well-versed in music, chess, calligraphy, and painting. Surely, Su Ruanruan can also y the piano!" "Ruanruan, my second brother especially loves listening to Miss Keke y Starry Sky. Why dont you give it a try? Maybe hell have a change of heart after listening." Her words were filled with malicious mockery. Because Professor Su couldnte, she vented all her frustration on Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan remained unfazed. But Hao Keke was dying inside. How could they let Su Ruanruan y? What if Teacher Ziqi realized how good her ying was? Yet she didnt want to give up this chance to have a solo dance, to make a ssh, and to be held in Teacher Ziqis arms... While Hao Keke was feeling uneasy, Su Ruanruan calmly declined: "Im not very good at ying the piano." Bao Jingyuan curled her lips, "I get it, youre jealous! Ruanruan, I didnt expect you to be such a person. Cant handle losing?" Su Ruanruan smiled, "If I cant, then I cant." She was young butposed. She didnt want to attract Bao Ziqis attention again with a momentary impulse. But Bao Mingyuan spoke up. Earlier, he had heard Elder Su boasting that his Ruanruan was skilled at everything. Having witnessed Su Ruanruans subtle exhibition of her painting skills before, he thought she must be capable at ying the piano, so he said, "Ruanruan, dont be modest, Uncle believes you y well." Chapter 95: Bao Ziqi Loses Composure! Su Ruanruan is the Person He Was Looking For

Chapter 95: Chapter 95: Bao Ziqi Loses Composure! Su Ruanruan is the Person He Was Looking For

He said, looking at Bao Jingse, "If all else fails, let your big sister Jingse take over." He would never let Su Ruanruan feel embarrassed. Hmph,pared to Hao Keke, Ruanruan is like a child of our own family. Hearing that, Bao Jingse in her ck spaghetti-strap dress simply fluttered her eyelids. Then,zily, she leaned against the piano and called over Su Ruanruan, "Ruanruan,e here." Su Ruanruan had no choice. She had to save face for Bao Mingyuan. She gracefully walked over to the piano and sat down, cing her delicate hands on the keys. Bao Jingse said, "Ill help you turn the pages." "No need," Su Ruanruan looked up and smiled faintly. Bao Jingse was momentarily stunned. She actually didnt need the music sheets? At that moment, everyones attention was on Su Ruanruan, curious if she could y the piano and how well she would y. Suddenly, Su Ruanruan became more prominent than Bao Ziqi and Hao Keke. No one cared about starting the dance; they just wanted to watch Su Ruanruan y the piano. Under everyones intense gaze, Su Ruanruans fingers gently moved, and the piano music immediately poured out into the hall. It was melodious, as ifing from afar, yet also echoing at the top of the hall. It was as if visual images emerged, seeing a vast starry sky amidst those notes. The ancient seas and mulberries all came back to life. After snapping back to reality briefly, it felt as if none of what was seen couldpare to the sight of the girl in white sitting before them, her figure delicate and captivating. The hall was quiet. No one spoke, everyone just quietly listened to this visual feast. Bao Ziqi was frozen in ce. He couldnt believe his ears, couldnt believe this music was yed by Su Ruanruan. It was as soulful as what he heard that day. This was the student he had been looking for. Yet he had pushed her away and chose Hao Keke for the dance. Hao Keke, anxious and frightened. She feared that Bao Ziqi would realize, so she reached out to tug on his sleeve lightly, whispering, "Its time for Teacher Ziqi to start the dance." But Bao Ziqi roughly shook off her hand and strode towards Su Ruanruan. Amidst shrieks of shock, Bao Ziqi seized Su Ruanruans wrist, dragging her in front of him. The piano music abruptly stopped. Su Ruanruan felt pain from his grip and struggled a few times but couldnt break free, she lowered her voice, "What are you doing, Bao Ziqi?" "Dont you know?" he retorted coldly, "You clearly know who I wanted ying the piano, yet you misled me again and again, Su Ruanruan, isnt it fun ying with others?" "Im not ying with anyone," Su Ruanruan clenched her teeth, "Dont misunderstand!" She had no choice but to say, "Ive said it, I already like someone else!" "Is that so? So you wouldnt even nce at me, letting me jump around like a fool?" he pulled her closer, "Su Ruanruan, your cunning disgusts me." "Then keep being disgusted," Su Ruanruan, losing her patience. Bao Ziqis eyes darkened, he stared intently at her tender little face and her rosy lips. In his extreme anger, an impulse surged, and he almost wanted to kiss her recklessly. What if he kissed her? She was essentially brought here by his family to keep himpany. He had every right to want her. Bao Ziqi lost it and decided to follow his heart. To kiss her, maybe im her, and then make her his own. Just when he was about to let go of everything, a surprised shout came from the entrance. "Ziqi." Bao Ziqi stiffened. His rationality suddenly returned; he released Su Ruanruan and slowly turned around. Su Qionglin was sitting in a wheelchair, pushed in from outside. And pushing Su Qionglin, was none other than Bao Jingyan. Chapter 96: Bao Jingyan鈥檚 Sheepskin, Worn Excellently

Chapter 96: Chapter 96: Bao Jingyans Sheepskin, Worn Excellently

The scene was momentarily frozen. It took Bao Ziqi a long while to find his voice again: "Qionglin, howe youre here?" Su Qionglin responded with a faint smile: "I just happened to run into your older brother at the hospital, and he invited me to the dance." Bao Ziqi lifted his eyes, his gaze toward Bao Jingyan deep and inscrutable. He knew perfectly well how this wolf had convinced Su Qionglin that he was a gentleman of modesty. Therefore, Bao Ziqis voice carried a hint of mockery: "Brother has gone to a lot of trouble." "As one should." Compared to Bao Ziqis indifference, Bao Jingyan was much moreposed and courteous. Even if it was just a guise, he wore it excellently. He pushed his wheelchair, moving straight towards Bao Ziqi. "Good, mission aplished." Bao Jingyan looked around: "Is Ziqi preparing to start the dance?" Saying this, he cast a nce toward Su Ruanruan, a flicker of amazement in his eyes, but it was swiftly concealed. At that moment, Su Qionglin took hold of Bao Ziqis hand: "Big brother said you have been waiting for me to start the dance. Ziqi, I had no idea you would be so thoughtful towards me." Her eyes were touched with emotion. And everyone around was stunned. What the eldest young master of the Bao Family said didnt match the facts at all; just moments before, Bao Ziqi was still pressingly pursuing Su Ruanruan! But, these words were not ryed to Su Qionglin. Bao Ziqi managed a forced smile: "Lets start the dance." He had chosen Su Qionglin in name a long time ago, so even now that she was in a wheelchair, he had to give her this respect. The pianist, Hao Keke, had been standing idly by, to no avail. Su Ruanruan, afraid of being hounded by Bao Jingyan, simply went back to ying the piano. The young girl was pure white, graceful, and beautiful. All eyes, including those of Bao Ziqi and Bao Jingyan, were on Su Ruanruan. Unbeknownst to Su Qionglin, she wholeheartedly believed she had won The one opening the dance tonight was her, Su Qionglin. Bao Ziqi pushed himself to dance, while Su Ruanruan could only apany from the side. Who held more or less importance within the Bao Family was clear at a nce. The guests entered the center of the stage to dance, and for a while, the hall was abuzz with the fragrance of fabrics and shadows, the atmosphere quite delightful. Bao Mingyuan was very pleased, full of praise: "Ruanruans piano ying surpasses that of the female student. Meiyu, the matriarch is truly adept at judging character." Mrs. Bao was very unhappy. Even though Su Qionglin had arrived, Bao Mingyuan only had eyes for Su Ruanruan. And so Mrs. Bao said: "No matter what, shes not as good as Qionglin, who has won a modeling award." Bao Mingyuan remained silent, but thought to himself: Not as good? Not necessarily! Of course, arge part of his admiration and fondness came from the dress Su Ruanruan was wearing. In it, she resembled Weilian to a striking degree. Bao Jingyuan was nearly driven to madness. Today, she had nned to get back at Su Ruanruan, but little did she expect Su Ruanruan to steal the limelight again. She watched her second brothers demeanor, which clearly showed that he had taken a fancy to Su Ruanruan. How could this be! This absolutely could not be! Bao Jingyuan approached Hao Keke, grinding her teeth: "Youre just going to watch Su Ruanruan steal the show? Have you forgotten the lengths youve gone to rent the haute couture youre wearing?" Hao Keke was shocked. How did Miss Bao know that what she was wearing was haute couture, and that it was rented? Bao Jingyuan spoke haughtily: "If it wasnt for me, do you think you could have rented haute couture?" Even if it wasst seasons! Butst seasons was all Hao Keke could hope for. She looked down and trampled upon Hao Keke without a trace of mind, yet Hao Keke didnt care in the slightest, as her hatred was solely directed at Su Ruanruan. It was Su Ruanruan who had stolen her thunder. Immediately, she tightly hugged Bao Jingyuans leg: "I beg Miss Bao to show me a way out." Bao Jingyuan sneered: "Right now, go and y Starry Sky. Hao Keke, surely you arent so inept that you cant outy others with an old piece of music?" Chapter 97: All the Glory Belongs to Su Ruanruan

Chapter 97: Chapter 97: All the Glory Belongs to Su Ruanruan

She said that and Hao Keke took a deep breath. Right, she had practiced for so long, she would not lose to Su Ruanruan. So after Su Ruanruan finished her piece, Hao Keke walked over. "Miss Su, let me y instead." Su Ruanruan sidestepped and lifted her head to look at her. Hao Keke was about to refuse and sneer when Su Ruanruan smiled and said, "Fine, then you y your part." She rose and nodded slightly. Her manners were impable. Bao Mingyuan, watching this unfold, was extremely pleased. And Bao Jingyuan sneered: after Hao Keke ys, everyone will know what real piano ying is. But when Hao Keke began to y, the guests showed no reaction. Bao Jingyuan didnt believe it. Hao Keke was ying "Starry Sky", why was no one praising her? In her view, it was better than Su Ruanruans performance! She eagerly sought her second brother, craving his approval. Bao Ziqis expression was not good. Hao Kekes "Starry Sky" was nowhere near Su Ruanruans; he had mistaken a stone for a gem. While Bao Jingyuan was still pestering him, Bao Ziqis gaze fell towards the center of the dance floor. The focus of his attention was Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan was dancing with someone. Not just anyone, but Gu Ze. Gu Ze was born handsome, a well-known yboy in the city, not taken in by women. Yet now he willingly danced with Su Ruanruan, behaving properly, holding her as if she were precious. The thought of the Bao Family wanting to match Su Ruanruan with Gu Ze made Bao Ziqis blood boil. Even, he felt a sudden urge to pull them apart. Beside him, Su Qionglin, oblivious to his thoughts, purposelymented, "Ruanruan and the young master of the Gu Family are well-matched. The family patriarch agrees too." "The olddy and my father disagree now," Bao Ziqi said coldly. He could hardly stand Su Qionglin; even his words were intentionally contrary to hers: "Father has grown quite fond of Su Ruanruan now, thinking of keeping her close by." This greatly displeased Su Qionglin: "But one cant keep Ruanruan in the Bao Family forever, Ziqi. What about me?" She tugged at Bao Ziqis hand, pleading, "Once I marry over, how am I to get along with Ruanruan day and night?" But Bao Ziqi brushed off her hand, even colder now: "Do you think if you marry in, she will still want to stay at the Bao Family?" Su Qionglins pride was hurt, yet she dared not erupt: "Ziqi, why do you depict me like Im some kind of disease?" Bao Ziqi sat down on a sofa nearby to drink, and she moved over in her wheelchair, asking softly, "Whats wrong, Ziqi? Who has upset you?" Bao Ziqi pulled out a cigarette and lit it, "No one has upset me." He exhaled a puff of smoke: "If your leg is inconvenient, dont bothering. These dances are dreadfully boring." How could Su Qionglin note? She had to keep an eye on him. Indeed, in her absence, Su Ruanruan, that girl, had be coveted, drawing the gazes of all the men present. In such events, Su Qionglin was always the star, but today she was eclipsed by a young girl. She would not admit defeatonce her leg healed, she would certainly recapture everyones attention. Su Qionglin catered to Bao Ziqi, while he pondered over Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan was having a good time dancing with Gu Ze. She hadpletely forgotten there was an eager man lurking on the sidelines. Bao Jingyan. Bao Jingyan also wanted to dance with her, but he knew if he dared to hold her in public, the little one would create a fuss afterward. So, he could only hold a ss of red wine and talk business with others. asionally, he nced at her. She did look remarkably well-matched with Gu Ze; even their brows and eyes bore a resemnce. Bao Jingyan frowned at the thought that had suddenly crossed his mind. Chapter 98: Where Is It Just a Kiss and a Hug?

Chapter 98: Chapter 98: Where Is It Just a Kiss and a Hug?

In the dance floor, Gu Ze looked down at the young girl in his arms, "Do you like him?" Su Ruanruan knew who he was referring to, so she kept silent. Gu Ze smiled yfully, "Thats the fiercest wolf in Jiang City, better to marry Bao Ziqi than him." Su Ruanruan looked up, "Im not an object that can be pushed around." Gu Ze just smiled and said no more. Ever since losing her younger sister at home, her mother hadnt been this happy in years. As her mother liked it, he was also willing to be a bit nicer to her. The song ended. He was about to take Su Ruanruan and leave when he saw Bao Ziqi walking towards them. "Do you want to dance with him?" Naturally, Su Ruanruan was unwilling, especially since she had already seen Bao Jingyan looking this way. She was sure that if she danced with Bao Ziqi, Jingyan would pull her away regardless of anything else. At that moment... Su Ruanruan, feeling slightly embarrassed and annoyed, said softly, "Im going out for some air." Gu Ze was more than willing to help her, so he subtly intercepted Bao Ziqi. Su Ruanruan lifted her skirt and walked to the deserted courtyard, sitting on a bench under the shade of the trees, listening to the liveliness inside the hall, and sighed lightly. She did not love such asions. Beside her, a tall figure appeared. She looked up. It was Bao Jingyan. Dressed in ck formal attire, he stood in the dark night looking especially handsome. He reached out a hand towards her. Su Ruanruan tightened her body against the bench, unmoving. Bao Jingyan undid his suit button, leaned over and draped his coat over her shoulders. The pure masculine scent enveloped her, making her cheeks flush. Su Ruanruan bit her lip and murmured, "We could be seen." "Join me for a dance," his voice was a bit husky. Su Ruanruan remembered something, "Did you go to great lengths to invite my third sister here just to upy Bao Ziqi?" "Youre not so dumb!" He flicked her forehead lightly and suddenly said, "Ruanruan, let me have a look at you." At that moment, the distant piano sounds from the hall carried a somewhat romantic tone. Bao Jingyan, holding her with one arm, stood up, not bothering with any specific dance, just holding her close he felt very satisfied. Su Ruanruan was nervous. This was the Bao Family courtyard; someone coulde by at any moment. Because she was nervous, she couldnt rx, and Bao Jingyan whispered in her ear, "Ive arranged for someone to watch, no outsiders wille." Su Ruanruan got extremely angry when she heard this. She raised her hand and hit him, "Bao Jingyan, you bully." He caught her small hand with ease and wrapped it around his waist, pulling their bodies even closer. He was a little emotionally stirred, "Come back with meter, hmm?" "No," she looked up, "Are you crazy, Bao Jingyan?" In the moonlight, he looked at her clean, snow-like face, not willing to give up, "Then Ill stay, ande to find you tonight." Su Ruanruan was livid, "Bao Jingyan, why do you always think about that?" "Which thing?" he deliberately asked her. His voice was raspy, somewhat seductive. Su Ruanruan rested her small chin on his shoulder, unwilling to speak. But Bao Jingyan grew more interested, leaning in and whispering, "Ive never really touched you, just some kisses and hugs." Su Ruanruan got anxious, "Youre not just kissing and hugging, you clearly..." Bao Jingyans eyes were clear, showing a mature mans passionate expression. She was lost for words. But he didnt let her go, and asked softly, "What have I clearly done to you? Tell me." Su Ruanruan was both embarrassed and angry, refusing to respond. Bao Jingyan spouted a few racy words, then couldnt hold back anymore. He tightened his hold on her in his arms and kissed her. Chapter 99 Su Ruanruan鈥檚 Background Exposed 1

Chapter 99: Chapter 99 Su Ruanruans Background Exposed 1

Although they had kissed many times before, none was as moving as under the flowers and moonlight. Su Ruanruan was forced to stand on tiptoes, tilting her head back to kiss him, her coat falling to the ground but neither of them cared. Gradually, the kiss changed... She was inexperienced, yet after being taught by him for so long, with just a touch she melted into his arms and obediently let him do as he pleased... Bao Jingyan watched her with intense affection, a lowugh escaping him before he sealed her lips with another kiss. The passion was mutual... In the distance, a well-matched couple stood albeit with a touch of chill. Gu Ze turned his head and asked Bao Jingse, "How did those two hit it off? With someone like Bao Jingyan, he could devour Su Ruanruan without leaving anything behind." Bao Jingse watched quietly for a while before whispering, "Ruanruan has a pleasant temperament, its not surprising that brother would like her." She even felt that her brother had been single all these years waiting for someone like Su Ruanruan. After she finished speaking, Gu Ze gave a meaningful smile. Between Bao Jingyan and Su Ruanruan, it was clear that Su Ruanruan was the one being forced. Love... What do children know about love? Only 18 years old. Gu Ze left, Bao Jingse also quietly stepped away... Inside the hall, the guests were having a great time. But Mrs. Bao was not happy. Not only was Su Qionglin overshadowed, but Ziqis heart was never on Qionglin. Mrs. Bao took her husband aside to a secluded ce and got straight to the point, "Mingyuan, you really should have nned earlier." Bao Mingyuan feigned ignorance, "What ns?" Mrs. Bao was irate, "Sending Ruanruan abroad! Isnt Su Ruan from the Su Family eagerly volunteering to apany her?" Bao Mingyuan lit a cigarette, took a slow drag, and then said, "Our family doesntck that bit of food, besides, grandma cannot do without her." Mrs. Bao was speechless. She observed her husband and asked word by word, "Are you thinking again of having Ziqi marry her?" He must think she is a fool! Tonight, when Su Ruanruan wore that dress, she looked so much like Sun Weilian, and Mingyuans eyes were glued to her. He was clearly reminiscing about Sun Weilian through Su Ruanruan. Bao Mingyuan didnt hide it from her, "Tonight you also saw that Ruanruan outshined Su Qionglin, and besides, she also studies the arts and matches Ziqi well. Besides, I dont believe you, as his mother, cant see our sons feelings for her." With that said, Mrs. Bao was direct, "Its precisely because Ziqi is interested in her that Im anxious, Mingyuan, do you know her background?" Bao Mingyuan frowned, "What background? Isnt she just Su Peimings child, what background could there be." He was about to criticize his wife when Mrs. Bao coldly said, "She is not really the Su Familys daughter." Upon hearing this, Bao Mingyuan was stunned. The hand holding his cigarette trembled, "What are you saying?" Mrs. Bao sneered, "The wife of Su Peiming, Zhou Wan, is infertile. In other words, Su Ruanruan was adopted." Bao Mingyuan still didnt believe it, "How is that possible? For so many years, not a hint of this leaked out? Then how do you know?" Mrs. Bao had anticipated this question and replied, "Zhou Wan is from the same hometown as me. Itsmon knowledge that her mother sought medical treatment everywhere for her to have a child. Then suddenly out of nowhere, a child appeared. Mingyuan, does that seem normal to you?" Bao Mingyuan fell into deep thought. Being a meticulous man himself, he thought of the way Su Ruan looked at Su Ruanruan. So it wasnt any taboo, but simply because Su Ruanruan wasnt a child of the Su Family, having no blood rtion was why he could like her so freely and without restraint. All of this, now made sense. Su Ruanruan, is not of the Su Familys bloodline. Chapter 100 Su Ruanruan鈥檚 Background Exposed 2

Chapter 100: Chapter 100 Su Ruanruans Background Exposed 2

He stared intently at Mrs. Bao and asked, "Where did this childe from?" Mrs. Baosplexion turned unnatural: "How would I know where she got the child from! Mingyuan, consider the possibility that the child might be the offspring of somemoner. How could such a child be worthy of our Ziqi?" Bao Mingyuan fell silent. He indeed cared about this issue. But he also pitied Su Ruanruan and, after weighing his options, he said: "Ill talk to Ziqi about it. After all, the family doesnt intent to engage Ziqi with her, you shouldnt worry too much." Mrs. Bao couldnt believe that her husband was still biased towards Su Ruanruan, and this made her quite upset. She thought to herself: She was no longer young, and Mingyuans eyes had fallen on a young girl. Could it be that Mingyuan... had feelings for Ruanruan? As husband and wife, Bao Mingyuan could guess her thoughts instantly, "What are you thinking about?" Qi Meiyu gathered her shawl, feeling even more distressed: "You know very well what Im thinking." Having said that, she walked toward the hall... Bao Mingyuan stubbed out his cigarette butt and followed her out. He didnt notice that not far away, two people were standing. Mrs. Gu and her personal secretary. Mrs. Gu had heard everything Bao Mingyuan and Qi Meiyu were discussing; after the couple left, she turned to the person beside her and said: "Were they saying that Ruanruan is not biologically rted to the Su Family?" The person hadnt thought it through deeply and just sighed: "Yes, it doesnt sound like Mrs. Bao made it up." Mrs. Gu still seemed dazed, then started to murmur: "18 years old, and adopted too." She grabbed her personal secretarys hand so tightly that it was agonizingly painful: "Madam, youre overthinking it again." Over the years, whenever there was a mention of an 18-year-old adopted child, thedy always had to investigate if it was hers, and after so many times, she no longer smiled about it. The secretary could not bear to see her disappointed again. Hearing her say this, Mrs. Gu choked up: "Indeed, how could it be such a coincidence!" But she was inevitably disturbed and not well in spirit. The personal secretary immediately called Gu Yuanpei, who rushed over as soon as he heard, caring deeply for his wife, "Whats the matter?" The secretary dared not hide anything and exined the situation. Gu Yuanpei sighed: "Shes being foolish again." He embraced his wife, "Alright darling, lets go home first." Mrs. Gu copsed in his arms, inconsble. Gu Yuanpei would have preferred not to rm others, but Mrs. Gus condition was truly dire and could not be concealed. Bao Mingyuan and his wife also heard from the servants and came immediately to inquire: "Whats happened?" Gu Yuanpei hesitated to speak. How could he possibly disclose to strangers the sorrow of losing a young daughter years ago? Bao Mingyuan, on the other hand, made a decisive suggestion: "Why not rest in a guest room for a while and have a doctor take a look." Gu Yuanpei declined: "Its an old issue, we have already called a doctor to wait at home." Bao Mingyuan, knowing it wouldnt be appropriate to insist, prepared to personally escort them to the parking area. Just then, Su Ruanruan entered from the hall right in front of Mrs. Gu. Mrs. Gus pupils suddenly dted, and her lips parted slightly. Under the crystal light, Su Ruanruans face resembled the baby from her memories... Mrs. Gu pointed at her, tried to speak but no words came out. It was as if she had suffered from sudden aphasia. Gu Yuanpei was rmed and gently patted his wifes cheek, calling her name tenderly. But Mrs. Gu simply stared with eyes wide open, fixed on Su Ruanruan. She had a thousand words, ten thousand words, she wanted to say to Su Ruanruan, but not a single word escaped her lips. Chapter 101: A Critical Moment, Only Bao Jingyan Believes in Her

Chapter 101: Chapter 101: A Critical Moment, Only Bao Jingyan Believes in Her

Su Ruanruan was stunned for a moment. She immediately realized that Mrs. Gu might have had a medical emergency. Indeed, Mrs. Gu started pointing at her, unable to speak, and then copsed into Gu Yuanpeis arms. Gu Yuanpei tried to p her face to revive her, but Mrs. Gu remained unresponsive. At this moment, Gu Ze also rushed over: "What happened to Mom?" "Suddenly she fell ill," Gu Yuanpei said, carrying Mrs. Gu horizontally, ready to rush to the hospital. Those present couldnt help but sigh... What could have caused Mrs. Gu such a shock that she just fainted like this? Only Bao Jingyuan was exceptionally pleased in her heart. She had seen everything that happened just now; Mrs. Gu fainted after seeing Su Ruanruan. It must have been that Su Ruanruan did something disgraceful that Mrs. Gu found out about. Now, Su Ruanruan would be without a backer. At the height of Bao Jingyuans delight, Su Ruanruan stopped Gu Yuanpei. "Id like to check on Auntie." Though Gu Yuanpei was quite fond of her, he was also anxious at this moment: "We must get her to the hospital immediately, no dys." Su Ruanruans face was stern: "Uncle, if you go to the hospital now, thats when youll truly be putting Auntie in danger." Gu Yuanpei didnt believe her. Surely the hospital specialists were more professional than a young girl, and besides, his wife had a chronic condition. He insisted on going to the hospital. Su Ruanruan took a step forward: "Aunties condition is not good! Housekeeper Wang, bring over the blood pressure monitor, and also get some angina pills from Elder Madame." Housekeeper Wang did not dare to move. Who would bear the responsibility for such a serious matter? Not only did he not dare, but Bao Mingyuan and his wife also didnt dare. Bao Mingyuan said, "Yuanpei, Ruanruan is just distressed. Please dont take it to heart; we should still go to the hospital." Mrs. Bao added, "The child is causing a nuisance, we must not let her dy Mrs. Gus condition." Gu Yuanpei nodded. Su Ruanruan firmly blocked Gu Yuanpeis path. Gu Yuanpei became somewhat unhappy: "Ruanruan, your Auntie is in urgent need of life-saving treatment." Su Ruanruan did not budge, and Bao Ziqi, appearing from nowhere, grabbed Su Ruanruans wrist: "Dont be foolish." Bao Ziqis action was, in fact, for the sake of Su Ruanruan. If she did not intervene, one could say she neither contributed nor caused harm, and she might lose only Mrs. Gus affection. But the Bao Family could still protect her. However, if she caused a dy and worsened Mrs. Gus condition, her future would be extremely difficult, and that would be putting it mildly... Su Ruanruan thought differently. She wasnt considering the future; she only knew that if Mrs. Gu was dyed now, she might be paralyzed for life. But she was young and weak, and no one was willing to listen to her. At this moment, a voice rang out: "Housekeeper Wang, do as Miss Su says." With that said, Bao Jingyan walked into the hall. He emerged from the night as if covered with ayer of frost, extremely handsome. Su Ruanruan stared at him, not even blinking her eyes. Bao Jingyanforted her with his gaze, then said to Gu Ze: "Prepare for both, call an ambnce here." Gu Ze understood and nodded as he made the call. Gu Yuanpei hesitated. Bao Jingyan said, "No one in Jiangcheng has ever been able to treat the elder Madames ailment, yet Ruanruan has a way! Mrs. Gu is fond of Ruanruan, and Ruanruan naturally has Mrs. Gus best interests at heart." At this point in the conversation, Gu Yuanpei had a sudden realization, his voice subdued: "Im willing to give it a try." Originally, Bao Mingyuan was opposed, but with the eldest son making such arrangements, it would be too cruel to drive the others away. Yet he was still worried. What if Su Ruanruan made a wrong judgment and something happened to Mrs. Gu? Then the entire Bao Family would be implicated. Chapter 102: Whoever speaks nonsense again, I will smash her mouth

Chapter 102: Chapter 102: Whoever speaks nonsense again, I will smash her mouth

He hesitated, but Lady Bao strongly approved. Not only her, but even Bao Jingyuan, Su Qionglin, and even that ambitious Hao Keke all hoped that Su Ruanruan would meet a terrible end, debilitating Lady Gu so that Su Ruanruan could never recover. Heh, what could a little girl possibly do in such an urgent medical case? Trying to show off, but this is not the way to do it! While everyone harbored their own thoughts, Lady Gu was carried to the sofa. Her jaws clenched tightly, her face a purplish-ck. Su Ruanruan knelt down to inspect carefully, while instructing the maid to fetch a small medical kit from her room. Just then, Housekeeper Wang arrived, and Su Ruanruan immediately took Lady Gus blood pressure and heart rate. The numbers were rming. Gu Yuanpei felt a chill in his feet, casting a nce at Gu Ze beside him. His eyes filled with sorrow. In such a condition, even taking her to the hospital seemed futile. Gu Ze squeezed his hand. The maid returned with the small medical kit, and surprisingly, the olddy also followed. Seeing the situation, the olddy was also stunned. After a long pause, she asked, "How could this happen?" Bao Jingyuan was quick to reply, "It was Su Ruanruan who scared her. Shes a jinx; anyone who encounters her is doomed." Su Qionglin spoke softly, "Jingyuan, dont say that. Though the fortune-teller who read Ruanruans fortune said so, we must rely on science." Her words stirred discussions among those around. [If the third Miss Su says so, it must be true.] [Lady Gu was fine before, but aftering into contact with Su Ruanruan...] [Ah, some things really cant be disbelieved.] ... Su Qionglin slightly curled her lips. Lady Bao nced at her, satisfied. At that moment, the olddy, wielding her walking stick, cursed at those gossiping, "You bunch of gossips!" Her gaze then swept to Su Qionglin, sneering, "May I ask, wasnt it after contact with you that Ziqi fell off the cliff? Its already a miracle he didnt die; if anyones a jinx, it would be you, the third Miss Su." Su Qionglins face stiffened. She had not expected the olddy to be so disrespectful. Wasnt she the one who was supposed to spend her life with Ziqi? She tugged on Bao Ziqis sleeve, hoping he would speak up for her, but Bao Ziqi just kept a stern face, his gaze fixed on Su Ruanruan. Su Qionglin nearly gritted her teeth. Calming down, she tactfully whispered, "I just fear that Ruanruan might bring misfortune to the Bao Family." The olddy erupted, "Misfortune? Is that more important than a human life?" Bao Jingyan chuckled, "The olddy makes an excellent point." The olddy then turned her stern face to her beloved grandson, "Such a big issue, and you decided on your own without even informing me." She emphasized again, "After all, your Uncle Gu is an elder." This was her protecting her own. She feared Bao Jingyan, young and under less control. Yet, Bao Jingyan said, "My thoughts are the same as the olddys, nothing is more important than a human life." The olddy was satisfied and told Su Ruanruan, "Child, with me here, go ahead and save her! It doesnt matter if its your Aunt Gu or a stranger, you should do your best to treat her." Su Ruanruan hummed softly, fully focused on treating Lady Gu. Lady Gus face turned even bluer. Gu Yuanpei, anxious for his wife, kept looking out the door to see if the ambnce had arrived. Knowing his concerns, Gu Ze simply went to wait at the Bao Familys main gate. Gu Yuanpei felt slightly relieved, turning back to watch Su Ruanruan take a box of silver needles from the medical kit. Chapter 103: Making a Name with One Battle! Lady Gu is Surprisingly Much Better

Chapter 103: Chapter 103: Making a Name with One Battle! Lady Gu is Surprisingly Much Better

"This is..." he squats down and gently cradles his wifes head, asking worriedly. Su Ruanruan softly says, "Auntie is in danger if we dy any further, let me use acupuncture to stimte her blood cirction first." Gu Yuanpeis lips quiver but he ultimately remains silent. Theres unrest all around. Mrs. Gu is in such a state, how can this not be taken to a hospital? Can just pricking with a needle really cure her? They dont believe it. Su Ruanruans slender white fingers extract a thin needle and skillfully inserts it into several crucial acupoints on Mrs. Gu. Within about five minutes, Mrs. Gus body is pierced with dozens of silver needles, presenting a terrifying sight. Yet, Mrs. Gu still shows no reaction. Ady close to Mrs. Gu can no longer hold back and persuades, "Mr. Gu, you really should take your wife to the hospital! Im truly afraid something bad might happen." Seeing his wife unresponsive, Gu Yuanpei also grows worried. His palms and back are covered with sweat, but as a man, he must not lose hisposure. Su Ruanruan looks up and says softly, "Please Uncle Gu, believe in me, Auntie will wake up in 20 minutes." Mrs. Bao, in a fit of anger upon hearing her imprudent assurance, sts, "Su Ruanruan, how can you guarantee such a thing! Dont drag our Bao Family into this mess youve created!" Bao Mingyuan rebukes, "Meiyu!" Bao Jingyuan also musters up her courage and adds, "Dad, mom is right! Look, Mrs. Gu isnt moving at all." Bao Mingyuan is left without a response. Mrs. Gu indeed does not stir. Gu Yuanpei is shaken again, "Miss Su, I think we should wait for the ambnce and then go to the hospital! We cant dy any longer with my wifes condition." Earlier, he addressed her as Ruanruan, but now calling her Miss Su carries a sense of unfamiliarity. Kneeling there, Su Ruanruans delicate and pale knees have turned red, yet she is oblivious to it. She intently watches Mrs. Gus face, whispering, "She will definitely wake up." Just as Gu Yuanpei is about to explode, the sound of a car arrives at the door. Two doctors apanied by Gu Ze rush over and immediately examine Mrs. Gu upon reaching the sofa. They are top directors from the hospital. After examining Mrs. Gu, they frown. Gu Yuanpeis heart trembles, "How is she?" One doctor gentlyys down Mrs. Gus hand, saying, "Its an emergency, this is tough." He deliberates for a long time before adding, "If we rush her to the hospital now, her life might be saved, but I fear she may not be able to walk or talk normally again." Gu Yuanpeis body slumps, seemingly unable to bear the blow. Gu Ze frowns deeply, "How is that possible, its just high blood pressure." The doctor sighs, "This emergency isplex." He nces at Su Ruanruan, who is still administering acupuncture, "Its futile now, all we can do is conservative treatment and see if we can save her life." Su Ruanruan fixes thest silver needle and slowly stands up, facing Gu Yuanpei, "Please Uncle, trust me once! Auntie will wake up and she will recover." Gu Yuanpei, distraught, says, "These two are the best internal medicine doctors in Jiangcheng." He closes his eyes, "Its not your fault. Its just my wifes unfortunate fate." When he opens his eyes again, he says, "Remove the needles, lets not torment her anymore." Su Ruanruan bites her lip, "Uncle, are you giving up? If you give up, who else in this world can save her?" Gu Yuanpei sighs. A nearby doctorments, "What does a child know! No one has ever walked out of the ward from such a severe condition in good shape." Gu Yuanpei shakes his head, ready to pick up Mrs. Gu. But the moment he touches Mrs. Gu, his expression transforms. Mrs. Gu awakens. Chapter 104 Bao Jingyan鈥檚 Pride and Heartache

Chapter 104: Chapter 104 Bao Jingyans Pride and Heartache

She opened her eyes and quietly watched Su Ruanruan. Although she still couldnt speak, herplexion hadrgely returned to normal, and she could move her fingers, lifting them to point at Su Ruanruan. Bao Jingyuan eximed loudly, "She said she doesnt want Su Ruanruan!" Nevertheless, Bao Mingyuan, experienced as he was, already saw the truth: "Madame Gu is much better now, she is just worried about Ruanruan." The olddy was also moved, wiping away tears: "Truly, though they are not mother and daughter, their bond is just like one! A miraculous recovery this morning must be her good fortune." With those words from the olddy, everyone else also strongly agreed. [Yes, she is much better than earlier.] [The doctors said there was no hope, but she miraculously came back to life.] [Su Ruanruan turns out to be more effective than the experts, why go to the hospital anymore! Just look for Ruanruan!] [Whoever marries her is truly blessed! Its a pity my boy is only 15 years old.] [Women of marriageable age are likened to golden bricks, and its the perfect fit!] ... For a while, the hall was filled with joyousughter. Everyone was talking about Su Ruanruan, praising her beauty and her impressive abilities...menting theck of a suitable son to match her. Gu Yuanpei wept with joy. He stroked his wifes face, with tears flowing down. Madame Gu also had tears in her eyes, but she ignored her husband who kept gazing at Su Ruanruan... Su Ruanruan knelt before her, softly saying, "Dont worry, your blood cirction will improve soon." As she spoke, she adjusted the position of a few silver needles. Just now, Madame Gu did not feel pain, but now she began to feel it and involuntarily let out a slight cry. [Ah... she can speak! This Su Ruanruan truly is miraculous.] [I cant believe it, we really should report this properly.] ... Su Ruanruan held Madame Gus other hand, gently helping her mobilize her muscles and bones. Gu Yuanpei recovered hisposure, turning his head to ask softly, "Is everything alright now?" His tone was unexpectedly humble. Su Ruanruan was slightly annoyed with him and didnt respond. Gu Yuanpei was indulgent towards the youngdy, and simply said to Madame Gu, "Madam, please recover quickly. This young girl is cross with me!" Madame Gu looked at him, then slowly turned her head to Su Ruanruan. Tears the size of beans started rolling down from the corners of her eyes. Su Ruanruan always had a soft spot for her, smiling faintly: "I wont be mad at uncle anymore." Seeing this scene, the olddy was deeply moved, "Yuanpei, you must acknowledge this girl in return for her risking it all for your wife." "Absolutely, absolutely," Gu Yuanpei held his wifes hand, speaking softly: "Even acknowledging her as a precious child is fine." The olddy chuckled, joking: "Mr. Gu is famously caring towards his wife, and today it proves true." At that moment, Madame Gu suddenly spoke: "Ruanruan... is very good." Gu Yuanpei was stunned. Then, he burst into tears. The over forty-year-old business magnate cried like a child. He hugged Madame Gu, uttering some iprehensible words. The people around were deeply touched... Su Ruanruans eyes also became moist, and she slightly raised her eyes. Her gaze met Bao Jingyans. He stood out among the crowd, prominent and distinguished. His eyes were filled with pride... and alsopassion. Su Ruanruan bit her lip and suddenly felt somewhat embarrassed. Bao Jingyan blinked gently, then spoke to the two doctors: "We might need an ambnce in a bit, you two should prepare." The two experts were like awakened from a dream. Until now, they couldnt believe that Madame Gu, despite the severity of her condition, hade back to life, able to speak and move. This young girl was truly miraculous. Chapter 105: Kneeling for So Long, Does It Hurt?

Chapter 105: Chapter 105: Kneeling for So Long, Does It Hurt?

Ruanruan suggested to send Mrs. Gu to Tongsheng Hospital for treatment. Gu Yuanpei agreed immediately, but he requested that Ruanruan apany them to the hospital. "Uncle asks you to apany your aunt tonight no matter what," Mr. Gu requested. Ruanruan nodded, "You all go ahead, Ill change my clothes ande over." Gu Yuanpei left Gu Ze to bring Ruanruan overter, and he went to the hospital with the ambnce first. Ruanruan watched the ambnce leave, then tidied up and went back to the courtyard to change clothes. After changing, she came out of the dressing room only to see Bao Jingyan standing in front of the French window. She was startled and suppressed her voice, "How did youe over?" Bao Jingyan turned around and pointed to the small coffee table: "Havent eaten anything tonight, have something before you go." "Theres no time," Ruanruan shook her head. Bao Jingyan insisted she sit down, "Eat a little at least." She thought for a moment and sat down, eating in small bites, suddenly feeling her legs loosening. Looking down, Bao Jingyan was squatting in front of her, massaging her knees. She tried to pull away, but he held her tight, not letting her move. "Kneeling for so long, does it hurt?" his voice was gentle. Ruanruans eyes glistened. She took another bite of the snack, "It hurts." "It wont kill you!" Bao Jingyan tapped her shin lightly, "Thats for stepping in." Ruanruan lowered her eyes, softly asking, "Then why did you help me?" "What do you think?" He smiled lightly. Ruanruan also smiled faintly. That bit of closeness, only the two of them could truly appreciate. Anxious about Mrs. Bao, Ruanruan only ate two pieces before hurrying off to the hospital. Bao Jingyan felt somewhat heartbroken, tidying her hair, "Ill pick you up at dawn to my ce, if asked here, say you are at Gu Familys." Ruanruan nodded in agreement. Partly because of his support today, she found him much more agreeable. Bao Jingyan couldnt send her out himself; he watched her leave and waited for Gu Zes car to depart before heading back to his vi. By now, most of the guests had left, only Bao Familys servants were cleaning up. Mrs. Bao and Bao Mingyuan were talking: "Mingyuan, Ill take Qionglin to see Mrs. Gu tomorrow morning." Bao Mingyuan flicked his eyelid, speaking indifferently, "Qionglin isnt living in the hospital, its convenient." Su Qionglin felt somewhat embarrassed. Mrs. Bao also knew she had acted rashly tonight, not only making her husband unhappy but likely offending the Gu Family as well. She pondered for a moment before saying, "Qionglin is Ruanruans sister, this matter Ruanruan should turn things around for us." Thinking so strategically, Bao Mingyuanughed bitterly: "Your thinking is really good, when its a good situation its Su Qionglin, but when its time to fulfill duties its Ruanruan! Meiyu, you are too biased." Mrs. Bao was embarrassed, "Ruanruan was raised by Qionglins parents, whats wrong with her fulfilling some duties?" Bao Mingyuans mood was really bad tonight, toozy to deal with her responses, "Then covering for Qionglin before, hasnt that favor been returned?" Mrs. Bao was momentarily speechless. Su Qionglins eyes were red, not daring to retort at all. However, Bao Ziqi said indifferently, "Dont mention this in the future. She is now with the olddy." "Yes, Ruanruan is with the olddy and has nothing to do with Ziqi," Mrs. Bao followed up opportunistically. Her remarks displeased the olddy: "You cant tolerate a person by my side, isnt that deliberately targeting me?" Mrs. Bao dared not confront her and was so frustrated she itched. Bao Jingyan, seeing the amusement, came over and gently supported the olddy: "Itste, the olddy should also go to sleep soon." Chapter 106: Ruanruan Has No Worries About Getting Married in Jiangcheng!

Chapter 106: Chapter 106: Ruanruan Has No Worries About Getting Married in Jiangcheng!

"Im waiting for Ruanruan," the olddy said childishly. Bao Jingyan gave Bao Jingse a look, and Bao Jingse immediately said, "Such a big incident happened in the Gu Family, and now Mr. Gu values Ruanruan so highly, I think these days Ruanruan will be kept by Mrs. Gus side, not leaving an inch." The olddy thought about it and nodded in agreement: "Jingse is right!" She then surveyed the Bao Family women around her, speaking sternly, "Learn some real skills, look at Ruanruan, she really shook those guests tonight." She then said with displeasure, "With what happened today, Ruanruan wont have to worry about finding a good family to marry into in Jiang City! Theres nock of good families!" Saying this, Mrs. Bao looked at Bao Mingyuan to see his attitude. Indeed, Bao Mingyuans expression wasplex. He sighed in his heart: The child is capable and has a calm temperament. Its just a pity about her background... Mrs. Bao, understanding him, felt slightly reassured upon seeing his expression. It was then that Bao Mingyuan remembered something, "Right, Jingyan, didnt you say youd bring your assistant to the banquet tonight?" Bao Jingyan, putting on his coat, replied, "She came earlier, but it was too chaotic, so I had her go back first." Bao Mingyuan felt somewhat regretful, this assistant was very capable and could help Jingyan develop new medicines, her status in his heart exceeded that of Su Ruanruan. Bao Jingyan, hands in his pockets, said, "If theres nothing else, Ill be going back first." He then instructed his sister, "Jingse, you stay here and keep the olddypany." The olddy feigned anger, "At my age, what do I needpany for! Im used to it anyway." Bao Jingyan chuckled, turned around, and walked into the night. Only when his car drove away did the olddy withdraw her gaze and look at her granddaughter, "Jingse, youve been quite close to your elder brothertely, I always feel something odd about you two." Bao Jingse smiled and said, "What could be strange between me and my brother? On the other hand, Ziqi was a bit strange today, he actually chose Hao Keke for the opening dance." With that mentioned, people then realized Hao Keke was still at the Bao Family home. Mrs. Baos expression turned unpleasant. Is this girls skin so thick? Isnt she leaving? nning to sleep in Ziqis room? Hao Keke bit her lip ufortably, "I want to talk to Teacher Ziqi for a moment." "No need," Bao Ziqi said bluntly, "The person Im looking for isnt you, tomorrow Ill have my assistant stop processing your study abroad." Hao Keke, her eyes rimmed red, protested, "But... but Ive already told my family that Im going abroad for studies with you." "Thats your business," Bao Ziqi said coldly. He detests deceit the most. Hao Keke then turned to Su Qionglin, "Miss Su, please, Im begging you to say a good word for me. I really want to study under Teacher Ziqi." Why would Su Qionglin help a woman who schemed against her fianc? She gently said to Bao Ziqi, "Although I dont know what happened, I think Keke must have had no choice but to do so." Bao Ziqi looked at Su Qionglin, then suddenly asked, "Do you know who yed Starry Sky?" Su Qionglin smiled lightly, "Who was it? It couldnt be Jingyuan, could it?" Bao Jingyuan curled her lips, "I cant even y the piano." At this moment, Bao Ziqi spat out a few words, "It was Su Ruanruan! Are you still going to plead for her?" Suddenly, Su Qionglin felt as ufortable as if she had swallowed a fly. It was Su Ruanruan again! Drawing, piano, medical skills... She had shown off so much without considering hiding her talents a bit,pletely unconcerned about her older sister. Chapter 107: Su Ruanruan is Now Highly Valued by the Gu Family

Chapter 107: Chapter 107: Su Ruanruan is Now Highly Valued by the Gu Family

Bao Ziqi finished speaking and went straight upstairs. Madam Bao called after him, "Arent you sending Qionglin back to the hospital?" Su Qionglins expression was unnatural: "Its fine to let the driver take her. Ziqi is in a bad mood." A mother knows her child best; Madam Bao could guess that her sons bad mood was rted to Su Ruanruan. She had to admit that Su Ruanruan was outstanding, but it made her feel extremely ufortable. For one thing, Su Ruanruan bore a striking resemnce to Sun Weilian; for another, it was Su Ruanruans background, coupled with the fact that she had used Su Ruanruans background to do certain things in the past... so Su Ruanruan absolutely could not marry into the Bao Family. Thinking of the past, Madam Baos face darkened. She quickly dispatched Su Qionglin, then stood in the night for a while before returning to her upstairs bedroom. Bao Mingyuan, d in a bathrobe, was leaning on the bedhead smoking. Seeing Madam Baoe in, he slightly raised his eyes, "Has the guest been sent off?" Madam Bao nodded. Bao Mingyuan couldnt help saying, "I found Ruanruans third sister to be quite embarrassing this evening! This is how I see it, even if Ziqi doesnt marry Ruanruan, he cannot marry this Third Miss." He snorted lightly, "Shes far inferior to Ruanruan." Madam Bao, thinking of how Su Qionglin and she were on the same page today, couldnt help but take it personally. Her face suddenly sank: "Mingyuan, are you looking down on me?" Bao Mingyuan frowned, "Why does it alwayse back to you? I know you care about Ziqi, but concern leads to chaos." Madam Bao sat in front of the vanity to remove her makeup, then she paused in her action, "In any case, with Ruanruans unclear background, it is absolutely impossible for Ziqi to marry her." Bao Mingyuan did not speak, simply continued to smoke his own cigarette. Madam Bao was about to go to the bathroom to bathe when her husband spoke up, "Ziqi cares a lot about Ruanruan." Bao Mingyuan looked into his wifes eyes, pensive, "Today he stopped Ruanruan, because he didnt want her to take risks." With thatment, Madam Bao snorted, "Ziqi is being cautious! Unlike some people who are daring and like to show off, also good at capturing girls hearts." She was referring to Bao Jingyan, and Bao Mingyuan knew it. He said with a smile, "There you go again, Jingyans support is good. If Madam Gu had really encountered trouble at our home, it would have caused some friction with Gu Yuanpei in the future. The export to Emperor View has been a focus for the next few years, if that line is cut, the loss would be significant." Madam Bao, holding her clothes, sat beside her husband, "Now that Ruanruan has saved Madam Gu, let Ruanruan speak for us, then the Gu Family will surely help us." She added, "You should credit this achievement to Ziqi. After all, Ruanruan came to the Bao Family just to keep watch on Ziqis room." Bao Mingyuan pinched her face, smiling, "Then just let Ziqi take her into his room." He still harbored that idea to some extent, but Madam Bao was displeased, "Being a mistress is okay, but I wont agree to a formal marriage." Bao Mingyuan was displeased as well, "To make someone like Ruanruan Ziqis mistress, you are indeed overestimating Ziqi." Madam Bao retorted angrily, "If I could be a mistress back then, why cant Su Ruanruan?" There were some things Bao Mingyuan couldnt say conveniently. He lit another cigarette, his smile cryptic. Madam Bao was furious and went to the bathroom with her clothes. In fact, she was also moved a moment ago; Su Ruanruan is currently in high demand, and if Ziqi were to marry her, that would mean having the backing of the Gu Family, and needless to say, her status in the Bao Family would be secured. But in the end, Su Ruanruan was just somewhat acquainted with Madam Gu, which couldntpare to being blood-rted. No matter what, Qionglin was still far better than Su Ruanruan. Chapter 108: How to Have Children Without Love?

Chapter 108: Chapter 108: How to Have Children Without Love?

Su Ruanruan arrived at the hospital in the dead of night. She walked into the ward together with Gu Ze, and Gu Yuanpei looked up upon hearing their footsteps. He was a bit startled. Just before, he noticed that Gu Ze and Ruanruans faces bore some resemnce, like a pair of children. He felt a pang of sadnesshow wonderful it would be if Ruanruan were his own daughter. But such a luxurious thought could only flicker by fleetingly. "Here you are!" Gu Yuanpei said with unusual tenderness, "Your aunt was just talking about you." The doctor was examining Mrs. Gu, and Su Ruanruan went over to watch. Mrs. Gu was awake, staring intently at Su Ruanruans face. Su Ruanruan reached out to caress her cheek, with a gentle smile, "Its much better, there wont be any problems." Tears glistened again in Mrs. Gus eyes. The doctor also knew about Su Ruanruans impressive disy at the Bao Family and discussed the medication with her after the examination. Su Ruanruan said very judiciously, "You are the authority in this field." The senior doctor, smiling at Gu Yuanpei, remarked, "This child is very decisive; she handles things and speaks methodically." Gu Yuanpei also nodded, "Indeed, she is a child with ideas." The doctor added, "Then Im going to prepare the medicine." He expressed his admiration, "A student brought up by Academician Su really is different! Even Su Ruanchang might not have this confidence and courage." "You tter me," smiled Su Ruanruan. When the doctor left to prepare the medicine, Su Ruanruan took the opportunity to offer changing Mrs. Gus gown. Gu Yuanpei looked worried, "Could it have any impact?" "It wont cause any trouble now," Su Ruanruan smiled again. Gu Yuanpei also smiled, staring at the child for a while and then suddenly went to hug her. His eyes were moist, "Uncle thanks you." Su Ruanruan felt a bit embarrassed, while Gu Ze said, "Lets first help mom change out of the gown; wearing it is really ufortable." "Right, right," Gu Yuanpei quickly agreed, "Ruanruan is doing a good job." Since it was inappropriate for the Gu father and son to stay, they left to wait outside. Finally able to rx after being tense for so long, Gu Yuanpei pulled out a cigarette and held it in his mouth; Gu Ze lit it for him. Mr. Gu took a deep drag before saying, "Ruanruan is truly a wonderful child." Gu Ze smiled, "Dad, what are you trying to say!" "You dont know what Dad is trying to say?" Gu Yuanpei patted his shoulder, "Youre not getting any younger; its time to settle down." Gu Ze leaned against the wall, also lighting a cigarette. Gu Yuanpei nudged his shoulder, "Im talking to you!" Gu Ze looked up, "Ruanruan is with Bao Jingyan." Hearing this, Gu Yuanpei shrewdly said, "Shes still a child; a few scares from Bao Jingyan and she probably wouldnt dare to resist. But Bao Jingyan cant marry her right now, whereas you, Gu Ze, are different." Gu Ze gazed up, blowing smoke rings contemtively, "Theres no spark, no mutual basic attraction, how could we get married and have children?" Thisment angered Gu Yuanpei, and he simply dropped the topic. In the ward, after Su Ruanruan helped Mrs. Gu change her clothes, a nurse came in to set up an IV drip. Su Ruanruan sat by the bed keeping Mrs. Gupany; seeing that Mrs. Gu kept her eyes fixed on her, she gently squeezed her hand and said, "You need to rest more now, dont worry, Im here." Mrs. Gu shook her head. It wasnt fear, it was reluctance. Even though others might call it a foolish fantasy, she felt as though Heaven had returned her daughter to her. Ruanruan was 18, also a child of the Su Family from Tongsheng Hospital, and many people said that Ruanruan looked like her... Mrs. Gu became a bit emotional. Chapter 109 Gu Family Prepares to Do DNA

Chapter 109: Chapter 109 Gu Family Prepares to Do DNA

She stretched out her hand to stroke that delicate cheek, remembering the p Su Qionglin had suffered at the gate of Bao Mansion. Her heart ached like it was being sliced with a knife. In the Su Family, was Ruanruan often beaten and scolded, treated harshly? In a trance, Mrs. Sus tears streamed down her face. Su Ruanruan became a bit panicked: "Whats wrong, Auntie?" Mrs. Gu shook her head, unable to fully articte her thoughts at that moment. At the doorway, Gu Yuanpei and Gu Ze heard the noise and came in. Gu Yuanpei instantly knew what his wife was thinking. He helplessly said: "My dear, Ive already told you..." Mrs. Gu still couldnt stop her tears, her mournful appearance softened Gu Yuanpeis heart. He coughed lightly: "Once you are better, I will handle it." Though Gu Yuanpei gave his word, he still held little hope. The Su Family was also a respectable family; even if Su Peimings wife couldnt bear children, it wouldnt be possible for them to steal someone elses child. Yet with his words, Mrs. Gu was overjoyed. She nodded with tears, then her gaze once again firmly fixed on Su Ruanruans little face. She could never look enough. Su Ruanruan, feeling a bit ufortable being stared at, touched her hair. Gu Yuanpei said to Gu Ze: "Ruanruan and I will stay here, you go back and rest. Come back in the morning to take turns resting with Ruanruan." Gu Ze disagreed: "Ill stay too! When Ruanruan goes back tomorrow, well take turns resting." Gu Yuanpei thought for a moment, then nodded. Only when Mrs. Gu finally fell asleep did Gu Yuanpei look around. Aside from a small guest room, there was a sofa in the VIP ward. Gu Yuanpei asked Su Ruanruan to sleep in the guest room and Gu Ze to sleep on the sofa. Su Ruanruan refused: "Im not sleepy yet." Naturally, Gu Ze wouldnt sleep either, "Lets sit together for a while." The two of them sat together, both watching Mrs. Gu. Suddenly, Gu Ze recalled the scene he had seen in the courtyard earlier that evening, and asked softly, "Have you decided to be with him?" Su Ruanruan, feeling sleepy, looked up and muttered a sound. Her voice was soft. Gu Ze stroked her hair, as if petting a small kitten. After a while, he said in a low voice: "If you really think hes good, thats not bad." Its just that the Bao Family isplicated. Su Ruanruan did not answer directly, she also carefully thought about her rtionship with Bao Jingyan. To say he forced her C but she seemed not to mind his closeness. To say she was willing C but he often forced her to do things she was reluctant to do. Thinking about these things, her cheeks began to heat up slightly. Gu Ze turned his head and just saw this, internally cursing "damn man." The two chatted casually, and gradually Su Ruanruan really became sleepy, her little head nodding off. Gu Ze reached out and ced her head on his shoulder, then took a small nket and carefully covered her. Gu Yuanpei nced up just to see his sons tender and considerate actions, feeling somewhat mncholic again. If Yunxi hadnt been lost, Gu Ze would definitely be a good brother. But as the years passed, he feared they might never find Yunxi again. Gu Yuanpeis mood wasplex, asionally tending to his wife and ncing over there. As the night deepened, the two youngsters couldnt stay awake and fell asleep. Gu Ze leaned on the armrest sleeping, and Su Ruanruan snuggled next to him, looking as if she was being held by him, her small nket half-dropped. Gu Yuanpei tiptoed over, picked up the small nket, and properly covered Su Ruanruan. Under the dim light, he looked at her clean little face, his heart filled with affection, always imagining Yunxi would grow up just as beautiful. Gu Ze awoke, his voice hoarse: "Dad?" Gu Yuanpei whispered softly: "Its okay! I was just covering Ruanruan with the nket." Chapter 110: Why is it so easy to blush?

Chapter 110: Chapter 110: Why is it so easy to blush?

Gu Ze then realized that Su Ruanruans head was resting on his arm, making it sore. Gu Yuanpei said, "Take her inside to sleep. This child usually works hard and seldom has the luxury of sleeping in." There was indeed a touch of bitterness in his words. Under someone elses roof, how could one act as they please? It was probably the same at the Su Family. Gu Ze carefully picked up Su Ruanruan and ced her on the small bed in the small room, covering her with a nket. After washing his face, he went out and saw Gu Yuanpei in a daze. "Dad, what exactly is wrong with Mom?" Gu Yuanpei nced at the nurse, lowered his voice, and said: "Your mother heard the Bao couple talking about Ruanruans background, convinced that Ruanruan is your sister. Thats what happened." Gu Ze found it unbelievable: "How could that be?" Gu Yuanpei sighed, "Yeah, what a coincidence! Just now, I was persuading your mother to agree to a DNA test, and she finally agreed to sleep." He continued, "Lets wait until your mom feels a bit better to do the test. Find a reliable doctor and try to dy it. Your mom will recover better if she has hopes... Im afraid she wont be able to handle the disappointment." Gu Ze nodded. He suggested Gu Yuanpei get some rest, and he would stay with Mrs. Gu. At four in the morning, Su Ruanruan got up to check on Mrs. Gu and confirmed her condition was stable... At about seven in the morning, all three of them were a bit tired. Mrs. Gu was still asleep. The doctor came and after the examination said, "Shes stabilized!" Gu Yuanpei breathed a sigh of relief and said to Gu Ze, "Call the driver to pick you up. Ruanruan will temporarily stay at our house. Ill go talk to Bao Mingyuan." Gu Ze took Su Ruanruan downstairs. Bao Jingyans car was already in the hospital parking lot. Gu Ze lit a cigarette and said with a tilt of his chin, "Lets go." Su Ruanruan didnt move, so Gu Ze simply led her over. Bao Jingyan rolled down his car window. In the early morning, Bao Jingyan wore a crisp white shirt and a light coffee-colored slim tie, looking exceptionally refined and handsome. Seeing Bao Jingyans dapper yet beastly appearance irritated Gu Ze, who sternly said, "Dont you dare bully her." Su Ruanruans ears turned red. Bao Jingyan opened the car door for her to get in, nodded at Gu Ze, and drove off. Gu Ze stood there, slowly smoking... In the car, Su Ruanruan was nestled quietly without speaking. Bao Jingyan drove with one hand, the other hand holding onto hers, he hoarsely asked, "Are you tired?" "I slept quite a bit during the night," she said softly. Bao Jingyan let go of her hand and focused on driving; about half an hourter, he brought her to his vi. Su Ruanruan had visited a few times, but she had never slept there. She hesitated. Bao Jingyan looked sideways, "Why arent you getting out?" Su Ruanruan bit her lip. Suddenly, Bao Jingyan chuckled lightly and pulled her out of the car. Entering the hall, he told the servants, "Make breakfast light." The servants recognized Su Ruanruan, covered their mouths and smiled, "Sir had already orderedst night. Everything was prepared early for Miss Su." Su Ruanruans face turned red, and she quietly pulled away from Bao Jingyan to sit on the dining chair. Bao Jingyan followed, his heart stirred by her flushed ears. "Why do you blush so easily?" He tugged at her ear as if he was tugging a little rabbit. Su Ruanruans face grew even redder, she warned in a low voice, "There are others here, you cant do this." He was always uninhibited, and she couldnt handle it. Bao Jingyan, moved, had to restrain himself. The servants brought breakfast, which was a southern-style preserved egg and lean meat porridge, cooked excellently and topped with finely chopped green onions, emitting a delicious aroma. Su Ruanruan smelled the fragrance and felt hungry. Chapter 111: It鈥檚 Okay for Me to Sleep in the Guest Room

Chapter 111: Chapter 111: Its Okay for Me to Sleep in the Guest Room

Bao Jingyan served her a bowl, "Auntie Lis specialty." Auntie Li brought over some pastries as well, "These crystal dumplings, tri-color cakes, and steamed chicken feet are all very good, Miss Su, please try them." Su Ruanruan ate one of each, then drank a bowl of porridge. It was an indescribable satisfaction. She said with a light smile: "The taste is really good, very authentic." Auntie Li rubbed her apron: "d you like it, Ill learn some new dishes so that Miss Su can have a different breakfast every day." That statement carried quite some implications. Su Ruanruans face turned bright red. Auntie Li chuckled: "You and the master are sooner orter going to get married! Our master has always been chaste, and Miss Su is the first one he has brought home." Bao Jingyan pushed away the bowl in his hand and wiped his lips: "Auntie Li, you talk too much." Auntie Li hurriedly smacked herself: "Look at me, just an olddy with a gabby mouth." Su Ruanruan, afraid that Bao Jingyan would me her, softly said: "The breakfast was delicious." Bao Jingyan turned to look at her, his eyes clear: "Already defending someone before youre even in the door?" Ruanruan was livid. Does he really have to embarrass her in front of others? "Angry?" he said with a lowugh: "Go upstairs, Ill apologize." Su Ruanruan didnt dare let him apologize; it was good enough if he didnt bully her. She thought Bao Jingyan would let her sleep in the guest room, but he led her directly to the master bedroom. Looking at the luxurious, dark-colored big bed, Su Ruanruan resisted: "Ill sleep in the guest room." Bao Jingyan leisurely locked the bedroom door and unbuttoned two buttons of his shirt: "Youll sleep here." He blinked, "Auntie Li said, after all, were going to get married eventually." Su Ruanruan took a step back, retorting: "I never said I would marry you." "What, ate and ran?" He pulled her closer, his one hand effortlessly encircling her slim waist. Su Ruanruan was pressed against him and couldnt break free. Bao Jingyan, feeling sorry for her, didnt make a fuss and said with a hoarse voice: "Ill get you clothes. Take a bath and get some sleep." Su Ruanruan still stubbornly said: "I never said I would get married." "So youre not nning to marry and you n to let me sleep for free?" He pinched her little nose, not getting angry with her. He wasnt angry, but Su Ruanruan was. She turned and entered the bathroom and even closed the door. Bao Jingyan looked at the closed door and shook his head. Quite the temper. He leisurely walked into the dressing room and opened a section of the wardrobe. Inside were all kinds of girls clothes, mainly for spring and autumn, along with some pajamas and loungewear. He pulled out a white bathrobe-style nightgown and walked to the bathroom door: "Clothes." Su Ruanruan was worrying about forgetting this, so she opened a tiny crack and took the clothes inside. After taking them, she realized that not only the nightgown but also the under|wear| under|garments were prepared; her face was a little hot but she still washed up and changed. Bao Jingyan leaned against the headboard reading documents, looking very focused. Hearing the bathroom door open, he looked up. Su Ruanruan stood there in the bathrobe, looking tender and fresh, her ck straight hair slightly wet resting on her shoulders, her slender body hidden beneath the thin fabric, her waist so fine. Also, she wasnt wearing shoes. Her pale little feet, like a row of plump and adorable enoki mushrooms. He silently watched her until she, feeling uneasy, lowered her head to examine herself, then he said in a low voice: "Come and sleep." He pulled back the covers beside him. Su Ruanruan walked over barefoot and snuggled into the nket. Bao Jingyan bent down: "Ill go to the office, well have lunch together when Ie back in the afternoon, then Ill take you to the hospital." With him being such a gentleman, Su Ruanruan breathed a sigh of relief. Chapter 112: Mu Jiu Seeks Marriage Proposal

Chapter 112: Chapter 112: Mu Jiu Seeks Marriage Proposal

Bao Jingyan, visibly moved by her soft and delicate demeanor, couldnt help but drag her out from under the covers and held her close to kiss... Having spent a lot of time with him, Su Ruanruan understood his temper well. Refusing his kiss could lead to a more intense reaction, so she simply rxed in his arms and let him take what he wanted. After a while, Bao Jingyan finally let her go, "Alright, time to sleep." Su Ruanruans cheeks were red as she hurriedly closed her eyes. Bao Jingyan smiled briefly and walked out, closing the door behind him. He headed straight for the office; there was an important meeting scheduled for this morning, but upon reaching the meeting room, he was surprised to find Bao Mingyuan hadnt arrived. Bao Jingyan asked Secretary Gao, "Why hasnt President Bao arrived yet?" Secretary Gao smiled, "President Bao called to say there was a situation at home and asked you, Young President Bao, to preside over todays meeting." Bao Jingyan gave her a look. Secretary Gao shivered, not daring to say more. Meanwhile, the Bao Mansion had a distinguished visitor. Early in the morning, a servant stumbled over, "Sir, there is a visitor." Bao Mingyuan frowned, "Who is it? How did you let them in?" The servant, out of breath, replied, "A line of cars arrived at the gate. I counted at least more than ten. I went to ask who it was, and only then did I find out it was Mu Jiu." Bao Mingyuan narrowed his eyes. Mu Qun, ranked ninth. Known as Mu Jiu. He owned most of the entertainment venues in Jiang City, both overt and covert, and had a significant entertainmentpany under his name. Anyone wishing to do business in Jiang City had to pay their respects at Mu Jius docks first; he was definitely a big shot in town. This distinguished guests arrival surprised Bao Mingyuan. Because both professionally and personally, the Bao Family had no connection with Mu Jiu. After pondering for a while, Bao Mingyuan decided to meet this famous figure in person. A tall, slim figure entered the hall. Mu Qun was in his early thirties, with an elegant demeanor and striking features. But having built his empire from scratch at a young age involving many bloody deeds, there remained a trace of ruthlessness in his expression that couldnt be washed away. The hall was filled with expensive gifts. Bao Mingyuan, astonished, asked, "Mu Jiu, what is all this about?" Mu Qun politely replied to Bao Mingyuan, "My apologies for the intrusion today! I hope Mr. Bao can forgive me." After seating him and serving tea, Bao Mingyuan asked directly, "Please speak your mind." Mu Qun cleared his throat, "I have an audacious request. I wish to propose to the youngdy of your house." Bao Mingyuan was taken aback. He thought Mu Qun was just paying a visit, but here he was, making a serious request. Calcting the ages, he assumed it was about Bao Jingse, "You should know about Jingses temperament... Im afraid I cant make this decision for her. You better talk to Jingyan." He added with a smile, "Besides, arranged marriages arent really in vogue now, people prefer love marriages." He felt he had refused tactfully, but Mu Qun said, "Its not Jingse." Bao Mingyuan frowned, "Not Jingse? Could it be Jingyuan?" Just then, a voice came from the second floor, "I refuse to marry." Bao Mingyuan and Mu Qun both looked towards the second floor. On the stairs stood Bao Jingyuan and Bao Ziqi. As Bao Jingyuan spoke, she ran downstairs and clung to Bao Mingyuans arm, shaking it gently, "Dad, I wont marry!" She spoke recklessly, young and unaware of the extent of her words: "I like someone like Professor Su, not those who are involved in violence all the time! How could he possibly be a match for me!" "Jingyuan!" Bao Mingyuan eximed angrily, "Apologize to Mu Jiu." Bao Jingyuan, leveraging her familys influence, scoffed, "I certainly will not apologize! Who does he think he is, bringing gifts and thinking to marry me without even asking if I am willing or not?" Chapter 113: The One I Want to Marry is Su Ruanruan

Chapter 113: Chapter 113: The One I Want to Marry is Su Ruanruan

She has always been willful and Bao Mingyuan also had no way to deal with her, so he could only helplessly say to Mu Qun: "Please forgive her, the child is ignorant." Mu Qun took a sip of tea and smiled lightly: "Rest assured, I certainly wont take it to heart." Bao Jingyuan was thoroughly against it, but upon hearing this, she took a closer look at this Mr. Mu Jiu. He wasnt very old and was extremely handsome. Just a bit fierce. She, being young, was somewhat moved by good-looking men, especially when the other party was also interested in her. Just as she was feeling the stirrings of youthful emotions, Mu Qun said to Bao Mingyuan, "Sir is mistaken, thedy I wish to marry is Miss Su." Miss Su? Su Ruanruan? Upon hearing this, Bao Jingyuans delicate face twitched unnaturally. She felt extremely embarrassed; she had simply humiliated herself. Mu Qunpletely ignored her, and politely said to Bao Mingyuan: "Its rather abrupt of me, but may I have the honor of meeting Miss Su?" Bao Mingyuan was still in shock. After a while, he finally asked: "How does Mr. Mu Jiu know Ruanruan?" Mu Qun tapped his trousers and smiled lightly: "I have had the fortune of a brief encounter with Miss Su, and justst night, I heard of her deeds and took a great liking to her." After hearing this, Bao Mingyuan took a sip of tea topose himself before saying: "Theres no need to be so hasty! And furthermore..." He looked up at his second son on the second floor, speaking deliberately: "I assume Mr. Mu Jiu also knows what Ruanruan means to the Bao Family." This half-hearted objection didnt bother Mu Qun at all, "Ive also heard that you, sir, once considered introducing Miss Su to the only son of the Gu Family. Therefore, Miss Su doesnt have any marital ties with the Bao Family, which is why Ive taken the liberty toe here." He made a well-reasoned case, and Bao Mingyuan felt that this man in his early thirties was not easy to handle. In fact, marrying Ruanruan to the well-connected and powerful Mu Qun would bring benefits, but afterst night, Bao Mingyuan had developed special feelings for Su Ruanruan and was reluctant to let her go. Although Ruanruans background was unclear, she deserved a clean and honorable family, and marrying someone like Mu Qun who had emerged from the mud would be too much of apromise for her. Moreover, Ziqis attitude towards Ruanruan was still ambiguously undefined. Bao Mingyuan smiled faintly: "Mr. Mu Jiu seems to be well-informed, and you must also know that this kid is quite headstrong. Hence, even as her uncle, I cannot decide on her marriage. How about this: when Ruanruan returns, I will ask her about it." Mu Qun was surprised: "Shes not at the Bao Familys home?" Bao Mingyuan then said: "Early this morning, the Gu Family called, saying they had taken her to rest at their ce." Hearing that Su Ruanruan was not around, Mu Qun prepared to take his leave. Bao Mingyuan courteously saw him out, also tactfully indicating that he could not ept those gifts. Mu Qun offered a slight smile: "Consider it a modest gift of respect to you, sir, for our future interactions." Bao Mingyuans expression stiffened. Was this man nning to impose himself on the Bao Family? What era was this, to still talk of forced marriages? Besides, the Bao Familys influence was not something Mu Qun could just shake, this young man was far too presumptuous. Indeed, Mu Qun was audacious. Without this boldness, how could he have achieved his position today? He insisted on leaving the gifts, half-forcing, half-politely, and took his leave with his entourage. After the car drove away, Bao Mingyuan stood in the center of the living room, his expression as dark as still water. Bao Ziqi slowly descended from the second floor, his fingers lightly tracing over the gifts. Bao Jingyuan kicked at them, discontentedly saying: "Who does he think he is! Daring to make a scene in our home." Chapter 114: She Kept A Trick Up Her Sleeve For Herself

Chapter 114: Chapter 114: She Kept A Trick Up Her Sleeve For Herself

She said to Bao Mingyuan: "Its all because of Su Ruanruan, shes a disaster! Men be enchanted by her. My elder brother, my second brother, and then this Mu Jiu, who appeared out of nowhere, is also bewitched by her." Bao Jingyan and Bao Ziqi never openly discussed their feelings for Su Ruanruan in Bao Family, but Bao Jingyuan just blurted it out boldly. For a moment, the hall fell silent. Bao Mingyuans expression darkened, and Bao Ziqis face grew colder. Bao Jingyuan, infuriated, stamped her foot: "You all side with Su Ruanruan, Im going to tell mom." After she ran off, Bao Mingyuan shook his head helplessly: "Jingyuan is young and talks nonsense, Ziqi, dont take it seriously." Bao Ziqi snorted coldly: "Its because shes young that she dares to speak the truth." Using that tone, Bao Mingyuan was taken aback and countered: "Are you saying you have feelings for Ruanruan?" Bao Ziqi didnt respond and simply grabbed his car keys and left. Bao Mingyuan couldnt help but shake his head. Just then, Mrs. Bao came downstairs, already informed of Mu Quns visit by her confidant. Seeing his wife descend the stairs, Bao Mingyuan couldnt help butin: "These children are getting out of hand." Mrs. Bao sat down at the dining table and began mournfully: "Thats because youve neglected them! Now you only care about promoting Ruanruan, how could you remember the children I bore for you." Bao Mingyuan was both amused and annoyed: "What are you talking about?" He was rushing to attend a meeting, but thats when he received a call from Secretary Gao. "President Bao, theres trouble." "What could possibly go wrong?" Bao Mingyuan frowned slightly, walking towards the exit. Secretary Gaos tone was grave: "Yanning Pharmaceutical has developed a simr new drug ahead of us and unexpectedlyunched it today." "Thats impossible!" Bao Mingyuan stopped in his tracks, "Put Jingyan on the phone." Secretary Gao lowered his voice: "Young President Bao has paused the meeting this morning! Hes now in his office." Bao Mingyuan cursed under his breath, then quickly strode to his car. After he left, Mrs. Bao, who remained seated, slightly curled her lips. No one would bet everything on a man. She had kept an ace up her sleeve. Yanning Pharmaceutical, she owned ten percent of its shares. With this new drug developed ahead of Dijing Group, just her dividends were estimated to be in the billions. Mrs. Bao was in an extremely good mood. Meanwhile, Bao Mingyuan headed to thepany, where Bao Jingyan was already in a meeting. Bao Mingyuan burst through the door, furious: "This is impossible!" Bear in mind, Dijing Group began developing this type of drug three years ago, when Yanning Pharmaceutical was still ying in the mud! Bao Mingyuan sat down, swept all the documents aside. "Today, lets not talk about anything else, just root out the mole." He scanned the room: "You all know the scale of Yanning Pharmaceutical and their R&D capabilities. Its absolutely impossible for them to develop a new drug first! Unless they stole it from Dijings work." In the meeting room, none of the mid to senior level managers dared to speak. Bao Jingyan finally spoke up: "Dont worry, they wont get far with this. I guarantee that within half a month of this drug hitting the market, there will be disputes between patients and medical providers." Bao Mingyuan frowned: "Youre sure? Jingyan, their team isnt ipetent, they wouldnt dare release it without being nearly certain, right?" Bao Jingyan shifted his jaw slightly. Secretary Gao immediately brought out several bank statements and ced them in front of Bao Mingyuan. Bao Mingming nced at them and was stunned. After a long while, he murmured, "It turns out to be him." Chapter 115: Su Ruanruan is like a little fairy

Chapter 115: Chapter 115: Su Ruanruan is like a little fairy

Bao Jingyan smiled coldly: "Hes also an old man by fathers side! But he should only have the early data of Dijing, with their abilities they absolutely cant develop a foolproof new drug, so Im saying this drug is bound to have problems." Bao Mingyuans expression softened: "Jingyan, what are you nning to do?" Bao Jingyan, with his elegantly boned fingers, gently tapped on the table, paused for a moment, and then said: "Surreptitiously buy up Yanning Pharmaceuticals stock, then sell it off within two weeks." Bao Mingyuan curled his lip slightly: "What about our ownpany?" Bao Mingyuan said four words, "Continue to develop." After saying this, he stood up and walked outside. In the morning, he went to theboratory, and on the way, he phoned the vis servant. * Vi. Su Ruanruan slept until two in the afternoon before waking up, and as she sat up, she heard a knock on the door. "Pleasee in." At the door, Aunt Li smiled warmly: "Sir called and said he went to theboratory, and asked Miss Su to take Old Zhaos car to the hospital." Su Ruanruan nodded her head. Aunt Li saw her wearing pajamas leaning on Bao Jingyans bed, her long ck hair sleek, her face beautiful and pure. In her heart, she had already imagined countless scenarios. Aunt Li, just thinking about it, rubbed her hands happily: "Miss Su, wash your face and change your clothes, the soup is ready, Ill go stir-fry the vegetables." Su Ruanruan went to the bathroom to wash up. Looking in the mirror, her cheeks were slightly red. What did it mean for her to sleep on Bao Jingyans bed like this? Ten minutester, she changed into a light pink long dress and slowly descended the stairs. Aunt Li was serving the dishes on the table, smiling squint-eyed upon seeing her. "Miss Su looks so beautiful, like a fairy descended to earth." Su Ruanruans face flushed, and she sat down. Aunt Li was busy serving her rice, and in the meantime, she nced at the newspaper delivered today. The headline was exactly the news of the new drugunched by Yanning Pharmaceutical. After reading it, Su Ruanruan smiled faintly. Aunt Li came over with the rice, saw the newspaper and said: "The master must be busy again! I heard that hispany has been working on this, but outsiders scooped them." Su Ruanruan, in a soft voice, said: "Its not a big deal, thatpany, with its crooked ways, wontst long." "Miss Su says thatpany is doomed, then it surely will be." Aunt Li didnt understand these matters, she only knew that Miss Su was very capable and had shown her force in the Bao Family, so whatever Miss Su said must be right. Su Ruanruan started smiling. Her smile was soft and sweet, very adorable. Aunt Li stared nkly again. Just like a little fairy, who wouldnt love to watch! Su Ruanruan hurried to the hospital after eating quickly. Pushing open the ward door, Gu Ze was inside. Seeing Su Ruanruaning, he immediately said: "The doctor just came by and said there has been a lot of improvement, a few more days and then discharge." Su Ruanruan was quite happy too, sat by the bed and asked softly, "Have you eaten?" Mrs. Gu could now speak, holding her hand andining: "I would like to eat, but your uncle and Gu Ze keep saying that the doctor ordered no food." Su Ruanruan nced at Gu Ze: "Liquid food is okay." Gu Ze immediately had someone prepare fresh congee. Mrs. Gus body was weak, Su Ruanruan personally fed her... Mrs. Gu, watching her with gentle and soft eyes, felt reassured and heartbroken. She quietly held Su Ruanruans hand, seemingly casual, asked: "I heard your father was very good to you when he was alive." Su Ruanruan hummed: "As a child, I lived abroad with my father for a while,ter we returned to the country because my mothers health was not good, unexpectedly... within a few years, they both passed away one after another." Chapter 116: I beg you, please spare me

Chapter 116: Chapter 116: I beg you, please spare me

She didnt borate on what happened afterward, but Mrs. Gu could imagine how difficult it must have been for a girl on her own living at the mercy of others. At this moment, she was treating Su Ruanruan as if she were her own biological daughter, wishing she could immediately have a DNA test done. However, Yuanpei appeased her by saying that they could wait until after she was discharged from the hospital. She didnt understand. What did the test have to do with her being discharged? But now that she was feeling weak and unable to physically pursue the matter herself, she had no choice but to curb her impatience and wait. Mrs. Gu, listening to Su Ruanruans asional whispering and receiving such tender care, felt an unprecedented sense of tranquility and bliss in her heart. Su Ruanruan stopped after feeding her half a bowl. Mrs. Gu was reluctant to let go: "Are you tired? If you are, go rest on the sofa." "I just woke up." Su Ruanruan peeled another apple, then squeezed juice for Mrs. Gu to drink. Mrs. Gu, who had been roughed up by two rugged men for half a day and was feeling rather annoyed, now found herself warmed by the tender and considerate gestures of the young girl. She secretly thought: if it turned out that they werent biologically rted, she would have to alter the DNA results. She must make Yuanpei acknowledge this daughter no matter what. Gu Ze watched his mothers expression and tugged at Su Ruanruans hair: "My mom has eyes only for you, Ruanruan." Mrs. Gu choked on her drink and red at her son. "If you know that, then good! Look at your sister, then look at yourself, always fooling around with girls outside inappropriately." Su Ruanruanughed. She revealed a row of small teeth, very cute indeed. Mrs. Gu was mesmerized once again... After chatting and joking with the two children for a while, she went to sleep, and a nurse watched over as Gu Ze returned to hispany first. Su Ruanruan sat on the sofa reading for a while, then roamed around a bit. Just as Su Ruanruan came out, she ran into someone. Bao Ziqi. Bao Ziqi hade to visit Su Qionglin; since he hadnt apanied herst night, her endless calls had bombed his phone, and so he came to see her. Su Qionglin had her insecurities, of course, always behaving submissively towards him. Bao Ziqi thought to himself with a cool detachment: Whats wrong with marrying a woman like this? Obedient, beautiful, and presentable in public. Why bother... As he pondered, he raised his eyes and saw Su Ruanruan. She was dressed very girlishly today. A light pink long dress, tightly cinched at the waist, ented with a circle of pearls around the neckline and cuffs. Extremely pretty. Bao Ziqi looked at her coldly. Su Ruanruan, unconcerned, nodded lightly at him. In her mind, Bao Ziqi was just an acquaintance. At most, maybe her eldest sisters husband. Having made the rare trip to Tongsheng Hospital, Su Ruanruan naturally wanted to take a look at Su Yugus office. Just as she reached the elevator, someone grabbed onto her. The person pleaded in a pitiful voice: "I beg you, Miss Su, please let me off the hook." Su Ruanruan paused and turned her head to look. It was Hao Keke. Su Ruanruan didnt have a good impression of her and replied indifferently: "It seems to me we have no grudge; what do you mean by asking me to let you off?" Hao Kekes eyes were red and swollen, her expression even more pitiful: "Teacher Ziqi rejected me, can you honestly say it has nothing to do with you?" Su Ruanruan was baffled: "If he rejected you, you should go to him, not me." Hao Keke took a breath: "But Starry Sky was yed by you. How can you say it has nothing to do with you?" Su Ruanruan could hardly believe what Hao Keke was saying. Could this girl be any more devoid of principles? It was clear she had impersonated her, with malicious intent, and now that she had been exposed, she still had the nerve to me others. Just as Su Ruanruan was about to respond, Hao Keke burst into tears and said: "You clearly knew why I was favored by Teacher Ziqi. You should have yed the piano poorly on purpose, but you deliberately yed it well, intending to pick a fight with me." Chapter 117: Su Ruanruan Gets Scalded

Chapter 117: Chapter 117: Su Ruanruan Gets Scalded

Especially, when she saw Su Ruanruan just now, she was struck by her beauty. Delicate, not tainted by a speck of dust - thats Su Ruanruan for you! There are many attractive female stars in the entertainment industry, but few have the clean aura that Su Ruanruan possesses. Hao Keke was mad with jealousy. Su Ruanruan ignored her and made to leave, which made Hao Keke tremble with rage. Just then a nurse wasing over with a kettle of hot water, and in a moment of madness She wanted to scald Su Ruanruan to death. Better yet, to ensure Su Ruanruan would never be able to y piano again, then Teacher Ziqi would notice her. Just as she grabbed the kettle and threw the boiling water towards Su Ruanruan, a cold male voice sounded: "Get out of the way." Su Ruanruan was stunned. Her body was embraced by someone and moved to the side. Then, her arm was seized by a burning pain. Most of the boiling water spilled on the floor, but a small portion sshed directly onto Su Ruanruans arm. She cried out in pain. The one who held her was Bao Ziqi. Su Ruanruan was injured; he intended to take her to the surgery for treatment. At this moment, Hao Keke wasnt settled and bit her lip to say softly: "Teacher Ziqi, I didnt mean to, I just wanted to..." Bao Ziqi kicked her immediately. Hao Kekes body mmed against the wall, her head throbbing with immense pain. She could hardly believe it. Teacher Ziqi actually kicked her for Su Ruanruan? Bao Ziqi raised his voice to the nurse: "Call the police, and bring up the surveince footage." This kind of person must be punished. The nurse was frightened as well but immediately called the police upon Bao Ziqis order... Bao Ziqi didnt wait; he dragged Su Ruanruan straight to the surgical emergency room. The surgeon recognized Su Ruanruan and hastily asked, "What happened?" Su Ruanruan managed a slight smile: "Its nothing serious, Ill just apply some ointment myself." The doctor eyed her: "I cant apply ointment here? Youve always been this way since childhood, afraid of troubling others." While he spoke, he took scissors and carefully cut open her sleeve. Su Ruanruans skin was fair and delicate, but that patch was scalded red. After examining, the doctor said with a smile, "We need to apply medicine properly, otherwise itll leave a scar." Su Ruanruan didnt mind much: "Its okay." But Bao Ziqi was gruffly saying: "Prepare the full set of medicines. Make sure to apply them properly these next few days." Su Ruanruan: ... It was then the doctor noticed Bao Ziqi and was somewhat puzzled. Isnt the second young master of the Bao Family Miss Thirds boyfriend? Howe he was holding Ruanruan and wouldnt let go? After all, as a man himself, what isnt clear after a second nce? Seeing but not revealing, the doctor directly took the ointment, applied it for Su Ruanruan, and gave a few more instructions... On their way out, Su Ruanruan said to Bao Ziqi: "Thank you for just now." Bao Ziqi had his hands in his pockets, appearing cold and aloof: "Hao Keke did what she did because of me after all. If it wasnt my business, I wouldnt care about your life or death." His venomous tongue and mercurial mood were something Su Ruanruan had experienced before. She wasnt bothered by it and said goodbye to him. Suddenly Bao Ziqi stopped her, "Someone came to our house this morning." Su Ruanruan was puzzled. Bao Ziqi snorted, "To propose marriage! Hes a big shot from Jiangcheng. Su Ruanruan, now is a good opportunity if you want to leave the Bao Family." Su Ruanruan was stunned for a moment. A marriage proposal? As she was pondering, Bao Ziqi coldly added, "Feels good to be pursued, doesnt it?" "I dont know what you mean," Su Ruanruan was irritated by his cynicism: "Am I supposed to marry whoever proposes to me?" But Bao Ziqi didnt let her off: "Then who do you want to marry?" Chapter 118 Bao Jingyan Gets Jealous

Chapter 118: Chapter 118 Bao Jingyan Gets Jealous

Su Ruanruan resignedly said: "Bao Ziqi, do you really have to speak like this?" Suddenly her eyes cast downward, "If you really cant amodate me, Ill move out tomorrow." After she spoke, Bao Ziqi stared at her intensely. After a long pause, he sneered: "Having a backer really makes you different." He left without looking back. Su Ruanruan lifted her arm and only then noticed the pain. She initially nned to go to her uncle Su Yugu to inquire about the situation, but she paused, thought for a moment, and made a phone call to Bao Jingyans driver toe pick her up. Old Zhao immediately came to get her. Upon getting into the car, Old Zhao noticed her injured hand and eximed, "What happened here, Young Master Jingyan will be so distressed." "It was just a minor burn, its nothing." Su Ruanruan downyed it. Still worried, Old Zhao insisted, "No, we need to get this checked at the hospital." Su Ruanruan smiled, "I just came from the hospital." "Right." Old Zhao scratched his head, "Look at my memory." He brought Su Ruanruan back to the vi and naturally, it stirred up anothermotion; Auntie Li and a few others were terribly nervous, fussing over her with great concern. Surrounded by these women caring for her, Su Ruanruan felt a warmth in her eyes. But Auntie Li was sharp, noticing the young girl felt embarrassed and proactively suggesting she go upstairs to rest. Su Ruanruan went upstairs, changed her clothes, picked a book from Bao Jingyans study, and sat on the sofa to read. She was so engrossed that she didnt notice the evening creeping in. The sound of a car echoed from downstairs. Su Ruanruan walked out to the balcony and saw Bao Jingyan getting out of the car. Dressed in a ssic ck and white three-piece suit, elegant and noble as if he was a male god from a fashion magazine. He looked up and saw her, pausing his steps. Su Ruanruan blushed, ran back to the bedroom, and sat on the sofa pretending to read. It was an obvious attempt to hide her fluster. Bao Jingyan went straight upstairs, pushed open the door, and saw her enveloped in the dim light. Her soft yellow long dress made her look like a budding lily, delicate and beautiful. He approached, leaning over with his hands braced on the sofa arms to look at her. After a while, Su Ruanruan couldnt help but lower her book and look up, "Why are you staring at me like that?" Bao Jingyan, feeling somewhat restless, leaned in to kiss her before speaking in a husky voice, "I heard Mu Qun visited our home this morning." Mu Qun? Su Ruanruan finally realized which V.I.P. Bao Ziqi was referring to. She pretended ignorance, just gazing at Bao Jingyan. Bao Jingyan tapped her head, took off his coat, tossed it onto the bed, and removed his tie, talking while doing so, "Mu Qun, known as Mu Jiu. He has quite an influence in Jiangcheng, and many women wish to marry him." Suddenly, he implied, "If someone has any enemies, getting Mu Quns help couldnt be better." She clearly understood his insinuations. She blinked gently, "Then, if I marry him... can he solve all my problems?" No sooner had she finished speaking, a warm hand slipped into her clothes, tickling her. Su Ruanruan screamed, "Bao Jingyan... take your hand... off, hmm, hmm..." "Are you still going to talk about marrying him?" He pressed closer, trapping herpletely on the sofa. Pleading was useless; Bao Jingyanpletely had his way with her. In the end, shey limp in his chest. Her face blossomed like a lotus, and tiny beads of sweat adorned her hair. "Are you still going to say it?" Bao Jingyan nibbled on her, his voice husky. "No more." Su Ruanruan softly murmured, burying her face in the crook of his neck. His skin burned hot, and her skin was covered in a thinyer of sweat. Pressed together, it was profoundly stirring. Chapter 119 What Are You Going to Do to Her Again?

Chapter 119: Chapter 119 What Are You Going to Do to Her Again?

Bao Jingyan lowered his head and kissed her intricately, his voice even more hoarse: "Then who will you marry?" She refused to say, only holding onto his neck. When he went too far, she whimpered like a kitten. Soft pleas for mercy seeped through the door... "Bao Jingyan, I dont want it like this..." Mixed with the mans coaxing words... "I like it this way... Ruanruan, be good..." Suddenly, Su Ruanruan let out a light cry: "It hurts." Bao Jingyan stopped, frowning: "Whats wrong?" "I got burned a bit at the hospital." Su Ruanruan didnt hide anything and told him all about Hao Kekes incident. Bao Jingyan felt extremely distressed. "Does it still hurt?" "Ive already applied ointment at the hospital." Bao Jingyan got up to fetch the ointment, carefully lifted her injured arm, and meticulously applied medicine for her. As he applied it, he said, "She got off easy by not ending up in my hands." Su Ruanruan gently ced her hand on his arm, softly saying: "Just punish her as you see fit, dont you again..." Bao Jingyans dark pupils turned ice cold: "You pity her?" Seeing him like that, Su Ruanruan got angry, turned her little face to one side: "I dont want to talk to you anymore." Bao Jingyan, naturally decisive and resolute, but now showed a trace of softness: "I didnt even say anything yet, and youre already angry?" He hugged her shoulder, with a tone that somewhat coaxed. Su Ruanruan, getting annoyed, turned and challenged: "If I dont intervene, what are you going to do to her? Break one of her hands?" "That would be considered light." Bao Jingyans eyes brimmed with a mischievous aura. Su Ruanruan was so angry that she burst into tears. He was still the same! Seeing her cry, Bao Jingyan was helpless: "Whats the matter, it was just talk and I havent actually done anything to her." Su Ruanruan understood him, was it really just talk? She was stubborn for a while, then went over to tug on his arm: "I wont plead for her, but you shouldnt get involved either, just let things take their natural course, okay?" After speaking, she reached out to smooth his frown. There was a trace of fierceness there. Although she couldnt guarantee she would stay with him to the end, she didnt want him to be too ruthless in his dealings, cutting off his own retreat. Bao Jingyan caught her hand and yed with it in his palm. She did not struggle, letting him hold it. After a while, he finally said in a hoarse voice: "Its not a big deal, worth you crying and making a scene over it." He wiped the tears from the corner of her eyes and kissed her little mouth. By this point, thenterns were just beginning to be lit. He gently pinched her small face: "Ill bring dinner over." Su Ruanruan, having tangled with him for a long time and worried about the servants gossiping, blushed and said: "Ill go downstairs to eat with you." As she said it, she sat up straight and lowered her head to button up the top few buttons of her blouse. But the buttons, no bigger than grains of rice, were too slippery and she couldnt secure them properly. In the end, Bao Jingyan took over her hands and buttoned them for her. Her cheeks were red, she didnt dare to look at him. Bao Jingyan took her small hand and led her downstairs to eat. Auntie Li immediately served dinner when she saw theming down, but Auntie Lis gaze seemed to say a lot. The master had bullied her a bit too harshly. Su Ruanruan was even more embarrassed under Auntie Lis explicit gaze, and reached to brush back her hair. Her look towards Bao Jingyan carried some me. Bao Jingyan sliced the steak for her and pushed it over, with a thick-skinned face: "Its fried by the new chef, quite good." She bit her lower lip and ate with a fork in small bites. Bao Jingyan suddenly said: "Your arm is injured, stay here for the next few days." "Ill still go backter." Su Ruanruan shook her head. Bao Jingyan did not argue, but neither did he agree. Chapter 120: Ruanruan, Say You Like Me

Chapter 120: Chapter 120: Ruanruan, Say You Like Me

After dinner, Su Ruanruan received a phone call from Bao Ziqi. She picked up: "Is something the matter?" Bao Ziqi was distant and detached, "They called from over there and asked you to go to the station at ten oclock to give a statement." Su Ruanruan hummed an acknowledgment: "Ill be there on time." She waited for Bao Ziqi to hang up, but he didnt. Between them, they could hear each others breathing. Bao Jingyan came downstairs and saw that her expression was off. So he went over and wrapped an arm around her waist, his lips close to her ear as he whispered: "Bao Ziqis call?" Su Ruanruan gave him a look, then said to the person on the other end: "If theres nothing else, Im hanging up now." She hung up without waiting for Bao Ziqi to respond, and she also gently pushed Bao Jingyan away. She requested of him: "In front of others, youre not allowed to touch me." Having said that, she went upstairs. But Bao Jingyan wouldnt let her go and followed behind her. In the bedroom, he caught her shoulder and pinned her against the door, "Do you often talk to Bao Ziqi on the phone?" Su Ruanruan bit her lip: "He was just notifying me to go make a statement tomorrow." "Is he going as well?" Bao Jingyan asked sharply. Su Ruanruan didnt actually know and couldnt answer for a moment. Bao Jingyan huffed lightly: "He wants to see you." Su Ruanruan, thin-skinned and getting annoyed, argued with him: "I dont have such thoughts." "But that doesnt mean Bao Ziqi doesnt have those thoughts." Bao Jingyan pinched her chin, his gaze intense on her eyes. Su Ruanruan turned her face away, asking him softly, "Are you going to keep bringing up Bao Ziqi with me? Youre not unaware of how I entered the Bao Family, nor are you unaware of his affairs with my elder sister." Young as she was, she had her own convictions: "Since there is no possibility between him and me, and he hasnt shown any intentions, on what grounds would I have the right to refuse?" Besides, she had never liked Bao Ziqi. Yet, it was always Bao Jingyan who made her cry. Su Ruanruans eyes reddened, feeling wronged. Bao Jingyan calmed down, his voice much gentler: "Why are you crying again?" He gently touched the corner of her eye: "You cry all day, like a water baby." He added: "Why havent you cried in front of others?" He shouldnt have mentioned it, as it made Su Ruanruan really cry. Big teardrops slid down, and she didnt bother to wipe them away. Bao Jingyans heart ached; she was hurt and frightened today. He should be tender with her instead of foolishly getting jealous. Moved with pity, he held her and set her on the sofa, kneeling beside her, coaxing, "Its my fault! Go if you want to tomorrow." "I dont want to go," Su Ruanruan said with a bit of childlike pique. Bao Jingyan chuckled softly, whispering close to her ear: "Ruanruan only wants to see me, right?" "Even less so," she said, her cheeks flushing with embarrassment. Bao Jingyan shamelessly drew her hand to his face, urging her to feel him. "Ruanruan, say you like me." Su Ruanruans face blushed, and she pulled her hand back forcefully. "I dont like you." He held onto her and would not let go, enjoying this little pleasure... The matter that was interrupted earlier was stirred up again. Though this had happened several times before, Su Ruanruan still felt immensely embarrassed; she cried and fussed, cursing him for being shameless throughout... Afterward, Bao Jingyan took a long time to soothe his little one until she stopped crying. Once she was asleep, he went to the balcony to light a cigarette. His lips puffed out a ring of smoke, and he smiled. Still a child, to throw such a fit; in the future, he didnt know just how she might carry on... Chapter 121 Bao Jingyan, You鈥檝e Gotten Old

Chapter 121: Chapter 121 Bao Jingyan, Youve Gotten Old

Early morning. The morning light streams through the white curtains, sprinkling pieces of golden light on the luxurious bed. Su Ruanruan slowly opens her eyes. She is lying in the crook of the mans arm, and he is still asleep. She tilts her head back in his embrace to watch him sleep. He still lookspelling with his strong features, but with a faint blue stubble on his chin. Su Ruanruan cant help but reach out and touch it; its a bit prickly but amusing. Suddenly, Bao Jingyan opens his eyes. He doesnt startle her, just silently watches the yful child in his arms. Su Ruanruan has had her fun, and when she looks up, she meets his deep-set eyes; she jumps with a start and then embarrassingly buries herself into his embrace. "Does it hurt anymore?" "Ah?" "Your arm." He chuckles lowly, then carefully slides her arm out of the nkets and inspects it diligently. Su Ruanruan blushes, letting him look her over. Only after Bao Jingyan confirms theres no significant issue does he let go of her arm, watching her with a clear gaze, "What did you think I was asking about being hurt?" Su Ruanruan is both embarrassed and annoyed. It was nothing serious. Hes doing this on purpose, hes shameless. She gets up from the bed and runs to the changing room; the door shuts, and her heart races with thuds. Bao Jingyan, on the other hand, doesnt get up right away, but leans back against the headboard and lights a cigarette. Just then, when she escaped, she was wearing only one of his ck shirts, and the hem lifted when she bent over. He saw everything that shouldnt be seen. Bao Jingyan lets out a ring of smoke, then puts out the cigarette. He must be crazy to have kept this girl here overnight; shes so young, he really cant touch her. He throws off the covers and gets up, pulling open the door to the dressing room. Su Ruanruan has just changed her clothes when she sees hime in, instinctively stepping back. Bao Jingyan simply removes his sleepwear, changing his clothes in front of her. Su Ruanruan screams with her face covered: "You have no shame!" Bao Jingyan kindly reminds her: "We took a bath togetherst night, what havent you seen?" Shes even more embarrassed and quite annoyed, "Thats because I hurt my hand." "So, is it to be discarded after use?" He pulls her hands away, and although she screams again, when she opens her eyes, she sees hes already dressed. Neat and dapper. Su Ruanruan res at him. To him, her little act only appears adorable. He kisses her: "Ill take you to the hospital in a bit." Su Ruanruan knows hes busy and refuses: "Ill just take the drivers car." "Youre so considerate?" Bao Jingyan pulls her into his embrace, whispering into her little ear: "Youre this sensible even before youve be Mrs. Bao?" Su Ruanruans face turns red again. He continues to tease her: "Does my Ruanruan really want to be Mrs. Bao?" This time, Su Ruanruan remains silent. His voice suddenly hoarse: "Ruanruan, Ive said before that wed get married when no one else is your match." She droops her little neck, "Then youll be very old." Bao Jingyanughs serenely: "Old, am I? Want me to prove Im not?" She quickly wraps her arms around his waist, meekly burying her little face into his chest, her voice even softer: "No need." Bao Jingyan tugs at her ear and takes her hand to go downstairs for breakfast. The household staff all treat her as thedy of the house, showing her great respect, and even ask Su Ruanruan for guidance on some household matters. Su Ruanruan is young and somewhat at a loss. Bao Jingyan smiles: "Its about time you learn." He signals with his eyes, and the housekeeperes over with arge ledger, respectfully saying: "These are Sirs physical investments in various ces, usually managed by professionals, but Sir said from now on they are for Miss Su to handle." Su Ruanruan bites her lip: "Im afraid I wont be able to do it." Besides, shes young, and shes uncertain if she will end up with Bao Jingyan in the end. Chapter 122: The Past of the Su Family

Chapter 122: Chapter 122: The Past of the Su Family

Bao Jingyan knew her little tricks all too well, his slender palm resting on the booklet, "If you cant, you can learn! Ill teach you." He taught her many things, how to be a mistress of the house. He taught her, how to be a woman. Su Ruanruan did not agree at once. Bao Jingyan coaxed her softly: "Arent you interested in Tongsheng Hospital? What will you do if it falls into your hands one day?" Su Ruanruan was silent, continuing to sip her congee slowly. She always felt that he had ulterior motives. The housekeeper brought out another item, "This is the ounting book of Tongsheng Hospital over the years." Su Ruanruan was stunned for a moment, then asked Bao Jingyan excitedly, "Where did you get this from?" Bao Jingyan took a sip of his coffee and said slowly, "Wanting it is enough to have it." He watched her flip through the ledger and was reminded of something. That day, Su Ruan blurted out in a rage that "Ruanruan and I have no blood rtion," so what exactly was Ruanruans background? But, she was willing to be Ziqis concubine to investigate the cause of Su Peimings death. Should he tell her? For a moment, even Bao Jingyan hesitated. Su Ruanruan eagerly looked through the medical records of Tongsheng Hospital from the year beforest and the year prior, the very years her father passed away. But after a long search, she found nothing suspicious. She slowly closed the ounting book, her little face slightly disappointed. Bao Jingyan gently asked her, "Was Su Peiming good to you?" She nodded. Then she raised her eyes and looked nkly at him, "Dad was in good health with no illness, and he loved mom very much... He would nevermit suicide so easily." Back when she was young, she wanted to uncover the truth but was dismissed by the Su Family with a few words. The day Su Peiming died, he turned into a handful of ashes, andter, mom in the sanitarium somehow heard about it and followed suit. She became an orphan. She remembers that night, when the old Mr. Su got very angry and smashed everything in the study. Her uncle Su Yugu came down from upstairs, much more dispirited as well. He saw Su Ruanruan, only patted her shoulder and forced a smile: "From now on, your uncle and aunt will take care of you." They took very good care of her, all the way to the Bao Family... Su Ruanruans lips curled up in a cold smile. A hand rested on the back of her hand. The servants all conscientiously left. Bao Jingyan wiped away her tears, saying tenderly, "Its okay if you dont want to learn, why the tears?" With him like this, Su Ruanruan felt even more like crying. He obviously knew. She leaned her head against his arm and whispered softly, "Bao Jingyan, sometimes youre very mean, but sometimes youre particrly kind." He stroked her hair, still consoling her gently: "My Ruanruan is so capable, whatever she wants to do, shell surely aplish." "Really?" Su Ruanruan looked up at him. He leaned in and kissed her, his voice hoarse, "Of course its true." Su Ruanruan smiled faintly. Revealing a row of small white teeth, very adorable. Bao Jingyan pulled her up, "Ill take you to the hospital, if we dont leave soon, Ill bete." Once in the car, Su Ruanruan asked him, "Is it because of the Yanning Pharmaceutical issue?" Bao Jingyan nodded. After a while, he suddenly chuckled softly, "Youre not asking more?" "Theres nothing to ask! They cant produce good medicine anyway," Su Ruanruan said ndly, then continued, "But have you ever thought about who might have leaked the information?" Grinding his white teeth, Bao Jingyan sneered: "Hold off for now, when the timees, well thoroughly extricate this bloodworm." With him saying this, Su Ruanruan had an understanding in her heart. Chapter 123 Bao Jingyan鈥檚 Brutal Method

Chapter 123: Chapter 123 Bao Jingyans Brutal Method

Bao Jingyan took Su Ruanruan to the hospital, only to find the entrance of Mrs. Gus ward in chaos. Two elderly people were kneeling and crying, seemingly desperate travelers from afar. "Whats going on?" Bao Jingyan frowned. Gu Ze lifted his chin slightly: "Its Hao Kekes parents, Ive already called security." While he was speaking, Hao Kekes parents rushed over, especially the mother, who directly clung to Su Ruanruans legs, sobbing and pleading, "I beg you, please spare our Keke." The middle-aged woman clung to her tightly, causing red marks on her calves. Su Ruanruan felt a chilling sensation in her heart. What meant by asking her to spare Hao Keke, it was clearly Hao Keke who did wrong. Su Ruanruans frail and gentle temperament does not mean Bao Jingyan has an easy temper. He kicked away the obnoxious woman with such force that one of her teeth broke. The womany on the ground moaning, while her husband rushed over, shouting her name. The scene looked pitiful. Bao Jingyan gestured for Gu Ze to take Su Ruanruan away. Once Su Ruanruan had left, Bao Jingyan stepped forward. The couple looked up to see the tall, handsome, and distinguished man before them, trembling with fear. They knew they couldnt afford to provoke someone like him, tremblingly they asked, "Is this young master Bao?" They thought the man before them was Bao Ziqi. Bao Jingyan didnt correct them, instead, looking down at them he said: "I will have someone send you a check for 2 million, but Hao Keke must serve two years in prison." Hao Kekes mother immediately started wailing, "Our Keke is innocent, she did no wrong! Its all that vixens fault, why should Keke go to prison?" "Three years." "Young Master Bao, you cant do this!" "Five years." Bao Jingyan coldly uttered a few words: "If you persist, I assure you she will never leave prison for the rest of her life." He squatted down, with a slight smile: "Life is full of idents, isnt it?" The couple was stunned. They didnt dare shed another tear. Just staring nkly at Bao Jingyan, observing the man from a different world. Bao Jingyan sneered, stood up, and dropped a sentence. "Never set foot in Jiangcheng again, and never bother her." Of course, five years exchanged for 5 million. Hao Kekes parents left Jiangcheng that very day. That evening, Bao Jingyan came to pick up Su Ruanruan, sitting in the car, Su Ruanruan asked him. Bao Jingyan turned his head and smiled lightly: "Its already resolved." Su Ruanruan was somewhat dazed. "Whats wrong, do you think I was too violent again?" he held her hand. Su Ruanruan snapped back, "Focus on driving." Bao Jingyan let go of her hand, focusing intently on the road ahead. About five minutester, Su Ruanruan spoke: "Actually, sometimes you are notpletely wrong." Bao Jingyan lightlyughed. When they got home, Bao Jingyan changed Su Ruanruans dressing and examined her calves. Thankfully, there were no marks. "I told you its nothing." Su Ruanruan lowered her skirt, whispered softly: "But you are quite violent, kicking out someones tooth." Coincidentally, Aunt Li brought in coffee and Bao Jingyan saidughing: "Listen to this, the girl is sympathizing with strangers now." Aunt Li was good at lightening the mood: "Thats because Miss Su is kind-hearted. With such gentleness, she will definitely be a good mother in the future." Su Ruanruans face immediately flushed. Bao Jingyan sipped his coffee, calmly replying: "Aunt Li, you are wrong here, Ruanruan is only 18 years old, how could she have children!" Aunt Li straightforwardly responded: "In the past, 16-year-olds could have children." Chapter 124: First Meeting with Mu Jiu

Chapter 124: Chapter 124: First Meeting with Mu Jiu

The atmosphere suddenly became somewhat ambiguous. Aunt Li was still beaming with joy. Su Ruanruan felt both shy and yet unable to react harshly. Bao Jingyan reached out his hand to pull her over and stroked her gently: "Youre still so young, how could I bear to let go." This sentence made Aunt Li imagine countless scenarios. Seeing Su Ruanruan feeling really shy, Bao Jingyan asked Aunt Li to go cut some melon. When Aunt Li left, Su Ruanruan, biting her lip, said seriously: "You cant do this anymore." "Aunt Li is not an outsider," he coaxed her. Su Ruanruan fell silent, just nestling in his embrace. She rarely was thispliant; Bao Jingyan also cherished such moments and simply picked up a book to read with her. Su Ruanruans mind wasnt on the book; she asked him softly, "Hows everything at theb?" Bao Jingyan moved the book aside: "We dont talk about work at home." Su Ruanruan looked at him. He pretended to read and after a while said: "Ive seen your notes, and I decided to reduce thatponent you marked by half. This way, the medication wont be so aggressive." Su Ruanruan nodded: "But this way, the therapeutic effect wont be as remarkable either." Bao Jingyan suddenly picked up a small medicine bottle from the coffee table and ced it in Su Ruanruans palm. Su Ruanruan carefully examined it and, after thinking for a moment, was overjoyed. "How did you think of this?" Bao Jingyan said, "Who says you only use one medicine to treat an illness?" Su Ruanruan held the bottle dearly. Bao Jingyan wrapped his arms around her from behind, murmuring softly, "Follow me to the Imperial Vista for internship in a couple of days, okay?" Su Ruanruan turned towards him, "Would Uncle suspect anything?" "He will," Bao Jingyan said very certainly. Su Ruanruan hesitated. Bao Jingyan gently pinched her chin: "But he wont say it out loud; he cant bear to have you away from the Bao Family." She still felt uneasy, but Bao Jingyan had already decided. Ruanruan was staying here, unaware that Mu Qun was visiting the Bao Mansion each day over the past few days. Proposing marriage. In a persistence not to leave without seeing Su Ruanruan. Bao Jingyan knew what Bao Mingyuan was like. As long as the benefits were sufficient, nothing was too hard to let go of. So, this matter couldnt be dyed. Bao Jingyan had his ways, but that night he did not tease Su Ruanruan and just let her lie in his arms wearing a thin underskirt... After staying with Bao Jingyan for three or four days, Su Ruanruan felt she could not continue staying any longer. On the fifth day, she returned to the Bao Mansion. Just as she entered the hall, she saw there were visitors. A man in his thirties, very well-groomed, only his aura was a bit too dominating. Su Ruanruan guessed this must be Mr. Mu Jiu. Just then, Mrs. Bao spoke up: "Ruanruan, we were just waiting for you." Su Ruanruan smiled slightly, "Auntie, is something the matter?" Mrs. Bao affectionately had her sit and then rebuked her own husband: "Look at you, not even introducing the two young people? Youre really something." Bao Mingyuan helplessly: Mr. Mu Jiu... Child? Just as he was about to speak, Mrs. Bao held back a smile, "Mingyuan, Mr. Mu Jiu is indeed very sincere." With that statement, Bao Mingyuan hesitated a bit. Indeed, the conditions Mr. Mu Jiu had proposed were very tempting. Two ports! Such coveted assets! With these, he could virtually control Gu Yuanpei, that old man. Bao Mingyuan was tempted. Of course, he couldnt be too overbearing, so he said with a smile, "Ruanruan, this is Mr. Mu Jiu. He has seen your paintings and wanted to meet you." He chuckled again, "Young people should interact more." Chapter 125 Bao Ziqi Stands up for Su Ruanruan

Chapter 125: Chapter 125 Bao Ziqi Stands up for Su Ruanruan

Su Ruanruan looked towards Mu Jiu. Mu Qun was meeting her for the second timelove at first sight, and even more enchanted at the second. He stared at Su Ruanruan, deeply enamored by her delicate demeanor. In a soft voice, he asked, "Where would you like to go?" Yet Su Ruanruan gently replied, "Thank you for your kindness, Mr. Mu, but I have other matters and might not be able to apany you." Her resistance wasnt a surprise to Mu Qun. The young girl he admired was surely proud, why would he be interested in someone like Bao Jingyuan? Bao Mingyuan and his wife were taken aback and annoyed. How could this child disregard the interests of the Bao Family? Bao Mingyuan carefully spoke, "Ruanruan, perhaps youre not aware of Mu Jius capabilities..." "I have heard," Su Ruanruan bowed slightly towards Mu Qun. "I do not know Mr. Mu and have no ns to make his acquaintance, please understand." She nodded towards the couple from the Bao Family and headed back to her small courtyard, not looking back. Utterly decisive! The atmosphere in the hall was subtly tense. Mrs. Bao spoke first, "This child, really! Weve spoiled her." Bao Mingyuan smiled faintly, "Feelings can be cultivated." But Mu Qun was not bothered, "Shes so young, how can she think about marriage? Dont pressure her." With that, he was the first to leave. Leaving Bao Mingyuan and his wife looking at each other. Bao Mingyuan spoke unhappily, "I told you, Ruanruan wouldnt agree." Mrs. Bao suggested softly sitting beside him, "How about letting the olddy talk to her?" Bao Mingyuan looked at his wife. Mrs. Baos eyes were filled with hope. Yet Bao Mingyuan erupted, "Are you asking to be scolded by the olddy?" Although he said this, he still yearned deeply for those two harbors. The next morning, Bao Mingyuan looked exhausted, clearly having not slept well. Su Ruanruan expressed a few words of concern. Mrs. Bao gently interrupted, "Ruanruan, if you truly care for your uncle, you should consider interacting with Mu Qun. Hes young and handsome; it wouldnt disgrace you." Bao Jingyuan also chimed in, "Exactly! Its your fortune that Mu Jiu took notice of you." Su Ruanruan remained silent. Bao Mingyuan, having a soft spot for her, smoothed things over, "Lets talk about thister." Su Ruanruan lowered her eyes. "Lets talk about thister"... implied Bao Mingyuan hadnt given up. Due to this matter, the atmosphere in the Bao Family was very tense. Su Ruanruan also knew she hardly had any ground to stand on, so she left early. Bao Jingyuanined discontentedly, "Whats wrong with her sacrificing a little for our Bao Family? Didnt shee to keep his second brothers house for the sake of the Su Family before?" Bao Mingyuan snapped, "What keeping house? Your second brother is perfectly alive." Unfortunately, Bao Ziqi appeared from the second floor. He heard everything. He looked at his father, "Dad, are you short of two harbors?" Bao Mingyuan was rendered speechless, and it took him a moment to find his voice, "Mu Qun is not a bad match, and at the time, we will prepare a generous dowry for Ruanruan, she wont be mistreated." "Does she like Mu Jiu?" Bao Ziqi asked coldly. His youngest son always opposed him, making Bao Mingyuan very irritated. But he had to suppress his anger, "Feelings can be cultivated." Mrs. Bao even said, "Whats wrong with Ruanruan showing some gratitude to the Bao Family?" "Mom," Bao Ziqi sneered, "What has the Bao Family given her?" Mrs. Bao was speechless. Bao Ziqi pushed back his chair and walked towards the door. At the doorway, he suddenly turned around. His voice was very soft, "Ill take her abroad." With that, it was as if a bomb had gone off. Chapter 126: Su Ruanruan, Come with Me to Britain

Chapter 126: Chapter 126: Su Ruanruan, Come with Me to Britain

Mrs. Bao suddenly stood up, pointing at Bao Ziqi and burst out, "Do you know what youre saying?" "Very clear and aware." Bao Ziqis voice was cold, "Didnt you say she was meant to keep my house? Then shes mine, wherever she goes and whoever shes with, its all up to me." Having said that, he left. Mrs. Bao was so angry she almost passed out. Bao Jingyuan muttered, "My second brother has fallen for Su Ruanruan." Mrs. Bao, with tears in her eyes, grabbed her husbands arm, "Mingyuan, please persuade Ziqi!" Bao Mingyuan was frustrated and confused. Logically, he should be happy with his youngest sons choice, but now there was Mu Qun. Everything was messed up! Yet, there was still a doubt lingering in his heart. About that string of purple diamonds. Bao Ziqi caught up with Su Ruanruan at the Bao Familys main gate. "Get in the car." Su Ruanruan refused. He got out, forcibly pulled her into the car, his actions rough. Su Ruanruan, enduring the pain on her arm, asked him in a low voice, "Is something wrong?" Bao Ziqi nced at her and started the car. He didnt say a word, driving the car to a quiet ce. When the car stopped, he leaned on the steering wheel, looking straight ahead with a cold expression, "What are you thinking?" Su Ruanruan was puzzled. Bao Ziqi spat out a few words: "Mu Qun." Actually, Bao Ziqi was not a bad person. At least, apart from a bad temper, he never really hurt her. Su Ruanruan gently started, "Ill handle it, thank you." After she spoke, Bao Ziqi turned and stared at her, "Come with me abroad." Su Ruanruan was stunned. To go abroad with him? Bao Ziqi seemed to have thought it through, saying, "Ill send you to Britains Cobleli Music College for further study, I believe in your talent..." "I dont want to continue studying piano," Su Ruanruan refused. Bao Ziqis face turned livid, "Thats a pce of music for so many!" Su Ruanruan had been with Bao Jingyan for a while and understood some of the emotions between men and women. She lowered her eyes, her long eyshes trembling gently. She softly said, "Im sorry." Bao Ziqis heart throbbed violently. Su Ruanruans voice became even softer, "Bao Ziqi, Im not you, I cant live as freely as you! I have things I must do, I cant leave Jiang City." "What if my father is determined to have you marry Mu Qun?" Bao Ziqi asked coldly. Su Ruanruan smiled faintly, "Then I will leave the Bao Family." Her words were firm and decisive. Bao Ziqi irritably pulled out a cigarette, lit it, and said, "Then why were you willing toe to the Bao Family before?" Su Ruanruan honestly replied, "Back then I thought you were dead, but Mu Qun is alive." She felt it was inappropriate to keep in contact with him, so she opened the car door and got out. After alighting from the car, she bowed to him, "Thank you, still." Bao Ziqis throat choked up, struggling with difort. He just watched Su Ruanruan walking away step by step. He thought, she really hates him, doesnt she! Therefore, she never considered him, even though he hinted at it twice. Bao Ziqi, always proud and arrogant, now frustrated and resentful, pounded the steering wheel. The car horn sounded ear-piercingly in the quiet riverside, startling birds into flight everywhere... Su Ruanruan walked a distance before boarding a bus, and immediately called Bao Jingyan upon boarding. Bao Jingyan was in a meeting, but still answered the call. "Whats wrong?" Su Ruanruan bit her lip, "I saw Mu Qunst night." Bao Jingyan was silent for a moment, then said, "Where are you? Ill have the driver pick you up." Su Ruanruan told him a station. When she got off, Old Zhao was already there waiting for her. Old Zhao took her to the Emperors Scenery; Xiao Ran led her to take the executive elevator directly to the top floor office. Su Ruanruan thought she would just wait here. But Xiao Ran handed her a white suit, smiling, "President Bao asked you to change clothes for the meeting." Su Ruanruan was stunned. Xiao Ran tilted her head, "Arent you daring?" She added, "Its normal to fear, President Bao will also be here soon." Bao Mingyuan? Su Ruanruan remembered what Housekeeper Wang had told her, Bao Jingyan was still enduring. She hesitated. Seeing her hesitation, Xiao Ran lightly smiled, "Miss Su, rest assured! President Bao always acts prudently." Chapter 127: The Contest Between Father and Son of the Bao Family 1

Chapter 127: Chapter 127: The Contest Between Father and Son of the Bao Family 1

Emperor View 36th Floor Conference Room. The meeting was halfway through when Bao Jingyan said, "My assistant has a new idea to share with everyone in a moment." Bao Mingyuan nodded, "Its good to have new ideas! But where is the person?" Bao Jingyan smiled faintly, "Dad, why are you in such a hurry?" Bao Mingyuan was taken aback. Jingyan seldom called him Dad at thepany, why the change today? Although Bao Mingyuan was surprised, he was still quite happy inside. He leaned back in his chair and joked with his eldest son, "I can finally see this assistant of yours, youve hidden her very well." Bao Jingyan was looking down at the documents, seemingly nonchnt as he said, "Actually, Dad, you know her too, and you see her quite often." "Oh?" Bao Mingyuan was surprised. "Which department? I havent noticed such talent in my usual dealings." Bao Jingyan was about to say something when the door to the conference room opened. It was Xiao Ran at the forefront. She smiled slightly, "Miss Su has arrived." Bao Mingyuan sighed: Another Su? He was specting when the person entered. Bao Mingyuan was stunned. How could it be... Ruanruan? Immediately, he looked towards his son, seeking an exnation. Bao Jingyans expression was indifferent, "Ruanruan is my assistant! I n to have her lead the new round of experiments." "Nonsense." Bao Mingyuan red up, "She is just a student of Meiruan, how can she be involved in pharmaceuticals?" He then nced at the group from the R&D department. All he saw was that they kept eyes downcast, tight-lipped. Bao Mingyuan knew like the back of his hand: These people probably knew all along. Compared to Bao Mingyuans agitation, Bao Jingyan appeared much moreposed, "Shes from the academy of fine arts and does not neglect her musical talent or her medical expertise, right Dad?" Bao Mingyuan remained incredulous, turning to Su Ruanruan, "Ruanruan, you tell me." Su Ruanruan, dressed in a Miyake suit, did not seem out of ce in such a setting. She sat down calmly and spoke softly, "Regarding thest round of experiments, I have the following viewpoints..." She spoke fluently, with piercing insights. Bao Mingyuan was dumbstruck. Bao Jingyans demeanor remained cool, "Ruanruan has been involved in this research for a long time, and I want to use her." Bao Mingyuan didnt agree right away. His face pensive. After a long while, he finally spoke in a hoarse voice, "Everyone, leave the room!" Thus, everyone, including Su Ruanruan, left, only Bao Jingyan remained. He sat quietly, waiting for Bao Mingyuans interrogation. Sure enough, once everyone had left, Bao Mingyuan asked, "How long have you been in contact with her?" "Quite a while! Ive noticed her since she cured the olddy," Bao Jingyan answered with a mix of truth and lies. Bao Mingyuan was lighting a cigarette. He looked up, his gaze even deeper. After a long time, he blew out a smoke ring and asked again, "Who really sent that string of purple diamonds? Jingyan, tell me the truth." "Jingse," Bao Jingyan replied indifferently, "Isnt there an invoice?" Bao Mingyuan sneered: Good! A wless answer. But he wasnt so easily fooled and asked the final question, "Do you like Ruanruan?" Bao Jingyan smiled lightly. He stood up, walked over to Bao Mingyuan, and rested a hand on his fathers shoulder, countering, "Dont you think its normal for any man to take a liking to someone like Ruanruan?" No sooner had he finished speaking than Bao Mingyuan threw an ashtray at him. Bao Jingyan agilely dodged. Bao Mingyuan stood up, staring intently at his eldest son, "Dont think Im a fool! The reason you brought her here today is nothing more than to prevent her from marrying Mu Qun." "Correct!" Bao Jingyan surprisingly did not deny it. Chapter 128: The Contest Between Father and Son of the Bao Family 2

Chapter 128: Chapter 128: The Contest Between Father and Son of the Bao Family 2

Bao Mingyuans chest heaved violently, "I do not approve of your affair with her." Bao Jingyan lit a cigarette, took a drag, and slowly blew out a ring of smoke, "I never nned to marry her either." Bao Mingyuan was incredulous, "You go through all this trouble if you dont want to marry her?" "Without Su Ruanruan, the research would be dyed by at least half a year!" Bao Jingyans voice waszy, "Better to have her join Di Jing than to marry her." He added: "But if she marries Mu Qun, Dad, would you dare to use her?" Bao Mingyuan was taken aback. He understood this son of his! Ruthless and decisive! It wasnt impossible for him to give up a young girl for power. But he still had a card up his sleeve: "Then tomorrow, you roll on over and go on a blind date for me." "No problem," Bao Jingyan unexpectedly did not refuse. Bao Mingyuan was in a really bad mood, fiercely smoked two cigarettes, then suddenly said, "Ziqi is nning to take her to Britain." Bao Jingyans expression did not change, "What do you mean by that, Dad?" Bao Mingyuan red fiercely at his eldest son, "You already said that the research cant go on without her, what else could I mean?" With that, he left in anger. Bao Jingyan stayed alone in the vast conference room for a long time before returning to his office, where Xiao Ran opened the door for him. "I was looking at the materials," Xiao Rans voice was soft. Bao Jingyan gestured for her to step out first. He closed the door, took off his jacket, and sat down next to Su Ruanruan. "Studying so hard?" He spoke in a rxed tone. Su Ruanruan did not look up and continued to read the material. Bao Jingyan smiled slightly, walked over to the liquor cab, poured himself a ss of red wine, and savored it slowly. After a while, Su Ruanruan looked up, "Are you in a bad mood?" Bao Jingyans slender fingers held the mug, his dark pupils fixed on her. He did not make a sound. Su Ruanruan put down the documents and walked over, "Is it because of my issue?" He yfully tugged her hair and feigned ignorance, "What issue could possibly involve you?" Su Ruanruan felt somewhat embarrassed. She walked back and continued to review the material. Bao Jingyans gaze lingered on her, unfathomable Earlier, Jingse had visited. Jingse had asked him: Was it worth it to disrupt the bnce and stake years of effort for a Su Ruanruan? Bao Jingyan had not considered whether it was worth it or not; he simply didnt want her to be afraid. If he said he liked her, then he must do everything to protect her. At that moment, Su Ruanruan inadvertently looked up and met his gaze. Bao Jingyan smiled gently... * That afternoon, he took her to theb, and Su Ruanruan assimted into the work more easily than he had imagined. Those PhD old-timers in the research department were thoroughly impressed by her. It was 8 at night when they left. Getting into the car, Bao Jingyan leaned in for a quick kiss, whispering, "Stay overnight at my ce? Ill have Gu Ze call home." Su Ruanruan shyly shook her head, her voice as soft as a kitten, "That wouldnt be right." "Whats wrong with it?" He tugged at her little ear. Su Ruanruan remained silent, her cheeks flushing red, thankfully obscured by the dimness of the car. Bao Jingyans emotions suddenly stirred, and he reached out to hold her in his embrace. Su Ruanruan struggled half-heartedly, to no avail. Bao Jingyan did not kiss her immediately but watched her for a long time, as if memorizing the softness of her delicate skin... She was frail and delicate, and he kissed her with the utmost care. His body carried a faint medicinal scent, mixed with the musk of a man that was intoxicating... Su Ruanruan trembled with nervousness, her small hands gripping the fabric of his shirt on his shoulder, the friction making a soft, rustling sound. After a while, he finally released her, speaking with a hoarse voice: "Lets talk about it after we get through this period." Su Ruanruan was buried in his embrace, still trembling, unsure of whaty ahead. Bao Jingyan felt thoroughly content in his heart. Chapter 129: Mu Jiu Chases to the School

Chapter 129: Chapter 129: Mu Jiu Chases to the School

In the end, Su Ruanruan returned to the Bao Family. Bao Jingyan conspicuously drove into Bao Mansion, although he himself did not reside here but returned to the vi. Su Ruanruan walked into the hall alone. It was sote, yet there was someone in the hall. It was Bao Ziqi. He was sitting on the sofa drinking alcohol. Upon seeing Su Ruanruan enter, he mockingly opened his mouth: "Should I congratte you?" Su Ruanruan did not want to have contact with him, but she couldnt escape. Bao Ziqi walked up to her, looking down on her: "Not only have you be a dignitary of the Gu Family, now youve transformed into Bao Jingyans assistant." Su Ruanruan stepped back, saying softly: "I dont think I have hurt you, why must you speak like this?" Bao Ziqi gazed at her intently, "Why wont you let me help you?" He reached out to grab her shoulder: "Do you know the consequences of choosing Bao Jingyan? Do you think he is a good person?" Su Ruanruan pushed his hand away, "My contact with him is merely official work." She wanted to leave, but Bao Ziqi said, "Stop." Su Ruanruan bit her lip. Bao Ziqi coldly said from behind her: "Because you have be someone close to Bao Jingyan, father has rejected Mu Qun! Ultimately... its still Bao Jingyan who is capable." He was testing her, Su Ruanruan knew. She didnt say anything and hurriedly left. Bao Ziqi sat back on the sofa, drinking several sses of red wine... but the more he drank, the worse his mood became. * Su Ruanruans position in the Bao Family became somewhat delicate. She tried to have minimal contact with people. Early in the morning, after she visited the olddy, she prepared to go to school. At the parking area, Old Zhao got down from the car and cheerfully said, "Master Jingyan has asked me to follow you from now on." Su Ruanruan murmured softly: "Thats not appropriate." Old Zhao, confident, said: "Miss Su, you are now a special assistant to Master Jingyan. Having a designated car is normal. I heard they also assigned you a vi." Su Ruanruan immediately asked, "Where is the vi?" Since that was the case, she could move there and live alone. Old Zhao inadvertently slipped and chuckled while scratching his head, "I wouldnt know that, youll have to ask Master Jingyan." Su Ruanruan sat in the car, not saying a word. Old Zhao was in a particrly good mood, chatting andughing all the way, not straying from mentioning his Master Jingyan. Su Ruanruan pretended she didnt hear. At four in the afternoon, it was still Old Zhao who came to pick her up. As the car approached the gate, Old Zhao stopped the car. He peeked his head out: "The gate is blocked!" Upon closer inspection, wow! A line of over a dozen ck Rolls-Royces. Quite a spectacle! "I dont know which rich tycoon is chasing a female student," Old Zhaomented: "With such an array, which girl couldnt be won over?" Su Ruanruan said lightly: "If this way is blocked, then lets go through another gate." Old Zhaoughed: "Okay." No sooner had he spoken when the rear car door was pulled open, and a slightly husky voice sounded. "Miss Su." Su Ruanruan was taken aback and looked up. It was the famous Mu Jiu. Mu Qun stood outside the car, gazing deeply at the girl inside. ck long hair, a small and delicate melon-seed face, eyes misty. His heart momentarily heated up. Ahead, Old Zhao opened the car door and got out: "Whats the matter with you? Dont you know..." But before he could speak, two men in ck grabbed him, holding him in mid-air like a little chick. Old Zhaos face turned red, "Take it out on me! Dont make it difficult for the woman!" Mu Qun gave a slight smile. He was still dressed in ck today. A ck shirt, ck trousers. Rather good-looking. He removed his sunsses, very gentlemanly as he helped Su Ruanruan out of the car. Once she was out, he expressed surprise: "Youre quite calm." Su Ruanruan nced at Old Zhao before speaking softly: "I dont know what I did to offend Mr. Mu Jiu, please enlighten me." Mu Qun, one hand on the car roof, spoke elegantly: "Theres no offense! I just wanted to invite Miss Su for a meal." "I dont want to go," Su Ruanruan refused outright. Suddenly, Mu Qun leaned close to her, his voice very low: "Because of Bao Jingyan?" Chapter 130 Yes, I鈥檝e Slept with Bao Jingyan

Chapter 130: Chapter 130 Yes, Ive Slept with Bao Jingyan

Su Ruanruans eyes widened. Mu Qun fiddled with the sunsses in his hand, smirking devilishly: "He may fool the Bao Family, but he cant fool me!" Of course, Su Ruanruan wouldnt admit it: "I dont know what youre talking about!" Mu Qun bent down, his chiseled faceing close to her ear, his voice hoarse: "Have you slept with him?" "Slept together! Many times." Su Ruanruan, seeing that she couldnt hide it, admitted frankly. "Is that so? Does Mu Jiu still want to have this meal?" There was a dangerous light in Mu Quns eyes as he carefully observed the young girl in front of him. Innocent and beautiful, yet with a hint of indiscernible seductiveness in the corners of her eyes. He reached out, gently caressing, and murmured lowly: "Bao Jingyan turned you into a woman..." Su Ruanruan dared not move. Mu Quns throat moved visibly. His fists, too, slowly clenched tighter. After a long time, he suddenly let go of her and turned to walk into a ck limousine. His subordinates threw Old Zhao to the ground and all got into the car, driving away. Half an hourter, Mu Qun arrived at the Lanfang Club he owned. In the luxurious and opulent private room, he sat drinking sullenly. The thought of that girl having slept with Bao Jingyan set his stomach ame with rage! The one he cherished in his heart had been snatched away by someone else. The more he drank, the clearer his mind became, imagining over and over how Bao Jingyan pressed down and bullied Su Ruanruan... The manager brought in several young girls. Trendy, beautiful. The girls surrounded Mu Qun, each calling him "Lord Jiu" sweetly. Mu Qun was not in the mood today and sent them away. But as they reached the door, he suddenly said: "Thest one stays." ted, the manager immediately stopped her. The girl had ck long hair and a melon-seed face. Her features were somewhat simr to Su Ruanruans. The manager hinted for the girl to sit next to Mu Qun, "Lord Jiu has good taste! Shes new, and still fresh." Mu Qun hooked the girls chin, his elongated eyes slightly squinting. The girl shyly hung her head. The manager coughed lightly: "Serve Lord Jiu well and youll be rewarded." With that, he tactfully left. The door closed, and the room was dimly lit, filled with Mu Jius intense masculine scent. The girl obediently poured him a drink, holding out the wine cup: "Lord Jiu, please drink." But Mu Qun abruptly pulled her onto hisp, spilling the wine without care. The girl was terrified, shivering. "Are you afraid of me?" Mu Qun stroked her cheek, his voice surprisingly gentle. The girl bit her lip, daring not to speak. Mu Qun pinched her chin,manding: "Kiss me." The girl, being there to serve him, obediently leaned in to kiss him... Somewhat sober and somewhat intoxicated, Mu Qun slept with the girl in his arms. Afterward, he leaned back on the sofa, looking up at the crystalmp, lost in thought. The girl named Zhou Susu sat in his embrace, meek and soft. Mu Qun gripped her hand, his gaze deep: "Stay with me from now on." The girl was stunned. Mu Jiu, having had his pleasure, was not in the mood to continue flirting with her, and ordered someone to take her to the vi he lived in, promising her a monthly allowance of one million. Zhou Susus life changed overnight. Naturally, she was smug. Mu Qun also temporarily put aside Su Ruanruan and spent a few delightful days with his new pet. He sent her many dresses to wear for his viewing pleasure. One night, Zhou Susu took the initiative to wear a very revealing dress, thinking shed win Mu Quns favor even more, but he pushed her away after seeing it and ran to the club to find other girls... Afterward, it took Zhou Susu a great deal of effort to be allowed to stay at the vi again. But she could only ever wear the clothes Mu Jiu gave her, and asionally when they were in bed together, he would absentmindedly call her Ruanruan... Zhou Susu vaguely knew she was just a recement. What she wondered was, who was this Ruanruan? Was she just another girl like herself? Chapter 131 Bao Jingyan鈥檚 Calculations

Chapter 131: Chapter 131 Bao Jingyans Calctions

In a blink, it was time for Mrs. Gu to be discharged from the hospital. The sky was just starting to lighten when Su Ruanruan nudged Bao Jingyan, who was next to her. He slept, shirtless, hugging her tightly as if it was the most natural thing. Bao Jingyan was shaken awake and pulled her into his embrace, eyes closed, and said, "Thinking about it again?" Su Ruanruan blushed deeply, "Nonsense." He chuckled lightly and kissed her eyelid before asking in a husky voice, "When can you let go?" Su Ruanruan dodged him, panting slightly, "Im going to see Auntieter, stop it!" "Ill take you there." Bao Jingyan turned her face towards him and kissed her intensely again, "Ill head back to my room first, you sleep a bit more." After saying that, he really got up and stood by the bed to dress. Su Ruanruan turned her back, unwilling to watch. Bao Jingyanughed, "What, never seen it before? Still shy?" Su Ruanruan kept silent, she always had her modesty. After Bao Jingyan dressed, he leaned in again, "If you stay at my ce, we wont have to sneak around like this, huh?" She refused and pushed him away. Bao Jingyan just smiled and left. Once he left, Su Ruanruan got up to wash. She was diligent, getting up early to reviewboratory data, and after seven oclock, she gave the olddy a massage. At breakfast, she suggested going to the hospital to see Mrs. Gu. Bao Mingyuans attitude was gentle, "Thats appropriate! Maintaining such rtionships can only be good." His gaze carried a bit of admiration. The research department couldnt stop praising Su Ruanruan, saying she was capable and the experiments were progressing quickly. Mrs. Bao immediately said, "Mingyuan, lets all go together! Lin Sheng also got into trouble at our house, logically and emotionally we should visit." Bao Mingyuan agreed, that made sense. Mrs. Bao smiled subtly, ncing at Su Ruanruan. That was good, she couldnt let Su Ruanruan gain alone. Su Ruanruan understood Mrs. Baos thoughts but didnt mind. It wouldnt change anything! Contrary to his usual attitude, Bao Jingyan was very proactive, "Im free this morning, Ill take you all." Bao Mingyuan was very pleased, "Thats more like a family." He looked upstairs, "Where is Ziqi?" Mrs. Bao said, "He didnte backst night! Ziqi has been busy with the concert, its normal for him not toe home." Bao Mingyuan pondered and said, "Its good to be busy with career, but health is also important." He didnt say much else, quickly taking the family to Tongsheng Hospital. On the way, Su Ruanruan always felt something was off. Bao Jingyans attitude today...wasnt right. Arriving at Tongsheng Hospital, Su Ruanruan realized what was wrong. The VIP floor of the inpatient department was in chaos. Dozens of reporters, with cameras, had blocked Su Qionglins room, their shbulbs sounding like machine guns... Bao Mingyuan spoke to Mrs. Bao, "Whats going on? Such a mess." Bao Jingyan said with a lightugh, "Su Familys third young miss is a supermodel, some news is normal." Bao Mingyuan disagreed, "Her leg is broken, what kind of news could there be?" Just as he was about to check, a young man walked out of the ward, his own second son, Bao Ziqi. Bao Ziqis shirt was wrinkled, and his neck had varying depths of red marks. As an adult man, Bao Mingyuan knew exactly what Bao Ziqi had done! His expression turned iron. Normally love affairs were nothing, but doing such things in Su Qionglins hospital room, with her leg broken, and getting caught by reporters, was utterly disgraceful for the Bao Family! Chapter 132: Jingyan, Please Give Me a Strand of Your Hair

Chapter 132: Chapter 132: Jingyan, Please Give Me a Strand of Your Hair

Bao Ziqi pushed past the reporters, looking very impatient. At a nce, however, he saw the Bao Family standing together, neatly arrayed. Su Ruanruan was also there. She looked somewhat dazed. Just then, another reporter tried to take his photo, and he snatched the camera and smashed it to the ground... "Ziqi." Someone staggered out of the sickroom. Su Qionglin. Last night, she had put something in the water, and after Bao Ziqi drank it, he couldnt help himself and had an affair with her. These reporters were also called by her. She had no choice; Bao Ziqi was growing increasingly cold towards her, and recently she heard that he intended to take Ruanruan away. How could that be? Ziqi used to love her so much! She must find a way to tie him down! Now that Bao Ziqi was angry, she had to coax him properly. Su Qionglin was also taken aback as she stepped out of the sickroom. Why... were all the Bao Family members here? Bao Mingyuans face was extremely ugly as he swept away. But Mrs. Bao couldnt leave; this was about her son and the daughter-inw she had chosen. Her lips formed a reluctant and shallow smile: "Ruanruan, help your third sister back to the sickroom." Su Ruanruan was still confused, but obediently went to support Su Qionglin. Embarrassed, Su Qionglin took her anger out on her, "I dont need your fake concern." Su Ruanruan withdrew her hand, and Su Qionglin, unstable, fell to the ground in an unttering heap. Mrs. Bao was also angry; of high status, she naturally wouldnt stoop to help, and called for two nurses. She looked at Su Ruanruan with hidden resentment: "You go visit Mrs. Gu! Your uncle and I have matters to deal with, welle to visit another day." Su Ruanruan couldnt ask for more. After giving Bao Jingyan a nce, she gracefully left. Bao Jingyan actually followed her, prompting Su Ruanruan to say, "Why are you following me?" Bao Jingyan spoke calmly: "I think Qi Meiyu probably doesnt want me to be there." Su Ruanruan stopped in her tracks. "Whats the matter?" His eyes held a tender smile. Su Ruanruan fixed her gaze on him and asked softly, "It was you who did it, wasnt it?" Bao Jingyan did not deny it. Su Ruanruan bit her lip: "How could you do such a thing?" "What did I do?" Bao Jingyan chuckled: "Was it me who pressed him down to sleep with Su Qionglin? Ruanruan, you cant be unreasonable." Su Ruanruan was furious, her eyes brimming with tears. Yet he found her adorable. She ignored him and went straight to Mrs. Gus sickroom. The Gu Family had settled in, and they were quite happy to see Su Ruanruaning, especially Mrs. Gu who took Su Ruanruans hand and whispered: "I heard there was an incident with Ziqi and Qionglin. It would be inappropriate for me to visit." Su Ruanruan sat with her and hummed in agreement. After all, she was a young girl and such matters were not to be discussed in detail. Mrs. Gu, as someone experienced, could tell from her demeanor that Bao Jingyan was measured and was pleased at heart. She said, "In this case, the Bao Family has to prepare for a celebration." Eager to monopolize Su Ruanruan, she seized the moment: "Later on, Ill speak with the dowager, and have youe to live with us." Speaking of which, she nced at her husband: "Someone has yet to do what he promised me." Gu Yuanpei knew she was talking about the DNA issue and smiled, "Dont worry, my dear." Mrs. Gu beamed with sweetness. Now, she wasnt in such a rush, because she had alreadye to regard Su Ruanruan as her own child. At this moment, Bao Jingyan spoke up: "Su Qionglin has a broken leg and wont be able to get married just yet; it will likely just be an engagement." "Moreover, Ruanruan can stay at Jingse." His intentions were clear to all. Su Ruanruan hung her head low. Mrs. Gu took a nce at Bao Jingyan. Having just praised him in her heart, she now thought with thistest remark, all men were essentially the same! Chapter 133 Bao Jingyan鈥檚 Protectionism

Chapter 133: Chapter 133 Bao Jingyans Protectionism

Madam Gu didnt insist anymore, and the whole family grandly returned to the Gu residence. Ruanruan apanied her as Gu Yuanpei called Bao Jingyan out. Inside the hall, Gu Yuanpei said helplessly, "Jingyan, Ive made you witness a farce. My wife is so desperate to find her daughter that she constantly thinks about recognizing Ruanruan as her child! Now, she insists on a DNA test." Bao Jingyan smiled subtly, "Running a test wont hurt." Gu Yuanpei patted his shoulder, "Im just afraid that your aunt will be disappointed again, such coincidences are rare." After finishing speaking, he lifted his eyes, "However, Ill still trouble you to fetch a strand of Ruanruans hair for Gu Ze to handle this matter." Bao Jingyan nodded, "Uncle Gu, rest assured." Gu Yuanpei sighed again, "How much I wish to find my own daughter! If Yunxi were here, she would be 18 and certainly beautiful." But Bao Jingyans mind kept repeating that name. Yunxi, Gu Yunxi. Still, Ruanruan sounds nicer... * At night, Su Ruanruan returned to the Bao Family. The Su Family was surprisingly all present. The leg-broken Elder Su, leg-broken Su Qionglin, and the bandaged couple Su Ruan and Su Yugu were sitting in the luxurious hall. Seeing Su Ruanruan return, the Su Familys expressions varied. It was the Su Familys aunt who spoke first, "Ruanruan is now a busy person,ing back at such ate hour." She brushed her hair and said insincerely, "Girls should be more dignified, otherwise people would gossip." She had just finished when Grandmother Bao, full of vitality, retorted, "Su Familys aunt, are you trying to discipline our Ruanruan?" The Su Familys aunt was somewhat stunned. What did she mean by "our Ruanruan"? Doesnt Ruanruan have the surname Su? But the other party was the powerful and influential Grandmother Bao, so she didnt dare to argue a word, forcefully clenching her teeth. The olddy motioned for Su Ruanruan toe over. Su Ruanruan went to sit next to her, and the olddy affectionately said, "I heard from Mingyuan that you went to theb. Youve gotten much thinner in just a few days." Before she finished speaking, Bao Jingyan stepped into the hall with a smile, "She just had a big bowl of rice at noon." Though sounding mocking, the words were filled with an affectionate undertone. Regarding the recent happenings that displeased her, the olddy huffed lightly, "Its the time for her growth, one big bowl of rice isnt too much. Its you stinky men who are always demanding women to be slim, depriving women even of their freedom to eat." Bao Jingyan smiled and turned to Su Ruanruan, "Grandma says I control your diet, tell me, do I?" With him acting so nonchntly, it made others feel like spitting blood. Is this the time to discuss Qionglin and Ziqis marriage affairs? Bao Ziqi looked even more upset. Others might not notice, but he knew all too well. Bao Jingyan was dering war! While thinking this, Bao Jingyan cast a nce in his direction, raising his voice, "Housekeeper Wang, bring the gift from my car trunk, its an engagement present for Ziqi." Housekeeper Wang immediately went and returned shortly with a not-too-big, not-too-small box. Upon opening it, to everyones astonishment, it was an imperial jade Guanyin statue. Dazzling and extremely eye-catching. The Su Family members were thoroughly stunned. The Su Familys aunt eximed, "Such a rare item! That must be worth over a hundred million!" She couldnt resist stepping forward to touch it, "This luster, this color... Ive never seen anything like this." Seeing her behave this way, Su Qionglin couldnt help but call out, "Mom!" Madam Bao sat drinking tea, expression indifferent. She was somewhat disdainful in her heart. This Mrs. Su was too petty, having never seen the world. Bao Jingyan wasnt really offering a gift, it was clearly a p in Qi Meiyus face! Chapter 134 Bao Ziqi Has Simply Fallen in Love with Someone Else

Chapter 134: Chapter 134 Bao Ziqi Has Simply Fallen in Love with Someone Else

Auntie Su was oblivious to the thoughts of others. Her greedy nature had her marveling at the value of Bao Jingyans gift. She even began to ponder whether her maternal familys 22-year-old niece would make a suitable match for the eldest son of the Bao Familywouldnt that propel the Su Family sky-high? With this in mind, she presumptuously said, "Jingyan is really too polite! Do you have a girlfriend? Theres a girl in my maternal family who is quitepatible with you." Qionglin was dying inside! Was her mother talking about Xianrou? What about that woman, aside from feigning gentleness, made her a match for Bao Jingyan? Besides, how could she let Xianrou climb over her and run wild? Right then, Su Qionglin interrupted, "Mom, doesnt Xianrou have a boyfriend?" Auntie Su awkwardly replied, "Its good for young people to make more friends, to have more options, right?" Her words left people speechless. Bao Jingyan, holding a ss of red wine, smiled with a touch of suavity, "Auntie really is open-minded." Auntie Su beamed with joy, "See, Jingyan says so too." Contentedly, she dered, "Ill arrange a meeting for you tomorrow." Bao Jingyan nced at Su Ruanruan without a trace. Her face remainedposed. Bao Jingyan chuckled softly. At this moment, Bao Mingyuan himself spoke up, "Jingyans marriage would have to be decided by the matriarch." In other words, your daughter doesnt measure up! Stop pushing her onto our Bao Family. Auntie Su felt pped in the face, too embarrassed to speak further. Her husband, Su Yugu, was much more steady, shifting the topic back with a single remark. "Qionglins leg is inconvenient right now. Why not get engaged first to shut those reporters up! We can have a proper celebration when her leg is healed." Saying this, his wife immediately agreed, "Yugu makes a good point." Bao Mingyuan did not make the decision himself but asked Bao Ziqi, "Ziqi, this is your marriage, what do you say?" Bao Ziqis gaze fell on Su Ruanruan. She was whispering with the olddy, his marriage seemingly none of her concern. His jaw clenched. "Ziqi!" Bao Mingyuan was getting irritated. He had always hoped that Ziqi would choose Su Ruanruan, but now with so many reporters capturing his affair with Su Qionglin in the hospital room, he had to marry her off for the sake of the Bao Familys reputation. Bao Ziqi snapped back to reality, his voice gentle, "Whatever." Bao Mingyuan breathed a sigh of relief. This was, atst, a yes. Yet Su Qionglin felt aggrieved. What did he mean by whatever? When he had pursued her passionately, it was not whatever, nor was it whatever when they first made love, but now he treated her with indifference upon seeing Su Ruanruan. Su Qionglin covered her mouth, wanting to cry. Finally, Auntie Su caught on, ncing between her son-inw and Su Ruanruan, "Ziqi, surely you havent fallen for someone else?" Su Yugu scolded her, "What nonsense are you talking?" Tears inevitably broke through Su Qionglins restraint. It was then that Bao Ziqi stood up, his voice cold, "Whether or not this engagement happens, decide for yourself! If youre unwilling, Ill have someone send over a check tomorrow." Everyone present was stunned, shocked at Bao Ziqis ruthless stance. Auntie Su also burst into tears, "My poor Qionglin! I said from the start we shouldnt have sent her to keep room; the Bao Family has no good men, and look, today proves it!" Bao Ziqi couldnt bother with her and turned on his heel to leave. Chapter 135: Ruanruan, I鈥檓 Hungry

Chapter 135: Chapter 135: Ruanruan, Im Hungry

Su Qionglin pushed the wheelchair urgently, catching up and grabbing his hand, pleading humbly, "Ziqi, my mom didnt mean that." "What did she mean then?" Bao Ziqi said coldly, "Since the guardian is unwilling toe, we can refuse the engagement too." Su Qionglin cried, "Dont you love me anymore?" Bao Ziqi pursed his lips tightly and remained silent. Su Qionglin knew his answer, then forcefully suppressed her grief and asserted, "This marriage, I will ept it." She was not willing to easily surrender the position of Bao Familys second young madam to anyone, especially Su Ruanruan. Even without love, she was determined to firmly upy that position. After she finished speaking, Bao Ziqi left without saying a word. If he couldnt get what he wanted, then it didnt matter who he married! After he left, the hall was eerily quiet, asionally broken by the sobs of Su Familys great aunt. Su Yugu felt humiliated, so he had his eldest son Su Minghua drag the person away, and discussed the engagement issue himself with Bao Mingyuan and his wife. Even so, his old face really seemed as if it had been harshly pped several times. Bao Jingyan was always there, not only did he remain but he also didnt allow Su Ruanruan to leave. Su Ruanruan felt both shy and furious. He was too wicked. This incident, from start to finish, was all his doing. Finally,te at night, Su Ruanruan managed to find an excuse to return to her room. She took a shower, put on a thin slip dress, and returned to the bedroom, leaning against the headboard to read for a while. Bao Jingyan pushed open the door and came in, even locking the door. She was startled, then quickly pulled up the quilt to cover herself. "Are you crazy,ing here at this time?" Bao Jingyan nced at her, then casually sat on the sofa by the window, and then said to her, "Im hungry." Su Ruanruans face turned red. Bao Jingyan chuckled softly, "What are you thinking?" He added, "Call the kitchen to cook a bowl of noodles, make it with more meat and a stronger vor." Su Ruanruan refused, "Itste, why bother others?" Bao Jingyan stood up and approached, his hands bracing on either side of her, his nose touching hers yfully, "You little vixen! Ive been busy all day for your sake, and you wont even let me have a bowl of noodles." "Im not a little vixen." Su Ruanruan bit her lip, "Itste, eating noodles now would disturb the olddy." "Then you make it for me." He touched her nose again yfully, his big palm also sneaking under the quilt. Very restless. Su Ruanruan bit her lip and held back. She knew him well; if she didnt make him noodles now, he might just make her his midnight snack instead. She grabbed his hand, panting lightly, "Ill make you noodles." Bao Jingyan kissed the soft flesh behind her ear, murmuring lowly, "Make it delicious!" Su Ruanruan pushed him away, put on a robe, "Wait here, Ill be right back." Bao Jingyan justughed, took out a cigarette from the pack and lit it. Su Ruanruan wanted to stop him, but remembering his hard work these past few days, she didnt say anything... She went to the small courtyards kitchen, found the ingredients, and began cooking for Bao Jingyan. He loved meat, so she took out ham and cut it into cubes, then got out tomatoes and a handful of bok choy. She boiled the water, cooked the vegetables until soft, then separately stewed the noodles in a pot, added the seasoning, tossed in the vegetables and ham, and finally sprinkled a fineyer of parsley on top. It looked and smelled delicious. She arranged it on a tray, ready to head back to the bedroom. Her slender body was embraced from behind. "Smells good." Bao Jingyan kissed her earlobe, it was unclear if he was referring to the noodles or her. Su Ruanruan couldnt break free, her voice thin, "Bao Jingyan, dont do this..." Chapter 136: The Young Master Entered Miss Su鈥檚 Room

Chapter 136: Chapter 136: The Young Master Entered Miss Sus Room

Bao Jingyan, however, did not make a move. He hugged her and whispered, "What if I go on a blind date, would you be angry?" Su Ruanruan, who was originally struggling fiercely, calmed down at this moment. She turned her head, "Shen Xianrou?" Shen Xianrou was a rtive from her great-aunts family, and her temperament was something Ruanruan was quite familiar with. Bao Jingyan chuckled: "Shes not qualified enough." Su Ruanruan, annoyed, retorted: "Then who is qualified?" "That sounds a bit jealous," Bao Jingyan breathed against the back of her ear and said leisurely: "If you dont want me to go, I wont go." "Whos stopping you from going?" Su Ruanruan countered: "Im not anyone to you!" Her words were stubborn, but her eyes were already moist. Bao Jingyan had been teasing her, and seeing her like this, he had already softened his heart: "I was just talking nonsense, theres no blind date!" Su Ruanruan gently pushed him away and remained silent. Actually, she understood in her heart. To avoid arousing Bao Mingyuans suspicion, he would somehow deal with it a little. Although she and he were not yet bound for a lifetime, it still somewhat irked her. With that thought, Ruanruan straightened her clothes and walked out. Bao Jingyan quickly took a few steps and grabbed her hand: "Are you angry?" "No." Su Ruanruan hung her little face low, "Housekeeper Wang has mentioned that you have your difficulties." Heughed and pinched her face: "Is that why you covered for mest time? Pretending Gu Ze was just a brother." For some reason, Ruanruan felt somewhat annoyed. She shook off his hand, "I dont know what youre talking about!" She spoke fiercely again: "You eat; Im going to sleep." Bao Jingyan, however, was unwilling to let her go, carrying the tray as he followed her into the bedroom and then locked the door. In the narrow, dark corridor. Gui Zhi, who was serving the olddy, stood there, drawing in a sharp breath. What had she just seen? Young Master Jingyan... how could he enter Miss Sus room? That intimate manner was definitely not just a one-time urrence. Gui Zhis mouth gaped open, and for a long time, it did not close. Logically, she must report this matter to the olddy right away, but once she did, Miss Su would likely have to leave the Su Family immediately, and Young Master Jingyans struggle against the concubine filler would be temporarily at a disadvantage. After a long while, Gui Zhi sighed. Well, turn a blind eye it is. She returned to the olddys room, where the olddyined: "It was just to get a piece of osmanthus cake, and you took half the day! I think, Gui Zhi, youre getting old and sluggish." Gui Zhi feigned anger: "The olddys legs are better, and now youreining about me, arent you?" "How dare Iin about you," the olddy joked. Suddenly, she frowned again: "Gui Zhi, Im somewhat worried about Ziqis marriage." She said coldly: "If that woman with the surname Qi didnt dislike Ruanruan, maybe Ruanruan would have already gotten together with Ziqi! Havent you seen how Ziqi has been absent-mindedtely, and he keepsing to greet me here? Its obvious who he wants to see; even a fool could guess. But now he has to marry a woman he doesnt like!" Upon hearing this, Gui Zhis heart thumped, but she still pretended to be calm: "For such matters, the feelings must be mutual." The olddy nodded: "Thats right! Ziqis just infatuated." She sat cross-legged and mused to herself with curious self-talk: "I wonder what kind of person Ruanruan likes." Gui Zhi heard this and sighed inwardly What kind could it be? The kind like Young Master Jingyan. Sigh, those two young ones have really fallen for each other right under the noses of the whole family. Who would have thought? Chapter 137 You Are Much More Interesting Than Smoking

Chapter 137: Chapter 137 You Are Much More Interesting Than Smoking

Ruanruans bedroom. Jingyan was indeed hungry, devouring the noodles quickly like a wind sweeping through. After eating, he washed the bowl. Returning to the bedroom, Ruanruan leaned against the headboard reading a book. Under the soft yellow light, she wore a thin slip dress, her ck hair straight and cascading over her shoulders, her delicate face focused. Jingyan purposely made a noise with his belt buckle. She looked up. He said confidently, "Im sleeping here." Ruanruan bit her lip: "At this rate, someone will discover us eventually." Jingyan was nonchnt: "Let them find out." "And then?" she countered. Jingyan understood her meaning and sat down by the bed, asking softly, "Are you angry?" Ruanruan hummed a response, then added, "Since we both have things to do, we need to be careful." Jingyan suddenlyughed, then stood up and began to undress. He purposely stripped down by the bed, leaving his clothes in a messy pile, and then went to the bathroom. Soon, the sound of the shower echoed from the bathroom, Ruanruan couldnt help but go to the bathroom door and ask him, "What are youughing about?" Jingyans voice came out, unclear: "Ruanruan, youve already gotten used to sleeping with me." Ruanruan felt both embarrassed and irritated. Who got used to it? It was clearly him who wouldnt leave. If it werent for fear of being seen, she really wanted to throw all his clothes out. But in the end, she obediently picked up his scattered clothes, folded them one by one, and ced them on the sofa, deciding to simply cover herself with the nket and go to sleep. Five minutester, Jingyan came out of the bathroom wrapped in a towel, seeing her pretending to be asleep under the nket. He smiled briefly, reaching into his pants pocket for a cigarette pack, nning to step outside for a smoke. Before he reached the door, Ruanruan got out of bed and ran over to hug him. Jingyan patted her hand: "Be good, Im just having a cigarette." "People might see," she said softly, her voice quivering, "Jingyan, if you keep doing this, I wont stay with you anymore." Jingyan turned around, lifting her little face. Her lips trembled, looking at him pitifully. Jingyan reassured, "Dont worry, no one dares to speak." She still hugged him, not allowing him to leave. Suddenly, Jingyan lifted her horizontally, his voice hoarse: "Then lets find another way to relieve the boredom." Ruanruan was extremely embarrassed, hitting him: "You might as well go smoke." He lowered his head to kiss her, his voice huskily appealing, "Youre much more interesting than smoking." Ruanruan: ... That night, she despised him deeply! He enjoyed forcing her to do all sorts of strange things that she disliked. Afterward, Ruanruan chased him away. She looked in the mirror, feeling both embarrassed and infuriated. He was truly shameless. Outside, Jingyan held a thin strand of hair. This was Ruanruans hair, which he would personally deliver to Gu Ze tomorrow morning. * That night, she was angry with him, and at breakfast the next morning, she refused to sit with him. Sitting across from each other, Ruanruan never looked his way. Jingyan looked particrly handsome that day, his hair neatly trimmed, his facial features defined. Dressed in a white shirt and a dark gray diagonal-striped tie, his trousers also matched in a slightly woolen fabric. Mature and handsome. He was in a very good mood, partly because Bao Ziqi was getting engaged, and partly due tost nights events. A man who has had such experiences often carries more masculinity. Even though he still held back. Bao Ziqi came downstairs. After looking at the setup on the dining table, he sat down next to Ruanruan. Jingyan was very generous. Even if they sat together every day, only Su Qionglins name would be on Bao Ziqis household register. Chapter 138: What ill intentions could Ruanruan possibly have?

Chapter 138: Chapter 138: What ill intentions could Ruanruan possibly have?

He cracked a slight smile and asked deliberately, "Ziqi, when do you n to get engaged?" Bao Ziqi hooked up a cold smile: "It seems that big brother is very concerned?" "Were brothers, isnt it normal to care?" Bao Jingyan raised his coffee cup and sipped it with a smile. His eyes were full of provocation. Bao Ziqi got so angry that he pushed his chair back, intending to leave. Bao Mingyuan said in a calm voice, "Your brother cares about you! This is not only about the Bao Familys reputation but also your own! If you abandon Qionglin after leading her on, will the reporters let you off? Your art career in this country would be over." Bao Ziqi was unfazed: "You already have an excellent eldest son." Mrs. Bao trembled: "Ziqi!" Bao Ziqi clenched his fist but eventually sat down. But suddenly, he turned his head to look at Su Ruanruan: "You must be pleased, right?" Before Su Ruanruan could speak, Bao Mingyuan exploded: "You share a bed with Qionglin, what does it have to do with Ruanruan? Is it Ruanruan who forced you to sleep with her older sister?" Setting other things aside, in Bao Mingyuans heart, Su Ruanruan was just an innocent little fairy. What does she know about sleeping, what would she understand? Back then, Weilian was also clueless, blushing from a mere kiss. Bao Mingyuan, reminded of the past, softened his gaze and unexpectedly said to Su Ruanruan: "Stay at home with ease. It doesnt matter if Ziqi and Qionglin get married; let the olddy legally adopt you, and you wont miss out on your share after the olddy passes away." Mrs. Bao was shocked. Was her husband treating Su Ruanruan like his own daughter? What she didnt know was that Bao Mingyuan had his own ns, seeing that Jingyan was unequivocally interested in Ruanruan, he decided to make her part of the Bao Family so Jingyan wouldnt be able toy a hand on her. Yet, he didnt know that the person he was so wary of had already shared a bed with her. Bao Mingyuan then said to Bao Ziqi: "I dont care whether youre happy or not, just get engaged quietly." Bao Ziqis face was tense, and he didnt say anything. After breakfast, Su Ruanruan was stopped by Mrs. Bao. "Do you need me for something, madam?" In the upstairs living room, Su Ruanruan was polite. Mrs. Bao could sense the distance in her voice. She didnt mind it and said, "Qionglin has suggested that you be the maid of honor on the engagement day, Ruanruan, you have no objections, right?" Su Ruanruan didnt want to offend Mrs. Bao, so she agreed: "I have no problem." Mrs. Bao seemed a bit surprised but said nothing and let Su Ruanruan leave. After she left, Mrs. Bao felt inexplicably irritable. Last night, Su Yugu secretly told her that the drug had some serious issues in clinical trials and urged her to find a solution quickly. What could she do? She instructed Su Yugu to stabilize everything as best as he could. She thought, as long as Empirical View couldnt make it, Yanning Pharmaceuticals drug would still be the first choice. So at this moment, she needed Su Yugu. As for Su Ruanruan, she never expected her to develop any drug; it was clearly just the old woman from home using Su Ruanruan to suppress her own ambitions... * Su Ruanruan closed the door. She spected: It seems Qionglin wants to make a fool of me at the engagement party. She wasnt afraid of Qionglins little schemes; her heart was set on developing the new drug as early as possible... She went downstairs, and Bao Jingyans car was waiting for her in the parking area. She got into the car, unaware of the tall figure standing on the second floor. That was Bao Ziqi. He squinted, watching Su Ruanruan get into Bao Jingyans car openly. Bao Ziqi scoffed out loud. The two of them must have been together long ago, and everyone in the family are blind! Chapter 139 - One Hundred and Thirty-Nine: Always Holding It In Can Cause Problems

Chapter 139: Chapter One Hundred and Thirty-Nine: Always Holding It In Can Cause Problems

In the car, Bao Jingyan asked while driving, "Still angry?" Su Ruanruan didnt want to bother with him. Heughed, then asked, "What did Qi Meiyu ask you to do?" Su Ruanruan nced at him sideways and said, "She wanted me to be her bridesmaid, and I agreed." "Youre quite magnanimous!" After saying that, Bao Jingyan focused on driving and took her to theboratory. After two days, there was significant progress in the research and development. Bao Mingyuan was overjoyed, heaping praise on Su Ruanruan at thepany. On the way back, Su Ruanruan casually asked, "I heard Uncle allocated a vi for me." Bao Jingyan responded with a sound of acknowledgment. Su Ruanruan hastened him, "Then why dont you give it to me?" Bao Jingyan stopped the car at the intersection ahead and turned to look at her. His gaze was clear and sharp, as if he was plotting something mischievous. Su Ruanruans face turned red, "Im talking about the vi." Bao Jingyan touched her little cheek and said, "Then how about we move into the vi together after getting it?" Su Ruanruan turned her head away, ignoring him. He was doing it on purpose. Bao Jingyan kissed her and said in a husky voice by her ear, "You dont know, a man always holding back can lead to problems." The more he said, the more out of line he was, and Su Ruanruans face turned even redder. Upon arriving at Bao Mansion, Bao Jingyan left first for another matter. Su Ruanruan walked into the hall. Su Qionglin was selecting engagement gowns with Madame Bao. The third sister of the Su Family was very ambitious, not staying in the hospital anymore but running to Bao Mansion every day, trying to firmly bind Bao Ziqi to her. When she saw Su Ruanruan return, she coquettishly smiled, "I was just waiting for you, Ruanruan,e take a look at the gowns." Su Qionglin knew Su Ruanruans current status was untouchable, but she could make some moves at the engagement party, making Su Ruanruan lose face in front of all the socialites in the city. Su Ruanruan was clear as a mirror in her heart. She approached, softly saying, "The third sister is the protagonist! My gown can be simple." "The thoughtful Ruanruan," praised Madame Bao. Su Qionglin felt ufortable inside, but she remained generously appropriate on the surface, "Aunt, Ive thought about it, there should be two bridesmaids this time for good luck in pairs, right? So Xianrou will also attend the engagement party as a bridesmaid." Madame Bao was aware that this was the Su Familys aunt smuggling her own schemes, but she didnt mind such a trivial matter. It was obvious to the naked eye that Ziqi no longer harbored feelings for Su Qionglin, and she was definitely going to be neglected in the future; hence, she benignly said, "Thats certainly fine." Su Qionglins lips curled slightly. She wasnt intending to endorse her cousin Shen Xianrou; she needed an assistant. An assistant who could get close to Su Ruanruans gown. She had promised Shen Xianrou that if she helped with this matter, she wouldter introduce her to Bao Jingyan and find a way to make her the grand young madam of the Bao Family. Of course, it was just to deceive her. A man like Bao Jingyan wouldnt let any woman catch his eye. Su Qionglin smiled lightly towards Madame Bao, "If Ruanruan has no objections, lets try on the gown tomorrow! Aunt, about Ziqi..." Madame Bao patted her hand, "Dont worry, Ill talk to Ziqi." Su Qionglin smiled with a light lift of her lips. The next day. Even knowing it was a trap, Su Ruanruan still went alone. Madame Bao highly regarded this engagement party, and booked thergest bridal salon in the city. When Su Ruanruan arrived, Su Qionglin, with the help of the staff, had already put on a beautiful wedding dress. Being a model, even seated in a wheelchair, she looked stunningly beautiful. Seeing Su Ruanruane over, Su Qionglin curled her lips and intentionally asked, "Ruanruan, what do you think about this wedding dress? It was specially air-shipped from Paris by Aunt." Chapter 140: Aren鈥檛 You Afraid Bao Jingyan Won鈥檛 Want You?

Chapter 140: Chapter 140: Arent You Afraid Bao Jingyan Wont Want You?

Su Qionglin had just finished speaking when Shen Xianrou chimed in: "It looks stunning! Only the daughter-inw of the Bao Family could wear such a haute couture." She longed endlessly for the day she could also experience this, so she clung tightly to Su Qionglin. She firmly believed that only Su Qionglin was herdder to high society. Their echoing sentiments both suppressed Su Ruanruan and pleased Mrs. Bao. Mrs. Bao was very happy. Su Ruanruan, on the other hand, was quiteposed: "Third sister looks gorgeous in this gown." Su Qionglins vanity was greatly satisfied. Ha! When Ziqi died to save her, what good did it do for Su Ruanruan to dutifully guard the room? In the end, it was she, Su Qionglin, who became the daughter-inw of the Bao Family. This orphan, Su Ruanruan, just wasnt destined for wealth. No one noticed that Bao Ziqis car was parked at the entrance of the store. He held the steering wheel, watching the scene inside through the ss. Su Qionglin, in her gorgeous wedding dress, looked enchanting, his gaze should have been on her, but it was Su Ruanruan that Bao Ziqi saw. Wearing a deep blue dress, her hair styled in a fishtail braid unspeakably fresh. She stood there talking to a waiter, smiling with faint dimples on her cheeks. Bao Ziqis lips tightened. She could smile so happily with someone unrted, so why was she always so cold to him? Moreover, she was even willing to be a bridesmaid at his engagement. Truly, she did not care about him at all! Bao Ziqi felt insulted. Suddenly, he opened the car door, silently walked into the bridal shop from a side entrance, unnoticed. On the second floor, Su Ruanruan took the dress into the changing room. A waiter outside softly said, "Miss Su, just let me know if you need help; Ill be right outside." Su Ruanruan agreed. She removed the dress she was wearing, preparing to change into the white dress Su Qionglin had prepared for her. Su Qionglins intentions were simple; by wearing the same color, she could easily outshine Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan didnt mind this, but she feared there was a catch with the dress. She searched thoroughly but found nothing wrong. It appeared there was another arrangement. Su Ruanruan immediately took her phone to snap a picture of the dress and sent it to Jingse, asking her to make an exact copy just for her. After handling that, she then changed into the dress. But the zipper at the back of the dress was out of her reach, so she raised her voice slightly to ask the staff outside to help her. The door quietly opened. It was Bao Ziqi who entered. But Su Ruanruan, facing away and bowing her head, did not notice. Bao Ziqis gaze was fiery. He had seen many women, possessed several outstanding ones, but never had he felt so uncontrobly emotional as he did now. Her back looked as enticing as white ivory, supple and tender. The dress trailed to her waist, which was too slender for a full grasp. His breathing quickened. Su Ruanruan, lowering her head and touching the skirts hem, spoke softly, "Can you help me pull down the zipper?" Bao Ziqi stepped forward, wrapping his arms around her waist to embrace her. Su Ruanruans body stiffened. She sharply turned her head, pushing her body against the wall behind her. "How did you get in? Get out!" she suppressed her voice. Bao Ziqi moved closer, trapping her between himself and the wall. He lowered his head, whispering softly, "Why wont you choose me?" Su Ruanruan clutched her dress tightly, turning her face away: "Bao Ziqi, youre getting engaged soon, please behave." "You shout! Let others think were involved and see who gets scared." Bao Ziqi, as if bewitched, caressed her cheek, "Arent you afraid Jingyan will abandon Chapter 141 Bao Ziqi, Don鈥檛 Disappoint Me

Chapter 141: Chapter 141 Bao Ziqi, Dont Disappoint Me

"I have no rtion with Bao Jingyan," Ruanruan certainly would not admit. Bao Ziqis anger intensified, "Ruanruan, do you take me for a fool, hmm?" After speaking, he caught her and kissed her recklessly. Ruanruan trembled all over, but without any hesitation, pped him across the face. The crisp p echoed sharply. Ruanruans chest heaved violently, "Bao Ziqi, dont let yourself be looked down upon!" Bao Ziqi didnt mind his face, just stared at her intently. Suddenly, he punched the wall beside her, with so much force that the entire changing room shook. Ruanruan stifled a scream. Bao Ziqi gritted his teeth, "Do you think I would want someone whos been tainted by others?" After saying that, he stormed out, mming the door behind him. Ruanruan leaned against the wall, struggling to steady herself. Bao Ziqi is a madman! A tumultuous sound of footsteps approached, it was the waiter from earlier. The young girls face was full of guilt, and her voice very soft, "Miss Su, Im sorry, I..." Ruanruan did not me her. She only said, "Tell Mrs. Bao the dress fits perfectly! Im feeling unwell and will leave first." She didnt want to go downstairs and see Bao Ziqi, didnt want to continue the deceitful niceties. But she could not tell Bao Jingyan. Her intuition told her that the rtionship between Bao Jingyan and Bao Ziqi hadnt reached the point of outright hostility, she couldnt allow him to shed familial blood because of her. Ruanruan suddenly made an important decision. She was going to return to the Su Family. Ruanruan left quietly through the side door, while the waiter went downstairs to report to Mrs. Bao. Bao Ziqi had just changed into a ck suit and happened to overhear the conversation. His face was ice-cold. Su Qionglin gave Shen Xianrou a look, and Xianrou spoke in a tepid voice, "Ruanruan has always been proud-minded, could she have left out of fear of being outshone by Qionglin?" Mrs. Bao was immediately displeased, "Shes a bridesmaid! Naturally, she should be simpler." Su Qionglin spoke graciously, "Ruanruan is young, its better to give her..." But Mrs. Bao refused to yield, "Xianrous outfit is quite nice." Shen Xianrou smiled sweetly and obediently. A flicker of displeasure passed through Su Qionglins eyes, quickly hidden. Mrs. Bao, having been there for half the day, felt tired and left early. Su Qionglin sent Shen Xianrou away too, then leaned gently beside Bao Ziqi, asking softly, "Whats wrong, you dont look good?" Bao Ziqi sneered at her, "Do you know why Ruanruan left?" Su Qionglins face stiffened. Bao Ziqi hooked up a derisive smile, "Because I wanted to be with her, and she refused! She wants to hand over the title of young madam to you." He said this as a retaliation for her previous schemes. Indeed, Su Qionglins face went pale. How could she, so proud, tolerate such humiliation? Unable to bear it, she threw the bouquet she held at Bao Ziqi, "Bao Ziqi you bastard." Bao Ziqis expression remained cold, unmoved. Su Qionglin couldnt help but burst into tears, "Bao Ziqi you have no conscience! Ive been with you for two years, and yet Im worth less than Ruanruans two months. Whats so good about her that you like her this much?" Bao Ziqis face was expressionless, but his eyes held a rare trace of bewilderment, "If I knew, I wouldnt be in so much pain." After saying that, he turned and walked away. Su Qionglin was stunned. What did Ziqi say? Hes... in pain? Because of Ruanruan? Su Qionglin felt hatred so intense her teeth trembled, and she clenched her fists tightly. She wanted revenge, she wanted Ruanruan to be utterly disgraced! This way, nobody wouldpete with her for Bao Ziqi! Chapter 142: Master Mu Jiu! She is the daughter of my life-saving benefactor.

Chapter 142: Chapter 142: Master Mu Jiu! She is the daughter of my life-saving benefactor.

Su Ruanruan left the bridal shop and did not return to the Bao Mansion. She went to the graveyard instead. As evening approached, the graveyard was dim and eerie, but Su Ruanruan was not afraid and stood in front of a grave. In front of the grave, therey a bunch of daisies. They were her fathers favorite flowers. It began to drizzle from the sky. Raindrops clung to her eyshes, and her clothes were getting wet. But she stood in the rain as if she didnt feel it at all. After a while, Su Ruanruan crouched down, gently touched the photo on the tombstone, and murmured softly, "Dad, I will definitely find out the truth! Just give me some time." Before night fell, she left the graveyard. This ce was remote with hardly any cars around. Caught in the night rain, she cut a sorry figure. asionally, cars would pass by, their headlights ring. A ck sedan slowly came to a halt, and a man got out of the car. Su Ruanruan looked up. It was Mu Qun, Mu Jiu. Mu Qun stood quietly in the rainy night, watching her for a long while before he barked gruffly, "Whats a young girl doing here in the middle of the night at such a ghostly ce? Wheres Bao Jingyan? Why isnt he looking after you?" Su Ruanruan ignored him and continued to walk on. Mu Jiu wanted to interfere further, but a young woman got out of his car, the very Zhou Susu he had taken home from the club the other time. Zhou Susu, vying for favor, said, "Mu Jiu, why bother with this kind of woman?" Irritated and not in the mood to be touched by her, Mu Qun gave her a sharp p. "Damn fool! Do you know who she is? Shes the daughter of the man who saved my life! You are not even worth one of her fingers! Get out of my way." Mu Qun kicked Zhou Susu aside and chased after Su Ruanruan. But at that moment, a white Bentley slowly stopped ahead. A extremely handsome man got out of the car, taking off his coat to drape it over Su Ruanruan. Mu Jiu gritted his fine white teeth. Damn it! Bao Jingyan, that kid, had beaten him to it again. Inside the car, Bao Jingyan took arge bath towel from the back seat to dry Su Ruanruans hair, then searched the car for a set of sportswear and tossed it to her: "Put this on! Dont catch a cold." Su Ruanruan obediently climbed into the back seat, and he started the car and turned it around. Naturally, Bao Jingyan saw Mu Qun. Not just him, but also the young woman at his side. The familiar features made Bao Jingyan sneer Mu Qun was really something! Despite what he thought inside, he keptposed and gently asked the girl in the back seat, "Why did youe here?" It took a moment for Su Ruanruan to answer, "My parents are buried here." Bao Jingyan turned on the cars heating. Su Ruanruan put on his sportswear, which wasrge and loose. She climbed over to sit beside him, and Bao Jingyan suddenly nced at her, "What about the clothes inside?" "I took them off," she said softly. Bao Jingyans Adams apple bobbed a few times but he did not ask any further. He took her straight to his vi and, getting out of the car, he stuffed her changed clothes into a bag and took her hand to lead her into the vi... The vi was brightly lit, and in the deep of night, two shadows intertwined tenderly on the second floor. Bao Ziqis car was parked outside the vi, and he sat quietly inside, watching with an expressionless face. In the early hours of the morning, Bao Jingyan in his loungewear, a cigarette between his slender fingers, strode out towards the car. He knocked on the window, "Get out." Bao Ziqi lowered the window, locked gazes with him for a moment and opened the car door. The moment the door opened, Bao Jingyan grabbed Bao Ziqi with a ferocious punch. "Men who bully women arent real men!" Bao Ziqis body thudded against the car frame. The hit was heavy and frightening! Chapter 143 Ruanruan is My Life!

Chapter 143: Chapter 143 Ruanruan is My Life!

He turned his face and wiped off the blood at the corner of his mouth, sneering coldly: "Did she tell you?" "She didnt say anything!" Bao Jingyan grabbed him by the cor, lifting him up, and swung another forceful punch: "What could she do? She could only go to the cemetery." Bao Ziqi couldnt believe it. Bao Jingyan released him, stepping back: "Bao Ziqi, when you came back alive, she and I were not together! What was your choice when dad asked you?" Heughed coldly: "You thought she was cunning and greedy for vanity, you would rather die than marry her! What, now youve discovered her good qualities and regret it? Want to be with her now?" Bao Ziqi gasped for air: "And how about you, where are you any better?" "Ive liked her for years!" Bao Jingyan grabbed Bao Ziqis cor again: "Did you ever feel sorry for her when she was bullied by the Su Family, when your fiance pped her?" Bao Ziqi suddenly threw a punch. "You feel sorry, then why dont you marry her now? Why sneak around? In the end, she doesntpare to your ambition, isnt as important as Emperors Landscape! How are you any better than me?" Bao Jingyan took a punch. He was never one to suffer losses, especially not from a despicable Bao Ziqi. He immediately retaliated, and being much stronger, Bao Ziqi quickly fell against the car. His face was covered in wounds! Bao Jingyan, having had his fill, looked down at his half-brother from a height, "Thest time! Otherwise, I dont mind letting you know just how cold-blooded I can be." He turned and left. Bao Ziqi called out from behind him: "The three members of the Su Family, it was you who sent them to the hospital, right?" Bao Jingyan turned around, a cold smile on his lips: "I dont mind swapping them for three from the Bao Family." "You lunatic." Bao Ziqi breathed heavily, seeming ready to pounce and fight Bao Jingyan at any moment. Bao Jingyan whispered lightly: "Ruanruan is my life!" Bao Ziqi slumped against the car. He lost! He couldntpete with Bao Jingyan! His heart wasnt as ruthless as his, so even though Ruanruan was originally his, he could only watch as she fell into Bao Jingyans arms. He let out another lightugh. Bao Jingyan, this cruel, unfeeling, cold-hearted man, could actually like someone for so many years. What a joke! Bao Jingyan walked through the courtyard and into the hall. Auntie Li was waiting in the hall, her face reflecting a myriad of unsaid words when she saw him enter. "Wheres Ruanruan?" Bao Jingyan asked in a hoarse voice. "Shes upstairs." Auntie Li hesitated: "You should apply some medicine before going up." Bao Jingyan shook his head and went straight upstairs. Into the night, he pushed open the bedroom door. Su Ruanruan was awake, sitting on the sofa in her coat reading documents. He smiled, walked over, and bent down to embrace her: "My Ruanruan is so diligent?" Su Ruanruan was engrossed in her reading, startled by his words. "You frightened me." Bao Jingyan chuckled again, his hand sliding into her coat to grasp her heart: "Lets see if I scared you." Su Ruanruan moved his hand away, her face slightly flushed: "Stop it." Captivated by her blushing face, he couldnt help but kiss her. After a while, he looked at her with fascination, his voice hoarse: "Lets have more children in the future, I wont look for a mistress." Su Ruanruan was furious. Was he implying if they didnt have enough children hed find a mistress? She shouldve retorted but she wouldnt fall for it! idently ncing up, she noticed the wound on his mouth. Su Ruanruan was stunned: "Where have you been? Why did you get into a fight?" Chapter 144: Both Dresses Have Issues

Chapter 144: Chapter 144: Both Dresses Have Issues

Bao Jingyan sat down on the nearby sofa, chuckling, "Bao Ziqi has followed us here." Su Ruanruan took a while to digest that he already knew about the afternoons events. Some things were mutually understood without saying. "Ill apply the medicine for you," she said dryly, and then fetched the medicine box. Bao Jingyans injury was not serious, but she couldnt help but say, "At your age, one would expect a bit more restraint." He remained silent, only staring at her with a clear gaze. Su Ruanruan lowered her eyes, murmuring, "I want to go back to the Su Family." "Because of Ziqi?" Bao Jingyan pointedly asked. She didnt deny it: "Yes." She neatly ced the ointment back and closed the medicine box, taking a moment to collect her thoughts before speaking, "I fear that staying might lead to further incidents." Seeing that he remained silent, she whispered again, "I know you are good to me, but you cant always be by my side, can you?" "Lets talk about itter," he replied, ruffling her hair, his reluctance apparent. Su Ruanruan wasnt stubborn. On such a night, after he fought for both himself and others, she owed it to him to be kinder. Early the next morning. Bao Jingyan took Su Ruanruan to school. In the car, he suddenly remembered something, "Jingse mentioned you asked her to make a dress." Su Ruanruan hummed in response, "Im worried Su Qionglin will plot against me!" Bao Jingyan pondered for a moment, "You might as well find an excuse not to attend, to avoid any unexpected incidents." Su Ruanruan ced her hand on the back of his, the tone in her voice soft, "My third sister has been so good to me! How could I let her down?" Bao Jingyan: ... Three dayster. The engagement party for Bao Ziqi and Su Qionglin was held at Baojing Hotel. All the socialites from the south gave face to Bao Mingyuan, plus the business rtionships on both sides, led to a dazzling event crowded with celebrities. On the 28th floor of the hotel. Su Ruanruan and her cousin from the Su Family, Shen Xianrou, were in the same makeup room. To avoid being outshone, Su Qionglin had only hired a very ordinary makeup artist. After the makeup was finished, a Su Family servant delivered the bridesmaid dresses. Shen Xianrou went to receive them. The servant gave a meaningful nce and whispered quietly, "Remember, miss, the dress on the left has a problem; the one on the right is fine." Shen Xianrou took the two garment bags and smiled knowingly. Turning back, she said to Su Ruanruan, "Ruanruan, your dress has arrived." Heh heh, once Su Ruanruan wears the faulty dress and embarrasses herself publicly, there will be one lesspetitor for her entry into high society. Su Ruanruan epted the bag without any change in expression. "Hurry and change! The banquet is about to start," Shen Xianrou said cheerfully. But what she didnt know was that both dresses she held had issues. How could Su Qionglin tolerate someone outshining her? So bothdies went into the dressing room to change, and when they emerged, the look they exchanged was quite meaningful. Su Ruanruan noticed Shen Xianrous dress and was certain that it too had been tampered with. She smiled lightly. At this moment, the Su Familys great-aunt arrived, frowning upon seeing Su Ruanruan. Wasnt it agreed to just casually get ready? Why did Su Ruanruan still look so attractive? What if she stole Qionglins thunder? Unable to hold back, the great-aunt went to find her daughter. Su Qionglin was already prepared, with a luxurious dress and perfect makeup. Seeing her mother arrive, Su Qionglin was surprised, "Mom, werent you supposed to call Ruanruan and Xianrou?" The great-aunt nced at the makeup artists; Su Qionglin dismissed them. Once they had left, the Su Family great-aunt couldnt help but speak up, "I went there, but that girl Ruanruan is too striking. Why dont we just leave Xianrou? Besides, Ziqis feelings for that girl... doesnt it bother you?" Sitting in her wheelchair, Su Qionglin smiled lightly, "Its precisely because Im aware of his feelings that I want to invite Su Ruanruan even more! Let himpare and decide who is better." The Su Family great-aunt had no choice but to drop the matter. Chapter 145: Watching Sister Flowers Turn Against Each Other, Dog Eat Dog

Chapter 145: Chapter 145: Watching Sister Flowers Turn Against Each Other, Dog Eat Dog

8:00 PM. The engagement party began on time. This was the most important day of Su Qionglins life, as she was getting engaged to Ziqi. She, Su Qionglin, was about to be ady of high society. And Su Ruanruan would be humiliated due to her dress malfunctioning, tarnishing her reputation in Jiangcheng. As for Xianrou, sorry, who asked you to be so haughty? Su Qionglin had taken a painkiller injection for the engagement party, bearing the pain just to stand up. Her gorgeous wedding dress, coupled with her attractive figure, was indeed breathtakingly beautiful. But Bao Ziqi remained indifferent. He nced at her coldly, then his eyes fell on Su Ruanruan standing behind her. Su Ruanruan wore a pure white bridesmaid dress, the organza fabric made her look ethereal, and the shoulder design entuated her delicate face, along with her long, straight ck hair, she looked exceptionally pure. She didnt look at him, as if the incident that day had never happened. Bao Ziqi restrained his expression, dressed in a neatly tailored suit, and took Su Qionglin by the hand. Around them, apuse erupted. Young and sessful, from a prestigious family, and his future wife extraordinarily beautiful. However, there was not a trace of joy in his heart, only because the person he was marrying was not the one he desired. He knew deep down, from start to finish, he was following Bao Jingyans plot. He walked towards the main stage with Su Qionglin, her heart pounding excitedly. She moved through the crowd, basking in the apuse. She looked up at Bao Ziqi with adoration. Her future husband. Just then, a scream came from behind: "My dress... Ah..." The guests were stunned, then all eyes turned towards the screaming girl. It was none other than one of the bridesmaids, Shen Xianrou. She desperately covered herself towards the back, but could not hide the exposed back. The zipper waspletely undone, everything that shouldnt be seen was seen... Shen Xianrou burst into tears: "How could this happen!" This incident caused chaos in the banquet hall, many noblewomen quietly discussing. Madam Bao was not surprised; she had guessed that Qionglin would pull a stunt at the engagement party, she simply turned a blind eye! As expected, in a matter of moments, Su Ruanruans dress would also burst open. Su Qionglin thought the same. Because both dresses were tampered with, it was easier for her to shift the me onto the bridal shop. But they waited and waited, yet Su Ruanruans dress remained perfectly intact. Su Ruanruan watched their expressions with a cold smile. She found a jacket to cover Shen Xianrou. Shen Xianrou, still trembling, was unwilling to let go: "Ruanruan, did you change clothes?" Su Ruanruan feigned confusion: "Xianrou sister, are you saying you knew there was a problem with the dress? Then why did you still wear it?" Shen Xianrou couldnt hold it back, and erupted: "It was supposed to be you wearing this problematic dress." As soon as she finished, the scene fell silent. She immediately realized she had misspoken. At this point, Su Qionglin knew the secret was out, she simply threw the me on Shen Xianrou: "Xianrou, even if you are jealous of Ruanruan, you shouldnt have done this! Look, you ended up harming yourself." Shen Xianrou was bbergasted. How could Qionglin say it was her doing? It was clearly Qionglins idea! Of course, she denied it, pointedly looking at Su Qionglin: "It was clearly you who asked me to scheme against Ruanruan? How could you me me? I just picked the wrong dress, thats all." Su Qionglin smiled faintly: "I am already Ziqis fiance, why would I scheme against Ruanruan?" Chapter 146: So, It Was Su Qionglin Who Did It

Chapter 146: Chapter 146: So, It Was Su Qionglin Who Did It

"Because you want her done for!" Shen Xianrou burst into tears, "Qionglin, Ive always been helping you, how could you do this to me?" But no one present believed her, given Su Qionglins status here. The one who was ruined, was this cousin from the Su Family. At this moment, Su Ruanruan spoke softly, "I have a way! All I need to do is to take off the dress and have a professional examine it to see if theres anything wrong with the dress." After she finished speaking, Shen Xianrou immediately agreed. She could only cling to Su Ruanruan now. Su Qionglin wasnt afraid. Although both dresses had been tampered with, Su Ruanruan was wearing hers just fine, so it must have been the person who handled it did not do a good job, which allowed Su Ruanruan to avoid embarrassment. She agreed. Madam Bao nced at her and sighed inwardly. It seems she had misjudged. Qionglins skills were no match for Su Ruanruans. She was thinking about this when her younger daughter Bao Jingyuan ground her teeth beside her ear, "Mom, I told you before, Su Ruanruan is sneaky and cunning! Ive been tricked by her several times." Madam Bao didnt say anything. Su Ruanruan made a graceful exit. After she left, Bao Ziqi turned to Su Qionglin beside him, "It was you who did it, right?" Su Qionglin certainly wouldnt admit it, her eyes brimming with tears, "Ziqi, you dont believe me?" Bao Ziqi did not speak. Su Qionglin held her head high and said coldly, "Wait until Su Ruanruanes back, and you will know the truth." In a short while, Su Ruanruan had changed back into her own dress, holding the bridesmaids dress in her hands as she came over. Madam Bao summoned a designer with excellent sewing skills to examine the dress. Everyone held their breath. After the designer examined it, he looked up, "Madam, there is indeed something wrong with this dress. The back will split open if force is applied." The crowd was in an uproar. Both bridesmaids dresses had issues, so who else could have done it? Su Qionglin of course! Madam Bao wasnt surprised by this oue. Su Qionglins face turned pale, "How is that possible? Su Ruanruan has been wearing it just fine! This is a setup." "It is a setup!" Su Ruanruans voice was soft, "You lied to Sister Xianrou by saying you would only harm me, but you didnt know you were harming her too." Just as Su Qionglin was about to deny it, Shen Xianrou couldnt hold back and lunged at her, "Su Qionglin, you have such a venomous heart. Ive been wholeheartedly on your side, and this is how you repay me!" She was strong and Su Qionglin had bad legs, and she was actually pushed down forcefully. Su Qionglins face was scratched by Shen Xianrou, leaving two shallow cuts. Su Qionglin would not let her go and they began to tussle violently. The scene was unbearable. Madam Bao was furious, shouting, "Someone,e and pull them apart." Indeed, this was not something presentable! Madam Bao even regretted this marriage alliance. If not for still needing Su Yugu, she would have swept Su Qionglin, such an indecent girl, out the door long ago. ... Amidst the chaos, Su Ruanruan looked down and let out a light chuckle. She slipped away through the side door. In the emergency passage, Bao Ziqi stood leaning against the doorway, one hand holding a cigarette and the other holding a small dress. That dress was very familiar. He threw down the cigarette butt and walked towards her, "Stirring up my engagement party, and you think you can just leave?" Su Ruanruan replied lightly, "Bao Ziqi, what do you want?" Bao Ziqi spread open the dress in his hand, "It has your scent on it, it must be the one you were wearing tonight. Then what was the one you took over just now?" Su Ruanruan sneered, "Im just protecting myself! If Young Master Bao cant stand it, feel free to expose me." Bao Ziqis eyes narrowed suddenly, and he abruptly reached out to push her against the wall. Chapter 147: You Kid, Always So Low-Key

Chapter 147: Chapter 147: You Kid, Always So Low-Key

He leaned in to trap her. "Susu Ruanruan, all you rely on is Bao Jingyan!" "But do you know, the moment his ambition is exposed, my father will definitely reign him in! In his lifetime, the grand vision of the Sun Family will probably never be fulfilled." Su Ruanruan tilted her head up to look at him: "I will leave the Bao Family." Bao Ziqi was stunned. After a moment, he found his voice again: "For Bao Jingyan?" "For myself." Su Ruanruans expression was indifferent: "Bao Ziqi, youre right. I came to the Bao Family to keep youpany, and now indeed there is no need to stay." Bao Ziqi listlessly let go of her. It was quite some timeter that he spoke in a hoarse voice: "Actually, theres no need for you to do this." He chuckled bitterly twice: "Anyway, the Bao Family is already rotten to the core. Whatever you want to destroy or whatever you want to do, go ahead..." "Su Ruanruan, from now on I wont bother you anymore! Rest assured." After saying this, he tossed the evening gown towards a nearby trash can and turned to leave. Su Ruanruan still leaned against the wall. Actually, she knew that Bao Ziqi wasnt bad. He was just a bit... willful. On this day, a major event happened in Jiangcheng. Bao Mingyuan, who was furious because of the engagement party, seemed now as if he could ascend to heaven with joy. Yanning Pharmaceutical experienced a medical ident, the kind that could not be concealed. The inte was flooded with reports on this event. Yanning Pharmaceuticals stock kept plummeting. At night, in the Bao Familys great hall. Bao Mingyuan paced back and forth, then suddenly swung his arm broadly: "As they say, evil begets evil! That son of a bitch Yang Shining stealing the form from Empress View, looks like he has sent himself halfway to his grave." He looked to his eldest son: "Jingyan, have we sold off the Yanning shares we took over?" "Rest assured, all have been sold." Bao Jingyan replied with a light smile. Bao Mingyuan pped his hands in approval: "Good! Now lets see how heaven deals with that miserable cur." Madam Bao tried her best to suppress her emotions and forced a smile: "Mingyuan, did you already know there was a problem with Yanning Pharmaceuticals medicines?" Bao Mingyuan answered straightforwardly: "Of course! Jingyan had already said that old dog didnt have the smarts! Look, now that old dog is finished." He settled downfortably to drink his tea. Madam Baos face grew even grimmer. Years ago, she had invested eighty million in Yanning Pharmaceutical, hoping for a hefty return, only to find out how unreliable they were. Madam Bao could barely muster augh anymore and continued to probe: "I wonder, would Su Yugu be able to help him?" "Su Yugu?" Mentioning a prospective inw, Bao Mingyuan restrained a smile. He gently tapped the lid of the teacup, "Relying on him is worse than relying on our Ruanruan! I think Ruanruans medical skills might even be superior to his." Madam Bao couldnt help but nce at Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan was very modest: "Uncle is too kind! I only know a little." Bao Mingyuan gave her a look feigning admonishment: "Youre too modest, child! Right, with all themotion outside these days, just stick with Jingyan on your research and dont get involved in other matters." Madam Bao was on the verge of vomiting blood. Later, she called Su Qionglin into the living room. Su Qionglin was feeling very upset, as the engagement party today was utterly ruined by Su Ruanruan. She also med Madam Bao for not helping her. Now that Madam Bao had summoned her, she had a good idea why and was somewhat hesitant: "I wonder why Aunt is looking for me." Madam Bao directly asked: "Have you received any news from your fathers side?" Su Qionglinughed lightly: "ording to my elder brother, those two patients are not likely to live past three days." "How could this happen?" Madam Bao copsed onto the ground. Chapter 148: The Condition is for Su Ruanruan to Get Lost

Chapter 148: Chapter 148: The Condition is for Su Ruanruan to Get Lost

She muttered, "If they die, then Yanning Pharmaceutical is finished, and so is my money." Su Qionglin yed with her fingernails, somewhat proudly, "But my father said hed use every bit of his medical skill, and he might just be able to save those lives." Baos wife immediately grabbed Su Qionglins hand, "Qionglin, I am putting all my hopes on you now." Su Qionglin just smiled, without saying a word. How could Baos wife, being as shrewd as she is, not know what she was thinking? She quickly promised, "You and Ziqi have been in a rtionship for many years, its not something that can be broken off just like that, I recognize this marriage arrangement." Su Qionglin was very satisfied. She pushed further, "I have a condition, after this matter is settled, Su Ruanruan must leave the Bao Family." Baos wife agreed without any hesitation. After discussing the conditions, Su Qionglin hurriedly left to go to Tongsheng Hospital for Baos wife. Bao Mingyuan sat in the hall watching the departing ck sedan, his dark pupils obscure and unreadable. Baos wife slowly descended the stairs. Bao Mingyuan covered his teacup, as if casually saying, "Speaking of which, the Su Family and us are rted by marriage, but this Su Yugu is fully supporting Yan Ning, and Im not sure why." Baos wife smiled, "Grandma has said that everyones life is precious, the Su Family being a medical family means saving lives and helping the injured is their duty." She then looked toward Su Ruanruan, "Ruanruan, dont you agree?" Su Ruanruan nodded, "Auntie is right, we can only hope that uncle can cure the patients now." "Su Yugu is the best doctor in Jiangcheng, I believe he has the capability," Baos wife said as if reassuring herself. Bao Jingyan and Su Ruanruan exchanged a nce. In the deep of the night. After taking a bath, Su Ruanruan came out only to find Bao Jingyan smoking in her bedroom. She was furious, "You are smoking here again! Are you afraid others cant smell it?" She pinched out the cigarette and opened the window to let in some fresh air. Bao Jingyan pulled her into his arms. His lips pressed against her tender earlobe, warm and moist, "Do you think Su Yugu really has the capability?" Su Ruanruan shook her head. She added, "I asked someone to check the information, and I guess Su Yugu, even with all his medical skills, could probably only prolong for three or four days." Bao Jingyan gently rubbed her small head, "Do whatever you want to do! You dont need to worry about me." Su Ruanruans nose tingled, an indescribable feeling. She muttered, "Bao Jingyan, if those two cant be saved, Yan Ning Pharmaceutical will die even faster, right?" "Logically speaking, yes." Bao Jingyanughed lightly, "But it would be quite nice if a miracle female doctor appeared in Jiangcheng. Besides, Yan Ning Pharmaceutical is not something I care much about." Su Ruanruan said nothing, just leaned gently on his shoulder. She knew, this was apromise he made for her. The Bao Jingyan of the past would not have done this. The next day, she went to Tongsheng Hospital. She went to see the two patients, and they seemed alright, she then sought out Su Peimings confidant and looked through some information. After that, she understood. Su Yugu used an overbearing method, striving only to keep the lives. Little did he know, this overbearing method was something the patients could not withstand at all; they might look fine now but it would worsen their condition in a couple of days. When Su Ruanruan met Su Yugu, he thought she was meddling in the patients affairs and he rejected outright. "Ive already treated the patients almostpletely." However, Su Ruanruan said, "Im here for something else." Su Yugu filled his teacup, asking carelessly, "Whats so urgent?" Chapter 149: Su Ruanruan鈥檚 Stratagem

Chapter 149: Chapter 149: Su Ruanruans Stratagem

Su Ruanruan spoke softly, "Sister Qionglin is about to marry into the Bao Family soon, its not convenient for me to stay there, I want to return to the Su Family." Logically, such a proposal should have been agreed by Su Yugu, but he had other considerations. This child was an ultimate disaster; he wanted to drive herpletely out of the Su Family. So Su Yugu said, "Its not that your uncle disagrees, but youve lived in the Bao Family for so long Im afraid they wont let you go! How about this, you discuss it with the Bao Family again." It was a tactful rejection. Su Ruanruan stared at him for a long time. Su Yugu picked up his teacup, blew on the tea foam, and added, "When your father passed away, he didnt leave any properties, and the old house is also registered under the old masters name. If you want to go back, you need to speak with the old master." His reaction was within Su Ruanruans expectations. She stood up with dignity. Afterward, she made another visit to the Su Family, speaking with the Su patriarch about the same matter. The Su patriarch and his eldest son had alreadymunicated and simrly intended to shut this granddaughter out. The aunt from the Su Family, who had always held resentment, said sharply, "Ruanruan, you said you would always look after the house when you went to the Bao Family. Besides, weve already cleared out your room for Xianrou to live in. Theres really no ce for you in the house now." Su Ruanruan lowered her eyes and smiled faintly, "I understand." She left with her back straight. After she departed, the old patriarch of the Su Family turned to his daughter-inw: "Was it too much? After all, this child is on good terms with the Gu Family now." The elder aunt from the Su Familyzily said, "Oh my, old master, youre really out of the loop! Ever since that person from the Gu Family was discharged from the hospital, they have never summoned her once. It was just an idental acquaintance after all, not a biological mother and daughter." The old patriarch of the Su Family nodded in agreement. Outside the Su Family home. Su Ruanruans eyes were cold. Everyone in the Su Family said her father had left no properties, but her father actually owned half of the shares in Tongsheng Hospital, and he also had numerous properties both domestically and abroad. The Su Family, taking advantage of her youth, had engulfed everything. Human nature was this cold and indifferent. Did her fathers death really have nothing to do with them? She wanted to find out the truth, and this was an opportunity. Three dayster. The patient in Su Yugus care was critically ill. The patients family exposed Tongsheng Hospital and the Su Family, using them of colluding and treating the patients life like grass. Yanning Pharmaceutical was once again thrust into the limelight, itspany shares plummeting to the bottom, bordering on bankruptcy. Su Yugu was at a loss for the first time. Surely, the patient had previously shown signs of improvement. How could this have happened? He called Mrs. Bao for help, but she hung up furiously. Su Yugu, you worthless old fool! Su Yugu on the other end was furious. He did all this for Mrs. Bao, and now that things hade to this, was she really going to wash her hands of it? But now, being at Tongsheng Hospital, what could he do? Reporters besieged Tongsheng Hospital, and as soon as the patient died, his lifetime reputation would be ruined. Su Yugu didnt care about Yanning Pharmaceutical or even the Bao Family at this point; what he wanted to protect was his own reputation. He sat alone in his office, smoking. His eldest son, Su Minghua, knocked on the door of the office and spoke softly, "Dad, the patients family is talking to reporters, should we try to silence them?" Su Yugu waved his hand, "Too many people are paying attention to this now, it cant be covered up." He slumped back in his chair, sighing, "Minghua, I would have never thought my lifetime reputation would be ruined like this!" "I told you before, you should have never taken on this hot potato," Bao Minghua said. Chapter 150 We Only Believe in Su Ruanruan

Chapter 150: Chapter 150 We Only Believe in Su Ruanruan

Su Yugu exhaled deeply, "Im doing this for your sister! Minghua... tell me, am I really worse than your second uncle?" Su Minghua didnt know how to respond. Su Yugu lifted his eyelids slightly, forcing a bitter smile, "You dont have to say it, I already know." Just then his assistant knocked and entered, "Miss Ruanruan is here." "Ruanruan?" Su Yugu frowned, "What does she want? Just say Im not avable." He sneered at his eldest son, "This child is probably here to mock me." But before he could finish, Su Ruanruans voice came through, "Uncle, youve overthought it. Im here to save someone." "To save someone?" Su Yugu nced at her and sneered, "With what will you save them?" Su Ruanruan approached gracefully, her voice light, "Please give me a chance, Uncle." Su Yugu was just about to dismiss her impatiently when he caught a suggestive look from his eldest son. He paused and then understood. Right! If Su Ruanruan went and the person died, it would have nothing to do with Su Yugu anymore. When the patients family made a fusster, they could just throw Su Ruanruan in jail at most. Two birds with one stone! A hint of ruthlessness flickered in Su Yugus eyes, but his face turned kindly, "Ruanruan, Im aware of your medical skills. Since youre so intent, lets go and see." The sudden change in his demeanor didnt escape Su Ruanruan, she knew full well. Su Yugu was just trying to make her the scapegoat. Of course, she wouldnt be so foolish! So when they saw two reporters in the hospital room, Su Yugusplexion changed. "Why are there reporters?" Su Ruanruan spoke softly, "Of course, to bear witness! To prove that the patient is currently in a desperate state, receiving ast-ditch effort treatment." Su Yugu was so angry he could spit blood. He pointed at Su Ruanruan, trembling with rage, "Youre not sincerely helping our family." Su Ruanruan responded indifferently, "I just want to help the patient! But Im more afraid that my uncle will frame me, pushing all responsibility onto me, and if something goes wrong, send me to prison." "Utter nonsense!" Su Yugu sneered, "Su Ruanruan, you dont think about whether the patients family can trust you, whether theyre willing to put their lives in your hands." He had barely finished when the patients families from both parties spoke, "We believe in Miss Su!" "Yes, we trust her! We have all heard of herst time at the Bao Familys matter. Tongsheng Hospital wont let Miss Su treat us and instead sends a quack doctor, clearly with ill intentions!" Quack doctor? Su Yugus face turned ashen. Su Ruanruan turned to the two mainstream media reporters, saying, "You see folks! Now the patient is at deaths door, and Dean Su has no expertise to save them which is why he sought my help." The two reporters nodded in agreement, "We understand, this matter primarily concerns Yanning Pharmaceutical and Tongsheng Hospital, while Miss Su is acting out of righteousness." Su Yugu roared, "Su Ruanruan, without my signature, you have no right to attend to these two patients." "What if we give our signatures?" All the patients families stood up in unison, forming a dense crowd. They angrily shouted "Su Yugu, quack doctor!" "A disgrace to the respected doctors, quack killing patients." "We want Miss Su." ... Su Yugu was livid, having never suffered such humiliation. He turned and walked away. He would no longer concern himself with this matter. Su Minghua, however, stayed behind; he was curious to see what Su Ruanruan would do to bring someone back to life. After obtaining consent from the patient, Su Ruanruan took out a small box. Su Minghua scoffed: The patients organs have already been damaged, even if you were to poke them full of holes with a silver needle, I fear it would do no good. Chapter 151: The Apprentice Outshines the Master, Su Ruanruan Revives Them

Chapter 151: Chapter 151: The Apprentice Outshines the Master, Su Ruanruan Revives Them

The family members could no longer remain calm. The body was nearly rigid; would a silver needle really be of any use? Su Ruanruan had reviewed the filesthe internal organs of the two patients had sustained damage but were within the reversible range. Now, all that was needed was to clear the remaining toxins of the medicine from Yanning Pharmaceutical to right the wrongs. She inserted the silver needle into several acupoints on one of the patients with gentle stabs. The needle was somewhat thick, and to everyones amazement, it slowly drew out ck blood. Everyone was stunned. Su Minghua was even more shocked. He watched as the patientsplexion turned from green to white, then to yellow... In less than half an hour, arge amount of ck blood flowed out of the person, soaking through their clothes and the bedsheet, wet. Then there was a groan. The one who was on the brink of death actually opened their eyes, with much more rity in them. He was too weak to speak, but his wife and children were already in tears. He woke up, he woke up. A miracle! His wife and daughter fell to their knees before Su Ruanruan, crying uncontrobly. Seeing this, another family also kneeled down with a thud. "Please, Miss Su, quickly treat my family member." Su Ruanruan immediately went to help. Another half-hour passed, and that person also awoke... The ward was filled with tears of joy and crying. The journalists were bbergasted. Was this truly a reincarnation of a deity? Divine, is she really just an 18-year-old girl? Su Minghua wandered like a lost soul into Su Yugus office. Upon his arrival, Su Yugu said with irritation, "Has Su Ruanruan killed someone?" Su Minghua was still in a daze, as if greatly shocked. Su Yugu waved his hand dismissively, "I saw this oueing. What does that young girl know? Now what we need to do is to firmly ce the me on her head." Su Minghua slowly shook his head. Su Yugu became angry: "So what if two people died! Look at the state of you! We need to think of a strategy quickly!" Su Minghua finally found his voice, raspy, "The two... have woken up." "Woken up?" Dean Su couldnt believe it. Su Minghua repeated himself. Su Yugu hastily stood up, putting on his white coat: "Lets see! Isnt this just the calm before the storm?" "Dad, this light of revival cant shine that many times, can it?" Su Minghua murmured under his breath. Su Yugu shot him a fierce nce and hurried toward the ward. Arge group of reporters blocked the doorway, floodlights shing everywhere. Su Yugu looked at his son: "Dead? All the journalists havee?" At this point, Su Minghua dared not guarantee anything. In the end, it was Su Yugu who pushed past the journalists to enter the ward, and immediately upon entering, he dered, "This patient was killed by Su Ruanruan, it has nothing to do with our hospital." Hardly had he finished speaking when a middle-aged woman sprang up and pped him fiercely. The woman was quite fierce: "Your family is the one with a death! My Old Li is perfectly fine." It was then that Su Yugu realized that the two dying patients were actually awake, with IV drips now inserted into the backs of their hands. Just moments ago, they couldnt even be given IV fluids! Su Yugu was shocked. He was both shocked and ted. Shocked that a life had truly been saved, ted that his reputation had been preserved. But he was also a bit ufortable. He admitted he was not as good as his younger brother Su Peiming, but it had never urred to him that he couldnt even match Peimings daughter. How could this not embarrass and shame him? After a long while, Su Yugu found his own voice again: "Ruanruan, how did you manage to save them?" The journalists also crowded into the ward, with all the cameras pointed at Su Ruanruan. Chapter 152 We Only Acknowledge Miss Su

Chapter 152: Chapter 152 We Only Acknowledge Miss Su

Su Ruanruan gave a faint smile, saying, "Their illnesses were originally neither urgent nor fatal, but the substandard new medication from Yanning Pharmaceutical caused this ident! So I hope uncle will stop using Yanning Pharmaceuticals drugs from now on." After all, Su Yugu was an old hand in the game; he caught on instantly. With a heavy heart, he addressed the reporters: "Yes, we were careless in our use of medication! From now on, our Tongsheng Hospital willpletely sever ties with ck-heartedpanies like Yanning Pharmaceutical." The reporters were stunned. So it was true, it was Yanning Pharmaceuticals fault. But at this moment, they were more interested in Su Ruanruans identity. With a beaming smile, Su Yugu affectionately took Su Ruanruans hand and said, "This is my niece! Her father, Academician Su Peiming, passed away early, and I have personally brought up this girl. I also personally taught her medical skills. Today she solved a problem for Tongsheng, and I am very gratified." He put on such a pretentious performance, which Su Ruanruan did not refute, only smiling faintly on the side. Su Yugus old face felt a bit awkward. But he had to save face, didnt he? After all the ruckus, people at the door came over saying they wanted to present a banner of gratitude. Su Yugu instantly perked up. Aeback! An absoluteeback! Their Tongsheng Hospital was going to be renowned immediately; they had cured patients on the brink of death, they had saved two families. Tongsheng had created a medical miracle! Su Yugu straightened his clothes, ready to receive the banner, but the patients family swiftly took it and held it out in front of Su Ruanruan. It read: Living Divine Doctor, Su Ruanruan. Su Yugus old face stiffened. The patients family, in tears of gratitude, cried out, "It was Miss Su who saved my husbands life! Miss Su is our life-saving benefactor, we acknowledge no one else." Moved to tears, they attempted to kneel before Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan immediately supported the elderly, her voice gentle and soft, "This is what I should do; I really cannot ept your excessive gratitude." The reporters wildly snapped photos of such a touching scene. Then the journalists went back to their writing. Jiangcheng had produced a female divine doctor. In no time, everyone in Jiangcheng knew of her. * At four in the afternoon, Bao Mansion. A car drove in swiftly, Bao Mingyuan hurriedly got out. He rarely came back in the afternoon and walked briskly. As soon as he entered the house, he called out loudly, "Where is Ruanruan?" The servant smiled, "Miss Ruanruan just got back not long ago, shes resting." "Resting? Well, she deserves a good rest after being busy all day," Bao Mingyuan said, patting his head. He sat down on the sofa, unable to help himself from saying, "Have you all heard? Ruanruan made quite a name for herself this time. All the newspapers in Jiangcheng are praising her." The servants also said cheerfully, "Weve all seen it; we admire Miss Ruanruan very much." Bao Mingyuan was in a great mood and spoke further, "Oh? You like Ruanruan too?" "Miss Ruanruan looks good and is kind; whenever we servants have minor ailments, we turn to her. She never refuses, and everyone really likes her," the servant said earnestly. Bao Mingyuan fell silent for a moment. He rubbed his hands back and forth over the armrest and then said, "Have the kitchen prepare extra dishes, and call the young master and young mistress, as well as Ziqi and Jingyuan toe home! We are going to have a lively celebration at home tonight." The servant went off smiling to tend to it. Bao Mingyuan was indeed delighted, so he went to visit the olddy of the house. The olddy, grasping what was on her sons mind, spoke frankly, "You came because of Ruanruans matter, right?" "Nothing gets past you, Mother!" Bao Mingyuan said with a smile on his face. The olddy fiddled with her prayer beads, eyeing her son, "You can hide your frivolous thoughts from others, but not from me!" Chapter 153: Bao Mingyuan鈥檚 Appreciation

Chapter 153: Chapter 153: Bao Mingyuans Appreciation

Bao Mingyuan grinned awkwardly, "Nothing can be hidden from the olddy." After much consideration, he said, "The olddy must be aware of todays events. Ruanruan is quite capable!" The olddy lifted her eyelids, "What are you scheming now?" She said fiercely, "One moment you want her to match with Gu Ze, the next you want to betroth her to Mu Jiu. Do you think I dont know about these things?" Bao Mingyuan blushed with shame, "Your son has been foolish." He gave a signal to Gui Zhi by the side. Gui Zhi smoothed things over, "Previously, Mingyuan didnt recognize the true value." "I knew Aunt Gui would understand me," Bao Mingyuanughed. The olddy pped her son, "Glib-tongued!" Bao Mingyuan restrained his smile, speaking earnestly, "This is what I think! After me, Jingyan will undoubtedly inherit the reins of Di Jing, but the family... Jingyans disposition is too resolute, Im afraid Ziqi and Jingyuan will have no standing in the future." He finished speaking and stared intently at the olddy. The olddy was silent at first, then after a long while she said, "Are you thinking again of having Ruanruan marry Ziqi?" "Exactly," Bao Mingyuan sighed, "Ruanruan has a gentle nature and has the talent for managing a household! My thought is, let Jingyan handle external affairs, and let Ruanruan manage our home. Wouldnt that be perfect?" The olddyughed out loud, "Mingyuan, you are being foolish! Jingyan and Ruanruan, one handling the outside and the other the inside, others will think they are a married couple." "How could that be! Ruanruan is marrying Ziqi." Bao Mingyuan grasped the olddys hand, "That Su Qionglin is absolutely uneptable as Bao Familys daughter-inw! Her father and Yang Shining are in cahoots, I cannot tolerate her." The olddyughed again, "Then youre setting your sights on Ruanruan? Mingyuan, have you considered whether Ruanruan is willing? She is capable... why should she settle?" "How is marrying Ziqi settling?" Bao Mingyuan retorted. The olddy reclined in her chair and rocked slightly, "Ziqi and Qionglin have been intimate. Does Ruanruan not mind?" "What era are we living in, olddy." Since Bao Mingyuan is a man, he naturally does not mind. The olddys old yet shrewd eyes looked at her son, "This child has her own mind, I think she does care." Bao Mingyuan was indifferent, "Its all past before marriage." "That person is also her older sister." The olddy scoffed, "Mingyuan, I understand your thoughts; youre always covering for that conniving woman! You worry Jingyan might annihte everyone in the future, but have you considered whether Ruanruan alone can stop him?" Bao Mingyuan secretly thought: Why couldnt she? But he couldnt reveal such thoughts, and after chatting casually for a bit more, he left. However, once he had made up his mind, he would not easily change it. ... At seven in the evening, the Bao Familys hall was brilliantly lit. Bao Mingyuan personally ushered Su Ruanruan to a seat, handing her a ss of red wine, "Ruanruan, you must drink this cup today." Su Ruanruan smiled lightly, "Uncle, you sound pleased?" Bao Mingyuan patted her shoulder, "Today you have really made the Bao Family proud! At the hospital, you exposed Yanning Pharmaceutical and crushed Su Yugu utterly! Ruanruan, your uncle is proud of you." He addressed his wife and children, "Everyone, raise your sses! Lets drink to Ruanruan." Su Ruanruan demurely said, "Uncle, I dont deserve this." Bao Jingyuan felt uneasy and immediately said, "Oh dad, its just saving two people, its not that big of a deal." Her daughter speaking so thoughtlessly upset Bao Mingyuan, "You save one and show me?" He then spoke to Mrs. Bao, "Jingyuan is so arrogant and ignorant every day, you need to discipline her well." Chapter 154: Ruanruan Indeed Doesn鈥檛 Care About Money emm

Chapter 154: Chapter 154: Ruanruan Indeed Doesnt Care About Money emm

Bao Jingyuan was so angry her eyes were brimming with tears: "Dad, youre biased! Youre so nice to Su Ruanruan, but youre always harsh on me!" She turned her head and left. Mrs. Bao was about tofort her when Bao Mingyuan said coldly, "Leave her alone! Its because youve been too indulgent with her all the time." Mrs. Bao felt a chill in her heart. Among the children, Mingyuan usually doted on Jingyuan the most, forgiving her for any mistakes she made, but now for Su Ruanruan, Mingyuan would reprimand Jingyuan at every turn. Moreover, before dinner, Mingyuan even told her that he wanted to facilitate a rtionship between Ziqi and Su Ruanruan. How could that be? She did not want a daughter-inw of Su Ruanruans background! Mrs. Bao was unhappy in her heart, but Bao Mingyuan did not notice and even suggested, "Ruanruan, you should move back to your original room." Su Ruanruan was startled, but she smiled lightly, "Im quitefortable living in the small courtyard." "Besides, Ill be going back to the Su Family soon." "Going back to what Su Family?" Bao Mingyuan frowned, "Just stay here at home! Were not short of a pair of chopsticks." He thought for a moment and added, "Although living in the small courtyard is convenient for taking care of the olddy, its not as lively as the main house. Young people should be lively." He then looked at Bao Ziqi, "Jingyan and Jingse are not staying at home; youre the eldest brother now, you need to take good care of Ruanruan and not let Jingyuan bully her." Bao Ziqis gaze was profound. At that time, Bao Jingyuan rushed down from the second floor, puffing with anger, "Whos bullying her? Dad, it would be good enough if she doesnt bully me!" Bao Mingyuan chuckled, "How could Ruanruan with such a good nature bully anyone?" He was probably trying to stir up his foolish younger daughter, then added, "From today onwards, Ruanruan and Jingyuans pocket money will be the same, both are 100,000." He looked at Su Ruanruan very affectionately, "If thats not enough, just tell uncle." Bao Jingyuan was furious. Why should Su Ruanruan get the same 100,000 pocket money as her? Shes just a nobody dreaming to be a wealthy youngdy? Unexpectedly, Su Ruanruan declined. Her voice was gentle, "Uncle, I cant take this money." Bao Mingyuan was immensely gratified: He really wasnt wrong! Ruanruan wasnt after the Bao Familys money. He was about to speak when Su Ruanruan added, "I just need my sry from the R&D department." Bao Mingyuan was stunned. He touched his head, looking at his elder son, "Jingyan, how does the R&D department handle the sry?" Bao Jingyan was swirling a ss of red wine, smiled silently when he heard the words. Then he said very slowly, "The employees in the R&D department start at an annual sry of 5 million." million? Bao Mingyuan felt it was too much. After all, a child wouldnt need that much money. He coughed lightly, "Well, Ruanruan is still young, just an assistant." "My assistants sry also starts at 5 million." Bao Jingyan took a sip of wine, then set down his ss, "Dad, why are you singling out Ruanruan?" "Where am I singling her out? I value her highly!" Bao Jingyan smirked, "Then why make an exception for her? Just give her whatever you give others." Bao Mingyuan felt the pain! A child, getting an annual sry of 5 million! Su Ruanruan was very sensible: "Uncle, I can start at the grassroots level." Grassroots? How could that be? What if thepetitor found out and lured her with a high sry? If she harbored dissatisfaction with him, her Uncle Bao, and wanted to leave the Bao Familyter, what then? So Bao Mingyuan, though it pained him, put on an angry front, "What are you talking about, child! Uncle is trying to cultivate you, how can you go to the grassroots? Just follow your elder brother and learn well." Chapter 155 Do You Plan to Keep Sneaking Around?

Chapter 155: Chapter 155 Do You n to Keep Sneaking Around?

Su Ruanruan graciously expressed her thanks: "Thank you, Uncle Bao." Bao Mingyuan didnt truly care about the money; hearing the little girl softly call him uncle made his heart feel warm and tender. Mrs. Bao coldly observed everything, knowing it was all over. Yanning Pharmaceutical was finished! The money she invested was wasted. Now what she needed to do was to dissociate herself, to earnestly clear her name, for which she had already spent a lot of money. She was in a foul mood, and Bao Jingyuan was still naive. When alone, Bao Jingyuan burst into tears: "Mom, dad is actually giving Su Ruanruan 400,000 a month, which is four times my allowance." Mrs. Bao, her face full of anger: "Jingyuan, when will you stop causing trouble? Do you only want to be satisfied when our family of three has no ce in this house?" Bao Jingyuan was stunned: "Mom, what are you talking about?" Under the light, Mrs. Baos face was serious: "Su Qionglin and your second brothers marriage is done! Your father favors Su Ruanruan, and he even wants Su Ruanruan to manage our household affairs in the future. Is this clear enough?" Bao Jingyuan threw herself onto Mrs. Baos legs: "Mom, I dont believe it! How could dad hand over the household to Su Ruanruan?" "How could he not? Once she marries your brother, she will be the young madam of the Bao Family!" Mrs. Bao closed her eyes: "Your fatherpletely bypassed me, Jingyuan. Ive been busy all my life and yet I am not as good as an outsider girl." Bao Jingyuan was utterly stunned. Su Ruanruan actually... beat Sister Qionglin! Impossible! Werent mom and dad always praising Sister Qionglin for being a supermodel and exceptionally outstanding? ... In the end, Su Ruanruan did not move back to the main house but still lived in the small courtyard. At night, after her bath, she opened the window and blew her hair while pondering. After so much scheming, Su Yugu finally tested the waters by asking her if she wanted to go to Tongsheng Hospital? Of course, she knew Su Yugu was using her, but she didnt care; she was searching for the truth. She didnt agree immediately. By refusing a few times, the other party couldpletely lower their guard. As Su Ruanruan was pondering, the door was pushed open. It was Bao Jingyan. She bit her lip: "Why are you here again sote?" Bao Jingyan voluntarily closed the window, turned around, and hugged her from behind, resting his chin on the side of her neck and murmuring softly: "Not leaving?" Su Ruanruan hummed: "Not leaving for now." "Arent you afraid hell want to pair you with Bao Ziqi again?" Bao Jingyan had seen everything clearly tonight. Su Ruanruan lowered her head slightly: "I can earn 400,000 a month here." He gently nibbled at her neck, his voice muffled: "Am I not worth 400,000? Live with me, I can give you 4 million, 40 million." As he did such things and said such nonsense, Su Ruanruan was both angry and embarrassed: "Bao Jingyan, Im not for sale." He chuckled softly: "Sold only to me." Saying so, he scooped her up. Su Ruanruan dared not make a scene and could only hit him softly, "Bao Jingyan, I dont want..." "Dont want what?" "I dont want it to be likest time!" She spoke quickly and anxiously, her face flushing as if it might bleed. Bao Jingyan kissed her lips tenderly while murmuring: "Last time, which was?" Suddenly, he caught her hand, his voice growing huskier: "Was it like this?" Su Ruanruan let out a soft scream, but how could she resist him? Tonight, Bao Jingyan was in high spirits, not only doing what was donest time but also forcing her to do some other things... Su Ruanruan was bullied to the point of tears puffing up her eyelids, and in the wee hours, she refused to let him stay, taking the opportunity when he went to smoke to drive him out... Bao Jingyan also knew he had gone too far. He felt both heartache and sweetness, and lighting a cigarette, he left to return to his own room to sleep. On such a deep night, others in the Bao Family were still awake. In the dark hall, Bao Ziqi sat expressionless. As Bao Jingyan passed by, smoking, it was as if he hadnt seen him. Bao Ziqis fingers slowly clenched into a fist: "How long are you nning to hide her? nning to keep sneaking around?" Chapter 156 She is Already Mine

Chapter 156: Chapter 156 She is Already Mine

Bao Jingyan stopped in his tracks. In the dim light, a sliver of scarlet on his fingers flickered on and off. He chuckled, "This is none of your business. Ziqi, take care of your own matters." "Ive broken off my engagement with Su Qionglin." Bao Ziqi suddenly stood up, walking over to Bao Jingyan and seizing his cor: "It was dads decision! You know what this means!" Bao Jingyan casually brushed his hand aside: "Is this a deration of war or are you sounding the rm?" He was soposed, Bao Ziqi was infuriated, "Arent you afraid Ill spill the beans?" Bao Jingyan pinched out the cigarette butt and took onest drag, chuckling lightly: "Ziqi, you wouldnt! Your indecisiveness is precisely why dad never considered handing over Di Jing Corporation to you." Having said that, he headed upstairs. Bao Ziqi growled from behind, "Bao Jingyan, dont be too confident! Between power and beauty, youll have to sacrifice one!" "Whatever." Bao Jingyan waved his hand, "But dont say I didnt warn you." Bao Jingyan turned and stood in the stairwell, his good looks as divine as an idols. He spoke coldly, "She is already mine." Bao Ziqi threw a punch at the ss coffee table. Between his fingers, blood dripped copiously. But he couldnt care less. * The next morning. Su Ruanruan first visited the hospital. The two patients were profoundly grateful, even secretly trying to slip her a red envelope. Su Ruanruan discreetly observed the family members of the two patients; it was evident that neither was well-off. She not only refused but also discreetly spoke to the billing department, who were old subordinates of Su Peiming and thus orded her this respect. After arranging everything, she thought about leaving when she ran into her eldest brother Su Minghua. "Ruanruan," Su Minghua called out to her. Su Ruanruan stopped, quietly asking, "Big brother, is there something you need?" Su Minghua, over thirty and sessful in his career, exuded an aura of importance. He said very politely, "The old master and dad want you toe home for dinner." A hint of mockery appeared in Su Ruanruans eyes, "I thought I was no longer wee in the Su Family." "How could that be?" Su Minghua feigned anger, "The old master loves you the most! Come on, have a meal as a favor to your big brother." Su Ruanruan smoothly avoided his hand, "Ive been quite busy these days." Su Minghua seemed somewhat ufortable, chuckling dryly, "I heard youre working in Di Jing Corporations research department! Impressive, Ruanruan, dont forget about us at Tongsheng Hospital when you develop new drugs." Su Ruanruan simply offered a faint smile. After leaving the hospital, she remembered she hadnt visited Mrs. Gu for a long time, so she made a special trip. Since being discharged from the hospital, Mrs. Gu had not seen her and was very happy to see her now, but she pretended to be discontented, "You still remember to visit me!" Su Ruanruan sat beside her, dutifully peeling fruit. Mrs. Gu watched her with delight, "Im almost fully recovered now; I should apany you for a shopping trip sometime." Su Ruanruan hummed in response, handing the fruit to Mrs. Gu. While eating, Mrs. Gu inquired about her recent life and ended with augh, "Now the newspapers and websites are all buzzing with your news! Your uncle told me too, Ruanruan, youre now the celebrity of Jiang City." Su Ruanruans eyes sparkled, "Uncle knows too?" "Yes! He cant stop singing your praises." Mrs. Gu held her hand, examining it closely. At this moment, she did have a concern on her mind, but it wasnt convenient to discuss with Su Ruanruan. Just then, the Gu Familys grandniece Gu Jiarou came to visit Mrs. Gu; Su Ruanruan had met her before, a rather cute girl. Chapter 157: Nothing Can Shut You Up!

Chapter 157: Chapter 157: Nothing Can Shut You Up!

Mrs. Gu said, "You dont always have to keep mepany, go out for a coffee or something. Young people should have their own social circles." Although Jiarou was two years older than Su Ruanruan, she greatly admired Su Ruanruan. Hearing her aunts words, she immediately said happily, "Ive wanted to go out with Ruanruan for a while now, but I wonder if celebrity Ruanruan has time to grace us with her presence?" Mrs. Guughed: "Ruanruan, your presence is confirmed, otherwise Jiarou might say youre putting on airs." Su Ruanruan, liking the Gu family, wouldnt refuse and replied with a smile, "Shall we go out for lunch togetherter?" Jiarou pped her hands together: "A Mexican restaurant just opened in the east, lets go eat there." Su Ruanruan nodded. Jiarou cheerfully bade farewell to Mrs. Gu and then ran off pulling Su Ruanruan along. "Have fun." Mrs. Gu said with a smile. She watched the two kids leave, feeling envious of their youth, when Mr. Gu walked in. "What are you watching thats making you so happy?" Gu Yuanpei asked with a smile. Mrs. Gu gave him a look: "Am I not allowed to be happy?" "What are you talking about?" Mr. Gu sat down and took a sip of tea, showing concern for his wife. Mrs. Gu, having something on her mind, asked, "How is Gu Zes matter going?" Gu Yuanpei smiled, "Gu Ze is on a business trip, it will be a few days before he returns." He added, "What, cant wait to see the oue?" Mrs. Gu did not respond. Gu Yuanpei really couldnt stand to see his wife disappointed, he still felt that things werent so coincidental. It seems he needs to take action when Gu Ze returns to make his wife happy. * Su Ruanruan and Jiarou went to the Mexican restaurant, and indeed, the environment was very nice. They chose a spot next to the floor-to-ceiling windows and after ordering, they started whispering, girls always have lots to talk about. Jiarou had also heard about Su Ruanruan and Bao Jingyan, and she asionally teased her about it. Su Ruanruan red at Jiarou yfully. With her chin propped on her hands, Jiarou whispered, "Bao Jingyan is better looking than Bao Ziqi, and he seems healthier too." Su Ruanruan blushed slightly. "Ruanruan, your face is red." Jiarou teased her and pinched her face,ughing heartily. The waiter came and served the food. Su Ruanruan pushed Jiarous hand away and said softly, "Nothing can shut you up." Cousin Jiarou kept smiling with her lips pursed, the two girls got along extremely well. As they asionally looked at each other andughed, on the other side of the restaurant sat a man and a woman. The man, in his thirties, handsome and imposing, and the girl dressed very innocently but her gaze seemed restless. Mu Qun squinted at Su Ruanruan talking andughing with others across the room, feeling restless. Damn it, this little girl chats andughs with others, but cant utter a word in half a day when she sees him, Mu Jiu. Doesnt she look up to him at all? Mu Qun was distracted, and Zhou Susu across him got upset. She always knew she was a recement, she heard that Ninth Master once proposed to the Bao family for someone named Su Ruanruan. So, this was Su Ruanruan? Zhou Susu touched her face, indeed, there was a resemnce. Feeling discontent, she looked over and coyly chided, "Ah, Ninth Master, its rare you take me out for a meal, why cant you look at me instead of staring at someone else?" "Speak properly," Mu Qun still had his eyes on Su Ruanruan across the room. There, she was wearing a white dress today, casually draped with a light blue cardigan, surprisingly looking quite stunning. Chapter 158: Mu Jiu鈥檚 Eyes Are About to Fall Out

Chapter 158: Chapter 158: Mu Jius Eyes Are About to Fall Out

Su Ruanruan was born with an innocent look, but there was already a hint of womanly charm between her brows and eyes. Just thinking about who brought out that charm, Mu Jiu bristled with the urge to gnaw at Bao Jingyans flesh alive. He took a fierce swig of the aperitif and tore into the meat with big bites. Zhou Susu, having gotten the cold shoulder, stopped talking and sat there fiddling with her nails. Mu Qun couldnt stand it again: "Whats with the nail polish, wipe it off when you get back." That person never dabbled in these shy things, clean and unadorned. Saying so, Zhou Susu grew even less pleased but dared not explode, merely snorting softly. "Did you hear what I said?" Mu Qun had no sympathy for delicacy with her, raising his voice a bit. "I got it," Zhou Susu felt bitter inside. She felt indignantwhat was sheckingpared to that Su Ruanruan? But Mu Qun was firmly fixated on Su Ruanruan, like a wolf eying a sheep, nearly drooling over her. Zhou Susu was infuriated anew. Now, perhaps having recognized Su Ruanruan, the restaurant manager was vehemently inviting her to y a piece of music, Su Ruanruan didnt wish to draw attention but Gu Jiarou begged softly, saying shed love to hear it. In the end, Su Ruanruan still went over, sat in front of the piano, and looked at Gu Jiarou with a tilted head. Gu Jiarou mouthed a song title, Su Ruanruan smiled lightly, ced her hands on the piano keys, and soon, the melodious sound of the piano echoed... She looked extremely beautiful as she yed, Mu Qun was nearly stupefied. Of humble origins, though now looking respectable, at his core he was still a roughneck, where had he ever seen such a fairy? "Not to your taste," Zhou Susu quipped, "Your eyes are about to fall out." Mu Qun didnt nce her way: "If you have the guts, get up there and y something, too." Zhou Susu kept silent. How could she y? Mu Jiu looked her over, sighing inwardly. A knockoff is just a knockoff, itll never be the real thing. He snapped his fingers, calling the waiter over to order a few things... Over there, Su Ruanruan had finished ying and returned to her seat, Gu Jiarou leaned over excitedly, "Ive heard many people say you y well, but I never imagined it would be this good!" She was blunt with Su Ruanruan, unabashedly asking, "I heard Bao Ziqi wants to take you to Britain for advanced studies, why wont you agree?" Su Ruanruan shook her head, smiling softly. Gu Jiarou understood immediately, "I know, youre afraid Jingyan will be jealous." "Chatterbox," Su Ruanruan cut a piece of steak and stuffed it into her mouth. Gu Jiarou justughed. As they were enjoying the moment, a waiter came over with a red rose in one hand and a bottle of red wine in the other. Su Ruanruan looked up in surprise. The waiter smiled, "This is from that gentleman over there. Miss Su, would you like to decant the wine now?" Su Ruanruan looked over and saw Mu Qun. Mu Qun raised his ss at her from a distance, full of style. "So greasy!" Gu Jiarou remarked from the side, "Ruanruan, you must not ept, some men just unt their dirty money everywhere, hitting on young girls! This Mu Jiu is not exactly reputable, you see the youngdy by his side? Shes his bin, the kind that serves him." Su Ruanruan smiled faintly and said politely to the waiter, "Please thank Mr. Mu for me, but I cannot ept the flower and the wine." The waiter was in a bind. Mu Jiu was not someone their restaurant could afford to offend. At this moment, Mu Qun had already walked over. He sat down next to Gu Jiarou, took the rose, and handed it to Su Ruanruan, "Flowers for the beauty." Gu Jiarou remarked again, "So greasy." Chapter 159 I Want to Compete Fairly with Bao Jingyan

Chapter 159: Chapter 159 I Want to Compete Fairly with Bao Jingyan

Mu Qun looked at her: "Little girl, cant see how good I am to you? When I marry Ruanruan, Ill have to call you little sister." "Youre shameless! Ruanruan doesnt even like you." Coming from a good family, Gu Jiarou wasnt afraid of Mu Jiu and spoke directly: "Dont you have a woman? Over there, staring at you." Mu Qun nced at Zhou Susu, indeed full of resent. He ground his teeth... hed take care of this womanter. Then he turned back with a smile on his face: "Shes not my woman, just a secretary, thats all." He even teased Su Ruanruan: "Upset? If youre unhappy, Ill transfer her away tomorrow so out of sight, out of mind." Su Ruanruan spoke up: "Whether shes your woman or whether you transfer her has nothing to do with me, Mr. Mu, I think we made it very clear at the Bao Familys ce." Mu Qun wasnt upset, still looking good-tempered: "The past is the past, the future is the future, who knows, you might change your mind one day?" He was actually furious, but then he thought, isnt it normal for a pretty girl to have several suitors? Even if Bao Jingyan really got her... he would have to hold his nose and ept it. Mu Jiu opened a bottle of red wine and poured a ss for each of the youngdies,ughing heartily: "This ss is an apology! I was presumptuous thest time I went to the Bao Familys house, from now on, Ill properly pursue you andpete fairly with Bao Jingyan." His shamelessness disgusted Gu Jiarou: "What do you have topare with Jingyan? Youre not as handsome as him, nor do you have his education, and your family background doesnt match up either. All you have is some dirty money." Typically, Mu Jiu would have thrown this girl into the sea to feed the fish by now, but with Su Ruanruan there, he could only put on a smile: "That dirty money was hard-earned, and Im willing to offer it with both hands if Ruanruan is willing." "Crazy," Gu Jiarou snorted coldly and was about to pull Su Ruanruan away. Mu Qun wouldnt let them. In a soft voice, Su Ruanruan said: "Mr. Mu, if you keep pestering me like this, Im afraid your girlfriend will be unhappy! Since youre a businessman, I trust you still have some integrity." Mu Jiu was a bit dazed. This youngdy had really put him on the spot, making it hard for him to step down. He rubbed his forehead and after a while, he chuckled: "Fine, when I get back, Ill clear the court." "Clear the court? Youre just a bandit," Gu Jiarou couldnt help saying. Su Ruanruan gave her a look, and she immediately stopped talking. For some reason, even though she was two years older than Ruanruan, Ruanruan seemed moreposed. Mu Qun chuckled: "You were quite the talker just now, why the silence?" Gu Jiarou red at him, and Su Ruanruan pulled her along and very politely said to Mu Jiu: "Thank you for your generous offer, Mr. Mu." She insisted on paying her own bill and left. Just reaching the door, Gu Jiarou couldnt help herself: "That Mu Jiu is a freak, did you see that woman? Her hairstyle, clothes, style, and even makeup are all imitations of you. But shes not presentable, no matter how she dresses up, she doesnt look the part." "Youre aware and thats good." Su Ruanruan turned her head, speaking softly: "This Mr. Jiu is not easy to mess with. In the future, if you see him, walk around him. Dont offend him lightly." "But he has a thing for you! Did you see the way he drools?" Su Ruanruan paused: "Thats his problem. Just ignore him." Gu Jiarou let out an oh, then grabbed Su Ruanruans hand: "You mustnt have filled up just now, let me take you to eat something good." Chapter 160: A Gift for Bao Jingyan

Chapter 160: Chapter 160: A Gift for Bao Jingyan

In the evening, Bao Jingyan came to pick up Su Ruanruan. After dropping off Gu Jiarou at her ce, they finally had some time alone together. Bao Jingyan was dressed in his timeless ck and white suit today, looking handsome and dapper. Sitting in the car, he nced at Ruanruan and then turned his head to look at the several bags in the back seat. He asked, "Where did you all go?" Ruanruan mumbled, "Just wandered around." "Did you buy anything for me?" Bao Jingyan asked in a low voice. "No." Ruanruan said firmly. Bao Jingyan reached for the bags, and with a simple flick of his palm, he pulled out a mens bag, his brow raising, amused yet not quite smiling, "Whats this?" Ruanruans face turned a shade of pink. She tried to grab it from him, but he wouldnt let her. Bao Jingyan looked down and opened it to reveal a scarf. A grey one, with the LV brand. He held it up, tilted his head, and chuckled lightly, "Mrs. Bao has good taste." Ruanruans face grew even hotter, she huffed lightly, "Its not for you! And Im not Mrs. Bao." Bao Jingyan folded the scarf neatly back into the bag, then leaned towards her. His voice was low and even carried a hint of tenderness, "Ruanruan, I really like it." Ruanruan felt even more bashful, not daring to look at him. But he continued to gaze at her with that tender look, and she couldnt stand being watched like that, quietly drooping her little head. "Ruanruan." Bao Jingyans voice turned husky, "Look at me." She didnt dare to lift her head, feeling the heat of his gaze. Bao Jingyan simply pressed against her soft lips, murmured lowly, "If its not for me, then who is it for?" She said nothing, just pressing against his shoulder. Bao Jingyan didnt ask any further, chuckled lightly, and kissed her willingly... "Dont." Her nervous whisper was so tense her whole body stiffened. "Whats wrong?" Bao Jingyan kissed her gently. Ruanruan trembled as if her soul was leaving her body, "Someone will... someone will see us." "Then let them see," he pecked her small mouth lightly, "Come back with me tonight, okay?" He was never fully satisfied at the Bao Family home. Ruanruan was too shy and never let go, and he wasnt good at forcing her. As he said this, Ruanruan inhaled sharply, "I dont want to." "Why not?" Bao Jingyan teased her, "Youre like a little kitten when I kiss you." Ruanruan was both embarrassed and annoyed, and didnt want to deal with him any longer. But Bao Jingyan was determined to get a firm answer from her today. He put away the jokes, sat up straight, and casually flicked the scarf she gave him, then after a moment, he raised his eyes to gaze at her. His dark pupils stared intently for a moment before he softly asked, "What are you thinking now?" "What?" She was somewhat absent-minded. Bao Jingyan looked down at the fine quality scarf and said, "About the future, the days toe." Ruanruan fell silent. She really hadnt thought things through yet. She bought the scarf today because Bao Jingyan had helped her a lot and she felt she should give something back, or at least hoped it would make him happy so he wouldnt force her to do those strange things. Now he was directly asking for a response and she didnt know what to say that wouldnt make him angry. Bao Jingyans temper wasnt the best. She remained silent for a long while; how could Bao Jingyan not understand? He sighed, "Lets talk about itter." She was a bit surprised and blinked lightly. Bao Jingyan couldnt help but find it funny and irritating, reached out to tug her hair fiercely and said, "Even if you havent agreed, you still cant avoid doing those things." Su Ruanruans face reddened, and she turned to look out of the car window. Bao Jingyan tugged at her ear again, "Im talking to you. Dont y dumb." Chapter 161: I Gave Birth to Such a Useless Thing

Chapter 161: Chapter 161: I Gave Birth to Such a Useless Thing

Her face grew even redder, and her voice was as soft as a mosquitos: "Okay, I know." Bao Jingyans blood heated up in an instant, ready to take her back to the vi, but Su Ruanruan, anxious, grabbed his arm, pleading, "Stop being so impulsive at the slightest provocation. If you keep this up, the family will start to suspect." With her plea, Bao Jingyan stared at her for a while before he leaned over, pulled a cigarette from the center consoles case, lit it, and took a few deep drags before restarting the car: "Fine, Ill take you back." Su Ruanruan, still young, couldnt tell if he was angry or not. She reached out and tugged at his sleeve, with a hint of trying to please. Bao Jingyan, steering with one hand and smoking with the other, nced at her: "What do you want again?" Su Ruanruan, irritated, turned her head away, ignoring him. Bao Jingyanughed and ended up escorting her home to the Bao Mansion properly. Too tired to return to the vi after a long day, he simply opened the car door after she had gone inside. His gaze fell on the bag she had left behind, and his eyes softened. Though the little girl was tough with her words, the scarf she had given was truly heartfelt. Bao Jingyan smiled silently. The next morning, the weather was slightly chilly. At the breakfast table, the head of the family Bao Mingyuan showed concern for the children, especially and carefully said to Su Ruanruan, "Its getting cold. Have your sister Jingse apany you to buy some clothes and just report the expense to me." "Thank you, Uncle," Su Ruanruan said with well-mannered grace. Bao Jingyuan was livid. Her father kept caring for Su Ruanruan and not for her! Bao Mingyuan continued, "Yesterday when you were out, someone from your family came asking you to join them for a meal. What do you say, Ruanruan?" Su Ruanruan nced at Bao Ziqi. Bao Ziqis expression wasnt very good. His engagement with Su Qionglin had been dissolved, and naturally, he didnt want to have anything more to do with the Su Family. Thus, Su Ruanruan said to Bao Mingyuan, "My elder brother told me to go when I have time." Bao Mingyuan nodded; he also nced at Bao Ziqi before speaking slowly, "Ziqi, theres no fate between you and your third sister. Ruanruan..." Su Ruanruan measured her words, "I understand, Uncle. I wont speak out of turn." Bao Mingyuan was quite pleased, "Youre a sensible child." After speaking, he gave his youngest son a meaningful look. Bao Ziqi pretended not to notice. However, Bao Mingyuan still called him into the study, having a frank father-son talk just like thest time. Bao Mingyuan passed a cigarette to him, saying straightforwardly, "Ziqi, I hope youll pursue Ruanruan. Ive discussed it with the olddy, if all goes well, well have you two married once Ruanruan turns 20." Bao Ziqi, holding the cigarette, sat down on the couch and asked indifferently, "Dad, why do you have such an idea again?" "I see that you like that girl," Bao Mingyuan smiled with a hint of allure, "Ziqi, you cant hide your feelings from me." Bao Ziqi neither acknowledged nor denied, pondering for a moment before chuckling lightly, "Why dont you speak to Ruanruan about this?" Bao Mingyuans expression turned frustrated, "If Ruanruan fancied you, would I need to tell you this? Ziqi, in the past, you were too cold to her. If you just show a bit more warmth, its always possible to touch her heart. Women, they are often tender-hearted!" Really? Bao Ziqi sneered inside. How could Su Ruanruan be tender-hearted? She was heartless towards him! But he had seen her flustered. Last night, Bao Jingyan brought her back, and when she got out of the car, she looped around to the side and kissed Bao Jingyan under the moonlight. Just now at breakfast, Bao Jingyan boldly touched her hand under the table, and her face blushed, not really pulling away. In front of all the Bao Family members, they carried on with their affair. Chapter 162: Su Ruanruan is Indeed the Blood Relative of the Gu Family

Chapter 162: Chapter 162: Su Ruanruan is Indeed the Blood Rtive of the Gu Family

Bao Ziqi inwardly despised her. However, when Bao Mingyuan proposed the idea, he couldnt help but be tempted. But thinking of what he sawst night left him feeling cold Ruanruan had already had an affair with Bao Jingyan, why should he degrade himself? Bao Mingyuan intended to reconcile his youngest son with Su Ruanruan, nning to have Bao Ziqi send Ruanruan off, but only found out she had already left when they arrived outside. "How did she leave? Did the driver take her?" Bao Mingyuan asked, frowning lightly. The household servant replied: "The eldest young master gave her a ride on his way." Bao Mingyuan wondered, "How is thepany on the way to the art academy?" Housekeeper Wang, who had just entered, delicately replied: "The eldest young master was about to go nearby for some errands." Bao Mingyuan could only feign ignorance, then turned back to look at Bao Ziqi. He had already gone upstairs. * Indeed, Bao Jingyan had matters to attend to; Gu Ze had returned from a business trip and had things to discuss with him. After dropping off Ruanruan, he went to a luxurious clubhouse. At the grand entrance of the clubhouse, the manager personally came to greet: "Young Master Jingyan, youve arrived! Young Master Gu has been waiting for you upstairs." Bao Jingyan gracefully nodded and proceeded upstairs. Upon reaching the second floor, the manager opened the door to a private room for him. Naturally, the room wasvishly decorated, exuding a sense of understated elegance. Gu Ze was sitting there waiting for him. Bao Jingyan closed the door and smiled faintly: "I heard from Uncle Gu that you just got back this morning. Youre in such a rush to see me?" Gu Ze poured him a cup of tea and gently ced it on the table. "I indeed have a tricky matter I need to discuss with you, Bao Jingyan. This is something only you can handle." Bao Jingyan guessed what it might be but pretended not to know: "What is it?" Gu Zes gaze was intense: "You know my mother longs for Yunxi day and night, utterly convinced that Ruanruan is Yunxi, so much so that she even had a DNA test done." As he spoke, he gently ced a brown paper bag on the table. Bao Jingyan sipped his tea, setting down the cup gently with his slender, jade-like fingers: "Why dont you open it and see?" Gu Zeughed helplessly: "Is there really any need to see the result?" "What, you think theres not the slightest possibility?" Bao Jingyan picked up the brown paper bag as if about to open it. Gu Ze ced his hand over his: "Wait a moment." Bao Jingyan raised his eyebrows. Gu Ze started softly: "I have a favor to ask of you! Ruanruan is not a child of the Gu Family, but let her be one. Let her be Gu Yunxi!" Bao Jingyanughed, "What do you mean let her be a child of the Gu Family? Gu Ze, I really dont follow. If she is not a child of the Gu Family, how can we pretend she is?" Gu Ze, usually a dominant character, now spoke with unusual gentleness: "Youve seen how my mother is. She likes Ruanruan, lets just take it as a constion." He continued: "You being with Ruanruan probably isnt easy. Once Ruanruan bes the daughter of the Gu Family, everything will be different. The Gu Family might even be a support for you." "Thats quite tempting," Bao Jingyan toyed with the document, retorting, "But have you ever considered, what if the real Gu Yunxi appears? What then for Ruanruan? Shed be stuck with the stigma of an impostor." Gu Ze was taken aback. He hesitated. He truly hadnt considered that possibility. Bao Jingyan watched him calmly. After a while, seeing Gu Zes hesitation, he said: "Lets look at the results first." Gu Ze sighed lightly: "Theres nothing worth seeing. Its impossible!" Bao Jingyan smiled and remained silent. Gu Ze, suspicious, stared at him and then swiftly grabbed the paper bag from his hand, tore it open, and rapidly scanned the densely packed letters, stopping at the final conclusion. Chapter 163: Su Ruanruan is Indeed the Blood Relative of the Gu Family 2

Chapter 163: Chapter 163: Su Ruanruan is Indeed the Blood Rtive of the Gu Family 2

In just one second, all the color drained from Gu Zes face. His lips trembled, and he raised his eyes to stare intently at Bao Jingyan. He was experiencing the most intense moment of his life. How could this be! How is it possible? Ruanruan was actually Yunxi! She was actually Yunxi! He clenched the papers in his hand fiercely, his voice hoarse and unrecognizable: "Bao Jingyan, did you guess this earlier?" Bao Jingyan leaned in, pulled the papers over, nced through them, and remained unfazed: "Not surprised." "Why?" "Dont you think Ruanruan resembles Aunt Gu?" Bao Jingyan retorted. Gu Ze abruptly stood up, and just as he was about to head outside, he snatched the paternity report from Bao Jingyans hand. He needs to get back immediately and tell his parents the good news. The car raced back to the Gu Family mansion in no time. The mansion was silent except for the maids cleaning, who saw Gu Ze and said: "Young Master is back." Gu Ze, however, quickly headed upstairs without pausing for a moment. Upon reaching the master bedroom door, he hesitated, fearing his mother might be overstimted. He quietly folded the documents and tucked them into his jacket pocket, then pushed open the door. Inside the bedroom, Mr. Gu wasforting Mrs. Gu, and upon seeing his son return, Gu Yuanpei breathed a sigh of relief: "Youre back?" He gave a subtle sign with his eyes, inquiring how the discussion with Bao Jingyan went. Gu Ze took a deep breath and said softly: "Dad, I have something to tell you." Gu Yuanpei immediately soothed his wife before stepping out. Mrs. Guined: "What are you and your father keeping from me again?" Gu Yuanpei pretended to be displeased: "What could it be? Its definitely your son causing trouble outside, incurring debts, and now he needs his old man to resolve it." Gu Ze touched his nose, epting the me. Outside, Gu Yuanpei asked anxiously: "What about it, didnt Bao Jingyan agree?" He sounded slightly upset: "By finalizing this, the Su Family would also have a strong backing, wouldnt they? Ever since Su Peiming passed away, that declining household has been nothing; the glory theyre clinging to is still the reputation earned from Su Peimings days." "Not that, Dad." Gu Zes voice was coarse: "We were wrong." Gu Yuanpei waved his hand dismissively, "Of course, I know we were wrong, thats why we needed Bao Jingyans help, to turn the false into truth." Gu Ze took the paternity document from his jacket pocket and ced it gently into his fathers hands. Gu Yuanpei took it, nced over it, and while reassuring him said: "Its to be expected, Gu Ze, you dont have to..." Before he could finish his sentence, his breathing became rapid! His face turned purple, his hands trembling. He looked up at his son, fingers shaking fiercely, "Gu Ze, is this true?" Gu Ze nodded, visibly moved. Gu Yuanpei scrutinized and greedily scanned those few words countless times before finally dropping his hand and said nkly: "Its Yunxi, she really is Yunxi! Gu Ze, Ruanruan is your biological sister." "I know." Gu Zes eyes brimmed with moisture, his expression unusually tender. Chapter 164: Su Ruanruan, is Indeed the Blood Relative of the Gu Family 3

Chapter 164: Chapter 164: Su Ruanruan, is Indeed the Blood Rtive of the Gu Family 3

Gu Yuanpei was so excited that he didnt know what to do, "Immediately tell your mother." Before Gu Ze could voice his concerns, the sound of something shattering came from the bedroom door. It turned out that Mrs. Gu had wanted to have some tea and came out just in time to hear these words. Her eyes fixed on her son, she muttered, "Gu Ze, can you say that again?" Gu Yuanpei put the paper in front of her and said affectionately, "Lin Sheng, our little Yunxi is back." "I dont believe it!" Mrs. Gus expression was cold, even stern: "Gu Yuanpei, read it to me." Just as Gu Ze was about to say something, Gu Yuanpei gestured to stop him, and then read the DNA test report word for word. After reading, he said tenderly, "Take a look for yourself, Gu Ze and I havent lied to you, have we? Ruanruan really is our daughter, Yunxi." Mrs. Gus tears flowed freely, "My Yunxi!" She grabbed her husbands hand anxiously, "We need to go to the Bao Family immediately to bring Yunxi back, the child has suffered too much." Gu Yuanpei nodded, "Indeed, we should bring the child back and take good care of her. She looks too thin and pale." Mrs. Gus mood stabilized a bit, and she scolded, "But our Yunxi was fair-skinned from birth." "Thats true." Gu Yuanpei pped his hands and hurried downstairs. Mrs. Gu called out to him from upstairs but he didnt hear her. Gu Yuanpei briskly ordered the housekeeper downstairs, "Immediately remodel a nursery for the young miss to stay in, and also arrange transportation, make it grand." The housekeeper was a bit confused and asked, "Is the young master getting married?" Gu Yuanpei said, "Its Yunxi! Its Ruanruan." The housekeeperughed, "Miss Ruanruan is already an adult, she cant fit in a crib." Gu Yuanpei rubbed his hands together, embarrassedlyughing, "I actually forgot! Our little Yunxi has grown up." He waved his hand grandly, "Lets hold off on this matter, wait for her mother to decide! You just get the car ready, my wife and I will be going out shortly." The housekeeper, happy for him, immediately went to prepare the car. Mrs. Gu was also busy changing clothes and doing her makeup, eager to bring Su Ruanruan home. Just as the family was about to leave, a servant came to report, "The eldest young master of the Bao Family hase." Gu Yuanpei frowned, "Bao Jingyan?" Why has hee over? ... Zhongjiang Academy of Fine Arts. Su Ruanruan was in the office talking to Su Ruan, feeling guilty about him being injured by Bao Jingyan. She had purposely bought Su Ruans favorite snacks to apologize, and Su Ruan touched her head affectionately despite feeling a bit upset, "Is it toote to make amends to your second brother now?" Su Ruanruan bit her soft lip, "What can I do for you to forgive me, second brother?" Su Ruan just patted her head, saying nothing. Su Ruanruan was eagerly looking at him when amotion arose at the door. "Come out and look, there are drones." Suddenly, all the professors in the office rushed out to see what the excitement was about, and Su Ruan also got up with a smile, "Lets go have a look too." Su Ruanruan followed him out. In the hallway, a dense crowd of people stood. Across at the yground below, numerous students were also thereughing and chatting. Su Ruanruan frowned, wondering what had happened. Just thinking this, thousands of drones buzzed into the sky above Zhongjiang Academy of Fine Arts, whirled around in the air before slowly forming a set of words. Su Ruanruan, marry me! Everyone was stunned. Su Ruanruan, was it the Su Ruanruan from their Zhongjiang Academy of Fine Arts? Chapter 165: Just Chatting under the Quilt with Them

Chapter 165: Chapter 165: Just Chatting under the Quilt with Them

The entire schools faculty and students boiled with excitement, all turning their gazes toward Su Ruanruan. Su Ruan protected her, lowering his head to ask softly, "Do you know him?" Knowing the Bao brothers as he did, they wouldnt do something this mboyant. Su Ruanruan shook her head; she didnt know either. At this moment, more than a dozen RVs entered the school gates one after another. All of them were Rolls-Royces. Now Su Ruanruan knew who it was. Mu Qun, Mu Jiu. She bit her lower lip, murmuring, "Why hasnt he given up yet?" Su Ruan immediately asked, "You know him?" Su Ruanruan nodded, then slowly descended the stairs. People all around were watching her, her face burning with embarrassment. It was quite embarrassing, but she had to deal with it. When she reached downstairs, Mu Jius car just happened to pass by, and upon seeing Su Ruanruaning, he immediately instructed the driver to stop. There stood Su Ruanruan, gracefully majestic. Mu Qun got out of the car, still dressed in all ck, looking very attractive. He walked up to her with a touch of tenderness and asked, "Are you in ss?" "May I ask if Mr. Mu is here for me?" Su Ruanruan asked quietly. Mu Qun smiled, gesturing grandly to have the gifts he prepared for Su Ruanruan moved from the trunk. Designer clothes and jewelry piled up like a small mountain. The whole Zhongjiang Academy of Fine Arts fell silent. Everyone was stunned. So, this is what they call "wealthy and domineering." Bao Jingyuan, who had been dragged along, was nearly grinding her teeth to bits! This vixen Su Ruanruan, once again hooking a man to give her things, she looked at those items knowing none were less than ten million! Was Su Ruanruan a sly fox? Mu Jiu, triumphant, asked, "Ruanruan, do you have time to have a meal with me now? It was rushedst time, and that girl you were with didnt understand manners either!" Su Ruanruan walked over and picked up a box to open it. It was a stunning diamond ne. Mu Qun was very willing to spend money; this ne was almost two million. Seeing Su Ruanruan liked it, he pleased her by saying, "As long as you like it, I can buy however much." But Su Ruanruan put the box down, smiling at Mu Qun, "Mr. Mu, my requirements for a partner arent high, just a lifelongmitted pair. With Mr. Mu having countless confidantes, why bothering after me?" Leaning on the car door, Mu Qun smiledzily and feigned ignorance, "They are just for chatting and relieving boredom! Nothing serious... If it bothers you, Ill send them all away tomorrow." Su Ruanruan countered, "Since they all have a deep rtionship with you, Mr. Mu should respect them even more." Mu Qun thought: Damn, this girls adherence to principles is really old-fashioned, but he liked her pure and unstained nature. He thought that maybe her im of sleeping with Bao Jingyan was a lie to him, considering she was still young. So, Mu Jiu became even more persistent, "Where have I disrespected them? But... whatever Ruanruan says, I will listen." People around almost spat blood and copsed. Mu Jiu, a notorious figure in Jiangcheng, famed for his ruthlessness, was now acting so obediently towards a young girl. Unaware of his fearsome reputation, Su Ruanruan just thought of him as a big rascal. Ignoring his ulterior motives, she straightforwardly said, "Take these things back, I wont like you, dont waste your time on me anymore." After saying this, she walked toward the academic building. Mu Qun grabbed her. But then someone pulled her into their embrace. Su Ruanruan looked up and called out softly, "Second Brother." Chapter 166: Mu Jiu is Sick with Longing

Chapter 166: Chapter 166: Mu Jiu is Sick with Longing

Su Ruan felt pain in his chest as her little head pressed against it, but he stillforted her with a smile before confronting Mu Qun. Seeing a man embracing Su Ruanruan, Mu Qun was about to get angry, but when he realized it was the second son of the Su Family, his frown turned to a smile: "It turns out to be the Second Brother! Family is family." Su Ruan protected Ruanruan behind him and said to Mu Qun: "Ruanruan is still young, I ask Mr. Mu Jiu to show some leniency." Mu Qun wasnt pleased, "What do you mean by showing leniency? I really dont like the sound of that!" He looked at Su Ruanruan standing behind Su Ruan. Indeed, she looked delicate and cute, which somehow quelled his anger. Not only that, but he put on a smiling face: "Ill keep the stuff, but please, Second Brother, go back and tell the old master of the Su Family that I, Mu Jiu, like Ruanruan and want to marry her." Su Ruan wanted to say something, but Mu Qun had his men move everything into his office. There was no refusal allowed. Done with that, he strutted away. The principal of Meiruan was furious: "This is just bullying! What era is this that such coercion is still possible?" Su Ruan just stood aside smoking. The plump principal finished venting and looked eagerly at him: "This matter has to be settled by your Su Family, our school cant withstand this pressure." Su Ruan: ... He walked out the door. Su Ruanruan was waiting in the hallway for him. Su Ruan walked over and touched her little head: "Dont be scared, you have Big Brother here." Su Ruanruan shook her head: "Big Brother, dont get involved in this." Even though she was young and naive, she could see that this Mr. Mu Jiu had a significant standing in Jiang City, someone even Bao Mingyuan would be wary of. Su Ruan was not reassured, but she added, "He may be overbearing, but he doesnt seem like someone who would actually do anything." Su Ruan sighed. After a moment, he remembered something and said: "Father mentioned he wants you toe home for dinner." He hesitated before adding: "Qionglins mood hasnt been great; shes been heartbroken these past few days." Su Ruanruan offered a faint smile: "So does Big Brother want me to go back or not?" "Lets talk about itter." In the end, Su Ruans heart was with Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan felt moved, but also somewhat guilty. The things she had to do would hurt Big Brothers loved ones, and yet her Big Brother was always so good to her. * Back at the vi, Mu Jiu couldnt help but feel something was off. The way that little miss Su Ruanruan looked at him was not right. It was clearly the look one would give to a disreputable yboy! This wont do! He couldnt let her look at him that way! Zhou Susu came downstairs wearing a pinkish-red long dress, with makeup on and clutching a small purse. She had made ns with her girlfriends to y cards and was about to leave. Seeing her coquettish appearance, Mu Jiu, already in a bad mood, snapped at her: "Who are you getting dolled up for like that?" Zhou Susu felt wronged. She turned to Mu Quns side and cooed, "Youre not home anyway, and my girlfriends asked me to y cards, so I went! I have to look presentable when I go out; I cant let my friends joke that I followed the wrong man and that you wont even buy me a box of rouge, right?" Mu Qun eyed her. His gaze fell on her seductive rouged lips. Indeed, they were beguilingly beautiful. Yet, he felt contempt and said gruffly: "Remember to wipe it off when you get back." Zhou Susu left, swaying her curvaceous hips... When she returned, it was already ten at night. Mu Qun had taken a bath, was leaning against the headboard and smoking, deep in thought. Zhou Susu snorted coldly: Just by looking, one could tell he had lovesickness! She approached him, swaying her waist, and kissed him, trying to win favor: "I had good luck today, guess how much I won, Mr. Mu Jiu?" Chapter 167: Acknowledging Relatives 1

Chapter 167: Chapter 167: Acknowledging Rtives 1

Mu Qun was annoyed at being interrupted by her, but it was not convenient to throw a tantrum, so he just said, "It reeks of smoke!" Zhou Susu lifted her arm to sniff herself: "Where does it smell? None of the maids here smoke." To please him, she had taken a bath and put on his favorite pure white bathrobe. Master Mu Jiu had said that this made her look especially pure and beautiful. But as soon as she approached him, Mu Qun turned off the light: "Lets sleep." Zhou Susu was so frustrated that she beat the bed twice. So, he was even more unapproachable than she was. She knew he had gone to see that Su Ruanruan again. While she fawned over him every day and he turned a blind eye, Su Ruanruan didnt even give him the time of day, yet he shamelessly pursued her! Zhou Susu was a young woman with desires too. She admitted that she was with Mu Qun mainly for his money, but Mu Jiu was young, strong, and charming, especially when it came to the affairs of the bedroom, which she found very captivating. She liked him. Once a woman starts liking a man, she wants to possess him. ... Early the next morning, Mu Qun got up and went out to practice boxing twice. When he came back, Zhou Susu was still fast asleep. Without so much as a nce at her, he changed his clothes and left the house. Once he was gone, Zhou Susu opened her eyes, furious... Master Mu Jiu was acting like he had lost his soul. * In the evening, Bao Jingyan drove to pick up Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan got into the car, somewhat surprised, "Why did you get off work so early today?" Bao Jingyan held the steering wheel and focused on driving, saying, "I received a call from Uncle Gu, saying that Aunt Gu misses you and wanted me to bring you to have dinner." Su Ruanruan was skeptical, "Why would Aunt Gu call you when she misses me?" He rubbed his chin with his slender fingers, smiling, "Probably because she feels its all the same if she tells me!" Su Ruanruan blushed. Half an hourter, the car entered the Gu Mansion and came to a stop. Seeing the brightly lit hall and the crowd inside, Su Ruanruan looked sideways and asked, "Is it just a simple dinner?" "Its Uncle Gus birthday." Bao Jingyan pinched her cheek, "Invited a few rtives." Su Ruanruan bit her lip, "I didnt buy a gift." "I did." Bao Jingyan took out an exquisite box from the trunk and held it in his hand. Su Ruanruan didnt suspect a thing. Upon entering the Gu Mansion, she nced at Bao Jingyan. Just a few rtives? There were at least thirty-four people, and it was clear that they all had high statuses. As for her usation, Bao Jingyan seemed not to have seen it and handed the gift box to Gu Yuanpei, wishing him a happy birthday. Gu Yuanpei said politely, "Its enough that you came, no need for gifts." Bao Jingyan smiled, "It was Ruanruans choice." Gu Yuanpei immediately treasured the gift, "Oh, Ruanruan chose this? Then Ill have a good look at itter." He was about to talk to Su Ruanruan, but she had already been pulled to the sofa by Mrs. Gu, who was whispering affectionately while holding her delicate hand. The women of the Gu Family were all around, one by one staring at Su Ruanruan. "Shes really beautiful." "So fair and delicate." "Lin Sheng, she does look a bit like you did back in the day." ... Su Ruanruan felt quite embarrassed. At that moment, a distinguished-looking olderdy took out a green bracelet and slipped it onto Su Ruanruans slender wrist, her voice soft, "Its the first time Im meeting you, consider this a meeting gift." Once she took the lead, the women around magically produced gifts as well, one after another adorning Su Ruanruan with them. After a while, Su Ruanruan was draped with gifts. There were three diamond nes, seven or eight bracelets, and even a big sapphire ring. She felt uneasy, looking to Mrs. Gu for help. But Mrs. Gu was nonchnt, "They like you, keep them." Chapter 168: Acknowledging Relatives 2

Chapter 168: Chapter 168: Acknowledging Rtives 2

She held Su Ruanruans hand and couldnt get enough of looking at her, tears welling in her eyes. She wanted to acknowledge her daughter, but Jingyan said to wait as it wasnt a good time yet. He said, Ruanruan had important things to do. When he finished, the Gu Family fell into a long silence. She had always known that Ruanruan had a hard life, but she never expected it to be that hard! She didnt know how Ruanruan became Su Peimings daughter, but thought that Su Peiming treated her well and raised her well, unlike those beasts in the Su Family! Mrs. Gu forcefully suppressed her maternal instincts and tearfully epted being called aunt. However, not publicly acknowledging each other didnt affect the Gu and Lin families knowing her real identity. Now, all the close rtives hade over, and her mother was overjoyed. Mrs. Gu took Su Ruanruans hand and ced it in her own mothers, whispering, "This is your grandma. Ruanruan, call her grandma." Su Ruanruan thought Mrs. Gu treated her like her own daughter without overthinking it. She softly called out. Mrs. Gus mother immediately burst into tears of joy, unable to contain her emotions. Her daughters gently persuaded her at the side: "Lin Sheng has found a person dear to his heart, you should be happy, and she has called you grandma too." Old Mrs. Lin nodded while saying, "Yes, yes, its a happy asion." She wiped her tears and pulled Su Ruanruan closer, putting on her reading sses to look at her carefully, her hand tenderly touching Su Ruanruans delicate little hand. Su Ruanruan felt embarrassed and nced towards Bao Jingyan. He had brought her here, but he hadnt mentioned such arrangements. Bao Jingyan was chatting with the men from the Gu and Lin families, but he also kept an eye on her, feeling her gaze when she looked over. Bao Jingyan gave her a reassuring smile. Somehow, she immediately felt calmer. Old Mrs. Lin looked at her and then gently asked, "Is it settled?" Su Ruanruans face felt hot. Old Mrs. Lin gave a light cough, "Youre still young, theres no rush." Mrs. Gu said hurriedly, "If you say so, Jingyan might not bring Ruanruan here anymore." The other nobledies also joked around. Surrounded by such a group of loving women, Su Ruanruan felt more at ease. Today was a big day for the Gu Family, though it was an unspoken agreement among the people next to Su Ruanruan. The butler prepared a huge round table in the living room, seating everyone around it, and delicacies fromnd and sea were served; Gu Yuanpei brought out the best wine from home, filling up the sses of both men and women. Old Mrs. Lin also asked for a ss. Gu Yuanpei, with a cigarette in his mouth while pouring wine, looked years younger. Old Mrs. Lin said, "Yuanpei has handled this well, today is the day to sit like this, its when family reunites." Mrs. Sus eyes were filled with tears. She watched Su Ruanruan, savoring the word reunion. Indeed, her daughter Yunxi had been found, and from now on she would double her affection towards her, providing everything she desired. Mrs. Gu was happy, even after her recent illness, she drank two small cups. Gu Yuanpei, with a face flushed with joy, persuaded her from behind, "I know youre happy! Drink less, we have many days ahead." Mrs. Gus eyes shimmered with tears, nodding her agreement. Yet Gu Yuanpei himself drank quite a bit, especially wanting to drink with Bao Jingyan. Bao Jingyan, usually quite restrained, was also willing to join in, He took off his jacket, draping it over the chair back, rolled up his shirt sleeves to his elbows, a cigarette in one hand and the other on the chair back behind Su Ruanruan, looking quitefortable. He and Gu Yuanpei had a few drinks, and Gu Ze came by again. Chapter 169: Recognizing Relatives 3

Chapter 169: Chapter 169: Recognizing Rtives 3

He and Gu Yuanpei had a few drinks, and then Gu Ze came over again. He insisted onpeting in drinking with him. Su Ruanruan tugged at Bao Jingyans sleeve. Bao Jingyan smiled reassuringly, casually taking the ss in front of Su Ruanruan and pouring clear liquor into it. Gu Ze filled his own ss to the brim as well. The two men faced each other and downed a ss. It was eerily quiet around them, and Mrs. Gu was displeased, "Gu Ze, dont make things difficult for Jingyan; he drove here." After finishing a ss, Gu Ze, holding the bottom of his cup, then said, "Mom, do you know why Im having this drink with him?" Mrs. Gu was helpless. Ruanruan was only 18, and indeed, it was somewhat hard to ept that Bao Jingyan monopolized her, but looking through Jiang City, there wasnt a second Bao Jingyan to be found. With things as they were, what could be done? After Gu Ze finished speaking, he patted Bao Jingyan on the shoulder: "Got guts, want to take it outside?" Su Ruanruan felt something was off; she tried to stand up. Bao Jingyan extended his hand gently pressing on her shoulder, his voice was ever so gentle, even with a hint of coddling a child: "Ill step out for a moment." It was Mrs. Gu who called out, "Gu Ze." Gu Ze had drunk a bit too much, hisplexion frosty: "Mom, are you saying he shouldnt step out for a moment?" Mrs. Gu wanted to stop them, but Gu Yuanpei stopped her: "Let them go! Its not certain who will be at a disadvantage." His own son was nearly drunk to the floor; not being beaten up by Bao Jingyan until he was spitting out teeth was already lucky. His guess wasnt wrong; the two men, nearly sixty whenbined, returned after ten minutes, with colors on their faces and clothes no longer as clean and tidy as before. Su Ruanruan felt uneasy. But the rtives and friends of the Gu and Lin families acted as if nothing happened, warmly inviting "Jingyan,e and eat." Su Ruanruan was confused. It wasnt until the merriment went on till midnight that Bao Jingyan took her away. Mrs. Gu was naturally reluctant to let go, and Mr. Gu, draping an arm over her shoulder, gently said: "There is plenty of time ahead." Only then did Mrs. Gu let go. Upon getting into the car, Su Ruanruan felt uneasy: "Its sote." Bao Jingyan pulled her close to him, with his eyes slightly closed, he caressed her delicate face, and murmured hoarsely: "Aunt Gu had already called earlier, saying you would stay overnight at the Gus." Su Ruanruan bit her tender lip, asking him: "Why did you and Gu Ze fight?" "Why do you think?" Bao Jingyan lightlyughed as he counterquestioned. Su Ruanruan was livid, punching him. Bao Jingyan let out a muffled grunt. She suddenly grew nervous: "Are you injured too?" She wanted to reach out, but he grabbed her hand, his voice huskily: "Well check when we get back!" He added: "Such a girly girl, touching and wanting to undo my clothes, arent you ashamed?" The driver from the Gu Family in the front started to chuckle. Su Ruanruan was even more irritated, turning her head away, nning to ignore him. Bao Jingyan held her hand, rubbing it in his palm,ughing softly: "Stop it, let me rest for a while." Su Ruanruan had no choice but to quiet down. Inside the dimly lit car, he smelled faintly of alcohol and his body temperature was high; after a while, Su Ruanruan grew restless, but he woke up and instead pulled her into his embrace. Su Ruanruan had never been this close to him in front of others, she stiffened awkwardly. He lowered his head to kiss her, whispering softly, "Why dont you ever listen?" Su Ruanruan intended to retort, but in his arms, she felt as if she would melt, utterly beguiled, her small hands clinging onto his shoulders, calling out his name like a kitten: "Bao Jingyan." Bao Jingyan, with heated passion, kissed her gently, his voice gravelly. "No, youre still too young." Chapter 170: Good Boy, Help Me Treat the Wound

Chapter 170: Chapter 170: Good Boy, Help Me Treat the Wound

Su Ruanruans face was flushed. He made it seem as if she was yearning for... that sort of thing. Regardless, he was drunk and covered in injuries; she had to take care of him. After getting out of the car, she supported him into the vi in a stumbling manner, scaring the housekeeper: "What happened to the sir?" Su Ruanruan was too embarrassed to admit that it had been a fight with Gu Ze, so she simply said that he had bumped into something. "Ill take care of his wounds," she said hastily. The housekeeper was relieved, "With Miss Su here, there is nothing to worry about." Su Ruanruan helped Bao Jingyan upstairs, and as soon as they entered the bedroom, he pinned her unaffectedly behind the door, his actions unrestrained as she desperately shook her head trying to dodge. "Bao Jingyan... your... wound." "Its just a scratch," he said emotionally, kissing her fervently. Su Ruanruan refused, "You said you wouldnt touch me." He held her hands down: "Im already like this, and you still wont let me touch you?" She started crying, biting her lip: "Was everything you said in the car nonsense?" Bao Jingyan touched the cold tears on her face, sobering up a bit. He turned on the light. In the bright light, her little face emitted a pearl-like softness under the illumination, beautiful and tender. Bao Jingyan gently wiped her tears away, "I didnt really do anything, why are you crying again?" "Youve been drinking, who knows if you would really..." She couldnt finish her sentence. Bao Jingyan chuckled lowly. "You dare toe home with me after Ive been drinking? You dare to share a bed with me?" He teased and bullied her half jokingly, leaving Su Ruanruan feeling both ashamed and angry. She wanted to leave again. Bao Jingyan grabbed her, but this time spoke seriously: "Be good! Help me treat my wounds." Su Ruanruan huffed, "You deserve it." Bao Jingyan justughed and let her go. He sat on the couch to smoke, Su Ruanruan came over with a medical kit, snatched the cigarette from his hand: "At your age, still always getting into fights." "Are you upset?" He looked at her attentively. Su Ruanruan hummed in agreement. After a while, she finally said, "I dont like people fighting." His temper was too violent; the three members of the Su Family had been sent to the hospital because of him, and now Gu Ze was added to the list. What she couldnt understand was, after such an intense fight, how could the Gu Family still think highly of him? As if he sensed what was on her mind, Bao Jingyan tugged at her hair, "Thats for your sake." Su Ruanruan disinfected the corner of his mouth, whispering, "I dont have that much influence." Bao Jingyans smile lingered with deep meanings. Angered by him, Su Ruanruan was reluctant to engage further, but she still had to tend to his wounds, so she suppressed her fury. "Open your shirt, lets see where else youre hurt." No sooner had she said this, Bao Jingyanpletely removed his shirt, his hand on his belt, asking her, "Should I keep undressing?" Su Ruanruan was infuriated again. He was always so shameless! She said nothing, looking at the bruises and the swollen red on his shoulders and back, and of course, the well-defined muscles on his chest. Bao Jingyan was incredibly handsome and attractive, but this was the first time Su Ruanruan had truly looked at his body. Su Ruanruan applied ointment to him, her fingertips turning pink. Rubbed over his skin, it ignited a yearning in Bao Jingyan. He lowered his head to look at the young girl before him, submissive and obedient with brows cast down, indescribablypliant. He spoke in a hoarse voice, "You feel sorry for me, dont you?" "Why so much talk?" Su Ruanruan was stubborn, refusing to admit it. Bao Jingyan just chuckled, then reached out to light another cigarette. Su Ruanruan wouldnt allow it, snatching the cigarette tip from his hand, Bao Jingyanughed helplessly: "This isnt allowed, that isnt allowed, Ruanruan, arent you already controlling me too much...without even being my wife yet?" Thest few words were said in an even huskier tone. Unspeakably suggestive. Chapter 171: Ruanruan Dislikes My Polygamy

Chapter 171: Chapter 171: Ruanruan Dislikes My Polygamy

Su Ruanruans face blushed, yet she insisted on her own opinion: "Anyway, youre not allowed to smoke." He spoke in a hoarse voice, "Okay." With his cooperation, Su Ruanruan couldnt help but look up at him. Under the light, her eyes sparkled, soft andpliant. Bao Jingyan cupped her head, pulled her into his arms, and gently kissed her neck. His voice was raspy like it held hot sand, "Ruanruan, do you like me?" "I dont like you," she said, heart as hard as stone. Bao Jingyan firstughed, then pressed her close in his embrace and kissed her... regardless of how Su Ruanruan struggled, he eventually had his way. Here, the passion was fiery, but inside a jeep outside the vi, it was frozen to the core. Mu Qun had followed Bao Jingyans car here and saw Su Ruanruan enter with him. Once she went in, she didnte back out. Was she going to stay here overnight? Thinking about his dream girl being pressed down by Bao Jingyan in this way and that, Mu Jiu was furious. Damn it, whats so good about Bao Jingyan? A pretty-boy face and a vile, venomous character! What did Su Ruanruan like about him? Mu Jiu, angry at heart, returned home displeased. Thinking of the gifts he sent to the school being returned by her, he felt even worse. He treated her like a treasure, yet she didnt care about him at all. Their encounter years ago was a beautiful memory for him, but likely she had long forgotten. Mu Jiu was irked, and it just so happened that Zhou Susu had gone out today to y cards with her friends and came back having lost money. She saw Mu Jiu drinking and sulking. Lately, shed seen his listless mood often enough to disregard it. Zhou Susu walked upstairs, taking pleasure in his misfortune, "Mu Jiu, have you not inquired about the little fairys background? Shees from a family of doctors, not like us rough folks! The money and jewels you eagerly presented are worthless to her." Mu Jiu, already in a bad mood, found her mockery intolerable. Besides, she was maintained by his money. He lost his temper and it got heavy-handed. He threw a ss crystal goblet, slicing Zhou Susus face. From the forehead to the brow, a cut three to four centimeters longthough not too deep, it was disfiguring. Zhou Susu clutched her face and screamed. Mu Jiu sobered up a bit, unhappy with her overreaction, "What are you shrieking about in the middle of the night?" Zhou Susu cried loudly, "My face is ruined! Mu Jiu, youre so cruel." Mu Jiu impatiently pulled her hands away and carelessly wiped, "Its just a small cut, stop yelling! Anyone who didnt know better would think I was trying to kill you." "You do want to kill me," Zhou Susu felt her blood shouldnt be spilled in vain, deliberately moving closer to him, "Mu Jiu, you should dote on me." "Damn you," Mu Jiu breathed heavily, "Thinking of men even at a time like this." Zhou Susu, feeling aggrieved, traced her hand over his chest, "You havent cared about me for days, you only have Su Ruanruan, that little witch, in your heart." Mu Jiu gave her a sidelong nce. Her appearance was a mess, yet the bright red blood stirred something in Mu Qun. A man born to live on the edge, his brutal instincts red, and he immediately carried the woman upstairs. Naturally, he was not gentle, and Zhou Susu liked this wildness in him. After their fervent encounter, Mu Jiu leaned against the headboard, smoking with narrowed eyes. Pondering. Zhou Susu, understanding as ever, treated her wound herself and then leaned on his shoulder, asking with empathy, "Feeling thwarted?" "At least youve said something sensible," Mu Qun slowly exhaled a puff of smoke, then as if muttering to himself: "Ruanruan doesnt like my polygamy." Chapter 172: Zhou Susu鈥檚 Poisonous Plot

Chapter 172: Chapter 172: Zhou Susus Poisonous Plot

Zhou Susu was shocked. Then, she felt an immense rage inside her. What a Su Ruanruan! Not nning to ept Master Mu Jiu, yet she still managed to get Mu Jiu to give up the woman by his side? What if Master Mu Jiu really listened to her, then what would happen to her, Zhou Susu? She had heard plenty of bloody tales at the clubhouse and suddenly got a brilliant idea. If she suggested to Master Mu Jiu to get rid of Su Ruanruan, he would tell her to get lost on the spot or might even take her life, but if she blocked Su Ruanruans way through other means, then Su Ruanruan would not be her match. Two birds with one stone. Zhou Susuforted Mu Jiu: "For Master Mu Jius love, of course, I am willing to sacrifice! I am just feeling it is not worth it for Master Mu Jiu..." She stopped mid-sentence. Mu Qun blew a ring of smoke toward her: "If youve got something to say, spit it out." Immediately, Zhou Susu showed an indignant expression: "That Su Ruanruan is only unting because of Bao Jingyans influence. Without Bao Jingyan, how could she afford to show such an attitude to Master Mu Jiu?" No sooner had she finished speaking than Zhou Susus face received a p. "You try to make up stories about me again? Your goddamn mutt isnt even fit to carry Ruanruans shoes." Master Mu Jiu cursed, "Ruanruans talents are art in every strand of hair! What the hell do you know?" Zhou Susu received a p, her face swelling on one side. She did not dare to make a sound. Everything she had was given by Master Mu Jiu, and if Master Mu Jiu was unhappy, he would tell her to get lost. However, after Mu Qun got angry, he thought about it with his eyes half-closed. Right, why hadnt he thought of that! Get rid of that pretty boy Bao Jingyan, and without him as Su Ruanruans support, she would be at his mercy. What couldnt he do? Besides, although he liked her very much, he had never really considered beingpletely chaste for her. Thewful wife is to be worshiped and to manage the family affairs; naturally, he would cherish her very much and not let her suffer the slightest grievance. But, the mistresses outside are for enjoyment. Master Mu Jiu lived a pretty loose life before, hugging and holding any woman he took a liking to. Suddenly being abstinent for Su Ruanruan wasnt realistic. Master Mu Jiu started to think seriously about Zhou Susus poisonous scheme. The Bao Family has a big family and a powerful influence, but its not impossible to do something about them. After a while, he gave a light cough: "You have limited experience, but your point is not bad." * A few days passed. Su Ruanruan returned to the Su Family once. This return was different from before; the Su Family people were asking her to do them a favor, naturally being very polite. Firstly, it was because Su Ruanruans reputation had greatly grown, and Tongsheng Hospital needed her as a figurehead. Secondly, Su Qionglin and Bao Ziqi were over, and the Su Family did not want to give up the chance to use Su Ruanruan to pull some strings again. At this moment, Su Ruanruan was sitting in the Su Familys living room, sipping tea gently. In her ear was the constant prattle of Su Familys matron describing how hard it was for them to raise her, how good her sister Qionglin had been to her, and in essence that Su Ruanruan must help them with this matter. Su Ruanruan listened expressionlessly, and then turned to look at Su Qionglin. Su Qionglin had lost a lot of weight, and herplexion appeared somewhat haggard. Under every gaze, Su Ruanruan spoke: "This matter, only Third Sister herself must fight for." She did not bear any malice toward Su Qionglin, sincerely saying, "Third Sister is sincere to others, surely there will be rewards." Seeing her not yielding, the Su Familys matrons face darkened and her words turned unpleasant: "Ruanruan, your refusal to help, is it because you have your own ulterior motives?" She spoke recklessly: "Dont tell me you dont want to marry Ziqi." Chapter 173 Bao Ziqi Pressing Step by Step

Chapter 173: Chapter 173 Bao Ziqi Pressing Step by Step

Su Qionglin furiously said: "What nonsense are you talking about!" Su Qionglin also cried out: "Mom, even if Ruanruan has such thoughts, its normal. She is now legitimately living in the Bao Family, what could I possibly say if anything happened between her and Ziqi, being alone together?" Su Ruanruan was stunned. Alone together? Something happened? Su Qionglin really knows how to put it! It seems shespletely forgotten how she framed me during the engagement partyst time! Su Ruanruan felt a chill in her heart. Su Qionglins aunt then took the opportunity to say to Su Qionglins grandfather: "Old master, you really have to stand up for Qionglin. Ruanruan really shouldnt stay in the Bao Family any longer, she will ruin Qionglins marriage sooner orter." Su Ruanruan lowered her eyes, hiding the disgust in them. At that moment, Su Qionglins grandfather asked with authority: "Ruanruan, what do you think?" Su Ruanruan took a sip of tea from her teacup, chuckled lightly as she put it down: "I, a daughter who has been driven away, cant devote myselfpletely to sister Qionglin! But dont worry, sister Qionglin, I would marry a chicken or a dog but never Bao Ziqi." She had her own ns, so she got up to leave. However, Su Qionglins aunt wasnt prepared to let her go: "Ruanruan, you should have a conscience! Qionglin helped you find a job and bought you things, have you forgotten all that?" Ruanruanughed: "I havent even gotten a job yet, and those things sister Qionglin gave me were almost broken and unwanted, aunt seems to forget but I dare not." Su Qionglins aunt trembled with fury. Rebellious,pletely rebellious, this girl has turnedpletely rebellious. She pointed at Su Qionglins grandfather to vent for Qionglin, after all, Qionglin is the pride of the Su Family, but Su Qionglins grandfather thought further ahead, knowing this was not the time to offend Su Ruanruan. Just as he was about to smooth things over, Ruanruan had already gotten up: "I wont eat, Ill be going now." Su Qionglins aunt watched her leave desperately, while Su Qionglins grandfather darkly said: "Ruanruan was right about one thing, Qionglin and Ziqis matter need her own effort, how can we expect Ziqi toe chasing after her because of Ruanruan?" Su Qionglin cried bitterly. Su Ruanruan left the Su family and went straight back to the Bao Mansion. The Bao Family had already finished dinner, and the echo of piano music flowed through the empty hall. That was Bao Ziqi ying the piano. This was the first time Ruanruan heard him y the piano, she quietly listened for a while and actually thought it was quite good. She didnt want Bao Ziqi to see her trying to sneak away through the side door, but he had already noticed her. The music abruptly stopped. He turned his head, "Went to the Su family?" Ruanruan remained silent. Bao Ziqi turned to stare at her, his eyes glinting sharply, "The Su family asked for your help, you agreed?" Ruanruan was stunned. Then, she felt extremely disgusted. It must have been Su Qionglin who called Bao Ziqi to frame her. She countered: "Did my third sister say I agreed?" Bao Ziqi didnt respond, evidently tacitly affirming. Ruanruan lowered her eyes, softly saying: "Rest assured, I know my ce, your matters have nothing to do with me, I have no right to interfere." After exining, she walked through the side door into the olddys courtyard. Out of Bao Ziqis sight, she felt a bit more rxed. Bao Ziqi always gave her a sense of oppression, she thought its probably because she lived in the Bao Mansion, she didnt feel this repression with Mu Qun. Inside the hall, Bao Ziqi sat there for a long time. Then, he yed the piano for a long while. Feeling very agitated inside. His father wanted him to pursue Su Ruanruan, but Su Ruanruan and Bao Jingyan were involved. She wouldnt even nce at him! Bao Ziqi couldnt stand it. Furious about Su Qionglins provocations, he took out his cellphone and dialed a number, his voice cold: "Want toe out?" Chapter 174: You Should Be More Concerned About Your Man

Chapter 174: Chapter 174: You Should Be More Concerned About Your Man

Early in the morning, Su Qionglin made a phone call, and Su Ruanruan reached for her phone: "What is it?" Su Qionglin was sobbing loudly: "Su Ruanruan, how could you not even keep an eye on a person?" She cried out loudly: "Bao Ziqi slept with that cheap slut Shen Xianrou." Su Ruanruan was now fully awake, sitting up and feeling amused: "Bao Ziqi isnt my man. Why should I care who he climbs into bed with?" Su Qionglin hung up the phone. Su Ruanruan couldnt sleep anymore and resignedly got up to get dressed. Halfway through dressing, she remembered something and made a call to Bao Jingyan, telling him about the incident. Bao Jingyan wasnt surprised, since Bao Ziqi himself was never someone faithful, and his interest in Su Qionglin had been because of her beauty. So, what was so strange about him getting together with Shen Xianrou now? He said to Su Ruanruan: "Instead of wasting your time caring about other peoples private lives, you might as well care about your own mans health." He lowered his voice and said: "I dont believe youre not curious at all! Ruanruan, that experience is very delightful..." Su Ruanruan couldnt bear to listen to the vulgar talk below and threw her phone. By the time she was ready and went out, the Bao Family was already in turmoil. The Bao Familys reputation waspletely ruined! Shen Xianrou was just a rtive of the Su Family, from a modest background,pletely unworthy of someone like Bao Ziqi. It wasnt just Mrs. Bao who disagreed, but Bao Mingyuan also didnt consent. He instructed Mrs. Bao to handle the matter personally. Mrs. Bao felt disgusted but had her ns, and she said to Bao Mingyuan: "Ruanruan is steady, I think I should take her with me." Bao Mingyuan initially disagreed. Bao Ziqi slept with a rtive of the Su Family - wasnt it too embarrassing to let Ruanruan step in? Mrs. Baos voice softened as she said: "You also fancy Ruanruan. Why not let her gain some experience?" Bao Mingyuan thought of his sons amorous ways and surprisingly agreed. "In that case, take Ruanruan with you, give them some money aspensation. Also, dont let the Su Family cause any disturbance." Mrs. Bao smiled faintly: "I know my limits." Under Bao Mingyuans indication, Su Ruanruan had no choice but to make the trip. She felt utterly disgusted. Bao Ziqi was having fun outside, why should she clean up his mess? Moreover, she was still a young girl; she didnt want to be in that kind of situation. She and Mrs. Bao sat together in the limousine, with Mrs. Bao remainingposed as she pulled on her shawl and said lightly: "Do you know why I wanted to bring you along?" Su Ruanruan sat up straight, feigning ignorance: "Madam, I dont know." Mrs. Bao nced at her, "Because Ziqi slept with that girl from the Shen Family for your sake." Su Ruanruan refused to ept this me. She smiled lightly: "Madam, I dont understand what youre saying." Mrs. Bao spoke with resentment: "Because the Su Family made things difficult for you, Ziqi took it upon himself to ensure you could stay in the Bao Family for a long time, by sleeping with Shen Xianrou and disgusting both the Su Family and himself!" She said proudly: "If you have any conscience, you should treat Ziqi better." Su Ruanruan stood her ground: "Madam, shouldnt liking someone mean being faithful to them? Why instead go and sleep with someone else? This kind of logic I have never heard of." Mrs. Bao was furious. This girl was so unreasonable, impossible to persuade. She sneered: "You must know deep down, its just that you dont want to be with Ziqi." Of course, she also disapproved of such a daughter-inw, but now she could only use her to block Shen Xianrou. Mrs. Bao was dissatisfied with Su Ruanruan. She felt that with her sons character, appearance, and family background, Su Ruanruan should unconditionally admire and like Chapter 175: Su Ruanruan is more formidable than she imagined.

Chapter 175: Chapter 175: Su Ruanruan is more formidable than she imagined.

Later, Mrs. Bao stopped talking altogether, but Su Ruanruan received a WeChat message. It was from Bao Jingyan. [Are you going to catch Bao Ziqi cheating?] Su Ruanruan bit her lip and after careful deliberation, she replied to him. [I apanied Mrs. Bao.] Bao Jingyan didnt message again, and Su Ruanruan spected in the dark: She didnt know whether he was angry or not. But at this moment, she couldnt care less; she couldnt afford to let Mrs. Bao see any ws. About 30 minutester, the car stopped at the entrance of a five-star hotel. Auntie Su from the Su Family rushed over to Mrs. Bao as she got out of the car, weeping and wailing: "Dear inw, you must stand up for our Qionglin!" Where would Mrs. Bao care about Auntie Su? She looked down from a superior position, a cold smile on her lips: "Ziqi and Su Qionglin have already called off their engagement, whats there to stand up for?" She was utterly cold: "I am here to deal with Shen Xianrous matter." Saying so, she turned her head to look at Su Ruanruan beside her, her voice unexpectedly soft: "Ruanruan, dont worry." Su Ruanruan knew in her heart that Mrs. Bao intended to use her as a pawn to stir up the rtionship between her and the Su Family. She managed a slight smile: "After dealing with Sister Xianrous matter, we can then talk about Sister Qionglins issue." Herck of cooperation angered Mrs. Bao, who red at her before heading towards the hotel. But Auntie Su from the Su Family, grateful, grabbed Su Ruanruans arm, pleading desperately: "Ruanruan I beg you, you are now the Bao Familys favorite, whatever you say the Bao Family will surely listen to you, please help Qionglin, she truly loves Ziqi deeply." Su Ruanruan did not kick someone when they were down, merely saying: "Ill go in and take a look." Mrs. Bao was already upfront impatiently calling for her, and Su Ruanruan hurried away. Auntie Su from the Su Family didnt dare to follow; she could only wait outside with an anxious heart. The glory of the entire Su Family was counting on whether Qionglin could captivate Bao Ziqis heart. ... Inside the elevator, Mrs. Bao straightened her clothes, ring at Su Ruanruan: "What, do you still want to help Su Qionglin?" Su Ruanruan smiled faintly, her voice delicate: "I know Mrs. Bao loves her child deeply, but lets not forget Su Yugu has done things for Mrs. Bao! Although it didnt seed, Su Yugu still holds some leverage against Mrs. Bao." Hearing this, Mrs. Bao was furious. She narrowed her eyes, reevaluating the young woman before her. Su Ruanruan was much more formidable than she had anticipated! All this time she hadnt caused any trouble, yet at this moment, she was bargaining with her. Su Ruanruan had seen through her intentions, hadnt she? Yes, Mrs. Bao currently intended to have Bao Ziqi pursue Su Ruanruan, if only to utterly dash the hopes of those two vixens from the Su Family. As for the future, Mrs. Bao would not tolerate someone of Su Ruanruans lowly birth. After scrutinizing for a while, Mrs. Bao sneered: "What do you want to do?" "Do nothing!" Su Ruanruan smiled: "I merely ask that Mrs. Bao abandon the idea of having me as a daughter-inw." Mrs. Bao became even angrier, wondering how Su Ruanruan, with what capabilities or background, dared to say she disdained Ziqi. But Mrs. Bao understood in her heart that she was implicated with Yanning Pharmaceutical, and Su Ruanruan surely had something on her. She swallowed her anger for now and still spoke arrogantly to Su Ruanruan: "You just need to cooperate with me in getting rid of Shen Xianrou." She touched up her hair bun and jut out her chin: "Your Su Familys social status was never enough to match the Bao Familys." She thought this statement would strike at Su Ruanruan, but instead, Su Ruanruan agreed: "Actually, I share the same opinion, Mrs. Bao." This infuriated Mrs. Bao to no end. She simply ignored Su Ruanruan from that point on. Chapter 176: Bao Ziqi is in Love with Su Ruanruan 1

Chapter 176: Chapter 176: Bao Ziqi is in Love with Su Ruanruan 1

At this moment, the elevator reached the 58th floor, opposite was the entrance to a presidential suite. The door was ajar. Su Qionglin was inside, screaming and crying, with Shen Xianrous sobs mixed in between. Bao Ziqi sat rxed on the sofa, flipping through a magazine. The two cousins, however, were kicking up a storm. Su Qionglin fought desperately; she pulled out a tuft of Shen Xianrous hair and scratched her face, though she herself didnt fare much betterShen Xianrou had pushed her down onto the carpet. Su Qionglin continued to curse: "Bao Ziqi, how could you do this to me? Of all people, you had to sleep with my cousin to disgust me!" Bao Ziqi didnt even lift his head: "To me, theyre all the same." Thinking she had received affection the previous night, Shen Xianrou crawled over, clung to his leg and sobbed softly, "Cousin has hurt me! Ziqi, you need to deal with her." Bao Ziqi put down the magazine he was holding, looked down at her with a voice that seemed tender but was actually cold: "How do you want me to handle it?" Shen Xianrou gazed at his handsome face and his remarkable aura after changing into fresh clothes following a bath, her heart fluttering. She really hadnt expected to hook Bao Ziqi so easily. He was smitten with her. Shen Xianrous heart rippled with excitement, and she said softly, "Weve done intimate things. Tomorrow, Ill get my parents toe to Jiangcheng, how does that sound?" Bao Ziqis smile contained a hint of sarcasm. In his eyes, there was a touch of mockery. At this moment, Lady Bao could not hold back anymore and pushed open the door with a sneer: "Miss Shen, just because youve climbed into a hotel bed doesnt mean you can climb into a Bao Family bed." Her sudden appearance stunned everyone present. Su Qionglin was the first to crawl over, pleading for support. Lady Bao had long wanted to rid herself of this daughter-inw, her voice cold: "Qionglin, you and Ziqi have already called off the engagement, and now I need to deal with some family affairs. Its probably not suitable for you to stay here any longer." Su Qionglins lips quivered, her eyes anxiously on Bao Ziqi. Bao Ziqi smirked like he was watching a good showas if he wasnt the leading man in this farce. Su Qionglin was also proud; she bore the pain and got up, limping out. Before she left, however, she nced back at Su Ruanruan. That look was full of resentment and jealousy. Su Ruanruan was indifferent; she just obediently stood next to Lady Bao as an essory. She didnt want to get involved in such offensive matters. After sending Su Qionglin away, Lady Bao focused on dealing with Shen Xianrou. Shen Xianrou didnt dare to meet the noble gaze of Lady Bao, her voice as quiet as a mosquito, "Madam, Ziqi and I are truly in love." "You think a man sleeping with you once means true love?" Lady Bao scoffed. She sat down on the sofa. Su Ruanruan immediately stood behind her. Bao Ziqi gave her a re. He hadnt expected Su Ruanruan to follow, but from her expression, he could tell she had been forced. Therefore, the face of Second Young Master Bao did not look too pleased. Lady Bao had no time to care about her sons feelings; she looked at Shen Xianrous pale face, her voice cool and indifferent: "Miss Shen, name your price." Shen Xianrou didnt want money. Compared to a cheque, she yearned for a long-term meal ticket; she wanted to be the wife of Second Young Master Bao. She hurriedly ran to Bao Ziqis side, knelt down, grabbing onto his leg and pleaded in a low voice: "Ziqi, please speak up." Bao Ziqi gazed down at her, observing. Under that indifferent gaze, Shen Xianrous hand gradually loosened. He didnt love her. He just wanted to sleep with her! Shen Xianrou felt like crying, but she couldnt muster any tears. Still, she refused to give up, feigning heartbreak: "Ziqi, if you like Qionglin, why did you... why did you do it with me?" Chapter 177 Bao Ziqi is in Love with Su Ruanruan 2

Chapter 177: Chapter 177 Bao Ziqi is in Love with Su Ruanruan 2

Mrs. Bao sneered inwardly: Shameless! How could she say such things! She had just suffered Su Ruanruans provocation, and now she harbored malicious intentions. Mrs. Bao smiled disdainfully and gently said to Shen Xianrou, "You are a pitiful child, not knowing where the problem lies in your sadness." Shen Xianrou continued to sob. Mrs. Bao, with malicious intent, said: "Ziqi has long changed his heart, cant you see?" "Mom," Bao Ziqi said sternly. But Mrs. Bao feignedpassion: "Ziqi, your mother knows your feelings. Ruanruan is right here; you can confess to her, and not only will I fulfill your wishes, but Ill also help you." She pushed Su Ruanruan forward. Shen Xianrous face turned pale, her expression one of shock. She couldnt believe that Bao Ziqi had fallen for Su Ruanruan, she refused to believe it! If Bao Ziqi liked Su Ruanruan, for the sake of wealth, Su Ruanruan wouldnt reject him. Bao Ziqi should be seeking her out. With Su Ruanruan already in the Bao Family, why would Bao Ziqi seek her instead? Shen Xianrou had thoughts in her heart, but she kept silent. Mrs. Bao was furious. She had spoken the truth, but this woman was obtuse. Did she think that a man only loves who he sleeps with? Foolish thing! At this point, Su Ruanruan lost her patience. Mrs. Bao had betrayed her; she shouldnt me her for kicking her while shes down. Su Ruanruan gently said to Shen Xianrou: "You can directly ask Bao Ziqi." She knew Bao Ziqis pride well; for such a proud man to admit his feelings for her in front of others was utterly impossible. So she took her chance. Indeed, Shen Xianrou directly questioned him with teary eyes. Bao Ziqi sat on the sofa, ncing sideward at Su Ruanruan. She was delicate and lovely, but full of cunning schemes inside. He could have turned the tables at this moment, but he couldnt swallow his pride. To say he liked her, what would follow, was just pping his own face. Bao Ziqis heart was cold, and he said coldly, "I dont like her." Shen Xianrou sobbed, touched deeply. But then Bao Ziqi pulled out a check, a five million yuan check. It was Shen Xianrous first time. He ced the check in her palm but indifferently said to his mother: "Actually, you didnt need toe here in person, Im not a child anymore." After saying this, he stood up and walked straight towards the door. Without looking back. Shen Xianrou held the check and started crying aloud. The love she thought existed, in Bao Ziqis eyes was just a fling. As Bao Ziqi left, Mrs. Bao naturally had to leave too. She looked at Su Ruanruan, "Do you want to leave together?" Su Ruanruan thought for a moment but decided to leave with Mrs. Bao. Down the stairs, Mrs. Bao expressed her dissatisfaction with Su Ruanruan: "Being so weak now, how will you handle such matters in the future?" Su Ruanruan blinked, pretending to be naive: "Are you talking about me?" She shed a smile, revealing a row of white teeth: "I think my husband wouldnt have the opportunity to cheat, and I wont personally handle these matters." She thought, if one day Bao Jingyan also got trapped with another woman in a hotel, she definitely wouldnt go. If he chose to roll in the sheets with another woman, it meant he had given up on her. Su Ruanruan thought it very clearly. Yet, she frowned again immediately: Why did she think of Bao Jingyan? Why did she imagine him as her future husband? Her heart was distracted, and Mrs. Bao was very displeased. When opening the car door to invite her in, Su Ruanruan declined: "I need to stop by thepany for a while." Mrs. Bao felt a twinge in her heart. Chapter 178 Bao Jingyan Gets Injured

Chapter 178: Chapter 178 Bao Jingyan Gets Injured

She gave Su Ruanruan a deep look. She thought, Su Ruanruan is really capable! Bao Jingyan has taken over thepany, and if Ziqi marries a wife whom Mingyuan greatly adores, then Ziqi will definitely get arger share when the Bao Family divides the inheritance. But, she also felt Su Ruanruans background was not good. She thought about it, then let it go. Su Ruanruan stood and watched Mrs. Baos car leave, intending to hail a taxi to Dijing Group, when a silver sports car sped up from the side. The car stopped beside her, and Su Ruanruan instinctively stepped back. Bao Ziqi jumped out of the car and caught her before she could run away. Su Ruanruan was furious, pounding on the car door: "Bao Ziqi, what are you doing?" "Where are you going?" Bao Ziqi asked while lighting a cigarette, his gaze lowered. He seemed to be in a very bad mood. Su Ruanruan, back against the seat, watched him warily. Bao Ziqi asked again without looking at her. After a long time, she hoarsely said, "To thepany." "To see Bao Jingyan?" Bao Ziqi mocked, but then turned the steering wheel. Su Ruanruan did not want to talk to him; she just wished to arrive safely. Bao Ziqi also fell into a long silence, until at a red light, he stopped and suddenly asked, "Did you sleep with him?" Su Ruanruan felt both ashamed and annoyed. Bao Ziqi asking her like that waspletely disrespectful. She turned her face away. Bao Ziqi didnt ask further, instead he dragged deeply on his cigarette. In fact, what was there to ask? Bao Jingyan frequently entered her bedroom and stayed for hours. To say nothing happened in those hours would simply be a joke. Bao Ziqi felt he might have masochistic tendencies. Inside the car, the silence was awkward. When the light turned green, Bao Ziqi exhaled deeply from his chest and the car zoomed off. Just as they arrived at Dijing Group and he opened the door for Su Ruanruan to get out, his phone rang. The call was from Bao Mingyuan. Bao Ziqi nced at it, then answered the call, "Dad, what is it?" He thought his father was calling to scold him. But Bao Mingyuan spoke anxiously: "Jingyan has been shot, hurry to Minnan Hospital." Bao Ziqi frowned. Shot? Bao Jingyan, always so cautious, had been shot? He didnt believe it! Yet, it was true; Bao Jingyan had been shot in the shoulder and was undergoing surgery at the hospital. Bao Ziqi hung up, turning to look at Su Ruanruan. Her face was pale. He asked her, "Do you want to go?" At that moment, Su Ruanruan didnt know where to put her hands, and her lips trembled because of her palpitations. Her lips moved silently, breathing out a single word. "Go." Bao Ziqi immediately started the car and drove towards the hospital. All the way there, she trembled non-stop. Bao Ziqis heart sank like water, and he mockingly curled his lips, "Dont worry, someone like him wont die from this cmity!" Su Ruanruan was in turmoil, not uttering a word. Bao Ziqiughed coldly again: "Youre not married to him legally; even if he dies, you dont have to be a widow! Dont worry, if Bao Jingyan dies, there are plenty of men in Jiangcheng who would want to marry you." Su Ruanruan turned her head, spoke hoarsely, "Are you always this harsh?" She knew that Bao Jingyan never wished for Bao Ziqi to die. He disliked Bao Ziqi, but he was not vicious. She looked down on Bao Ziqi. Bao Ziqi scoffed, "Are you heartbroken?" He suddenly stopped the car, turned his head, and scoffed coldly, "Whats so good about him? Is it because hes rich, handsome, or is he impressive in that regard?" Right after he spoke, Su Ruanruan pped him across the face. Breathless, she didnt look at him and simply opened the door to get out of the car. Just after taking a few steps, Bao Ziqi followed her out and grabbed her. Chapter 179: In What Capacity Are You Going?

Chapter 179: Chapter 179: In What Capacity Are You Going?

"How will you get there yourself? Arent you afraid that your disgrace with him will be known?" Bao Ziqi said coldly, pulling Su Ruanruan forcefully into the car. He was utterly disheartened. Su Ruanruan only showed emotional fluctuations when facing Bao Jingyan; to her, Bao Ziqi was nothing! He drove fiercely, speeding up to 120. Su Ruanruan remained silent. The car screeched to a halt downstairs at the hospital; she wanted to get out, but he stopped her. "Think carefully, in what capacity are you going to see him!" Bao Ziqis gaze was sharp. "I think his getting shot has something to do with you. How would you stand in the Bao Family if others find out?" He turned his face away fiercely, ufortably saying, "How would you still sneak around at home, secretly being intimate?" After saying these, Bao Ziqi looked down on himself. It was clear that she was flirtatious, yet he still covered for her. Su Ruanruan calmed down, gently smoothing her skirt and followed Bao Ziqi upstairs. At the entrance to the operating room, the Bao family members were waiting. Bao Mingyuan was standing there smoking. Mrs. Baos face was expressionless. The olddy was chanting with a string of Buddhist beads in hand. Su Ruanruan slowly walked over, each step was a struggle. Bao Mingyuan suddenly looked up and saw Su Ruanruaning with Bao Ziqi. He frowned, "Why did youe together?" His gaze fell on Su Ruanruans face, but he was speaking to Bao Ziqi. Bao Ziqi walked over to him and said, "I was giving Ruanruan a ride to thepany." Bao Mingyuan said nothing else. His brows were tightly furrowed, worried about his eldest son. He had four children, but he always valued his eldest, Bao Jingyan, the most because the child was most like him. Intelligent and ambitious, the undeniable heir to Dijing Group. Now, his eldest sony shot in the operating room, and as a father, he was anxious. So, even though he noticed Su Ruanruans unusual actions, he chose to ignore them. The corridor fell silent once more. The silence was terrifying. Mrs. Bao spoke up, "The doctor said it hit only the shoulder, it should be fine." Bao Mingyuan furrowed his eyebrows. The olddy scolded loudly, "If it doesnt hit you, you dont know the pain." Mrs. Bao felt very wronged and looked at her husband. But Bao Mingyuan, with his troubled mind, had no inclination to defend her, so she had to suppress her frustration. Just then, Bao Jingse rushed over, immediately asking, "How is elder brother?" Bao Mingyuan patted her hand, his voice a bit hoarse, "Hes still in surgery." Bao Jingse nodded and then involuntarily looked towards Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan appeared somewhat dazed. This was the first time she had shown such an expression sinceing to the Bao family, giving Bao Jingse mixed feelings. Ruanruan must also like elder brother! She couldnt bear it and said, "Dad and I will stay here, the others should find a ce to rest." Mrs. Bao immediately agreed. The olddy refused. Eventually, Bao Mingyuan said, "Grandma, you should rest. We dont know how long the surgery will take." The olddy then agreed. Su Ruanruan wanted to stay, silently looking at Bao Jingse with a pleading look in her eyes. Bao Jingse was afraid that others would notice and made this arrangement; she was now somewhat distressed. Bao Ziqi, watching Su Ruanruans anxious demeanor, felt like a bucket of ice water was poured over his heart. Did she care about Bao Jingyan so much that she disregarded even her own status in her anxiety? He should have been one to kick her while shes down, even hoping to see them being forcefully separated after being exposed. Yet, seeing her biting her lips in distress, he unexpectedly softened and before he realized, he spoke up: "Ruanruan and I will stay too." Chapter 180: Heartache

Chapter 180: Chapter 180: Heartache

He said this while draping an arm over Ruanruans shoulder. Her body stiffened briefly. Bao Ziqi gave a self-deprecating smile. However, with his assurance, Bao Mingyuan stopped suspecting anything. Seeing his younger son and Ruanruan standing side by side, he felt a wave offort. Jingyan will definitely get better, Ziqi and Ruanruan will be together. The Bao family is fortunate. Thus, Bao Mingyuans voice was very gentle: "Thats good." At the moment, the four of them anxiously waited at the door. Doctors asionally came and went, but there was no news. The surgerysted a full four hours. Four hourster, Bao Jingyan was wheeled out. Bao Mingyuan straightened up instantly and rushed over. Supporting the hospital bed, his hoarse voice barely audible, he asked, "Jingyan, how is it?" Bao Jingyan looked pale after the surgery. He slightly opened his eyes, looking at the several faces above. After a moment, he found the person he wanted to see. She stood carefully to one side, her eyes filled with tears, struggling not to let them fall. Bao Jingyan very much wanted to call her over, to coax her not to cry. But he couldnt do that, and he also didnt have the strength to speak now. In the end, he gave Bao Mingyuan a faint smile. Bao Mingyuan, a veteran in the business world for decades, was rarely so moved. He gripped his eldest sons hand, offeringfort: "Its okay! Its fine." Bao Jingyan smiled silently again. His gaze fell once more on Ruanruans face. She still looked like she wanted to cry. It pained his heart, leading him to shift slightly, which aggravated his wound. Ruanruan immediately felt the pain too, truly a case of shared feelings. All of this did not escape Bao Ziqi. His heart ached even more. After entering the hospital room, Bao Mingyuan stayed for a while but had to leave early forpany matters. The grand olddy and others came in to visit. Ruanruan, worried about arousing suspicion, went to the small kitchen to cut fruit. Thinking of the bandage wrapped around Bao Jingyans shoulder, her heart felt sour, and tears inevitably fell. She couldnt continue cutting with the knife... Bao Ziqi leaned at the door, silently watching her. He watched her cry and be heartbroken for Bao Jingyan, watched her usually indifferent facade shatter. So it turned out she was not heartless, but that she had given her heart to Bao Jingyan. Bao Ziqi couldnt stand it any longer, turned around, and left. Inside the hospital room, the grand olddy refused to leave. Her eldest grandson Bao Jingyan was her life! The olddy decided to take care of him personally until her grandson recovered. Bao Jingse couldnt persuade her otherwise. Ruanruan brought the fruit into the hospital room. Seeing her eyes slightly swollen, Bao Jingse intentionally created an opportunity for his brother and her to be alone. Thus, he said to the olddy, "You havent had lunch, why dont I take you down to eat something? The hospital canteen is too greasy!" The olddy refused to go. Bao Jingse then said: "Olddy, elder brother needs to eat soon too, will you let him eat the hospitals food?" Caring deeply for her eldest grandson, she immediately got up to make arrangements. Finally, only Bao Jingyan and Ruanruan were left in the hospital room. Though weak, he was conscious. He reached out his hand to her, his voice hoarse: "Ruanruan,e here." She slowly moved closer, her eyes redder. Ruanruan sat by the bed, her hand gently caressing his face, her voice trembling: "How did you get shot?" But he asked her, "Have you cried?" His voice was weak, yet carried a tender touch that moved the heart. Ruanruan bit her lip and hummed in acknowledgment. "Come closer," he whispered. Normally she might not have obeyed, but since he was injured, Ruanruan was willing to indulge him. She leaned in gently, cing her small face in his palm. Chapter 181 Bao Ziqi must be very jealous of him!

Chapter 181: Chapter 181 Bao Ziqi must be very jealous of him!

Bao Jingyan tenderly caressed her cold cheeks, a trace of a smile ying at the corners of his mouth. How long had this silly child cried for her face to be so cold? He couldnt bear to see her like this and told her, "Its just a shoulder injury. Itll be healed in half a month." Su Ruanruan looked up, "Do you know who did it?" Bao Jingyan remained silent. But his expression told her that he did know who was responsible. She couldnt get the answer out of him, making her upset yet she could only feel anxious. Bao Jingyan had passed the numbing effect and was in much pain, yet he felt satisfied. His Ruanruan felt sorry for him; she even cried for him! Bao Ziqi must have been so jealous of him just now! He said to her, "Come here, a bit closer." Su Ruanruan thought he had something to say and leaned closer. He asked her to move even closer, so she did. Bao Jingyan slightly lifted his head and kissed her. Su Ruanruan was stunned, then tears welled up in her eyes. Two drops fell onto his face, her heart aching and anger rising, "Youre still like this at a time like this!" Bao Jingyans voice was incredibly tender, "The injury is on the shoulder; it doesnt interfere with this." Su Ruanruan was both embarrassed and angry. But Bao Jingyan closed his eyes, his voice low and gentle, "Ruanruan, go home and sleep tonight... be obedient." Su Ruanruan made a sound of acknowledgment, gently leaning on his neck. Only at times like this could she quietly stay with him for a while. At the door, Bao Ziqi returned after having left. He had forgotten something and came back to retrieve it, but standing at the door, he saw the two embracing each other in the sickroom. That scene was beautiful yet piercing to the eyes. Bao Ziqi sneered and turned to leave. Downstairs, he unexpectedly met Bao Mingyuan. Bao Ziqi stopped him, "Dad, werent you headed to thepany?" Bao Mingyuan angrily said, "Its nothing serious! By the way, hows Jingyan doing?" Bao Ziqi curved his lips, scoffing inwardly. Hes doing great, already whispering sweet nothings. But outwardly, he appeared nonchnt, "He looks fine, should be nothing serious." Bao Mingyuan let out a sigh of relief, "Hes always been in good health! But we still need to investigate this matterwhat kind of person dares toy a hand on the Bao Family." Bao Ziqi took out a cigarette and offered one to Bao Mingyuan, then said, "Maybe you should think about who could actually get to big brother! Hes always on guard." Bao Mingyuans fingers holding the cigarette paused, and he looked up with a deep gaze at his younger son, "Are you suggesting that Jingyan let himself be hurt on purpose?" "Thats for him to answer," Bao Ziqi said with a hint of mockery in his tone. Bao Mingyuan didnt light the cigarette, he silently gazed at his younger son for a long while. He thought that perhaps he had underestimated Jingyan, and at the same time, he had also underestimated Ziqi. They were grown up, their thoughts heavy, even he, their father, couldnt fully grasp them. After a moment, he forced a smile, "You and Ruanruan seem to get along well! But what was the deal with the girl from the Shen Familyst night?" Bao Ziqi dealt with the question casually, and Bao Mingyuan was about to go upstairs. Bao Ziqi hesitated for a moment, then took out his phone and dialed Su Ruanruans number. "Dadsing up soon, you guys figure it out!" He hung up the phone after speaking. He thought that he was still soft-hearted towards Su Ruanruan; otherwise, he wouldnt have made this call. Thats that then, he would no longer meddle in her affairs in the future. On the other end, Su Ruanruan answered the call, dumbfounded. Bao Jingyan held her hand and asked with his eyes closed, "Whats wrong?" Su Ruanruan spoke softly, "Uncle ising up." She was thinking, what should she do... Bao Jingyan smiled silently, "Are you scared?" She hummed in acknowledgment, then added, "Im scared." She still had so many things left undone! Chapter 182: Ruanruan, what are you doing here?

Chapter 182: Chapter 182: Ruanruan, what are you doing here?

She gently drew back her hand, worried he might be displeased, she thought for a moment and still leaned forward to lightly kiss his dry lips. Bao Jingyans body shook, he hadnt expected her to be so bold. This was the first time Ruanruan had taken the initiative to kiss him. Bao Jingyan opened his eyes, his gaze locked onto her tender lips, his throat involuntarily swallowing. Su Ruanruan felt a bit shy, whispering: "Im going to the kitchen." After saying that, she went to the kitchen to fiddle with things. About a minuteter, Bao Mingyuan pushed the door and entered. The hospital room was empty, only Bao Jingyan was there. He frowned: "Wheres the nurse?" Bao Jingyan was in a good mood: "She just left." Bao Mingyuan breathed a sigh of relief: "I thought they were cking off." With no one else around, he began discussing the shooting incident with his son: "Do you know who did it?" Bao Jingyan nced towards the kitchen, then quickly retracted his gaze and told Bao Mingyuan a name. Bao Mingyuan was so shocked he couldnt sit still. "Mu Qun?" Not only him, but Su Ruanruan in the kitchen was also startled. It was Mu Qun. She lost her grip, and a te crashed to the floor. Bao Mingyuan nced at his elder son and immediately walked toward the kitchen. Then, he saw Su Ruanruan. "Ruanruan?" Bao Mingyuan wanted to ask why she was there but thought it would be too abrupt, changing the subject instead: "Hows the olddy?" Su Ruanruan had regained herposure, speaking softly: "Sister Jingse took her out to eat." Bao Mingyuan nodded: "Right, at her age, she should eat well." He left Su Ruanruan and returned to the hospital room to continue discussing matters with his elder son, saying: "Mu Jiu and our family have never had any grievances, why did he target you this time?" He always felt Jingyan was hiding something from him! Bao Jingyan rested one hand behind his head, looking at his father: "I want the port he controls." These words were half-true, half-false. Bao Mingyuan turned pale with shock: "Did you provoke him?" Bao Jingyan neither admitted nor denied. He took the initiative to take the me, to clear Su Ruanruans name, he couldnt let others know that Mu Jiu came after him because of Ruanruan, otherwise, Ruanruan wouldnt be able to stay with the Bao Family. Moreover, since Mu Jiu had picked a fight with him, he couldnt me him for being ruthless. Bao Mingyuan was stunned for a while before he found his voice again: "What are you nning to do?" Bao Jingyans lips curled into a vengeful smile: "Leave it to me! I will make Mu Jiu pay dearly." Bao Mingyuan lost his voice again. His son was even more ruthless than him. He felt both proud and worried. Would Jingyan end up unhappy in marriage? And what kind of woman could enter his heart? Bao Mingyuan, with his thoughts, returned to hispany, and the olddy and Bao Jingse also came back. By four in the afternoon, Bao Jingse called Su Ruanruan aside, whispering: "You go back first, tomorrow Ill persuade the olddy to go back too, then you cane visit again." Su Ruanruan nodded. Bao Jingse looked at her slightly red eyes, feeling a bit of pity. She gentlyforted: "Once youre out of the hospital, it will be better, then Ill talk to the family about you staying at my ce." Such an implication made Su Ruanruan somewhat embarrassed, her face blushing lightly. She was reluctant to leave, and Bao Jingyan was even more so. But he pretended to be indifferent, leaning against the headboard, his tone also t: "Ruanruan is leaving?" The olddy pped his hand: "Still hoping Ruanruan will stay with you through the night?" Bao Jingyan purposefully said: "Why not? Ruanruan is a divine healer, maybe if she stays, Ill recover quicker!" Chapter 183: Sister Jingse Likes You

Chapter 183: Chapter 183: Sister Jingse Likes You

Bao Jingyans words had a teasing tone to them. Su Ruanruan simply couldnt stand to listen anymore. The elderlydy didnt pick up on it; she just felt pity: "This girl looks unwell; Jingse, arrange for a car to take her back." Bao Jingse smiled: "Okay, I will take Ruanruan downstairs." When leaving, Bao Jingyan deliberately said, "Let Ruanruane over tomorrow for me to have a look at her." The elderlydy, feeling pity for her grandson, also said, "Having Ruanruan around is always reassuring." Bao Jingse was at a loss for words. ... She escorted Su Ruanruan downstairs. Below, a car from the Gu Family was parked. Gu Ze got out of the car, dressed impably. He walked over, looked down at Su Ruanruans reddened eyes, and asked in a hoarse voice, "Is everything alright now?" Bao Jingse frowned slightly, not quite understanding why Gu Ze was at the hospital or why he was so concerned about her big brother. She scrutinized Gu Ze and noticed the pain in his eyes. A sting touched Bao Jingses heart. She thought sadly: Could it be that Gu Ze also likes Ruanruan? Bao Jingse had liked Gu Ze for many years. But she didnt dare confess her feelings; what could she say? She was no longer innocent; how could she, with her background, have Gu Ze by her side? Gu Ze reached out to pat Su Ruanruans head gently and said softly, "Mom is waiting for you at home." The words were ambiguous, but neither of the two women present picked up on it. Especially Su Ruanruan, who just thought Mrs. Gu was worried about her. She followed Gu Ze into the car. Su Ruanruan, being a perceptive child, whispered after sitting in the car, "Jingse sister likes you." Gu Ze tapped her little head and said, "Smart aleck! What do you know about liking someone?" Su Ruanruan stared at him intently. After a while, she retorted defiantly, "Of course I know." "Bao Jingyan taught you that?" Gu Ze red at her. Su Ruanruan didnt want to talk to him anymore and turned her head away. Gu Ze didnt argue further and started the car. Gu Mansion. Mrs. Gu was very worried, fearing that Su Ruanruan might be distressed because of Bao Jingyan. Gu Yuanpei consoled her. As they were speaking softly, the sound of a car entering the yard was heard, and Mr. Gu said, "Gu Ze has brought Ruanruan back." Mrs. Gu quickly got up. A momentter, Gu Ze arrived with Su Ruanruan. Mrs. Gu hurried forward and asked in a low voice, "How is Jingyan?" Su Ruanruans eyes were somewhat red, and her throat tightened before she managed to reply, "His shoulder was injured, but its nothing serious." Mrs. Gu was considerably relieved and added, "He needs to be well cared for now." Su Ruanruan nodded. Mrs. Gu patted her hand affectionately and said, "You must be hungry; I had the kitchen prepare your favorite food." Su Ruanruan hummed in response and followed her to the dining room to sit down. The family sat down to dine; Su Ruanruan felt their gazes were too eager, but she was too embarrassed to ask. Gu Yuanpei toned it down a bit, asking seemingly casually, "Any progress on Jingyans matter?" Su Ruanruan didnt hide anything and replied, "Mu Qun did it." The fact that Mu Qun pursued Su Ruanruan was well-known in River City; Gu Yuanpei wasnt surprised by that. What surprised him was the daring of this young, rising star of River City. What sort of family is Bao Family? And what is Bao Jingyans status? It represents the union of the Bao and Sun families. Being protective of his daughter yet not wanting to openly defy his agreement with Bao Jingyan, Gu Yuanpei gently asked, "Do you want Uncle Gu to help?" After speaking, he snorted softly: "Our family mayck many things, but not power; surely Mu Qun wouldnt dare to mess around." Chapter 184: Bao Jingyan is Too Astute

Chapter 184: Chapter 184: Bao Jingyan is Too Astute

Su Ruanruan knew that Bao Jingyan had another n, so she told Gu Yuanpei about it. The three members of the Gu Family listened, dumbfounded. After a while, Gu Yuanpei finally managed to voice out: "Nonsense!" He wanted to say, was Bao Jingyan trying to get himself killed and make his daughter a widow in the process? But since he hadnt acknowledged Ruanruan, how could he say that? Gu Ze silently continued eating. Mrs. Gus face was filled with worry: "Jingyan really is...!" She couldnt help saying, "Hes different from before now! How can this child still be so reckless?" Her daughters happiness! Su Ruanruan actually didnt agree either, but Bao Jingyan was very domineering. She ate quietly, taking small bites. After a while, she spoke softly: "He said he knows what hes doing." Gu Yuanpei immediately burst out swearing. He waved his hand dismissively: "What does he know! Lin Sheng, no, we must bring Ruanruan back." Seeing her husband so agitated, Mrs. Gu disagreed with a look. After a short moment, Mr. Gu finally noticed his own improper attitude. He touched his head and said with rare embarrassment: "Uncle was too anxious! Uncle is also worried about Jingyan." "I know," Su Ruanruan whispered. Gu Yuanpei smiled and gave his wife a meaningful look. Mrs. Gu knew exactly what was going on. ... At night, Mrs. Gu slept with Su Ruanruan. Shey on her side looking at her daughter, her eyes filled with distress and affection. She could never get enough of looking at her! Her daughters slender figure, and her shiny, straight ck hair spread out on the snow-white pillow, breathtakingly beautiful. Mrs. Gu spoke to her in a whisper. "Mu Jiu is quite a character, you really dont have the slightest feelings for him?" "No." Mrs. Gu then lightlyughed, reached out to stroke Su Ruanruans hair, and asked softly: "But you like Jingyan, right?" Su Ruanruan first shook her head, then nodded slightly. "I have things to do! But I know I should like him." He forced her, but he also taught her many things, always protecting her. Mrs. Gu had her answer and said: "Theres no one like Bao Jingyan in Jiang City. I think he likes you very much too." Su Ruanruan blushed. Her heart was in turmoil, and she slowly moved closer to Mrs. Gu. "Lets sleep," Mrs. Gu said softly: "Tomorrow, Ill apany you to see him." Su Ruanruan made a sound of agreement and closed her eyes. But that night, she couldnt sleep at all. Every time she closed her eyes, she could imagine Bao Jingyan lying in the hospital bed. She thought, he really doesnt care about his own life. Su Ruanruan couldnt sleep, so she took her phone and thought about sending a message to Bao Jingyan, but worried it might disturb his rest, she ultimately didnt send it. ... That night, there was someone else who couldnt sleep. It was Mu Jiu. After bathing, Mu Jiu changed into a ck silk robe and sat on the couch, holding a ss of western liquor in his hand. He drank half the ss in one go, then mmed it down. "Useless!" He scolded his subordinates: "Cant even deal with one person properly." His subordinates hung their heads, mumbling their defense: "Boss Mu, that guy from the Bao Family is too cunning, he spotted us the moment we made a move." They tried to take credit: "But at least we managed to wound his shoulder!" They fawned, "Perhaps in Miss Sus eyes, hes just a useless loser, nowhere near as good as you, Boss Mu. You excel both in pen and sword!" The ttery clearly missed its mark; the ss in Mu Jius hand was hurled away in an instant. "Do you think Bao Jingyan is that simple?" Mu Jiu, who had fought his way through life to get to where he was today, had a profound and calcting mind. He thought to himself, Bao Jingyan getting injured on purpose must be part of some scheme! Heh, perhaps it was a deliberate ploy, so he could then openly target him, Mu Jiu! Chapter 185 Staring at a Man Like That Could Lead to Trouble

Chapter 185: Chapter 185 Staring at a Man Like That Could Lead to Trouble

Mu Jiu decided to probe the reality of the situation. He went upstairs. In the bedroom, Zhou Susu was applying nail polish. She believed she had contributed to the situation and coquettishly said as soon as Mu Qun entered: "Is Mu Jiu feeling content now?" Mu Jiu ignored her. He leaned on the sofa by the window, touching his own head. After a moment of silence, he suddenly asked, "What do you think of that pretty boy Bao Jingyan?" Zhou Susu felt somewhat sheepish. What could she think? A man like Bao Jingyan was someone she could only look up to but never reach. She had once seen him briefly at a club. He was with four or five other men, and although they were at a club, his surroundings seemed to be enveloped in brilliant moonlight, unapproachable. Even among a group of distinguished people, he stood out as the center of attention. Zhou Susu dared not show her thoughts, instead seductively leaning closer to Mu Jiu. Her breath was fragrant: "I dont know about the others, but I know that Mu Jius vitality is iparable." Mu Qun had been in a bad mood all evening, but thisment pleased him. He thought, once Ruanruan tastes what he has to offer, shell know hes a hundred times better than Bao Jingyan. As he pondered, his sinister nature stirred once more. Zhou Susu hugged him, her eyes glistening with moisture, looking somewhat simr to Su Ruanruan. Mu Jius blood heated uncontrobly... The next morning, early. Madame Gu and Su Ruanruan went to the hospital together. As they entered the room, Bao Jingyan was surprisingly awake. He was sitting up in bed dressed in a hospital gown, looking at some documents, the loose cor and a lock of hair hanging over his forehead added a sense of dissolute beauty. By the bedside stood Xiao Ran. Su Ruanruan bit her lip. A mother knows her daughter best, Madame Gu knew that her daughter was feeling distressed, so she lightly coughed. Bao Jingyan lifted his eyes, then the corners of his long, narrow phoenix eyes curved into a smile. "Madame Gu." Madame Gu deliberately kept a stern face: "Still cant let go of work despite being injured!" She asked further: "And the olddy?" Bao Jingyan nced at Su Ruanruan before saying: "She felt unwell early in the morning; Jingse apanied her back home." Madame Gu nodded, then went on to personally prepare a nourishing congee for Bao Jingyan. She truly doted on Bao Jingyan as if he were her own son. Xiao Ran, understanding the situation, saw that Madame Gu was busy and quickly packed up to leave. However, Bao Jingyan stopped her. He asked, "Who is currently overseeing the Research and Development Department?" Xiao Ranposed herself and said, "Director Bao intends to have Vice President Wang take over." Vice President Wang? That was someone from Madame Baos faction. Bao Jingyan ground his white teeth and sneered: "Ambitious, arent they! Do they really think Im gone?" Immediately afterward, he looked affectionately at Su Ruanruan and gently smiled. Su Ruanruan instantly felt uneasy. Indeed, Bao Jingyan softly said: "Ruanruan, during my recovery period, youll oversee the Dijing Research and Development Department." Su Ruanruan was stunned. Her lips moved weakly, "I have no experience." The word experience as spoken by her small mouth, was immensely stirring for Bao Jingyan. His eyes darkened, and his voice became uncharacteristically husky: "I can teach you." Su Ruanruan didnt understand his thoughts, and said softly: "And no one would be convinced!" Bao Jingyan just smiled. He indicated for Xiao Ran to leave first. Once they were alone, he set the documents aside and called her over: "Come here." Su Ruanruan moved closer to him and, seeing the bandages through his loose clothing, her heart tensed. Her voice was kittenish: "Does it still hurt?" Bao Jingyan chuckled softly: "Ruanruan, youll cause trouble staring at a man like that." Her face flushed as she retorted, "Youre still like this at a time like this." After speaking, she leaned in carefully to undo his clothing, meticulously inspecting the wound. Although Bao Jingyan was in pain, her proximity made him forget it. Chapter 186: Baby, I Like You

Chapter 186: Chapter 186: Baby, I Like You

He reached out to gently touch her small face, his voice hoarse: "Ruanruan, I told you that I would make you the most distinguished woman in Jiang City!" She hummed in acknowledgment. Bao Jingyan felt even more tenderness in his heart and he uttered softly with a nasal voice: "Ruanruan, trust me." Su Ruanruan did not reply, instead she continued fixing the buttons on his clothes. The faint smell of medicine on him, mixed with the scent of aftershave, was heart-throbbing. Bao Jingyan didnt care about these; all he felt was that his little girl was soft and lovely. He grasped her slender waist, kneading it gently. Su Ruanruan blushed, suppressing her voice: "Stop!" He was a patient, after all, and she was very amodating to him. So her voice was even finer and softer, with a hint of endearment: "Lets go back...ter..." She couldnt finish her sentence, her small face already flushing with color. Bao Jingyan nced towards the kitchen and forcefully suppressed that bit of desire. When Madame Gu arrived, she happened to see Bao Jingyan leaning against the headboard with Su Ruanruan beside him, reading documents to him. A picture of peaceful times. Madame Gu offered a slight smile. At noon, Su Ruanruan saw Madame Gu off. She watched Madame Gus car drive away from the hospital, then her vision darkened. She raised her eyes and saw. It was Mu Jiu. Seeing Mu Jiu again, Su Ruanruan had mixed feelings. She cooled her expression and tried to leave from the side. Mu Qun reached out to stop her, licking his face, "Havent seen you for a few days, and you dont recognize me?" "I am not really acquainted with Mr. Mu," Su Ruanruans face was tight. Mu Jiu lit a cigarette, and then chuckled lightly: "You know exactly how Bao Jingyan got injured! You two are so close, dont you hate me?" Su Ruanruan saw the ill intent in his eyes and took a step back. Mu Jiu kept pressing forward, cornering her against a wall. He looked down at her tender neck, well aware that he could take a bite if he wished. Mu Jiu was a carnivore, his Adams apple involuntarily bobbing because of such cravings. But in the end, he couldnt bring himself to do it. He gently touched the strands of her hair, his face full of fascination: "Ruanruan, if only youd follow me, I wouldnt care about all that mess between you and Bao Jingyan! Id have a grand wedding procession to marry you right away." "I can give you endless money! Spoil you for a lifetime." Su Ruanruan was first panicked, then calmed down. This was a hospital, Mu Qun wouldnt dare do much. She asked scornfully in return: "Then what? All your mistresses are under my control?" Mu Jiu felt a bit uneasy, coughing softly: "What mistresses! You make it sound so unpleasant!" He pleaded again with a shameless face: "Baby, just indulge me once! One time, and I promise youll forget Bao Jingyan!" Su Ruanruan shoved him away. She sneered: "Mu Jiu, I once respected you! Now, you just disgust me." Mu Jiu narrowed his eyes: "After all is said and done, you still care for that pretty boy! Haha, Bao Jingyan, that pretty boy with a twisting heart, arent you afraid of sleeping next to a wolf?" "Its still better than someone brutal like you," Su Ruanruan retorted and turned to leave. Mu Qun was about to chase after her, when his phone rang. He nced at the caller and picked it up... After listening for a few moments, he couldnt help but curse out loud. Several of his establishments were being raidedall his doings needed no questioning. Mu Jiu ground his teeth. He had listened to Zhou Susus tricks, but had identally fallen into Bao Jingyans trap. That pretty boy was truly ruthless. Mu Jiu had to leave the pursuit of women behind and hurry back to clean up the mess. ... Su Ruanruan returned to the ward, Bao Jingyan was looking at documents. Without lifting his head, he asked casually: "You saw Mu Qun?" Su Ruanruan looked at him, at a loss for words. Chapter 187: Intimacy

Chapter 187: Chapter 187: Intimacy

Bao Jingyan knew what she wanted to say, chuckling lightly: "Ive wanted those two ports for a long time! He brought it on himself, walking right into my hands; Im not to me!" Su Ruanruan slowly walked to his side, peeling fruit for him. After a long while, she finally said: "I didnt say anything!" Bao Jingyan ruffled her hair and teased her: "From now on, youre not allowed to talk to that brute. Do you hear me?" Contrary to his expectation, Su Ruanruan obediently nodded her head. She said, "I dont like that brute either." Bao Jingyan watched her demure look and felt a stir in his heart. She had been so amodating these past few days; she must be feeling sorry for him. Thinking this, he felt the gunshot wound was damn well worth it. When a man rxes, his mind starts to wander. He nced at the door: "Ruanruan, go close the door." Su Ruanruan, such an innocent child, thought he needed to use the restroom or something, and immediately went to shut the door. Bao Jingyans voice turned hoarse: "Come here." Su Ruanruan approached and supported his shoulder, "Do you need to go to the restroom?" Bao Jingyan hummed through his nose but absentmindedly grabbed her ck hair, pressing on it with a firm yet gentle force. His actions were slow and deliberate, carrying a different implication. Su Ruanruan quivered lightly. She didnt know what she was afraid of... He chuckled softly, leaning close to her ear, "Ruanruan, is it okay to do it likest time?" Su Ruanruans face flushed with heat. She gently struggled while sitting in his embrace. Every time she moved, he let out a light grunt. "Did I hurt your wound?" she asked, enduring her shyness. Bao Jingyans adams apple bobbed, his thin lips pressed hotly to her ear as he gritted his teeth: "What do you think?" In the end, he had his way... Su Ruanruans eyes welled up. She thought he wasnt human! Later, she stayed alone in the restroom for a long time, and when she came out, her face was still red. ... In the evening. People from the Dijing Research and Development Department came to report on their work, noticing that the young President Bao looked tired and ck. They felt so sympathetic. The young President Bao was working so hard! Still this busy while in the hospital! Bao Jingyan was in a very good mood, asionally ncing at Su Ruanruan... She was sitting on the sofa by the window, a good distance from him. Flipping through a book in her hands, but it was upside down. Bao Jingyans mouth curved into a pleased smile. He thought that she always cried and said no, but actually, she also liked being close to him. After what had happened that afternoon, Su Ruanruan refused to stay at the hospital for the night. She returned to the Bao Mansion. By eight oclock at night, Bao Mingyuan was still waiting for her in the hall. Thedy of the Bao family was also there. Thedy of the Bao family was furious. She had thought that with Bao Jingyan down, her person could smoothly take over the R&D department, but unexpectedly, Mingyuan mentioned Bao Jingyan had proposed letting Su Ruanruan take charge. Hah, a naive girl, how could shepete with the well-experienced Vice President Wang? Those old timers at Dijing wouldnt ept her either! Bao Mingyuan was waiting for Su Ruanruan precisely for this matter. He and thedy of the Bao family shared the same thoughts; he did think Su Ruanruan was capable and talented, but to take over the R&D department of a multinational corporation, she probablycked the ability! However, after she gained more experience over a few more years and secured a position at Dijing, and then married Ziqi, it would bring bnce to the family. Bao Mingyuan smiled pleasantly: "Ruanruan is back!" Su Ruanruan sat down. Her status in the Bao Family was now quite high, and a servant immediately brought her tea. Bao Mingyuan tactfully brought up the matter, thinking Su Ruanruan would refuse. After all, she was just 18 years old, what big ambitions could an 18-year-old girl have? Unexpectedly, Su Ruanruan smiled faintly: "My elder brother talked to me about this in the afternoon." Bao Mingyuans eyelids twitched uncontrobly as he asked: "You went to Jingyans ce?" Su Ruanruan nodded, then continued: "I am willing to ept my brothers arrangement." Bao Mingyuan was a bit stunned. Was this childs ambition too great? Chapter 188: Su Ruanruan is from the Bao Family

Chapter 188: Chapter 188: Su Ruanruan is from the Bao Family

Mrs. Bao was furious to the extreme. Vice President Wang was her maternal familys man, she had waited for this opportunity for a long time, and she absolutely couldnt let Su Ruanruan snatch this position. At night, Qi Meiyu fully exploited her pillow talk. However, Bao Mingyuan casually remarked, "Ruanruan has no foundation in Di Jing, others wont ept her leadership either. You dont need to worry about this." Mrs. Bao calmed down and thought it through. Yes, Wu Ruanruan was only humiliating herself! She just needed to watch Su Ruanruan make a fool of herself. Mrs. Bao was in a very good mood, and so she went out of her way to please her husband. Bao Mingyuan was very satisfied. ... Early in the morning, Su Ruanruan went to the dining hall for breakfast. In the early autumn weather, she wore a ck pleated skirt matched with a light purple sweater. Her delicate white legs peeked out, her figure slender. As she came in, Bao Ziqi kept his gaze on her, ignoring the Su family members who shamelessly showed up. Early in the morning, those from the Su family were shamelessly visiting. iming to visit Su Ruanruan! Su Ruanruan saw them and just nodded slightly. Nurse Fu doted on her, immediately warming up milk for her and even specially made the egg crepe that Su Ruanruan loved. Not only that, she was attentive to her needs, "Careful, its hot!" Su Ruanruan gave a slight smile. She had a little white tooth that was very cute. Nurse Fus heart melted, only regretting she couldnt do more out of her affection. Su Qionglin witnessed this scene and felt ufortable. She had been with Bao Ziqi for two years and never received such treatment. Underneath the jealousy, Su Qionglins words carried a hint of sarcasm, "Ruanruan seems to be doing well with the Bao family." Su Ruanruan cleverly replied, "I should thank sister Qionglin for giving me this opportunity." Su Qionglin was infuriated. She looked towards Bao Ziqi. Bao Ziqi was calmly dining, as if he had never known her. At this moment, Aunt Su thickened her face and said to the elderlydy, "We came because we want Ruanruan toe home for a while, and once the elderlydy misses her, we will send her back." Aunt Su calcted well, Bao family treasured Su Ruanruan, as long as they kept Su Ruanruan in their palms, they wouldnt fear losing contact with the Bao family. What kind of person was the elderly Mrs. Bao, and how could she fall for such a trick? She immediately frowned, "When Ruanruan came to the Bao family, the Su family didnt hesitate to take 10% of the shares from Tongsheng Hospital, even saying Ruanruan is now a person of the Bao family! What, regret it now?" The elderlydy scoffed, "No matter whether this child and Ziqi are fated, she is already our Bao familys child." Aunt Su awkwardly kept a smiling face, "But Ruanruan is still technically a Su by surname!" "Then lets change her surname to Bao tomorrow," the elderlydy stated adamantly. Bao Mingyuan and Mrs. Bao exchanged a look, feeling quite helpless. The things handled in the past were controversial, and now the elderlydy was even more so... But no one dared to talk back. Only Bao Ziqis lips curved slightly. The Su family members were desperate, and Su Qionglin was particrly unwilling. What charm did Su Ruanruan use to bewitch the Bao family? She was clearly someone of lowly origin. A coldness emerged on the corners of Su Qionglins mouth. Since Su Ruanruan betrayed the Su family, she wouldnt mind exposing the truth that she isnt the Su familys child at an appropriate time. Then, devoid of the Su familys halo, how would the Bao family view her? How would everyone in Jiangcheng view her? Su Qionglin harbored malicious thoughts, yet her face remained gently: "Ruanruan is favored by the elderlydy, as an older sister, Im genuinely happy for her." Su Ruanruan just smiled lightly. At that moment, Bao Mingyuan stood up. He said to Bao Ziqi, "Im heading to thepany first,ter you take Ruanruan there." This statement essentially dered his position. His favored daughter-inw, was Su Ruanruan. Chapter 189 Bao Jingyan鈥檚 Arrangement

Chapter 189: Chapter 189 Bao Jingyans Arrangement

Su Qionglins face changed dramatically. She looked at Bao Ziqi, thinking he would ignore it. But Bao Ziqi looked towards Su Ruanruan, his voice indifferent: "Ill wait for you in the car." In front of everyone, Su Ruanruan gave him face. He needed her as a shield, and how could she not need him for cover? So, they both tacitly understood, each harboring their own intentions. Bao Ziqi was somewhat restless. He sat in the car smoking until Su Ruanruan leisurely got in. The previous closeness was gone, he coldly said: "No need to thank me! I just dont want to be entangled by Su Qionglin anymore." Su Ruanruan sincerely said: "I still need to thank you forst time." Bao Ziqi started the car. Su Ruanruan suddenly sighed lightly: "I dont understand why you are at odds with my sister." She really didnt like Su Qionglin, but Su Ruanruan could tell that Su Qionglin truly liked Bao Ziqi, even with a sense of vain attachment. And... they were always at the hotel, how could they break up after all that? After all, Su Ruanruan is inexperienced and doesnt understand men. Bao Ziqi gritted his back teeth, "What do you think?" Su Ruanruan wisely kept her mouth shut. Bao Ziqi was angry for a while, then spoke to her again: "I heard Bao Jingyan wants to promote you to take over the Dijing Research and Development Department?" Before she could speak, he continued: "Do you know what kind of person Vice President Wang is?" With his connections, Su Ruanruan was fighting a losing battle! Su Ruanruan kept looking out the window, and faintly countered: "Bao Ziqi, do you think I cant achieve anything?" Last time Mrs. Gu had an episode, he also held her back. Su Ruanruan knew he meant well, but they were ultimately not on the same path. Bao Ziqi was silent for a moment, then said: "Youre not suited for Bao Jingyans schemes! Su Ruanruan, wouldnt it be better to simply paint or y the piano?" Su Ruanruanughed. She looked at Bao Ziqi and asked gently: "What about you, after studying art, have you never felt unwilling?" Bao Ziqis knuckles turned white gripping the steering wheel, his face also looked awful. He was hit by Su Ruanruans remark. Indeed, he was envious of Bao Jingyan. Bao Jingyan was born with everything, and now, he even had Su Ruanruan. After that, they no longer spoke. It seemed, saying more was a waste. Su Ruanruan went to the research department, Vice President Wang had not yet taken charge but was already preparing to preside over the meeting on his own initiative. Su Ruanruan was neither contentious nor aggressive. Bao Mingyuan affectionately patted Vice President Wang on the shoulder: "Jingyan is not here, I entrust these people in the research department to you." Vice President Wang immediately stood up, looking ttered. But he was secretly pleased. All these people below were Bao Jingyans confidants, and this was his chance to expel them from the core of power. When Bao Jingyan returned, he would find it hard to handle things alone. As for that girl Su Ruanruan, he hardly took her seriously. Vice President Wang, newly in charge, was about to start the meeting when someone spoke up. It was Dr. Zhong, an elite from the research department. Dr. Zhong, with a cigarette in his mouth, spoke up: "Vice President Wang knows nothing about research, taking over the research department may not be appropriate?" Vice President Wang smirked without genuine amusement: "I can manage you." "Not understanding research, how can you manage?" Dr. Zhong coldlyughed: "Isnt this a joke?" With that said, more than ten veterans of the research department started speaking. "Thats right, Vice President Wang doesnt understand anything!" "Mr. Bao, are we ying music to a cow?" "If theres a problem, who will take responsibility?" ... Bao Mingyuan was quite troubled. Indeed rebellious! These old timers have be presumptuous, even daring to confront him openly? Thinking he wouldnt dare to fire them? However, Bao Mingyuan truly didnt dare! They were still reliant on these scoundrels for the new drug development! Chapter 190: Su Ruanruan鈥檚 Rise to Power

Chapter 190: Chapter 190: Su Ruanruans Rise to Power

Bao Mingyuan looked at Vice President Wang and asked Dr. Zhong, "The only person in thepany who understands R&D and has management experience is President Bao, but President Bao is in the hospital now." Dr. Zhong buzzed, "President Bao has instructed that the R&D department be handed over to Miss Su." "Nonsense!" Bao Mingyuan disapproved, "Ruanruan is too young! Besides, that bunch in the R&D department may not ept her." He had just finished speaking when those old slicks in the R&D department unanimously said, "We choose Miss Su." Bao Mingyuan was stunned. He lit a cigarette and took two harsh drags. Lifting his eyes again, his expression somewhat awkward. He was the chief executive of Di Jing, and his words seemed to be of no avail. Since when did the entire R&D department be entirely devoted to Jingyan? And these proud and haughty people actually listen to Su Ruanruan? Something was not right! Bao Mingyuan would never have guessed that these people already knew about the rtionship between Bao Jingyan and Su Ruanruan; if Bao Jingyan was their master, then Su Ruanruan was also their master. Bao Mingyuan found himself in a difficult position. Vice President Wang was even more embarrassed. But having spent decades in the workce, he still had the ability to deal with a young girl. Vice President Wang deliberately said, "Since President Bao values Miss Su so highly, we should also see Miss Sus capabilities." No sooner had he finished speaking than Dr. Zhong pointed a hand, "Please, Miss Su, preside over the meeting." Bao Mingyuan was taken aback. Could Ruanruan handle it? But now that the arrow was on the string, he had to shoot. He nodded, signaling Su Ruanruan to go up. Vice President Wang stepped down, looking defeated, but he still felt unconvinced in his heart. He waited to see Su Ruanruan make a fool of herself. However, to their astonishment, Su Ruanruan had an excellent grasp of the new product development and was also very familiar with the personnel at all levels of the R&D department. Talented and efficient. Even cunning in her tactics! The meeting went on as if Bao Jingyan was still present. Bao Mingyuan waspletely relieved. He was the first to apud and not only that, he went over to embrace Su Ruanruan. He showed appreciation as if she were his own child! Bao Mingyuans face was full of pride as he directly announced, "With Jingyan away, let Ruanruan temporarily manage you bunch of old ones." Vice President Wang blurted out, "What about me?" Bao Mingyuan frowned and said bluntly, "Didnt you see the R&D people dont listen to you?" Vice President Wang choked on his words. To express his appreciation for Su Ruanruan, Bao Mingyuan took Su Ruanruan to thepanys restaurant at lunch. Approachable yet ostentatious. Look, this is his daughter-inw. Talented and capable, right? Meanwhile, whispers from Di Jings employees reached his ears. "Have you heard? Miss Su is the second young masters fiance." "President Bao thinks highly of her!" "What about the supermodel? What about Su Qionglin?" "Thats old news. Now the second young master is into Miss Su." ... After hearing these words, Bao Mingyuan felt gratified. He personally served Su Ruanruan dishes, speaking affectionately, "This meeting mustve taken a long time to prepare, your eyes are all green!" Su Ruanruan softly thanked him, then continued to discuss business with Bao Mingyuan. Bao Mingyuan was even more impressed. This child was so outstanding; he wanted to do something for her! Right, take her to a party and introduce her to all the elite of Jiangcheng! From afar, those old ones from the R&D department sat at a table, looking at Bao Mingyuan with pity. President Bao must think Miss Su and the second young master are a couple, heh, if only he knew that Miss Su belongs to the eldest young master. The iron-d kind! Poor President Bao! There, Bao Mingyuan was caring for Su Ruanruan like a loving father. While eating, he whispered gently, "After work, lets visit Jingyan together so you can report your work to him." Su Ruanruan smiled faintly. Chapter 191 I Thought About You All Night

Chapter 191: Chapter 191 I Thought About You All Night

Hospital. High-level VIP ward. Before the floor-to-ceiling windows, a slender figure stands quietly. Wearing light-colored hospital attire and draped with a gray coat, he appears distinguished and noble despite being ill. Bao Jingyan, with a cigarette between his fingers, frowns and asks his assistant, "How are things going on Mu Jius side?" The man in ck behind him smiles lightly: "The overt attacks have already overwhelmed him, not to mention the tricks weve yed in the dark! Dont worry, Young Master Jingyan, Mu Jiu will be unable to cope within a month and will offer the port to you as an apology." Bao Jingyan hooks his lips. He was just about to send someone down when the door to the ward was pushed open. Bao Mingyuan enters with Su Ruanruan and chuckles upon seeing this: "Discussing business, are we?" Bao Jingyan turns his head, his gaze briefly sweeping over Su Ruanruan. Unperturbed. He quietly instructs the person to leave. Bao Mingyuan waits for everyone to leave before he lightly coughs: "Its only been two days since your surgery, why are you worrying about these issues?" "I cant help it!" Bao Jingyan sighs, "Im burdened with ipetents." Bao Mingyuan chuckles. He turns his head toward Su Ruanruan, teasing on purpose: "Is our Ruanruan also ipetent?" He adds: "Jingyan, remember, you were the one who promoted her." Bao Jingyan straightens his clothes, smiling a little, "Ruanruan is different, of course." He and Bao Mingyuan sit down together, Bao Mingyuan invites Su Ruanruan to sit as well. During the conversation, there is no avoidance! He says to Bao Jingyan: "I know you dislike Vice President Wang! Hes lost face this time, dont suppress him any further." Bao Jingyan, however, remarks indifferently: "Hes still twenty years away from retirement!" Thatment meant no room for the other party. Bao Mingyuan is somewhat angered but has to restrain himself: "After all, hes from your aunts side, try not to make it too ugly!" Bao Jingyan suddenly looks towards Su Ruanruan and asks, "What do you think?" Su Ruanruan is somewhat dazed! But Bao Mingyuan, somewhat interested, follows up: "Yes, Ruanruan, what do you think?" He thinks to himself, Vice President Wang is Qi Meiyus man, and since Ruanruan is with Ziqi, she certainly would side with Meiyu. He is confident. Su Ruanruan nces reproachfully at scheming Bao Jingyan. Then, she speaks softly, "Vice President Wang is still young, indeed its not suitable for him to retire immediately! However... Dijing Group has many subsidiaries, there certainly could be a position suitable for him." Upon hearing this, Bao Jingyan hooks his lips. Indeed, a crafty one taught by him! Sly, without dragging feet! Bao Mingyuan, upon hearing this, looks at Su Ruanruan with meaningful eyes. The child seems to be ying tai chi, but directly points out the fact that Vice President Wang is ipetent. He contemtes for a moment, then smiles. Perhaps over the years, he has overly favored Meiyus face, resulting in many of her familyzying around in Dijing Group! Bao Mingyuan is silent, and Su Ruanruan does not know what he means, feeling somewhat uneasy. But Bao Jingyan is very calm. Now that Bao Mingyuan values Ruanruan, he will listen to her. Just then, a nursees over with a tray to change the dressing. Bao Mingyuan exims, pinching his pocket, "Im going out to buy a pack of cigarettes." He truly harbored no suspicions about Bao Jingyan and Su Ruanruan, only assuming that Ziqi was pursuing Ruanruan, and their rtionship seemed neither good nor bad! He leaves. Then, Bao Jingyan asks the nurse to leave as well. Su Ruanruan taps her fingers lightly on the medical tray, speaking softly, "The nurse has left, who will change your dressing?" Bao Jingyan pulls her to sit on hisp, "Dont I still have you?" Su Ruanruan is shocked. Trying to break free, but he doesnt allow it. She lowers her voice: "You are injured, dont do this." Bao Jingyans forehead rests against hers, his voice hoarse: "Ruanruan... Ive missed you all night." Chapter 192: I Want Others to Know How Much Ruanruan is Favored

Chapter 192: Chapter 192: I Want Others to Know How Much Ruanruan is Favored

Her face was burning hot. He was so daring, Bao Mingyuan could return at any moment. She was frightened and pleaded with him: "Stop it, let me change your dressing." Bao Jingyan chuckled lightly and let go of her. He took off his jacket, lookingpletely at her mercy. Absolutely shameless! Su Ruanruan was both embarrassed and angry, but she still washed her hands, disinfected them, and changed his bandage. She carefully unraveled theyers of gauze and looked at the fresh reddish wound, as well as the faint scars around his shoulder... Those had been there for years. Tears welled up in Su Ruanruans eyes, and she asked with a bitten lip: "Does it still hurt?" "It doesnt hurt that much," Bao Jingyan gazed intently at her. She cast her eyes down gracefully and adorably. He didnt care about the pain, he was only thinking how nice it would be if she would stay the night. Bao Jingyan audaciously disclosed his dark thoughts! Su Ruanruan was furious. Even with injuries like that, all he could think about was that dirty stuff. She ignored him and simply changed his dressing. Bao Jingyan wanted to talk more with her, but Bao Mingyuan returned soon after. The two men then discussed business, so Su Ruanruan went to the kitchen and made a bowl of fish noodle soup for Bao Jingyan. Bao Mingyuan waspletely oblivious. At 8 p.m., he finally took Su Ruanruan away. Back to the Bao Family. The olddy had heard about thepanys situation early on and was especially pleased. As soon as Su Ruanruan entered the door, the olddy stroked her hand and said: "I knew Ruanruan was someone who could do great things! Look, she has made something of herself all at once." Bao Mingyuan first had the servants prepare a meal, and then he joined in the fun. He recounted the days events at thepany and finally scanned over the entire family, saying: "I was initially worried Ruanruan was too young and inexperienced, but who would have known she would subdue those old timers so sternly." Bao Mingyuan was very proud: "Besides Jingyan, that group of old timers havent taken orders from anyone." The Bao Family allughed. Except for Mrs. Bao. At this moment, Mrs. Bao felt a chill to her core. She had fully expected Su Ruanruan to make a fool of herself, but surprise-surprise, she had climbed up the ranks instead. The Dijing Group, with a market value of several hundred billion, now had a ce for her. Just as Mrs. Bao believed that taking over the R&D department was Su Ruanruans limit, Bao Mingyuan made a sweeping gesture, making a major decision. He said in front of the entire family: "Ruanruan is now our child, but the outside world doesnt know how much I, Bao Mingyuan, value her." With that, the Bao Family went quiet. Mrs. Baos face looked terrible. The olddy was full of interest. Bao Jingyuan and Bao Ziqi held their breath. Bao Mingyuan called over Su Ruanruan, touched her head affectionately, and said: "It has been a few months since Ruanruan joined our family! I have witnessed her capabilities myself, and I think many would be disgruntled that she is now in charge of the R&D department." He then added: "Apart from Jingyans thirty percent, Jingse and Ziqi both hold two percent of Dijings shares. Now, I will also give two percent to Ruanruan, topletely shut up the dissenters!" After he finished speaking, the Bao Family were stunned. They all knew that Bao Mingyuan valued Su Ruanruan, but such affection was still shocking. Two percent of Dijing Group. Not only worth tens of billions! It was also a symbol of status! Mrs. Bao was the first to be displeased. She had been married to Bao Mingyuan for over a decade and hadnt received a sliver of Dijings shares, while Su Ruanruan, a girl with no name or status, was granted two percent of the shares! Before she could speak up, Bao Jingyuan was the first to cry out in protest. "Dad, this is unfair!" Bao Mingyuan allowed her to speak. Bao Jingyuan said indignantly: "I dont even have that, why should Su Ruanruan get it?" Chapter 193 He Only Has Eyes for Su Ruanruan

Chapter 193: Chapter 193 He Only Has Eyes for Su Ruanruan

Bao Mingyuan gave her a nce and spoke with resounding rity: "Thanks to Ruanruan, the Bao Family has been honored! She can take care of business for the empires scenery! What about you, Jingyuan? All you do is y all day, or chase after that Professor Su! Do you think Impletely unaware?" He supported Su Ruanruans face: "Speak up if anyone has any problems today, but dont me your father for being unpleasant if anyone brings this up again after today." He then asked his other two children: "Jingse, Ziqi, do either of you have any objections?" Bao Jingse couldnt be more pleased. Bao Ziqi looked deep and shook his head: "No objections." Bao Mingyuan was very pleased. Thats how it should be, with Ziqi concentrating on pursuing art in the future, and Ruanruan managing the household. Besides, Ruanruan has a good rtionship with Jingyan, which could also improve the rtionship between Jingyan and Ziqi. Bao Mingyuan was wishful thinking, hoping for a beautiful future. With him being so assertive, Mrs. Bao couldnt speak up. Her heart was chilled. To this day, she could not ept the fact that Su Ruanruans status had surpassed her own in such a short time. Clearly, Mingyuan had already treated Su Ruanruan as his own child. She nced at her husband again. Now, Bao Mingyuan had eyes only for Su Ruanruan. He said affectionately, "Ruanruan, youll be hard-pressed for a while as Jingyan is in the hospital. Once things settle down, have Jingse take you abroad for a trip." Bao Jingse took the opportunity: "Dad, let Ruanruan stay at my ce for a few days. Ill also take her to thepany." Bao Mingyuan was very pleased. He said to Bao Jingyuan: "Look at Jingses magnanimity! You really should reflect on yourself!" After finishing his statement, he spoke to Bao Jingse: "Stay at your ce for a few days! Be sure to bring her backter, the olddy misses her!" Bao Jingse nodded. Then, she took Su Ruanruan to pack up and leave. Only after everyone had left did Bao Mingyuan remember something, "Ruanruan hasnt eaten yet!" Mrs. Bao was furious. Ruanruan, Ruanruan, Mingyuans heart is filled with Su Ruanruan now! She was discontent, thus she had a restless night. Bao Mingyuan was in a good mood, hinting several times but being rejected each time. Bao Mingyuan was somewhat disappointed and leaned on the bed to smoke: "Whats the matter with you? Youre not even menopausal yet!" Mrs. Bao took a bath, dressed in a silk nightgown, and sat in front of the vanity mirror, applying her skincare products. Her figure was delicate and her appearance beautiful. She nced at her husband in the mirror and spoke somberly: "You shouldnt have disregarded Jingyuans feelings today." Her voice lowered: "No matter how good Su Ruanruan is, Jingyuan is still your own child." "Is that whats making you upset with me?" Bao Mingyuan chuckled softly. He got out of bed, went behind his wife, and embraced her, blowing a warm breath into her ear: "I am nning for our Ziqi!" Mrs. Bao was startled, but kept herposure: "Ziqi?" "Yes!" Bao Mingyuan gently stroked his wifes earlobe and spoke leisurely: "You know Ziqi likes that girl Ruanruan! I can see shes not entirely heartless. If they end up together, my heart will be at ease." Mrs. Bao had mixed feelings. She had considered Su Ruanruan, but she still despised her background. Besides, her family had been humiliated today, she felt that Su Ruanruan was not on her side. Mrs. Bao forced a smile: "Your thoughts are quite positive! But, Im afraid you are wishfully thinking! Today she disrespected Vice President Wang like that, and hes from my side of the family." Bao Mingyuan felt protective of Su Ruanruan and said: "Ruanruan has no objections towards him! She respects him a lot! Its because I dont think hespetent enough. Besides, however close he is, can he be as dear as our daughter-inw?" Chapter 194: Favoritism!

Chapter 194: Chapter 194: Favoritism!

Mrs. Bao was at a loss for words. She felt that her husband was obsessed. What he was obsessed with, was Ruanruan from the Su Family. She was shocked and suspicious. It seemed... since that dance party, Mingyuan had shown a special favor towards Ruanruan. That night, the gown Ruanruan wore, and her entire being, greatly resembled Sun Weilian. Thinking of this, Mrs. Baos back was covered in ayer of cold sweat. Mingyuan... he said he loved her the most, was he lying to her? Bao Mingyuan had no idea what was on her mind, and hugged his beautiful wife passionately. As he hugged his wife and walked towards therge bed, he said, "Meiyu, next week lets take the two kids to the charity auction in Jiang City and officially introduce Ruanruans identity. Let everyone know that she is the fiance chosen by me, Bao Mingyuan." Qi Meiyu waspletely stunned... Had Mingyuans n progressed to this stage? She must think of a way to stop it! Of course, Mrs. Bao would never y the viin. After much thought, she thought of someone. Su Qionglin. As long as she harbored feelings for Ziqi, she would never let Ruanruan off the hook! Her mind was racing, but Bao Mingyuan could no longer wait, his breath ragged as he leaned in for a kiss. Mrs. Bao ced her delicate hand in front of her husband. "Whats the matter now?" Bao Mingyuan was displeased. He just wanted some intimacy with his wife, yet she was thwarting his efforts. Mrs. Bao coyly said, "Mingyuan, Im worried about Ruanruan." "Why worry about her? Shes full of ideas!" Bao Mingyuan held her shoulders, quietly triumphing, "I think you should watch Jingyuan more closely! I told her not to associate with Su Familys second brother, but the child simply doesnt listen." Su Ruan liked Ruanruan, and if they got involved with the Bao Family... The thought made Bao Mingyuans teeth ache! Mrs. Baos brow furrowed with worry. Jingyuan and that Su professor, she was firmly against it too. Bao Mingyuan became more impassioned. Mrs. Bao whispered into his ear, "Thats not what Im worried about! Mingyuan, I worry if Ruanruan is up to the task. You know Jingyan is a medical doctor, but Ruanruan has only learned some basics from Su Peiming!" Bao Mingyuan looked intently at his wife. After a while, he nonchntly said, "What does it matter, the research department is full of talents." Mrs. Bao: ... She secretly gritted her teeth. Mingyuan actually favored Ruanruan to such an extent! * In the courtyard, the olddy was heavy-hearted. After tidying up, Gui Zhi turned to see the olddy sighing sorrowfully. Gui Zhi smiled and said, "Whats the matter? Tonight everything is going well, isnt that enough to make you happy?" The olddy sighed lightly, "Gui Zhi, I feel somewhat uneasy." Gui Zhi, still smiling, asked, "What now?" The olddys gaze rested on her, and after a long pause, she finally hesitated, "Looking at Mingyuans intentions, Ziqi and Ruanruans matter is settled, but why do I feel hes celebrating too soon?" On hearing this, Gui Zhis heart skipped a beat. She hadnt forgotten the scene she saw that night. Jingyan, the young master, sneaking into Miss Sus room in the middle of the night! Given Jingyans disposition and Miss Sus character, Mr. Ziqi stood no chance. Wanting to seize the opportunity to speak for Ruanruan, Gui Zhi hesitated. In the end, she said nothing. The olddy didnt notice her reluctance and continued to talk to herself, "It looks like Ruanruans heart is already taken." Gui Zhi quickly interrupted, "Young Master Gu is also outstanding and treats Miss Su well. What young girl wouldnt like to be pampered!" These words struck a chord with the olddy. She thought to herself: In this respect, Ziqi really isnt doing well, hes not considerate at all! Later, she would have a word with him! Chapter 195: Awesome! The Su Family Has to Look at Ruanruan鈥檚 Face Now

Chapter 195: Chapter 195: Awesome! The Su Family Has to Look at Ruanruans Face Now

The following morning, all the major newspapers in Jiangcheng published the same headline. [Su Ruanruan Takes Charge of Dijing Research and Development Department! Receives Shares!] The news exploded like a bomb! Su Ruanruan became a hot topic once again. In the streets and alleys of Jiangcheng, people were discussing why this young girl was receiving such generous treatment from the Bao Family, and what her current rtionship with them was! A subsequent piece of news gave everyone the answer. Next week, Bao Mingyuan and his wife, alongside Bao Ziqi and Su Ruanruan, will attend the citysrgest charity dinner! The citizens of Jiangcheng chattered excitedly. It seems Miss Su is about to be the junior bride of the Bao Family! ... Su Family. Su Qionglin crumpled the newspaper and cried bitterly. "Grandfather, Ruanruan is adamantly going after Ziqi to take him away from me." Old Master Su gave her a stern look and barked, "Whats the rush!" Tears streamed down Qionglins face: "How can I not be in a hurry! Shes got shares in Dijing, and now Ziqis parents are showing her such high regard! Grandfather, if this continues, she is probably going to marry Ziqi." Old Master Su nonchntly kept smoking, "Doesnt this just show how much the Bao Family values Ruanruan? Its a good thing!" Old Master Su saw the bigger picture, unlike Su Qionglin who only cared about petty emotions. Su Qionglin is his granddaughter, and so is Su Ruanruan! Qionglin might not have capabilities, but Ruanruan does! Look at that child, thriving in the Bao Family! With her rise to power, Tongsheng Hospital benefits greatly, and its all good for the Su Family. The catch is, they need to keep her under their control. Old Master Su warned Su Qionglin, "Ruanruan is favored right now, youre not allowed to ruin her prospects!" Su Qionglin was stunned. Her face, streaked with tears, lost color: "You want me to give up on Ziqi? Grandfather, Im your real granddaughter! Ruanruan isnt, shes just a wild child uncle picked up from somewhere!" She raved madly, "Even my aunt said nothing about her background before she died, maybe Ruanruan is a child born from an affair with another man to deceive our Su Family!" Her words grew more and more inappropriate, Su Yugu couldnt bear it. He pped her across the face! Su Yugu pointed at her and said, "Qionglin, get a grip of the reality! You are obsessed with Bao Ziqi, but what about him? Hes probably long forgotten you! If he had you in his heart, would he use Shen Xianrou to disgust you?" Su Qionglin sobbed, holding her face, "Is Su Ruanruan not disgusting?" "Shes not, because she doesnt love Bao Ziqi!" Su Yugu stated decisively. Su Qionglin was dazed. Murmuring, she asked, "If she doesnt like Ziqi, why is she stealing whats mine?" Su Yugu lost his patience, "Even if she doesnt like Bao Ziqi, what does it matter? Shes taken over the Dijing Research and Development Department, shes got billions in shares, she even has the high regard of Bao Jingyan!" He sighed suddenly, "Qionglin, cant you see? From now on, our Su Family will depend on her favor." Su Qionglin refused to believe it. Impossible! Their Su Family has been a family of schrs for generations, her fathers reputation renowned in Jiangcheng, how could they be beholden to... Su Ruanruans mood? To a... an orphaned girl? Thus, she urgently said, "Dad, you are mistaken, if Ruanruans background bes known, not only will her future be destroyed, but our Su Family will also be dragged down by her." She had hardly finished speaking when Old Master Su cursed, "Nonsense creature!" Su Yugu quickly tried to pacify, "Old Master, please calm down." Old Master Su pointed at Su Qionglin and said to her father, "Better keep an eye on this disappointing creature youve raised! Shes only got eyes for men, unable to discern right from wrong!" Su Qionglin looked lost. Su Yugu became harsh, proiming, "Qionglin, forget about Bao Ziqi! From now on, whenever you see Ruanruan, treat her like your own sister!" His voice grew even heavier, "The future of our Su Family is in her hands." After speaking, he raised his voice, "Take the young miss upstairs and keep an eye on her!" Chapter 196 Ruanruan, You Are Really Energetic

Chapter 196: Chapter 196 Ruanruan, You Are Really Energetic

A momentter, Su Qionglin was taken upstairs. She threw herself on the bed and cried for who knows how long. Her mother entered like a ghost. "Mom!" Su Qionglin burst into her arms crying. Su Familys aunt gritted her teeth: "Stop crying! The old man and your dad are confused, mom is not, I will help you!" Su Qionglin with tears like pear blossoms. Su Familys aunt quietly handed over an invitation. Su Qionglin forgot to cry. Su Familys aunt gritted her teeth: "At the charity dinner, you must outshine that girl! When the time is right, expose her background! She wont die but shell lose ayer of skin." Su Qionglin smiled softly. Su Familys aunts voice became even more terrifying: "My daughter is so beautiful! We cant let a wild child steal the spotlight!" She sneered darkly: "Without the identity of the Su Familys daughter, Ruanruan is nothing." Su Qionglin immediately cheered up. She ran to the wardrobe to pick a dress. [Mom, which one looks good?] [How about this one?] [Or this one is better.] ... Mrs. Su chuckled softly. Qionglin, finally figured it out! * Dijing Hotel, parking lot. Su Ruanruan got out of the ck limousine. She was wearing a Issey Miyake suit, her long hair tied up. Delicately beautiful. When she got out, her slender, fair legs were eye-catching. Xiao Ran followed her, whispering: "The press reception is about to start! Director Bao is waiting for you." Su Ruanruan nodded slightly. The two were about to enter when a hoarse voice rang out. Three parts rogue, seven parts emotionally stirring. "Ruanruan!" Su Ruanruan turned her head and saw. It was Mu Jiu. Mu Jiu looked a bit different than usual, his beard had not been shaved for days. He looked quite haggard! There were also some blood stains on his clothes. Su Ruanruan watched him quietly, "What does Mr. Mu need?" She was cold, but Mu Qun didnt mind. He liked her icy and pure appearance. Mu Qun lit a cigarette to clear his mind, his gaze intense, he examined Su Ruanruan from head to toe. Then, he chuckled lightly: "Ruanruan, you look really good in this outfit!" He thought for a moment before finding the words: "It has an untouchable, sacred aura!" Although, he wanted to desecrate her! His intentions were not good, but Su Ruanruan was not intimidated. In Jiangcheng, its hard to avoid familiar faces. She couldnt be afraid of him! Thus, Su Ruanruan spoke openly: "Thank you for thepliment, Mr. Mu!" Mu Qun grinned. Su Ruanruan nodded and was about to leave. Mu Jiu waved to her and threw out a sentence: "See you at the charity dinner next week." Charity dinner? Su Ruanruan ascended the stairs, lost in thought. Xiao Ran reminded: "Its Director Baos suggestion!" She lowered her voice: "Bao Ziqi will also be there." Su Ruanruan gave her a nce and said nothing. Xiao Ran couldnt help but worry internally. One Bao Ziqi already caused a headache, and now another Mu Jiu... She worried that Ruanruan couldnt handle both. In the parking lot, Mu Jiu still stood smoking. His gaze lingered on the direction Su Ruanruan left. Damn, this girl at 18 has turned out really well, from behind, curves and dips where they should be, much more vigorous than those women at the clubs! Zhou Susu swayed her hips as she came down. She gave a resentful look far off, and then turned to Mu Qun coquettishlyining: "Everyones gone, and youre still staring!" "What do you know?" Mu Jiu fiercely inhaled his cigarette, intoxicatingly bewildered: "A day apart feels like three years!" He acted as if she couldnt understand. Zhou Susu scoffed, not knowing who it was that kept her rolling all ofst night! Chapter 197: This pretty boy, very formidable!

Chapter 197: Chapter 197: This pretty boy, very formidable!

Zhou Susu harbored disdain in her heart, but her expression remained sweet: "Im just concerned about you!" She deliberately said, "Master Mu, you are injured, you should go to the hospital." Mu Jius gaze became sharp. Damn, today he had fallen into Bao Jingyans trap! This bastard was incredibly cunning, not only using his power to strike at his business but also sending someone to snipe him. It wasnt too harsh nor too soft, just like ying a cat and mouse game. Mu Jiu was bing anxious! He had always encountered those who, like him, lived life on the edge, men who licked blood off their knifes edge, but it was the first time he met a sinister pretty boy like Bao Jingyan! But this pretty boy, was very formidable! Master Mu felt displeased with his defeat. He suddenly came up with a n. At the charity dinner, he could indeed pull the wool over Bao Jingyans eyes! ... Dijing Hotel 28th floor. Su Ruanruan and Xiao Ran had just entered when Bao Mingyuan kindly called her over. He did so with a patriarchal affectionate manner. He introduced her to the media and specifically praised her important role at Dijing. There was a buzz of discussion below. "Developing new drugs, its not easy!" "Shes so young, can she handle it?" "Could it be because of Bao Ziqis rtionship, Mr. Bao has a bias to promote her?" ... Aside from envy and astonishment, no one believed Su Ruanruan could manage the new drug development. Bao Mingyuan was somewhat displeased and was about to speak. His arm was gently pressed down by a delicate hand. Su Ruanruans voice was soft: "Im young, its normal that others dont believe or ept it! Uncle, you dont have to mind the gossip, once we achieve results these people will naturally say nothing." Bao Mingyuan instantly liked her even more. This child, so clear-headed! He had biological daughters too. Jingse, who was capable but too domineering. Jingyuan, who was capricious. Only Ruanruan, who was truly dear to his heart. Therefore, Bao Mingyuan held back his words, believing in and valuing Ruanruan, trusting that one day, she would fiercely prove these people wrong! After the press conference, he and Su Ruanruan went downstairs together. He initially wanted her to go to thepany with him, but Xiao Ran said: "Young Master Jingyan is waiting at the vi for Miss Su to report on her work." "Vi?" Bao Mingyuan was startled: "Jingyan has been discharged from the hospital?" Xiao Ran nodded. Bao Mingyuan sighed with relief: "Its good for him to go home and recuperate." He instructed Su Ruanruan: "Jingyans injuries are not fully healed, remind him to rest more! Ill visit him another day." Su Ruanruan nodded. After Bao Mingyuans car drove away, Xiao Ran took a taxi and left on his own. Su Ruanruan took Old Zhaos car to the vi. The car stopped as dusk approached. The twilight spread, with rosy clouds floating in the sky. Bao Jingyan was wearing light blue jeans and a white shirt, his arm in a sling. He clutched a cigarette between his teeth, his other hand holding a hose, watering thewn. He looked three or four years younger. Like a college student fresh out of school. Su Ruanruan stood there watching him. Bao Jingyan looked up and smiled at her. "Ruanruan,e here." She walked over to him in high heels. "Your shoulder isnt fully healed," she said softly, "you should rest more." "I cant stay lying down," he snuffed out his cigarette with a puff and continued his chores. Later, he washed his hands and led her into the hall. Auntie Li brought over fruit tea,ining to Su Ruanruan: "The master is reckless because hes young, I think he justcks a wife to manage him." Such an obvious joke, Su Ruanruan wouldnt respond. She sipped her tea quietly. Bao Jingyan yfully retorted: "Auntie Li, introduce me to someone." Auntie Li pretended to be troubled: "Miss Su wouldnt be happy." "Auntie Li, I would be upset," said Su Ruanruan in a weak voice. Bao Jingyanughed, much delighted. She was a bit surprised, seldom seeing himugh like this. Chapter 198: Ruanruan, Stay with Me Tonight

Chapter 198: Chapter 198: Ruanruan, Stay with Me Tonight

Bao Jingyan tugged at her ear, "What is it? Why are you looking at me so dumbfounded?" Su Ruanruan shook her head. After a moment, she added, "You rarely smile like this." Bao Jingyan leaned in, whispering in her ear, "Thats because Ruanruan is here." She felt somewhat shy and nced at him. "Im here to report on official business." But Bao Jingyan wasnt in a hurry; he instructed the chef to prepare dinner. Apart from the special dishes of Jiang City, he also had the chef make a spicy crab and prawn dish! "Youve just been shot, you cant eat spicy food," Su Ruanruan disagreed. Bao Jingyan pressed on her shoulders, "Now is the best time for eating crabs, and I love this dish." Su Ruanruan wanted to argue, but he silenced her with a kiss. After the kiss, she weakly slumped into his arms. At the dinner table, naturally, the dish of spicy crab was present. Bao Jingyan only ate a few pieces before he stopped and started peeling for her. Su Ruanruan prefers light vors, but she couldnt resist the tempting aroma and ended up eating several pieces. Until her little face turned red with the spice, and she choked. Bao Jingyan took a napkin and gently wiped her hands, smiling, "We have to train for this, we must eat this every year on this day!" Every year... Su Ruanruan hesitated for a moment. Then she realized she had been tricked, giving him a ming look. This man, always finding opportunities to tease her. Bao Jingyanughed heartily. Su Ruanruan lowered her head, murmuring softly, "I need to go back." Bao Jingyan caught her wrist, simply saying, "Dont go." She looked at him, somewhat dazed. Bao Jingyans expression was calm, and if you didnt look down, it would be hard to notice he was firmly holding her under the table. The distinction between male and female strength was clear. "Dont go," he repeated, "It was hard to finally move back in, Ruanruan, stay with me tonight." Su Ruanruan cast her eyes down, silently. She didnt speak. So, Bao Jingyan reached out to hold her. "Dont..." she gasped in surprise. He still had a wound on his shoulder! Yet Bao Jingyan didnt let go, his forehead resting against hers. Their breaths mingling warmly. He spoke in a hoarse whisper, "Dont move, Ill carry you upstairs." His Ruanruan was modest and shy, and regarding that matter, Bao Jingyan never forced her. He carried her upstairs with one arm. cing her on the sofa, he cajoled her tenderly. Su Ruanruan felt both shy and annoyed, turning her little face away, "You clearly just..." "What did I do?" he massaged her little hand, softly saying, "I can be more excessive in the bedroom, but I still have to give face to my wife in public." Su Ruanruan bit her lip, "Twisting the facts." He wasnt in a hurry, instead, he calmly coaxed her. "Ruanruan, do you truly dislike me? If you dislike me, howe youre willing to stay?" "If you dislike me, why would you agree to sleep in my bed?" ... He kissed her with every sentence he said. Su Ruanruan was flustered by his teasing, her face flushed with shyness. Bao Jingyan leaned in close, gently slipping off her high heels... Perverse! But ultimately, he didnt have the heart to take the final step. ... An hourter, Su Ruanruan went to the bathroom to wash her hands. When she came out, Bao Jingyan was leaning on the sofa looking over the documents she had brought. He had been presumptuous earlier, but now he was all serious. Bao Jingyan heard her and tenderly suggested, "Go take a bath and change into something morefortable; isnt the suit restrictive?" Su Ruanruan wanted to say that its better to discuss official matters in her current attire, but then she remembered the events from earlier. It seemed... unnecessary. She took a yukata from the dressing room and entered the bathroom. The sound of running water... Bao Jingyan finished reading the documents, listening to the sounds from inside. Suddenly, he walked over, pulled open the bathroom door, and leaned against the doorway... Chapter 199: Banquet, Jealous Rivalry1

Chapter 199: Chapter 199: Banquet, Jealous Rivalry1

Su Ruanruan was startled. She covered herself. Bao Jingyan asked her softly, "I heard youre attending the banquet with Bao Ziqi next week?" Su Ruanruan finished bathing, gently wiping her body. She asked, "Did Sister Fu tell you, or did Housekeeper Wang let it slip?" Bao Jingyan chuckled, "Does it make a difference?" Su Ruanruan felt somewhat annoyed and didnt pay him any attention. After a while, she finally spoke seriously, "Its not just me and Bao Ziqi going." She nced at him, "If youre worried, you cane along too." Bao Jingyan admired the way she dressed, while speaking, "Theres nothing to worry about." He knew Su Ruanruans temperament quite well. She was in his bed. What was there to worry about? Su Ruanruan stepped out of the bathroom. She looked stunning. Her long ck hair was still damp, draped over her shoulders, and her small oval face was beautiful and delicate, her eyes sparkling. She wore a loose white bathrobe tied at the waist, which Bao Jingyan could easily grasp with one hand. He made her lie across his legs and blow-dried her hair for her. Recently fatigued, Su Ruanruan felt sleepy as she rxed. Half-clinging to him, she murmured half-asleep, "Today, I saw Mu Qun." "Hmm?" Bao Jingyan remained unfazed. "He didnt look good! There was blood on him." Su Ruanruan slightly opened her eyelids, showing a cuteness simr to her age, "Bao Jingyan, did you do it?" Bao Jingyan didnt hide it from her and hummed an acknowledgment with a nod. Su Ruanruan didnt say anything more. She fell asleep. Bao Jingyan looked down at his little girl... Her features were picturesque, her skin white and porcin-like. But there was a faint shadow under her eyes. She was indeed exhausted! Bao Jingyan carried her to the bed and watched her for a long while before gently kissing her forehead. "Goodnight, Ruanruan." ... In the following days, Su Ruanruan was very busy. She would stay in theboratory all day and not return to the vi until well past midnight. But no matter howte, Bao Jingyan would wait for her. Hed prepare a bowl of noodles for her, a warm cup of milk. They resembled a little married couple. Su Ruanruan didnt know whether she truly liked him or had given up resisting; she epted his kindness and even those things she once thought were unclean. ... Five dayster, Jiangcheng Charity Banquet. A gathering of celebrities. Bao Mingyuan and his wife, along with Bao Ziqi and Su Ruanruan, arrived in full regalia. Su Ruanruan was now a celebrity in Jiangcheng and naturally became the center of attention. Upon her arrival, thedies and socialites of Jiangcheng rushed to get acquainted, with her taking the limelight. Bao Ziqi, always by her side. Though his expression was calm, he didnt show any signs of impatience. People whispered discussions: Second Young Master Bao really likes Miss Su! These gossips reached Su Qionglins ears. She watched Su Ruanruan and Bao Ziqi stand side by side, with Bao Ziqi frequently positioning himself protectively beside Su Ruanruan, looking every bit the gant escort. She felt jealous and resentful. What a hypocrite Su Ruanruan was! She imed she would never marry Ziqi, but now she was publicly showing off as a couple. Just as Su Qionglin was about to approach, lord Mu Jiu arrived. These days, lord Mu Jiu was at odds with the Bao Family. All because of Su Ruanruan! Lord Mu Jiu was a man who lived on the edge, but not only could he not take advantage against Bao Jingyan, he ended up being embarrassingly outmaneuvered. For todays encounter, lord Mu Jiu had shaved and changed into a ck velvet tuxedo. Dashing and handsome, it masked much of his fierce demeanor! He eyed the Bao Family from afar. Bao Mingyuan looked extremely happy. Lord Mu Jiu sneered in his heart: Bao Mingyuan is blind! Its clearly Bao Jingyan who has an affair with Su Ruanruan! However, this Second Young Master Bao is also a thorn in the eye! Chapter 200: Banquet, Jealous Rivalry 2

Chapter 200: Chapter 200: Banquet, Jealous Rivalry 2

Mu Jiu approached provocatively and said to Bao Ziqi, "Its rare for Second Young Master Bao to attend such a banquet. Seems like youre ready tovish money on a beauty!" Bao Ziqi also disliked Mu Jiu. He lowered his voice and asked Su Ruanruan, "Why has hee over here?" Su Ruanruan asked indifferently in response, "Bao Ziqi, do I need to exin this to you?" Bao Ziqi was infuriated. His handsome and refined face turned cold, as he took a ss of wine from a waiters tray nearby. He downed it in one gulp. He said to Su Ruanruan, "Shouldnt we keep our distance from people like him?" Meanwhile, Su Qionglin was very happy. She had long heard that Mu Jiu loved Ruanruan unrequitedly and it seemed that today he was going to make things difficult for her. She waited quietly. On the other hand, Su Ruanruan didnt mind Bao Ziqis anger. She walked to a corner. There, thedies gathered. Madame Gu was also there. Upon her arrival, Madame Gu pulled her over to sit down and quietly asked, "How did youe together with Ziqi?" Su Ruanruans gaze was light and airy, as she remained silent. Madame Gu chuckledzily, "Bao Mingyuan isnt giving up hope!" She had Su Ruanruan sit beside her to chat over tea. While they were speaking, Mu Jiu came over. Mu Jiu carried an imposing presence, instantly discing twodies upon his arrival. He offered a generous gift with a beaming smile, "A small token, please ept it withughter, godmother." Godmother? Who is your godmother? Madame Gu sneered. She opened the box. Insidey a diamond ne worth tens of millions. Madame Gu closed the gift box and pushed it back without a trace of emotion. She said very politely, "How formal of you, little Jiu." As her words fell, thedies around her covered their mouths and chuckled. Madame Gu was of high status. With a simple little Jiu, she subtly asserted the age difference. Although Mu Jiu was somebody, in front of the powerful Gu Yunpei, he was still the younger brother. Of course, the happiest was Gu Jiarou. She couldnt stand Mu Jius licentious demeanor, and she liked even less how he clung to Ruanruan. She deliberately said in a coquettish tone, "Not just anyone can win over Ruanruan." Mu Jius eyes widened. Here was this little brat again. But in front of Madame Gu, Mu Jiu still put on an act, leaning toward Su Ruanruan with a warm voice, "Whatever you like, Ill bid for you!" Su Ruanruan was just about to speak when, out of the corner of her eye, she inadvertently saw Su Qionglin. Su Qionglin was wearing a strapless evening gown, ravishing and captivating. At the moment, her mouth curled into a cold smile, awaiting Su Ruanruans embarrassment. Su Ruanruan of course knew. She said to Mu Qun, "There are indeed a few things I want, not sure if Ill be able to bid for themter." Gu Jiarou spoke up immediately, "Let Gu Ze brother buy them for you." She knew about Su Ruanruans true background and stated it as a matter of course. Madame Gu also said with a smile, "Indeed, if you like something, let Gu Ze bid for it." Su Ruanruan nodded lightly. Then, she cast a subtle nce at Mu Jiu. Her eyes were tender and soft. Mu Jiu nearly melted. With his enormous wealth, he wished he could offer it all up at this moment. Su Ruanruan chose to quit while she was ahead. Just then, the auction was about to begin, and thedies all took their seats. Su Ruanruans seat was next to Bao Ziqi, and as soon as she sat down, Bao Ziqis cold voice rang out, "I was initially worried you might be troubled, seems my concerns were unnecessary!" He thought resentfully: shes like a fish in water. He was sarcastic and mocking, but Su Ruanruan did not exin. She really didnt care about Bao Ziqi. Originally, Bao Ziqi was interested in a Qing Dynasty jade bottle, its entire body a translucent blue that would be exquisitely beautiful on the bedside adorned with a dewy fresh flower. But now, enraged, he had no intention of buying it. Chapter 201: When chasing a woman, you must be passionate and fiery 1

Chapter 201: Chapter 201: When chasing a woman, you must be passionate and fiery 1

Bao Ziqi was angry. Su Ruanruan showed no reaction. The calmer she was, the angrier he became. Their awkward interactions appeared somewhat amusing to onlookers. Bao Mingyuan was very pleased, and he even whispered a few words to Mrs. Bao. Su Qionglin was extremely ufortable. All of this was originally hers. It was Su Ruanruan who had taken everything from her. But it didnt matter, for in a moment, when rough-around-the-edges Mu Jiu made his move, the Bao Family would naturally me Su Ruanruan for losing face. By then, she wanted to see how Su Ruanruan would resolve the situation. Su Qionglin held her breath in anticipation. At this moment, the auction officially began. The first item, surprisingly, was the jade bottle Bao Ziqi had his eye on. On stage, the auctioneer in a cheongsam spoke in a girlish voice: "Legend has it that this Qing Dynasty Jade Bottlees with an ancient and beautiful tale... The starting bid is 500,000!" The elites in the audience were all eager to act. Their thoughts, much like Bao Ziqis. Big shots were fighting tooth and nail! Bao Ziqi pursed his lips. Soon, the price soared to 1.2 million. The cheongsam-d host was overjoyed, "1.2 million, any more?" Mu Jiu made his move. "1.5 million." He grinned at Su Ruanruan: "Ruanruan should like it." Bao Ziqis face grew even uglier. Bao Mingyuan frowned Mu Jius behavior was in poor taste! He nced at Su Ruanruan, feeling somewhat heavy-hearted. This girl, she better not lose decorum. Naturally, Su Ruanruan knew all eyes were on her, whether she epted or refused Mu Jius gift, it would be embarrassing. But she already had a n! Under everyones gaze, Su Ruanruan smiled faintly and raised her paddle: "2 million." Everyone present couldnt believe it, unbelievable! Su Ruanruan actually made a bid herself! Oh my, the nouveau riche of Jiang City are truly extraordinary, casually bidding 2 million. Mrs. Bao, however, frowned and whispered to her husband: "Isnt Ruanruan spending money too liberally?" Bao Mingyuan remained silent. He didnt know what trick Su Ruanruan was ying, but he trusted the girl. The girl was not only talented but also knew her limits. Sure enough, Mu Qun couldnt help himself. He boldly raised his paddle. million! The crowd was astonished. So rich and bold! Mu Jiu turned to Su Ruanruan to ingratiate: "How could I let a woman spend money!" It was clear to everyone that the money was spent for Su Ruanruan. What was originally a tacky matter, Su Ruanruan handled with her usualposure. She even gave the wealthy patron a faint smile. "4 million." Mu Jius spirit was immediately stirred. He rubbed his chin,ughing: "5 million." After saying that, he tilted his chin up at Su Ruanruan. But Su Ruanruan pretended not to see and nodded as a gesture of acknowledgment, declining to continue. The entire room went deathly silent. Then, everyone understood. Mu Jiu had tried to tease Su Ruanruan, only to be outmaneuvered and end up paying 5 million. Those who had previously underestimated Su Ruanruan no longer dared to do so. But Mu Jiu didnt care. Spending 5 million on a broken bottle was indeed a little pricey, but winning over ady always cost something. Mu Jiu went on stage to sign the paperwork and write a check. The crowd below couldnt help but feel envious. When Mu Jiu came down from the stage, he was full of pride and even went over to present the treasure to Su Ruanruan. "Like anything else? Ill buy it for you!" Su Ruanruan gazed at him coolly. Very indifferently. But just such a demeanor was what Mu Jiu fell for. At this time, Bao Ziqi figured out Su Ruanruans tactic and asked softly, "Are you nning to make him bleed heavily?" Su Ruanruan didnt look at him, speaking softly: "Mr. Mu is doing charity." Chapter 202: To Pursue a Woman, You Must Do It Fiercely and Passionately Fire 2

Chapter 202: Chapter 202: To Pursue a Woman, You Must Do It Fiercely and Passionately Fire 2

Bao Ziqi didnt say anything more. He just, gaze burning slightly as he watched her. His heart was conflicted. He had clearly given up on Su Ruanruan long ago, yet he couldnt help but pay attention to her. She made him both love and hate her! Bao Ziqis thoughts wildly churned, and Su Ruanruan had no idea. Her entire attention was engaged in a battle of wits with Mu Jiu, partly because he provoked her and partly because she wanted to vent on Bao Jingyans behalf. Next up in the auction, if Su Ruanruans gaze lingered on an item for more than ten seconds, Mu Jiu would definitely secure it, not to mention if Su Ruanruan herself raised the bidding paddleMu Jiu would then redouble his efforts to win it. The charity dinner became Mu Jius home field. Mu Jiu was triumphant. Chasing a woman should be done with a bang! But halfway through the auction, Mu Jiu broke out in a cold sweat. Upon a rough calction, he had already spent over 100 million. The cost seemed a bit too high! He hesitated slightly when Su Ruanruans gaze lightly swept over him. In that gaze, there was a faint disdain. Mu Jiu was frozen in ce. How could he let Ruanruan think he was stingy or that he was not capable enough? Absolutely not! Thus, Mu Jiu went all out and secured all the auction items of the banquet. Signing checks totaling over 300 million. The auction house immediately popped champagne to celebrate. Hehe, rich fools are hard to find these days! Of course, the person they should thank the most was Miss Su. Miss Su, new to society, handled Mu Jius antics beautifully, neither humble nor arrogant! She was on par with the standards of a high-societydy! Bao Mingyuan was even happier. He gently stroked his wifes arm, affectionately saying, "Our Ruanruan handled it so well!" Mrs. Bao was so angry she could spit blood. What did he mean by "our Ruanruan"? But Bao Mingyuan didnt care about her anymore, and directly went towards Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan was talking to others, being polite and modest. Bao Mingyuan went and patted her shoulder, saying cheerfully, "Ruanruan, you did well." Su Ruanruan smiled lightly. Her smile showing off her small teeth, beautiful and lovely. Bao Mingyuan then said to his son beside him, "What are you waiting for, ask Ruanruan to dance?" What a good opportunity this was. Bao Ziqi looked at Su Ruanruan. Her gaze was light. Clearly angry. Because just now he had looked down on her, didnt believe in her. Bao Ziqi, such an arrogant man, involuntarily bowed his head. He awkwardly apologized, "I was wrong just now, I wasnt a gentleman." Su Ruanruan didnt dislike him. She said, "You helped me, were even now." Bao Ziqi looked at her delicately beautiful face, his feelingsplex. If it werent for Bao Jingyan, he would have pursued her crazily like Mu Jiu. Shamelessly, throwing fortunes. But, he had lost his chance long ago. Bao Ziqi extended his hand towards her, requesting very gentlemanly, "Ruanruan, lets dance together." After he finished speaking, he was stunned. It was the first time he had called her Ruanruan, yet it came out as naturally as if he had rehearsed it a thousand times. Su Ruanruan looked at him. She didnt mind dancing a normal social dance with him, but Su Qionglin was also nearby. With a venomous gaze. Su Ruanruan didnt want to pay for their love. She softly said, "Sorry." Bao Ziqi was somewhat disappointed. His expression mncholic, but he didnt insist. Watching her walk towards Mrs. Gu, holding a ss of red wine and chatting with the Gu family women, her expression joyful and rxed. Bao Ziqi seldom saw Su Ruanruan this happy, and he couldnt help but feel gloomy. When Su Ruanruan was with her own mother, it was always a sh of titans. So even if they were together, Ruanruan wouldnt be happy, would she! Chapter 203 You Fell in Love with Her!

Chapter 203: Chapter 203 You Fell in Love with Her!

Bao Ziqi was in a bad mood, he wanted to go out for some fresh air. Su Qionglin blocked his way. "Ziqi." She called him softly. Bao Ziqi was momentarily distracted, then his gaze deeply fell on his former fiance. Su Qionglin was still beautiful, tall and slender. But he had lost interest. "Is there something?" Bao Ziqi asked gently, not wanting to embarrass her. Su Qionglin choked up momentarily, then cautiously asked, "Can we talk outside?" Bao Ziqi agreed. He took Su Qionglin to the emergency exit, and as soon as they stood still, he took out a cigarette and lit it. Su Qionglin started softly, "Ziqi, youve changed." He took a drag of the cigarette and exhaled a long puff of smoke, then asked somewhat teasingly, "Changed how?" "You dont even ask how Ive beentely." Su Qionglin tried to evoke some fond memories of the past. Bao Ziqis gaze was profound. Unable to hold back, Su Qionglin blurted out, "Did you fall in love with Su Ruanruan?" She bit her lip, "Did she seduce you?" Bao Ziqi could easily deny it, but a strange thought crossed his mind. He had fallen for Su Ruanruan, the woman of Bao Jingyan, which was hard for him to admit. Yet, he inexplicably wanted to confide. And the person he would confide in was Su Qionglin. His lips moved slightly as he said self-mockingly, "She didnt seduce me! She does not fancy me." Su Qionglin didnt believe it. "Are you still defending her?" She was on the verge of tears, "Ziqi, I told you Ruanruan is not simple, she easily tore us apart." Her eyes reddened as she grasped Bao Ziqis arm, pleading softly, "Ziqi, can we start over? Lets go to Britain, where theres no Su Ruanruan, we would be very happy." Bao Ziqi looked down at the hand holding his arm. Slender and wless. He could agree, and then he would have a pleasant night. But Bao Ziqi still refused. "Im sorry, Qionglin." He pulled his hand away. Su Qionglin shed tears. "Why? Is it because of the engagement party? Ziqi, I was just scared, scared that Su Ruanruan would take my ce!" She sobbed uncontrobly, "Ziqi, I love you! Why cant you see that?" "I can see." Bao Ziqi smiled bitterly. Su Qionglin suddenly looked up. Desires reflected in her eyes. Was he changing his mind? But the moment she met his calm, undisturbed gaze, she despaired. There was not a trace of longing in his eyes. Su Qionglin stepped back, shaking her head repeatedly, "Youve fallen for her... youve fallen for her!" Hatred filled her eyes as she pronounced each word, "Ill never let Su Ruanruan get her way." Saying so, she turned and walked away. Bao Ziqi did not think to chase after her. He leaned against the wall smoking, but after he had smoked half the cigarette, his expression suddenly turned stern. He guessed what Su Qionglin was up to. She was going to cause trouble for Su Ruanruan. Bao Ziqi immediately stubbed out the cigarette and hurried towards the banquet hall. ... Inside the bustling auction banquet hall, Su Ruanruan, after mingling with thedies, quietly told Lady Gu, "Ill be leaving soon." Lady Gu softly asked, "Going to Jingyan?" Su Ruanruan did not conceal it and hummed an affirmative. Next to her, Gu Jiarou teased, "Ruanruan has Jingyan on her mind." "Thats right for you to say," Lady Gu pinched her nose,ughing. Su Ruanruans face turned slightly red, very charming. At that moment, Mu Jiu, who spent a lot of money, approached them trying to look very dignified, "I wonder if I could have the honor to ask Miss Su for a dance." Chapter 204: She Wants to Reveal Su Ruanruan鈥檚 Background

Chapter 204: Chapter 204: She Wants to Reveal Su Ruanruans Background

"No way, no how!" Gu Jiarou made a face. Mu Jiu chuckled and said to Madam Gu, "Your little niece is always giving me a hard time." Madam Gu nced at Gu Jiarou. Gu Jiarou immediately dared not speak. Mu Jiu looked at her mockingly and then turned to Su Ruanruan with a servile expression, "Ill send you all the footageter." Su Ruanruan coldly declined, "Mr. Mu has spent a lot of money, it wouldnt be right for me to snatch it away." She was distant, but Mu Jiu didnt mind. Fairies need to be coaxed after all. Just as Mu Jiu was about to speak again, a rustling voice suddenly rose from the stage, "Good evening, everyone." Su Ruanruan shuddered. That voice! She looked up and sure enough, it was her sister, Su Qionglin. She looked at Su Qionglin, and Su Qionglin was looking at her too. At that moment, Su Qionglins eyes were filled with hatred and a trace of determination. By revealing Su Ruanruans origins, Su Ruanruan would lose it all. At this moment, everyones gaze fell on her. Including the Bao Mingyuan couple. Bao Mingyuan whispered, "What is she trying to do?" Madam Bao obviously knew who Su Qionglin was targeting, and she just waited to watch the drama unfold. Dog-eat-dog shows were her favorite. On the stage, Su Qionglin smiled coquettishly. She said, "Today, I am here to congratte Su Ruanruan! Yes, she is my uncles daughter, very smart and charming...pletely bewitching Ziqi!" The room below fell abruptly silent. They looked at Su Qionglin, uncertain of what she wanted to say. But Bao Ziqi, who had rushed over, knew! He said coldly, "Su Qionglin!" Su Qionglin pointed her delicate finger on her red lips and coquettishly asked, "What, does that hurt your feelings?" Bao Ziqi suppressed his emotions, "Our matter has nothing to do with Su Ruanruan." "How can it have nothing to do with her? The biggest mistake is that you like her!" Su Qionglin started to cry, tears streaming down her face like a damsel in distress. Beautiful, yet indecent. Bao Ziqi was about to speak when Bao Mingyuan spoke solemnly, "I apologize for causing a disturbance." He was the wealthiest man in River City, no one dared to offend him. In an instant, the citys elites and dignitaries began to take their leave. Madam Gu was about to take Su Ruanruan away when Su Qionglin loudly objected, "She is not allowed to leave." Madam Bao came back to her senses and falsely said to her husband, "Mingyuan, Qionglin is Ruanruans sister, she surely means no harm! Besides... we need to solve the childrens issues." Bao Mingyuan nced at her. He ignored her. Madam Baos heart skipped a beat. Bao Mingyuan then looked at Su Qionglin, his tone indifferent, "The words youre about to say probably arent pleasant, Id rather not taint Ruanruans ears! So just say them to me and Ziqis mother, thats your goal, isnt it?" "Yes," Su Qionglins lips trembled. She looked resentfully at Su Ruanruan, clearly jealous. She could tell that Bao Mingyuan was already treating Su Ruanruan like a daughter. No, even more than that. Madam Gu was very sharp. She guessed that what Su Qionglin was about to reveal was most likely about Ruanruans origins, and that spiteful girl must think Ruanruans background is disgraceful, aiming to ruin Ruanruans image among the Bao family! Madam Gu turned to her niece, "Jiarou, take Ruanruan down first." Gu Jiarou hesitated for a moment but still pulled Su Ruanruan away. Once they were gone, Madam Gu stayed calm, "Now that no one else is here, Miss Three, you may speak freely." Su Qionglin tossed her hair and chuckled lightly, "You consider her a jewel, so its fitting I tell you all this." Madam Gu scoffed. But Bao Ziqi clenched his teeth, "Su Qionglin, have you thought this through?" Chapter 205: Does the Su Family Have a Royal Heir?

Chapter 205: Chapter 205: Does the Su Family Have a Royal Heir?

Bao Ziqis gaze was ice cold. Su Qionglin couldnt help but shrink back. But she hated Su Ruanruan too much, and as long as she could expose Su Ruanruan, she didnt care if Bao Ziqi hated her. Thus, Su Qionglin smiled lightly: "Ive thought it through." Bao Mingyuan red fiercely at his son. Useless, he still needed his old man to clean up his mess. He said to Su Qionglin: "Speak your mind, there are no outsiders here." Suddenly, he opened his mouth again, "But I want to tell you, no matter what you say, our Bao Family will not ept you as a daughter-inw again." Su Qionglins face turned pale. Suddenly, she started tough softly. Heh, they look down on her, do they? Once they know Su Ruanruans true identity, they will no longer protect her like this. Su Qionglin nced over several prominent figures in Jiangcheng, her red lips slightly parted: "Su Ruanruan is not Su Familys biological daughter! She was brought home by my second uncle." After she finished, she stared at Bao Mingyuan. And Bao Ziqi. She wanted to see their jokes. See how they will regret giving up on her, a pearl, and picking up Su Ruanruan, a worthless stone. Su Qionglin was holding a winning hand! After a while, Bao Mingyuan finally frowned and asked: "Is that all you have to say?" Su Qionglin was taken aback. Isnt this enough? Bao Mingyuans gaze was deep and unfathomable as he countered, "What does it mean, if shes not a biological child of the Su Family?" Su Qionglin muttered to herself: "If shes not the daughter of the Su Family, then she is... nothing!" At the end, her confidence waned. Madam Gu, standing by, scoffed coldly: "Do the Su Family have a throne to inherit?" She silenced Su Qionglin. After a long time, Su Qionglin found her voice again: "She is not my second uncles child, so she has no right to enjoy any of his glory. And moreover... shes even less worthy of the Bao Family and Ziqi." Madam Gu retorted: "Academician Su Peiming is a man of noble character, and Ruanruan was personally nurtured by him. Now that she is capable and aplished, why shouldnt she enjoy it? If not her, then who would?" Madam Gu was quick-witted and outspoken: "Is it your narrow-minded dad, or your mediocre elder brother?" Su Qionglins lips trembled. Shaking her head, her face full of disbelief, she said: "You guys dont care about her background?" She then turned to the Bao matron, pleading, "Auntie, you care the most about ones background, say something!" The Bao matron looked displeased. Su Qionglin bit her lip, letting slip her true thoughts: "You said you didnt like Su Ruanruan, thinking she was an orphan! Now shes not even an orphan, shes a bastard!" The Bao matron, however, was indifferent: "When did I say these words? You must not falsely use me, Qionglin!" Su Qionglin was stunned. The Bao matron was actually not helping her! Didnt she hate Su Ruanruan the most? Now was the perfect opportunity! She was foolish, not only offending the Bao matron but also thoroughly angering Madam Gu. Madam Gus mouth curled into a cold smirk. Very good, truly very good! This is how the Su Family treats her Yunxi! Her Yunxi, born into luxury and opulence. Had be "a bastard" in Su Qionglins mouth! Madam Gu said coldly: "Third Miss, mind your words! Otherwise, I dont mind turning the bastard you speak of into you! Then, it wont be a pretty sight for Third Miss." Su Qionglin shook her head in despair. Why... why dont they care at all about Su Ruanruans background? Instead, they target her at every turn! They must have been bewitched by Su Ruanruan! Su Qionglin cried out of unwillingness. Madam Gus voice was stern: "Remember, Third Miss, I mean what I say!" After saying that, she left with a swish of her sleeves. This attitude surprised even Bao Mingyuan and his wife. Madam Gu, it seems, was overly fond of Ruanruan! Biological children couldnt be more than this! Chapter 206: Bao Ziqi, Let Go!

Chapter 206: Chapter 206: Bao Ziqi, Let Go!

Mrs. Gu could not catch up with Su Ruanruan. Gu Jiarou got out of the car and said, "Ruanruan has already gone back." Mrs. Gu hesitated for a moment: "Then lets go back too." She thought she had to discuss todays events with her husband. Su Qionglin was crazed with grief, and she didnt want to aggrieve her daughter. Mrs. Gu was about to leave when a voice sounded behind her. "Mrs. Gu, please wait." Mrs. Gu turned around. It was Bao Ziqi. In fact, Mrs. Gu does not dislike Bao Ziqi, but as Ruanruans birth mother, she would somewhat resent him. He hadnt treated Ruanruan well! Nor could he protect Ruanruan. Mrs. Gu showed a shallow smile: "Is there anything else, Ziqi?" Under the dim lights, Bao Ziqi stood with his hands folded. His expression was as if he was contemting how to begin. After a moment, he finally said, "You are very good to her." Mrs. Gu lowered her eyes and chuckled softly. Ziqi was a perceptive child, at least more insightful than his parents. He was suspecting something, probing her. At the same time, she could tell that this boy had fallen into the web of love and could not extricate himself. For a time, Mrs. Gus feelings wereplex. She answered without giving anything away: "Ruanruan once saved my life, naturally, I will protect her." Thinking of what was best for Su Ruanruan, she said, "You know your mothers temperament; what Su Qionglin said might not be false! Marrying you might not lead to Ruanruans happiness! Ziqi, its time to let go when you need to." After speaking, she got into the car. The ck sedan slowly disappeared into the night. ... But Bao Ziqi remained standing there, pondering Mrs. Gus words. And thinking of... Su Ruanruan. She had left early and must have already arrived at Bao Jingyans vi. If in good spirits, they might do something joyous. Bao Ziqis face darkened as he threw a punch at the massive column in the parking lot. Su Ruanruan went back early. Bao Jingyan was already asleep. She did not disturb the servants and went straight upstairs to turn on the light. Bao Jingyans voice was somewhatzy: "Youre back so early?" Su Ruanruan hummed a response, took off her high heels, and while removing her earrings, walked towards the bed. She sat down on the edge of the bed, gently stroking his handsome face that had just awoken: "Youre sleeping early today?" "I took some medicine and felt sleepy," Bao Jingyan said, propping himself up slightly and leaning against the headboard. His deep blue bathrobe hung loosely on him. His beautiful and tight chest muscles were partly visible, and looking further down... it was all inherently sensual. Su Ruanruans face flushed. She was, after all, reserved and dared not look anymore, and vaguely said, "Im going to take a shower." Bao Jingyan held onto her. "Wait a minute." He gazed into her eyes and asked, "Have you nothing to tell me about tonights banquet?" ... Su Ruanruan stuttered: "What... what is there to say?" Bao Jingyan approached her ear: "Feeling guilty?" Su Ruanruan pushed him but failed to push him away. After thinking carefully, she said, "Theres nothing to tell! In any case, it was a very dull affair." "So, my Ruanruan wasnt a bit moved?" he asked slowly, toying with the soft flesh behind her ear, his questionden with an interrogative tone. "Not at all," Su Ruanruan responded without a hint of hesitation, pushing him away with the back of her hand. She walked towards the bathroom, then suddenly turned around and said, "Mr. Mu is not my type." Bao Jingyan couldnt help butugh: "Just call him Mu Jiu." Su Ruanruan did not argue with him. She simply went to take a shower. As the water poured down, she wasnt thinking about Mu Jius affairs, but about what Su Qionglin wanted to say. She had a premonition that Bao Jingyan knew. After her shower, she carried a certain seductive intent. Flirting without really flirting. She knew exactly what Bao Jingyan liked! But tonight, Bao Jingyan was being quite the gentleman. His elegantly bony and long fingers gently adjusted her bathrobe, then he casually said, "Its cold; be careful not to catch a chill." Chapter 207 Bao Jingyan Where Did You Go At Night

Chapter 207: Chapter 207 Bao Jingyan Where Did You Go At Night

Bao Jingyan is such a gentleman, and Su Ruanruan is quite speechless. Shes so reserved she wouldnt pester anymore. Burying her small face into the white pillow, pretending to sleep, her responses to Bao Jingyan werezy. "Whats wrong?" Bao Jingyan deliberately leaned close to her ear and whispered softly, "Thinking about it?" "No! Youre disgusting." Su Ruanruan pushed him. She wanted to go to the bathroom. But Bao Jingyan pulled her back and tenderly nibbled on her little nose: "So, my Ruanruan likes doing disgusting things the most." Her little face turned bright red. Looking like she was about to cry, she simply got out of bed hugging the nket. She refused to sleep with him any longer. Bao Jingyan leaned against the headboard, calling out to her, "Not sleeping with me, for real?" Su Ruanruan, holding the doorknob, turned her head, "President Bao is injured, you should rest more." He chuckled with a hint of naughtiness, "Its just a small wound, doesnt matter at all." "Shameless." Su Ruanruan ran away. Bao Jingyan still smiled. Momentster, he took a cigarette from the bedside box, lit one, and casually scrolled through his phone. His handsome face was full of scheming. After smoking two cigarettes, he guessed Su Ruanruan must have fallen asleep, then he sneaked downstairs quietly. ... He spent two to three hours in the basement, and when he came out, it was deep into the night. His deep blue nightgown had a trace of a bloody scent. Bao Jingyan took a shower, casually throwing his nightgown into the trash can. Early in the morning. Su Ruanruan slipped back into the bedroom. Bao Jingyan was standing in front of the floor-to-ceiling windows making a phone call. He was dressed in a pale blue shirt with charcoal grey trousers, freshly cropped hair, looking mature and handsome. Hearing the door open, he turned his head. Su Ruanruan, wrapped in a small nket and looking like a little bug, came in. Quite adorable. Bao Jingyan silently appreciated her for a while, then pointed towards the bathroom, signaling her to wash up. About two minutester, Su Ruanruan ran out from the bathroom. Bao Jingyan had just ended his call. She red at him, "Bao Jingyan, where did you gost night?" She wrinkled her little nose, "Your nightgown had bloodstains." Bao Jingyan chuckled lightly, "A small cut reopened on my shoulder." Su Ruanruan didnt believe him. He found her face with toothpaste foam cute, reached out, and pulled her into his arms. He wanted a kiss; Su Ruanruan refused. Her small hand pressed against his shoulder, busy unbuttoning his shirt. Bao Jingyanughed lightly, "Whats this, so early in the morning?" Su Ruanruan had already unwrapped the bandage on his shoulder. The supposedly injured skin was perfectly fine, not a mark of rupture. "You lied to me!" Su Ruanruan used. Bao Jingyan slowly buttoned up his shirt and straightened his tie. He smiled, "You dont like those violent affairs; I had to hide it from you." Su Ruanruan was furious. She bit her tender red lips, softly saying, "You dont treat this as a home! If you cared about this ce, you wouldnt bring people here to torment." She didnt want to say more, quietly heading towards the bathroom. The next second, she was hooked by her waist. She fell into a warm embrace. Her back pressed against his firm chest, she could even feel his heartbeat. Bao Jingyans face buried in her delicate neck, his voice muffled. "In the past, I just considered this ce for sleeping. Ruanruan, do you think this is home?" She was angry, refusing to entertain him. Bao Jingyan called her name softly again. Mellifluous, gentle. Su Ruanruan lowered her little neck, softly saying, "You are so reckless, how can you think about the future?" After speaking, she nced at him and struggled free. Bao Jingyan felt an emptiness in his chest. After a while, the sound of washing up echoed from the bathroom. He couldnt help but walk over, leaning on the doorway. He called her name again: "Ruanruan." Chapter 208: Listen to the Wife鈥檚 Words

Chapter 208: Chapter 208: Listen to the Wifes Words

Su Ruanruan fiercely washed her face. He said with a bitter smile, "I know you dont like how decisively I act, but..." "I know," Su Ruanruan interrupted him. She turned her head to look at him, her eyes full of shattered glimmers. She said, "Bao Jingyan, do you think if you protect me well, I can pretend to be ignorant andfortably enjoy your kindness? That all I need to do when youre injured is to change your dressing!" She paused, then continued, "Is this what you mean by being together?" Bao Jingyan was stunned for a moment. He had lived for 28 years and had never lost hisposure like this before. While he was dazed, Su Ruanruan had already pushed him away. "Go to hell, Bao Jingyan, I dont want this kind of love!" She quickly changed into another set of clothes and hurried downstairs. By the time Bao Jingyan regained his senses, she had already left in a car. Aunt Li, seeing hime down, couldnt help but mutter, "She left without even having breakfast." Bao Jingyan sat down and took a sip of his ck coffee, "You didnt stop her?" Aunt Li looked puzzled, "Its your job to coax her, why me me?" She couldnt resist adding, "You were quite loudst night!" Even though it was in the basement, those heart-wrenching screams were still unnerving to hear. Bao Jingyans eyes fell on the morning newspaper, and he remained silent. Yet his thoughts flew toward Su Ruanruan. Did Ruanruan say those things because she wants to be with me? A faint smile appeared on Bao Jingyans lips. It was very attractive. Taking advantage of his distraction, Aunt Li took his coffee away, "Youre injured and still drinking coffee! Miss Su said you need to drink more milk." Bao Jingyan thought nothing of it, "Miss Su is not here." "You still have to listen," Aunt Li whispered, "Miss Su said youre the type who likes to show off!" Bao Jingyan chuckled, "What did she say?" Aunt Li, slick and smooth, ran off swiftly. ... Su Ruanruan spent the day in an unsettled mood. She wondered whether to return in the evening or not. If she didnt, she was worried that he would neglect his health. But if she did, she feared being mocked by him. Back and forth, she agonized over it all day. At six oclock in the evening, she left work on time. Old Zhao, the driver, was waiting for her in the parking lot, very pleased, "Young Master Jingyan asked me to pick you up." Su Ruanruan gave Old Zhao a nce. Old Zhao smiled thick-skinned. Just as she was about to get into the car, someone behind her called her name. Su Ruanruan turned her head and saw Bao Ziqi standing a few meters away. With aplex expression. "Is there something you need?" Su Ruanruan asked, polite but distant. Bao Ziqi made an affirmative sound, then said to her, "Ill be waiting for you at the coffee shop ahead." He was very proud and walked away after speaking. Old Zhao disagreed, "Young Master Jingyan is still waiting for you!" Su Ruanruan had just had a minor quarrel with Bao Jingyan, and she was not pleased by the remark. She wasnt even married to Bao Jingyan yet, and he was already controlling her like this! If sheplied blindly, would she even have a ce in the household in the future? Besides, she was also curious about what Bao Ziqi came all this way for! So, Su Ruanruan softly said, "You wait for me here." Old Zhaos mouth hung open: No way! Please dont make Young Master Jingyan wear a green hat! Su Ruanruan red at him again. She was well aware of the dark thoughts in his mind. Across the street. Bao Ziqi sat in the meticulously decorated coffee shop, watching through the ss as Su Ruanruan walked towards him... His mood was indeedplicated. Last nights words from Su Qionglin had shocked him. He hadnt expected that Su Ruanruan was not actually the Su Familys biological child. She didnt know, did she? Thats why the Su Family had easily sacrificed her back then, letting her rece Su Qionglin as the "housekeeper" at the Bao Family... Chapter 209: Bao Ziqi鈥檚 Confession

Chapter 209: Chapter 209: Bao Ziqis Confession

Ziqi remained somewhat dazed even as Su Ruanruan sat down across from him. The waiter came over. "Atte, please," Su Ruanruan said in a low voice. The waiter took the order and couldnt help but take an extra look before leaving. This pair, strikingly beautiful. After the waiter left, Su Ruanruan softly asked, "Did you want to see me for something?" Bao Ziqi was clearly distracted. Su Ruanruan had no choice but to say, "Thank you for what happenedst night." Bao Ziqi snapped back to reality, his voice hoarse after a long while: "Thest time we sat together for coffee, it was because of Jingyuan! Just two short months, and so much has changed." Su Ruanruan gave a faint smile: "Is that so? I feel its still like before." Bao Ziqis expression soured. But he didnt want to argue with her today; he was very willing to have a coffee with her in a peaceful state. So, he spoke up: "Arent you curious what Su Qionglin said?" "Curious, indeed," Su Ruanruans attitude was good too, "Are you willing to tell me?" Bao Ziqi shook his head: "Its all uninteresting stuff." Su Ruanruan didnt believe it. Something that would make Bao Ziqi specifically look for her couldnt be trivial. But she had always been good at keeping herposure, so she didnt ask further. Just then, the waiter brought the coffee over, and Bao Ziqi disapprovingly said, "Girls shouldnt drink this." "Once in a while," Su Ruanruan wouldnt listen to him, and took a small sip. It was a bit bitter, and she frowned slightly. Bao Ziqi watched her. Her frame was truly delicate and fragile; if he hadnt seen with his own eyes the various methods she employed, how could he have known she had such capability! But no matter how talented or formidable she was, at the end of the day, she was still just an 18-year-old girl. Last night, when he found out she wasnt the Su Familys biological daughter, Bao Ziqi felt an additional pang of pity for her. He knew it wasnt right, she already belonged to Bao Jingyan. But if emotions could be controlled, they wouldnt be emotions. Bao Ziqi felt a rush of impulse. He caught her small hand that was holding the cup. Delicate, cool. Just like her personality. Su Ruanruan paused. She lowered her eyes, softly saying, "Bao Ziqi, what are you doing?" She withdrew her hand. Bao Ziqi looked at his empty palm, somewhat despondent. He murmured to her, "Before the new year, Im nning to return to Britain." "Congrattions," Su Ruanruan sipped her coffee to mask her feelings, "Your career is mainly there, thats good." "Is that so?" Bao Ziqi suddenly had a cold tone: "But I dont want to go back!" Su Ruanruan wouldnt pick up on such words. She gently put down her cup, "If theres nothing else, Ill be going." "You just wanted to ask what Su Qionglin said, right?" Bao Ziqi murmured: "You never wanted to see me!" Before Su Ruanruan could react, he abruptly seized her hand again. This time, unlike before, it was forceful and dominant. Su Ruanruans wrist hurt. She pulled away with effort, restraining her emotions: "Bao Ziqi, youre insane." "Yes! Im insane!" Bao Ziqi roared: "How could you not know why Im like this, Su Ruanruan?" He was emotional, yet Su Ruanruan still remained calm. She stepped back and smiled, "Bao Ziqi, I dont want to know." She pulled a fifty from her wallet and ced it on the table. Bao Ziqi was furious: "Fifty isnt enough for two cups of coffee." "Im only paying for mine." She blinked. Bao Ziqis expression turned uglier. She... She didnt even want to pay for his coffee! She walked towards the door, and he followed reluctantly, hissing in her ear, "Have you decided to be with him?" He even awkwardly expressed, "These days, dating a few times doesnt count for much!" Chapter 210: Let鈥檚 Play Together, Shall We?

Chapter 210: Chapter 210: Lets y Together, Shall We?

Ziqi understood the implications of his words. She turned her head and said softly, "Bao Ziqi, its impossible for me to be with you and have nothing to do with Bao Jingyan." Her gaze dropped, and her voice lowered, "We are not the same kind of people, we see things differently! Two such people together will only find it painful." After these unprecedented words, Su Ruanruan didnt know if he could understand. Even if Bao Ziqi didnt fully understand, he knew it was a rejection. He had his pride too. In a moment, he regained hisposure, "Ill take you to the parking lot." Su Ruanruan did not refuse. The two had just left the caf when someone bumped into them. It was Su Qionglins mother. The Su Familys aunt, frantic with rage, pointed at Su Ruanruan and scolded, "Its all because of you, a jinx, that Qionglin lost her marriage, and now even her career is about to be ruined." Suffering from unprovoked abuse, Su Ruanruan was unwilling to take it. She retorted, "What does my third sisters career have to do with me?" The Su Familys aunt was even more furious, cursing both Bao Ziqi and Su Ruanruan, "You two are nothing but a pair of heartless beasts! Bao Ziqi, following you has been Qionglins worst luck for eight lifetimes." "Well, now shes liberated!" Bao Ziqi spoke coldly. The Su Familys aunt was stunned. She muttered, "Ziqi, are you really so heartless?" Then she couldnt help but scream out, "Qionglins true heart has been fed to the dogs." "If you say so, then so be it." Bao Ziqi looked towards Su Ruanruan, "Shall we go?" The Su Familys aunt panicked, "Dont leave! We need to make things clear." Caught off guard, Su Ruanruans delicate arm was scratched by the Su Familys aunt, leaving a thin line of blood. Bao Ziqi pulled Su Ruanruan behind him. He confronted the Su Familys aunt. Su Ruanruan, however, stepped forward. Her manner was calmno panic, still speaking gently, "Auntie, the words Ive said in the past still stand. As for the issues with my third sisters career, I believe I havent interfered. Perhaps Auntie should find the person who is truly responsible, dont you think so?" Herposure made the Su Familys aunt seem like a madwoman. It also made Bao Ziqi realize her strength. He thought, she didnt need him at all. Bao Ziqi loosened his grip. Su Ruanruan left indifferently. The Su Familys aunt didnt leave; she had words for Bao Ziqi. Bao Ziqi didnt shut her out; he invited her back into the caf. After ordering coffee, the Su Familys aunt suddenly grabbed his hand, urgently asking, "Ziqi, do you still have feelings for Qionglin?" Bao Ziqi: ... Seeing his silence, the Su Familys aunt couldnt hide her disappointment. After a while, Bao Ziqi finally said, "I will help with Qionglins career!" He thought, this couldnt have been the doing of his father, probably the work of Bao Jingyan. That man, always so ruthless. * Su Ruanruan had more worries on her mind. When the car stopped at the vi, to her surprise, Bao Jingyan was in the yard practicing shooting. Several targets had been added to thewn. When he saw Su Ruanruan returning, he took off his sses and said somewhat carelessly, "Back from coffee?" Su Ruanruan was angry. "You had someone follow me again!" Bao Jingyan bowed his head to prepare the gun, raised his hand "With Bao Ziqi being so high-profile, it would be hard not to know." Su Ruanruan then knew. It was Old Zhao who had told him. She approached him, and asked softly, "Why are you ying with this at home?" Bao Jingyan took a shot with his gun. A bang. Nine points. He curled his lips slightly, "Someone said this is not home, so might as well let loose and have fun." Su Ruanruan was furious, determined to go upstairs for a shower. Before she had taken two steps, he hooked her around the waist. Bao Jingyans warm breath brushed her ear, "Wanna y together for a while?" "I dont touch these things." Su Ruanruan looked disdainfully at the gun in his hand, "Be careful or someone might report you for disturbing the peace." Bao Jingyan justughed. The man in ck beside him respectfully answered Su Ruanruans concern, "All the nearby vis have been bought by Young Master Jingyan, no one else lives here." Chapter 211 Bao Jingyan鈥檚 Methods 1

Chapter 211: Chapter 211 Bao Jingyans Methods 1

For quite some time, Su Ruanruan barely squeezed out a few words: "Bao Jingyan, youre sick." Bao Jingyan cooed at her in a low voice: "How about Miss Su keeps this sick manpany?" Su Ruanruan hesitated. Bao Jingyan had already had someone bring over a gun,pact and exquisite. Clearly, it was ready for use. Su Ruanruan took it, caressing it carefully, before asking him: "Have you given up pretending, resigned to your fate?" Bao Jingyan raised the gun. It was a perfect ten. Even though Su Ruanruan was angry, she couldnt help but admire him. Toyed with the object in her hands, she asked softly, "How do you use this?" Bao Jingyan watched her, his gaze somewhat fervent. Her delicate little hands holding that shiny ck object inexplicably excited him. He pulled her into his arms, teaching her hand by hand. Su Ruanruan was clever and got the hang of it quickly. Bao Jingyan put headphones on her and sat down on a lounge chair to rest. Above his head, a sun umbre. Initially it was out of interest, butter on, he was somewhat surprised. Ruanruan was quite talented; those small hands seemed naturally made for holding a gun. A box of bullets, yet she hit two nines. And this was her first time shooting! Bao Jingyan was reluctant to let her keep holding it, not wanting her hands to get calloused. He approached her from behind, whispering: "Dont you want to do something else?" Su Ruanruan blushed. She looked nervously at the people around. Those subordinates, unperturbed and calm. Bao Jingyan chuckled, "Where did your mind go? Were going to meet someone." Su Ruanruan was angry. He was clearly doing it on purpose. ... Bao Jingyan held her hand, leading her to the basement. Seeing her annoyed, he deliberately said: "If Ruanruan wanted to do something else, Im not against cooperating." He paused, speaking deliberately: "At worst, Id join the battle injured, hmm?" "Shameless!" Su Ruanruan covered her ears. She observed the secret passage leading to the basement; there was nothing special about it. Then, Bao Jingyan changed the subject: "It wasnt me who did that to Su Qionglin." Su Ruanruan was stunned: "Not you?" Bao Jingyan confessed honestly: "I hadnt gotten around to it yet! If it were me, her end would have been much worse than it is now." Su Ruanruan was both annoyed and amused. She really didnt know whether to praise him or what! While talking, they reached the basement. It was dark and somewhat cold; Su Ruanruan shivered slightly. "Didnt you say this is the feeling you wanted? Are you scared now?" Bao Jingyan mocked with a smirk. It was as if he was taunting her. Su Ruanruan red at him. But being delicate and frail, she wasnt very convincing. Bao Jingyan let her be, gesturing with his hand. A subordinate approached, "He still wont speak." Bao Jingyan smiled slightly: "Truly a good dog raised by Mu Jiu." In the basement, a man was tied up, disheveled. Covered in injuries, his face swollen and bruised. Su Ruanruan had never seen such a spectacle and was somewhat timid, but remembering what she had said that morning, she held back and sat beside Bao Jingyan. Bao Jingyan was utterlyposed. He lounged in the chair, a picture offort. The man trembled at the sight of him. Su Ruanruan asked softly, "Why is he so afraid of you?" Bao Jingyan chuckled. His Ruanruan was truly innocent. The man couldnt hold back and cursed loudly: "Bao Jingyan, just kill me if you dare! Ive received Mu Jius graces and will never betray him." Bao Jingyan took a knife and yed with it in his hands. Leisurely. A pleasing sight. But the mans heart thumped wildly, watching intently. He had suffered enough at the hands of this Bao; though he looked neat and tidy, his methods were incredibly ruthless! Some ideas, even Mu Jiu might not havee up with. Despite fear in his heart, the man pretended to be nonchnt, shouting, "If I die, Mu Jiu will avenge me! Bao, you better give up on that hope." Bao Jingyan justughed, unconcerned. He used the knife to peel an apple. Then, he handed it to Su Ruanruan: "To tide you over." Chapter 212 Bao Jingyan鈥檚 Methods 2

Chapter 212: Chapter 212 Bao Jingyans Methods 2

Su Ruanruan was left speechless. Is this what hes showing her? Bao Jingyan chuckled lightly: "Ruanruan, I am a civilized man." The man, bound and furious, cursed: "Bao, if youre civilized, then there are no more vile creatures left!" A look of surprise crossed Bao Jingyans face: "Whats uncivilized about me? Come on, say it out loud for everyone to hear." The mans face was full of injuries, now flushing with dark red. He stammered, unable to spit out a word. How could he voice such a humiliating thing? Seeing his state, Bao Jingyanughed inwardly. He sprawledfortably in his chair, eyeing the man: "If you wont talk, Ill do it for you." "Bao, Im going to kill you," the mans face turned beet red as he struggled violently. Bao Jingyanughed softly: "Be careful not to chafe!" He turned his head, jokingly speaking to Su Ruanruan: "Otherwise, someone will say Im brutal againter." Su Ruanruan did not touch the apple. In such an environment, only Bao Jingyan could remain so carefree. Hes too brutal! She asked the man softly, "What has he done to you?" The man, breathing heavily, turned his coarse face to the side. His neck was all red. Su Ruanruan turned to Bao Jingyan: "Hes very afraid of you!" "Oh?" Bao Jingyan yed with the tip of the knife, raising his stylish eyebrow. He struck up a domestic conversation with Su Ruanruan: "That spicy crab we hadst time was good, want to eat it again?" Su Ruanruan shook her head, then nodded. The bound mans Adams apple bobbed. Bao Jingyan smiled: "Dont worry, Ill have a bowl sent over to you shortly." "You would be that kind-hearted?" the man asked doubtfully. Su Ruanruan didnt believe it either. But Bao Jingyan replied: "You have to eat well to continue being tortured by me." The man was so angry he could spit blood. Bao Jingyan stared into his eyes and suddenly said, "Do you know how that dish is made?" The mans voice was rough: "It all boils down to the knife work." "Correct!" Bao Jingyan stroked his chin, smiling, revealing a set of nice white teeth: "You seem to have some brains and guts after all." "Cut the crap! Kill or sh as you please, just spare me this nonsense!" Bao Jingyan stood up and walked to the mans side. As he approached, the mans body tensed. He feared Bao Jingyans methods. "How could I neglect Ninth Masters man?" Bao Jingyan bent down, speaking very politely. He seemed to remember what he was going to say earlier: "Right! To make this spicy crab, you need to chop off the eight ws one by one, then split open the head right in the middle... Only then will it absorb the vor as it cooks." He added: "You have to cut quickly, otherwise the crab roe will spill everywhere and you lose the freshness." His voice was soft, his description downright chilling. Not just the man, but even Su Ruanruan felt disgusted. She wanted to say something but held back. The mans body shook, and he stubbornly retorted: "Bao, if I as much as frown, then Im no hero." "I am aware of your loyalty and ability!" Bao Jingyan patted his shoulder, extra friendly: "However, you have a sister, dont you? How about I invite her over to share this dish?" The man froze. After a moment, he screamed: "Bao, I want your life!" Bao Jingyan chuckled: "Qin Chao, can you still move?" Qin Chao breathed heavily, his eyes bloodshot, almost bulging out. "The youngdys skin is tender, she wont endure pain like a man." Bao Jingyan dusted off his pants: "As you know, I have limited patience." A pen and paper were thrown in front of the man. Chapter 213: Sorry to Interrupt, Please Continue!

Chapter 213: Chapter 213: Sorry to Interrupt, Please Continue!

Bao Jingyan walked out with Su Ruanruan. After a long walk, the sounds of a mans heart-wrenching screams could still be heard from behind. "Mu Jiu, Qin Chao has done you wrong!" Bao Jingyans lips curled into a light smile. Su Ruanruan disapprovingly said: "Your methods of interrogation are too hical." In the deserted corridor, Bao Jingyan pulled her into his arms... Completely bullied her inside and out! After a rough time, Su Ruanruans legs were weak. She leaned on him,cking even the energy to curse. He whispered into her ear, his voice hoarse: "Ruanruan, this is whats truly hical." Su Ruanruan bit her slightly swollen red lips. "I dont feel like eating spicy crab tonight." Bao Jingyanughed heartily. With his mood in high spirits, he hugged her to go eat. At the dining table, indeed, that dish was absent. "Eating spicy food all the time is not good for a girls health," Bao Jingyan became gentle again, very considerate. Su Ruanruan snorted, "Being with you is the most harmful to my health." Heughed. After a moment, he drew closer and said softly, "I havent really done anything to you yet, how is it harmful to your health?" Shamelessly, he added, "Wait until youve grown up and we are truly together, that will be bone-crushingly harmful." Su Ruanruan felt both embarrassed and angry, not wanting to deal with him. Aunt Li covered her mouth and chuckled. Su Ruanruan changed the subject: "About Su Qionglins incident, are you sure it wasnt you who did it?" "Not me," Bao Jingyan said discontentedly, "When have I ever lied to you?" Su Ruanruan ate her meal quietly. After a while, she suddenly said, "Bao Jingyan, dont you think Aunt Gu is being too nice to me?" Bao Jingyan raised his eyebrows, "What, you dont like it?" Su Ruanruan silently continued eating her rice. At that moment, someone came up from the basement. A piece of paper was ced in front of Bao Jingyan. After scrutinizing it, Bao Jingyan ground his teeth and chuckled lightly: "Now, Id like to see how Mu Jiu can still deny it." Su Ruanruan nced at him and went upstairs. Bao Jingyan asked Aunt Li: "What kind of look was she giving me just now?" Aunt Lis voice buzzed: "Definitely not a good look." "Its because you always indulge her," Bao Jingyan expressed his displeasure, "Remember, Im the one who pays your sry." Aunt Li was unfazed: "In other households, the servants listen to thedy of the house! The husband cant protect his own." An excuse! Bao Jingyan dismissed her: "Go upstairs and check on yourdy, she got a cut on her arm. Ask her what happened." He had noticed earlier. But Ruanruan had been deliberately covering it. Upon hearing this, Aunt Li immediately felt a surge of sympathy. Once she went upstairs, Bao Jingyan picked up his cell phone and called Mu Qun. Mu Jiu was in the middle of getting cozy with Zhou Susu when he saw the iing call and pushed the woman away to sit up straight: "Whats the asion today? Mr. Bao is actually making a call to me personally." He chuckled: "Its an honor for Mu." However, inwardly he thought: Kid,e at me openly or in secret, I have skin thick enough to handle it! On the other end, Bao Jingyan held the thin piece of paper and said with a faint smile: "I havent disturbed Mu Jius private matters, have I? Im calling in a hurry to tell you that Qin Chao has confessed everything." Mu Jiu didnt believe it! He said in a deep voice: "Impossible! Qin Chao is a real man." "So, you had him risk his life for you?" Bao Jingyan spoke calmly: "Dont forget, everyone has a weak spot! Does Mr. Mu forget that Qin Chao has a sister?" Mu Jiu swore. Then, he asked in a cold voice, "Where is he?" "Hes alive and well." Bao Jingyan stated bluntly: "Two ports in exchange for Mr. Mus safety." Mu Jiu couldnt help but curse again. Bao Jingyan maintained hisposure, incredibly patient: "I give Mr. Mu one night to think it over." He kindly added, "The matter that Mr. Mu interrupted earlier, you may continue it now." Chapter 214: The Thing that Ruins the Family鈥檚 Wealth

Chapter 214: Chapter 214: The Thing that Ruins the Familys Wealth

Over there, Mu Jiu mmed his phone down hard. Despicable! Bao Jingyan, that pretty boy, has no shame! He actually threatened me with Qin Chaos sister! Mu Jiu was seething with anger. Two ports, as if it were cutting his own flesh! Zhou Susu, who had fallen to one side, was very perceptive and asked cautiously, "Whats wrong, Boss Jiu?" Mu Jiu was in a very bad mood. "All because of your terrible idea!" After cursing Mu Jiu, he grabbed a pack of cigarettes. As he lit a cigarette, he couldnt help but curse again, "If it hadnt been for your idea, I wouldnt be in such a passive situation today. Two ports gone, such a waste of assets!" With that, he kicked out. Zhou Susu felt a pang of pain in her chest, but she didnt dare to cry out. Not only did she not dare toin, she even moved closer to light Mu Jius cigarette, trying to please him and asking, "What are you nning to do, Boss Jiu?" "What can I do?" Mu Jiu replied irritably, "Qin Chao has already been roped in! Are you suggesting I get myself locked up and please that surname Bao?" Zhou Susu offered a vicious idea: "Qin Chao betrayed Boss Jiu, if he dies, all will be settled!" Mu Jiu took a deep puff of smoke, staring at her. After a moment, he kicked Zhou Susu off the bed. "Lowly trash!" Mu Jiu pointed at her and scolded, "Qin Chao is my brother! His sacrifice for his sister makes him even more honorable! Trashy thing, everything thates from that ce is rotten goods!" Zhou Susu crawled to the edge of the bed in tears, "I was wrong! Please forgive me, Boss Jiu." Mu Jiu looked down upon her from above with disdain, "Come here and serve me! If Im pleased, Ill let you stay a few more days!" Zhou Susu was furious. He didnt treat her like a human at all! But she couldnt let go of the glory and wealth. She crawled over, carefully attending to him... temporarily making Boss Jiu forget the pain of losing the two ports! But he was still not content! Zhou Susu tried to please him, leaning against him seductively, "Didnt Boss Jiu auction off a lot of treasuresst time?" Mu Jiu gave her a sideways nce. Then he pinched the womans face, "Quite clever, huh? Ill reward you with something." Zhou Susu lightly tapped his chest with her delicate finger, "Im so tired." "Acting all coy? If you dont want to do it, then get lost," Boss Jiu roughly waved her away... Dawn broke. Bao Jingyan heard amotion downstairs before he even opened his eyes. He closed his eyes and thought, this arrogant force could only be Mu Jiu. Ha, he had to consider, and he ran to his house this early in the morning! Bao Jingyan turned his head to look at the sleeping Su Ruanruan, then quietly got out of bed. In the foyer of the first floor, there were piles of gifts. Mu Jiu sat upright on the sofa, with only two people following him. Hearing footsteps, he looked up. Bao Jingyan descended the stairs wearing only a bathrobe. The simple white bathrobe looked exceptionally good on the pretty boy, with long limbs, the neckline loosely revealing fair skin. He looked like a privileged young master who had been indulged his whole life. Mu Jiu took a sip of tea and asked with a smile, "Wheres Ruanruan?" Bao Jingyan casually sat across from Boss Jiu and nced at Aunt Li, "Bring me a cup of ck coffee." Aunt Li cooperated, "Miss Su doesnt let you drink coffee." Bao Jingyan then pretended to be displeased and told Mu Jiu, "Women are such a bother! So controlling." Mu Jius heart instantly exploded with annoyance! He hadnt made his move yet, but Bao Jingyans show of affection had alreadye first. Then, Bao Jingyan said to Aunt Li, "Ruanruan is still sleeping! Shes exhausted fromst night; she wont wake up before nine." He was tantly lyinghow could Aunt Li not realize? Aunt Li felt speechless. The master really had no shame! She went to make the coffee. Only then did Bao Jingyan remember the presence of their esteemed guest, Mu Jiu, and said smilingly, "Mr. Mu is early." Mu Jiuughed, "Not early!" His voice turned cold, "Where is Qin Chao?" Bao Jingyan pulled out a piece of paper and ced it in front of Mu Jiu, saying, "Once Mr. Mu fulfills our agreement, I will release him naturally." Mu Qun hummed, "Why should I trust you?" "Does Mr. Mu have a choice?" Bao Jingyan chuckled lightly. Chapter 215: Mu Jiu Loses Both People and Wealth

Chapter 215: Chapter 215: Mu Jiu Loses Both People and Wealth

Mu Qun was about to make a few sarcastic remarks when a very light sound of footsteps came from upstairs. His heart swayed, and he couldnt help but look up. It was Su Ruanruan. She was wearing a nightgown with a robe draped over it, wrapped snugly. But even just seeing her at home, Mu Jiu was still quite satisfied. Yet at the same time, he wanted to kill Bao Jingyan. That bastard Bao monopolized Ruanruan every night! Mu Jius gaze was eager as he asked in a very good temper, "Did we wake you up?" Su Ruanruan responded with a hum. At that, Mu Jiu didnt know how to continue the conversation. Bao Jingyanughed softly. Very pleased. He beckoned to Su Ruanruan, and she sat beside him, blending harmoniously into the atmosphere. Which was a sight that pained Mu Jiu to see. Mu Jiu hid the sourness in his heart, putting on a spirited front: "Ive brought over the items from thest auction for you to look at, just pick whatever you like and enjoy them." Su Ruanruan asked softly, "Mr. Mu, did youe this early just to deliver the items?" "Why dont you ask young master Bao that?" Mu Qun retorted without good cheer. Su Ruanruans eyes softly lowered: "If you hadnt ordered someone to sniper him, how would he have seized your men?" Mu Jiu was hit where it hurt, and reacted angrily: "Are you taking his side?" "Yes." Su Ruanruans tone was light and ominous. The next second, a petite, dainty gun appeared in her hand. Banga bullet grazed past Mu Jius shoulder. Mu Jius arm began to bleed. Silence fell in the hall. Especially the men brought by Mu Jiu, who werepletely stupefied. Even Bao Jingyan hadnt expected Su Ruanruan to be so decisive. He smiled slightly. His woman, Bao Jingyans woman, was not like others. Mu Jiu, a man who had seen the world, been through des and swords, and had more injuries than he could count on his hands and feet, was still dumbfounded by the sudden gunshot. "I like you so much! How could you do this to me?" Mu Jius voice was filled with grief and anger. Su Ruanruan ced the object in her hand on the coffee table, her voice cold and distant: "This shot was for Bao Jingyan. If Mu Jiu is unhappy, feel free to shoot back." Mu Jiu stared at her fixedly. This was more painful than losing two ports to him! He looked fiercely at Bao Jingyan, demanding, "What love potion have you fed her?" Bao Jingyan spoke at ease: "Ruanruan spared you, she didnt actually hit your arm! But your men really did intend to take my life." Su Ruanruan took over the conversation: "Mr. Mu, I appreciate your affection! But its too much for me to ept." Mu Jiu slowly stood up and advanced towards her step by step. When he was but a step away, he said coldly, "Do you really think I wouldnt dare touch you?" "Then I can only learn from Mr. Mus skills." Su Ruanruan was not afraid of him. Mu Qun was seething with anger. What was wrong with him? Why would she want to follow this sly and petty pretty boy? He panted heavily, throwing down a sentence: "Fine! I get it! From now on, you can be with whoever you want to be with, sleep with whoever you want to sleep with." In a fit of rage, he kicked the gifts. Completelycking in grace. His men hurriedly followed him out, and before long, the sound of a car starting echoed in the courtyard. ... Aunt Li brought over coffee and hot milk. Su Ruanruan sipped the milk gently. Bao Jingyan tugged at her hair: "Dont you feel its a pity?" "A pity for what?" Su Ruanruan countered: "Do you want me to entangle with him?" Recently, she hade to know that Mu Qun was someone her father had once saved. She understood Bao Jingyan to some extent. She didnt want her fathers efforts to go to waste. Therefore, she drove Mu Jiu away. Of course, she couldnt tell Bao Jingyan these things, otherwise, his jealousy would spill over again... Chapter 216: I Just Like Her!

Chapter 216: Chapter 216: I Just Like Her!

Mu Jiu returned, covered in blood. Zhou Susu screamed and ran down from upstairs: "What happened to you, Boss Mu Jiu?" Mu Qun was in a bad mood and sat on the sofa. He then looked at his wound with disgust. He was silent for a long time, and Zhou Susu could only ask those two men. Whatever came over those two, they actually said, "Sister-inw, it was the woman surnamed Bao who did it." Bao Jingyans woman? Su Ruanruan? Zhou Susu couldnt believe it. Isnt Su Ruanruan very frail? How could she haveshed out? She looked at Boss Mu Jiu. But Boss Mu Jius eyes were fixed on those two subordinates: "What did you just call her?" He was furious and threw something at them: "Is the title of sister-inw something you can just call anyone?" The two subordinates didnt dare to make a sound, nor did they dare to dodge. Zhou Susu immediately tried to smooth things over: "Why are you angry with them? Its me who doesnt deserve it!" "Good that you know." Mu Jiu copsed on the sofa, his uninjured hand covering his eyes: "Arent you going to hurry and find a doctor for me? Are you trying to pain me to death?" Zhou Susu immediately contacted the doctor. After hanging up the phone, she feltpelled to say something. "Su Ruanruan went too far! She even dared to hurt Boss Mu Jiu." She spoke with a provocative tone: "Boss Mu Jiu cannot let her off." Mu Jiu opened his eyes just a slit, staring straight at her. Zhou Susus heartbeat quickened. After a long while, Mu Jiu finally spoke coldly: "Put away your scheming! Otherwise, dont me me for turning heartlessly against you." Zhou Susu was angry but dared not express it. Just then, the doctor arrived, and while he was tending to his wounds, Zhou Susu said, "When you left this morning, Boss Mu Jiu, you were full of confidence. Now you look like a frostbitten eggnt." Boss Mu Jiu squinted his eyes, "Cant be bothered with you." Zhou Susu felt ufortable. At this time, Mu Jius confidant arrived. Bringing over twenty or thirty men. Each of them emitting a murderous aura! Mu Jiu nced over and asked, "Yan Kuan, whats the meaning of this?" The one leading was named Yan Kuan! He was seven years older than Mu Jiu. He was subdued by thisd back in the day. Yan Kuan spoke in a rough voice: "Were here to avenge Boss Mu Jiu!" As he said this, the dozens of men who came with him shouted in unison, "Avenging Boss Mu Jiu." Mu Jiu took a sip of tea with one hand, his gaze dropping lightly: "Seek revenge on who? You think its too calm these days? Go and see how many weaknesses Baos boy has on us, see how much money Ive lost!" "We cant touch the Bao guy, but Su Ruanruan is definitely fair game, right?" Yan Kuans voice buzzed: "Boss Mu Jiu, just give themand, and Ill catch that woman right away to satisfy your wish." Mu Jiu slowly stood up. He picked up a scalpel from the coffee table and plunged it into the leather sofa. "Want to seek revenge, is it? Youll have to step over my dead body first!" Mu Jius thin lips pressed together, his gaze sweeping over his men. He continued: "I just like her! Even if its just a little wound or if she wants my life, Im willing to offer it at any time." Yan Kuan was dumbfounded. He knew Mu Qun for almost ten years; this man truly didnt regard women as anything, so how could he have fallen into Su Ruanruans hands? After a long time, Yan Kuan finally spoke with a hoarse voice, "Boss Mu Jiu, there is no woman you cant have, why go to such lengths..." Mu Qun looked up at the ceiling, wiping his face after a moment: "Her father saved my life! My mother said if I were to marry, it should be a daughter from a family like Academician Sus." Boss Mu Jiu said so, and actually shed a few tears! Yan Kuan was speechless. You want to marry, but it also depends on whether theyre willing, right? Peiming Su is an academician, the Su Family is of schrly heritage, and youa self-made man who licks blood from the knifes edge... Boss Mu Jiu didnt care what others thought, in any case, he was determined to have Su Ruanruan. What he said in the morning were all words spoken in anger. Chapter 217 Bao Jingyan鈥檚 Bridal Gifts

Chapter 217: Chapter 217 Bao Jingyans Bridal Gifts

Two dayster, Bao Jingyan acquired two ports. He kept his word, personally went to the basement, and released Qin Chao. "Mu Jiu treats you quite well." Bao Jingyans attitude was as warm as the spring breeze, he even had someone take Qin Chao for a bath and changed him into a set of clean clothes so he could go back decently. Qin Chao wasnt grateful to him at all. Bao Jingyan was a smiling tiger. He would talk to you with a smile, but who knows what he might be plotting in his heart. If he was cold-faced, you probably wouldnt have a life anymore. Its that Ms. Su whos been good, secretly having people send him food these past few days... ... After sending Qin Chao off, Bao Jingyan went upstairs. It was the weekend, and Su Ruanruan stayed at home to review documents. She heard the sound of the door opening and asked, "Your wound is almost healed, why dont you go to thepany?" "Healed?" Bao Jingyan came up behind her and embraced her, whispering in her ear: "Should we test its flexibility?" Su Ruanruan was both embarrassed and annoyed. He never spoke anything decent. After a bit of banter, she turned her head and asked him, "Youve acquired the ports." Bao Jingyan smiled lightly and took a file from behind him, cing it in front of her. Su Ruanruan opened the file to look. A few secondster, she was stunned. The owners of the two ports were, unexpectedly, written in her name. Her throat felt somewhat sour: "Werent these two ports very important to you?" "Nothing is more important than Ruanruan!" He reached out to stroke her hair gently and said, "Is this enough for an engagement gift?" Engagement gift? Su Ruanruans face flushed, "I dont know what youre talking about!" "Still too young, lets get engaged first." Bao Jingyan kissed her delicate ear: "Well get married in a couple of years. Can you wait, Ruanruan?" "Youre the one who cant wait!" Su Ruanruan responded naturally. After speaking, she regretted it. He was too bad. Bao Jingyanughed delightedly and pinched her ear: "Stuck at home for the weekend, dont you want to go out for a breath of fresh air?" Su Ruanruan lowered her head to look at the file: "I dont want to." "Ones youth being so mature, how is that good?" Bao Jingyan teased her on purpose: "Or does Ruanruan just want to stay at home with me?" Su Ruanruan was indeed fooled. She threw down the file, "Im going out right now." Actually, she was purely acting out of spite and had no desire to enjoy herself. After thinking it over, she decided to visit Gu Mansion to see Mrs. Gu. This was also Bao Jingyans intention; the Gu couple were eagerly awaiting her. Mrs. Gu was very happy when Su Ruanruan came over. She asked her to stay for lunch and then dinner. Su Ruanruan refused. She said, "I still have things to handle, Ille and apany Auntie another day." Mrs. Gu felt very sorry. She wanted to reveal Su Ruanruans origins but was afraid that Su Ruanruan couldnt ept it. Mrs. Gu felt sad for a moment. Gu Yuanpei patted his wife on the shoulder, consoling gently: "Take it slow, no rush." Mrs. Gu sighed: "Yuanpei, I just hate that I cant make up for the past with her!" Especially after Gu Ze found out that, 18 years ago, Su Peimings wife couldnt bear children, so they stole their Yunxi. Her hatred grew even deeper. Mrs. Gu loathed Su Qionglin to the extreme! She thought, the Su Family would soon beg in front of her. At that time, she would definitely avenge Ruanruan fiercely! What Mrs. Gu didnt expect was, the Su Family didnte to her in the future, but Bao Ziqi did find Su Ruanruan. In the evening, Su Ruanruans car was blocked by Bao Ziqi. He opened the car door and said to Su Ruanruan, "I have something to talk to you about." Old Zhao panicked: "Young Master Ziqi, you..." "I know shes Bao Jingyans!" Bao Ziqis voice was very cold: "But its not too much to say a few words to my sister-inw, is it?" Chapter 218 Bao Ziqi, I Despise You

Chapter 218: Chapter 218 Bao Ziqi, I Despise You

He spoke unpleasantly, Su Ruanruan just lightly raised her eyebrows. She said to Old Zhao, "Ill get out of the car and talk to him for a moment." Bao Ziqis face was gloomy, watching her step out of the car. Su Ruanruan looked well. She wore a loose-fitting white knit top with a floral long skirt below. Her hair was braided into a fishtail. Her appearance fresh and beautiful like a painting. Bao Ziqi stood on the roadside smoking, mockingly saying, "Dont you know my name? Always saying he this he that, cant you call out the three words Bao Ziqi?" He was impolite, and Su Ruanruan didnt want to endure it. She asked bluntly, "Why must you be so harsh?" Bao Ziqi red at her intently. After a while, he curled his lips slightly, "You havent changed at all." Once they started talking, he directly said, "I hope you can greet Aunt Gu and let Su Qionglin off this time." "Why?" Su Ruanruan softly asked him, "Are you nning to marry her?" Bao Ziqi coldly replied, "I have no such intention." He no longer had love or impulse towards Su Qionglin; naturally, he would not lower himself. Su Ruanruan muttered to herself, "Then theres no need." Bao Ziqi became furious: "So unless I marry her, you wont give me this respect?" Su Ruanruans lips twisted into a cold smile, "Otherwise? You think I would do something that benefits me in no way? Bao Ziqi, youing to find me today is unreasonable! Su Qionglin tried to harm me, she deserves her fate." Bao Ziqi stared at her intensely. As if he had never known her. After a long while, he squeezed out the words: "You and he are truly a perfect match!" Su Ruanruan did not respond. Suddenly, she remembered the engagement gifts from this morning, which had indeed pressured her. Thinking and thinking, she became somewhat distracted. Bao Ziqi grew even angrier: "Are you always thinking of him? Is he that great?" He knew he was being ungracious, but he couldnt help making some sarcastic remarks. At this moment, Su Ruanruan spoke up but stated her conditions: "I want the ten percent shares of Tongsheng Hospital given by the Bao Family initially, and I demand to be the honorary director of Tongsheng Hospital." "You really have a big appetite," Bao Ziqi scoffed, "Then lets make a deal." Su Ruanruan remained silent. Bao Ziqis voice turned very soft, "Your rtionship with Bao Jingyan, in exchange." He thought Su Ruanruan would be scared because this rtionship would not be tolerated by the Bao Family. Yet, Su Ruanruan just looked at him with aplex gaze and spoke a profound sentence, "Bao Ziqi, do you really hold such deep affection for my sister?" After finishing, regardless of his reaction, she walked towards the ck limousine. Bao Ziqi quickly followed: "Exin clearly." Su Ruanruans voice was colder than ever: "Bao Ziqi, I despise you!" She broke free from him, opened the car door, and got in. The car quickly drove away, Bao Ziqi watched quietly. He knew he had thoroughly offended Su Ruanruan. The way she looked at him just now was utterly disdainful. The phone in his pocket rang, and he answered it with irritation. On the other end was Su Qionglins copsing cries. "Ziqi, did she agree?" Bao Ziqi indifferently repeated Su Ruanruans demands, causing Su Qionglin to scream. "Shes dreaming!" "Nothing of Su Familys shall she take away." ... She cried and made a fuss. Bao Ziqi was very annoyed. He couldnt help but think, actually, Su Ruanruans disposition wasnt bad. At least, she wouldnt cry and fuss with her husband all day. With his mind in turmoil, he returned to Bao Mansion, where as soon as he entered, Mrs. Bao greeted him cheerfully, "Ziqi, tomorrow your Aunt Xia ising back from abroad, she specifically asked to meet you." Bao Ziqi understood. This was an implied arranged meeting! Chapter 219: Su Ruanruan Bumps into Bao Ziqi on a Blind Date

Chapter 219: Chapter 219: Su Ruanruan Bumps into Bao Ziqi on a Blind Date

Recently, Bao Mingyuan started treating Su Ruanruan as his future daughter-inw, which worried Madam Bao greatly. She had to n for her son. The Xia Family was schrly, and Xia Minn was their only daughter. She was talented and artistic, the perfect match for Ziqi. After Madam Bao said this, she observed her sons reaction. Bao Ziqi was originally unwilling, but after the recent upset with Su Ruanruan, he surprisingly agreed. Madam Bao was both shocked and delighted. She said, "Ziqi, youve finally seen the light." She added softly, "Minn is well-educated and mannered, your father will like her." Madam Bao had confidence in her own judgment. Three dayster. Madam Bao arranged a meal with the Xia family, choosing the best restaurant in the city. Membership VIP system. Inside the elegant dining room, Bao Ziqi met Miss Xia Minn. Indeed, Miss Xia was radiant and beautiful, and about the same age as himself. But Bao Ziqi just couldnt muster any enthusiasm. Madam Bao warmly held Xia Minns hand and introduced her to her son, "Minn teaches history at the university and is the youngest professor in the city! Shes also multi-talented, truly a rare find." Bao Ziqi wasnt interested in the rare find; his mind was preupied with that cunning girl. His attitude was lukewarm, making Madam Bao somewhat embarrassed. However, Xia Minn admired Bao Ziqi. She was not offended by his indifference and instead kept trying to find topics of conversation. Madam Bao and Mrs. Xia exchanged nces and breathed a sigh of relief. The two children, there might be hope! Midway through the meal, Bao Ziqis attitude suddenly warmed up. He even personally served dishes to Xia Minn. Madam Bao was feeling reassured when she looked up. Ah, it was that troublemaker Su Ruanruan who had arrived. She wasnt alone; the man with her was Gu Ze! Madam Bao narrowed her eyes. She had underestimated the connection between Su Ruanruan and the Gu Family... Had Su Ruanruan been rejecting Ziqi because she wanted to climb up to Gu Ze? Madam Bao snorted coldly. She whispered amand to her attendant. ... Upon encountering the Bao Family, Su Ruanruan was quite surprised. She had arranged to meet Gu Ze at noon, to give him the herbal medicine she had prepared for Gu Auntie. Gu Ze insisted on having lunch here. As soon as they walked in, they saw Madam Bao and Bao Ziqi dining. Across from them was a respectable mother and daughter pair. Su Ruanruan guessed it was an arranged date and didnt take much notice; she was rather happy for Bao Ziqi. She greeted them openly, but Bao Ziqi was reserved and indifferent. Madam Bao smiled subtly, "Ruanruan, youre here for lunch too? Why not join us?" She added, "After all, youre no stranger! What do you say, Young Master Gu?" Gu Ze, who hated such pretentious women, was blunt: "We wouldnt want to interrupt Ziqis date, you carry on with your conversation." Madam Baos smile froze on her lips. Bao Ziqis expression wasnt pleasant either. Seeing their displeasure, Gu Ze felt particrly satisfied. He guided Su Ruanruan to a seat by the window and gentlemanly pulled out a chair for her. Su Ruanruan sat down and whispered, "You really dont give thedy face." "Isnt it just to see if it feels satisfying?" Gu Ze passed her a ss of water and asked with a smile. Su Ruanruan smiled lightly, "Quite satisfying." Gu Ze was happy to see her happy. Su Ruanruan stealthily watched the other partys movements and said, "When we came in just now, Madam Bao spoke to someone by her side, I think she must have instructed them to follow us and catch me in apromising situation." After thinking for a moment, Gu Ze smiled lightly, "Then well just have to do the opposite." After a brief reflection, Su Ruanruan understood! Next, not only did Gu Ze not avoid contact with Su Ruanruan, but he also became even more intimate with her. Madam Baos people took even more splendid photos. Chapter 220: The Beginning of the Downfall of the Concubine

Chapter 220: Chapter 220: The Beginning of the Downfall of the Concubine

Madam Bao also has her imperfections, ever since Su Ruanruan arrived, Ziqi has been absentminded. He is always fixated in one direction. Madam Bao is annoyed. Whats so good about Su Ruanruan? Its just that she got lucky, shes not even close to Xia Minn. Ziqi is blind! Bao Ziqi is indeed struggling, he came to the matchmaking angry at Su Ruanruan. Having that scene witnessed by Su Ruanruan would surely make him pleased. Look, I, Bao Ziqi, am not distressed because of you, Im living very well! But when face to face, he couldnt induce happiness. But rather, felt awkward. After the meal, Bao Ziqi sends Xia Familys mother and daughter back. Madam Bao returned to Bao Mansion. Not long after, her confidant delivered a stack of photos. All were intimate photos of Su Ruanruan and Gu Ze. Madam Bao sneered: With these, she can smoothly kick Su Ruanruan out of the house. Of course, she wont do it personally. At night, Bao Mingyuan came back from thepany without having dinner, he called Madam Bao upstairs. Madam Bao thought her husband needed her and considerately helped him undress. Bao Mingyuan abruptly grabbed her hand, "I have something to tell you." Madam Bao felt a little resentful, she let go of her hand: "Who offended you now, toe back and show me a long face!" Bao Mingyuan sat down on the sofa, his gaze piercingly fixed on his wife: "Then tell me, what did you do today?" Madam Baos heart skipped a beat. She immediately smiled lightly: "Ziqi is still young, its fine for him to make more friends! Xia familys daughter, youve met her too, well-bred and outstanding, Mingyuan, what could you possiblyin about?" "Then what about Ruanruan, arent you making her heart cold?" Bao Mingyuan became more displeased: "They are getting along fine now, you interfere in this critical moment, isnt it purposely targeting Ruanruan?" "Ruanruan, Ruanruan, you only know Ruanruan!" Madam Baos voice choked: "In your heart there are only outsiders, youve long thrown Ziqi and Jingyuan behind." Bao Mingyuan hesitated, "Arent they fine?" Madam Bao sneered: "Fine? Where is Ziqi fine? He likes little Miss Ruanruan, but does she like Ziqi? Shes always so indifferent towards Ziqi, you as a father pretend not to see his suffering, but he still has a mother who thinks about him." A speech that left Bao Mingyuan speechless. Madam Bao strikes while the irons hot: "I know you appreciate that girl, but Xia familys daughter is also quite exceptional, and if the two children could develop feelings, wouldnt that be infinitely more precious than a loveless marriage?" Bao Mingyuan lit a cigarette, deeply drew on it. Madam Bao continued: "I also got news that Su Ruanruan hurt Mu Qun." "What?" Bao Mingyuans cigarette nearly burned him, he suddenly stood up. Walking back and forth, Bao Mingyuan said: "This absolutely cannot happen! Truly bing afflictive towards Mu Jiu would lead to endless troubles!" Madam Bao rested her hand on his shoulder, softly said: "Ruanruan handles things too decisively! Mingyuan, you should really consider child Minn." Bao Mingyuan nced at his wife. He didnt immediately express his stance. Madam Bao knew it stillcked a bit of heat. When no one was present, Madam Bao secretly handed those photos over to someone else... adding that bit of heat! Next day. A big scandal broke out in Jiang City. The bride-to-be of Bao Family, involved in a scandal with the only son of Gu Family. Front page news on all major newspapers, featured their intimate photos. Though not explicit, they are very intimate. Young Master Gus eyes filled with love and affection. Upon the scandal breaking, all of Jiang City was in uproar. Everyone felt it was a pity. Su Ruanruan was finished. She was going to be discarded by the Bao Family! Right then, the girl to be discarded was at the mercy of Bao familys eldest son, indulging in his desires. This morning he was especially beastly, taking a long time to finish... Chapter 221: There鈥檚 Nothing Wrong with Being Kept by Me

Chapter 221: Chapter 221: Theres Nothing Wrong with Being Kept by Me

Bao Jingyan tossed and turned, lying on his side, his body slick with sweat. Su Ruanruan moved slightly. He caught her, whispering low, "Lie with me for a while." Su Ruanruan refused, insisting on going to the bathroom. After a moment, Bao Jingyan listened to the sound of running water from the bathroom and couldnt help but meticulously relive what had just happened, especially Su Ruanruans subtle expressions when she was moved. His heart swayed, and he felt he couldnt lie down any longer. He simply put on his clothes and went to the guest room to freshen up. ... When Su Ruanruan came out, Bao Jingyan was no longer in the bedroom. She changed and went downstairs. As she walked down the stairs, she saw Bao Jingyan sitting at the dining table, sipping coffee while reading the Jiangcheng Morning News. Su Ruanruan gracefully went over and sat down. Just as she was about to speak, she saw Auntie Li with aplex expression. "Whats wrong?" Su Ruanruan thought something had happened to Auntie Lis family and asked with concern. Auntie Lis face showed abination of sorrow and indignation. Su Ruanruan was even more baffled! Bao Jingyan ced the newspaper in front of her and chuckled, "Auntie Li thinks youve had an affair." "Were not even married, how can there be an affair?" Su Ruanruan didnt want him to take advantage of her. She scrutinized the newspaper carefully. The headline of the Jiangcheng Morning News was a photo of her and Gu Ze looking intimate. Su Ruanruan was quite speechless. Mrs. Bao had truly put in the effort! "Any thoughts?" Bao Jingyan tapped the table and snorted lightly. Auntie Lis eyes were wide open like brass bells, waiting for the "madams" exnation. Su Ruanruan felt intimidated and took small sips of her milk. After a while, she slowly said, "Theres nothing to exin!" Bao Jingyan sighed softly, "Miss Su, I went through great lengths to secure your position as head of R&D, it looks like it was all for naught!" He added with ill-intention, "Prepare yourself for Director Baos interrogation!" Su Ruanruan hummed, "Looks like Ill probably have to pack up today and go home to sponge off my family." Bao Jingyanughed heartily, "Theres nothing wrong with being supported by me!" He also pinched her cheek. Su Ruanruan cried out in annoyance, "Bao Jingyan, you mustnt do this!" Bao Jingyan found it amusing and pinched a few more times. While they were fooling around, Bao Mingyuans call came through. Su Ruanruan answered it. After a while, she hung up and said to Bao Jingyan, "Your father wants me to go to thepany and exin. Bao Jingyan, can I say that my secret affair is with you?" Bao Jingyan raised his cup slightly, chuckling. Su Ruanruan red at him. He just knew how tough at her expense! She stood up, went upstairs to get ready, and then took Old Zhaos car to thepany. From start to finish, she wasnt the least bit nervous or scared. Auntie Li couldnt understand. Some indescribable thoughts shed through her mind! Could it be that both the master and Young Master Gu... Could it be they have some special preferences? "What are you thinking?" Bao Jingyan spoke up. He was both annoyed and amused, "Who do you think Gu Ze is? If he had any designs on Ruanruan, would he be easily photographed?" Auntie Li breathed a sigh of relief, then immediately worried for Su Ruanruan. "What will Miss Su do? Will the master give her a hard time?" "Yes," Bao Jingyan affirmed. Auntie Li became even more anxious, "Wont you help her, master?" Bao Jingyan leisurely put down his cup and sighed, "Do you think your Miss Su cant handle it? She is brave enough to even shoot Mu Jiu." Auntie Lis heart skipped a beat. After a while, she barely spat out a sentence, "Miss Su is indeed tough." Bao Jingyan slowly folded the newspaper and revealed another earth-shattering piece of news. The news left Auntie Li with her mouth agape for a long time! After a while, she stuttered, "Does Miss Su not know?" Chapter 222 Su Ruanruan Can鈥檛 Turn Over!

Chapter 222: Chapter 222 Su Ruanruan Cant Turn Over!

"Hmm, she doesnt know." Bao Jingyan smiled: "She just thought Aunt Gu wanted to adopt her as her goddaughter." Li shen was so happy she almost cried: "I was really sweating for Miss Su just now, having no idea that she and Young Master Gu are actually blood siblings! The bond between siblings is naturally strong!" Saying this, she sped her hands together: "Miss Su is a good person, and good people deserve good karma." Bao Jingyan smiled faintly. When the dayes that Ruanruans origins are revealed, others will envy her for her distinguished background, but Bao Jingyan knew she would be heartbroken! The man who raised her was not her blood rtive. ... Dijing Group. Old Zhao stopped the car, saying worriedly, "Let me apany you upstairs." Su Ruanruan declined: "No need! Just wait for me here." She gracefully got out of the car. The foyer of Dijing Group was imposing, with employees bustling to and fro. Usually, the employees who passed by Su Ruanruan would respectfully greet her as Miss Su, but today, not a single person greeted her. This morning, a scandal involving Su Ruanruan and Gu Ze had broken out. She was the headline in all the city newspapers. She was also the top trending topic on Weibo. These seasoned employees of Dijing had already concluded that Su Ruanruan would not be able to recover, and some had even gotten insider information. Bao Ziqi had already been set up for a blind date. Su Ruanruan had be an outcast! Everyone sighed It was like watching her rise high, and then witnessing her instantaneous copse. The coldness of the world did not bother Su Ruanruan. She took the private elevator to the 58th floor. As the elevator door closed, whispers from several female employees could be heard outside. [Chairman Bao is angry!] [Who wouldnt be angry over such a thing? I guess this is herst time using the private elevator!] [Do you think theres something wrong with the Second Young Master, otherwise why would she...] ... Those unbearable words, Su Ruanruan chose to ignore. She stared at the red numbers jumping, yet her mind was upied thinking about how to pass the time next. Visit Aunt Gu? Or go to the outskirts to do some sketching? Lost in her thoughts, the elevator door opened. At the elevator entrance, Xiao Ran was waiting there. Ultimately, Bao Jingyan was worried and had someone keep an eye out. Seeing Su Ruanruan approaching, Xiao Ran asked in a low voice, "Can you handle it?" Su Ruanruan honestly admitted, "Chairman Bao is probably going to be furious! You go back to the office, dont let this implicate you." Xiao Ran refused to leave. Su Ruanruan added, "Dont worry, I can handle it." Thinking of her capabilities, Xiao Ran quietly stepped back. As they spoke, the door to Mingyuans office opened. It was opened by Secretary Dong. Secretary Dongs eyes were filled with pity. This person had once climbed to a high position and was close to entering the Bao Familys doors. Right at the threshold, such a huge scandal broke out. Secretary Dong sighed softly: Given her understanding of her boss, there was no way back from this! Yet, Su Ruanruan was very calm. She asked softly, "Is uncle inside?" Secretary Dong was rtively polite: "Chairman Bao has been waiting for you for a while." She weed Su Ruanruan inside, then tactfully withdrew. Without serving any tea. Su Ruanruan stood by the door, looking towards the desk. Mingyuan was seated, working. When Su Ruanruan arrived, he didnt look up but simply said softly, "Take a seat first." Su Ruanruan calmly sat down. Mingyuan continued to handle his business affairs, the vast space filled only with the asional rustling of documents. It was eerily quiet. After a long while, Mingyuan finally looked up. His gaze was not as doting as usual, and even carried a sense of unfamiliarity. He simply stated: "Jingyan will also be able toe to the office in a week, pack up your things, and you dont need toe to the office for the time being." He didnt mention Gu Ze, but his attitude said it all. He would not tolerate Su Ruanruan Chapter 223: Su Ruanruan Leaves the Imperial Scenery

Chapter 223: Chapter 223: Su Ruanruan Leaves the Imperial Scenery

Bao Mingyuans decision did not surprise Su Ruanruan. She epted it calmly and said, "Thank you, Mr. Bao, for taking care of me during this time. I will sign the share transfer document." Bao Mingyuans eyebrows twitched. He was worrying about how to bring this up, but Su Ruanruan took the initiative! For a moment, his feelings wereplicated. The regard and affection he once had for her surged back into his heart. The girl was truly outstanding! But the photos of her and Gu Ze on the hot search in the newspapers were also undeniably there; Ruanruan couldnt clear her name, and Ziqi, no matter what, could not marry a girl with a bad reputation back home. After much consideration, Bao Mingyuans tone softened a bit: "If you have nowhere to go, you can stay at Jingse for now." This was hisst bit of sentiment for her. Su Ruanruan smiled faintly. Maybe once, she was moved by Bao Mingyuans esteem and affection, but every time trouble arose, his first choice would always be the interests of the Bao Family. Su Ruanruan felt ashamed for her former soft-heartedness. She shook her head, "No need, I have a ce to stay." Bao Mingyuan blurted out: "The Gu Family?" He couldnt help but say, "Initially, your aunt and I were intending to matchmake you and Gu..." He did not say the following words. Because Ruanruan was watching him. Her demeanor was indifferent, but there was a hint of hurt in her eyes. Bao Mingyuan also felt distressed, but as a pragmatic businessman, he knew he had to cut ties with Su Ruanruan. Bao Mingyuan said with some difficulty: "As for Ziqi... his mom has also chosen someone special for him, a pretty good girl." Su Ruanruan hummed in acknowledgment. Afterward, neither knew what else to say. In the end, Bao Mingyuan let out a light sigh: "Ill have the driver take you in a while." He waved his hand, signaling her to leave. Su Ruanruan opened the door and quietly walked out. Secretary Dong was at the door, who with a light smile asked, "Finished talking?" There was a hint more politeness and estrangement in that tone! Su Ruanruan smiled slightly: "Yes, its finished! Goodbye, Secretary Dong." Secretary Dong nodded lightly, watching Su Ruanruan enter the regr elevator. She thought to herself, what a girl unbothered by honor or disgrace, frighteninglyposed! But, she probably wont be seen again. Su Ruanruan went to her office to pack her belongings, and the folks in the R&D department were furious. Miss Su has done so much for Emperor Vista, yet Director Bao didnt give her a chance to exin. Truly heartless! Dr. Zhong stepped forward: "The lot of us working with all our might, we might still be able to keep Miss Su." "No." Su Ruanruan spoke softly: "Continue with your normal work; thats the best support for me." So the old folks cursed and swore at Bao Mingyuan. Su Ruanruan chuckled: "I wille back." Dr. Zhong and others believed her and said their goodbyes. Su Ruanruan went downstairs alone, and by the time she reached the hall, there were even more ugly words than when she arrived. She lowered her gaze, a faint glimmer in her eyes. Her phone rang, and she answered while holding a box in one hand. It was a call from Bao Jingyan. Bao Jingyan was in a very good mood, "Miss Su, how does it feel to be fired?" Su Ruanruan hmmd: "Ive just been socially beaten up!" Bao Jingyans tone was lively: "Aunt Li has made the soup you like to drink; maybe it canfort your wounded soul." Su Ruanruan was about to say something when a tall figure hurried over. The neer knocked her phone away. Su Ruanruan looked up. It was Bao Ziqi. His face full of anger, Bao Ziqi gritted his teeth: "Su Ruanruan, what are you ying at?" Chapter 224 Yes! Su Ruanruan Wants to Deal with Madam Bo

Chapter 224: Chapter 224 Yes! Su Ruanruan Wants to Deal with Madam Bo

"You should ask your mother instead, ask her if she gave Su Qionglin the photos and let her put it on the hot search to push me into a corner," Su Ruanruan scoffed with mockery. Bao Ziqi froze. His face turned ugly as he asked what he wanted to know: "You and Gu Ze, is there anything between you?" Su Ruanruan put down the box, picked up the broken phone and put it in her clothes bag. Only when she stood up did she answer him: "Whether there is or is not, it has nothing to do with you." She added: "The grudge of the ex-girlfriend is avenged, your mother is happy, its something to be joyful about! Bao Ziqi, stop acting like I owe you something, okay?" Bao Ziqi was furious. He knew many people were watching, he knew he was not being graceful. But he couldnt care less, he questioned her: "Do you really look down on me that much? Su Ruanruan, dont forget how you entered the Bao Family." "I returned everything I took from the Bao Family just now," Su Ruanruan was very calm. She then left resolutely. Bao Ziqis face turned pale. Around him, employees of Dijing Group kept their distance! Just now, the young master had staged a dramatic tragic romance, and all signs indicated Miss Su really did cheat! However, Miss Su will never step through the Bao Familys doors again! After Su Ruanruan left Dijing, Old Zhao hurried over. "A call from Young Master Jingyan." Su Ruanruan answered the phone. Bao Jingyans voice carried a tinge of sourness: "You saw Bao Ziqi again!" Softly, Su Ruanruan said, "Bao Jingyan, Im not in a good mood, dont provoke me!" Bao Jingyan went silent for a moment, then spoke again with an unexpectedly gentle voice: "Im not checking up on you! I just wanted to tell you Aunt Lis soup is almost ready, we are all waiting for you at home." For some reason, Su Ruanruan felt a tinge of sourness in her nose. Just now, when she faced Bao Mingyuan and Bao Ziqi, she didnt feel like crying, but a simple sentence from Bao Jingyan made her feel the urge to cry... He was too bad. He always knew how to bully her. * After Su Ruanruan left, Bao Mingyuan was out of it for quite a while. After a long time, he opened the drawer and took out a photo frame. It was a family photo takenst time at Zhongjiang Academy of Fine Arts. Ruanruan, that girl, stood right beside him. Pretty and cute. Bao Mingyuan stared at it for a long time, then sighed lightly. Secretary Dong did not dare to make a sound beside him. She thought, this time Director Bao was truly heartbroken. Bao Mingyuan was in a bad mood, and his mood was even lower when he returned home to Bao Mansion in the evening. The olddy didnt know about this yet, she saw her son looked unwell and showed concern. "Its nothing, maybe just too tired!" Bao Mingyuan leaned on the couch, forcing a smile. The olddy cheerfully said: "If you feel ufortable, let Ruanruan give you a few acupuncture pins, I guarantee youll be jumping around in no time." Bao Jingyuan quickly said: "Grandmother doesnt know yet, Su Ruanruan got together with Gu Ze, she betrayed Dads trust!" "Jingyuan!" Bao Mingyuan scolded, "What nonsense are you talking about!" Bao Jingyuan defiantly said, "But that is the truth, do we have to hide it? Its Su Ruanruans own scandal!" The olddy trembled with anger. She grabbed her walking stick to hit Bao Jingyuan. Bao Jingyuan screamed and hid behind Mrs. Bao. The olddy angrily said: "You all im they got together out of thin air, wheres the proof?" "Jiangchengs newspapers are all over it," Bao Jingyuan mored. "Gui Zhi!" The olddy called, "Bring the newspapers here." Gui Zhi sighed. She knew the truth; it was the eldest young master who was really with Miss Su, not Young Master Gu. Miss Su let others misunderstand, probably because she wanted to target... Chapter 225 Mrs. Bo Defends Her Own

Chapter 225: Chapter 225 Mrs. Bo Defends Her Own

Gui Zhi looked at Madam Bao silently. She thought to herself: The good days for this concubine areing to an end. She quickly brought all the newspapers, a total of over ten. Su Ruanruan was in every single one. Madam Bao and Bao Jingyuan both showed expressions of triumph Now, the olddy should see Su Ruanruans true nature, right? But after the olddy finished reading, she said, "Is this it?" Bao Mingyuan sighed: "What else does the olddy expect?" The olddy sneered: "Catch a cheat in action! Ruanruan is Madam Gus lifesaver, Lin Sheng considers her his daughter, doesnt that make Gu Ze her brother? Is there a problem with a brother doting on his sister?" Madam Bao was displeased: "The olddy cant be so biased! Do brothers look at their sisters this way? Besides, hes not even her real brother." "Heh, and Ziqi even slept with Ruanruans third sister and some cousin, huh? Why didnt you say a word?" the olddy was unreasonable. She anxiously said: "No, I have to bring Ruanruan back home." "Its toote." Bao Mingyuan held the olddys hand. He said softly: "Ive dismissed her from her role at Di Jing, she even returned herpany shares." The olddy was stunned on the spot. She couldnt believe it: "Mingyuan, since when did you be so ruthless? Just a few days ago you valued her as if she was your own, and now youre ruthlessly pushing her to the brink?" Bao Mingyuan wanted to retort. The olddy trembled with anger: "Even if she and Gu Ze had something, its a matter between two unmarried individuals, nothing deserving betrayal to Ziqi! But for Ziqis little face, for the Bao Familys little reputation, you ruthlessly cast Ruanruan aside, how will she establish herself in Jiangcheng afterwards?" After speaking, the olddy slumped down. She stayed silent for a long time, and finally headed back to her courtyard without saying another word. Bao Mingyuan went to knock on the door, the olddy wouldnt see him. Gui Zhi came out and said, "Ive never seen her this heartbroken." Bao Mingyuan couldnt help saying: "Im not feeling any better! Do I not have feelings for that child?" As he became emotional, Bao Mingyuan looked up, "Aunt Gui Zhi, I truly hoped she and Ziqi would be good together, I didnt expect..." Gui Zhi smiled: "Mingyuan, you call me Aunt Gui Zhi, now I have a surefire thing to tell you." Bao Mingyuan absentmindedly said: "Please speak." "Miss Su and Young Master Gu definitely werent together! Dont you think someone might have intentionally framed her?" After Gui Zhi spoke, she gazed intently at Bao Mingyuan. Bao Mingyuan muttered: "Could it be?" Gui Zhi smiled: "I heard that day Madam had arranged to meet people from the Xia Family for dinner, Miss Su incidentally was delivering medicine to Madam Gu and somehow encountered them." Bao Mingyuans heart skipped a beat. He looked at Gui Zhi. Gui Zhi implied no more: "Madam has always disliked Miss Su." Bao Mingyuan felt a heavy weight in his heart. Did he wrong Ruanruan, that child? But why didnt the child refute, defend herself? As if seeing through his thoughts, Gui Zhi smiled indifferently: "In that situation, would her defense have mattered?" Bao Mingyuan was at a loss for words. He lost his appetite and heavily headed back to the main house. Second floor master bedroom. Madam Bao, having removed a significant worry, was in a very good mood trying on clothes. Seeing her husbande in, she casually asked: "Mingyuan, which outfit looks better?" Bao Mingyuany on the bed and responded wearily: "Why another banquet?" "You forgot? We are dining with people from the Xia Family." Madam Bao put down the clothes and came over. She sat beside her husband, triumphant: "The Xia Family has promised oracle bone script as part of the dowry, Mingyuan, this is truly a family of schrs! Minn is much better than Su Ruanruan." Chapter 226: Jingyan, do you have a woman now?

Chapter 226: Chapter 226: Jingyan, do you have a woman now?

Bao Mingyuan cracked his eyes open slightly, quietly asking, "Do you really think so?" Mrs. Bao said, "Whether its family background or character and personality, I think highly of Minn." Bao Mingyuan thought about how it was himself who had driven Su Ruanruan away, and swallowed back everything he wanted to say. "Fine, have it your way! As long as Ziqi is willing, its settled." Mrs. Bao was ted, saying: "Lets set it for three days from now." "Have you arranged everything?" Bao Mingyuan gently stroked his wifes shoulder, thoughtful. Mrs. Bao didnt notice his displeasure; instead, she wanted to get affectionate with her husband. Bao Mingyuan rejected her. "Im too tired today." He turned over, his back to her. Mrs. Bao was quite unhappy, but thinking of how she easily toppled Su Ruanruan with a slight trick, she cheered up again. ... Bao Mingyuan was in a gloomy mood. The next morning, he didnt go to thepany. It would be a mess there anyway. The secretary Dong said that Dr. Zhong was the most furious, constantly dering that the R&D department was headless, insisting that he find someone else. Bao Mingyuan was so angry he could spit blood. Find someone, where could he find someone now? He could only go see his eldest son to see if he could start work earlier. Early in the morning, Bao Mingyuan went to his eldest sons vi. As the car drove in, Aunt Li didnt even have time to inform before Bao Mingyuan walked into the living room. He sat down on the sofa, looked up towards the stairs and asked, "Hasnt Jingyan gotten up yet?" Aunt Li responded, "Please have a seat, sir, Ill go up and check." "No need! Ill go up myself." Bao Mingyuan stood up, ready to look in on his son. After he went upstairs, Aunt Li immediately made an internal call to notify. Upstairs, Bao Jingyan hung up the phone. He leaned against the headboard, the bathrobe loosely opened, revealing his fair and healthy chest muscles. Prettily indecent. He nced sideways at Su Ruanruan who was still asleep, then got up and neatly covered himself with the clothes. As Bao Mingyuan reached the second floor, he saw Bao Jingyan, with his bathrobe tied,ing down the stairs, startled: "Youre up?" Bao Jingyan greeted, "Dad, why did youe over so early?" Bao Mingyuan bit back what he wanted to say. He asked his son, "Where are you nning to go?" "I have a golf appointment," Bao Jingyan said breezily. Bao Mingyuan patted his shoulder, "If you can y golf, you can go to work too, right?" "Just a social engagement," Bao Jingyan nonchntly settled down at the dining table, asking Aunt Li to bring breakfast. He made no mention of going to work. Since he secured two ports from Mu Jiu through his injury, Bao Mingyuan didnt want to be too harsh and let it be. Bao Jingyan was in a very good mood, he even invited Bao Mingyuan to have breakfast together. How could Bao Mingyuan eat? He hesitated a moment before saying, "Do you not know about Ruanruans situation?" A sh of cold sneer crossed Bao Jingyans eyes, but his face was sunny: "I heard about it." Bao Mingyuan was taken aback: "You, have no objections?" Bao Jingyan leaned back into his chair, smiling gently, "Dad, youve decided, what objection could I have?" So, Bao Mingyuan felt even lonelier. No one understood him! No one gave him a way out. He was actually... regretful, wasnt he? He didnt linger and soon prepared to leave. Approaching the foyer, Bao Mingyuans gaze faltered. At the entrance, there was a pair of white womens indoor slippers. He stared for a long time, then turned to his eldest son and said, "If you have a girlfriend, bring her back for a meal." Bao Jingyan merely smiled slightly. Bao Mingyuan misunderstood, thinking it was just a fleeting romantic rtionship. Jingyan was an adult, he could understand. Bao Mingyuan quickly put the matter out of mind. His heart was full of regret. He thought he should make a call to check on Ruanruan, perhaps invite her out for a meal, to care about her future life. If she was willing, he could offer to send her abroad to study. Bao Mingyuan found an excuse for himself and dialed Su Ruanruans number at the foyer. The call connected, but upstairs a ringtone resounded... Chapter 227: It鈥檚 Time to Give Her a Status

Chapter 227: Chapter 227: Its Time to Give Her a Status

Bao Mingyuans heart gave a lurch. He couldnt help but look at his son. Bao Jingyan smiled nonchntly, "I need to take a call." He calmly went upstairs. Bao Mingyuan just watched him. In a moment, Bao Jingyan appeared at the railing on the second floor, speaking on the phone. His expression was one of pleasure. Bao Mingyuan shook his head, feeling that he had been overthinking. He shifted his gaze back to his own phone. The call had not connected. The child Ruanruan hadnt answered the phone. Bao Mingyuan felt somewhat mncholic and left disheartened. Auntie Li saw him out: "Take care." Just before getting into the car, Bao Mingyuan suddenly turned to ask Auntie Li, "Does Jingyans girlfriend often stay over here at night?" Auntie Li dodged the question with a cunning air, "I dont usually inquire into the masters affairs." Bao Mingyuan didnt ask any further, opened the car door, and got in. ... Auntie Li watched his car drive away before returning to the hall. Bao Jingyan was downstairs, fiddling with his cellphone. "Gone?" Auntie Li replied irritably, "Dont ask me to cover for you again in the future." Bao Jingyan chuckled, then stood up to go upstairs. Auntie Li couldnt help but say from behind, "You should at least give Miss Su some degree of status. No matter how capable Miss Su is, she is still a youngdy." "I know," Bao Jingyan gave Auntie Li an extra nce. He went up to the master bedroom. Su Ruanruan was already awake, lost in thought with her phone in hand. "What are you looking at?" He walked over, took her phone, and started browsing through it. Su Ruanruan lowered her eyes, "Wont Uncle Bao be very sad I didnt answer his call?" "Fool." Bao Jingyan pinched her face. "Its better to think about where we might go for a walk." Su Ruanruan asked, "Do you have any good ces?" "There are some, but Im afraid you might not dare to go," Bao Jingyan teased her on purpose. Su Ruanruan didnt take the bait. He had no choice but to lower his stance, "Join me for a meal at noon." Su Ruanruan, too, was feeling restless and agreed. An hourter, the car entered a rather quaint courtyard. She looked sideways at Bao Jingyan, "Where is this?" Bao Jingyan stopped the car and said cheerfully, "Its my maternal grandparents house." He raised his eyebrows: "Scared?" Su Ruanruan cast down her eyes, and after a long while, she asked softly, "Bao Jingyan, what status should I go in as?" After speaking, she raised her eyes to look at him. She had just been involved in a scandal with Gu Ze; would the people of her grandparents house dislike her? Bao Jingyan knew what was on her mind and chuckled, "Thats why you have to be extra nice to me." Su Ruanruan red at him but wasnt as nervous anymore. Bao Jingyan went round to the trunk to get a gift, then took Su Ruanruans hand and they entered together. Su Ruanruan was a bit uneasy. "This isnt right," she said in a low voice. Bao Jingyan stopped, saying, "Auntie Li just told me I should give you an official status; I think shes right! Ruanruan, publicly I cant disclose our rtionship at the moment, but here at my grandparents house..." He paused, "I want you to feel a bit more at peace." Su Ruanruan bit her lip. Bao Jingyan squeezed her hand, his tone gentle, "Silly again." "Im not silly," Su Ruanruan protested softly. Bao Jingyan lightlyughed. ... The Sun Mansion was elegant and serene, reportedly converted from an old princely manor, quite imposing. Bao Jingyan took her through a five-minute walk towards the main house. The servants of the Sun Mansion all greeted him as Young Master upon seeing him. They also sneaked nces at Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan was a little embarrassed. A butler-like figure approached them with a smile, "The wife and young master of the Gu Family have already arrived, and the old madam is entertaining them." Bao Jingyan responded with a nonchnt hum. Su Ruanruan was curious, "Why are Auntie Gu and the others here?" Bao Jingyan flicked her forehead, "She cante? Auntie Gu is well-acquainted with my maternal grandmother." Chapter 228: Parents Meet

Chapter 228: Chapter 228: Parents Meet

Su Ruanruans face flushed red. It turns out she was being self-indulgent. But when she entered the hall, she knew that was not the case. Mrs. Gu knew she wasing. Mrs. Gu pulled her to sit by her side and smiled at the Sun Family matriarch, "This is my Ruanruan." Su Ruanruan was both shocked and doubtful. But she knew well that the Sun Family was a schrly family; she could not afford to lose her manners here. She stood up and greeted the elderlydy appropriately. The Sun Family matriarch had a kind face. She asked Su Ruanruan toe over, held her hand, and examined her for a while before smiling at Mrs. Gu, "She does bear some resemnce to Weilian in her youth! Jingyan has good taste." Mrs. Gu was delighted, "I also didnt expect these two kids to hit it off." The Sun Family matriarch also smiled and then gave a meaningful nce to someone nearby. A sandalwood box was quietly presented. The matriarch opened it. Insidey a set of emerald jewelry. Lavish and dazzling, of immense value. Su Ruanruan dared not ept it. Bao Jingyan sipped his tea, smiling, "ept it since grandma is giving it to you, unless you dont n to be her granddaughter-inw." Su Ruanruan felt both angry and embarrassed. How could he say such a thing! However, the Sun Family matriarch justughed, telling Mrs. Gu, "Lin Sheng, I see you also have to admit youre getting old!" "Indeed!" Mrs. Gu agreed, "Watching the younger generation makes me realize Im not young anymore!" The matriarch teased her, "I see you and Yunpei are so affectionate, having three kids wouldnt be a problem." Mrs. Gu blushed, "Matriarch, you love to tease me." The matriarch then turned to Gu Ze, "See how your mother is embarrassed? You better hurry up and find a wife, otherwise, all well see is you dining with your sister." Gu Ze smiled and said, "Someone foolishly fell for it." The matriarch scoffed, "She has always been the same over the years, always thinking about how to harm others." Mrs. Gu drank her tea and remained silent. As for whom she talked about, everyone present knew. The matriarch didnt want to talk about that disappointing woman; the menace would be dealt with sooner orter. Right now, she only cared about her granddaughter-inw. Jingyan would be turning 29 next year! She asked about the marriage, only to learn Su Ruanruan was just 18. The matriarch looked at her grandson, her gazeplex. Young sprouts, and Jingyan couldnt resist! "The age is a bit young, lets wait another two years." The matriarch intentionally said, "By then, Jingyan will only be 30, not old yet." Bao Jingyan: ... The matriarch liked Su Ruanruan very much, wanting her to stay for two days. Bao Jingyan agreed. Su Ruanruan was somewhat reluctant and said goodbye to him in the car. "Do you miss me?" He hugged her to his chest and asked, leaning his forehead against hers. Su Ruanruan rested against his shoulder, shaking her head, "Bao Jingyan, did you n to bring me here long ago?" Bao Jingyan lightly smiled. As if he implicitly agreed. Su Ruanruan bit her lip, "Also, why did the olddy say I am Gu Zes biological sister?" "If Aunt Gu treats you as her own, arent you Gu Zes biological sister?" Bao Jingyan retorted. But Su Ruanruan still felt something was amiss. Everything today felt like a meeting between the parents of both sides in a rtionship. But she couldnt voice this out loud. Bao Jingyan also couldnt bear to part with her, murmuring reluctantly, "Isnt it better here? So you dont have to be forced to do those things every night." Su Ruanruans face turned bright red, she wanted to get out. But Bao Jingyan not only did not let her go but also whispered even more outrageous things into her ear. "Crying and fussing every time, I brought you here because I feel sorry for you." Su Ruanruan was terribly embarrassed. She refused to listen to his shameless words! And they were still at his grandmothers house! Chapter 229: Two Uncles from the Sun Family

Chapter 229: Chapter 229: Two Uncles from the Sun Family

Bao Jingyan took a small advantage and finally let go of her reluctantly. He said, "Rest well. In a week, it will be the 40th anniversary of Gu Company, and Aunt Gu will publicly take you as her goddaughter." He patted her, "By then, our Miss Su can once again walk proudly in Jiangcheng, and Director Bao will probably beg you toe back to the Bao Family andpany." Su Ruanruan whispered, "I always feel that Aunt Gu is too good to me, I have nothing to offer in return." "Thinking too much." Bao Jingyan kissed her, "If youre bored, call Gu Jiarou to keep youpany." Su Ruanruan hmmd, then said, "I like her." A hint of amusement shed through Bao Jingyans eyes. Of course, she likes her, they are blood rtives after all! Bao Jingyan stayed for a while longer before leaving. He indeed had an appointment to y golf. After he left, a servant led Su Ruanruan to her room. The servants in the Sun Family treated her very well, and Su Ruanruan gradually rxed. She texted Gu Jiarou about everything that happened today. Gu Jiarou said, "Jingyan is protecting you!" Su Ruanruan knew this. ... Just as the two young girls were chatting happily, the sound of car horns, one after another, echoed in the courtyard. Someone from the Sun Family had returned. A servant knocked on the door and said respectfully, "Miss Su, two gentlemen have returned! They would like to see you." Su Ruanruan was startled. Bao Jingyans uncles? Gu Jiarou heard this over the phone and snickered, "Wow Ruanruan, you have such a big influence that those two rushed back from City B." Gu Jiarou sent an emoji. Go for it! Su Ruanruan was both amused and annoyed, she raised her voice and said to the outside, "Ill be right there." She tidied herself up and followed the servant to the study. Upon entering, she smelled the scent of ink. The study was filled with an ancient and deep aroma. The two men, one still and one active, looked very simr. Sun Jingan stood in front of the desk writing, while Sun Jingyu sat drinking tea. Hearing the sound of footsteps at the door, both uncles from the Sun Family looked up. Su Ruanruan stood at the door, slender and picturesque. Wearing a ck chiffon top with a white skirt and long ck hair flowing straight down her back, her small oval face. wlessly beautiful. Additionally, she had a calm demeanor. She resembled Weilian by sixty percent. Sun Jingyu, drinking tea, said, "Youngdy, dont wear such in clothes in the future." Weilian liked in clothes, and it didnt end well for her. He subconsciously disliked it. Sun Jingan stopped his pen, silently watched her for a moment, then said with a serious voice, "Jingyan didnt find someone simr to his mother, did he?" The two men spoke with intentional thorns, clearly on purpose. Su Ruanruan was not embarrassed, but retorted, "If thats the case, then you two uncles should like me even more." Both Sun Jingan and Sun Jingyuughed. Sun Jingan pointed at Su Ruanruan with his brush, "Such a sharp tongue, such cunning thoughts." Sun Jingyu joined in, "How can such a girl marry into our Sun Family?" Su Ruanruan lowered her eyes, "Thats also how I describe Bao Jingyan." The two uncles from the Sun Family looked at each other. Sun Jingyu said to Sun Jingan, "Shes probably not easy to bully!" Sun Jingan nced at Su Ruanruan, then continued writing his characters. He spoke slowly, "I heard youre only 18 years old, how can you manage Jingyans home well?" Su Ruanruan walked in gracefully. She poured a cup of tea for Sun Jingyu and ground ink for Sun Jingan. After a moment, she said, "Bao Jingyan cant provide me a home yet! Uncle, actually I think Im at a loss." Sun Jingan looked at her again. This young girl was very bold. Ordinary people would have been trembling in his presence. Yet she could still spar with him. Sun Jingan shamelessly put down his brush, "I always write this character poorly, you write it." Heh, Jingyan has put this girl on a pedestal. He didnt believe it. He wanted to see her stir things up! Su Ruanruan asked, "If I write it well, will Uncle stop giving me a hard time?" Sun Jingan coughed lightly, "This is a test! How can a test be considered giving you a hard time?" Chapter 230: Her True Face is Your Dad

Chapter 230: Chapter 230: Her True Face is Your Dad

Su Ruanruan was left speechless. That shameless vigor, Bao Jingyan must have inherited it from him. She picked up her brush, nced at the Sun Family uncle, and then gently wrote the character "" (jing). As soon as she set down the first two strokes, Sun Jingyu was already full of praise. Sun Jingan snorted softly. Just two strokes, whats so good about that? But when the entire character wasplete, the harsh words he had ready at his lips couldnte out. Her calligraphy with the brush was very proper, quite impressive. It was no worse than his own, honed over more than twenty years! Su Ruanruan set down the brush and asked the Sun Family uncle, "Uncle, what do you think?" Sun Jingyu was about to givepliments when the door to the study opened. A servant stood at the door, troubled: "The olddy is asking for the great master toe over." With a fierce re at Su Ruanruan, Sun Jingan left. A momentter, the olddys scolding could be heard from outside. "You ingrate, did you rush over from City B just to make things difficult for the youngdy?" "How old is she? And how old are you, Jingan?" "Think about Jingyans age. Finally, theres a youngdy who doesnt despise him, and he likes her so much. Are you intentionally wanting your nephew to remain a bachelor? You wont let Jingse marry, and you also want Jingyan to stay single? I see, youre deliberately trying to make things difficult for your sister. Hah, usually you act like you care so much about your sister, psh, the real you shows the moment shes gone." ... The old Mrs. Sun was usually very genteel, but her scolding was no less fierce than Old Lady Baos. Amused, Su Ruanruan couldnt help but miss the olddy. She had yed a game against Mrs. Bao, which ended up hurting the olddys feelings. She felt a wave of sadness. From outside, Sun Jingans arguments could be heard. "Mom, I was just looking out for Jingyan!" "That usation of my real intentions, its so unpleasant to hear!" "I just wanted to see the girls true intentions, to find out if she truly likes Jingyan, or if she harbors ulterior motives to use him..." Old Mrs. Sun spat out in disgust, "Her true intention is your dad!" "My dads already been carried away. Olddy, please think of someone else." Old Mrs. Sun gestured as if to hit him, and Sun Jingan immediately cowered and coaxed her kindly. Mother and son reconciled. They whispered intimately. ... Inside the study, Su Ruanruan appeared calm on the surface, but inside she was experiencing a storm of emotions. Sun Jingan really had spent decades immersed in a certain world, seeing through everything. When she first got together with Bao Jingyan, it was half due to his coercion and half due to her own covetousness. All the while, Sun Jingyu calmly sipped tea. He observed Su Ruanruan. Then, he smiled: "Im aware of Jingyans shorings, dont worry about it." He added: "Youre young, Ill make sure Jingyan is more considerate towards you." While speaking, Sun Jingan came in. He began to speak very calmly: "Our return today with your second uncle was rather hasty, and we didnt have time to prepare anything. Tomorrow morning, your two aunts will fly back to provide you with a proper meeting gift." Su Ruanruan was taken aback. Sun Jingan cleared his throat: "Now that youre here, settle in properly." His voice warmed up a bit: "If you feel wronged or find it inconvenient, you can talk to me and your second uncle. We will stand up for you!" After saying so, he left awkwardly. Sun Jingyu caught up with his elder brother in the yard. Sun Jingan tossed a cigarette to his younger brother. Between puffs of smoke, Sun Jingan gave a wry smile: "The olddy told me a bit about the kid, shes had it tough." He gestured with his chin: "Go call her for dinner." Sun Jingyu smiled, bumped his shoulder: "Not going to make it difficult for her anymore? Who was it that swore up and down they would put her through eighty-one trials?" "Get out of here," Sun Jingan snorted lightly: "Wait until your wife deals with you." Chapter 231 Ruanruan, You Are Very Likable to the Elderly

Chapter 231: Chapter 231 Ruanruan, You Are Very Likable to the Elderly

During the meal, the two uncles of the Sun Family took extra care of Su Ruanruan, a marked change from their previous difficulties. Su Ruanruan was somewhat surprised. Returning to her bedroom, she took a bath andy on the bed in her slip. After some thought, she still made a phone call to Bao Jingyan. His voice was somewhat low: "Missing me already after just half a day?" "Its not about that." Su Ruanruan repeated the events to him. Bao Jingyanughed: "Whats so surprising about that! Ruanruan, youre quite charming to the older generation." "If your two uncles knew you said that, they would definitely not let you off the hook," Su Ruanruan hummed softly. "Already calling them uncles now?" Bao Jingyan teased her on purpose. Su Ruanruans face blushed, and she hung up the phone with a light cry. After hanging up the phone, her face remained flushed for a while before she remembered the important matters at hand. Right now, Lady Bao must be actively working on Bao Ziqis marriage, and Bao Mingyuan, even if he regrets it, cannot change what has been set in motion. When the timees, it would not be good for her and Bao Ziqi to be brought together by Bao Mingyuan. Her calctions towards Lady Bao were exactly for this oue. From now on, she would have no further rtions with Bao Ziqi. A cold glint flickered through Su Ruanruans eyes. The night was slightly cool. Yet she was not sleepy at all and simply got up to sit on the chaise lounge by the window. Her ck hair was loosened, and she focused on reading documents. ... Early the next morning at seven oclock, Su Ruanruan got up and went to the dining room for breakfast. The two uncles from the Sun Family had already returned to B city, and two beautiful and dignified women were surrounding the elder Mrs. Sun, speaking with her. Their expressions were filled with respect. Su Ruanruan figured that these two must be Bao Jingyans aunts, so she first greeted the elder Mrs. Sun and then addressed the two aunts separately. The wife of Sun Jingan smiled broadly: "Truly not bad! Both personality and looks are top-notch." The wife of Sun Jingyu sipped her tea, "Indeed, Jingyan has such high standards." She then added jokingly to the elderlydy, "Over the years, so many youngdies have been chasing after Jingyan, but he didnt care for any of them. Turns out he likes someone like Ruanruan." Elder Mrs. Sun chuckled: "Five years ago, Jingyan had already taken note of Ruanruan and kept her in his heart ever since." Su Ruanruan blushed somewhat. Although she knew about this, she did not know the details. Elder Mrs. Sun watched her with amusement and said: "When Jingyan first joined Di Jing, he often saw you painting in the square! But you were still so young back then, and he was busy after, so he missed the chance." Both aunts from the Sun Family sighed: "Truly, its fate." Elder Mrs. Sun nodded: "Exactly." She then told her daughters-inw: "Dont think Ruanruan looks soft and frail; shes very capable. Last night, Jingan almost suffered a bit at her hands." The wife of Sun Jinganughed: "He always puts on airs; Ruanruan, dont be afraid of him! Hes just a paper tiger." The wife of Sun Jingyu also joined in with a few witticisms. Both beautiful and witty, Su Ruanruan liked them very much. The wife of Sun Jingan briskly said: "Your eldest uncle asked us two to take you out for a stroll, to add some things. As for the formal stuff, well arrange it once we set the date." Su Ruanruan felt a bit shy. But she couldnt bear to refuse. Having lost her mother at a young age, how could she not like such kind-hearted women? Seeing her moved, the wife of Sun Jingan patted her hand: "Being with Jingyan, good days are yet toe." After breakfast, Elder Mrs. Sun hurried them out the door. The twodies from the Sun Family were distinguished names in B city and were not too familiar with Jiangcheng. The housekeeper of the Sun Family led the way, quite eloquent, and the journey was anything but dull. In the car, Su Ruanruan thought to herself that she should also buy gifts for everyone in the Sun Familyter; it wouldnt be good to neglect the proper etiquette. Chapter 232: Reckless, Su Ruanruan Still Has Support

Chapter 232: Chapter 232: Reckless, Su Ruanruan Still Has Support

Jiangchengsrgest shopping center. Mrs. Bao and Xia Minn walked hand in hand, as close as mother and daughter-inw. After getting rid of Su Ruanruan, Mrs. Bao felt much happier. There was just one thing that wasnt good, Ziqi was too cold towards Minn. She knew in her heart that he couldnt forget Ruanruan. Topensate, she decided to buy Xia Minn a diamond ring. They were about to take the elevator to the fourth floor when Mrs. Bao glimpsed something from the corner of her eye. She saw Su Ruanruan. Ruanruan seemed to be waiting for someone. Herplexion showed no sign of weariness, even more dazzling than before. Mrs. Bao felt uneasy inside, and walked over with Xia Minn. As haughty as ever, she said: "Waiting for Gu Ze?" Su Ruanruan nced at her, then at Xia Minn by her side. She did not lose herposure, responding with a faint smile: "Waiting for two elders." Mrs. Bao smirked: "I didnt expect you to have any elders." She said earnestly: "Your uncle is very concerned about you! If you have any troubles, you cane to me or to Minn. Oh right, you probably dont know yet, but Minn and Ziqi are practically engaged." She was taking Su Ruanruan for a fallen woman, thus she humiliated her to the fullest. Mrs. Bao was enjoying herself when two elegantly beautiful women approached Ruanruan. The Sun Familys two aunts were from City B and usually kept a very low profile. Mrs. Bao didnt recognize them and didnt take them seriously. Madam Sun Jingan looked down on her, she was nothing more than Bao Mingyuans third child after all. They only spoke kindly to Su Ruanruan, saying: "Lets go check out the store up ahead." Ruanruan nodded lightly, obediently leaving with them. Mrs. Baos face soured. Su Ruanruan had actually ignored her! Shouldnt she be begging her for help? Xia Minn smiled and said from the sideline: "Miss Su is very likable! Those two..." "Not worth mentioning," said Mrs. Bao with a dismissive air: "Ive never seen them before." She then told Xia Minn: "Next week is the Gu Companys annual meeting, you and Ziqi shoulde with us." That annual meeting would be enough to crush Su Ruanruanpletely. She had another trump card up her sleeve. With just a little instigation towards Mrs. Gu, Su Ruanruans defeat would be certain. Mrs. Bao smiled coldly. Not of her own blood... no matter how good, what could she amount to? Xia Minn nodded with a faint smile upon hearing this. She had liked Bao Ziqi for a long time, alwaysparing herself with Su Ruanruan, openly and secretly. Originally she thought Ruanruan was sopetent and strong, only to find that she was easily vulnerable. ... Later on, Mrs. Bao picked out a pear-shaped diamond ring for Xia Minn, the same model worn by a certain female star. A full thirty carats. Over six million yuan. This showed how much Mrs. Bao valued Xia Minn. Xia Minn felt a bit disappointed because it wasnt personally given by Ziqi. But thinking of how highly Mrs. Bao regarded her, she felt consoled. As they were about to leave, they saw a woman walking towards this counter. She looked somewhat simr to Su Ruanruan in her features. Seeing Xia Minn staring, Mrs. Bao said with disdain: "Thats a woman kept by Mu Jiu." Xia Minn wanted to say something, but Mrs. Bao added: "Su Ruanruan injured Mr. Mu Jiu, yet Im thinking of getting acquainted with this Mr. Mu Jiu!" She whispered, "Minn, there are some things for which you inevitably need these kinds of people to step in." After Mrs. Bao casually mentioned it, Xia Minn smiled and said: "Auntie, getting to know Mr. Mu Jiu isnt really difficult." Mrs. Bao was pleasantly surprised, "You have a way?" Xia Minn nodded: "I know that Mr. Mu Jius mother has recently fallen seriously ill and needs brain surgery. All the lead surgeons in the country are not confident, and Mr. Mu Jiu is looking for a surgeon named Zhou Zizhuo." "Do you know him?" Mrs. Bao grabbed her hand, asking eagerly. Chapter 233: Xia Minglan Wants to Replace Su Ruanruan

Chapter 233: Chapter 233: Xia Minn Wants to Rece Su Ruanruan

Xia Minn replied with feigned casualness, "Its not a coincidence at all; Ive met this Doctor Zhou Zizhuo a few times before." "Excellent," Mrs. Bao was quite thrilled. She said, "Minn, if you handle this well, your uncle will hold you in high regard too." Xia Minn smiled faintly, "Aunt, rest assured! Zhou Zizhuo will certainly extend this courtesy." Mrs. Bao gently stroked her hand, "Then do handle it well." The two exchanged a knowing smile. So Xia Minn took a step forward, and said to Zhou Susu, "I suppose youre one of Mr. Mus people." Zhou Susu was startled. Upon looking up. She saw Mrs. Bao and a distinguished youngdy. Zhou Susu eyed them warily, "What do you want?" Mrs. Bao adjusted her hair. She was of high status and didnt wish to speak with someone like Zhou Susu. Xia Minn smiled, "I heard Mr. Mu is looking for Doctor Zhou Zizhuo. It happens that I know him." "Really?" Zhou Susus eyes widened, "You know him and youre willing to introduce us?" Xia Minn still wore a smile. She handed over a business card, "If Mr. Mu trusts me, he can call me. Ill also contact Doctor Zhou as soon as possible." Zhou Susu was genuinely fond of Mu Jiu. These past few days Mu Jiu had been in a foul mood because of his mothers illness, and she wanted to cheer him up. She promptly took the business card. Mrs. Bao was very pleased with Xia Minn and said, "Tonight, I must discuss this with your uncle, to properly credit you for your effort." Xia Minn blushed slightly. She thought she would eventually touch Bao Ziqis heart. Zhou Susu returned and promptly ryed the good news to Mu Jiu. She presented Xia Minns business card. With a ttering look. Mu Jiu massaged his forehead and scrutinized it carefully. After reading, he looked up, "Are you saying Bao Ziqis woman gave you a card, saying shes going to save my mother?" Mu Jiu was skeptical, "Would he be so kind-hearted?" Zhou Susu spoke coquettishly, "I think they also want to connect with you! Sir, imagine if you take this opportunity to let bygones be bygones with the Bao Family, wouldnt it be perfect? Besides, they know Doctor Zhou, and this opportunity is rare." Mu Qun lit a cigarette and gave it serious thought. He really didnt want to owe the Bao Family, but his mothers life was more important. After a moment, he spoke, "Fine, as long as she can get Doctor Zhou Zizhuo, I, Mu Jiu, will give them two ports in return." Zhou Susu felt a twinge of pain for the price, but then reconsidered. If the matter was settled, her standing in Mu Jius eyes would certainly be different. She immediately called that Miss Xia and conveyed Mu Jius words. After Xia Minn hung up, she smiled faintly. She found out that Zhou Zizhuo was in City B and would being to Jiang City next week. By then, she would invite him for a meal, and the matter would be settled. She informed Mrs. Bao of the news. Mrs. Bao was overjoyed. Holding the phone, she rushed upstairs, and Bao Mingyuan had juste back from thepany, loosening his tie. Seeing his wife ascend the stairs, he asked nonchntly, "I heard you bought a diamond ring for the Xia Family child today?" "Only over six million," Mrs. Bao leaned against her husband, "Mingyuan, when did you be so stingy?" "Its not about being stingy! Did you consult Ziqi on this matter?" asked Bao Mingyuan. He added, "Even if theres such a n, they should spend time together first! This seems too hasty." Mrs. Bao was embarrassed. She sat on the sofa, and shook her phone, "I actually had some good news to tell you. But it seems you dont want to hear it." "Good news? What else could be good news now?" Bao Mingyuancked enthusiasm. He copsed onto the bed and closed his eyes. These past few days, hed been constantly missing Ruanruan... Chapter 234: Young Master Ziqi, I am not Ruanruan

Chapter 234: Chapter 234: Young Master Ziqi, I am not Ruanruan

Mrs. Bao was livid at her husbands behavior. Heh, he used to yearn for Sun Weilian. Now hes infatuated with that little temptress Su Ruanruan! She suppressed the mes in her heart, stepping gracefully as if on lotus petals, moving closer to the bed, and seductively said to her husband, "Mu Jius mother is ill, and only Doctor Zhou Zizhuo can perform the surgery! Mu Jiu couldnt procure his services despite offering a hefty sum, but our Minn has the influence. Ive asked around, Mu Jiu said if this matter is resolved, they will gift us two ports." "Really?" Bao Mingyuan sat up at once. Mrs. Bao was both angry and amused, "When have I ever lied to you?" Bao Mingyuan gently caressed his wifes fragrant shoulders, "Youve done well with this! Minn did a great job too." Mrs. Baoined, "Just now, you were ming me for buying Minn a diamond ring." "If youve bought it, then its bought, get Secretary Dong to reimburse it," Bao Mingyuans voice grew deeper, almost hoarse. He had been in a foul mood these days and hadnt been close with his wife. But now, the gloom swept away, he instantly felt spry and energetic. Mrs. Bao initially declined but soon could not restrain herself from actively reciprocating... A passionate affair. They were half an hourte for dinner. The olddys face was ck as thunder. Such an age, and still not acting with dignity! Bao Mingyuan, doting on his wife, ced a hand on his mothers shoulder, "Just now we were chatting more with Meiyu! Grandma, we underestimated Minn before; shes actually acquainted with Zhou Zizhuo, the world-renowned surgeon. With this connection, the Bao Family can benefit greatly." The olddy sneered, "It seems youre choosing business partners! Whoever is useful, Ziqi weds?" Bao Mingyuan maintained a smiling face, "Minn is very outstanding." The olddy had her own ideas. Back in the courtyard, shey on the rocking chair telling Gui Zhi, "No, I have to meet that girl Ruanruan." Gui Zhi knew the truth and had to hoodwink the olddy, "Its already dark, lets talk about it tomorrow." The olddy, eyes open, said, "When that child left, she didnt take anything decent with her, I feel cold! Mingyuan is too heartless!" Gui Zhi consoled, "Miss Su is kind-hearted, she will surely find a way to survive." The olddy sighed, "Mingyuan likes the Xia family girl, and Ziqi hasnt taken a stand, this marriage... I fear..." Suddenly, her ears picked up a sound. "Whats that noise? Gui Zhi, go check, is Ruanruan back?" Gui Zhi said, "Ill have a look." She slipped through the dark night to the room where Su Ruanruan had stayed. To her surprise, the visitor was Bao Ziqi. Bao Ziqi had been drinking with friends, and they were up for more fun at a club. He wouldnt usually kill the mood, but today he just couldnt even bother with pretenses. Once home, fueled by the alcohol, he went to Su Ruanruans room. Her things were tossed around in disarray. Piled up, inplete chaos. Bao Ziqi felt a pang in his heart. He touched the books she had flipped through, softly calling out, "Ruanruan." But no one responded to him. He copsed onto the bed she had slept in, the smell of dust reaching his nose. She was gone, even the scent was different. He remembered that here, there was always a pleasant masted scent. Bao Ziqi didnt want to go anywhere, he just wanted to sleep here; seeing him like this, Gui Zhi felt terribly sorry for him. Its not good to be a concubine, but young master Ziqi is indeed not bad. She gently shook Bao Ziqi, softly calling, "Young master Ziqi, wake up." Several attemptster. Bao Ziqi finally opened his eyes. His drunken gaze settled on the swaying figure before him. "Ruanruan..." he murmured. Then, he embraced the woman above him. Ruanruan... Ruanruan... youvee back! You must have been unable to let go of me too, right? Bao Ziqi, having suppressed his feelings for so long, suddenly hugged and kissed her. Gui Zhi, who had been an old maid all her life, had never seen such a disy and couldnt help but scream... Startling the entire Bao Family! Chapter 235 He Still Misses Su Ruanruan

Chapter 235: Chapter 235 He Still Misses Su Ruanruan

Late at night. The Bao Mansion was brightly lit. All the servants were startled awake, with footsteps in disarray inside the courtyard. Bao Mingyuan and his wife rushed to the small courtyard in their pajamas. Upon entering, they were stunned. In the middle of the night, Ziqi was lying on the bed that Su Ruanruan had slept in. His face flushed red, hand covering his eyes. Clearly, he had been drinking. Bao Mingyuan looked at the elderlydy: "How did Ziqi end up here?" The elderlydy red fiercely at him and said: "Such a good child, now he seems like hes lost his soul every day." She slowly sat down and said to Gui Zhi: "You tell this gentleman what exactly happened to Ziqi." Gui Zhis face turned red. "The elderlydy heard some noises and asked me to check. When I reached Miss Sus room, I found young master Ziqi lying here. I called him to get up, but..." At this point, she became too embarrassed to continue. Bao Mingyuan pressed: "But what?" Gui Zhis face flushed deeply as she blurted out: "Young master Ziqi was calling Miss Sus name while trying to embrace me." Gui Zhi expressed urgently: "Sir, madam, I definitely did not seduce young master Ziqi." Bao Mingyuan suddenly felt a headache. He coughed lightly to reassure Gui Zhi: "Aunty Gui Zhi, we definitely do not suspect that." "Its Ziqis fault." He forced a smile: "We will take him back and educate him properly." The elderlydy dered: "You two need topensate Gui Zhi! She was terribly frightened." Bao Mingyuan said yes with a smile. Mrs. Baos face was drained of color. Despite all her thoughts, she never imagined her son could do such a shameful act! To think that he would embrace and nibble on an old nanny in the household, isnt Gui Zhi at least 60? Mrs. Baos face turned cold as she ordered the servants to carry her son back to the main mansion. But when the servants moved, Bao Ziqi turned to his side, grabbed a pillow and held it, mumbling Ruanruans name. Bao Mingyuan and his wife exchanged a nce. In the end, Mrs. Bao hardened her heart and signaled with her eyes. Several strong servants dragged Bao Ziqi out; his cries for Ruanruan could still be heard from afar. "Did you hear that!" The elderlydy scoffed coldly: "Ziqi is in love with Ruanruan, not the Xia Familys daughter." She looked at Bao Mingyuan: "Are you still going to indulge your wifes nonsense?" Bao Mingyuan felt helpless. He cated the elderlydy: "Let nature take its course, ultimately it has to be Ziqis own decision." The elderlydy sat there. For a long time, she remained silent. ... Mrs. Bao, having been scolded, felt unhappy. She returned to the main mansion and went straight to Bao Ziqis bedroom. The servants were taking care of him. "How is Ziqi?" she asked as she approached. The servant spoke softly: "He drank a bit too much, weve already prepared some hangover soup." Mrs. Bao asked them to leave and took care of him herself. After feeding him half a bowl of hangover soup, Bao Ziqi became much more lucid. He sat up, leaned against the headboard, and rubbed his forehead asking: "Mom, why are you here?" Mrs. Baos expression wasplex: "Do you remember what you did?" Bao Ziqi remained silent. Mrs. Bao grasped his hand, saying: "Mom knows whats in your heart! But Su Ruanruan is too scheming and unclear with others, how can she marry into the Bao Family?" Ziqi was unwilling to admit his feelings for Su Ruanruan. Even in front of his own mother, he couldnt. He said hoarsely: "Im fine." "If youre fine, go out and have some fun with Minn." Mrs. Bao detailed the events of the day and added: "Minn can help us with important things." Ziqi couldnt help but respond: "I have no ambitions for the Emperors scenery, Bao Jingyan is managing it well!" Mrs. Bao was displeased. But considering her sons poor mood, she didnt say more. Chapter 236 Zhou Zizhuo, Su Ruanruan鈥檚 Senior Brother

Chapter 236: Chapter 236 Zhou Zizhuo, Su Ruanruans Senior Brother

He slowlyy down after she left. He stared at the immacte white ceiling, yet he couldnt help but think of Su Ruanruan. She was terrible, especially detestable. But still, he missed her. Even if it were just to have her stay in the house so he could see her at all times, that would be good. ... Late at night, a car drove into the yard. Bao Jingyan came back to fetch a document. Just as he entered the hall, Housekeeper Wang whispered in his ear about what had happened tonight. Bao Jingyan was surprised. Housekeeper Wang smiled with a deep meaning, "Heard it gave Gui Zhi quite a fright!" He sighed, "This younger master really cant stop thinking about Miss Ruanruan." Thatment stirred a subtle possessiveness in Bao Jingyan. He went upstairs to grab the document, and hurried back down. Housekeeper Wang unexpectedly asked, "Young Master Jingyan, youre not staying the night?" Bao Jingyan nodded lightly, "Keep your mouth shut, dont let the olddy know I was back." Housekeeper Wang smiled. Right, no one but Miss Ruanruan could make the young master rush about in the dead of night. Bao Jingyan was headed to the Sun Family. He drove there himself, arriving at the Sun family residence at one in the morning. Su Ruanruan had already gone to sleep. In her sleep, she felt short of breath and struggled a bit, finally unable to resist opening her eyes. Under the dim yellow light, Bao Jingyan was propped by her side, one hand cradling her head. He kissed her fervently. Su Ruanruans face flushed, and she turned her head away. Her breathing was a bit erratic. "Why did youe here?" Bao Jingyan gently stroked her hair, his voice husky, "I couldnt sleep, so I came here." Actually, he was provoked by Bao Ziqi. The thought of his Ruanruan being coveted by another man, staying in her room, sleeping in her bed... Bao Jingyans blood surged. Deep into the night. And again, a man and a woman alone. Bao Jingyan let himself go even more, almost crossing the line... Su Ruanruan was both embarrassed and afraid. This was the Sun Family; she feared others might hear. She pleaded in a soft voice, but hearing that kitten-like voice only made it harder for Bao Jingyan to resist. He hoarsely spoke, "From now on, youre not to speak to Bao Ziqi, got it?" Su Ruanruan felt like crying but didnt. He was shameless! Commanding her on one hand and treating her that way on the other... After a long while, Bao Jingyan finally let her go. Su Ruanruan rested for a while before going to the bathroom to clean up. Shortly after, she returned to the bedroom. Bao Jingyan leaned against the headboard smoking. ck slim-fit trousers and a ck shirt. The top three buttons of his shirt were undone, revealing his attractive corbone and the contours of his muscles. Very eye-catching. Su Ruanruan refused to go over. Instead, she sat on the sofa, holding a book on herp. Pretending to flip through it. Bao Jingyan slowly blew out a ring of smoke and asked, "I heard youre going up north with your two aunts to have fun for a few days?" Su Ruanruan hummed in response. "Why suddenly decide to go?" Su Ruanruan didnt hide it from him, "Dad has a student who recently returned to country in city B! He contacted me, I thought itd be good to meet up." "Zhou Zizhuo?" Bao Jingyan raised an eyebrow, "Mu Jiu is searching high and low for him now!" "You know too?" Su Ruanruans eyes sparkled. Bao Jingyan chuckled, "How could I not know? Everyone in Jiang City knows." He gestured for her toe over. Su Ruanruan obediently sat on hisp, wrapping her arms around his neck. She looked at him with pure innocence. Bao Jingyan gently tousled her hair, "I heard Xia Minn volunteered to introduce Zhou Zizhuo to Qi Meiyu. Ruanruan, did you go to city B specifically for this?" Su Ruanruan smiled slightly. Bao Jingyans voice deepened, "That means we wont see each other for several days." Su Ruanruan softly whimpered, "What are you thinking of doing?" Just because he understood her like this, she felt blissful and could even forgive those vile things he did. But now, he was showing his true colors again. Chapter 237: Words of Tigers and Wolves

Chapter 237: Chapter 237: Words of Tigers and Wolves

Early the next morning. Bao Jingyan appeared in the dining room in his usual casual manner. The elderly Mrs. Sun pped his hand, scolding, "Impetuous! Dont lead Ruanruan astray." Su Ruanruans face turned a light pink. The two aunts from the Sun Family tried to persuade the olddy, "Jingyan is in the prime of his youth. If he doesnt find a girlfriend, do you expect him to find women outside?" Bao Jingyan let out a lightugh. Looking every bit the part of a rakish scoundrel. Su Ruanruan hung her head down low. Not uttering a word. Mrs. Sun Jingan said with a smile, "Jingyan knows his limits! Our Ruanruan is still young!" Su Ruanruan felt almost too ufortable to sit still. Why were Bao Jingyans aunts always speaking such lurid words? Bao Jingyan poured her a ss of milk, saying softly, "Ill take you to the airportter." Su Ruanruan made a sound of acknowledgment. He then casually asked, "Have you bought the gift for your uncle?" Su Ruanruan honestly confessed, "I bought it the day before yesterday while shopping! I also bought gifts for the aunt and the olddy." "I charged it to your card." "Such a good girl." Bao Jingyan ruffled her small head. Mrs. Sun Jingyus smile was affectionate, "It turns out our familys Jingyan is also capable of being sweet." Severaldies covered their mouths and chuckled. At that moment, Bao Jingse arrived. She saw Su Ruanruan looking as usual, as if she already knew she would be there. Bao Jingses primary reason foring was to see off the two aunts. At the airport, Bao Jingyan went to check in the luggage, and the two aunts from the Sun Family went to the restroom. Bao Jingse and Su Ruanruan sat together. "Ruanruan," Bao Jingse suddenly called her name softly. Su Ruanruan hummed in response. Bao Jingse stroked her small head and said with a smile, "Have you grown distant from me? Because of Gu Ze?" Su Ruanruan nodded. Her gaze was innocent. She said, "Im afraid that Sister Jingse wont trust me." Bao Jingses eyes darkened as she whispered, "At first, I didnt understand; clearly you were with my older brother, so why go and stir up trouble with Gu Ze! But then I realized... I should have known... Ruanruan, I shouldnt be jealous of you! I apologize to you." Su Ruanruan was stunned. "Why apologize?" "Youll know in due time." Bao Jingse gently stroked her hair, saying softly, "Actually, upon a closer look, you indeed bear a resemnce to Aunt Gu." Su Ruanruan was even more puzzled. But there wasnt time to ask further as the two aunts from the Sun Family arrived. Bao Jingyan took them to the security check... * After dropping off Su Ruanruan, Bao Jingyan returned to Bao Mansion. He went to see the elderlydy. Early in the morning, the small courtyard was already bustling. The olddys legs were giving her trouble again. Doctor Gao was kept busy, sweating profusely, but the olddy was still not feeling well. She huffed, "If only Ruanruan were here, it would be better." Bao Jingyan personally massaged the olddys leg a few times, asking gently, "Are your legs hurting, or are you missing Ruanruan?" The olddy red at him, "Jingyan, are you deliberately poking at my heart?" Bao Jingyan just chuckled. Gui Zhi poured him a cup of tea, asking hesitantly, "Ever since Miss Su left, the olddy hasnt been happy!" Her eyes fixed on Bao Jingyan, she ventured to ask, "Does Young Master Jingyan know where Miss Su is now?" Bao Jingyan smiled and counter-asked, "Why does Aunt Gui ask me?" Gui Zhi inwardly scoffed: Pretend all you want! At that moment, the olddy lying down uttered a soft sigh, "Your father took things too far! Ive seen those photos; theres absolutely nothing wrong with them! Besides, even if Gu Ze likes Ruanruan... isnt that normal? How many men wouldnt like a girl like Ruanruan? Ziqi hasnt even regained hisposure yet." Chapter 238: Jingyan, can you help me find Ruanruan?

Chapter 238: Chapter 238: Jingyan, can you help me find Ruanruan?

Bao Jingyan let out a light chuckle. He said, "Shouldnt Ziqis soul belong to Miss Xia?" The olddy hit him, "You know exactly what youre doing!" Taking advantage of no one around, the olddy repeated the events ofst night. Her version was much more sensational than Housekeeper Wangs. After finishing, she added, "Jingyan, you have no idea how ugly the concubines face looked! She wasnt annoyed with Gui Zhi, but rather upset that her son still holds Ruanruan in his heart." The olddy closed her eyes briefly, "Ruanruan and Ziqi, these two kids, I had Gui Zhi calcted theirpatibilityst time, and it turned out they have no fate together." Bao Jingyan lifted his eyes to look at Gui Zhi. Gui Zhi gave a faint smile. Both knew what was in each others hearts. The olddy continued, "Now, I have no other wishes but to hope for Ruanruans return! The child is not favored in the Su Family, and she took almost nothing with her when she left. What if shecks food or clothing while out there?" Saying so, she couldnt help but tear up. She held Bao Jingyans hand, speaking softly, "Jingyan, help me find Ruanruan! Once found, get her a ce to stay and let her continue her studies, alright?" Bao Jingyan was deeply moved. He crouched down, gently asking, "Does the olddy really like her that much?" The olddy sighed, "Ive seen it clearly, not many truly care for her." "Just a while ago, your father valued her so highly, yet he was ready to cast her out based on a few photos, without leaving any leeway for sentiment!" Bao Jingyan gently massaged the olddys frail hands, smiling, "Alright, Ill bring her back for you! From now on, she can stay by your side and apany you every day." With those words, Gui Zhi stared straight at him. What daring from the young master! It was quite clear what he meant, unfortunately, the olddy failed to understand. Indeed, the olddy shook her head, "Its impossible between her and Ziqi! Ruanruan is too proud and dignified; having been treated like that, why would she want toe back?" Bao Jingyan merely smiled. He coaxed the olddy into having breakfast, and after much effort, she finally fell asleep. Gui Zhi escorted him out. "Thank you, Aunt Gui," Bao Jingyan lowered his voice, "You knew early on, didnt you?" Gui Zhi gave him a look, then said, "I saw it when the young master and the third young Miss Su were getting engaged." Bao Jingyanughed. Gui Zhi pulled him aside, whispering, "Young Master Jingyan, what do you n to do? Im helping you keep it a secret, but sooner orter the olddy might realize." "Lets wait until Ruanruan is older," Bao Jingyan said softly, "Making it known now wouldnt be good for her either." Gui Zhi thought for a moment, then nodded. Just then, Bao Jingyans phone rang. It was a message from Su Ruanruan. They had already arrived in City B. Gui Zhi whispered from the side, "Is it Miss Su?" Bao Jingyan hummed an acknowledgment and replied to the message. He added, "Shes in City B, at my uncles ce." Now, Gui Zhi was truly stunned. Does this mean they are discussing marriage? After sending the message, Bao Jingyan left the Bao Family, ready to get into his car when he saw Bao Ziqi. He looked like he was heading out. However, he didnt look well. Bao Jingyan frowned, "Running about when youre unwell?" Bao Ziqis attitude was cold. He opened the car door, looking up at Bao Jingyan, "None of your business!" With that, he got into the car and sped away. Bao Jingyan shook his head. Bao Ziqi had quite the temper, probably because he hadnt faced much adversity. Of course, his biggest trouble came from Mrs. Bao. Early in the morning, Mrs. Bao and Xia Minn were having morning tea. Mrs. Bao was eager to know about Zhou Zizhuo, and of course, she didnt go alone but also brought Bao Ziqi. Minn was understanding; the Bao Family also had to show their sincerity. Chapter 239: I Am the Law

Chapter 239: Chapter 239: I Am the Law

Mrs. Bao checked her diamond watch with a smile, "Ziqi will be here soon." Without revealing her intentions, she asked, "Minn, have you been in touch with Doctor Zhou?" Xia Minn smiled slightly, "Dont worry, Auntie! Doctor Zhou is still in City B." She took a sip of coffee, speaking with a refined air, "This afternoon he has arranged to meet a junior from his school for tea." Mrs. Bao was overjoyed. "He told you such private matters?" She praised repeatedly, "It seems Doctor Zhou has a good impression of you." Xia Minn blushed slightly, "We did meet several times abroad, but it seems we were not fated." Mrs. Bao stroked her arm, smiling, "You and Ziqi are a match made in heaven." Xia Minns face turned red. Mrs. Bao continued, "When this Doctor Zhoues to Jiang City, Minn, we must set up a meeting with him immediately!" "Dont worry, Auntie," Xia Minn reassured. The two chatted for a while longer when Mrs. Bao grew somewhat dissatisfied, "Why hasnt Ziqi arrived yet?" She took out her phone. Suddenly, she was taken aback, "Look at this, Minn." [Gu familys young master has found a new love!] Xia Minn read carefully, "Its the rising star, Berlins Best Actress! The youngest in the country." "Thats really nice," Mrs. Bao smiled briefly, "What does that make Su Ruanruan?" Xia Minn took a delicate sip of coffee. She said, "Gu Ze has an open approach to love! But he will choose a marriage partner of equal social standing." She spoke with modesty, "Miss Sus background, Im afraid, is not up to par." Mrs. Bao smiled. She felt extremely pleased inside! They waited quite a while longer, but Bao Ziqi still did not show up. The phone line was constantly busy! Xia Minns eyes dulled. ... Just then, a figure swept close, brashly taking a seat in front of them. Mrs. Bao jumped with a start. Looking over, it was Mu Qun. Mu Qun hadnt had much sleep for days taking care of Old Madam Mu. His beard was unkempt, and his face was haggard. Mrs. Bao instinctively looked left and right, afraid of attracting attention. From the bottom of her heart, she looked down on people of Mu Jius status. Mu Qun, well aware of her petty thoughts, said gruffly, "Rx, even if you were twenty years younger, I wouldnt be interested in sleeping with you." Mrs. Baosplexion faded. This man was so crass! Mu Qun ignored her, asking Xia Minn directly, "What did Doctor Zhou say?" Xia Minn remainedposed and ryed the truth. Mu Jiu rubbed his chin, saying, "It seems Zhou Zizhuo really cares about this junior of his! Nab her and Zhou wont dare disobey us." Xia Minn couldnt agree. Mrs. Bao eximed, "Mu Jiu, is there no rule ofw left?" "My mother is in the hospital waiting for surgery! And you talk to me about the rule ofw?" Mu Jiu was so angry he felt like pping this posturing old woman into the air. Mrs. Bao trembled with rage. If it wasnt for the desire for his two ports and future cooperation, she would turn and leave this instant. Mu Jiu stared at Xia Minn, "You have the information on Zhous junior, right?" Xia Minn, too, was intimidated by his bandit-like demeanor. She pretended to be calm, "I really dont know. Doctor Zhou is very protective of her." "The hell with protection, that girl must be an ugly freak!" Mu Jiu cursed. He wiped his face and stood up, "Let me know immediately when you have news." As he left, Mu Jiu tossed a stack of banknotes to pay the bill. Mrs. Bao was disgusted by his nouveau riche behavior. Yet, Xia Minn sincerely said, "This Mu Jiu does have a straightforward nature." "A mere rustic peasant," Mrs. Bao said with disdain. Xia Minn said no more. Chapter 240: Mother Mu鈥檚 Prophecy Comes True

Chapter 240: Chapter 240: Mother Mus Prophecy Comes True

Mu Jiu went to the hospital. He pushed open the door of the ward and saw Zhou Susu busying herself. Mu Jiu was displeased, "What are you doing here?" "Im here to take care of Auntie," Zhou Susu was all modesty and virtue. Old Lady Mu was not foolish. Such a beautiful girl, with features somewhat resembling Miss Su. It must certainly be the woman his son was keeping. Old Lady Mu looked at her son. Mu Jiu then harshly said to Zhou Susu, "Youre not a doctor. What use are you here?" Zhou Susu, failing to ingratiate herself, stormed out with a twist of her body. Her figure had a seductive charm as she left. Just after she walked out, Old Lady Mu said, "A woman like her will only bring ruin to our family." "Who said I was going to marry her?" Mu Jiu sat down next to his mother and handed her a peeled apple. Old Lady Mu took it in her hand but did not eat. She said, "If youre not nning to marry her, why are you living together?" Mu Jiu did not respond. Old Lady Mu added, "Jiu, I might not know the fashions of city folk, but I do know one thing C its a mans duty to take responsibility if he sleeps with a girl." Mu Jiu was very filial. He hummed in agreement, "Got it." "What do you mean got it?" Old Lady Mu sighed, "If you did, you wouldnt be involved with such a woman! Jiu, if it were someone like Miss Su, Id die happy." "Whats all this about dying!" Mu Jiu was unhappy hearing that. He said, "Ive already asked someone to find Doctor Zhou! You just live a good long life till a hundred, and see me bring you two grandsons." "Granddaughters are fine too," Old Lady Mu said with a smile, then sternly looked at her son, "But once youre married, you need to temper that temper of yours. No more fighting and killing, its not good for your descendants." Mu Qun nodded. Old Lady Mu curiously asked, "Which family owes us a favor this time? Is it Academician Su?" Academician Su is Su Peiming, Su Ruanruans father. Mu Jiu couldnt helpughing, "Academician Su passed away several years ago, youve forgotten again." "Oh, my memory," Old Lady Mu held her forehead, "Then isnt Miss Su all alone now? Jiu, why dont you bring her here to stay?" Mu Jiu was half amused, half exasperated. He said, "Have you thought that maybe she already has someone?" And that someone is a super-rich pretty boy! Old Lady Mu fell silent. Mu Jiu tucked her in, feeling a bit sad inside. A blood clot had formed in his mothers brain, pressing on her nerves. Lately, she was bing more and more confused. The doctor said that if she doesnt have surgery within a month, she could go blind or even die. Mu Jiu was very frustrated, and after Old Lady Mu fell asleep, he went out to smoke... Zhou Zizhuo! Hell being to Jiang City in four days. When the timees, hed bind him and bring him here if necessary! ... These four days, Mu Jiu did not have it easy. Nor did Xia Minn. She had made a bold im at the Bao Family house that she could arrange a meeting with Zhou Zizhuo. But for several days now, Zhou Zizhuos assistant hadnt given a definitive response. Xia Minn was very anxious. But she believed that once Zhou Zizhuo arrived in Jiang City, she would find a way. Her family still had some influence! Today, Madame Bao invited her to dine at the Bao Family home. The old Madame Bao feigned illness and did not show. Bao Ziqi was indifferent. Bao Jingyuan, on the other hand, was very enthusiastic, but what made Xia Minn ufortable was that Bao Jingyuan mentioned Su Ruanruan five times in every ten sentences. Bao Jingyuan smiled sweetly, "Sister Minn, you know so much and have been to so many countries, not like the country bumpkin that used to live in our house." "Jingyuan," scolded Madam Bao, "Dont speak nonsense." Bao Jingyuan stuck out her tongue, "Whats not to say! Su Ruanruancks sophistication and flirts around! Now that Brother Gu Ze has a new girlfriend, who is a movie star, all of Jiang City is waiting tough at Su Ruanruans misfortune!" Chapter 241: A Short Parting Is Better Than a Newlywed

Chapter 241: Chapter 241: A Short Parting Is Better Than a Newlywed

Mrs. Bao frowned: "Some things are better left unsaid." "Mom, are you saying that youre not unhappy?" Bao Jingyuan asked, giggling. Mrs. Bao felt utterly helpless. She said to Xia Minn: "Jingyuan is thoughtless! But its true that Ruanruan doesnt get along with her; that child Ruanruan... is a bit too sensitive." Xia Minn was just about to offer some words offort. Bao Ziqi pushed his chair away. His face turned sour, and he immediately left the table. Mrs. Bao was stunned. Xia Minn felt somewhat embarrassed. ... Bao Ziqi sat on a bench in the courtyard, looking up at the bright moon in the sky. Bao Mingyuan came over and sat beside him, offering a cigarette. Bao Ziqi shook his head. "What? You regret it?" Bao Mingyuan patted his sons shoulder and sat down. Bao Ziqi turned his head. For a moment, he really wanted to reveal the rtionship between Bao Jingyan and Su Ruanruan, but the words choked back down as they reached his lips. He looked down upon himself. Bao Jingyan was right; he was a coward! Bao Mingyuan patted his sons shoulder: "Ziqi, theres no turning back once the arrow is shot from the bow!" After saying that, he stood up and walked towards the main house. Bao Ziqi sat in silence. He thought, he should learn to make some choices. His emotions for Su Ruanruan had tormented him, making him anxious and unlike himself! Perhaps he should ept Xia Minn. After all, she was not so bad. Being with her would make his family happy, wouldnt it? Bao Ziqi became proactive. He arranged to have coffee and see a movie with Xia Minn, and they seemed to get along quite well. Mrs. Bao then said to her husband: "Ziqi hase around. Now, isnt everyone happy?" Bao Mingyuan smiled. He didnt say anything but simply pulled out a cigarette andy down on the lounge chair. Squinting as he smoked. He should be happy. So why did he feel so uneasy again... * Early morning. Jiangcheng Cemetery. A tall figure stood beside, a slender one beside it. Zhou Zizhuo offered a bunch of daisies. He bowed deeply: "Teacher, Ivee to see you." In the photograph, Su Peimings gaze was gentle and kind. Zhou Zizhuo was filled with deep regret. If he had taken Ruanruan with him when the teacher passed away, she wouldnt have suffered so much. He said softly: "Teacher, rest assured, I will take good care of my little junior sister." Su Ruanruan stepped forward, gently touching Su Peimings photograph, murmuring softly: "Dad, I still cant get into Tongsheng, but I believe it wont be long." Zhou Zizhuo helped her up, and they left the cemetery together. Outside, Bao Jingyan leaned against a Rolls-Royce Phantom. On the groundy a few cigarette butts. Seeing them hand in hand, Bao Jingyan narrowed his eyes. He stepped forward, "You done?" Su Ruanruan hummed an acknowledgment and then asked Zhou Zizhuo: "Senior brother, where are you staying?" "Ive booked a hotel." Bao Jingyan held her shoulder, guiding her into the passenger seat. Nonchntly. Su Ruanruan was quite speechless. This was improper. Taking advantage of buckling the seatbelt, Bao Jingyan whispered: "Isnt it normal for a girlfriend to sit in the passenger seat?" Su Ruanruan sighed resignedly, giving Zhou Zizhuo an apologetic smile from the back. Zhou Zizhuo waved his hand, indicating he didnt mind. Ruanruans boyfriend, possessive as he was. Bao Jingyan first dropped Zhou Zizhuo off at the hotel vi, then drove back to his own ce. As the car rolled into the vis underground garage and stopped, he unfastened his seatbelt with a click. He sped her head, kissing her urgently. Initially, Su Ruanruan made a couple of faint protests, but then passively wrapped her arms around his head. Dazedly reciprocating his kiss... She trembled uncontrobly, whimpering softly: "Dont... not here..." Yet her soft, tender lips were kissed again. Bao Jingyan had never been so urgent before. His breath, hot with emotion, as he panted: "Absence makes the heart grow fonder, hasnt Miss Su heard?" "I havent heard it!" Su Ruanruans voice trembled with weakness. In her helpless tenderness. This time Bao Jingyan sought not only his own pleasure but her happiness too... Chapter 242: A Short Parting is Better than a New Marriage 2

Chapter 242: Chapter 242: A Short Parting is Better than a New Marriage 2

After about two hours, Su Ruanruan was carried out of the car by Bao Jingyan. When they returned to the bedroom, she refused to pay attention to him. She went to the bathroom alone. Bao Jingyan knocked on the door: "Ruanruan, I need to wash up too." There was no response from inside. He chuckled softly, his tone indulgent, "You cant be unreasonable." She still ignored him. After a long time, Su Ruanruan finally came out of the bathroom. She wore a white bathrobe, the thin material clinging to her slender body. Her waist looked very slim, quite enticing. Her eyes were still moist, slightly reddened. She walked silently to the sofa by the window and sat down, drying her hair. Bao Jingyan had to set aside everything else as urgent as it was, and he walked over and embraced her from behind. "Are you angry?" She turned her slightly red cheeks away. "Angry because I held you in the car?" His voice was gentle, with a hint of a bad boy charm. "Dont talk about it anymore." Su Ruanruan wrapped her hands around his waist in response. She was quite embarrassed. She had no idea it would be like that. Bao Jingyan knew she was scared. He held her and sat down, cradling her head in his arms. It was as if he was her husband, or perhaps a lover, imparting lessons. "Youve read so many books, and it was all for naught?" She refused to speak, only burying her face in his chest. After a while, she finally whispered with sobs, "I read, but its different..." Bao Jingyan didnt speak, simply gently massaging her small shoulders. It was a tenderfort. After some time, Su Ruanruan finally recovered and hugged his neck, whispering softly, "My two aunts are great, I also had a great time in City B." "Did you also get along well with Zhou Zizhuo?" Bao Jingyan asked with a calm expression. Su Ruanruans eyes widened, "Did you have someone follow me?" He didnt even deny it, instead shamelessly saying, "I was protecting you." Su Ruanruan was annoyed, but she didnt want to argue. Having been apart for a few days, she didnt want to spoil the mood with a fight. Bao Jingyanzily patted her, "Be good, let me go to the bathroom to wash my hands! You take a nap, and well have lunch at Uncle Gus ce at noon." "Were going today?" Su Ruanruan was puzzled. Bao Jingyan smiled, "Aunt Gu misses you." As he started to leave, Su Ruanruan quickly held onto him. Bao Jingyan deliberately teased her, "Missing me again?" Su Ruanruan gave him a nce. She said earnestly, "Im worried about Jingse." Seeing that he remained silent, she licked her lips, "I dont believe you dont know whats on her mind! Gu Ze has a new girlfriend, and Jingse, she..." Bao Jingyans eyes softened, "Youre more and more like a big sister now." Su Ruanruan was both embarrassed and anxious: "Im discussing a serious issue with you." Bao Jingyan sighed softly. Su Ruanruan looked at him, "Whats wrong?" He smiled and stroked her head, "Gu Ze probably knows what shes thinking too! But what can be done? Its something Jingse has to work out on her own." Su Ruanruan was confused. But Bao Jingyan changed the subject, "By the way, did you buy a gift for Aunt Gu?" "I did." Su Ruanruan watched him walk towards the bathroom, yelling, "You really arent going to ask about Jingses matter?" "Not asking." Bao Jingyans voice came from the bathroom: "Shes 26 already, no need for you, a little kid, to worry about her." Su Ruanruan was unconvinced. Who was it that was all over the kid in the garage like that? She purposefully said, "Ill have lunch with my senior brother tomorrow." Bao Jingyan peeked out: "Wasnt spending a few days together in City B enough?" He came out and leaned close to her delicate neck, "I finally have a vacation, and who knows how busy it will be afterwards. Spend more time with me these days, okay?" While speaking, he kissed her. Su Ruanruan couldnt resist. She thought helplessly: Hes clearly jealous! Chapter 243: The Family鈥檚 Darling Su Ruanruan

Chapter 243: Chapter 243: The Familys Darling Su Ruanruan

The next day at noon, Su Ruanruan took a car to the hotel where Zhou Zizhuo was staying. As soon as she entered, she saw some old acquaintances. Madam Bao and Xia Minn were sitting in the hotel lobbys reception area, looking like they were waiting for someone. Su Ruanruan nodded towards them with great grace. Madam Bao managed a forced smile. After she left, Madam Bao said to Xia Minn, "In such a situation, its truly not easy for Su Ruanruan to still show up at such ces." Xia Minn smiled faintly, "Naturally, it requires some sacrifices." Madam Bao couldnt help but feel relieved. Thank goodness such a girl didnt end up with Ziqi. She cherished Xia Minn even more. "By the way, has Zhou Zizhuos assistant replied?" Xia Minn smiled lightly, "Doctor Zhou has invited his junior sister for a meal today, and they might go y golf afterward, so he may not have time to see us today." Madam Bao was slightly displeased, "Doctor Zhou really puts on quite a show." Xia Minn consoled, "Having pride in ones talent is not umon." After thinking for a moment, she added, "If we can get acquainted with that junior sister, I think our odds should be better." Madam Bao looked at her and felt somewhat dissatisfied. Didnt Minn say it was almost a sure thing at the beginning? Why do they still need someone else to introduce them now? Coincidentally, Xia Minns phone rang. She nced at it and said, "Its a call from Doctor Zhous assistant." Madam Bao also couldnt help but hold her breath. Xia Minn answered, "Hello, this is Xia Minn." After a few words from the other end, Xia Minn hung up the phone. She told Madam Bao, "Doctor Zhou indeed has no time today! However, he will attend the Gu Familys 40th anniversary celebration tomorrow night." Madam Bao immediately said, "Then tomorrow night, dress up beautifully." Her eyes were full of longing, "We must let Doctor Zhou know that our Bao Family is worth his acquaintance." Xia Minn also smiled faintly. ... On the 36th floor of the hotel, in the VIP room. Zhou Zizhuo had ordered avish meal. Those present were not only him but also the 12 Ph.D. students Su Peiming had mentored. Each one was a top-notch in their field. This time, it was Zhou Zizhuos face that brought people together from all over. When Su Ruanruan pushed the door open and entered, she was stunned. Tears welled up in her eyes. She was slightly overwhelmed. Everyone was fond of her and softly called out, "Little junior sister." Zhou Zizhuo patted her shoulder and said gently, "Dont cry, your senior brothers are all here! We wont let anyone bully you from now on." He put his arm around Su Ruanruans shoulder, saying to the others, "When our teacher passed away, Ruanruan was young, and it was my negligence that left her vulnerable to others! But now that Im back, Ruanruans matters are my matters." He scanned the room, "What do you guys say?" "Lets listen to the eldest brother." "What else can we say? I watched Ruanruan grow up from when she was still wearing diapers." "With so many grown men here, if we cant protect one little girl, wouldnt we just be freeloading?" ... Zhou Zizhuo was very pleased. He raised a ss of wine, "A toast to everyone! And to our teacher, may he rest in peace." Su Ruanruan also lifted her ss, smiling gently, "I will inevitably need everyones help in the future, so Ruanruan wants to thank all her senior brothers in advance." Then, she shared her ns. Her senior brothers were stunned. When did this little kid be a monarch? Zhou Zizhuo smiled. He thought to himself: Theres so much you dont know! In the afternoon, the long-lost senior brothers went to y golf. Su Ruanruan, having had some wine, left early. Zhou Zizhuo apanied her to the parking lot. He had just closed the car door when he turned around to see Xia Minn standing behind him. Xia Minn had been waiting in the lobby and unwittingly had let Zhou Zizhuo walk right past her. Vaguely, she saw him helping a woman into a car. Xia Minn felt like she was hallucinating. She thought the girl looked somewhat like Su Ruanruan... Chapter 244: Xia Minglan is Rejected

Chapter 244: Chapter 244: Xia Minn is Rejected

Zhou Zizhuo spoke politely and distantly, "Miss Xia." Xia Minn snapped back to reality. She muttered to herself, "Was that just... Su Ruanruan?" "What?" Zhou Zizhuo frowned. Xia Minn realized her mistake She must have seen wrong. Su Ruanruan could never reach someone of Doctor Zhous stature. She said in a rather breezy tone, "Doctor Zhou, long time no see! How about a cup of coffee together?" Yet Zhou Zizhuo checked the time and replied, "How unfortunate! A group of my juniors is waiting for me." He offered an apologetic smile and turned to leave. Xia Minn couldnt believe he would dismiss her like that and promptly followed him. "Doctor Zhou, I need a serious favor." She pleaded earnestly, "Theres a patient in critical condition, and only Doctor Zhou can perform the surgery." Zhou Zizhuo stopped walking, giving a faint smile, "Sorry! Im here in Jiang City to tend my teachers grave, and I dont have any other ns." Chapter 245: Refreshing! Su Ruanruan is the Gu Family Princess 1

Chapter 245: Chapter 245: Refreshing! Su Ruanruan is the Gu Family Princess 1

Gu Family booked the entire Regent Hotel and hired the best event nningpany globally. The entire hotel was decorated like a castle. Splendid and stunning! The dinner was the epitome of extravagance. Gu Family released the news that today was not only the Gu Family annual meeting but also their beloved younger daughters birthday. Eight oclock in the evening. Celebrities gathered abundantly, their perfumes mingling in the air. Waiters carrying trays weaved through guests as high-soicetydies whispered to each other. [I heard Gu Ze brought a leading actress to the dinner.] [Tsk tsk tsk... Young Master Gu is as flirtatious as ever!] [That Su Ruanruan probably wont attend, right?] [What status does she have?] ... In a corner sofa, Mrs. Bao sat with Bao Jingyuan and Xia Minn. They absorbed these conversations into their ears. Bao Jingyuan immediately said, "How could Su Ruanruan have the face to show up?" She spoke haughtily, "She has no ce in Jiangchengs high society anymore." Her harsh words were met without objection from Mrs. Bao. Xia Minn slightly smiled, "Its a pity for Miss Su." She looked around, "With such meticulous arrangements this time, I wonder how it would feel if she coulde." Bao Jingyuan eximed, "She could never reach such richness in her life! Aunt Gu was good to her, and she really thought she was her own daughter! Look, todays event shows what its like for real daughters." But she could nevere back! Xia Minn merely smiled in response. Actually, she felt somewhat envious. It is said that the nningpany used a whole ten tons of crystals to make the stage center look splendid and stunning. How happy must the Gu Family princess be? ... Guests at the banquet had their own thoughts. Until Gu Ze appeared arm in arm with the newly famous actress, everyones thoughts aligned. Su Ruanruan was out of the picture! She had been abandoned by the Gu Family. Mrs. Bao was especially pleased, her chin lifted as sheughed coldly. Three months! She had lived under the shadow of a young girl for three months! Fortunately, it was all over now! At that moment, Bao Mingyuan and Bao Ziqi came over and sat down. Bao Mingyuan smiled and said, "Gu Zes new girlfriend is pretty good, seems like he might settle down." Mrs. Bao deliberatelyined, "Mingyuan, you really dont care about your children." "What happened?" Bao Mingyuan smiled, sipping his red wine. Mrs. Bao sighed softly, "Jingse likes Gu Ze, and you as a father know nothing about it!" Bao Mingyuan was momentarily taken aback, then spoke ufortably, "How could I not know?" Mrs. Bao wanted to say something else. Bao Mingyuans expression turned cold. She then changed the topic, "Since Gu Zes girlfriend is here, that child Ruanruan probably wont attend." She spoke with a smile, "Mingyuan, look at the stage! The leading actress and Gu Ze are quite a match, Gu Yuanpei and Lin Sheng look really happy today!" Bao Mingyuan nced over faintly. Indeed! On the stage, Gu Yuanpei was embracing his wife, looking utterly content. Mrs. Gu was extremely beautiful. Gu Ze and the young actress stood beside them. The scene was very harmonious. Bao Jingyuan watched intently, actually feeling envious. Her mother was a concubine, never having the glory like Aunt Gu. The lights dimmed. A beautiful hostess pushed a 188-inch giant cake forward, inviting Mr. and Mrs. Gu Yuanpei to give their speech. Gu Yuanpei smiled, "Let my wife speak! Today is the most important day in Lin Shengs life." Mrs. Gu took the microphone, sweeping her gaze around. Very well! Everyone who should be here is here. Bao Family, Su Family, and all the well-known celebrities... Today, she was about to make these people witness her daughter Gu Yunxis acknowledgment of her ancestors. Chapter 246: Refreshing! Su Ruanruan is the Gu Family Princess 2

Chapter 246: Chapter 246: Refreshing! Su Ruanruan is the Gu Family Princess 2

As Mrs. Gu was about to speak, Master Mu Jiu was anxiously waiting. Damn it, such bad luck! There were too many people, and he had been searching for a while but couldnt find that Doctor Zhou or the ugly apprentice sister. Also, Su Ruanruan was nowhere to be seen. Could it be that the Gu Family didnt invite Ruanruan because of their fight with the Red Caps? Master Mu Jiu was very unhappy. Xia Minn gently took a seat next to him. She was wearing a white dress today, vibrant and elegant. But Master Jiu didnt spare her a nce and bluntly asked, "What are you here for?" Xia Minn was a very cultivateddy and softly said, "Doctor Zhou has already arrived." She pointed to a spot. Master Mu Jiu looked in that direction. Indeed, there sat a refined man who was quite handsome. His demeanor was top-notch. He was staring intently at the stage. Master Mu Jiu frowned: "What about the ugly monster?" "Perhaps she didnte together with him," Xia Minn said in a low voice. "Master Jiu, you might want to think of a n." Master Mu Jiu nced at her. He didnt expect this elegant and dignified woman to have quite a few vicious ideas. Master Mu Jiu waved his hand, shooing her away as if she were a fly. Xia Minn felt quite ufortable in her heart. After all, she was also a well-known socialite in Jiangcheng, yet this Master Mu Jiu disregarded her. Master Mu Jius eyes were glued to the stage. On the stage. Mrs. Gu was standing by the microphone looking beautiful and graceful. She said, "Thank you for attending the Gu Familys anniversary. Yuanpei and I are very pleased." Apuse erupted from below. Mrs. Gu turned her head, looked at Gu Ze and the young actress, and said with a smile, "Gu Ze, I hope she is yourst girlfriend." Gu Ze: ... The young actress smiled modestly. Mrs. Gus words caused a great stir. It seems the Gu Family has epted the actress. Su Ruanruan was not going to appear! Mrs. Gus voice was firm: "The Gu Family has not held an anniversary for 18 years! Because my daughter Yunxi was born on this day, and Yuanpei was afraid Id be sentimentally moved!" Whispers spread from below. Why did the Gu Family hold it again this year? Mrs. Gu was slightly moved: "But this year is different! I found my daughter Yunxi." Ah... The whole venue exploded with excitement! Princess Gu had actually been found! But who is it? Which lucky person is it? While everyone was guessing, Mrs. Gu held her husbands hand tightly, her eyes brimming with tears. She said, "A few months ago, I met her! I didnt know her, and she didnt know me. This child has treated me with utmost sincerity and even saved my life! I feel she is my long-lost biological daughter, but Yuanpei called me delusional, saying Ive gone mad missing Yunxi." Mrs. Gus tears flowed freely. Gu Yuanpei called out affectionately: "Lin Sheng." Mrs. Gus lips trembled, and she slowly pronounced the name. "Su Ruanruan is our dearest kin of the Gu Family, the child Yuanpei and I lost for 18 years." Everyone was shocked. Su Ruanruan! How could it be Su Ruanruan? Su Ruanruan is the child of the Su Family, the only daughter of Su Peiming! The Su Family was almost going insane. They thought they had gained face by getting an invitation from the Gu Family, thinking they would see Su Ruanruans embarrassment here, but now Mrs. Gu was saying Su Ruanruan is her daughter! Su Qionglin was the first one to not ept it. Su Ruanruan is an illegitimate child; she could absolutely not be the princess of the Gu Family. She doesnt deserve it! Su Qionglin stood up and said loudly, "Mrs. Gu, Su Ruanruan is my uncles biological child!" She was lying through her teeth, and the rest of the Su Family remained silent. They didnt want Su Ruanruan to soar to the branches and be a phoenix! In the silence, suddenly, a young man stood up. It was Su Ruan. Chapter 247: Refreshing! Su Ruanruan is the Gu Family Princess 3

Chapter 247: Chapter 247: Refreshing! Su Ruanruan is the Gu Family Princess 3

Su Ruan swept her gaze across everyone and spoke softly yet firmly: "Ruanruan was brought to our family by my aunt, she is not her biological child." Madam Gu smiled through her tears: "Ive often heard Ruanruan mention how well her second brother treats her." Saying this, she gave a side nce. A uniformed notary stepped onto the stage and pulled out a document. "This is a paternity test report, confirming that Miss Su Ruanruan is, indeed, the biological daughter of Mr. Gu Yuanpei." The crowd was abuzz once again. Su Qionglinsplexion grew exceedingly awkward. She still wanted to cause trouble, but Elder Master Su narrowed his eyes and said sternly, "Sit down." Su Qionglin reluctantly sat down, like a dog that had lost its home. ... The Bao family was left with an even moreplicated taste in their hearts. Especially Bao Mingyuan. He had driven Ruanruan away, never imagining that Ruanruan was Gu Zes biological sister. She was the true heiress of the Gu family! He had wrongly used her. Beside him, Madam Bao lost herposure, her fine nails digging into her flesh. She hated herself for not investigating properly back then! She had bet on the wrong horse! She had forsaken Su Ruanruan, choosing Xia Minn instead. Madam Bao closed her eyes, feeling as if her blood had turned to ice! She struggled to uphold herself, watching everything on stage intently. The lights dimmed downpletely. A beam of purple light shone from the stage to the entrance of the banquet hall. The doors opened slowly. Su Ruanruan appeared in a mint green dress, her long ck shining hair brushed perfectly straight, embellished with a precious diamond ne at her neck. Her face was radiant. Beautiful and wless! She was ignorant of everything. Gu Jiarou stood by her side, ted: "Ruanruan, we must carry ourselves with poise! Everyone is watching." "Is this too grandiose of an entrance?" Su Ruanruan asked quietly. Gu Jiarou grinned, "Not at all." Its your 18th birthday after all, Princess! With a faint smile, Su Ruanruan stepped forward. She walked toward Mr. and Mrs. Gu, toward Gu Ze. Toward her biological parents and her brother, step by step. Gu Jiarous eyes reddened quietly. And just then, the piano sounded. It was the piece "Starry Sky"! The one sitting at the piano was the person herself. The Gu couple spared no expense for their daughter... That short 100 meters, under the watchful eyes of the crowd! Finally, Su Ruanruan approached the front of the stage. Gu Ze bent down and took her hand. Their appearances were equally remarkable, creating a beautiful and dreamy scene! The prestigious actress... had quietly moved to the side. This princess of the Gu family, she would undoubtedly need to ingratiate herself with in the future. Gu Ze led Su Ruanruan to the 188yer cake, and gently embraced her: "Happy birthday, Yunxi." Su Ruanruans smile froze at the corners of her mouth. She stared nkly at Gu Ze, then turned her gaze to Mr. and Mrs. Gu Yuanpei. It wasnt... they agreed on adopting her! How did she be Gu Yunxi? With difficulty, she spoke, "I... am not..." "Ruanruan, you are our biological daughter," Mrs. Gu said tearfully: "Im sorry, mother found you sote." Mrs. Gu reached out her hand shakily Su Ruanruan was dazed for a long while. She should have realized it earlier. Aunt Gu treated her exceptionally well, and she had met all the rtives of the Gu family, who treated her very kindly and gave her many gifts. If not of blood, how could it be? Su Ruanruan liked them, but the sudden emergence of kinship also frightened her. She... was not Su Peimings daughter! A long-held belief copsed! And what about the things she was supposed to do... should they all be overturned? Her gaze was tormented. Suddenly, she caught the gaze of a profound pair of eyes. It was Bao Jingyan. He sat in the farthest corner, watching her tenderly. Like a husband, yet also like an elder. Indulgent, and gentle. Chapter 248: Refreshing! Su Ruanruan is the Gu Family Princess 4

Chapter 248: Chapter 248: Refreshing! Su Ruanruan is the Gu Family Princess 4

Su Ruanruan felt a calm at the bottom of her heart. She gently held Mrs. Gus hand and called out softly, "Mom". Mrs. Gu wept with joy. Gu Yuanpei embraced both mother and daughter... Gu Jiarou was pping furiously on the side. In the banquet hall, a thunderous apuse erupted Gu Ze hugged his sister, his face filled with affection. He held her hand to cut the cake together and even yed the piano himself to celebrate her birthday. Indeed, the movie queen even sang a birthday song. Su Ruanruan was the center of attention. Everyone was amazed. Of course, the rumor between Gu Ze and Su Ruanruan was brought up again. [I knew there was something off about Young Master Gus gaze, they are real siblings after all.] [Didnt expect Young Master Gu to be a sister-obsessed fanatic!] [Im curious, how will the Bao Family wrap this up? The Gu Family princess was driven away by them and they picked up Xia Familys daughter as their treasure! Theres quite a difference!] Xia Minns face turned pale. Now that Su Ruanruan has be the daughter of the Gu Family, what could she possiblypete with her? In terms of family background, appearance, and talent, she has no clear advantage. Especially since Bao Ziqi has Su Ruanruan in his heart. Her heart trembled, and her gaze fell on Mu Jiu. Right, she still had one move left. As long as Doctor Zhou saved Mu Jius mother, she would still have a ce in the Bao Family. At this moment, Mu Jiu was also dumbstruck. Su Ruanruan was actually the daughter of the Gu Family. Mu Jius heart itched. He thought to himself: No wonder there was a sense of pure nobility, shes a true princess. Mu Jiu wasnt jealous! Mu Jiu was quite pleased! His woman must be nobler than others! The banquet officially started at this moment. Gu Ze and Su Ruanruan started to dance. A handsome man and a beautiful woman. All the celebrities of Jiang City were full of praise. In the corner, Bao Jingyan held a wine ss, quietly watching the center of the stage. He was happy for Su Ruanruan, but his heart also felt sour. She had a new identity, but they still couldnt be openly together... His gaze intensely followed her. Ignoring the admiration from women around him! As the dance ended. Bao Jingyan wanted to subtly ask her for a dance, but someone beat him to it. It was Mu Jiu. Mu Jiu, acting very familiar, called Gu Ze "big brother". He then shamelesslyplimented Su Ruanruan, "Ruanruan, you look really pretty in that dress." Gu Jiarou snorted, "She wasnt worthy before, and she certainly isnt now." Mu Jiu red at her. But Su Ruanruan did not retaliate; instead, she gently spoke, "Im sorry, Mr. Mu, my senior brother has already asked me for a dance." Senior brother? Whose senior brother? Mu Jiu was ready to sack him and throw him out! At that moment, a voice echoed, "Ruanruan." Mu Jiu turned his head. Wasnt that Zhou Zizhuo? Mu Jiu squinted his eyes and said, "Are you also here to ask Ruanruan for a dance?" He snorted coldly, "Sorry! Its her senior brothers time now, then me, and after that still me..." Zhou Zizhuo, gracefully, "Sorry! I am Ruanruans senior brother." Mu Jiu was stunned. Dumbfounded! What? His so-called ugly freak, was Ruanruan? He previously wanted to knock the ugly freak unconscious and take him back to show her a lesson. Mu Jiu broke out in a cold sweat. Su Ruanruan and Zhou Zizhuo glided to the middle of the dance floor, yet they started talking about work. "Is this Mu Qun?" Zhou Zizhuo asked softly. Su Ruanruan nodded, mentioning, "Xia Minn already sought senior brother, right?" Zhou Zizhuo suddenly patted her head and said, "Lets not talk about this! You should rx tonight." Su Ruanruan couldnt rx, she still hadnt adapted to her new identity. She needed to find things to do, this way she wouldnt be left idle to think too much... Chapter 249: The Crazy Young Master Gu Who Dotes on His Sister

Chapter 249: Chapter 249: The Crazy Young Master Gu Who Dotes on His Sister

Su Ruanruan absently danced with Zhou Zizhuo. Bao Jingyan watched, feeling both jealous and heartbroken. He was less than 10 meters away from her, yet he couldnt get closer. Only in their asional exchange of nces, did he taste a sour and bitter vor. ... That night, Su Ruanruan was constantly busy. Members of both the Gu Family and Lin Family gathered around her, treating her with great interest. The distinguished guests looked up to her. Everyone knew that Jiangcheng had produced a true nouveau riche. The Gu Family would definitely not ill-treat this little daughter they had regained! Gu Yuanpei softly patted Su Ruanruans hair and said gently, "Come home tonight and spend some time with your mom." Su Ruanruan bit her lower lip lightly. She looked up, fixing her gaze on Bao Jingyan across the room. Gu Ze angrily rebuked, "Hes not your guardian!" Su Ruanruan shook her head. She didnt know what to say... Mother and daughter share a bond, and Madam Gu understood her daughters thoughts. She patted Su Ruanruans hand, "Let her go back with Jingyan tonight, they should have things to discuss." Gu Ze wanted to say more, but Madam Gu quietly said, "Not to mention, Su Peimings affection for her is unquestionable." That person, taught Ruanruan very well. Su Ruanruan was touched. She hugged Madam Gu, clinging to her. Her feelings for her mother Zhou Wan were very faint. Zhou Wan, who had long been living in a sanatorium, treated her alternately cold and warm, didnt even leave her a word or note when she left. Madam Gu gently stroked the young girl in her arms and lovingly said, "Let Jingyan take you home for lunch tomorrow, your grandma and aunt will alsoe." Su Ruanruan nodded in agreement. Gu Ze yfully knocked on her head, "Not yet married and already siding with outsiders! Might as well marry you off sooner." Gu Yuanpei defended, "Gu Ze, dont bully your sister." But Gu Ze ruffled Su Ruanruans hair again. He actually had some regrets. When Ruanruan was born, he was already nine years old and knew the ways of the world. Back then, he saw a cute little pink baby being born. White skin, eyes bright like ck beans, everything about her was rosy. She was wrapped in diapers, holding a milk bottle drinking milk. As soon as Gu Ze finished school, he would go to the hospital to see his sister, he even changed her diaper once. At that time, he had decided to put the baby crib in his room once the sister was discharged from hospital. He could watch her while doing homework. If his sister was naughty, he would spank her little butt. When she learned to walk, he would take her out. When she got older and started school, he would use his fists to warn those overconfident brats to stay away from his sister. His sister was a nobly born! His sister was his sister alone. He thought a lot, but one day his sister was gone. Taken away. Mom cried for a very long time, and afterwards, she was always not in good mental health. Thinking of the past, Gu Dang felt quite sentimental. He looked at Su Ruanruan and said softly, "Keep your eyes peeled, and dont be easily deceived by mens sweet words." Su Ruanruan coughed lightly, "Ill go to the restroom." Gu Ze said to their parents, "See, you cant keep the grown girls at home!" Beside them, a young actress smiled faintly, very appropriately. She was very clear in her heart. Gu Zes kindness to her was not even one percent of that towards his own sister. ... Gu Jiarou apanied Su Ruanruan to the restroom. When they came out to wash their hands, Gu Jiarouined, "Just listen to brother Gu Zes words and let them pass, anyway, you have uncle and aunt to support you, so dont be afraid of him." Su Ruanruan smiled faintly, just about to say something. Her gaze sharpened. In the mirror, the reflection of Bao Ziqi appeared. Gu Jiarou also saw him, and smiled awkwardly, "Ill wait for you at the door." As she left, she smirked insincerely towards Bao Ziqi. Chapter 250: Bao Ziqi鈥檚 Blessing

Chapter 250: Chapter 250: Bao Ziqis Blessing

Bao Ziqi was expressionless. After everyone left, he said to Ruanruan, "I should congratte you." Ruanruan didnt know his intention. She slowly washed her hands and whispered a thank you. "Nothing to say to me, huh?" Bao Ziqis lips curled up mockingly, "Figures. I even asked you to plead with Aunt Gu to let Qionglin off. Little did I know you are Aunt Gus biological daughter. Its only right for her to stand up for you." Ruanruan dried her hands. She turned to look at him, "Is that what you came here to say?" She chuckled lightly, "Minn and you came together, I thought my third sister was already old news." Bao Ziqis face turned awkward. His lips twitched, but he said nothing. He reached behind his neck and unfastened a silver ne he always wore. "I didnt prepare in advance, this will have to do." He looked at her, his tone somewhat gentler, "Regardless, happy birthday." He extended his hand to her. Ruanruan didnt want it. The gift was too heavy. But Bao Ziqi stuffed the ne into her hand anyway. After one deep look at her, he turned and left. Ruanruan gently bit her lip. Gu Jiarou slipped in unnoticed and said softly, "I think Bao Ziqi still likes you!" Ruanruan shook her head. Gu Jiarou sighed, "Still, Jingyan is a better match for you." She made a funny face, "Bao Ziqis mom is too scary." Ruanruan startedughing... ... Bao Ziqi didnt return to the banquet hall. He went straight to the parking lot and texted Xia Minn while sitting in the car. "Im taking you home." Five minutester, Xia Minn got into the car. She sat next to him, hesitant to speak. But Bao Ziqi had a cold look on his face and seemed uninterested in talking. Only when they reached the front of her apartment did she finally speak up, "We..." "Go to sleep early, dont you have ss tomorrow?" Bao Ziqi turned to look at her. His gaze was detached. Xia Minns nose tingled, "Ziqi, I thought... you regretted it." "What are you thinking about?" Bao Ziqi opened the car door for her, "Go to sleep early." Xia Minns lips moved slightly. She felt a bit let down. He didnt break up with her, but he didntfort her either. Actually, he does regret it, doesnt he? Only, his pride wont allow him to stoop to make amends with Ruanruan. Xia Minn stood in the night wind, watching the white sports car disappear. ... Bao Ziqis car sped off. When he parked at the Bao Mansion parking bay, he sat in the car smoking. When a dozen cigarette butts had piled up beside the car, he finally got out. Bao Ziqi has always been a favored son, gifted in arts, and unlike Bao Jingyan and Bao Jingse, he didnt need to struggle in business. Yet, he faced setbacks due to Ruanruan. Mrs. Bao felt sorry for her son. She waited for him at the entrance of the hall. Bao Ziqi walked past her without intending to speak. "Ziqi," Mrs. Bao called out to him. Bao Ziqi stopped. He said, "Mom, Im a bit tired today." Mrs. Bao wasnt in a good mood either, but she forced herself to perk up: "Did you just drop Minn home?" Bao Ziqi slowly walked over to the sofa, lying back and after a long while, he hummed in response. Mrs. Bao sat opposite him, softening her tone as she probed her son, "What are your intentions towards Minn?" "Intentions?" Bao Ziqis eyes narrowed as he coldly watched his mother. Mrs. Bao decided to make herself clear: "You saw today, Ruanruan has soared high! Ultimately, Minns background is far below hers." Chapter 251: She was very proactive in Bao Jingyan鈥檚 arms

Chapter 251: Chapter 251: She was very proactive in Bao Jingyans arms

"Bao Ziqi straightforwardly said, Su Ruanruan and I are impossible." He gave a cold smirk: "Mom, have you forgotten what youve done?" Mrs. Bao was quite unhappy. She suppressed her anger: "Even if its not Su Ruanruan, I absolutely cannot let you marry a girl who is much worse off than her. I cant let othersugh at us!" Bao Ziqi sat up. With eyes too dark, he gazed at his mother. After a long while, he sneered, "Whats more important, your reputation or my happiness?" Mrs. Bao was stunned. Ziqi had never been so intense about his own marriage! Bao Ziqi stood up and said, "I will try to get along with Xia Minn. If I dont fall in love with her, Ill make it clear to her and then return to Britain." Having said that, he grabbed his tie and walked upstairs. Mrs. Bao wanted to say something but swallowed her words back. She slumped down, trembling as she took out a cigarette from her exquisite purse, lighting it. She took a deep inhale, totally defeated. Upstairs, in a dark corner. Bao Jingyuan was standing quietly, her little face full of indignation. It was all because of Su Ruanruan! If it werent for her, mom and second brother wouldnt be fighting! Second brother simply couldnt forget her. In second brothers phone, there were still photos of Su Ruanruan. ... After the banquet, Bao Jingyan quietly took Su Ruanruan away. Sitting in the car, Su Ruanruan stealthily looked at him. He was especially handsome today. Though he was usually outstanding in looks, today was different. His expensive custom-made suit highlighted his well-trained chest muscles, and the lines were especially attractive. His neatly trimmed ck hair was slightly gelled, and with his deep-set features and sharp contours. Su Ruanruan had to admit, Bao Jingyan looked extremely good. This evening, most of the women were eyeing Bao Jingyan. So she deliberatelyined in a low voice, "I didnt even change out of my gown! Bao Jingyan, I want to sit in the backseat." "Stop the nonsense! So delicate!" He leaned in to fasten her seatbelt, and when he looked up, he suddenly said, "Thankfully." Su Ruanruan was puzzled, looking at him. Bao Jingyan leaned over. A hot breath came over her face, mixed with the scent of aftershave. Very manly. Her legs felt a bit weak. Su Ruanruan thought he wanted to kiss her and slightly tilted her head upward. Her soft red lips trembled lightly. His tall nose lightly touched hers, but the kiss didnt fall. Su Ruanruan opened her eyes, her lips parted slightly, "Bao Jingyan, whats wrong?" Bao Jingyan lightly pecked her lips, his voice husky beyond recognition. He said, "Thankfully, I never really made a move on you before." Su Ruanruan blushed... She awkwardly turned her face away, "Then why dont you take me home?" "Tonight is fine!" He finished speaking and gently pulled her small shoulder. Su Ruanruan was both afraid and a little embarrassed. The corners of her eyes, damp. He lifted his hand to touch there, gently asking, "Why are you crying? Didnt you want me to kiss you just now, and now you dont want it? Hmm?" Su Ruanruan refused to speak, his proximity again too close. Gentle and merciful. Like an elder, yet more like a lover. Su Ruanruan admitted she was especially weak for this. Whenever Bao Jingyan showed this kind of attitude, her legs went soft. She hated how weak she was. Unable to endure it anymore, she could only bury herself in his embrace, softly saying no... Bao Jingyans heart was incredibly soft; he lifted her small face indulging in kisses. Su Ruanruan initially resisted. They were still in the parking lot! But his exceptional skills soon made everything clear... ... Five meters away. Mu Jiu sat in his Land Rover, grinding his teeth as he watched the scene. Damn it, Su Ruanruan always acted pure and serene in front of him, but was so initiative in Bao Jingyans arms. The surname Bao kisses her, and she even kisses him back. Seeing that tender and fresh, Mu Jius blood boiled with rage! Chapter 252: Su Ruanruan鈥檚 Special Quirk

Chapter 252: Chapter 252: Su Ruanruans Special Quirk

Master Mu Jiu is very angry. All the excitement is someone elses! The woman is someone elses, too! He abruptly pulled open the car door and stepped out, walking over to Bao Jingyans car and knocking forcefully on the window. Bao Jingyan let go of the young girl in his arms, gasping for breath with difficulty. He covered her with his coat, not allowing her to reveal a hint of indecency. Bao Jingyan rolled down the window, smilingzily. "I had no idea Mr. Mu had a hobby for voyeurism!" Mu Qun ignored him. He looked at Su Ruanruan, who was tidying herself up, his heart aching! A beautiful flower stuck onto a pretty-boys body! Although his heart ached, Mu Jiu had more important matters, which was his dear mothers life. He humbled himself for once: "Girl, today I, Mu Jiu, am asking you for a favor." Su Ruanruan knew what he wanted to say, and gently shook her head. Master Mu Jius pupils constricted. "Are you really that heartless?" He wanted to say that his mother had been thinking about her, even wanting to take her as a daughter-inw. But then he thought about her current status, Master Mu Jiu swallowed these words back down into the pit of his stomach like feeding them to a dog. Su Ruanruan spoke indifferently: "You should ask my senior brother." "I have no rapport with him," Master Mu Jiu said in utter defeat. Su Ruanruan sighed softly, "Actually, I dont have any rapport with Mr. Mu either." A sting in Mu Quns heart. He felt both hatred and jealousy, grinding his teeth: "Would you save her if it was the sick mother of someone surnamed Bao?" "I would," Su Ruanruan did not hide it from him. Master Mu Jiu, furious, kicked the expensive car body with his foot! Bao Jingyan wasnt distressed, in fact, he was rather pleased. He watched Master Mu Jiu, giving a light cough: "Move aside! Im going to start the car." Master Mu Jiu stepped back in fury. He watched Bao Jingyan drive away, swearing. Damn! No, he had to follow them. Who knows if he could still find this girl Su Ruanruan tomorrow! So Master Mu Jiu jumped into his car, masochistically followed them in the dark. Bao Jingyan saw this in the rearview mirror, asking lightly: "Youre really not going to help with this favor?" Su Ruanruan looked down: "I heard he promised Xia Minn two ports! If I help out of rapport and cant get the benefits I should have, wouldnt that be ruining my senior brothers reputation?" "Excuses!" Bao Jingyan chuckled lightly: "Youre clearly just interested in those two ports." Su Ruanruan spoke with profound sentiment: "Actually... you didnt have to make it so obvious." Bao Jingyan was very pleased. A momentter, Su Ruanruan said: "Lets not talk about this tonight, okay?" She actually hadnt digested some things yet. Bao Jingyan held her hand. She leaned back in the seat, her body somewhat limp. His voice was low and powerful: "As long as Im here, you can always be Su Ruanruan! Su Peiming will also always be your father!" Su Ruanruans nose tingled with sourness. She thought... she thought he would prefer her to be Gu Yunxi. That way, their path would be much easier. But he understood her! He knew what she couldnt let go of! Su Ruanruan was touched, but she remained reserved. She buried herself in his coat, smelling the familiar scent... At the crossroads ahead, a red light. Bao Jingyan slowed the car to a stop. He nced at her, saying leisurely: "Ruanruan... if you keep holding my clothes and smelling them like this, Ill think you have some special fetish." He added another sentence: "Luckily its not socks." Su Ruanruan was furious. All those sentiments and thoughts of forever and ever had vanished! He was shameless! When they got home, Bao Jingyan leaned on the steering wheel, turning sideways: "Are you angry?" "No." She said petntly, pulling open the car door and walking towards the vis entrance. Ignoring him. Bao Jingyan leisurely got out of the car, went around to the trunk, and took out several fireworks, cing them on the ground. He lit a cigarette and put it between his lips. Chapter 253: Ruanruan, I am Pleasing You

Chapter 253: Chapter 253: Ruanruan, I am Pleasing You

Vi Hall. Su Ruanruan had just entered when she smelled a scent of noodles. Aunt Li, carrying two bowls of longevity noodles on a tray, approached with a big smile, "The birthday star is finally back! Have a taste of the noodles, may you and your husband stay together forever!" Su Ruanruan was both shy and pleasantly surprised. She lowered her voice, "Was this his doing?" "It was made by Sir himself!" Aunt Li grinned, "Have a bite, dont break it." Su Ruanruan took off her coat and then took a bite using the chopsticks in Aunt Lis hand. It tasted better than she imagined! Su Ruanruans eyes narrowed contentedly. At this moment, a few popping sounds came from outside, followed by a series of quick hissing noises. Su Ruanruan looked outside. The sky was filled with fireworks. Without caring about her noodles, she ran outside She didnt know how Bao Jingyan managed it, but the sky was rising with countless champagne-colored roses. One, two... Su Ruanruan looked up, foolishly counting them. After a while, she turned her gaze to the person standing with his back to her. Broad shoulders, slim waist. A white shirt and ck trousers, simply captivating! She was a bit mesmerized. Bao Jingyan turned around at this moment and walked towards her. He walked up to her, looked down, and asked tenderly, "Are you happy?" Su Ruanruan gently embraced his waist, resting her little head in his arms. "Happy," she murmured. Bao Jingyan patted her, "Aunt Li is watching! Shed say again youre a forward girl." Su Ruanruan hugged him even tighter. Today, she didnt want to think about anything. She just wanted to hold him! Bao Jingyan said no more, simply lifting her horizontally in his arms. He whispered into her ear, "Theres still a birthday treat tonight." "What?" she asked, arms around his neck, voice trembling. Bao Jingyan whispered into her ear, his voice sultry, "I will make my princess happier than ever before..." ... Front of the vi. The ck Range Rover had been parked there for a long time. Mu Jius eyes almost popped out! What kind of bad karma had he to witness this? That surnamed Bao, no limits when ites to pleasing a woman! Mu Jiu felt a coldness in his heart. Early the next morning. Su Ruanruany in Bao Jingyans arms, her face slightly rosy. Though she was prepared to resistst night, Bao Jingyan had stopped on his own. At that moment, he held her close to his heart. His voice trembled: "Still too young." Su Ruanruan lightly traced his handsome profile, secretly thinking Bao Jingyan, 28, in the prime of his youth, he really... As she touched, Bao Jingyan woke up. He looked down and kissed her for a while, his voice hoarse, "Why wake so early?" Last night, it went past two in the morning. Su Ruanruan nestled in his arms, whispered, "Couldnt sleep!" She touched his shoulder, asking softly, "Are the wounds all healed?" "Didnt you seest night?" he countered. Su Ruanruan suddenly lost her ground, "It was too dark to see clearly." She snuggled into his embrace. Skin fairer than snow, hair pitch ck. Delicate and fragile. Bao Jingyan couldnt bear to tease her anymore, gently patting her, "Sleep some more." But Su Ruanruan shook her head, "Im going to call my senior brother." Bao Jingyan suddenly felt very jealous. Alone early in the morning, why make a call? Su Ruanruan kissed him gently, softly saying, "Senior brother is only in Jiangcheng for a few days! I scheduled the surgery time for Mus mother with him." Afraid of any misunderstanding, she added, "As a child, I met Mus mother with my father. Shes really nice, even knitted a sweater for me." Bao Jingyan suddenly pinned her down, grinding his teeth. "Ha! My Ruanruan has another childhood sweetheart now!" Su Ruanruan hit him a few times, "Bao Jingyan, youre being unreasonable." "Men in bed are never reasonable," he sneered, and then started being unreasonable. Utterly willful! Chapter 254: I鈥檓 Really Generous to My Rival in Love

Chapter 254: Chapter 254: Im Really Generous to My Rival in Love

Su Ruanruan felt both embarrassed and annoyed. "I have important things to do!" "What Im doing is important too!" Bao Jingyan said arrogantly. Its because Mu Jiu, that guy, insisted on staying at his doorstep, iming he was there to rescue his old mother, but in the end, its men who understand men best. Mu Jius cunning thoughts, who is he fooling? ... After a struggle. Bao Jingyan went to the bathroom to wash up. When he came out, he saw Su Ruanruan hanging up the phone. He wiped his hair with a towel and chuckled, "Done catching up?" Su Ruanruan bowed her head and fiddled with her phone, ignoring him. Bao Jingyan came over and tugged at her ear, "Arent you going to wash?" He pretended to be disgusted and said, "Touching your phone too." "Ive wiped my hands already," Su Ruanruan couldnt resist retorting, "Why werent you disgusted with yourself just now?" Despite saying that, Su Ruanruan still went to the bathroom. Bao Jingyan threw on a bathrobe and pulled open the curtains to look outside. Mu Jius car was still there. Hes really quite dutiful! Bao Jingyan smiled silently! He changed into an outfit for going out and went downstairs to get a cup of coffee from Auntie Li. While preparing breakfast, Auntie Liined, "What kind of people are these outside! Staying all night long." "Its Miss Sus admirer," said Bao Jingyan with restrained demeanor. Auntie Li gave a forced smile. "Give him a bowl of noodles!" Bao Jingyan said indifferently. He stroked his chin in contemtion, "Auntie Li, am I being too kind to my rival?" Auntie Li got goosebumps all over. After she left, Bao Jingyan sipped coffee while flipping through the morning paper. The news was all about Su Ruanruans acknowledgment of her ancestors. The Gu Family spared no expense, buying up all the front page headlines. ... Su Ruanruan came downstairs and sat opposite Bao Jingyan. She looked at his clothes, a bit surprised, "Are you going out?" He nodded and then said, "Ille back to pick you up before noon." "I can take Old Zhaos car," she hastily said. She felt today was special, and going back to the Gu Familys home with Bao Jingyan was like making a formal visit. Just thinking about it made her blush. Bao Jingyan poured her a ss of milk, "What are you thinking about?" "Nothing." Su Ruanruan nibbled on her sandwich, her little head drooping. Bao Jingyan chuckled. Auntie Li came over to set up breakfast, gossiping, "That guy outside ate the noodles, wolfing it down!" Su Ruanruan wisely remained silent. Bao Jingyan chuckled again. After breakfast, Bao Jingyan left, and Su Ruanruan took Old Zhaos car to the Gu Familys home. Madam Gu had been waiting since early in the morning. She was very happy to see her. Most of the Gu Family and Lin Family rtives were there, all people Su Ruanruan had met before. Immediately, she was engulfed by the elders, receiving all kinds of affection. It was overwhelming. Fortunately, Gu Jiarou was there to lighten the mood. Before lunch, Bao Jingyan arrived. Gu Jiarou quietly asked Su Ruanruan, "Mu Jiu is like arge pole stuck at our doorstep, doesnt Bao Jingyan care?" Mu Jiu had been following Su Ruanruan all day. Of course, Su Ruanruan knew. She took a sip of tea and said softly, "Last time, when Mu Jiu came to our house, I shot him." Gu Jiarou was dumbfounded. It took a while for her to slowly start apuding, "Ruanruan, you and Jingyan are really a good match!" She was convinced. Su Ruanruan gave her a reproachful look. Gu Jiarou wanted to probe further, but Madam Gu came over beaming, "What are you two whispering about? Come over and take a family photo." Su Ruanruan nced at Bao Jingyan. She was a little troubled. Madam Gu scolded with a smile, "Can we do without him! We are all family here, it wont get out." Of course, there were two versions of the family photo. One with Bao Jingyan. One without Bao Jingyan. Gu Jiarou, browsing on her phone, said yfully, "You make it seem like Jingyan shouldnt be seen." Chapter 255 Su Family Members Bring Disgrace on Themselves

Chapter 255: Chapter 255 Su Family Members Bring Disgrace on Themselves

Bao Jingyan draped his arm over Su Ruanruans shoulder and said, "Ruanruan originally nned to give you a limited edition Herms, but now it seems theres no need to do so." Gu Jiarou was quick to ingratiate herself. She had wanted that particr one for a long time but was never able to get her hands on it. She clung to Su Ruanruan, "Just put in a word for me! Ill even call him brother-inw." The Gu Family allughed, the room filled with joy andughter. Just then, the butler of Gu Mansion came over. "People from the Su Family are here to see Miss Yunxi." Madame Gu wiped her hands and gave a restrained smile. She said, "Tell them, the youngdy is not avable! Oh right, from now on, call her Sister Ruanruan instead!" She added with a smile, "Its quite a pleasant name." The butler went out to deliver the message. At the gate of the Gu Familys vi. The members of the Su Family had all arrived. The Su family patriarch didnt dare to use his wheelchair, stubbornly propping himself up with a cane while his old bones stood for quite some time. Su Yugu brought both of his sons and daughter along with his wife, all anxiously waiting. Su Ruanruan soared sky-high, bing the darling of the Gu Family. No matter what, they had firmly secured a connection with this noble family! Su Ruanruans aunt instructed her daughter, "Dont offend Ruanruan again now that times have changed." Su Qionglin was devastated. Barely conscious, she muttered, "Why her? Why not me?" Her mother was livid but couldnt bring herself to scold her. Su Yugu made a decisive call: "Qionglin will stay in the carter; theres no need for her to go in." Su Qionglins face darkened, and she immediately climbed into the car. "Look at what youve taught!" Su Yugu reproached his wife. Su Qionglins mother looked as if she wanted to cry but couldnt. Su Yugu, no longer paying her any mind, spoke to the Su family patriarch, "Its been so long, they wouldnt refuse to let us in, would they?" Under the hot sun, the old patriarch was full of vitality. He said proudly, "They wouldnt dare! After all, the Su Family has a schrly background. The Gu Family would give us this face." Su Yugu was relieved. At that moment, the ck carved gate slowly slid open. A man looking like a butler came out. His expression was stern, with not the slightest smile: "Im sorry, Mr. Su, but our madam says the youngdy is busy and might not be able to see you." The old patriarchs face turned a dark shade of purple with anger, but he still softened his voice and tried again. "Ruanruan must not know we have arrived, please inform her once more. Say her grandfather and uncles and aunts are all here to see her." The butler remained unmoved: "Mr. Su, youll need to contact the youngdy yourself for this matter." With that, he retreated. The ck carved gate slowly closed in front of the Su Family. The old patriarch trembled all over. Suddenly, he fell straight to the ground. The Su Family was thrown into chaos. ... Inside the hall. Madame Gu sat close to Su Ruanruan and asked softly, "Really not going to meet them?" Su Ruanruan gave a slight smile, "Ill meet them, of course! But lets let them hang for a bit longer." Mu Jiu, the Su Family, the Bao Family... all need to be kept waiting. The one who cant hold out will be at a disadvantage! Despite her young age, Su Ruanruan had great patience. Madame Gu loved her dearly. The child had her own ideas. That evening, she had Su Ruanruan stay the night. Bao Jingyan had no objections, only spiriting her away to the car for a long, intimate time... In the following days, Su Ruanruan spent quality time apanying Madame Gu. They had tea, went shopping. Listened to concerts. Madame Gu was both happy and content. Naturally, photos of them made it to various newspapers, bing the talk of the town. Some people were happy, but others not so much. Since that night, everyone in the Bao Family had their own thoughts. Except Bao Ziqi, who seemed intent on continuing his good rtionship with Xia Minn. Coming homete and leaving early. Old Madame Bao told her son, "Minn seems alright, but she definitely doesntpare to Ruanruan." Chapter 256: Mingyuan, I Think You Have a Serious Illness

Chapter 256: Chapter 256: Mingyuan, I Think You Have a Serious Illness

In the olddys courtyard. Bao Mingyuan looked exhausted, rubbing his forehead: "But the child will nevere back." Not to mention shes the precious daughter of the Gu Family, even if she wasnt, with her temperament, she would never turn back. These days, Bao Mingyuan often thought of that day at Dijing. He was so heartless, the child left just as resolutely. "Its my fault!" Bao Mingyuan closed his eyes and sighed. The olddy kept silent. After a while, Bao Mingyuan opened his eyes and said, "Doesnt the olddy want to see the child again?" "You drove her away! I dont have the face for that." The olddy scared him: "This matter has seriously offended the Gu Family as well." The more the olddy spoke, the angrier she got: "Its all because of that sinister wife of yours that caused all this." Bao Mingyuan didnt argue. He also med it on Qi Meiyu. He pped his head and finally came up with a good idea. "Heres what we do! Say youre sick and have here over to check on you, then we can keep her to stay for a few days." Bao Mingyuan thought this n was excellent. But the olddy cursed loudly: "Mingyuan, I think youre the one with the serious illness." She drove Bao Mingyuan out. The more she thought, the more upset she became, saying, "If I do this, what would Ruanruan think of me?" Gui Zhi had been observing quietly. She pondered: Miss Su will eventually be with young master Jingyan. She must return to the Bao Familys gate! So, Gui Zhi said, "Actually, what Mingyuan said isnt without sense! If the olddy truly cares for her, how could she not feel it?" She patted the olddys shoulder, her smile lingering: "If its exposed, just say that the olddy missed her." Mrs. Bao first remained silent. After a long while, she sighed hoarsely: "Gui Zhi, Im too anxious to use that excuse!" Clearly... it was for Mingyuan, that good-for-nothing son. The olddy made up her mind. The next morning, Gui Zhi made a call to Su Ruanruan. She said, "The olddy has been suffering from leg pain for several days, and no medicine helps. The olddy refuses to ask Miss Su over, but I just cant stand to see her in pain! Miss Su...could youe and see the olddy?" On the other end, Su Ruanruan was at the hospital. She came to visit the ailing mother of Mu Jiu! Unfortunately, the visit was ill-timed, and the person was sleeping. She left her things and came out, just in time to receive Gui Zhis call. After hearing Gui Zhis words, a wave of sadness surged in Su Ruanruans heart. The olddy had treated her extremely well. When she left the Bao Family, she was full of schemes but forgot to ount for an old persons easily hurt heart. Feeling guilty, she softly said: "Ill be there in an hour." Gui Zhi was so happy she could barely speak clearly: "Okay... alright, then Ill wait for Miss Su." She hung up the phone and looked at the olddy: "Its settled!" Mrs. Bao leaped up. She paced back and forth, then told Gui Zhi: "Then you go tell Mingyuan the good news quickly, let him cheer up a bit!" Gui Zhi also said, "Indeed! Mingyuan has been unhappy these days." She hurriedly went to ry the message without even stopping to fix her attire. Bao Mingyuan was about to go to thepany but changed his mind immediately after hearing the news. He made a call to Secretary Dong, indicating that he wouldnt go to thepany today. Secretary Dong casually asked a question. Bao Mingyuan coughed lightly: "Ruanruan ising home for a meal!" The tricks and plots he yed, naturally, he couldnt bring them up for discussion and couldnt speak of them. Secretary Dong was stunned. Ruanruan? It must be Su Ruanruan! She hung up the phone and then smiled lightly. Their Dijing Group, it seems, was about to have a change of weather! Chapter 257: Returning to the Bao Family! Things are Different Now!

Chapter 257: Chapter 257: Returning to the Bao Family! Things are Different Now!

Su Ruanruan arrived at the Bao Mansion at nearly ten oclock. Housekeeper Wang personally helped her open the car door. He said with a pun, "Miss Su, we meet again." Su Ruanruan gave a slight smile, as she walked and spoke, "Youve been working hard managing the household during this period." Housekeeper Wang then felt that Su Ruanruan increasingly had the bearing of ady of the house. Young Master Jingyan has taught her well! He led Su Ruanruan into the hall. Bao Mingyuan had been waiting for a long time, his fingers trembling at the sound of footsteps. He almost burned himself with the cigarette butt. Yet, he maintained hisposure without losing his demeanor, gazing deeply at Su Ruanruan and saying, "Its good that youre back! Its good that youre back." For Bao Mingyuan, that was a statement full of deep emotion. Su Ruanruan, however, was cold, "Mr. Bao, I came to visit the olddy." Bao Mingyuans heart felt like it was being torn apart. He forced augh, then said to Housekeeper Wang, "Its been only a few days, and look how estranged this child has be! She even calls me Mr. Bao now." Housekeeper Wang said, "Miss Su is not being estranged, she is being discreet." Bao Mingyuan couldnt smile anymore. He sighed and said, "Go see the olddy, shes been thinking about you." Su Ruanruan hmmed, and followed Housekeeper Wang away. Bao Mingyuan remained seated, pondering over that terme "Mr. Bao"! Truly, it felt like a cut to the heart! He recalled the day when Ruanruan became the head of Dijing Research and Development Department, how spirited she was, and how proudly he had taken her to thepanys restaurant, ying the role of a benevolent father. Back then, Ruanruan must have harbored some admiration for him! Such a good child, yet he personally pushed her away. Bao Mingyuan felt ufortable at heart, continually sitting on the sofa smoking. He had no intention of going to thepany. ... Inside a small courtyard. The olddy perked her ears and asked Gui Zhi, "Has she arrived?" Gui Zhi replied, "It sounds like she has." The olddy immediatelyy down, crying out in pain... Su Ruanruan entered and saw this scene. She felt quite guilty, and while examining, asked Gui Zhi, "How long has the olddy been like this?" Gui Zhi yed along naturally, answering, "Its been two days! Ive been suggesting that youe to see her, but the olddy refused, saying she had no face to invite you because the Mister has wronged Miss Su." Su Ruanruan felt even worse inside. She told the olddy, "He is him, the olddy is the olddy." "Do you really think that?" The olddy jerked, jumping up. But she immediately felt it was too abrupt, andy down again, crying out in pain. Su Ruanruan helped her press on her knee, asking Gui Zhi to bring some ice. Gui Zhi felt conflicted. This... even if theres no illness, it might cause harm due to the cold! The olddy sternly replied: "Go quickly! The important matters first!" Gui Zhi hastily went to fetch the ice. Su Ruanruan continued to carefully crush it and applied it on the olddy, patient and meticulous. The olddy gritted her teeth from the cold. Gui Zhi couldnt bear to look! Yet Su Ruanruan did not suspect, and was exceptionally thorough, applying it for nearly half an hour. "Is the olddy feeling better now?" she asked. The olddy, exhausted from the ordeal, waved her hand weakly, and mournfully said, "A bit better." After speaking, she buried her face into the armchair, biting the cushion. The elder sisters heart ached, but she couldnt speak. Seeing this, Gui Zhi felt both amused and sympathetic. She told Su Ruanruan, "The olddys health isnt good, Miss Su, please go to the hall for a meal." Su Ruanruan didnt want to go to the front hall, but Gui Zhi finally persuaded her with great effort. After Su Ruanruan left. The olddy finally took a breath, "Didnt give ourselves away, did we?" "Your performance was very convincing!" Gui Zhi praised. With her hair disheveled, the olddy gritted her teeth, "If theres a next time, let Mingyuane himself." She cried out, "Quick, bring a nket to cover me! These old bones cant take it anymore." Gui Zhi quickly fetched the nket. With all this maniption, the olddy really made a fuss. Her leg condition acted up again! Chapter 258: Bao Mingyuan Ends Up Being Gaslighted

Chapter 258: Chapter 258: Bao Mingyuan Ends Up Being Gaslighted

Bao Family Restaurant. Mrs. Bao pretended to feel unwell and did note down. No one else was present, so it was just Su Ruanruan and Bao Mingyuan dining together. All was quiet. Bao Mingyuan tried to speak several times but could not find the words to begin. In the end, all he said was, "You seem to have lost some weight; eat a bit more." Su Ruanruan uttered a sound of acknowledgment and said nothing further. Bao Mingyuans gaze grew dim. Is this child nning to ignore him for a lifetime? The atmosphere was a bit gloomy, and Housekeeper Wang, deftly serving the dishes for Su Ruanruan, said, "Madam instructed the kitchen to make this, saying Miss Su likes it." Su Ruanruan tried a small bite and liked it very much. She smiled, revealing pearly white teeth. Very cute. Watching her, Bao Mingyuan felt a wave of sadness. He had lost such a lovely child. Just as he mustered up the spirit to try and say something, amotion erupted at the door. It was Mu Jiu barging in. The servants could not stop him; afraid of being scolded, they said, "I told him Sir was dining, but..." Even so, Bao Mingyuan was not pleased. Su Ruanruan stepped in to speak for the servant, saying, "I had arranged to speak with Mr. Mu." The servant was surprised and nced at Su Ruanruan. He hadnt expected Miss Su to speak up for him. With Su Ruanruans intervention, Bao Mingyuans expression softened considerably, and he signaled for the servant to leave. Afterward, he said to Mu Jiu quite politely, "Since Ruanruan has invited you, please join us for a simple meal, Mr. Mu." He waved his hand. Housekeeper Wang prepared to set an extra ce. Yet, Mr. Mu said, "No need." He spoke to Su Ruanruan gruffly, "Youre so soft-hearted towards a servant! But towards my mother, youre so cruel! I must have been blind to have fancied you." Bao Mingyuan was furious, "Ruanruan is not a doctor! Why me her!" Mu Jiu, grinding his teeth, let loose, "If shes not a doctor, then who is? Zhou Zizhuo is nowhere to be found; Ive pleaded with her for days to no avail!" At that moment, Mu Jiu truly wanted to spill the beans about Su Ruanruan and Bao Jingyan! To get back at her! But thinking of his mothers instructions, he swallowed his words. After venting furiously, he finds Su Ruanruan still slowly and meticulously chewing her food. "Finished?" Su Ruanruan lifted her eyes and asked lightly. Her eyes shone with sharp fragments. Directly challenging Mu Jiu! Mu Jiu had a temper and wouldnt be cowed by the soft approach. He turned his face against Su Ruanruan, "I know youre of high status, and to you, others lives are worthless! Today, I, Mu Jiu, swear here that if I beg you again, Ill be nothing but a cowardly fool." Having said his piece, he strode off. Su Ruanruan continued to eat slowly. Bao Mingyuan couldnt help but worry, "Is this okay? Mu Jiu is a passionate man." He feared for Su Ruanruans well-being. After slowly chewing for a while, Su Ruanruan softly said, "He wille back to beg me." Bao Mingyuan was taken aback. On one hand, he was relieved by the childs strategic thinking; on the other hand, he was delighted that the child was finally willing to speak to him. Mixed feelings of surprise and joy, he didnt know what to do. In the end, he just knew to serve her more food. "Eat a bit more; its good for growing." Su Ruanruan said nothing, but she gradually ate all the food he offered her. Bao Mingyuan breathed a sigh of relief. A face, still somewhat dashing, felt a weight lifted off. All this was seen by Housekeeper Wang. Housekeeper Wang thought to himself: Sir has already been reverse-PUAed by Miss Su! His every move is dictated by Miss Su now! Look, he doesnt even dare to bring up the matter of the second young masters marriage that hes most concerned about! Miss Su is remarkable! Chapter 259: Grandpa Mu Jiu Is Going to Be a Grandfather

Chapter 259: Chapter 259: Grandpa Mu Jiu Is Going to Be a Grandfather

Mu Jiu went straight to the hospital after causing amotion at the Bao Family. Pushing open the door, he saw his mother, Mus Mother, leaning against the bedhead eating fruit. Herplexion was poor, and she looked ill. But when she saw Mu Jiu, she was as affectionate as ever: "Jiu, Ive told you, theres no need toe every day! Im doing very well here, with food and shelter, and plenty of nurses to talk to." The kinder she was, the sadder Mu Jiu felt in his heart. Heid his head on his mothers knee, choking with emotion: "Im useless! Im sorry, Mother." Mus Mother, stroking his glossy ck hair, smiled indifferently: "Im already so old, its all right! Besides, Ive lived better days in these years than I ever dared to dream of before." Mu Jiu was still upset, the heroic man actually shedding tears. Mus Mother, letting go, said: "Im only worried about you! Those around you, I find them all unreliable, all as impulsive as you are. You always need to find someone with a softer temper to bnce you out!" She said one thing, and Mu Jiu agreed to everything. As long as his mother was happy, he would agree to everything. In the end, Mus Mother said again: "I still think Ruanruan is good." At that, Mu Jiu lost his temper. He looked up, his eyes sharp as des: "Whats so good about her? Her heart is so cruel!" "Have you been thinking about her all these years? When you were sick, did that girl evere to visit you?" Mus Mother smiled faintly: "It was just a passing acquaintance! We cannot expect others to treat us well." Mu Jiu faltered, unable to speak. Ultimately, he couldnt bear to speak of Su Ruanruans reluctance to help, for fear of hurting his mothers feelings. While they were talking, a nurse came in from outside. "The olddy has woken up." The nurse took Mus Mothers temperature. Mus Mother seized the opportunity to ask: "Did someonee by while I was asleep?" She pointed to the nutritional supplements by the bed. The nurse nced at them and then said with a smile: "Miss Su came to see you! You were asleep at the time, and Miss Su didnt want us to wake you." Mu Jius heart trembled. "Which Miss Su?" The nurse naturally said: "Su Ruanruan, the one from the Gu Family." Envy was palpable in her voice. Mu Jiu was thoroughly shaken. Su Ruanruan had been here? Then why didnt she say so earlier? Why did she let him berate her? Mu Jiu was filled with regret. His mother nced at him: "I knew I hadnt misjudged her." She took the items Su Ruanruan had brought, cherishing them. "These are really nice! Jiu, read them for me, they seem to be in a foreignnguage!" Mu Jiu let the nurse read them. He didnt understand foreignnguages either. The nurse read to them, and finally said: "This is a very good brand from abroad, not easy to find." Mus Mother was even more reluctant to consume them. Mu Jiu became restless: "Theyre bought for you to use, its a waste not to." He thought of going out, thought of visiting the Bao Family again to ask that girl what was going on? But just as he reached the door, a man who looked like a doctor was being escorted in by a crowd. It was none other than Zhou Zizhuo. Zhou Zizhuo was known as the number one surgeon in the world. His arrival sent the entire hospital into a frenzy, and the director was profoundly honored. They all thought that it was because Mu Jiu had thrown billions at him, but Dr. Zhou nonchntly said: "My junior sister, Su Ruanruan, has some old ties with thisdy, and asked me to stay a few more days in Jiangcheng." Everyone in the hospital was stunned. Miss Su certainly had significant influence! Seeing Zhou Zizhuo, Mu Jius mind went nk. He stuttered: "Why did you suddenlye?" He tried to assert his presence: "As long as youre willing to do the surgery, Im willing to pay any amount." Zhou Zizhuo, in a white coat, looking dapper and impressive. He did a simple check-up on Mus Mother, then said with a light smile: "Lets talk about the surgery fees with our family Ruanruan." Chapter 260: Can鈥檛 Pick Up, Can鈥檛 Put Down

Chapter 260: Chapter 260: Cant Pick Up, Cant Put Down

Su Ruanruan couldnt leave just yet. The old Mrs. Bao yed a bit too hard, and her leg really acted up. By the afternoon, the pain was so severe she was sweating coldly. Su Ruanruan tended to her until four oclock, when the olddy finally fell asleep. She walked out of the olddys bedroom. Bao Mingyuan was waiting outside, and on seeing her, he quietly pleaded, "For the olddys sake, stay at home for two days, at least until the olddy feels better." Gui Zhi also joined in pleading. Su Ruanruan thought for a moment: "I need to let my parents know." When she mentioned "mom and dad," Bao Mingyuan paused slightly. He had almost forgotten that Ruanruan was now a child of the Gu Family. He gave a faint smile: "Of course." Su Ruanruan stepped aside and made a call to the Gu Family. Mrs. Gu answered the phone and, after hearing Su Ruanruan out, said, "The olddy has been good to you; its only right you take care of her for a couple of days! Its getting cold, and your father and I will bring some clothes over." She didnt allow Su Ruanruan to refuse. Su Ruanruan bit her lip and had to agree. After Mrs. Gu hung up, she said to her husband nearby, "Ruanruan suffered so much humiliation at the Bao Family, and I heard after she left, Qi Meiyu trashed her room to bits! As parents, we need to stand up for our child." Gu Yuanpei nodded: "You care for the children better than I do." Mrs. Gu gave him a look. Mr. Gu nced at the servants, then lowered his voice: "But I know how to spoil you more." Mrs. Gus cheeks flushed: "Youre incorrigible." She went to prepare, and as she left, a fragrant breeze followed. Gu Yuanpei suddenly pulled her back into his arms, whispering close to her ear, "These days, youve been sleeping with the kids each night, we havent had a proper moment together for a long time." Taking advantage of the absence of others, Gu Yuanpei led his wife upstairs. Mrs. Gu was half-resisting, half-consenting. She said, "Why are you jealous of the children?" Gu Yuanpeis face was covered in a sweat of restraint, as he flirtatiously bantered with his wife, "I think its better we send her to stay with Jingyan; it would be convenient for us to have another brother or sister for her!" "Youre incorrigible," Mrs. Gu mentioned flirtatiously with raised eyebrows... * Evening. Twilight enveloped the area. A car sound echoed through the courtyard. The car door opened, and Bao Ziqi hopped out and hurriedly walked towards the courtyard. He had heard that the olddy was ill and returned early to visit. The courtyard was still the same, but Bao Ziqi keenly felt something different. In the air, there was a faint scent of osmanthus. He remembered this scent from Su Ruanruan. Bao Ziqi slowed his steps. Then, he saw a figure in light purple, delicate, sitting on the garden swing, gently swaying. Su Ruanruan was on the phone. Though he couldnt hear clearly, her expression seemed slightly shy. Bao Ziqi thought he knew who was on the other end of the call! He didnt approach but instead stood in ce and lit a cigarette. Su Ruanruan smelled the smoke and turned her head. Their eyes met. One truly indifferent, the other pretending to be calm. Bao Ziqi walked over and stood beside her: "Here to see the olddy?" Su Ruanruan put away her phone and nodded, "The olddy finally fell asleep; be quiet when you go to see her." Bao Ziqis lips moved slightly, finally asking, "Are you getting along well with him?" Su Ruanruan didnt answer. She just smiled faintly. Bao Ziqi felt pretty foolish. Unable to pick it up, unable to put it down. He nodded slightly and turned to leave. Several messages came through on Su Ruanruans phone. [Are you nning to stay long in the house?] [Spending day and night with Bao Ziqi?] Su Ruanruan looked at them, a smile on her lips. She texted back. [The olddys leg problem red up, Im taking care of her for two days.] Bao Jingyan was in City B, unable to manage her. He ground his teeth and warned her not to speak to Bao Ziqi! Chapter 261: It鈥檚 Time to Deal with Mrs. Bo

Chapter 261: Chapter 261: Its Time to Deal with Mrs. Bo

At this moment, the sound of porcin shattering reached her ears. Apanied by the wailing of Mrs. Bao. Su Ruanruan lowered her eyes and let out a coldugh. Ever since she joined the Bao Family, Mrs. Bao had been trying to harm her, one way or another. It was time to settle things with her! ... Second floor, eastern bedroom. Mrs. Bao was hysterically crying, tears streaming down her face! She wept to her husband, "Mingyuan, you want to elevate Su Ruanruan, but have you ever considered me? Do you want her to trample all over me?" Bao Mingyuan was annoyed. "You keep being Mrs. Bao, it doesnt conflict with Ruanruan returning to Emperor View!" Mrs. Bao disagreed, "How does it not conflict? She despises me to the core, who knows what shell do to sideline my family members if she gets power!" Hearing this, Bao Mingyuan sneered, "Your family members?" His gaze was dark and ominous as he looked at his wife, his voice cold, "Then do you have me in your heart? Have you thought about me, your husband, when you did those things?" Mrs. Bao felt a surge of guilt. Bao Mingyuan strolled over to the sofa and sat down, chuckling lightly. "Like the shares you hold in Yanning Pharmaceutical." "Or thest time the form was leaked, did you really think others wouldnt know?" "Im also fully aware of your collusion with Su Yugu." ... One by one, each and every incident. Mrs. Bao had no defense. Her lips trembled, she threw herself at her husbands feet pleading, "Mingyuan, I was momentarily foolish!" "Ive already forgiven you," Mingyuan said with a slight smile. He stroked his wifes hair, which was soft like satin, as he spoke unhurriedly, "Some women can afford to be a bit foolish because they are just vases, pretty to keep at home. But they must know practical matters!" Mrs. Bao felt ice-cold all over. Is this how Mingyuan has regarded her all these years? As a vase? Or as his baby-making machine? Mrs. Baos face was tear-stained as she retorted, "What about Su Ruanruan, then? Do you really think shes capable? Ive heard from the servants that shes offended Mu Jiu with her stupidity, shell bring endless trouble to our home." "Servants?" Bao Mingyuan sneered. "Since when do the words of a servant carry more weight than mine?" He lightly sped her delicate neck, leaning in close, "Meiyu, you really are a good wife!" Qi Meiyu trembled all over. Just as the couple were arguing, there came a knock at the door. A servant came to report. "Sir, Mu Jiu is here again! He says he wants to see Miss Su." Qi Meiyus eyes shed with mockery, "That child has started causing us trouble now." Bao Mingyuan was unconvinced. If Ruanruan says that Mu Jiu wille begging her, then he is here to beg. He let go of Mrs. Bao, warning, "Behave from now on, you dont need to interfere in Ruanruans affairs." With that, he opened the door and left. Mrs. Bao copsed onto the carpet. She was not willing to ept this. She wanted to go downstairs to see for herself how Su Ruanruan would dig her own grave! Mrs. Bao dressed herself up properly and slowly descended the stairs, supporting her body. Inside the hall, the lights shone bright. Mu Jiu stood there, surrounded by piles of valuable gifts. He humbled himself before Bao Mingyuan, "I wish to see Ruanruan." Mrs. Baos steps faltered, shock overtaking her face. Impossible! How could this be possible? This morning Mu Jiu left in a fury, and it was clear that he had fallen out with Su Ruanruan. How could his attitude change sopletely now? Struck by this revtion, Mrs. Baos legs gave out, and she fell onto the staircase... Utterly losing herposure. There, Bao Mingyuan still courteously said to Mu Jiu, "Ruanruan has instructed that if Mu Jiues, she wont see him." Mu Jius old face couldnt take it. When has he, Mu Jiu, ever been treated with such disregard? But thinking about how he treated Su Ruanruan during the day, he found himself hating his own actions, continuing to grovel, "Please announce my presence again! Tell her that I, Mu Jiu, am here to apologize to Miss Su. She can beat me or scold me as she wishes, I only beg on the foundation of our childhood friendship that she forgives me this once." Chapter 262: Su Ruanruan鈥檚 Three Conditions

Chapter 262: Chapter 262: Su Ruanruans Three Conditions

Mrs. Baos face was pale. Mu Jiu was actually so submissive. She nced at Bao Mingyuan again. Bao Mingyuan said to Lord Mu Jiu, "I cant decide if you want to meet her." He pointed out a way: "Wait till her anger subsides!" Lord Mu Jiu insisted on seeing Su Ruanruan. But he knew that he couldnt meet her openly, so he pretended to say goodbye. Bao Mingyuan couldnt wait to send this big Buddha away, immediately arranging for Housekeeper Wang to see off the guest. Little did he know how, but Lord Mu Jiu found his way to the small courtyard. In the small garden. Su Ruanruan, wearing a long dress with a white shawl, sat on the bench enjoying the breeze. Her long ck hair, and a face the size of a palm. In the darkness, it radiated a faint luminance. Lord Mu Jiu stared from a distance, his heart pounding. In the past, his feelings for Su Ruanruan always carried a bit of coercion and imposition, but after todays events, those feelings seemed to have been sublimated. She was not just the woman he wanted, but also a benefactor to him, Mu Jiu. While Lord Mu Jiu hesitated, Su Ruanruan opened her eyes. Her gaze was cold as she looked at him. Lord Mu Jiu coughed lightly: "Isnt it cold sitting here?" Su Ruanruan remained silent. Lord Mu Jiu could barely hold himself together, rubbing his hands uneasily: "I misunderstood you this morning, now I know you went to see my mother and even invited Dr. Zhou there." "Are you done?" Su Ruanruans voice was gentle. Lord Mu Jiu, somewhat foolishly, nodded: "Yes, done." "Go back then." Su Ruanruan turned her head away, showing no interest in him: "After all, Im really heartless." She was being stubborn, but Lord Mu Jiu wasnt upset. He sat beside her, chuckling: "Being coy, arent you?" He added: "Its good for a youngdy to be a bit coy." Su Ruanruan rested her head on the other side, clearly distancing herself. Lord Mu Jiu felt guilty and was intent on cheering her up. "Ive brought a lot of little trinkets, want to see?" "Have you eaten? Shall I treat you to a grand meal?" ... After a lot of coaxing, Su Ruanruan remained unaffected. Lord Mu Jiu ran out of options, his voice grave: "Girl, I know you have ideas, just say them. As long as I, Mu Jiu, can do it, I wont even frown descending into a sea of fire." His words were overheard by the rushing Bao Family members. Mrs. Bao wanted to speak. Bao Mingyuan gave her a look: "Lets see what Ruanruan has to say." As he spoke, his gaze remained fixed on Su Ruanruan. In his eyes, there was only admiration. Su Ruanruan didnt notice them; she looked up and met Mu Jius eyes. After a moment, she daintily replied, "I have three conditions!" Lord Mu Jiu, straightforward as ever, said: "Speak." Su Ruanruan lightly parted her red lips, stating three conditions. [First: Issue a public apology to Bao Jingyan and dere that you will not oppose him in the future!] [Second: I dont want your two ports, Mr. Mu! But I want twenty percent of the profits from all your ports! Thats for me.] [Third: I want to show filial piety to Mother Mu, and I want to be her god-daughter.] ... After stating the three conditions. Bao Mingyuan was embarrassed. Ruanruan really... had some nerve! Better to have Mu Jiu descend the mountain of knives or plunge into the pot of oil! Mrs. Bao also thought it inconceivable, scoffing, Mu Jiu would have to be out of his mind to agree to such harsh conditions. Su Ruanruan, that was just her! And indeed, as she predicted, Lord Mu Jius face changed suddenly. He stood up abruptly, pointing at Su Ruanruan and bellowed. "Bao Jingyan has already taken my two ports! And you shot me! Why should I apologize to him?" "Twenty percent of all ports profits! Su Ruanruan, you really have a big appetite! And you want my mother to adopt you as her god-daughter, dont think I dont know your intentions, its just because youre afraid Ill keep bothering you." Lord Mu Jiu was heartbroken. If looks could kill, Lord Mu Jiu could have killed Su Ruanruan that instant. But Su Ruanruan was not afraid of him. Her eyes lowered, she quietly said, "Mr. Mu, you missed a point." Chapter 264: The Entire Jiangcheng is Waiting for Su Ruanruan to Make a Fool of Herself

Chapter 264: Chapter 264: The Entire Jiangcheng is Waiting for Su Ruanruan to Make a Fool of Herself

Bao Ziqi was momentarily dazed, then immediately chased after her. This act stunned the olddy and Gui Zhi. The olddy pointed at the door and said, "This child hasnt given up yet?" Gui Zhi didnt dare to speak. She mumbled incoherently. ... In the courtyard, Bao Ziqi quickly caught up with Su Ruanruan. "Why arent you eating thete-night snack? Is it because I brought it and you wont eat it?" He lowered his voice, purposely asking, "Are you afraid he would be upset if he knew?" Su Ruanruan sighed. Sometimes, Bao Ziqi could be quite troublesome. He was like a child who couldnt get the toy he wanted, never giving up. She said to Bao Ziqi, "Im worried about getting fat; I dont have the habit of eatingte-night snacks." Bao Ziqi was stunned. Su Ruanruan stabbed him again, "Bao Jingyan never lets me eatte-night snacks." Bao Ziqi misunderstood... His face turned ugly. By this time, Su Ruanruan had already reached the dining room. Bao Mingyuan and his wife, Bao Jingyuan, were already sitting there, and Su Ruanruan politely nodded at them. She clearly acted like a guest. She went to wash her hands in the restroom. Bao Mingyuan asked her outside, "Is the olddys leg better?" Su Ruanruan nodded, whispered, "It should be fine after tonight!" Bao Mingyuans heart trembled, "The olddy is better, what are your ns?" Su Ruanruan washed her hands and dried them. She returned to the dining table and said with a light smile, "Of course, I will leave once the olddy is better." Bao Jingyuan scowled and said, "I dont believe you will leave. You came back just to cling to my home, didnt you? You just cant let go of my second brother; you want to be my second sister-inw." "Jingyuan!" Bao Mingyuan rebuked his daughter, "What nonsense are you talking?" Unfortunately, Bao Ziqi just came over. He pulled out a chair and sat next to Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan remainedposed. Bao Jingyuan was frantic, "Dad see, just one evening and Su Ruanruan has seduced the second brother again! What about Sister Minn?" She spoke out of line more and more. Bao Mingyuan couldnt take it anymore. He pped his younger daughter. A loud smack sounded in the hall. Everyone was stunned. Mrs. Baos voice trembled, "Mingyuan, have you lost your mind! How could you hit Jingyuan for an outsider?" Already dissatisfied with her, Bao Mingyuan pointed at her and said, "Teach her well, otherwise, dont me me for being ruthless if she causes any trouble that cant be fixed." Mrs. Bao was utterly embarrassed. Bao Jingyuan, covering her face, ran out. "No one chase after her!" Bao Mingyuan spoke sternly, "She needs to grow up." Su Ruanruan took a sip of milk, smiled faintly, "By tomorrow night at thetest, I will leave. There really is no need to argue over me." She was polite yet distant. Bao Mingyuan felt a pang in his heart. He couldnt stay at home any longer and went to hispany after breakfast. The secretary brewed him tea and then talked about the big news in River City this morning. "Apparently, Miss Su proposed three conditions to Master Mu Jiu," the secretary admired. Bao Mingyuan was taken aback. He frowned, "Did the newspapers write about it?" This happened at his residence; who leaked it? In a moment, he guessed that his wife was behind it. She wanted to make Su Ruanruan look foolish! The secretary ced the tea down, continuing, "Now everyone in River City is waiting to see Miss Sus embarrassment; some even started betting pools." Bao Mingyuan waved his hand, "Ruanruan is young and needs experience! Even if she slips up once, its nothing!" He sat in the leather chair, pondered for a moment: "Here, help me get Lawyer Wang here! If theres bad news from Mu Jiu, immediately release the news that the Bao family wants to take Su Ruanruan as a goddaughter." The secretary naturally asked, "Does Mr. Bao want to take Miss Su as his daughter?" Bao Mingyuan knocked on the tabletop and nodded, "It has to be this way! No matter what, I cant let this child lose face this time." Chapter 264: The Entire Jiangcheng is Waiting for Su Ruanruan to Make a Fool of Herself

Chapter 264: Chapter 264: The Entire Jiangcheng is Waiting for Su Ruanruan to Make a Fool of Herself

Bao Ziqi was momentarily dazed, then immediately chased after her. This act stunned the olddy and Gui Zhi. The olddy pointed at the door and said, "This child hasnt given up yet?" Gui Zhi didnt dare to speak. She mumbled incoherently. ... In the courtyard, Bao Ziqi quickly caught up with Su Ruanruan. "Why arent you eating thete-night snack? Is it because I brought it and you wont eat it?" He lowered his voice, purposely asking, "Are you afraid he would be upset if he knew?" Su Ruanruan sighed. Sometimes, Bao Ziqi could be quite troublesome. He was like a child who couldnt get the toy he wanted, never giving up. She said to Bao Ziqi, "Im worried about getting fat; I dont have the habit of eatingte-night snacks." Bao Ziqi was stunned. Su Ruanruan stabbed him again, "Bao Jingyan never lets me eatte-night snacks." Bao Ziqi misunderstood... His face turned ugly. By this time, Su Ruanruan had already reached the dining room. Bao Mingyuan and his wife, Bao Jingyuan, were already sitting there, and Su Ruanruan politely nodded at them. She clearly acted like a guest. She went to wash her hands in the restroom. Bao Mingyuan asked her outside, "Is the olddys leg better?" Su Ruanruan nodded, whispered, "It should be fine after tonight!" Bao Mingyuans heart trembled, "The olddy is better, what are your ns?" Su Ruanruan washed her hands and dried them. She returned to the dining table and said with a light smile, "Of course, I will leave once the olddy is better." Bao Jingyuan scowled and said, "I dont believe you will leave. You came back just to cling to my home, didnt you? You just cant let go of my second brother; you want to be my second sister-inw." "Jingyuan!" Bao Mingyuan rebuked his daughter, "What nonsense are you talking?" Unfortunately, Bao Ziqi just came over. He pulled out a chair and sat next to Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan remainedposed. Bao Jingyuan was frantic, "Dad see, just one evening and Su Ruanruan has seduced the second brother again! What about Sister Minn?" She spoke out of line more and more. Bao Mingyuan couldnt take it anymore. He pped his younger daughter. A loud smack sounded in the hall. Everyone was stunned. Mrs. Baos voice trembled, "Mingyuan, have you lost your mind! How could you hit Jingyuan for an outsider?" Already dissatisfied with her, Bao Mingyuan pointed at her and said, "Teach her well, otherwise, dont me me for being ruthless if she causes any trouble that cant be fixed." Mrs. Bao was utterly embarrassed. Bao Jingyuan, covering her face, ran out. "No one chase after her!" Bao Mingyuan spoke sternly, "She needs to grow up." Su Ruanruan took a sip of milk, smiled faintly, "By tomorrow night at thetest, I will leave. There really is no need to argue over me." She was polite yet distant. Bao Mingyuan felt a pang in his heart. He couldnt stay at home any longer and went to hispany after breakfast. The secretary brewed him tea and then talked about the big news in River City this morning. "Apparently, Miss Su proposed three conditions to Master Mu Jiu," the secretary admired. Bao Mingyuan was taken aback. He frowned, "Did the newspapers write about it?" This happened at his residence; who leaked it? In a moment, he guessed that his wife was behind it. She wanted to make Su Ruanruan look foolish! The secretary ced the tea down, continuing, "Now everyone in River City is waiting to see Miss Sus embarrassment; some even started betting pools." Bao Mingyuan waved his hand, "Ruanruan is young and needs experience! Even if she slips up once, its nothing!" He sat in the leather chair, pondered for a moment: "Here, help me get Lawyer Wang here! If theres bad news from Mu Jiu, immediately release the news that the Bao family wants to take Su Ruanruan as a goddaughter." The secretary naturally asked, "Does Mr. Bao want to take Miss Su as his daughter?" Bao Mingyuan knocked on the tabletop and nodded, "It has to be this way! No matter what, I cant let this child lose face this time." Chapter 265: It Turns Out Ruanruan Saved Me Again

Chapter 265: Chapter 265: It Turns Out Ruanruan Saved Me Again

When rumors spread throughout the city. Su Ruanruan was watering flowers in the olddys courtyard. Calls came in one after another. No one believed that Mu Jiu was willing to apologize, let alone offer Su Ruanruan a fortune. Even Gu Yuanpei said on the phone, "Ruanruan, if you need money, dad has plenty. Lets not deal with those annoying men!" Su Ruanruan smiled lightly, revealing tiny dimples: "What I want is not just money, I want Mu Jiu to work for me." Gu Yuanpei was dumbfounded. He told his wife, "Our daughter is truly ambitious!" He found it difficult and wanted to persuade her. Madame Gu nced at him and said, "Ruanruan does have some capabilities." "Madame is right, I was hasty," Gu Yuanpei quickly apologized. Su Ruanruan shared her ns with Gu Yuanpei. Gu Yuanpei was astonished. This child, her thoughts are so meticulous! Returning to the Bao Family, taking over Mu Lao Jiu, all to deal with the entire Su Family! ... Hospital. Mu Lao Niangs surgery, Su Ruanruan did note. Lord Mu, couldnt ask for more. Without the girl, he could pretend nothing happened. Of course, he knew how the newspapers were ndering her, but to make Lord Mu apologize to Bao Jingyan, he couldnt do it! And then, twenty percent of the wealth. Lord Mu couldnt bear to give it up! Before Mu Lao Niang was pushed into the operating room, Zhou Susu arrived. "What are you doing here?" Lord Mu felt a headache seeing her, this woman really thinks she is part of the Mu Family! Zhou Susu felt a bit wronged: "Auntie is having surgery, shouldnt Ie to help?" However, Mu Lao Niang kindly said, "She means well, dont me her." Zhou Susu cried with joy. She knew that dressing simply today would please Mu Lao Niang. But Mu Lao Niang then said, "This young girl works for you, do not make it hard, increase her sryter." Lord Mu sighed. Zhou Susu clenched her teeth in anger. At this moment, Zhou Zizhuo came over. Dressed in a white coat, graceful as gentle winds and clear moons. Seeing him, Zhou Susu felt like she saw a male version of Su Ruanruan, someone not from her world. Mu Lao Niang, however, hit it off with Zhou Zizhuo immediately. She held Zhou Zizhuos hand, "We owe a lot to Dr. Zhou this time." Zhou Zizhuo nced at Lord Mu, and smiled lightly, "You should thank Ruanruan." Mu Lao Niang still didnt grasp the situation, "You are..." Zhou Zizhuo gracefully added, "I am Ruanruans senior brother, Academician Su is my teacher." Then, Mu Lao Niang understood. She gripped Zhou Zizhuos hand, "Academician Su has saved me twice!" She turned back to her son, "That Ruanruan is a great benefactor to our family! Child, you must thank her properlyter." Zhou Zizhuo smiled ambiguously. Lord Mu pretended to be angry, "You better focus on your surgery, no need to worry about these external matters." "How could I not involve myself in Ruanruans matters?" Mu Lao Niang tapped her son and then went for the surgery. Mu Lao Niangs surgery, Lord Mu waited in the corridor. Lord Mu was very nervous, his legs felt weak! He was terrified something might happen to his mother. Suddenly, he thought, he and his mother depended solely on each other with no other rtives, if something happened to his mother, the only person he couldnt let go of besides her was Su Ruanruan. Just as this thought emerged, Lord Mu immediately dismissed it! If he asked that girl toe, she would definitely take the opportunity to make demands. He couldnt give in. Lord Mu struggled to hold himself together, but after an hour he started breaking out in a cold sweat. His clothes were soaked. His subordinate, Qin Chao, handed him a tissue, "Lord Mu, you should wipe your sweat." Chapter 266: I鈥檓 Definitely Not Scared!

Chapter 266: Chapter 266: Im Definitely Not Scared!

Mu Jiu disdainfully remarked, "So fussy and finicky!" He stared at the door to the operating room, asking, "How much longer will this take?" Qin Chao replied, "Doctor Zhou said at least 10 hours." Mu Jius legs felt even weaker. Cold sweat broke out more and more. Qin Chao suggested, "How about asking Miss Zhou to keep youpany?" Mu Jiu red at him, "Didnt you see my mother doesnt like her?" Qin Chao just made a sound of realization, then followed Mu Jius example by eyeing his nose, and nose his heart. After waiting another ten minutes, Mu Jiu couldnt bear it any longer, he kicked Qin Chao, "How can you be so clueless?" Qin Chao, a straightforward guy, scratched his head, "Just tell me what youd like, Mu Jiu. How could I possibly guess what youre thinking?" "Go to the Bao Mansion and bring Su Ruanruan here!" Mu Jiu put on his sunsses. Qin Chao was puzzled, "But this morning, werent you praying that Miss Su wouldnte?" Mu Jiu was fuming. His face darkened, "This morning was the morning, now is now!" He huffed, "That girl better have some conscience." Even the usually obtuse Qin Chao could tell. Their Mu Jiu was scared! Qin Chao felt rather at a loss for words but still drove fast to the Bao Mansion to pick her up. Upon arrival at Bao Mansion, Housekeeper Wang led the guest inside. Su Ruanruan was sipping tea in the courtyard, she looked up at the sound of footsteps and smiled lightly, "Did Mu Jiu send you?" Qin Chao, who owed her a favor, was very respectful, "Yes, Mu Jius mother is in surgery, and Mu Jiu would like Miss Su toe over." Before he could finish, Housekeeper Wang butted in, "The doctors have been invited and gifts sent, does our Miss Su really need to provide after-sales service too?" Qin Chaos face turned red. Su Ruanruan nced at Housekeeper Wang, said lightly, "Stop giving him a hard time, Ill go." After informing the elderdy, she followed Qin Chao to the hospital. In the hallway, Mu Jiu stood leaning against the wall. With trembling legs! Seeing Su Ruanruaning, Mu Jiu got defensive, "Im telling you, I didnt call you here because Im scared." Su Ruanruan could clearly see his condition but she remained calm, asking Qin Chao to bring a chair over and took a seat. Composed and serene. Mu Jiu stubbornly insisted, "Let me make it clear upfront, this has nothing to do with our bet! You came voluntarily because you care about my mother." "Right, I came voluntarily," said Su Ruanruan softly. Mu Jiu was reassured. Qin Chao was also relieved and went out to buy some beverages or something. Half an hourter, Qin Chao returned, dumbfounded. Mu Jiu was actually squatting on the floor, clutching Miss Sus lower legs tightly, looking like a big wolfhound. And Mu Jiu was shivering all over. Yet Su Ruanruan was very calm! She said to Qin Chao, "Find a nurse to give Mu Jiu a sedative." Qin Chao wanted to cover his face. Su Ruanruan with a faint smile and downcast eyes, "Your Mu Jiu is about to faint." ... When Mu Jiu woke up, it was already hourster. The first thing he saw was the white ceiling. Feeling his muscles recover, Mu Jiu promptly sat up. His mother was in surgery, how could he have fainted? As he moved, he heard Qin Chao, downcast, "Auntie Meis surgery has long been finished, very sessful!" Mu Jiu got out of bed, shaking off his stiffness, "It finished?" "Yes! Miss Su was with you the whole time." Qin Chao, afraid hed forget, reminded him, "You were clinging to Miss Sus legs the whole time, and only after getting a sedative did you fall asleep, Mu Jiu, dont you remember?" Mu Jiu didnt want to remember such an embarrassing incident. He asked the most concerning question, "That girl, she didnt use this as an opportunity to ckmail me, did she?" Qin Chao scratched his head, "As soon as the surgery finished, Miss Su left." Mu Jiu was puzzled. That girl actually left... She didnt try to take advantage one more time? Chapter 267: Not One Less!

Chapter 267: Chapter 267: Not One Less!

Mu Jiu felt quite disheartened. After washing his face, he went to the hospital ward to visit Old Lady Mu. But Old Lady Mu was in the ICU, and Mu Jiu couldnt see her whenever he wanted. Qin Chao then said, "Ill stay here for Mu Jiu, and when ourdy wakes up, Ill call Mu Jiu." Mu Jiu leaned in, unassured, and asked, "Opening up the head like that, are you sure theres no problem?" "The skills of Dr. Zhou cant go wrong," Qin Chao said with a smile. Mu Jiu became upset, nudging him with his arm, "Qin Chao, you brat, have you been with Bao Jingyan too long and switched sides?" Qin Chao said nothing. Mu Jiu knew he touched a sensitive spot, and hastily apologized, "Alright, alright, lets not talk about it." But Qin Chao seemed determined to bare his heart to Mu Jiu. Mu Jiu quickly ran off! ... Bao Mansion. Bao Mingyuan returned home early. He heard that Mu Jiu, usually acting like a hero, had chickened out at the critical moment. Not only had he summoned Su Ruanruan over to bolster his courage, but he also took a sedative. Bao Mingyuan saw this as an opportunity. The ck limousine had just entered the courtyard when Bao Mingyuan hurriedly got out and headed to the small garden. In the pavilion, a gentle breeze was blowing. Su Ruanruan was sitting there, drinking tea. Attending to her was Housekeeper Wang. Housekeeper Wang, who was usually stern and somber, was now tenderly serving Su Ruanruan tea and water. Ruanruan seemed to take to it quite smoothly. Bao Mingyuan was momentarily entranced. After a while, he sat down across from Su Ruanruan and nced at Housekeeper Wang. Housekeeper Wang poured him a cup of tea and then excused himself, mentioning he had work to attend to. Once he left, Bao Mingyuan pointed to his retreating figure, "Who is paying his sry now?" Su Ruanruan was savoring her tea. Upon hearing this, she simply smiled faintly. Bao Mingyuan, ignoring this, spoke of serious matters, "I heard that today Mu Jiu owes you another favor?" Su Ruanruan lightly hummed in acknowledgment. Bao Mingyuan instantly perked up. He strategized, "Then strike while the iron is hot! If Mu Jiu agrees to one or two of those three conditions, that would be quite something." Su Ruanruan, however, smiled indifferently, "I havent proposed any conditions." Bao Mingyuan was taken aback. He hadnt expected Su Ruanruan to let go of such a good opportunity! He couldnt help but think that the child was, after all, soft-hearted. At that moment, Su Ruanruan poured him a cup of tea with a shallow smile, "Three conditions were agreed upon, not one less." Bao Mingyuans gaze followed her slender hand... He was slightly touched. Could the child pouring him a cup of tea mean that she has forgiven him? As it turned out, he was overthinking it as Su Ruanruan left gracefully after speaking. Her white garment and ck hair fluttered in the evening breeze, making her appear like a fairy. ... The next morning, Su Ruanruan did not eat breakfast in the hall. Bao Mingyuan felt somewhat disappointed. Mrs. Bao, intent on creating discord, said, "I think that child has be too proud since recognizing her kin! She didnt even take advantage of such a good opportunity yesterday!" She spread the newspaper in front of her husband, "Look, how unpleasantly its written! Theyve made Su Ruanruan out to be a fool." She felt d that she had not softened towards Su Ruanruan! That girl, incapable of doing anything significant! Bao Mingyuan nced at the newspaper, then at his wife. Mrs. Bao, puzzled, asked, "Mingyuan, why are you staring at me like that?" Bao Mingyuan spoke indifferently, "Nothing!" After that, he got up and drove to thepany. It was after he left that Mrs. Bao suddenly realized. Mingyuan suspected that the news in the paper was leaked by her! Mrs. Bao trembled with anger! It wasnt her at all! Who had managed this so cleanly and made her the scapegoat. And she was unable to defend herself! Chapter 268 This is Fun 1

Chapter 268: Chapter 268 This is Fun 1

Everyone in Jiangcheng is worried that Su Ruanruan is about to face embarrassment. Meanwhile, Bao Jingyan is catching evidence against her at home bit by bit! Early in the morning, returning to the vi, Bao Jingyan took a shower and pulled open the bedside drawer. He took out a pack of cigarettes and was about to close it. A glimpse from the corner of his eye. A silver bone chainy in the drawer. Bao Jingyan had seen that chain many times; it was worn by Bao Ziqi since childhood. Its appearance here only pointed to one possibility! Bao Jingyan lit a cigarette, taking a deep inhale. The contours of his hard-lined cheeks became even more pronounced. He looked down at the chain in his hand and dialed Su Ruanruans number. Su Ruanruan answered the phone. Bao Jingyan asked softly, "What are you doing?" "nting flowers." Su Ruanruans voice was soft. She asked him, "When will you be back?" He didnt answer but instead asked, "Have you been happy these past few days?" Su Ruanruan felt he was acting strange, and before she could ask why, he had already hung up. She didnt think much of it. That whole morning, she was in the small courtyard. She had cleared a small patch ofnd and nted white roses. Aunt Gui said that the olddy liked them the most. She thought, once the flowers bloomed, she and Bao Jingyan could apany the olddy for a walk. ... After hanging up the phone, Su Ruanruan continued with her gardening. Bao Ziqi came out from the olddys room. His steps halted. He unexpectedly saw Su Ruanruan busy in the courtyard. In her floral dress, elegant and slender. "Why are you doing this?" Bao Ziqi stood by the flower bed and gently asked her. Su Ruanruan was somewhat surprised to see him but still replied in a light tone, "Im just passing the time." Bao Ziqi wanted to invite her for a cup of tea. But he knew she would not agree. So, Bao Ziqi just stood by her side, asionally chiming in with a couple of sentences. Su Ruanruan couldnt bring herself to drive him away, so she had to leave by herself. Just as she had tidied up the tools, arge hand grasped her wrist. Su Ruanruan looked up. It turned out to be Bao Jingyan. "Youre back?" Her tone was light and even somewhat gleeful. Bao Jingyan hummed softly in response. Then, holding her wrist, he headed toward the main house. Su Ruanruan became anxious, biting her lip and lightly said, "Bao Jingyan! We might be seen." He did not respond, but the grip on her hand tightened. Behind them, Bao Ziqi clenched his fingers into a fist. ... Bao Jingyan brought Su Ruanruan to his third-floor bedroom. The door shut. Her delicate wrists were lifted high. Behind hery the cold door panel, but in front of her was Bao Jingyans zing body. He pinched her chin and kissed her. Su Ruanruan began to resist. Bao Mingyuan and his wife werent home, but there were still many servants in the house! It didnt matter to him, but she had to maintain her dignity! She desperately dodged him, her ck, glossy, straight hair swung open, making her cheeks look even whiter and more lustrous. A hint of red tinted the corner of her eyes. She was unwilling. Bao Jingyan quickly subdued her, and the little person in his arms slowly softened. Her voice was delicate, stirring the soul! "Missed me?" He finished the kiss and nuzzled her tender lips with a hoarse voice, asking. Su Ruanruan opened her eyes, which were brimming with moisture. She tilted her head up, wanting to kiss him. Bao Jingyan, however, wouldnt let her kiss him; he leaned in close to her ear and murmured, "Ruanruan, Im angry!" Ah? Su Ruanruan slowly came to her senses. In front of her, there appeared a delicate silver chain. The man who had provoked her was biting her earlobe, speaking deliberately, "Should we give each other the cold shoulder until theres a reasonable exnation?" "Are you serious?" Su Ruanruan leaned against the door panel. Staring straight at him. Bao Jingyan straightened his clothes and gave a light smile. Looking every bit the elegant beast! He said, "Im serious." "Fine!" Su Ruanruan lowered her gaze and smiled faintly: "Just as well, Im quite angry too." She took the ne, walked out, and went downstairs. Without tears or a scene! Chapter 269: This is Fun 2

Chapter 269: Chapter 269: This is Fun 2

The lobby on the first floor. Bao Ziqi stood there smoking. Su Ruanruan, dressed neatly, came downstairs, to his surprise. He had fully expected Bao Jingyan to make a huge deal out of the situation, yet it turned out to be handled so gently! All in all, it took just over ten minutes. As Su Ruanruan passed by, Bao Ziqi spoke with difficulty: "Did you have a quarrel?" Su Ruanruan looked at him quietly. Then, she ced the ne in the palm of his hand. Bao Ziqi frowned: "He treats you like this, and you still want to be with him?" Su Ruanruan did not wish to exin to him. Bao Jingyan was indeed jealous and did some things that made her unhappy. But at the same time, she was also somewhat pleased. He had juste back and was so eager to catch her in the act! This slightly appeased Su Ruanruans vanity. Such a cold war was more like a sort of excitement. Bao Ziqi, he wouldnt understand! ... Su Ruanruan returned to the small courtyard. She took a shower before heading to the olddys ce. Bao Jingyan was actually there. Distinguished and elegant, sitting on the dowagers chair. Su Jiruan and the olddy were talking, ignoring him. Then the olddy said to her grandson, "Last time you didnt side with Ruanruan, now Ruanruan wants nothing to do with you! Jingyan, hurry up and make amends to your sister." Su Ruanruan did not utter a sound. There was a hint of modest pride in her expression. Bao Jingyan nced at her and said to the olddy, "She used to be surnamed Su, now shes surnamed Gu, not my sister!" The olddy found it amusing yet exasperating: "Jingyan, how can you throw temper tantrums like a child!" Bao Jingyan retorted, "Maybe the child is the one throwing a tantrum at me!" Lately, the olddys mind was a bit muddled. She did not catch such an obvious hint. Instead, she said, "You should be amodating towards Ruanruan, youre ten years her senior!" Bao Jingyan then looked at Su Ruanruan, "The olddy wants me to apologize to you! What do you say?" His tant behavior in front of the olddy made Su Ruanruan both angry and embarrassed. She stood up, "Im going to the hospital." Bao Jingyan immediately got up: "Ill take you." Thinking of his terrible behavior just now, Su Ruanruan refused his offer. Bao Jingyan sat back down and said leisurely, "Thats true! There are others in the house, letting someone else take you works just the same." This infuriating speech was unpleasant to hear. Especially in front of the olddy. Su Ruanruan was truly a bit angry. She lightly smoothed her skirt and smiled lightly, "Brother is right! Ill find someone to take me right now." After saying this, she walked out the door. Bao Jingyan, at any rate, couldnt rest easy and went out to see for himself. Fortunately, despite her angry words, she took Old Zhaos car. ... Old Zhao drove the car, not daring to let out a breath. Miss Sus face looked troubled as soon as she got in the car. Quite frightening. Old Zhao tried to cheer her up, "Young Master Jingyan cares about you! In my opinion, theres no second person in the entire Jiang City who has the character and appearance like Young Master Jingyan." "Just because theres no second one, should I endure and keep silent?" Su Ruanruan asked softly. Old Zhao smiled awkwardly. He said, "What you and the Young Master have is a yful quibble, different from our in folks arguments." Su Ruanruan said, "Its the same." Old Zhao didnt understand. Su Ruanruan rolled down the car window and turned her face away. After a while, she finally spoke, "No matter what kind of marriage it is, a husband should respect his wife." Bao Jingyan showed her no respect today. So, Su Ruanruan was not nning on exining to him... It just so happened she had things to do. Better to avoid being distracted! The car arrived at the hospital, and Su Ruanruan got out. She told Old Zhao to take the car back, and she went straight to the inpatient department. Mus mother had been moved from the ICU to a regr VIP ward and was not only conscious but also able to eat some food. When Su Ruanruan arrived, Mus mother was awake. Chapter 270: Feeling Wronged, Ninth Master will Stand Up for You

Chapter 270: Chapter 270: Feeling Wronged, Ninth Master will Stand Up for You

Seeing Su Ruanruan, Old Madam Mu was very excited. "Youve grown taller and more beautiful." Su Ruanruan was well-behaved and adorable. She even leaned her head over, allowing Old Madam Mu to gently stroke it. Old Madam Mu feltpletely satisfied. At this time, Mu Jiu entered from outside. Upon entering, he heard the happyughter of his old mother. Then he saw that apanying his old mother was Su Ruanruan! Mu Jiu was quite on guard and feigned a smile: "So Ruanruan hase." Su Ruanruan hummed in acknowledgment and started cutting some fruit for Old Madam Mu. Feeding her bite by bite. Old Madam Mu smiled with her eyes squinted. She said to her son, "Go do whatever you have to do; I have Ruanruan to keep mepany." After saying this, she continued to gaze at Su Ruanruan with a smile. Unwilling to take her eyes off her. Seeing his own mother like that, Mu Jiu was extremely anxious! My dear mother, how could your straightforward heart outmaneuver a girl like Su Ruanruan? Shes plotting something! When the time is right, this girl will reveal her hand. Mu Jiu sat down. He wanted to see Su Ruanruans next move! But for a full hour, Su Ruanruan did nothing except take care of Old Madam Mu. Nothing else! Mu Jiu was perplexed! Could it be that the challenge was too great, and the girl gave up? When Su Ruanruan left, Mu Jiu pretended to offer her a walk-out, but in reality, he wanted to understand what she was up to. In the elevator, the two stood in silence. Su Ruanruan spoke softly: "Gu Jiarou wille to pick me up in a while! No need for you to walk me out." "Why is it that girl picking you up? Where is Bao Jingyan? What, now that hes got you, he doesnt cherish you?" Mu Jiu intentionally asked. Su Ruanruan didnt make a sound. A hint of redness appeared at the corner of her eyes. Mu Jiu, being observant, actually noticed it. He chuckled, "I told you pretty boys cant be relied on! Now you learned the hard way, havent you?" Then he shamelessly added: "Its all good! From now on stick with big brother me, and I promise you wont shed a tear again." Su Ruanruan gave him a look. Her gaze was clear and cold. Mu Jiu chickened out. He touched his hair and said unhappily, "I know Im a rough guy, and you look down on me! But what kind of family is the Bao Family? Seven people but with eight different hearts!" Su Ruanruan still didnt speak. Mu Jiu became a bit anxious: "Didnt the Gu family acknowledge you? Why do you still have to suffer?" Su Ruanruan looked up. She stared straight at Mu Jiu. Mu Jiu was a bit overwhelmed. At this moment, Su Ruanruan said softly, "Im not doing this for Bao Jingyan! Its for my father, Su Peiming! His death was mysterious, and I must find out the truth to bring him justice." Mu Jius eyes sharpened. Su Peiming was his benefactor. He couldnt stand idly by. After a brief thought, Mu Jiu said decisively: "Whatever money or manpower you need, just say the word, and I, Brother Jiu, will surely make it happen." Su Ruanruan gave a shallow smile: "Then I thank Brother Jiu." Only then did Mu Jiu realize his slip of the tongue. He quickly remedied: "Hey, this doesnt count as agreeing to any conditions." Su Ruanruan nodded. "It doesnt." Her straightforwardness made Mu Jiu feel even more disappointed. The elevator doors opened. Gu Jiarou was outside; as soon as she saw Su Ruanruan, she asked, "Did you really have a fight with Jingyan? Hes only just got back; shouldnt you two be inseparable?" Su Ruanruan shook her head. She turned back to Mu Jiu to say goodbye: "Thank you for seeing me out." Mu Jiu felt aplex mix of emotions. His voice was heavy: "Girl, if youre wronged, tell Brother Jiu! Ill take care of them for you." Feeling that wasnt enough, he took out a wallet and passed a card to her: "Take this, spend it as you like." Su Ruanruan refused. But Gu Jiarou snatched it away, speaking coquettishly, "Since were calling him Brother Jiu, we might as well ept it as pocket money." She grabbed the card and pulled Su Ruanruan away, running off. Chapter 271 It鈥檚 Time to Repay the Kindness

Chapter 271: Chapter 271 Its Time to Repay the Kindness

Mu Jiu watched their retreating figures, his mind heavy with thoughts. Returning to the ward, he found that old Lady Mu hadnt gone to sleep. She was leaning against the headboard, lost in thought. "Why arent you lying down to rest?" Mu Jiu, being dutiful, helped old Lady Mu to lie down. Old Lady Mu clutched his hand and said, "I just heard from the nurse that you and Ruanruan have some misunderstandings?" Mu Jiu reassured her: "What misunderstanding could there be? Didnt I juste to see you?" Old Lady Mu shook her head. She said, "Jiu, thats not what I meant." Then she sighed, "I heard that shes having a tough time at the Bao Family, even her fiance was snatched away several times! Jiu, isnt the Gu Family strong enough to protect her?" Mu Jiu was roaring inside. Damn! Who spread these stupid rumors? Su Ruanruans man isnt Bao Ziqi at all, okay? Moreover, with all her plotting and scheming, does she even care about such trivial matters of love? But Old Lady Mu cared! Old Lady Mu made up her mind, "Jiu, we owe Academician Su too much! Now its our time to repay." Mu Jiu sat on one side. He was silent, even wanting to smoke a cigarette. After a long while, he said hoarsely, "She wants me to agree to three conditions." "Which three?" Old Lady Mu asked eagerly. Mu Jiu then told her. At the end, he said, "Isnt this forcing me into a corner? If I agree, where would I put my face? And if she bes your goddaughter, wont I lose my chance?" "Youre still thinking about chances!" Old Lady Mu red at her son. Mu Jius face flushed. Old Lady Mu said, "That girl and the eldest young master of the Bao Family are a couple, right?" Mu Jius eyes widened. His mother is incredible! Old Lady Mus aged eyes held wisdom, "That child is aloof by nature, and there arent many she trusts! But once she does, she protects fiercely." She groped and grabbed her sons hand, "Having a sister like Ruanruan, she will definitely pull you back when you mess up in the future... I wont have to worry anymore." These words deeply saddened Mu Jiu. He said, "Ill think about it." Old Lady Mu closed her eyes. A smile on her lips. ... Mu Jiu returned to the vi. Zhou Susu was lounging in a bathrobe,fortably reading a magazine. Mu Jiu sat opposite her, frowning, "What kind of attire is that?" Zhou Susu, having long awaited his return, boldly climbed into his arms, wrapping her arms around his neck, exhaling softly, "Its been days since I saw you, and you scold me the moment you return." She offered up her red lips, and her hands were also quite forward. Mu Jiu hadnt indulged for several days. Stirred by Zhou Susu, he soon pressed her down onto the couch. Several of his men immediately stepped out, closing the door behind them. After a passionate encounter. Mu Jiu left Zhou Susu and went directly to shower. When he returned, Zhou Susu had already woken up. She had draped on a robe, kneeling beside him as she helped him light a cigarette... Mu Jiu eyed her, "Acting cheap again?" Zhou Susu glowered resentfully, her voice sultry, "I missed you, Mu Jiu." She added, "Your mother doesnt like me, I didnt dare go to the hospital! Now that youre back, I want to stick with you." Mu Jiu snuffed out his cigarette and forcefully pressed the woman in his arms onto the carpet... By the afternoon, he was finally free. Mu Jiu sat on the terrace, smoking, asionally checking his phone. No new messages. Mu Jiu sat quietly, lost in thought. The girls words, his mothers words, alternately appeared... Mu Jiu had never felt such hesitation. Demanding his apology, dispersing his wealth was eptable, but recognizing that girl would end all possibilities! Mu Jiu closed his eyes. Yet, in his mind, he reyed the girl calling him "Brother Jiu"... Chapter 272: Underestimated Su Ruanruan鈥檚 Status in the Bao Family

Chapter 272: Chapter 272: Underestimated Su Ruanruans Status in the Bao Family

Su Ruanruan had spent the whole day outside and only returned to the Bao Mansion in the evening. Tonight, the Bao Mansion was abuzz. Xia Minn was visiting and chatting with thedies of the Bao family. Bao Jingyan was there too, sitting on the sofa idly flipping through a magazine. Su Ruanruan didnt want to join in such a scene. She gave a nod and was ready to head to the courtyard. However, Bao Jingyan put down the book in his hand and asked her, "Ive been waiting for you half the day, why did you onlye back now?" He said it so casually, as if Su Ruanruan was a member of this family. In front of others, Su Ruanruan didnt want to embarrass him. She said softly, "I went shopping with Jiarou." Bao Jingyans gaze was deep, and he did not question her further. But it was Xia Minn who smiled slightly: "You mean Gu Jiarou? Ive met her a few times too, shes a very cute girl." Su Ruanruan had no intention of making friends with her, and simply gave a faint smile. Xia Minn felt a bit ufortable. She was going to be the future seconddy of the Bao family, and Su Ruanruan was just a guest. Yet she was so cold. So Xia Minn said, "Speaking of which, I cane and go as I please at the Gu Family too." Her words were not friendly. Just as Su Ruanruan was about to speak, Bao Ziqi came downstairs. He immediately ask Xia Minn, "Dont you have your own home? Why do you have to visit others houses!" "Ziqi!" Xia Minn lost face and acted coquettishly. But Bao Ziqi did not fall for it. He wanted a wife, not a woman who causes trouble. He was cold towards Xia Minn, who then med Su Ruanruan for this treatment. At this moment, a chuckle was heard. It was Bao Jingyan. Hezily stood up and instructed Housekeeper Wang, "Tell the master toe down for dinner, and let him know that Miss Su is back." This sentence carried weight. It indicated that Bao Mingyuan had been waiting for Su Ruanruan to start dinner. Xia Minn was taken aback. She had underestimated Su Ruanruans status in the Bao family... ... Bao Mingyuan came downstairs shortly after, and affectionately said as soon as he saw Su Ruanruan, "Hungry, right? Lets start the meal." Madam Bao pursed her lips. Bao Jingyuan was even more furious! Her father had shown no such enthusiasm even when sister Minn visited their home! She was angry but dared not show it. During dinner, Bao Mingyuan personally served Su Ruanruan food and asked, "I heard from the housekeeper that you went to the hospital?" Su Ruanruan nodded. After a moment, she said, "Mu Jiu hasnt agreed yet." Bao Mingyuan was not surprised. Such harsh conditions, only if Mu Jiu was out of his mind would he agree. He had already prepared for the worst, which was to take Su Ruanruan in as his goddaughter. This would be much more dignified than adopting Mu Jiu. Bao Mingyuan tenderly served Su Ruanruan food,pletely ignoring Xia Minn, who was about to be his daughter-inw. Xia Minn was furious. Her good upbringing vanished. After dinner, when Bao Ziqi drove her home, her face was tense the whole ride. When it came time to get out of the car, she finally couldnt hold back, "Su Ruanruan hasnt even aplished anything major, why does your father value her so much?" Bao Ziqis hands were on the steering wheel. He sat up straight. He asked hoarsely, "You cant stand it?" Xia Minn couldnt gauge his attitude and murmured, "Ziqi." Bao Ziqi turned his head and said, "If you cant ept it, you can bring it up with me." Xia Minns face turned pale. Was he suggesting breaking up? She quickly exined, "Im just curious! Ziqi, dont you think your dad has a special..." Bao Ziqis gaze was icy cold. She dared not continue. "Get out," he said as he reached out to open the car door, "Get some rest early." Xia Minn refused to leave. She was afraid that once his car left, he would break up with her tomorrow. So she clung to his arm, softly apologizing, "Sorry Ziqi, I didnt mean that." She licked her lips and strained to speak, "The hourly worker has left and theres no one else at home, wont youe up and sit for a while?" This was a rather passionate invitation, how could Bao Ziqi not understand? Chapter 273: Do You Really Want to Give Me the Cold Shoulder?

Chapter 273: Chapter 273: Do You Really Want to Give Me the Cold Shoulder?

Bao Ziqi, however, wasnt very interested and only whispered, "Its toote." After that, he tilted his chin toward the car door. Xia Minn was extremely embarrassed and furious. It was her first time mustering the courage to invite a man, only to be rejected. She knew in her heart that he couldnt forget Su Ruanruan! The entire Bao Family valued Su Ruanruan greatly! But it didnt matter; if there was no news a few days after the old Madames discharge from the hospital, Su Ruanruan would definitely fall from grace! By that time, Ziqi wouldnt be so anxious and worried. ... Bao Mansion. The night was dusky and dim. Su Ruanruan visited the olddy and returned to her bedroom. It had been redecorated, and was even morefortable than before. After taking a shower and drying her hair, she walked out of the bedroom wearing only a slip. Bao Jingyan was sitting on the sofa by the window. Handsome and distinguished. Su Ruanruan acted as if he wasnt there and sat down at the vanity to apply skincare products. She was young but paid great attention to maintenance. She was unhurried. Bao Jingyan, however, couldnt sit still any longer, walked behind her, and wrapped his arms around her. He was incredibly restless. And extremely provocative. Su Ruanruan let him be, only catching his hands at thest moment. Her voice was cool and restrained, with a hint of breathlessness: "What does this mean? Werent we supposed to be in a cold war?" "Do you really have the heart to be in a cold war with me?" he murmured, kissing her delicate earlobe: "Youre such a heartless little thing." How would he... Su Ruanruan caught his hands, preventing him from moving. "Whats wrong now?" Bao Jingyan lifted her, looking carefully into her eyes. Her eyes were faintly flushed at the corners. Su Ruanruan turned her face away and said, "Bao Jingyan, am I just some pet youve raised, to be teased when youre in the mood, and ignored when youre not? You dont respect me even in front of others!" She felt wronged but held back from crying. In this world, only Bao Jingyan could hurt her. Without lifting a finger or saying harsh words, he could make her heartache. Bao Jingyan felt helpless, his voice softened: "How did I disrespect you again? Hmm?" Su Ruanruan struggled free. She sat down and began tob her hair. Her ck hair fell softly over her shoulders, and her figure was marvelously slender. Bao Jingyan felt a surge of emotion, his Adams apple bobbing. But he restrained himself. At that moment, Su Ruanruansb paused, her voice trembling slightly: "How do you expect me to face people after how you treated me in front of Bao Ziqi?" "Do you care about him?" As soon as Bao Ziqi was mentioned, Bao Jingyan felt displeased again. Su Ruanruan, angered, threw theb away and said, "What do you think I care about?" Bao Jingyan remained silent, just watching her. Su Ruanruan spoke with restraint: "My return to the Bao Family, my time with the olddy, even all this nning, do you think I did it all for myself?" "Then for whom did you do it?" Bao Jingyan approached without showing his feelings. He held her shoulders. Those thin and small shoulders were trembling slightly. He thought, his little thing was indeed angry. Su Ruanruan did not look at him, she continued: "Apart from my own familys affairs, I also wanted to help you, but you disrespect me too much." Bao Jingyan felt a strong pang in his heart. He, usually so eloquent, suddenly didnt know what to do. It seemed no words were serious enough. Not good enough for her. Su Ruanruans nose was stuffy, as if she had been crying. She said: "Bao Jingyan, lets continue our cold war!" "Ruanruan." He sighed, gently turning her body. Indeed, she had cried. Su Ruanruan didnt want to show weakness and turned her head away. That fragile state was exceedingly moving. Bao Jingyan kissed her, and when she tried to dodge, he held her with some force. Chapter 274: Su Ruanruan Really Knows How to Keep Her Cool

Chapter 274: Chapter 274: Su Ruanruan Really Knows How to Keep Her Cool

He held her tight in his embrace, bowed his head, and asked her in an affectionate tone, "What will it take for you to forgive me?" "Im not nning to forgive you." Su Ruanruan said. Self-contained yet capricious. Bao Jingyans heart felt warm as he coaxed her, "How about I stay with you while you sleep, would that be okay?" "No, Ill sleep on my own." She shooed him away. Bao Jingyan took a step back. "Fine, Ille back when youre willing to talk to me, willing to sleep with me, okay?" Su Ruanruan was both angry and embarrassed. She shooed him away again. Bao Jingyan did not force her and really left. He went to the courtyard and smoked a cigarette. In his heart, he silently thought about what Su Ruanruan had said. She said, it was for his sake. While his heart was still warm, a silver sports car drove back. It was Bao Ziqi. Bao Ziqi strode towards the hall, but paused when he passed by Bao Jingyan. The brothers sized each other up. Bao Ziqi spoke with a mocking tone, "What, got kicked out?" Bao Jingyan slowly exhaled a ring of smoke. He licked his lips and chuckled lightly, "Thats right! Ruanruan said I didnt respect her, embarrassed her in front of you, undermining her image as a good sister-inw." Bao Ziqi got angry. Bao Jingyan went on, "What about you? Xia Minn wont keep you?" Bao Ziqi was poked where it hurt. It wasnt that she wouldnt keep him, he just wasnt interested. But there was nothing to boast about in that. He walked away quickly, not wanting to deal with Bao Jingyan any longer. Behind him, Bao Jingyan let out a lightugh. Utterly despicable! ... Madam Baos leg illness came on fiercely and was dragging on longer than usual. Su Ruanruan could only stay a few more days. Bao Mingyuan also felt guilty and visited without regard to time. Bao Ziqi and Bao Jingyan also came often, but Su Ruanruan mostly ignored them. Bao Jingyan wasnt in a hurry. He was willing to indulge his little girl! Bao Mingyuan, however, was getting somewhat anxious. He heard that Mu Jius mother would be discharged from the hospital tomorrow, but there was no sign of action from Mu Jius end. Ruanruan might lose face because of this! The night before, Bao Mingyuan stayed in his office for a long time. He and hiswyer repeatedly discussed how to save face in this situation. Lawyer Wang understood social nuances well. He pushed his sses up and said, "Its going to be difficult! Others will see it as President Bao giving a bit of face to the familys kids." "What can we do? We cant force Mu Jius head down to agree, can we?" Bao Mingyuan rubbed his temples and bitter-smiled, "This kid has really stumbled this time!" Lawyer Wang pondered for a moment and nodded, "Thats the only way." After sending Lawyer Wang off, Secretary Dong returned. She hesitated to speak. "What is it?" Bao Mingyuan asked. Secretary Dong said softly, "Ive heard that when Mu Jius mother is discharged tomorrow, the biggest media outlets in Jiangcheng are nning to broadcast it live." "Whose idea was this?" Bao Mingyuan was somewhat annoyed, "Are they really going to keep dragging Ruanruan into this?" Secretary Dong didnt speak. Bao Mingyuan stared at her for a while, then tentatively asked, "Was it the Madam?" Secretary Dong shook her head, "I cant find out." But Bao Mingyuan was even more convinced that it was all Mrs. Baos doing. It was all to make things difficult for Su Ruanruan! Thus, his feelings towards his wife cooled off a bit more. ... The next day, Mr. Mu Jius mother was discharged from the hospital. The Bao family members arrived at the restaurant early. Mrs. Bao was especially gentle today, she said to Su Ruanruan, "Would you like to visit Mu Jius mother? Shes being discharged today." Su Ruanruan hummed a response. She said, "Ill visit tomorrow, at the Mu Quns." Mrs. Bao smiled. This child really has the patience. Chapter 275: Awesome! Old Mo Recognizes Family 1

Chapter 275: Chapter 275: Awesome! Old Mo Recognizes Family 1

Bao Jingyuan was moring at this moment: "Still visiting someones home, Mr. Mu Jiu must be avoiding her!" Madame Bao scolded: "How can you speak like that, Jingyuan? How could Mr. Mu Jiu be avoiding Ruanruan?" "Probably because she asks for too much! Wanting their shares and an apology, and to be their goddaughter." Bao Jingyuan was spirited: "The whole of Jiangcheng isughing at this!" Madame Bao admonished her daughter: "Others mayugh at Ruanruan, but you cannot, understand?" Bao Jingyuan was rarely sensible and obediently said: "I wontugh at her, Illfort her." "Such a good girl." Madame Bao, with a smile, said to her husband: "Jingyuan has be sensible too." Bao Mingyuan was also very happy: "Right, this is what being a family is about!" He patted Su Ruanruans shoulder, speaking very affectionately: "Dont worry! Uncle has arranged everything. In a moment, Lawyer Wang wille over and read out my decision." Before Su Ruanruan said anything, Madame Bao hastily spoke up: "Mingyuan!" She was shocked and furious! What is Mingyuan doing? Not caring about saving face, Bao Mingyuan justid it out. "I want to take Ruanruan as my goddaughter! Meiyu, if you are willing to be the godmother then be it, if not then forget it." He said it with no room for negotiation. Madame Bao was heartbroken. Bao Jingyuan also began to cry, as she was the youngest child in the family. Its not enough for Su Ruanruan to have the love and care of the Gu Family, now she wants to steal hers too! Mother and daughter made a scene, it was very unseemly. Su Ruanruan had been watching coldly all this time. Finally, she spoke up: "Rest assured, I will never be the Bao Familys daughter." Madame Bao was stunned. Bao Jingyan gently smiled. He said: "Ruanruan has always been ambitious, she said she wanted to be goddaughter to Old Madam Mu, then certainly it will happen." "Nonsense! They dont care about her, they dont bother with her at all." Bao Jingyuan said indignantly. Just as Bao Mingyuan was about to scold his daughter, Housekeeper Wang urgently approached. "Sir, madam, something big has happened!" Bao Mingyuan frowned: "What could possibly be the matter this early in the morning?" Housekeeper Wangs gaze shifted among everyone, finallynding on Su Ruanruan. He said: "Congrattions to Miss Su, congrattions! Miss Sus wish hase true! There are 18 Rolls-Royce limousines parked at our doorstep, Mr. Mu Jiu and Old Madam Mu havee to acknowledge kinship." "Really?" Bao Mingyuan immediately stood up. His whole body came alive. Who could have thought of this surprise! This really is an unexpected twist! Overjoyed but still uneasy, he asked again: "Are you sure? Theyvee to recognize Ruanruan?" Housekeeper Wangs demeanor was unperturbed: "Besides Miss Ruanruan, who else could it be?" Bao Mingyuan mmed the table: "What about those media reporters?" "Theyre all here!" Housekeeper Wang said efficiently: "I have prepared courtesy gifts, ensuring its presentable, and their articles will look good when they write them up." "Of course!" Bao Mingyuan straightened his clothes: "Open the gates! Dont keep them waiting." Bao Mingyuan swept away his previous gloom, addressing Su Ruanruan: "You really know how to keep your cool. You made uncle worry for nothing, I havent slept well for days." Su Ruanruan gave a faint smile: "I just received the news myself." Bao Mingyuan called to the servants: "Bring out my best tea cakes, brew a pot for Mr. Mu Jiu! Hell have to apologize to Jingyan while serving tea in a moment!" Bao Jingyan wiped his lips, tossing his napkin aside. He said to Su Ruanruan: "It seems, I might have to rely on Ruanruan in the future." His words carried an ambiguous warmth. Aside from Bao Ziqi, no one else picked up on it. Su Ruanruan red at Bao Jingyan. Ignoring him! Bao Jingyan just smiled. While they were speaking, Mr. Mu Jiu, supporting Old Madam Mu, entered the residence. Behind them were the sounds of gongs and drums, 18 loads of betrothal gifts. They conducted the ritual ording to the customs of Mr. Mu Jius hometown! Chapter 276: Awesome! Recognizing Relatives with Elder Mu 2

Chapter 276: Chapter 276: Awesome! Recognizing Rtives with Elder Mu 2

Mu Jius handsome and rugged face was tinged with red Damn it, he, Mu Jiu, had been a hero all his life, he had never bowed or acted subservient to anyone! This time, he had been outyed by Su Ruanruan. Old Man Mus face was ck with anger. Mother Mu was not pleased, nudging him: "Jiu-boy, what did we agree on when we came here?" Old Man Mus face turned even redder, and he growled: "Then lets proceed exactly as nned!" It was the first time the media journalists had seen Old Man Mu like this, and they couldnt help butugh. Old Man Mu reluctantly looked at Bao Jingyan, who was sitting on the sofa, and said, "Young Master Bao, I was wrongst time, please forgive my impertinence!" He made a slight bow, which counted as an apology. Bao Jingyan certainly wasnt going to let this rare asion pass. He crossed his legs, looking extremely noble, "Is that all? Ive heard that ording to the rules of the Jianghu, Old Man Mu, youre supposed to respectfully pour tea, and then say respectfully Big Brother, I was wrong. Mu Jiu was furious. He said, "Bao Jingyan, you pretty boy, dont go too far" Your and Ruanruans sneaky affairs are still in the palm of my hand! But Bao Jingyan just smiled slightly. Old Man Mu snapped harshly: "You... even if you dont respect me, think of the Buddha!" He was speaking of Su Ruanruan. But Bao Jingyan immediately agreed, "Thats true! Ruanruan has acknowledged Mu Mama as mother, which makes her my mother too, so I must give her face." He tantly took advantage, yet others thought he cared deeply for his sibling, Su Ruanruan. Mother Mus eyes were smiling. This was Ruanruans man, right? So handsome! Several times better looking than her own son, Jiu! Bao Jingyan treated the elderly with great respect, helping Mother Mu to sit where he had been sitting, while he stood beside her. He said to Mu Jiu, "Now can we pour the tea?" Mu Jiu was furious. His own mother had fallen under the spell of Bao Jingyan, the pretty boy, and abandoned all her principles. Old Man Mu was very angry! But Old Man Mu was helpless! With no other choice, Old Man Mu grudgingly took the teacup from Housekeeper Wang and handed it to Bao Jingyan, then said gruffly, "Young Master Bao is magnanimous, please dont quibble with a vulgar man like me." "Ill take this tea!" Bao Jingyan smiled and then passed it to Mother Mu, "Its my first time meeting Mother Mu, I must show my respect." His demeanor was clearly that of a son-inw. Others did not know, but Su Ruanruan and Bao Ziqi saw everything clearly. Su Ruanruan was both embarrassed and angry. Bao Jingyan nced at her, then smiled gently. Mother Mu was very fond of him, blinded by his heavenly good looks. She told her son, "Go and bring out the documents for your sister." Old Man Mu reluctantly took out a thick stack of documents, "These are the stock certificates for all the ports under my name. They have already been arranged to belong 20% to Su Ruanruan after this, who is the new daughter my mother has acknowledged." Everyone was astounded! Old Man Mu had truly made a painful concession! The journalists pressed their shutters, capturing this incredible scene. Bao Mingyuan felt like popping open champagne to celebrate. Ruanruan had done remarkably well, having such prestige! Mrs. Bao and Bao Jingyuan were ashen-faced. They had thought Su Ruanruan would be humiliated, but didnt expect Old Man Mu to concede to her one after another. How did Su Ruanruan manage it? Mrs. Bao waspletely baffled! She couldnt imagine that the distasteful articles in the newspapers and all these reporters were orchestrated by Su Ruanruan herself! She had managed to pressurize Old Man Mu and at the same time frame Mrs. Bao. Chapter 277: Awesome! Recognizing Relatives with Elder Mu 3

Chapter 277: Chapter 277: Awesome! Recognizing Rtives with Elder Mu 3

Ruanruan sat down gracefully and signed those documents. In an instant, she owned a fortune worth tens of billions. Mu Jiu felt heartache! But Old Lady Mu did not, she held Ruanruans hand and said, "When you get married, your brother will also prepare a dowry for you!" Mu Jius heart shattered. Ruanruan epted this favor. She poured two cups of tea, presenting one to Old Lady Mu with a half-kneel. With utmost respect, she said: "I will be filial to Mother Mu in the future." Journalists were worried:ing from a humble background, might Old Lady Mu be at a loss and lose her dignity? Mrs. Bao even sneered. Ruanruan acknowledging a thief as her mother, shes going to be disgraced immediately! But Old Lady Mu elegantly epted the tea from Ruanruans hand and took a sip. Then, she said sternly: "Now that Ive drunk your tea, we are mother and daughter! Mu Qun is your brother, and you siblings must support each other, you need to keep your brother in check since hes reckless." She then called her son and earnestly instructed: "Ruanruan is young, she will inevitably be bullied, you must not ignore it." Mu Jiu sighed. His eyes bright with intensity as he looked at Ruanruan. From now on, she was his sister. Ruanruan, without speaking, handed the other cup to him. "Brother Jiu, thats what Ill call you from now." Ruanruan smiled slightly. Her small teeth gleaming, very adorable. Mu Jiu couldnt help but sigh, drinking it all at once. He set down the teacup, looking around and said in a threatening tone: "From now on, anyone who bullies my sister is opposing me, Mu Jiu! Ill y them alive!" He fiercely nced at Mrs. Bao. Mrs. Bao shivered slightly. And was actually frightened. She thought to herself: Ruanruan has powerful backup now, truly found a strong support. With both dark and light forces, who would dare to touch her? After recognizing the kinship, Bao Mingyuan invited them to stay for dinner. Old Lady Mu declined, saying she needed to go back to rest due to her poor health. Ruanruan followed. As she got into the car, Bao Jingyan held the car door and said: "Grandma is waiting for you tonight." Ruanruan bit her lip, closed the car door. Almost catching Bao Jingyans fingers. Bao Jingyanughed it off. Returning to the vi. Bao Mingyuan was decisive. He ordered to double the size of Ruanruans bedroom, ensuring she would befortable. Bao Jingyan smiled and sat down: "Ruanruan doesnt stay here often!" "The more reason to make the ce nicer, so the child wille back more often," said Bao Mingyuan naturally. Bao Jingyan, biting on a cigarette butt, mumbled unclearly: "She and Zhou Zizhuo have already split, why bother with this effort?" Bao Mingyuan zoned out for a moment. He walked over to the sofa and sat down, looking at his eldest son. After a moment, he smiled: "Cant hide anything from you!" Bao Jingyan just slightly smiled, not saying much: "Im going to thepany." Bao Mingyuan stopped him: "Since youre heading to thepany, keep an eye on something." Bao Mingyuan said: "Our new drug development is at a critical point, I heard from Old Zhong that the clinical trials are a bit weak, Jingyan, should we reorganize a medical team?" Bao Jingyan curled his lip: "Dad, have you taken a liking to someone?" Bao Mingyuan just smiled, "Isnt Zhou Zizhuo in Jiang City? Invite him over for a casual meal!" "I dont have that much influence," Bao Jingyan patted his trousers. "You should ask Ruanruan for this." Bao Mingyuan stared at his son. Bao Jingyan boldly said: "That girl hasnt been paying much attention to metely!" After saying this, he started to leave again. Bao Mingyuan stopped him: "Jingyan." Bao Jingyan hmm? turned around. Bao Mingyuans expression wasplex, he spoke softly: "Think of a way, I really want that child toe back." Bao Jingyan was silent for a moment, then said: "Understood." Chapter 278: Let Ruanruan Take Charge of This Home

Chapter 278: Chapter 278: Let Ruanruan Take Charge of This Home

Su Ruanruan apanied Old Mother Mu back home. Of course, it wasnt the vi where Su Jiu lived, but another one with a better environment. Gu Jiarou also came over, and she was very lively. Old Mother Mu liked her a lot. The mothers were talking in the bedroom, and Mu Jiu just stayed by their side. He was originally heartbroken, but seeing his mother so happy, he gradually came to terms with it. Qin Chao whispered to him, "Mu Jiu didnt lose out at all!" Mu Jiu spit at him, "I gave away over tens of billions, how did I not lose out?" Qin Chao said, "Think about it, before, it was difficult for you to even see Ms. Su, now you can see her anytime!" Mu Jiu thought about it. Thats true! So Mu Jiu became happy and his spirits lifted. He even personally went to the kitchen and cooked two hometown dishes for the two youngdies. "Too salty!" "Strong taste." Gu Jiarou hollered, then asked Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan smiled lightly, "I think its okay." Mu Jiu was just happy when Gu Jiarou continued, "Thats because youve been with Jingyan for a long time, youve also developed a taste for strong vors." Su Ruanruan gave her a look. Old Mother Muughed and said, "That Mr. Jingyan is really handsome, first-ss demeanor." She sighed, "Our Jiu will never achieve that kind of demeanor in a lifetime." Gu Jiarou quickly added, "Mu Mom, you should just call him Jingyan, he even served you tea today." Old Mother Muughed, "Hes very well-behaved." Mu Jiu had some curses in his mind. Well-behaved? That pretty boy is clearly sneaky. Mu Jiu was angry, but could only hold it in. While they were chatting andughing, a coquettish voice rang from the door: "Mu Jiu." Su Ruanruan looked towards the door. It was Zhou Susu. Zhou Susu climbed up the ranks, Su Ruanruan had no objections. She mimicked her way to seduce Mu Jiu, Su Ruanruan had no objections. But when she advised Mu Jiu to harm Bao Jingyan, Su Ruanruan had objections. She remained calm. Old Mother Mu saw Zhou Susu and felt a headache, but she was too embarrassed to say it outright. She could only pretend to have a headache and asked to rest. Zhou Susu knew she was disliked, and her aim wasnt Old Mother Mu but Mu Jiu. Mu Jiu had acknowledged Su Ruanruan, they could meet openly now. What about her, Zhou Susu? Zhou Susu feigned filial piety, "Mu Jiu, I see that Mu Mom needs care, why dont we take her to our ce?" Old Mother Mus expression darkened. Mu Jiu too couldnt save face. He just told his mother a few days ago that he had kicked Zhou Susu out of the vi, wasnt this just admitting it himself now? He didnt wait for Old Mother Mu to speak, he coughed lightly: "We have Ruanruan!" "Ruanruan is not her own daughter," Zhou Susu boldly said. Mu Jiu was displeased: "When Ruanruan calls me Mu Jiu, she is my own." "Really, Mu Jiu?" Su Ruanruan asked back. "Of course its true." Mu Jiu wooed her with a selfish heart! Su Ruanruan then stood up, nced around, and spoke softly, "Mu Jiu is not married, I have no sister-inw, and Mu Mom is sick, there is no woman in charge at home." These words were exactly what Mu Jiu wanted. He pped his thigh and said, "I leave this home to you." Su Ruanruan smiled lightly, "Since Mu Jiu said so, Ill make decisions on behalf of Mu Jiu." She looked at her subordinates, "With such a big household, there must be rules! I will arrange for someone to take care of Mu Mom, and there must also be people around Mu Jiu!" Saying this, Mu Jiu breathed a sigh of relief. Thank goodness, he didnt have to be a Monk. Chapter 279: Su Ruanruan Has High Prestige

Chapter 279: Chapter 279: Su Ruanruan Has High Prestige

Ruanruan continued, "Brother Jiu has many people around him! Everyone has their own motives, so we must not treat anyone preferentially." Mu Jiu nodded involuntarily. The women around him vying for favor were indeed giving him headaches. Ruanruan added, "Then, please treat everyone equally, Brother Jiu! Have Zhou Susu move out of the vi immediately and live in an apartment like everyone else! Otherwise, she keeps acting like shes the Big Sister and even bullies Mother Mu." She had just finished speaking when Zhou Susu objected. "Ruanruan, you are clearly trying to get rid of me." Ruanruan smiled faintly, "Originally, women like you wouldnt have a ce by Brother Jius side! Since Im managing this family, I must handle things properly! If youre not convinced, I believe Brother Jiu doesnt see you as indispensable." Zhou Susu anxiously looked towards Lord Mu Jiu. Lord Mu Jiu observed quietly. He muttered, "At home, Ruanruan makes the decisions." Zhou Susu burst into tears. Ruanruan tightened her face, "Pack Miss Zhous luggage, and find her an apartment to move into." Lord Mu Jiu hesitated to speak. Ruanruan nced at him. He scratched his head and kept silent. Yan Kuan, Qin Chao, and the rest were all amazed. At the same time, they admired her. Miss Su could really keep Lord Jiu in line, which is truly impressive. Mother Mu was even moreforted, holding Ruanruans hand, "Child, Im so grateful for your hard work." Ruanruan spoke softly, "Brother Jiu needs to pull himself together! Finding a good sister-inw for him to settle down with in the future is crucial." Gu Jiarou interjected, "Thats hard! He seems like he can never go a day without a woman." Lord Mu Jiu chuckled and grabbed her arm, "Why dont you marry me and see if I can go a day without a woman." Jiarou was not afraid of him, making a face, "Pah! I wouldnt marry you!" Mother Muughed, telling her son, "Jiarou is only in her early 20s, shes too young for you." Lord Mu Jiu looked at Gu Jiarou. His gaze was somewhat rogue. Somehow, Gu Jiarous face turned a bit red. Ruanruan, who was observant, noticed it. But she remained calm... * Dijing Group. Bao Mingyuan was feeling conflicted. Today the R&D department had a meeting, and the new drug was sessfully developed. It should have been good news. However, Dr. Zhong mentioned during the meeting that the final crucial step came from Miss Sus valuable input. After he finished, dozens of middle and senior level staff in the meeting room remained silent. They hadnt expected that after being expelled from thepany by Director Bao, Ruanruan was still willing to help with the development. They felt both respect and admiration. Bao Mingyuan returned to his office and remained silent. The secretary poured him a tea and said softly, "The whole city is talking about what happened this morning. Miss Su turned the tables beautifully." Bao Mingyuan smiled faintly. He said, "This child... honestly, Ziqi doesnt deserve her." The secretary immediately said, "But you still want Young Master Ziqi to marry her." "You see through everything," Bao Mingyuan leaned back in his chair and sighed lightly, "Jingyan and Ziqi are too different, Ruanruan marrying Ziqi might bring bnce." "But," he raised his head, "Ruanruan is unwilling!" He treasured her talent and wanted to keep Ruanruan by his side, but he feared causing too much pain to his second son. Even though Ziqi is with Xia Minn, everyone knows he is still thinking about Ruanruan. "Its my fault!" Bao Mingyuan spoke huskily, "I shouldnt have listened to Ziqis mother back then, it would have been better to always trust Ruanruan." The secretary didnt know how tofort him. Bao Mingyuan chuckled bitterly, "Ruanruan has great prestige in Dijing! Everyone is hoping shees back." He suddenly stood up, "Prepare the car for me." The secretary was shocked, "Where are you going?" Chapter 280: The Matter of Guarding the Room Doesn鈥檛 Count Anymore!

Chapter 280: Chapter 280: The Matter of Guarding the Room Doesnt Count Anymore!

"Gu Family." Bao Mingyuan whispered softly. As a father, Bao Mingyuan was willing to fight for his son once more. In the evening, a ck limousine drove into the Gu Family mansion. Bao Mingyuan stayed at the Gu Familys residence for a full two hours, talking a lot with Gu Yuanpei... When he came out, Bao Mingyuan seemed much older. Gu Yuanpei straightforwardly told him: Everything depended on the childs own decisions, he would not interfere with Ruanruans marriage, even though Bao Mingyuan offered generous terms. percent of Dijing Groups shares would be controlled by Su Ruanruan! ... Bao Mingyuan returned home, it was already 9 oclock at night. He went directly to the small courtyard. When puzzled, he wanted to talk to the olddy. The night was dim. In the courtyard, Su Ruanruan was sitting and drinking tea. Bao Mingyuan hesitated for a moment before slowly walking over and sitting opposite Su Ruanruan. "Drinking tea alone." Bao Mingyuan spoke affectionately. Su Ruanruan looked up, smiling. She poured a cup of tea for Bao Mingyuan. Bao Mingyuan was pleasantly surprised. He thought for a moment before speaking: "When you left Dijing, did you know for sure that you woulde back?" Su Ruanruan softly hummed in agreement. Bao Mingyuan felt even more mncholic. Such a sharp and insightful child, could she only be a subordinate? He remained silent, drinking a cup of tea. Su Ruanruan was also very patient. After a long, long time, Bao Mingyuan finally spoke with difficulty: "Is it because you have someone in your heart that you look down on Ziqi? You must see how he has suffered these days." Su Ruanruan shook her head. She said softly: "Our personalities do not match." She did not deny having someone in her heart. Bao Mingyuan sensitively noticed this. After another long silence, he said: "Uncle wants you toe back! You dont have to stay at home every day, juste back from time to time to see the olddy, and also, your position at Dijing is still reserved for you!" "Is it because of Senior Brother Zhou?" Su Ruanruan held her teacup, asking lightly. Bao Mingyuan did not deny it. Su Ruanruan lowered her gaze and said: "Senior Brother and the others will set up ab! If Dijing Group needs it, we can coborate." Bao Mingyuan sighed softly: What a clever child! He hasnt gained the slightest advantage! Gu Yuanpei, is fortunate! He reached out, seemingly intending to stroke Su Ruanruans head. But his hand paused mid-air, hesitating. When standing up, Bao Mingyuan softly said: "In the future, Uncle wont mention the matter between you and Ziqi anymore! Whatever happened regarding the house... its all in the past and doesnt count!" Su Ruanruan sat without moving. She smiled faintly: "Thank you, Uncle." Bao Mingyuan sighed again. He left dejectedly... Su Ruanruan sat there alone, drinking tea for a long time. Until the night deepened and everything quietened down, she got up and prepared to return to her room. In front of her stood a tall figure. It was Bao Ziqi. His face frosty, it was unclear how long he had been standing there. He asked her softly: "From the start to the end, was it all calctions?" He walked over, looking down at her: "Everything you did was for Bao Jingyan? Just to be with him openly and honorably?" "Right." Su Ruanruan admitted. Bao Ziqi leaned close to her, almost whispering: "What do you like about him? Money or looks?" Su Ruanruan did not answer him. Bao Ziqi did not ask further, he abruptly left. Su Ruanruan did not exin to him. To say more would be to hurt more. She didnt dislike Bao Ziqi, he wasnt a bad person. He just had a bit of a temper. Even to some extent, he was a victim... Chapter 281: Bao Family鈥檚 Taboo

Chapter 281: Chapter 281: Bao Familys Taboo

The next morning, Su Ruanruan and Bao Mingyuan went to the Dijing Group together. Stepping onto Dijing premises once again. Everything was different. Su Ruanruan had be Bao Mingyuans confidant. Those who had thought she fell to rock bottom witnessed her maneuverings. Each one of them shuddered in fear! Su Ruanruan didnt bully others with her power, but merely smiled softly. Bao Mingyuan gave her an office on the 58th floor, for her to use as she pleased. After all, she was still attending the Zhongjiang Academy of Fine Arts. Besides, he had also provided her with two capable secretaries to take care of her affairs. Such favoritism was unique. At noon, Bao Mingyuan personally came to invite her to the restaurant for lunch, so that others would know Miss Su was back! His rtionship with Ruanruan was restored, as close as a father and daughter! Inside the restaurant, the old staff, Zhao and a few others, were sitting at a distance. "s! Even if she isnt the second sons wife, the love as the eldest daughter-inw is the same." "Tsk! Director Bao clearly cant tell that now he dotes on her as a daughter!" "Cant tell? Director Bao is too invested! Now there are many who want to dote on Miss Su, poor Director Bao!" ... Bao Mingyuan heard these murmurs. His old face couldnt stand it! Then there was Su Ruanruan. Her expression remained indifferent... Bao Mingyuan was heavily burdened with thoughts, feeling that he wouldnt receive forgiveness. In the afternoon, he actually fell ill. His high fever would not subside. Thepany doctor came to see him, but his fever didnt abate after several hours. The doctor told his secretary, "Director Bao has been overworking and heartbroken these days. Hes been holding up until now, but its just that he cant bear it anymore and has copsed." Others didnt know, but his secretary was aware of Bao Mingyuans thoughts. She went to ask Bao Jingyan and Su Ruanruan toe and visit him. Unfortunately, Su Ruanruan happened to bump into Bao Jingyan when she arrived. His gaze was deep as he stared at her. Su Ruanruan didnt speak and followed behind him. The two of them, one in front and the other behind, entered Bao Mingyuans resting room, and the secretary opened the door for them. Bao Mingyuan was sleeping groggily, murmuring in his mouth: "Weilian... Weilian... Im sorry." The secretary did not dare to overhear such private words and quickly exited. The spacious office and resting room now only contained Su Ruanruan and Bao Jingyan... Su Ruanruan looked up at Bao Jingyan. His face showed restrained anger, veins on his forehead bulging. He was suppressing raging anger! Su Ruanruan was in a cold war with him, but at this moment, she took the initiative to hold his hand. She gently called out to him, "Bao Jingyan." Her palm was slightly cool, and it feltforting in his grasp. Bao Jingyans body jolted. He slowly backed her against the door, kissing her almost madly. His entire being was like possessed by a nightmare, scorching hot, losing all reason. Su Ruanruan went limp in his arms, yet she did not shout out. She let Bao Jingyan vent his desires. After some time, Bao Jingyan came to his senses. He slowly nibbled at her soft red lips, and asked in a hoarse voice, "Why didnt you push me away?" Su Ruanruan silently pushed him away and looked down to quietly straighten her clothes. Bao Jingyan kept watching her. She went to take Bao Mingyuans temperature, andter fetched silver needles to perform acupuncture on him. About an hourter, Bao Mingyuans temperature went down. Su Ruanruan let out a sigh of relief, washed her hands, and walked out. Bao Jingyan was no longer there. The secretary was waiting outside and hurried to greet her when she came out. Su Ruanruan said, "The fever has gone down." As she was about to leave, the secretary suddenly stopped her: "Miss Su." Su Ruanruan softly asked, "Is there anything else?" The secretary went to close the door of the resting room, then came back, and said in a lowered voice, "Miss Su, I know its not my ce to say this! But Director Baos concern for youes from the heart; he has been very upset and guilt-ridden these days! He has never been like this before." She earnestly continued, "Could you treat him a little better?" Su Ruanruan nced at the door panel and whispered, "The things that Director Bao truly cant let go ofdidnt you hear them just now? Isnt that so?" The secretary was at a loss for words. That was a taboo of the Bao Family! Chapter 282: Sweet! Feeling better? 1

Chapter 282: Chapter 282: Sweet! Feeling better? 1

Su Ruanruan finished speaking and walked out. She went to Bao Jingyans office. Secretary Xiao said he had just left thepany. Su Ruanruan pondered: He must have gone back. She wanted to visit him, but they were in the middle of a cold war; it really wouldnt be right. But then she thought, if the roles were reversed and she was the one heartbroken, would Bao Jingyan still hold onto the cold war? Having figured that out, she took a car to the vi. When the car stopped, Auntie Li saw her as if she had found a savior. "The master came back just now and seems to be in a very bad mood." Su Ruanruan spoke softly, "Ill go up and see him." Auntie Li, who was quite understanding of these matters, said, "If... if the master is out of line, please bear with him, Miss Su." "Dont worry." Having said that, Su Ruanruan gracefully ascended the stairs. She arrived on the second floor, where the master bedroom was tightly shut. She called out but got no response, so she opened the door. Inside the bedroom, the curtains were firmly closed. It seemed dark and gloomy. The smell of cigarette smoke permeated the air. Su Ruanruan took off her shoes and walked towards the faintly glowing red ember. Through the haze, Bao Jingyan was leaning against a recliner with a cigarette between his slender fingers. Beside the ashtray, there were already seven or eight cigarette butts. Su Ruanruan did not scold him; she leaned beside him and asked in a soft voice, "Why not turn on the light?" He silently lowered his head to look at her. She added, "What if you fall asleep and start a fire?" Her small hand, as white as jade, lightly snatched the cigarette from his hand, pressed it out, and took the ashtray to the bathroom. When she returned, Su Ruanruan had a warm towel in her hands. She knelt beside him to wipe his face. With tender gentleness. Bao Jingyan remained still, his dark eyes fixed on her. "Do you want to sleep for a while?" she asked him in a low voice. He remained silent. So, with a blush, she reached out to gently unbutton his shirt. And his belt! Bao Jingyan lightly pressed down on her small hand and said in a husky voice, "Why are you so kind today?" He pulled her into his embrace, doing nothing else. Just pressing her to his chest. Through the fabric of his shirt, Su Ruanruan heard the steady beating of his heart. She was quiet and still. After a while, Bao Jingyans voice resonated deeply. "My mother, when she was pregnant with Jingse, he cheated! He began noting home at night, started going on frequent business trips, and that woman was his female secretary." Su Ruanruan raised her small face, "Is it Bao Ziqi and Bao Jingyuans mother?" He hummed softly in response. Su Ruanruan hesitated for a moment, then asked softly, "Does your mother know?" "After Bao Ziqi was born, she must have heard some rumors." Bao Jingyan lowered his head and buried his face in her shoulder, his voice hoarse, "She believed that mans promises! Or perhaps it was her pride that kept her from choosing divorce!" "Until Bao Jingyuan was born, thats when she gave up, right?" Su Ruanruan took a breath. She suddenly felt somewhat sad. Bao Jingyan didnt speak, just reached out to stroke her little head. He said, "Ruanruan, if we ever have a son, well, thats fine, but if we have a daughter, you must teach her well, understand?" Su Ruanruans face turned red. She wasforting him, and now he was ying rogue? Su Ruanruan propped herself up, intending to turn on the light. Bao Jingyan stopped her. "Dont move, just let me hold you for a while." She had no choice but to lie back down. After a while, she couldnt bear it anymore. "Bao Jingyan, my hand is numb." "Bao Jingyan, we are still in a cold war!" ... "Go make me a bowl of noodles to eat." He lowered his head and said gently. Su Ruanruan nodded. Then Bao Jingyan held her up and turned on the lights in the bedroom. The light was soft and hazy. Chapter 283: Sweet! Feeling better? 2

Chapter 283: Chapter 283: Sweet! Feeling better? 2

He still held her in his embrace, fingersbing through her long hair. "Feeling better?" Su Ruanruan asked softly near his ear, gently caressing between his eyebrows. There, just before, was a hint of annoyance. He absentmindedly hmmd in response at first, thenzily patted her, "Go make some noodles." Su Ruanruan got off him, tidying her clothes whileining, "Im being ordered around to do chores even without a formal status yet." Bao Jingyan lit a cigarette. He chuckled, "Whats so hard about getting a status? Shall we go register our marriage tomorrow?" Su Ruanruan blushed. She turned and headed downstairs. Downstairs, Auntie Li was eagerly waiting. Seeing Su Ruanruan descending, she quickly came forward to ask, "Is sir alright?" Su Ruanruan smiled faintly, "He wants to eat noodles." Auntie Li rubbed her hands, "Alright, Ill get on it." Su Ruanruan whispered, "Let me do it!" Auntie Li was stunned briefly before realizing, then joyfully said, "Miss Su cooking is just as good." Su Ruanruan was very shy. She followed Auntie Li into the kitchen and took out the ingredients from the refrigerator. She stewed an old hen in the pressure cooker to make a rich broth. She shredded the chicken. Added a few stalks of choy sum and two mushrooms. ... It was fragrantly delicious. Auntie Li couldnt stop praising, "Miss Su is more and more like ady of the house." "I wonte next time if you keep saying that," Su Ruanruan humbly protested. Auntie Li stopped joking. But in her heart, she was truly moved. Just now she had seen the mastere downstairs, taking a bath and changing into clean clothes. He looked in a good mood. Auntie Li secretly thought, in the past, it might have taken him days to recover. Its all thanks to Miss Sus skills. Not wanting to take the credit, Auntie Li let Su Ruanruan carry the tray to the dining room while she pretended to wipe with a rag, secretly paying attention to the sounds from there. Su Ruanruan brought over the noodles. Bao Jingyan put out his cigarette and started eating. Su Ruanruan sat beside him, reading a newspaper... Auntie Li secretly wiped away tears, smiling. Sir has a family now, how wonderful! ... That night, Su Ruanruan did not leave. She went to the dressing room to get a silk nightgown, took a bath, and changed. Her hair had just dried when she was embraced. She couldnt see him. She could only smell the masculine scent and a faint trace of aftershave. Su Ruanruan bit her tender red lips, "Werent you supposed to handle work matters?" "All handled!" he gently nibbled the soft flesh behind her ear. Su Ruanruan wanted to turn around. But he wouldnt allow it. He held her in front of the mirror, gently teasing her. It wasnt long before she couldnt bear it, crying softly. Bao Jingyan lifted her in his arms, consoling her, "Last time wasnt it fine? Its only been a few days apart... why are you scared again?" His gaze intensely fixed on her, a strong sense of dominance emanating from him. Su Ruanruan dared not look at him. Softly, she lowered her eyes. ... Late into the night. Bao Jingyan whispered into her ear, "Ruanruan, are we reconciled now?" Su Ruanruan wrapped her arms around his neck. She dared not utter a word of dissent, or hed be relentless! ... Early the next morning, Su Ruanruan was awakened. She lingered in bed, "Its the weekend." "Arent you seeking a formal status?" Bao Jingyan shook off the thin quilt and got out of bed himself. Su Ruanruan immediately woke up. She sat up, watching the handsome man dress. Bao Jingyan, with his good physique, was unreserved before her. Su Ruanruan blushed, "I dont know what youre talking about." Bao Jingyan leaned over to kiss her. Very tenderly. She naturally epted... After the kiss, Bao Jingyanzily patted her, "Change and wash up." He himself, went straight into the bathroom. Soon, the sound of running water echoed from inside. Su Ruanruan paused for a moment, then her face heated up tremendously. Chapter 284: Engagement Ring!

Chapter 284: Chapter 284: Engagement Ring!

Su Ruanruan held his discarded bathrobe, her face flushing and heart racing. Would he withstand it till he breaks? She flipped through the book, aware that he was ufortable. Reserved as Su Ruanruan was, he wouldnt force her, and naturally, she wouldnt take the initiative. Thus, they were left hanging like this. Neither moving forward nor retreating... * An hourter. At the foot of Jiangcheng Mountain Temple. Bao Jingyan led Su Ruanruan to a cemetery that resembled a garden. It was quiet in the early morning. Dewdrops veiled the photo of Sun Weilian on the gravestone. Bao Jingyan bent down to wipe away those droplets. He offered a bouquet of lilies and gently said, "Mom, Ive brought Ruanruan to see you." Su Ruanruan felt somewhat nervous. He mentioned a formal rtionship, which naturally led her to think about the civil affairs office, assuming he was joking. But he had brought her to meet his mother instead. Su Ruanruan looked down at her light pink long dress, feeling it was inappropriate. But Bao Jingyan reassured her, "Its good as it is, my mom would like it." He pulled her to pay respect to his mother, urging her, "Ruanruan, quickly tell my mother that youll take care of me in the future." Su Ruanruan nced at him and said softly, "Shouldnt it be you taking care of me?" No sooner had she spoken, her fingers were captured. Their fingers tightly intertwined. Bao Jingyan said in a low hoarse voice, "I will take care of you in the same way you take care of me! Whether in poverty or wealth." A dazzling pink diamond ring now adorned Su Ruanruans finger. It looked to be about 2 carats, wless. A mist veiled Su Ruanruans eyes. "Dumbfounded?" he gently held her hand, "Stop ying dumb! Say you are willing." Su Ruanruan bit her lip, "Im not of marriageable age yet." "Thats why we are taking care of it here first," Bao Jingyan asserted with confidence. Su Ruanruan stared at him for a while, then suddenly felt sweet. She had been sleeping with him for quite some time. Though not having taken the final step, she always felt ashamed. Now that he had given her a ring and his mother knew... they would get married, have children, and stay together till old age. Su Ruanruan did not speak. She ced her hands on his shoulders and kissed him lightly on tiptoe. Bao Jingyan kissed her back. Restrained, yet tender. ... On the way back, Su Ruanruan gazed at the ring between her fingers. She couldnt put it down. She asked him, "When did you order this?" "During the business trip! We started cold-warring as soon as I returned," Bao Jingyan said with one hand on the steering wheel and the other stroking his smooth chin on purpose. Su Ruanruans eyes sparkled. She admired the ring over and over, whispering, "There are so many eligibledies out there, many of them beautiful... Are you sure you want to marry me, Bao Jingyan?" Bao Jingyan sighed, "Youre being affected, Miss Su!" "I just want to be affected for a moment right now." She was in a good mood. Bao Jingyan was about to ask her where to have lunch, whether to return to the Gu Family... Su Ruanruans phone rang. She nced at it, a call from Su Yugu of the Su Family. Su Ruanruan lowered her gaze. Considering the time, it was about right. She answered the call. Su Yugu invited her to a meal, insisting that no matter what, she had toe back once the old man was discharged from the hospital. Su Ruanruan agreed. After hanging up, she turned to Bao Jingyan, "Ill make a trip to the Su Family." Bao Jingyan fell silent for a moment, "Need any help?" "Not for now." Su Ruanruan ced her hand over his, "When I need someone, I will say so." Bao Jingyan gave her hand a reassuring tap. He wanted her to be careful. As she stepped out of the car, Su Ruanruan took the initiative to kiss him. Her little mouth kissed his Adams apple, nting little kisses. Bao Jingyan was passionate. He stroked her long hair, murmuring softly, "Visit the olddy in the evening, alright?" Su Ruanruan quietly hummed in agreement. She got out of the car, and Old Zhaos vehicle was already waiting by the roadside to take her to the Su Family. Half an hourter, Su Ruanruan arrived at the Su Family home. As soon as she entered, she heard a tumult of noisy voices. Mixed with it was the sound of a womans crying... Chapter 285: What Man Doesn鈥檛 Cheat?

Chapter 285: Chapter 285: What Man Doesnt Cheat?

Su Ruanruan asked an old servant, "Who is causing a fuss?" The servant quietly told her, "Its the grand young masters wife." Su Ruanruan furrowed her brows. Su Minghuas wife? The old servant added, "The grand young master didnte homest night to sleep again. The grand young madam was unhappy! She smashed quite a few things early in the morning." Su Ruanruan took out five hundred-dor bills from her wallet and asked softly, "Does the grand young master have someone outside?" "Its not fixed! He just likes to y around!" The old servant seemed to understand very well. Su Ruanruan sent her away and stepped into the living room. Su Minghua and his wife had taken their fight from the second floor down to the first. Su Minghuas wife was called Wang Meiru. Usually very demure. But now she was disheveled, screaming like a madwoman, "Life like this is unbearable." Su Yugu and his wife were sitting in the living room. Su Yugu reprimanded his son, "Minghua, you dont want to live a good life anymore?" The Su Familys aunt, however, made excuses, "What man doesnt stray?" Su Minghuas wife turned pale. Her husband was cavorting with others, never home at night. And yet, in her mother-inws mouth, it was mentioned so casually. She had tolerated it for many years and made a fuss a few times; she was a bit tired. She slumped into her seat and said softly, "Lets divorce while we dont have children!" No sooner had she finished speaking than the Su Familys aunt mocked sharply, "Ha! Minghua has married you for several years and not a single child; you still have the face to mention divorce?" Her face was full of mean-spiritedness, "You can divorce, sure! But dont even think about taking anything with you." Su Minghuas wife trembled with anger, "When I married into the family, I brought a dowry of twenty million." "I didnt see it," the Su Familys aunt quibbled. Wang Meiru could only look towards Su Yugu, "Dad, that money was invested in Tongsheng Hospital back then." Su Yuguughed, "Meiru, isnt it good for the money to stay in the hospital? Besides, you and Minghua should really try to make it work." "Its unbearable now," Wang Meiru muttered, "He finds women outside, am I supposed to just keep tolerating it?" "Thats because you cant bear children," the Su Familys aunt sharply retorted. Wang Meiru covered her face and wept bitterly. Su Ruanruan timely interjected, "Whats going on with my sister-inw?" The Su Family members were taken aback. Amidst the turmoil in the house, no one noticed Su Ruanruan, the girl,ing over. Su Yugu immediately said, "Its just a husband and wife quarrel, its nothing." Pretending ignorance, Su Ruanruan addressed Su Minghua, "Big brother, you should really make it up to herter." Su Minghuas expression was a bit awkward. Wang Meirus mouth opened and closed, hesitant to speak. Now that Su Ruanruan was in a position of power, she wanted to ask her to uphold justice. But with no blood rtion to Su Ruanruan, even speaking up might not help. Seeing her struggle, Su Ruanruan pulled out a handkerchief to wipe her tears, "I finally came home for a meal, are you going to keep crying? Youll make me think youre not weing me." Wang Meiru hurriedly said, "How could that be?" Su Ruanruan smiled, "Then Ill take you to wash your face and put on makeup." Wang Meiru, caring about her own face, softly hummed an assent. Seeing Su Ruanruan soothe his wife, Su Minghua breathed a sigh of relief. He nced towards the stairs and only spoke when he saw no one was there, "Ruanruan is really something now, definitely has the presence of a wealthy daughter." The Su Familys aunt immediately said, "Exactly! Later well have to mention the matter of Qionglin to her." "Whats the rush!" Su Yugu gave her a sharp look, "She was raised by our Su Family! She owes us a great debt of gratitude! If we ask for a small favor, could she possibly refuse?" Chapter 286: Ruanruan, Help Me!

Chapter 286: Chapter 286: Ruanruan, Help Me!

Second Floor. Su Ruanruan was helping Wang Meiru, assisting her in washing and grooming. Wang Meiru felt aggrieved, and now being treated so tenderly, she couldnt help but burst into tears. She softly shared her ordeal. She and Su Ruanruan werent particrly close, and speaking out made her feel embarrassed. Su Ruanruan gently stroked her hair, speaking softly, "Do you really not want to continue with your husband?" Wang Meiru grabbed her hand tightly. "Ruanruan, do you have a way to help me?" She teared up again, "I know you are capable, please help me!" Su Ruanruan smiled lightly, "If you really dont want to continue, I indeed have a way." "I dont want to continue! Ruanruan, please help me." Wang Meiru was about to kneel. Su Ruanruan quickly helped her up. She looked into Wang Meirus eyes and said, "I can not only help you get back the 20 million, but also allow you to divorce with dignity. However, you need to be willing." Wang Meiru hurriedly said, "Theres nothing Im not willing to give up." Su Ruanruan wiped her tears, continuing, "From now on, continue acting as the grand young madam of the Su Family. If Su Minghua does anything, dont care or pretend you dont know." She asked, "Can you do it?" Wang Meirus face showed admiration, "I can do it." Su Ruanruan smiled gently. She led Wang Meiru downstairs. Wang Meiru regained her usual grace, without crying or fussing. Su Minghua then thanked Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan joked, "Big brother is behaving now, but perhaps tomorrow when a beauty is by his side, he might forget toe home again." "I absolutely wont!" Su Minghua swore by pointing to the sky. He didnt want to divorce. The two million had already been spent frivolously. Su Ruanruan pushed Wang Meiru over to sit next to Su Minghua, Wang Meiru disying the demeanor of a good wife. The aunt of the Su Family, wanting to say harsh words, had to keep her mouth shut. Now it was time for dinner, the old matriarch of the Su Family and Su Qionglin both came downstairs to the dining room. During the meal, the affair of Su Qionglin was naturally brought up by the Su family members. Su Ruanruan readily agreed, and the Gu Family would no longer suppress her. The aunt of the Su Family pressed further, "What about her and Ziqis matter?" Su Ruanruan smiled lightly, "This, I cannot help with! Bao Ziqi and Xia Minn are getting along very well." Su Qionglin was in disbelief. She proudly said, "That woman is like a block of wood, Ziqi wont fall for her." Su Ruanruan wisely remained silent. At this moment, Wang Meiru passed a chopstick of food to her sister-inw, softly stating, "Qionglin, happiness must be fought for! If you ask Ruanruan to help you, youll just feel ufortable once Ruanruan and Ziqi interact." Sheughed lightly, theugh was very gentle, "That would make it difficult for Ruanruan." This struck a chord with Su Qionglin. Indeed, her biggest enemy was Su Ruanruan. Xia Minn was not worth fearing. She regained her confidence. Su Ruanruan was cleared from being cornered, her gaze identally swept over Wang Meiru. Wang Meiru appeared as if basked in spring, lively in conversation. There was no hint of difort visible. Su Ruanruan thought to herself: She really is a great help. When Su Ruanruan was leaving the Su Family, she told Wang Meiru, "Wait for news! Dont act rashly." Wang Meiru nodded, "Ruanruan, Ill listen to you." Su Ruanruan knew she was tight on money and left her a check for one million. "A woman must maintain her dignity, dont demean yourself." With this, Wang Meiru was dead set on following Su Ruanruan. ... Su Ruanruan got into the car. Lao Zhao nced at the rearview mirror, "I couldnt tell that the grand young madam of the Su Family and you were so close." Su Ruanruan thought of Mrs. Sus harsh words, murmured, "Shes also a pitiful person." Lao Zhao smiled, "Miss Su has a kind heart." Su Ruanruan remained silent. She thought: She was about to meddle in someones marriage, how was that kind? She instructed Lao Zhao, "Go to Mrs. Mus ce, I have some affairs to handle!" Lao Zhao stepped on the elerator, turning a corner... Chapter 287: Bao Mingyuan鈥檚 Suspicion

Chapter 287: Chapter 287: Bao Mingyuans Suspicion

Su Ruanruan finished her business, and it was already evening. She took a car to the Bao Family. It was the weekend, and the Bao Family members were all present. Xia Minn also came over for dinner. While they were chatting, a ck sedan slowly pulled up to the parking lot. Old Zhao carefully shielded the roof with his body, helping Su Ruanruan out of the car. Su Ruanruan, in a light pink long dress, appeared even more delicate under the dim light. She gracefully approached the hall, with servants of the Bao Family respectfully addressing her as "Miss Su." The wife of the Bao Family felt ufortable. Xia Minn felt even more ufortable. With Su Ruanruans status in the Bao Family, Xia Minns life wouldnt be easy after marrying into the family. She cared about Su Ruanruan, but Su Ruanruan did not care about her. She scanned the room subtly and spotted Bao Jingyan sitting on a sofa in the back. He was flipping through a magazine with a casual air. Noticing her gaze, he looked up and gently smiled at her. Su Ruanruan felt her face grow hot and greeted the olddy, "It seems the olddys leg is no longer causing problems." Bao Jingyuan immediately retorted, "Then you dont need to stay at home anymore." "Jingyuan! How can you talk like that?" Bao Mingyuan was in a good mood and didnt scold her harshly. He looked at Su Ruanruan affectionately and said, "Ziqi has a concert next week! Your aunt ns to host a banquet afterward, Ruanruan, do you have any guests youd like to invite?" Su Ruanruan understood. It was a celebration banquet in name, but in reality, it was to announce the rtionship between Bao Ziqi and Xia Minn. She didnt want to attend such an asion. But upon second thought, it was the perfect opportunity. She softly spoke up, "My eldest and second brothers have a bit of an appreciation for the arts; Id like to invite them to listen to Ziqis concert." Bao Ziqi frowned. Su Minghua and Su Ruan? Before he could speak, the wife of the Bao Family rejected the idea, "Wouldnt it be inappropriate for the Su Family toe?" Su Ruanruan smiled faintly, "My eldest and second brothers are very understanding." The wife of the Bao Family wanted to oppose, but Bao Jingyuan hurriedly said, "I can vouch for them! The eldest and second brothers of the Su Family would never ruin the affair between brother and Minn." She was urging and begging, solely because she wanted to see Su Ruan. The wife of the Bao Family, hassled, could only agree. Su Ruanruan lowered her gaze and took a delicate sip from a small teacup. Between her slender fingers, a pink diamond sparkled brightly. Bao Jingyuan, filled with envy, asked, "Su Ruanruan, who gave you that?" With no more ties to Bao Ziqi, she openly replied, "My eldest brother gave it to me." Bao Jingyuan wanted to look at it. Su Ruanruan wouldnt let her. It was the first time Bao Jingyuan didnt make trouble for her: It was fine as long as it wasnt from Su Ruan. Only Bao Ziqi stared fixedly at the ring, looking uneasy. ... In a small courtyard. Su Ruanruan leaned on a soft couch, reading a book. Knowing that Bao Jingyan wasing, she didntpletely shut the door. Sure enough, he came over at eleven oclock. There was a slight scent of alcohol about him. Su Ruanruan poured him tea, "Why have you been drinking?" Bao Jingyan, however, pulled her into his arms and grumbled, "Earlier, you called him Ziqi?" "Are you really jealous over this?" Su Ruanruan said softly, "Well inevitably see each other in the future, should I always avoid him?" "Thats also true! After you be the big sister-inw, youll have to address him as Ziqi," Bao Jingyan joked. Su Ruanruans face became hot. Bao Jingyan let her go and then asked about the Su Familys matters. Su Ruanruan recounted the days events. Afterward, she felt somewhat worried. Bao Jingyan spoke leisurely, "For pleasure, men can do anything." Su Ruanruan was rather speechless. ... The next day. Bao Jingyuan personally wrote two invitations, ready to have someone deliver them to the Su Family. She was about to sneak away when Bao Mingyuan called her back. "Take out whats behind you." Reluctantly Bao Jingyuan showed it, moring, "These are for the guests Su Ruanruan wants to invite!" "You im to dislike her the most, yet now youre using her as a cover," Bao Mingyuan reprimanded his young daughter. Bao Jingyuan kicked at stones, "I dont!" Bao Mingyuan waved his hand, "Youve already written them, so why not deliver them?" Bao Jingyuan ran off quickly, fearful he might change his mind. Behind her, Bao Mingyuan was deep in thought. He suddenly remembered the pair ofdies slippers he had seen in Jingyans ce... He called Ruanruan, and a cellphone rang upstairs. But Jingyan, without a change of expression, went upstairs to answer a call. Those two kids... Bao Mingyuan suddenly broke into a cold sweat! Chapter 288: Let Him Experience the Dazzle of Wealth

Chapter 288: Chapter 288: Let Him Experience the Dazzle of Wealth

Early in the morning, the Su Family received a distinguished guest. Bao Jingyuan personally came to deliver the invitations. Su Yugu wasnt present, so Su Minghua and his wife weed the guest. Bao Jingyuans eyes darted around, "Where is Professor Su?" "He went to the academy of fine arts early this morning." Su Minghuas demeanor was amiable, "Is there something I can convey for you?" "Not at all necessary!" Bao Jingyuan dered with an air of confidence. She gently ced two invitations on the coffee table. Su Minghua picked them up for a closer look. My goodness, they were invitations to the Bao Familys celebration banquet. The main characters were Bao Ziqi and Xia Minn. Immediately, Su Minghua nced upstairs, and then said to Bao Jingyuan, "Qionglin will probably make a fuss if she finds out." Bao Jingyuan dismissed it, "Qionglin is outdated! I sincerely invite big brother Su and Professor Su to the concert." Chapter 289: The Wealthy Widow of My First Love, Whose Husband Died

Chapter 289: Chapter 289: The Wealthy Widow of My First Love, Whose Husband Died

Bao Ziqis celebration party. Celebrities were as abundant as clouds. Su Minghua went along with Su Ruan to attend. Su Minghua, being the Head of Surgery, barely qualified as an elite white-cor. However, such a morous and intoxicating scene was not something he often encountered. He gazed at the grandeur, fixating on those graceful, wealthydies. He couldnt look away. Just at that moment, Bao Jingyuan came over and took Su Ruan away. Left alone, Su Minghuas gaze grew even more unrestrained. Just then, a voice arose: "Big brother." Su Ruanruan stood by his side, a smile brimming with warmth. Su Minghua stared at Su Ruanruan. He was dazzled! She wore a dark-colored cocktail dress. The attireplimented her skin, her face as pure as white plum blossoms. Her waist was finely slim, her shoulders delicately soft. The formerly most inconspicuous sister, now shone the brightest amidst the celebrities. Su Minghua felt both envious and nostalgic. Su Ruanruan stayed close to him. She held a ss of red wine, chatting with him and introducing the guests of the banquet. Invisibly, she broadened Su Minghuaswork. Su Minghua felt this sister was sensible, far surpassing Qionglin multiple times over. The two were deeply engrossed in conversation when Mu Jiu approached. "Brother Jiu," Su Ruanruan stood elegantly. She introduced Su Minghua to Mu Jiu: "This is my big brother! Hes also the Head of Surgery at Tongsheng Hospital." Mu Jiu was impably mannered today. He shook hands with Su Minghua: "Ive always heard Ruanruan speak of you, admired you for a long time! Finally, I meet the big brother today." Mu Jiu was influential in Jiancheng. At this moment, he was treating him as an equal. Su Minghua was pleasantly surprised. He looked towards Ruanruan, deeply touched. Su Ruanruan, yfullytching onto his arm, said to Mu Jiu: "I introduced Brother Jiu, wont you introduce us to thedy by your side?" Mu Jiuughed heartily. He affectionately said: "Look, Brother Jiu almost forgot." Then, he gracefully introduced thedy apanying him: "Ms. Song Wei! From B city." He added: "Ms. Songs business in B city is really extensive." Song Wei smiled: "You tter me, Mu Jiu." She stepped forward and shook hands with Su Minghua generously. Su Minghua stared at this jewel-adorned young and beautiful woman, taken aback. "Song Wei! You are Song Wei?" "Su Minghua?" Thedy was also extremely surprised. Su Ruanruan, puzzled, asked: "Big brother, do you know each other?" Su Minghua stared at thedys face, utterly excited. Meanwhile, Song Wei covered her mouth and chuckled lightly: "Minghua and I were college ssmates." She openly said: "I didnt expect to meet you here." "Fate." Mu Jiu apuded softly. He leaned closer to Su Minghua, lowering his voice: "A widow! Worth billions." Su Minghua got a shock. Mu Jiu cheerfully said to Su Ruanruan: "Dont disturb your big brother catching up,ee, Brother Jiu will take you to see something fun." Su Ruanruan bit her lip: "I promised Mumu to keep an eye on you." "Youre siding with her now, arent you? Not listening to Brother Jiu?" ... As they talked, they gradually walked away. Su Minghua withdrew his gaze. He deeply looked at Song Wei. They were first loves, who had parted ways after graduation. Song Wei took the initiative, lightly asking as she held his arm: "Minghua, would you like to find a ce to catch up?" Su Minghua looked at her gorgeous features and her jewel-adorned splendor. She had a great figure. And she was unmarried. Unable to resist the temptation, Su Minghua followed Song Wei and left. Chapter 290: My Heart and Soul, I Would Die for You

Chapter 290: Chapter 290: My Heart and Soul, I Would Die for You

All was silent. Only Bao Ziqi had witnessed everything. He held a ss of red wine and walked toward Su Ruanruan. He gently called her name. Su Ruanruan turned around, her skirt swirling lightly. She looked innocent and beautiful. But Bao Ziqi knew it was just an appearance. Su Ruanruan harbored ill intentions. He pointed his chin in the direction Su Minghua had left and asked coldly, "What unspeakable things have you done again?" Su Ruanruan yed with a crystal tassel nearby. After a moment, she smiled lightly, "Are you intending to meddle in this?" Bao Ziqi clenched his teeth, "Of course not." He turned and left. Clearly angered. Su Ruanruan ignored him, holding her wine and mingling with the high-societydies. But she didnt stay long at the banquet, she left around ten oclock. In the hotel parking lot, Qin Chao personally helped her put on her coat. His old face was flushed, "Su Minghua went to the hotel with Song Wei. Lord Jiu has booked a private room, inviting Miss Su to join them." Su Ruanruan got into the car and said indifferently, "Just have him send me a video." Qin Chao nodded respectfully and closed the car door for her. The ck limousine slowly drove away. Su Ruanruan dialed Wang Meirus number. "Su Minghua wont be returning tonight! If nothing unexpected happens, he might even go on a trip for a few days." Wang Meiru nodded, "I will get his safes password as soon as possible." After hanging up the phone, Wang Meiru put on white gloves. She began to try the safes password. She had sided with Su Ruanruan. She wanted to reim what belonged to her and win back her dignity. ... Few days alone. Su Minghua felt like he was in heaven. Song Wei was enchanting and charming. In the bedchambers, Su Minghuas horizons were broadened. She had money and was generous. She never made Su Minghua spend a penny, paying for everything herself. She even bought Su Minghua a watch worth over two million. Su Minghua felt this was the life he wanted, and he was infatuated with her. In the luxurious hotel suite, Song Wei wore a silk robe, her neckline wide open. Her tea-colored wavy hair cascaded over her shoulders, teasingly exposed. Mature and sexy! She handed a ss of red wine to Su Minghua. Su Minghua took a sip and couldnt let go of Song Wei. "When will you give me a status?" Song Wei leaned against him, her delicate nails gently tracing on his arm. Her eyes were sly and seductive. But Su Minghua hesitated. Song Wei was beautiful, had a great figure, and was wealthy, but she had been widowed. It might be difficult to get approval from his family. He only hesitated briefly, which made Song Wei unhappy. She stood up, pulling her clothes together, and took adys cigarette from a cigarette case and lit it. She slowly exhaled a ring of smoke. Seductive and very stylish. Su Minghua couldnt bear to lose her, calling her endearingly and trying hard to please her. But Song Wei wasnt buying it, she coldlyughed, "So it seems you were just ying along and had no intention of being responsible?" Su Minghua felt helpless, "Baby, didnt we agree that night?" Song Wei stared at him with a cigarette in her hand. After a moment, a gleam appeared in her eyes. She gently wiped it away, very nonchntly, "Go back! I am not holding you back! Mr. Su, its not the first time youve abandoned me." Determined, she resisted all of Su Minghuas pleas. Su Minghua had no choice but to return to the country the next day. Those few days felt like a dream. Every night, Su Minghua missed her body. But Song Wei disappeared without a trace. Su Minghua was restless and made several mistakes at work. Su Yugu scolded him multiple times. Su Minghua, missing Song Wei terribly, secretly sought out Lord Mu Jiu to inquire about her. Lord Mu Jiu red, "I introduced you two to catch up, not to end up in bed! Doctor Su, what you are doing is disgraceful!" Chapter 291: I Don鈥檛 Believe You Haven鈥檛 Tried It

Chapter 291: Chapter 291: I Dont Believe You Havent Tried It

Mu Jiu chuckled after saying that. Su Minghuas face flushed with anxiety. At the same time, it stirred the instincts of a man. He let go of his pride to plead with Mu Jiu. Mu Jiu patted his trousers andughed dryly, "Is it really that interesting?" Su Minghua said to Mu Jiu, "It wasnt like this in the past! Song Wei seems like a changed person." Mu Jiu sympathized with him. He said, "In a couple of days, Song Wei wille to Jiang City to discuss business, Ill give you the address then." Mu Jiuughed again, "Whether she pays attention to you or not, thats up to your own skills." Su Minghua was extremely grateful. After he left. Su Ruanruan pushed the door open and sat down opposite Mu Jiu. She spread her tiny hands. Mu Jiu reclined on the sofa, smiling contentedly, "A girl like you, why would you need that kind of thing?" His eyes suddenly widened, "Dont tell me youre just curious? I dont believe you and Bao Jingyan havent tried it!" "Just tell me if youll give it or not," said Su Ruanruan, unfazed. Mu Jiu chin tilted up. Qin Chao handed a sealed envelope to Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan took it and bid her farewell. Mu Jiu was upset, "Its not easy for you toe here, why leave so soon?" "Sigh, Im saying... you have a share in this family business too, arent you going to inspect it?" Su Ruanruan waved to him. Mu Jiu spoke to Qin Chao with a bit of distaste, "She definitely took it to learn and practice those tricks." Just thinking about her mastering these techniques and using them all on Bao Jingyan Mu Jius heart ached like it was being cut by a knife! Qin Chao tried to console him, "Why dont you, Mu Jiu, find someone to distract you?" Mu Jiu wasnt in the mood. ... Su Ruanruan took the item and went downstairs. She told Old Zhao, "Please stop at the coffee shop ahead, Im meeting someone." Old Zhao confidently stepped on the gas. Within fifteen minutes, Su Ruanruan walked into the cafe. In a secluded corner, Mrs. Su Minghua was already waiting. "Big sister," Su Ruanruan said as she lifted her skirt and sat across from her. Wang Meiru found herself uncontrobly staring at her former sister-inw. Slender in stature. With a delicate oval face as pure as Song Xue and white plum blossoms, her brows and eyes had grown longer than before. Her entire being, as exquisite as carved ice and smooth jade. Wang Meiru could hardly believe that such a pure and pretty person could possess such great prowess. These days, she had witnessed Su Minghua losing his appetite and going crazy. Wang Meiru tightly grasped Su Ruanruans hand, quietly slipping her a note. "This is the password for Su Minghuas safe deposit box! But theres nothing important in the safe at home except some share certificates and jewelry," said Wang Meiru. Su Ruanruan looked down at the password. Wang Meiru added, "As for the materials on your second uncle, I think Su Yugu and his son must have stored them in the hospital." Su Ruanruan hummed lightly in response. Wang Meiru felt it wasnt enough, she wanted to do more! Su Ruanruan gently patted her hand and said, "No need to do anything else! Just wait for Su Minghua to initiate the divorce." She pondered for a moment, "You brought a dowry of 20 million, ask him for 30 million by that time." Wang Meirus voice trembled, "The Su Family members are so mean, would they be willing to give an extra 10 million?" Su Ruanruan sipped her coffee and smiled slightly, "By then, hes likely to be more than willing." Wang Meiru was tremendously excited. She straightened her clothes and smoothed her hair, leaving overjoyed. She believed in Ruanruans words. Su Ruanruan sat alone, slowly finishing her cup of coffee. Back in the car, Old Zhao asked her where to go. Bao Jingyan was on a business trip; she was supposed to return to the Gu Familys ce. But after pondering for a moment, Su Ruanruan opted to go to Bao Jingyans vi. Before it got dark, Su Ruanruan changed into homewear and helped Aunt Li cook. Aunt Li was very happy, yet pretended to shoo her away, "Youre here for big matters, whypete with an old woman like me for the kitchen job?" Su Ruanruan smiled lightly, "Im practicing so I can be filial to Aunt Li." She was lovable, and Aunt Li adored her as if she were her own daughter. The two chatted andughed together. At night, after taking a bath, Su Ruanruan came out in a slip dress. Suddenly, she remembered the USB drive she had taken from Mu Jiu, so she went to the study while drying her hair. Chapter 292 I Think About You Every Night

Chapter 292: Chapter 292 I Think About You Every Night

Bao Jingyans study room, Su Ruanruan could use at will. She opened herptop, and inserted the USB drive. In a moment, the screen came to life, apanied by stereo surround sound. Su Ruanruan blushed deeply. Who would have thought, Song Wei has such a good figure! Every inch of her expression was captivating. Su Ruanruan thought to herself, if she were a man, she would also die for Song Wei. After watching for half an hour, she closed herptop with a flushed face. But she forgot to take out that USB drive! ... At night, Su Ruanruan couldnt sleep. Those images of Song Wei and Su Minghua rooted in her mind. She thought about it thoroughly. She has been with Bao Jingyan for a long time, but she has never trulymitted. Sometimes, Bao Jingyan would sweet-talk her, saying that it was pleasurable. She never really believed it. But today, after seeing Song Weis demeanor, she believed it. * Three dayster. Su Minghua saw Song Wei again. Song Wei was talking business in the hotel lobby. She wore a ck tight woolen dress with a deep V-neckline. Under the contrast of ck, a stunning expanse of pale skin was revealed. Song Wei saw Su Minghua but pretended not to notice. She continued discussing business with a 50-year-old man opposite her until she gracefully stood up. They shook hands to say goodbye. Su Minghua immediately rushed over, "Song Wei." Song Wei looked down at her phone, responding nonchntly, "Why are you here?" Su Minghua urgently said, "Lets talk." Song Wei looked up, her gaze cold. Su Minghua thought it was hopeless and was about to try persuading her. Song Wei said, "Lets go upstairs to talk!" Su Minghua hurriedly picked up her coat and followed her into the elevator. He hadnt seen her for a long time and really wanted to be close to her. But Song Wei remained aloof. Once they reached her presidential suite, Song Wei still offered him a ss of red wine with the demeanor of hosting an old ssmate. Alone together, Su Minghua could no longer restrain himself. He embraced Song Wei from behind. His hands were very restless. The hands of a surgeon... Song Wei tilted her head back, somewhat overwhelmed. "Just now, that old man kept staring at you," Su Minghua whispered discontentedly in her ear. But Song Wei pushed him away. Her gaze was seductive, but her words were merciless. "Hes just a business partner! Besides, youre not my man, why do you care who looks at me!" Song Wei walked to the liquor cab and poured herself a ss of red wine. Su Minghua was rejected. His face flushed then paled. He asked her, "Do you really not cherish our past?" Song Wei gently swirled her wine ss, dismissively saying, "Back then my family was poor and your family looked down on me, I dont me you! But now, you still intend to toy with me." "I absolutely do not," Su Minghua insisted earnestly, as if he wished he could show her his heart. He boldly wrapped his arms around her waist, making tender derations, "I am sincere towards you! Youve been cold-hearted, I think about you every night." He grasped Song Weis hand, desperately proving it. Song Wei withdrew her hand. Her eyes captivatingly alluring, "The men who think of me nightly stretch from Jiang City to B City. If I paid attention to every one of them, I wouldnt do any business, right?" Su Minghua became anxious, "You shouldnt care about them." Song Wei stroked his chest, tenderly saying, "Theyre more considerate than you, and they can hold sway at home! Not like you, who only thinks about sleeping with me!" Su Minghua of course made more promises. Song Wei still remained cool and firm. When Su Minghua left, his heart was utterly chilled. He was well-born and of high standing, typically very sessful among women. However, he had suffered a setback with Song Wei, his old me. Leaving the hotel, he even thought of giving up. After all, when ites to pleasing women versus being pleased, the vast majority of men would choose thetter. Back home, Su Minghua was seething. Hey in bed, suffering from lovesickness. Wang Meiru knew it well. She sat at the dressing table, deliberately making small talk with him. This only made Su Minghua more frustrated; he had fallen out with Song Wei and it had been a long time since he went looking for other women, his body was restless. Thus, he reached for his wife, seeking marital intimacy. Chapter 293: No Hurry! He Can鈥檛 Escape

Chapter 293: Chapter 293: No Hurry! He Cant Escape

Wang Meiru despised him in her heart, but pretended to go along. After the event, Su Minghua felt even more empty. He went to take a shower. As the steam filled the air, he missed Song Wei terribly. He wished he could go find her immediately! In the bedroom. Wang Meiru leaned against the headboard, a cold sneer on her face. Su Minghua hadpletely lost his mind; the more he obsessed over Song Wei, the more pain he suffered, and the harder he would fallter on. Ruanruan really has some skills! She felt excited and vindicated, taking a cigarette from the box on the nightstand. She lit it and took a deep drag. Su Minghua came out wrapped in a towel, startled. But he did not stop her, merely saying while changing clothes: "Why have you started smoking?" Wang Meiru slowly exhaled rings of smoke, with a resigned attitude: "Since I cant bear children, it wont affect any kids anyway." Su Minghuas fingers paused. In the end, he didnt say anything. Feeling empty inside, he went out to mess around again. Wang Meiru grew anxious and called Su Ruanruan. "Su Minghua is out messing around again! Im worried hes giving up on Song Wei!" On the other end, Su Ruanruan was not in a hurry. She spoke softly: "No rush! Su Minghua cant escape." For he had seen the seductive charms of glitz and Song Wei. The greed of the Su Family, Ruanruan knew all too well. Wang Meiru hung up the phone, feeling reassured. ... Su Minghua messed around for several days. Initially, it was joyful. Butter, it became dull and tasteless. These women were no match for Song Wei. But Song Wei ignored him. Su Minghua, frustrated, went to a bar to drink. There, he unexpectedly encountered Song Wei. Song Wei was sitting with a very young and handsome man. She yed games with the man,ughing joyously when she won. Her voluptuous body asionally leaned against the man... Su Minghua just watched, drinking sullenly. He thought, is this the little boy toy shes picked up? Could this manpare to him? Su Minghua felt unwilling to let go and couldnt bear it. He found out from Mu Jiu that Song Wei was leaving Jiangcheng tomorrow. At that moment, Song Wei and the young man got up, her seductive body clinging to him. It looked as though they were heading back to the hotel. Su Minghua couldnt hold back anymore, and fueled by alcohol, he grabbed Song Weis hand. His eyes were bloodshot, filled with jealousy: "Youre taking him to your hotel?" Song Wei pulled away from him: "Doctor Su, show some respect." "When you were happy with me, why didnt you tell me to show some respect?" Su Minghua gritted his teeth and whispered. Song Weis eyes were somewhat red. She stayed silent. Her expression seemed somewhat wronged. At this point, the young man spoke with a smile: "Is this Doctor Su? Youve misunderstood, I am Song Weis cousin." Cousin? Su Minghua was both shocked and relieved. He apologized in a low voice. Song Wei pushed him away and walked out. Su Minghua paused for a moment, then hurriedly followed. By the time he reached the doorway, her driver had already driven the car away. Su Minghua pondered that she was leaving Jiangcheng tomorrow, and if he didnt seize the opportunity tonight, he would miss it. He took a taxi to her hotel and knocked open her room door. Song Wei, wearing a bathrobe, appeared. Her eyes faintly red. It looked like she had cried. Song Wei caught her by the shoulder and pushed her in, as he closed the door. He cautiously and gently asked her: "Why have you cried?" Song Wei tried to turn away, but he forcefully pulled her into his arms. She questioned: "What are you doing here again? Didnt you misunderstand me?" Su Minghua buried his head in her shoulder, intoxicated: "Song Wei, can we stop fighting?" Song Wei forcefully pushed him away. She walked over to the coffee table and threw down a stack of real estate deeds, securities, and a dozen luxury car keys. She stared into his eyes, a coldugh escaping her: "Su Minghua, I was thinking of sharing my wealth with you, wanting to be with you forever, but you treat me like a ything! Am I that cheap, Song Wei, that there are no other men in the world but you?" Chapter 294: Divorce! The Su Family鈥檚 Eyes Light Up at the Sight of Money

Chapter 294: Chapter 294: Divorce! The Su Familys Eyes Light Up at the Sight of Money

Su Minghua was utterly shaken. He had long heard from Mu Jiu that Song Wei had a huge fortune! But he never imagined that Song Wei would be willing to share it with him. He couldnt refuse this sincerity. He thought, even the strongest women need thefort of a man. He approached her and embraced her. Song Wei was not someone to be trifled with; she struggled and bit him as they tussled. She refused to be intimate with him. Su Minghua used some brute force... Afterwards, Song Wei softened in his arms. She wrapped her arms around his neck and whispered in his ear, "Do you really want to marry me?" Su Minghua said resolutely: "Ill tell her after a while." "Tell her tomorrow," Song Wei refused to let him touch her. Su Minghua couldnt stop himself, and in the heat of the moment, he agreed. Song Wei had seductive eyes; she propped herself up in front of him and started undressing. That night, Su Minghua gained some new experiences. ... The next morning. Su Ruanruan received a call asking her to return to the Su Family home. As soon as she arrived at the Su Family, the old servant who had benefittedst time quietly told her. "The eldest young master is causing a fuss about a divorce!" Su Ruanruan handed her five 100-yuan bills and gracefully walked into the Su Familys main hall. Just as she entered, she heard the old masters stern voice: "Minghua, its fine to fool around outside! But talking about bringing her home, thats disgraceful!" Su Yugu and the Su Familys aunt also disagreed. To know, Wang Meihe had brought a dowry of 20 million when she married. If they really divorced and went to court, the Su Family would have to cough up that money. Wang Meihe, too, was behaving out of character. She cried and refused to agree to leave. Su Minghua was standing there, utterly unsupported. Su Ruanruan hade home. He hurriedly went up to her and said to his youngest sister, "Ruanruan, youve met Song Wei too! Help your brother out and say something." Su Ruanruan gracefully took a seat. An old servant presented her with tea. Her status in the family was quite high; she could speak directly to the old master. Su Ruanruan said: "I did indeed meet Miss Song at a banquetst time." The old master shook his head: "I heard shes a widow." He did not agree with this marriage. The Su Familys sister-inw turned to Su Ruanruan, weeping, "Hes actually divorcing me for a widow! Ruanruan, you have to be the judge for me on this." Su Ruanruan took out a handkerchief to wipe her tears. Then, she said to the Su Family members: "I heard from Brother Jiu that this Miss Song is very cunning; big brother must have been bewitched by her." The Su Familys aunt said with a scornful face: "What kind of tricks? Shes just one of Minghuas cast-off women." Su Ruanruan smiled lightly: "Times have changed!" The Su Family members were taken aback. Su Ruanruan then said: "This Miss Song Wei had a stroke of luck and married a tycoon in City B! Even though her husband has passed away, he left her a vast fortune." She sipped her tea before continuing: "Brother Jiu says its as much as several tens of billions! Auntie, wouldnt you say thats a stupendous richness?" The Su Familys aunt was momentarily stunned. Her eyes glistened as she looked at her son. Minghua, to have such skill! To easily conquer such a wealthy woman! But she couldnt say such things in front of her daughter-inw. So she pretended to have a headache and sat down, holding her forehead, and said very troubled: "Minghua, youve caused a big disaster!" Su Minghua knew his mother well. Her attitude was about to take a turn. He looked at Su Ruanruan. He admired his sister to no end! Look, with just a few simple words, Ruanruan had turned the tide. Su Ruanruan remained seated, sipping tea. On the other hand, Wang Meiru was making a scene, refusing to divorce. The Su Family members shared a tacit understanding, exchanging nces and knowing each others intentions. Oh, a fortune of several tens of billions! What was Wang Meirus 20 million inparison? Utterly pitiful! Chapter 295 The Su Family Can鈥檛 Wait Any Longer

Chapter 295: Chapter 295 The Su Family Cant Wait Any Longer

The elders didnt find it convenient to speak, so Su Qionglin, the younger sister-inw, spoke up: "Actually, big brother and his wife have been arguing and fighting over the years, and their life together has not been good! Better to just split up cleanly." Wang Meiru feigned crying: "Qionglin, you are bullying me now." Su Qionglin scoffed: "Am I? Then what right do you have to take up space without contributing anything? Besides, Song Wei was big brothers first love; they have true feelings for each other!" At this point, Su Familys aunt added: "The most important point is the inability to bear children." Wang Meiru, with tears in her eyes, said: "Are you all forcing me to divorce?" When the conversation reached this point, the Su Family patriarch spoke up: "Since theres no love left, then return her 20 million in dowry! Better to break it off sooner rather thanter." Upon hearing this, Wang Meirus whole body trembled. What she had been longing for, the Su Family had agreed to so readily. She wanted to agree right away. Her lips quivered. Su Ruanruan covered her teacup with the lid. She spoke gently to Wang Meiru: "Sister-inw, you better think it through! Once you take this money, you will have no connection to the Su Family. If you have regretster and want more, that wont be possible." Wang Meirus body shook again. Previously, Ruanruan had told her to ask for 30 million. She did not dare to hope! Getting anything from the mouths of the Su Family was as hard as reaching the heavens! But at this moment, she looked up and saw Ruanruans smiling eyes Suddenly, she found the courage. The Su Familys sister-inw straightened her back and firmly spoke: "In addition to my dowry, I also demand apensation of 10 million." The Su Familys aunt was the first to shout out: "You have the nerve to ask forpensation when you cant have children! Minghua has never even spoken up! He has worked hard these years, if not meritoriously, at leastboriously!" Wang Meiru simply let go: "Fine, then we wont divorce! I just dont know if Ms. Song Wei has the patience to wait." The Su Familys aunt was a bit frantic. Why has this daughter-inw be so smart all of a sudden? But she didnt want to pay this 10 million. At this point, Su Ruanruan spoke softly: "I also think its not appropriate to give this money! It would seem as if our Su Family is eager to get a hold of Song Weis wealth, and thats why we are rushing to kick out our sister-inw." "Why not take it slowly through legal proceedings!" Su Ruanruan suggested: "This way, it will show our familys sincerity even more." The Su Familys aunt became anxious. Sincerity what? A woman in her thirties, a widow, can she endure? Dont wait until Minghua gets divorced, and she gets together with someone else! Thinking of that immense wealth falling into the hands of others, the Su Familys aunts heart wrenched. She passed the message to the Su Family patriarch: "Patriarch, you decide on this matter." The Su Family patriarch leaned on his cane as he stood up. He looked at Su Minghua and his wife, and asked solemnly: "Have you decided on the divorce?" Su Minghua was waiting for this moment, and he immediately made his intention clear. "My temperament does not match with Meirus." The Su Family patriarch nodded. He then asked Wang Meiru. Wang Meiru could hardly believe her ears. She quietly looked towards Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan was calm and collected, sipping her tea. Wang Meiru then put on a look of utter heartbreak: "If we cant be husband and wife, we shouldnt be enemies! I am willing to allow Minghua and Ms. Song to be together." The Su Family patriarch was very pleased: "You are a sensible child." He changed the topic: "I will make the decision on this matter. The 30 million wille out of my ount! But we need to put it down on paper to make it official." Su Ruanruan smiled slightly: "Patriarch has thought it through! Im also afraid sister-inw might have regrets." Upon hearing this, the Su Familys aunt quickly instructed someone to prepare the divorce agreement and the 30 million check. Chapter 296: She鈥檚 Actually Overjoyed About the Divorce!

Chapter 296: Chapter 296: Shes Actually Overjoyed About the Divorce!

The check and papers are ready. When Su Minghua signed, a sense of reluctance emerged. After all, they had been husband and wife for many years. Wang Meiru, on the other hand, was more resolute than him. Once she signed her name and grabbed the check, she hurried upstairs to pack her bags. Su Qionglin said with malice, "Ten million is way too cheap for her." The Su Family aunt also said, "With such a woman, she shouldnt have gotten another penny." The Su family patriarch and Su Yugu, maintaining their dignity, did not utter any excessivements. But presumably, they agreed. At this moment, the Su Family aunt earnestly told Su Ruanruan, "Now that Minghua is free again, Ruanruan, you must pay attention to his affair with Song Wei! I think, letting Mu Jiu y matchmaker would be most respectable and spare us idle talk from others." Su Ruanruan was gently brushing off the froth from her teacup lid. Hearing this, she delicately said, "The rtionship between big brother and Song Wei is one of love; theres no ce for idle gossip." She considered for a moment, "But marriage should proceed only when everything aligns." "Naturally! Of course," the Su Family aunt eagerly agreed, her tone dry. She stole a nce at Su Ruanruan. Inwardly she felt incredibly disgusted: This little bastard, shes turned everything upside down! But the more sessful she became, the more tightly the family had to guard that secret involving the second son. Should this little bastard find out, wouldnt she tear the Su Family apart? The Su Family aunt personally refilled Ruanruans tea, her voice softened, "Lets invite Miss Song to dine at our ce sometime soon; you and Mu Jiu shoulde too, to give our family some prestige." "That shouldnt be a problem!" Su Ruanruan agreed readily. The Su Family aunt exchanged a look with Su Yugu and others. This child Ruanruan was still so easily deceived. Just treat her a little nicer, and she softens right up, favoring her maternal family. * Upstairs. Wang Meihe was packing her clothing and delicate items, along with her valuable jewelry that she usually wore. With Su Minghua about to marry into a noble family, he didnt bother to quarrel with her over these things. He sat on the sofa, lighting a cigarette. Silently watching his ex-wife bustle about. He thought, at this moment her heart must be filled with immeasurable pain. He was willing to lend her a shred of warmth. Su Minghua called out her name: "Meiru, dont me me." Wang Meiru snapped her suitcase shut, then turned around. She was wearing a light blue dress, her figure was actually quite well-maintained. Only, she had been somewhat conservative in bed. Su Minghua thought sloppily. Upon regaining his senses, he said, "If you need help with something, feel free to call me." Wang Meiru lightly flicked her hair, smiling, "You agreeing to the divorce and willing to pay thirty million is already the greatest help. Minghua, I thank you." Saying this, she prepared to leave with her suitcase. Su Minghua still couldnt quite recover from his astonishment. He couldnt believe his ex-wife held not a trace of attachment towards him! Not just him, even the Su Family members downstairs were surprised to see Wang Meiru. They had fully expected Wang Meiru to be devastated. But the woman, carrying her luggage downstairs, seemed incredibly strong. Joyful and ted! The Su Family members were displeased at heart. It was Su Ruanruan who offered with a light smile, disying great grace, "If Sister Meihe doesnt have a ride arranged, Id be willing to give you a lift." Su Qionglin resting her head on her hand,ughed, "Ruanruan, you really know how to y the good guy now! One p, then offering a sweet date." Su Ruanruan smiled, "Since the Su Family has done something so unscrupulous, is it not allowed for me to make some amends?" The Su Family members had no retort. Indeed, they were blinded by money, and in pursuit of Miss Song Wei, they had driven away their daughter-inw. Wang Meihe spoke up, "Then, thank you, Ruanruan!" Su Ruanruan said goodbye to the Su Family members. The Su Family members appreciated her. In this matter, Ruanruan handled it well. Not only did she resolve the issue with Wang Meihe, but she also pacified her to prevent any future troubles for Minghua. Ruanruan was truly capable! ... Momentster, the two got into the car. As soon as the car started, Wang Meihe couldnt wait to express her thanks, "Ruanruan, I owe you big for this time!" Su Ruanruan patted her hand, softly saying, "Your fortune is yet toe!" After a moment of thought, she added, "In a few days, you will have another sum of moneying to you." Wang Meihe was stunned! Chapter 297 I watched it once! Well filmed!

Chapter 297: Chapter 297 I watched it once! Well filmed!

Wang Meihe wanted to ask but dared not to. She was over a decade older than Ruanruan but felt somewhat reverential towards her. Su Ruanruan said gently, "That sum of money can be consideredpensation for you." Wang Meihe was both shocked and ted. She sincerely expressed her gratitude again. Old Zhao up frontughed and said, "Our Miss Su said your good fortune lies ahead, and it must be true." Su Ruanruan gave him a nce, then asked Wang Meihe, "What are your ns going forward?" Wang Meihe paused, then whispered, "I always have to go back to my parental home." Su Ruanruan had heard about her family matters. She gently stroked the back of Wang Meihes hand, "You are an independent woman, and now you have money by your side! How can you let your father and brothers dictate your life again?" Wang Meihe looked intently at her. Su Ruanruan gave her some advice, "Buy two shops in Jiangcheng to collect rent, and with the remaining money, purchase a decent house in City B, hire a Filipino maid to take care of you! Then find a suitable job, and you wont live poorly in the future!" Wang Meihe remembered every word Su Ruanruan said. She didnt go back to her parental home but stayed in a hotel waiting for news from Su Ruanruan. ... After sending off Wang Meihe, Old Zhao drove the car back to the vi. The moment the car stopped, Su Ruanruan noticed that Bao Jingyans usual car was parked in the parking lot. She walked briskly into the hall and asked Aunt Lee, "Is Sir at home?" Aunt Lee smiled and said, "He just got back! Go up and have a look!" Su Ruanruan immediately headed upstairs. She hadnt seen Bao Jingyan for quite a few days and missed him dearly. Upon reaching the second floor, she lightened her steps. Finally, she found him in the study. Bao Jingyan was in a video conference; when she pushed the door and entered, he merely nced up and gestured for her to wait a moment. Su Ruanruan sat on a small sofa, holding up her skirt. She picked up a book to read. But her gaze involuntarily drifted towards Bao Jingyan. Days without seeing him, he seemed to have slimmed down. His light blue shirt and ck trousers, the expensive fabric wrapped around him like a sheath for a sharp de. His body radiated strength and beauty. For some reason, Su Ruanruan thought of that video between Song Wei and Su Minghua. Her face was burning hot. She dared not look at him any longer, pretending to read. Though Bao Jingyan was in his meeting, his nces towards her were frequent. His eyes held a warmth beyond the usual. ... Before dinner, he finished the meeting. Su Ruanruan put down the book and softly said, "Aunt Lees food should be ready." But the man walked straight over to her. He leaned in, ced a hand gently behind her head to pull her towards himself. His lips brushed her ear as he murmured, "What delicious dishes has Aunt Lee prepared?" Su Ruanruans voice trembled slightly, "I havent checked yet." Bao Jingyan let out a faint chuckle. He kissed from behind her ear to her cheek, then moved to her soft, tender lips... A passionate kiss! Su Ruanruan leaned against his shoulder like a delicate willow, sighing faintly. Bao Jingyan still clung to her reluctantly. His fingers traced her soft cheeks as he said hoarsely, "I got a bit of a surprise when I came back just now." Su Ruanruan was somewhat dazed. Bao Jingyan chuckled lightly, pulled her up and said, "Alright, lets eat!" Upon getting up, Su Ruanruans gaze lingered. She spotted a USB drive next to the notebook. That animated clip with Song Wei and Su Minghua. Her heart raced, face flushed as she exined, "I took the useful bits! Its not like I enjoy it personally." Bao Jingyan undid his cufflinks, descending the stairs leisurely. He said, "I watched it through once! Not bad filming!" Su Ruanruan bit her lip, utterly embarrassed. Bao Jingyan though, let her off the hook gently, and they ate together. He seemed to be very busy, heading back into the study after the meal. Su Ruanruan showered in the bedroom, then slowly applied her skincare products. After the full routine, Bao Jingyan still hadnt returned to the room. She couldnt help but wonder what he thought after seeing that video. In her head, Su Ruanruan reyed those scenes, especially the part where Song Wei served Su Minghua... She always thought no woman would willingly do such things, yet Song Wei seemed to enjoy it so much! Chapter 298: Bao Jingyan鈥檚 Six Senses Are Not Yet Pure

Chapter 298: Chapter 298: Bao Jingyans Six Senses Are Not Yet Pure

Late at night, Bao Jingyan returned from the study. He opened the bedroom door. Inside, it was dim, a faint scent of incense wafting gently into his nostrils. His heart softened, and he walked over to the bed, wanting to check on his little girl. But as soon as he approached, a warm, soft little thing burrowed into his arms. He embraced her fully. She acted as if she waspletely at his mercy. Bao Jingyans usually strong self-control was not enough! His voice hoarse, he said, "Im going to take a shower." Su Ruanruan blushed and let go of him. Bao Jingyan chuckled softly, and while unbuttoning his shirt, he headed towards the bathroom. When he came out, he was only wrapped in a bath towel around his waist. After so many days apart, something was bound to happen! Still, he had some regrets. She always cried and made a fuss, and he didnt know what to do. Bao Jingyan thought to himself that she was after all too young, inexperienced, and couldnt understand or enjoy some things yet. Entering the master bedroom, he thought about turning on the light. Su Ruanruan stopped him. "Dont..." Her voice trembled slightly, then shemanded him, "You, sit on the couch by the window." Bao Jingyan smiled. He walked over to sit down, about to light a cigarette. Then, a slender figure leaned against his leg, causing his hand to tremble. The moonlight was feeble, but he could vaguely see the gleam in her eyes. Next, without a word, she served him in a way that emted how Song Wei served Su Minghua... Bao Jingyan couldnt bear it, yet he couldnt resist. His youthful vigor overwhelmed his senses... Early the next morning. In the dining room. The atmosphere was somewhat different from usual. Su Ruanruan acted reserved, afraid that others might find out. Bao Jingyan found her even more adorable. After finishing the meal, he had to rush off to Di Jing, looking very busy. Su Ruanruan tied his tie, expertly done. She looked every part thedy of the house. Bao Jingyan caught her hand, whispering, "If youre free, go to Zhongjiang Academy of Fine Arts." Su Ruanruan was surprised, "I thought you didnt want me to see Second Brother." "Its all mine to worry about! Why would I mind him?" dered Bao Jingyan arrogantly. Su Ruanruan let go of his hand, "I knew you didnt have anything nice to say." Bao Jingyan patted her cheek, "Be good! Im off to thepany." He was busy, but Su Ruanruan didnt ask what he was busy with. She vaguely felt that it had something to do with Bao Mingyuan. The Bao Familys internal struggles never stopped. With Bao Jingyan upied, Su Ruanruan wasnt idle either. She went to the study, took the USB drive, and then went to Qin Chao. After giving him instructions, Qin Chaos face turned beet-red. Miss Su is so harsh! The Su Family must have dug up her ancestors graves! Su Ruanruan nced at him, "Cant do it?" She added, "This matter is confidential and affects Song Weis reputation; I trust only your character." His heart touched by her words, Qin Chao was moved. He was a man with a past, yet Miss Su still regarded him so highly! He promised on the spot, "Miss Su, dont worry! I assure you that aside from Su Minghua and Song Wei, no third person will see this USB drive. And I wont look either." Su Ruanruan took a sip of tea, her expression detached. Qin Chao thought: With her cold, celestial demeanor, Miss Su surely wouldnt pry. Poor Ninth Master, he misunderstood Miss Su! With his mission received, Qin Chao immediately set out to aplish it... ... These days, Su Minghua was livingfortably. Song Wei had endless tricks up his sleeve, and endless wealth to spare. Su Minghua finally understood what it meant not to toil for 30 years! He poured all his effort into pleasing Song Wei, hardly ever visiting the hospital. Su Yugu turned a blind eye His son was about to soar to great heights... One more day, and Song Wei would return to B city. Su Minghua came with a mission from the family. After some effort and sweet talk. Su Minghua turned to the woman beside him and said, "This morning, I signed the official papers with her! Song Wei, when shall we register our marriage?" Song Weis voice was seductive, "Are you really willing to part with her?" Chapter 299: A Man鈥檚 Mouth, a Liar鈥檚 Ghost!

Chapter 299: Chapter 299: A Mans Mouth, a Liars Ghost!

Song Wei asked like this. Su Minghua immediately confessed deeply: "From the beginning to the end, I only love you." "Mens mouths, deceiving ghosts!" Song Weiughed sweetly. Su Minghua became anxious and physically expressed his love. The two quickly tangled together. ... Afterwards, Su Minghua joyfully returned to the Su Family to announce the good news. Song Wei had agreed to his marriage proposal. The Su Family was about to marry a wealthy woman. For this, the Su Family specifically held a family meeting and even invited Su Ruanruan over. The people of the Su Family felt that matters of high society should definitely involve asking Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan came over. She wore a wool dress that reached her knees. Her long straight hair was tied up in a princess style. Graceful yet yful. She met the old servant in the yard again. The old servant still secretly informed her. "The eldest young master may be getting married again." This time, Su Ruanruan gave her ten one-hundred-dor bills. The old servant held the money, his old eyes watching Su Ruanruans departing figure. Then, he left without a fuss. As soon as Su Ruanruan entered the hall, she heard the aunts cheerful voice: "The wedding ring must not be shabby! Minghua, mom will pay for it." Su Qionglin instructed her mother, "Song Wei is ady of high status, you cant treat her like how we treated Wang Meiru before." "Of course," the aunt agreed very much. Just then, Su Ruanruan entered, and the aunt stared at the pink diamond on her finger. The aunt hesitated and said, "Ruanruan, you are now a wealthy youngdy, isnt such a small diamond ring somewhat unsuitable for your status?" She had no knowledge, but Su Qionglin did. Su Qionglin said with displeasure, "Mom, thats a pink diamond! Although its only around two carats, it costs several million." The aunt was shocked, "I had no idea it was so rare." "Thats nothing! Ruanruan also has a string of purple diamond bracelets that are extremely valuable, worth over a hundred million," Su Qionglin said with jealousy. The aunt quickly got an idea: "Ruanruan, you are young and dont need those things, unlike your sister Qionglin who always needs to maintain appearances." She was shameless, but Su Ruanruan didnt get angry. She sat down and softly said, "Once big brother marries Song Wei, what good things wont our family have?" The aunt was somewhat embarrassed. But she quickly cheered up. Right, once Minghua marries Song Wei, the Su Family will have endless wealth! The Su Family continued to discuss the wedding. nning to make a big celebration! Su Ruanruan kept smiling and contributed many decent ideas. When leaving, Su Minghua escorted her out. Thousands of thanks! Su Ruanruan stood in front of the car, smiling and asked, "Big brother genuinely has no lingering feelings for the former sister-inw?" Su Minghua was embarrassed. He said, "Its in the past, Ruanruan, dont mention it again in the future." Su Ruanruan then mentioned Song Wei, "Brother, after marrying Song Wei, live a good life and have a child soon so great-aunt can be at ease." At that moment, Su Minghuas expression turned slightly stiff. Very few people knew that Wang Meirus infertility was not her problem. It was Su Minghua... his viability was low. But how could the Su Family reveal such a matter? Seeing he was silent, Su Ruanruan coldly smiled. Su Minghua truly didnt deserve any sympathy. He couldnt father children yet pushed the me on his wife and didnt cherish her, messing around outside. Clearly, ending this marriage was the right choice. Su Ruanruan turned and got into the car. Su Minghua watched as two ck sedans left one after another, amazed at his younger cousins current style. The cell phone in his pocket rang. It was a call from Song Wei. Su Minghua answered, his tone gentle, "Have younded?" On the other end, Song Wei was cold: "Su Minghua, what a great job youve done!" Chapter 300: The Show Begins! Su Ruanruan鈥檚 Strategy

Chapter 300: Chapter 300: The Show Begins! Su Ruanruans Strategy

Su Minghua was stupefied. He quickly asked, "Baby, whats wrong?" Song Wei clenched her teeth and said, "Did you get someone to record those things between us?" Su Minghua swore to heaven, "I absolutely did not!" Song Wei fell silent for a moment, calming down. She said, "Ill handle it." After speaking, she hung up the phone. Su Minghua panicked, dialing phone calls one after another. Song Wei refused to answer. But after a while, she sent a video that made ones cheeks flush and heart race. The main characters were him and Song Wei. The location was inside a hotel suite, various ces. degrees, stereo surround sound. Su Minghua was stupefied. Who was it that was deliberately opposing him? What did they want? He called again. This time, Song Wei picked up. Her voice was hoarse with a hidden huskiness, clearly having cried. Song Wei said, "An anonymous caller said they want 50 million within a day, or else theyll make the video public! Su Minghua, I may be a widow but Im a person of status, if the video gets out I will have no face to live in this world!" Su Minghua was both anxious and filled with heartache. He wanted to speak, but Song Wei stopped him. She continued, "Ive thought it through! Were done! As for that thing, Ill handle it, at worst its just paying 50 million to resolve the disaster." She wanted to hang up again. Su Minghua hurriedly said, "Song Wei, dont rush! Ill handle it." "How will you handle it?" Song Wei sniffled softly, "I dont me you, I only me myself for getting in bed with you too easily and letting someone get ahold of handle on us." Su Minghua feared the wedding ns would fall through. He thought, if he didnte up with a proposal now, how could he face asking for her to reconcileter? Thus, he spoke up, "The 50 million, Ill figure out a way." "Really?" Song Weis tone became gentle. Su Minghua said tenderly, "This kind of matter, its inconvenient for a woman like you to step forward!" Song Wei then felt a bit of sweetness, "Minghua, you treat me so well." Listening to the soft voice on the phone, Su Minghua felt some passion as he said, "Ill settle things quickly and then go to City B to find you!" Song Wei made a sound of agreement. Su Minghua added, "The family is discussing our marriage, welle back together, okay?" Song Wei actually felt a bit shy. After hanging up the phone, Su Minghua thought to himself. Song Wei must have been taken by him. She may be rich, but end of the day she is still a woman, and when ites to trouble, she still has to rely on a man. His ambitions were lofty, and right away he went about borrowing the 50 million. Inside the family, he dared not speak of it. Such careless matters, if the old man knew, he would break his legs. Those friends he hung out with did have some spare cash, but after running around half the day, his sweet talking could only muster up around twenty million. Su Minghua was very troubled. Then he thought of his ex-wife Wang Meihe. Didnt Wang Meihe have 30 million in divorce money? Although it was quite shameful, Su Minghua still found a way to get his ex-wifes hotel room number and knocked on her door. Wang Meihe saw him. Su Minghua got straight to the point, requesting to borrow the 30 million for a short term. Wang Meihe poured him a ss of water and sat across from him. She did not utter a single harsh word to him, instead, she was gentle, "Minghua, its quite unfortunate, I have already used that money to buy two storefronts and paid a deposit for a house in City B, Im afraid I cant help you." "That fast?" Su Minghua was surprised. She was already preparing to move to City B? He thought again, she hasnt forgotten him! Afraid of evoking old feelings! The softer she was, the more Su Minghua found it hard to let go. He thought, he never knew she was so gentle before! Never mind, after he marries Song Wei, it wouldnt be difficult to give her a little help. When Song Wei was out on business trips, he could go stay overnight at his ex-wifes ce. ... After Su Minghua left, Wang Meihe became excited! Although she did not know why Su Minghua needed the money, she knew it was Su Ruanruans scheme. Su Minghua had fallenpletely into the trap! The Su Family, devoid of conscience,mitted unforgivable acts, their retribution was upon them... Chapter 301: Ruanruan Takes Back What Belongs to Her

Chapter 301: Chapter 301: Ruanruan Takes Back What Belongs to Her

Su Minghua was at his wits end. He sought out Su Ruanruan. He treated Su Ruanruan as one of his own andid bare the situation. In the cafe, Su Ruanruan gently stirred her coffee. She said, "Although I do have some money, it would be a bit difficult for me toe up with tens of millions all at once." She was very understanding, "Give me three days, and I will gather the money for Big Brother." Su Minghua was deeply touched. But as touched as he was, he needed the money today! Song Wei was still waiting for him there. A mans wallet cannot show weakness! He grabbed his little cousins hand, pleading urgently, "Ruanruan, think of another way! Big Brothers happiness depends on you now." Su Ruanruan bit her lip lightly, frowning in thought. Su Minghua kept his gaze fixed on her. After a moment, Su Ruanruans eyebrows rxed, "I have thought of a solution." Su Minghua was naturally anxious. Su Ruanruan said, "Im just afraid Big Brother might be reluctant to do it." "With the situation so urgent, what room is there for reluctance!" Su Minghua said with desperation. Su Ruanruans gaze shimmered as she said, "I remember Big Brother owns 10% of the shares of Tongsheng Hospital, which are worth over a billion. Why not use them in this emergency?" Su Minghuas mouth opened wide. He really dared not do it. Those shares had been secretly transferred to him after his second uncles death. If he sold them, Su Yugu would break his legs. Su Minghua hesitated. Su Ruanruan, understanding as always, said, "If Big Brother is worried about Uncles me, we can wait three more days! I think Song Wei is not unreasonable." But Su Minghua suddenly mustered courage. "Ruanruan, can you find a buyer for me?" Su Ruanruan smiled lightly, "Mu Jiu has always been interested in our familys hospital and is looking to invest." Su Minghua breathed a sigh of relief. If it was Mr. Mu Jiu, everything could be negotiated; they could tide over the crisis first and think of a way to redeem the sharester. Thus, with just one phone call from Su Ruanruan, Mr. Mu Jiu arrived with a cheque and awyer. Su Minghua also brought over the share certificate. A cheque in one hand, share transfer papers in the other. That 10%, just like that, was transferred into Mr. Mu Jius hands. Holding one billion two hundred million, Su Minghua left in a rush. He took a flight to City B. * Inside the cafe. Mr. Mu Jiu chuckled. He tapped Su Ruanruans head with the share certificate and said, "You little girl are even more unscrupulous than me!" Su Ruanruan looked down, smiling faintly. She wrote a cheque for one billion two hundred million to Mu Jiu. Mr. Mu Jiu, being forthright, filled out the share certificate with her name again. Afterpleting the transaction, Mr. Mu Jiu yfully teased the youngdy, "Want to go with Mu Jiu to the clubhouse for some fun? There are quite a few people there. How about you, the young boss, give them a bit of training?" Su Ruanruan declined, saying, "The people trained by Mu Jiu are one in ten thousand." Mu Jiu knew she was referring to the matter with Song Wei. He chuckled and leaned closer, "You saw that thing, didnt you? Back in the day, I taught him personally." "Shameless," Su Ruanruan red at him. Mr. Mu Jiu took no offense and swiftly made his exit. Su Ruanruan continued to sit there, drinking her coffee. Beside her, were the 10% shares of Tongsheng Hospital. Once, they belonged to Su Peiming. Now they were back in her hands! Su Ruanruan finished half a cup of her cold coffee and was about to leave. Suddenly, everything went dark. Bao Ziqi stood before her table. She looked up and watched him slowly sit down. Bao Ziqi picked up the share certificate in front of her, nced over it, and said sarcastically, "You acknowledge Mu Jiu as your brother just to collude with him in these sneaky tricks?" Su Ruanruan replied calmly and firmly, "Youre probably unaware that your mother also rallied Mu Jiu back then for this very reason." Bao Ziqis expression turned sour. After a moment, he gritted his teeth and asked, "What about Bao Jingyan? Are you with him for this too?" Su Ruanruan spoke softly, "If you didnt pay so much attention to Bao Jingyan, your life would be a lot easier." Her rtionship with Bao Jingyan required no exnation to outsiders. Chapter 302: Song Wei Proposes Marriage Checkup, Su Family Stunned!

Chapter 302: Chapter 302: Song Wei Proposes Marriage Checkup, Su Family Stunned!

Su Minghua had a few joyous days. Song Weis luxurious vi was extravagantlyvish! Song Wei was gentle and considerate, inventing endless ways to please. Su Minghua was utterly devoted to her. After a short gathering, he took Song Wei back to Jiangcheng. However, Su Minghua didnt know that the 50 million he gave to Song Wei had taken a detour into Wang Meihes pocket. Having received the huge fortune, Wang Meihe left Jiangcheng overnight. She bought a 175 square meter upscale t in City B, decorated in French style. Very dignified. Wang Meihe called Su Ruanruan, saying, "Ruanruan, if theres ever anything you need, I will make sure its done." She felt not only gratitude towards Su Ruanruan but also admiration. Su Ruanruan softly said, "Live well. Ill surelye to bother you when Im in City B." Wang Meihe hesitated, then asked softly, "Ruanruan, do you have someone else in your life?" Su Ruanruan didnt answer and gently hung up the phone. Wang Meihe thought to herself: Who could it be that has captivated Ruanruans heart? But no matter who it is, they must be an extraordinary person! ... The day Wang Meihe left Jiangcheng, the Su Family weed the distinguished guest, Song Wei. It wasnt Song Weis first visit to the Su Family. Thest time was ten years ago. Su Minghua had brought her home, and she was easily dismissed by the Su Family members. Because her family was poor and did not match the schrly Su Family. This time it was different when she came. Song Wei, like a generous benefactor, gave each servant a hefty red envelope of 10,000 yuan. Such a grand gesture deeply shook everyone in the Su Family. The aunt of the Su Family was warmly affectionate, calling her "Song Wei" again and again. She even partnered with Su Ruanruan to maintain appearances, elevating the Su Familys social status to match this distinguisheddy. Su Minghua and Song Wei sat side by side, fingers intertwined. Their love was evident. Su Ruanruan joked, "It looks like Ill soon have a new sister-inw!" Su Minghua gave his cousin a grateful look. Without Ruanruan, he wouldnt have his life today! Song Wei was also very sweet, saying, "Throughout these years, Minghua has been the only one in my heart. In the future, everything of mine will be shared with Minghua." The Su Family was ecstatic. A fortune of over a hundred billion was now within reach. Old Master Su couldnt stop saying, "Song Wei is a good girl." He surprisingly didnt mind her being a widow at all. In excitement, the Su Family members reached for their wallets, giving Song Wei weing gifts. Su Ruanruan roughly calctedadding up to over a million yuan. Song Wei epted them all. She was generous, proactively bringing up marriage. The Su Family members all perked up their ears, waiting for the next instruction from this distinguisheddy. Song Wei suggested with a light smile, "Since we are getting married, lets find a time for a pre-marital checkup!" She sweetly said, "Although Ive been married before and have no children. Now with the rxed three-child policy, Minghua and I want at least two." Her words stunned the Su Family. A pre-marital checkup? Wouldnt Minghuas secret health issues be exposed? Previously, when they could pin the issues on the naivet of Wang Meihe, but Song Wei was too shrewd to be so easily deceived! The aunt of the Su Family looked troubledly at Su Minghua. But Su Minghua was confident. Song Wei truly loved him and wouldnt mind if they couldnt have children. So, he said softly, "Adopting would be the same." Song Wei feigned ignorance, "Why should we adopt?" Resting her head on Su Minghuas shoulder, she sweetly said, "I want to bear the fruit of our love myself." The Su Family was collectively petrified! They looked at each other, speechless. Song Wei sensed something was off and tentatively asked, "Could it be that Minghua is infertile?" Chapter 303: It Turns Out that Su Minghua is the One Who Can鈥檛 Have Children

Chapter 303: Chapter 303: It Turns Out that Su Minghua is the One Who Cant Have Children

Duonians secret is finally spoken. The Su Familys faces turned ashen. Especially Su Minghua, he was extremely embarrassed. The first to react was Sus aunt, who forced a smile: "How could it be infertility! Minghua is being considerate of you, having children can change ones figure." Song Wei didnt believe her: "Then lets have a pre-marital check!" Sus aunt was out of excuses. Su Minghua said with difficulty: "Lets talk about this issue another day, its still early!" "How is it early?" Song Wei looked at him suspiciously. She suddenly stood up, raising her voice, "Is the Su Family deceiving me into marriage? Clearly infertile but tricking me into marriage, all for my wealth!" She looked at Su Minghua with heartbreaking eyes: "Minghua, I trusted you wrongly!" Su Minghua panicked: "Song Wei, listen to my exnation!" He meekly said that he didnt care about having descendants, thinking she also liked the world of just two. But Song Wei was resolute about wanting children! Seeing the marriage was about to be called off, Sus aunt couldnt help saying: "Even if Minghua is infertile, you are not perfect either! You have been married and widowed, we Su Family dont despise you." Su Qionglin also chimed in: "Exactly! Sister Song Wei, your standards are too high." Song Weis expressionpletely changed. She threw down the betrothal gifts, proudly saying: "If thats the case, then theres no need to continue talking." She scoffed, "Everyone talks about Wang Meihe being infertile, turns out the real infertile one is Minghua! Im sorry but I cant ept a family like the Su Family!" With that said, she turned around and left. The Su Family was anxious. This golden phoenix was flying away! They couldnt persuade Song Wei, and in the end, they had to seek help from Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan stepped forward, gently grabbed Song Weis arm, and said: "Wont you consider my face, or even Mu Jius?" Song Wei calmed down. "I naturally should respect Lord Mus face." She said to the Su Family: "This marriage can continue, but only if there is a marital health check!" The Su Family members collectively fell silent. Song Wei turned around and said to Su Ruanruan: "You see, I was deceived into marriage." Sus aunt openly ripped into her: "Calling it deception! I havent even mentioned how you deceived my son!" Then the Su Family realized that Song Wei didnt really want to marry Minghua! She came for revenge! Sus aunt looked at her son who was reluctant to part, and dered, "Fortunately, theres still Meihe waiting for you! Tomorrow, go and apologize to her! Haha, there are plenty of women who want to enter our Su Familys door, not all are incessantly demanding children!" She sneered again: "A widow, shamelessly bringing up children." Song Wei was not provoked; she smiled slightly: "Then I wish Minghua and his ex-wife a reconciliation." She stepped out of the Su Familys house. Su Minghua became anxious. He wanted to chase after her, but Su Ruanruan blocked him. She mediated in the middle: "Everyone is speaking out of anger! Ill talk to Uncle Mu, see if he can persuade Sister Song Wei." Sus aunt pointed at the doorway and cursed, "Let Lord Mu deal with her." Su Ruanruan lowered her gaze to hide her fragmented thoughts. She said goodbye and reached the doorway, Su Minghua caught up to her. He pleaded with Su Ruanruan: "Others might not know, but Ruanruan, you know how much I have put in! Please, please try to convince her." Su Ruanruan patted his arm, "My brothers matters are my matters." Su Minghua was deeply moved. He went back to persuade his mother. Su Ruanruan was about to get into the car. Behind her came a hoarse voice: "Miss Fourth." Chapter 304 Miss Su Knows How to be Considerate!

Chapter 304: Chapter 304 Miss Su Knows How to be Considerate!

Su Ruanruan turned around. Behind her was the old servant. The old servant looked around and then took out a medicine bottle from his bosom. The bottle was old and yellowed. "This is the medicine that Academician Su used in hisst days!" said the old servant. Su Ruanruan reached out to take it. The old servants eyes revealed greed: "Miss Fourth, just look and give is alright." Su Ruanruan pondered to herself. This old servant had appeared before her time and again, probably waiting for this very day. She took out a check for 500,000 from her wallet. The old servant snatched the check to verify its authenticity, and then smiled satisfied. "Miss Fourth is truly generous." He handed the medicine bottle to Su Ruanruan and added, "I swept this out of the masters study." Su Ruanruan, holding the medicine bottle, got into the car. Behind her. The old servant muttered to himself: "Ever since she was little, it was clear that Miss Fourth wasnt an ordinary person." ... In the car, Su Ruanruan studied the medicine bottle closely. After a long while. She took a trip to the researchb newly established by Zhou Zizhuo, asking him to analyze the remaining medicine in the bottle to see if any clues could be uncovered. Zhou Zizhuo said it would be best to pull up Su Peimings medical records to aid the research. Su Ruanruan was silent for a moment. She said, "Senior, give me a bit more time." Zhou Zizhuo patted her shoulder. When she stepped out of theb, it was already afternoon. The weather changed suddenly, from sunny to a dusty wind. Old Zhao came up with a coat to put on her, murmuring, "If you catch a cold, Jingyan will skin me." Su Ruanruan smiled: "Are you that afraid of Bao Jingyan?" "How could I not be?" Old Zhao wasnt too proud to admit: "Everyone in the Bao Family is afraid of him." He whispered: "Even the master is somewhat afraid of him." Su Ruanruan smiled faintly. She told Old Zhao, "After being busy all morning, you havent eaten yet! I will treat you to a five-star meal." Old Zhao was astonished: "How could I spend Miss Sus money!" Su Ruanruan red at him: "Not going?" "Going, going!" Old Zhao scratched his head: "Ive never had the honor to dine with someone as distinguished as Miss Su!" Su Ruanruan instructed him to drive the car to the hotel where Song Wei was staying. After the car stopped, she truly joined Old Zhao for a meal. After the meal, she took out several thousand yuan from her wallet for Old Zhao, "I wont need the car this afternoon! Take your wife out for coffee and maybe catch a movie." Old Zhao dared not ept it: "How can this be appropriate? Ive been eating and taking!" "Take it! Youve been working hard these days." Su Ruanruan ced the money in his hand: "Have fun." This time, Old Zhao took it dly. He called his wife over for coffee and a movie! His wife, for the first time, was in a Rolls-Royce of such ss. She told Old Zhao: "Miss Su knows how to care for people! You should serve her well in the future!" Old Zhao said: "Of course! Miss Su is young, and at our age, we could be her parents. If we dont look out for her, who will?" Mrs. Zhao covered her mouth andughed: "Dont fuss about it! Her real parents are Mr. and Mrs. Su." Old Zhao bragged confidently: "Miss Su is very respectful! She doesnt treat us like outsiders!" After a moment of thought, Mrs. Zhao also said: "In any case, serve Miss Su well from now on!" "Following the wifes orders!" Old Zhaos voice was filled with joy. ... On the other side, Su Ruanruan and Old Zhao parted ways. She went to meet a person. Song Wei. Inside the hotel suite, Su Ruanruan expressed her gratitude seriously. Song Wei lit a cigarette. She smiled and said: "I did this for my own satisfaction as well!" Chapter 305: I Don鈥檛 Want Status, Don鈥檛 Reject Me

Chapter 305: Chapter 305: I Dont Want Status, Dont Reject Me

Su Ruanruan quietly listened. Song Wei slowly exhaled a ring of smoke: "Back then, I cohabitated with Su Minghua and was discarded. My family wouldnt ept me. I fell sick and needed a lot of money, so I went to seek help from Su Minghua. But a month after he broke up with me, he already had a new girlfriend and wouldnt even meet me!" Su Ruanruan guessed: "Later you met Brother Jiu?" Song Wei gave her a nce, and smiled: "You think it was some earth-shattering romance?" Su Ruanruans face turned slightly red. Song Wei flicked the ash from her cigarette, her gaze misty: "My rtionship with Master Jiu was a transaction! He personally trained me, andter when I grew older, he introduced me to marry a tycoon in City B! However, that old man passed awayst year." Her words were simple, and Su Ruanruan felt it improper to probe further. "Its not something worth mentioning," Song Wei tossed her long hair, saying nonchntly. Su Ruanruan suddenly said softly, "You like Brother Jiu." Song Wei was stunned. Then, sheughed, "Little devil, trying to trick words out of me!" Su Ruanruan remained silent. She truly felt that Song Weis life had not been easy. She deserved happiness! Despite the events of those years, although young, she still retained memories. Song Wei was also quite emotional. She said, "Back then when I went to the Su Family, you were just this little. In a blink, youve grown into a youngdy! Anyway, Ruanruan, thank you for giving me this opportunity to take my revenge." Su Ruanruan bid her farewell. Song Wei watched the closed door, lost in thought. Tomorrow, she would head back to City B. Now, she wanted to see someone, but that person was avoiding her. Song Wei cornered Mu Jiu in the clubhouse. Mu Jiu poured her a ss of brandy, and they sat facing each other. "Heading back tomorrow?" Song Wei went to Mu Jiu, knelt beside him half-supplicating, and softly asked him, "Wont you ask me to stay?" Mu Jiu chuckled sheepishly. He gently patted her face, "Dont be silly! Youve finally made it ashore." "You despise me, dont you?" Song Wei ced her hand on his leg, "I dont need a title." With that, Mu Jiu straightforwardly spoke out. "Song Wei! I wont hide it from you, I cant marry you! But to have you like those other women is beneath you. Now you have money and status, its better you find a proper man and settle down." Having said that, he kindly pulled her up. He opened the door for her, saying, "What time is your flight tomorrow? Ill have Yan Kuan send you." His tall frame, however, was embraced by Song Wei. Song Wei murmured into his ear: "You are rejecting me because you like Ruanruan, arent you?" Master Jiu couldnt keep hisposure. He retorted dryly: "Whos the bastard saying that? Ill skin him!" "I figured it out myself!" Song Wei let go of him, flipping her long hair and giving a bitter smile. Previously, when she visited Jiang City, Master Jiu didnt mind getting intimate with her. But this time, Master Jiu was very proper. Even somewhat celibate. That meant there was someone in his heart. Song Wei was no fool; she quickly realized who upied Master Jius heart. Her articting of his feelings made Master Jiu sigh: "What use is being good to that little creature? Shes with someone else!" Song Wei had heard that Su Ruanruan was with Bao Jingyan. But as a woman, she was more observant. She had feelings for Master Jiu and was very willing to help him: "That girl might be in love, but I can tell shes still untouched!" The cigarette trembled between Master Jius fingers. His fingertips burned. He jumped up, shouting, "Song Wei, youre doing this on purpose!" Song Wei smiled lightly. Staying any longer would be meaningless. Thus, she gave herself respect, and also to Master Jiu. She said, "I have a flight at 9 tomorrow morning, have Yan Kuan pick me up at 7:30!" Master Jiu waved his hand, applying cooling oil to his hands. After Song Wei left, yet he tossed away the ointment, slumping into the leather seat. Master Jius mind was filled with Song Weis words. He couldnt believe that Su Ruanruan and Bao Jingyan had been sharing a bed for so long, yet nothing had transpired... Chapter 306: Who Usually Spends the Night with Jingyan?

Chapter 306: Chapter 306: Who Usually Spends the Night with Jingyan?

Su Ruanruan returned to the vi. Bao Jingyan was in the study, conducting a video conference. When she entered, he did not excuse himself. Su Ruanruan, who was proficient in English, overheard him discussing a business transfer. In that segment of conversation, "Dijing Group" was mentioned. She was shocked. What was Bao Jingyan trying to do? But she didnt ask; she merely took a book and sat silently on the couch, reading. Half an hourter, Bao Jingyan turned off hisptop. Su Ruanruan was still reading. Bao Jingyan then questioned her, "I heard old Zhao and his wife went on a date? You sure know how to please people!" Su Ruanruan put down the book and gave a shallow smile, "Hes been working hard recently; its a reward." "Did it go well?" Bao Jingyan lit a cigarette and gestured her over with a hook of his finger. Su Ruanruan obediently went to him. She sat sideways on hisp, so soft and pliant. With one arm around her waist, Bao Jingyan opened a drawer and took out a passbook, handing it to her. Su Ruanruan opened it and saw inside. There was as much as 2 billion in it. "You cant avoid spending money when doing things! Do not take money from the Gu Family." Bao Jingyan tapped her palm, "Otherwise, Uncle Gu might think I cannot afford to keep a wife." Su Ruanruan flipped through the passbook, her face reddening. She said, "I am not your wife yet!" "Having slept in my bed and worn a diamond ring, yet not a wife?" Bao Jingyans voice was somewhat hoarse. Fearful that he might start thinking about those matters again, Ruanruan hastily said, "I was thinking of going back for a short stay." Bao Jingyan, also busytely, agreed. How timely! The next morning, just after Su Ruanruan had left, Bao Mingyuan arrived. In the courtyard, old Zhao was whistling while washing the car. Bao Mingyuans car stopped. Old Zhao hurriedly came forward to open the car door, "Sir, youve arrived! Young Master Jingyan just left." Bao Mingyuan was dressed in a grey shirt and trousers of the same color scheme, covered by a ck thin overcoat. Mature and striking. He nced at old Zhao and said, "Im not here to see Jingyan; I came for you." Old Zhaos heart skipped a beat. He yed dumb, "Did I do something wrong?" Bao Mingyuan sat down on the hall sofa. He patted his trousers, "Old Zhao, youve also been around for many years! Its time for a promotion." Old Zhao smiled, "Im just a simple driver, I dont have any ambition." Right then, Aunt Li came from somewhere, offering a cup of tea. Bao Mingyuan did not move, signaling for her to leave. As Aunt Li left, she cast a nce at old Zhao. Old Zhao vaguely understood. The master was offering him a benefit to betray Young Master Jingyan! Sure enough, Bao Mingyuan spoke, "Thepanys fleet is short of a captain! The annual sry is about 300,000, are you not interested in the position?" Old Zhao agreed at once, "Then thank you, sir." Bao Mingyuan yed with the lid of the tea cup, lightly scraping the froth of the tea leaves. He asked casually, "By the way, who does Jingyan usually associate with? I mean the females." Old Zhao chuckled dryly, "Why would I know about the masters private matters?" Bao Mingyuan nced in the direction of the second floor. He directly got to the point, "Usually, who do you bring here to stay overnight?" Old Zhaoughed ambiguously, "Thats hard to say! There have been so many, I hardly remember clearly." Bao Mingyuan was angered. He stood up, saying, "Alright, you might as well stay here with Jingyan!" Old Zhao saw him out, "Have a safe trip, sir!" Bao Mingyuans car door mmed shut! Clearly annoyed. Old Zhao watched the ck sedan leave, chuckling to himself. Just yesterday, he said he would diligently work for Miss Su, and today the opportunity hade! He dialed Su Ruanruans phone, informing her of Bao Mingyuans visit. Su Ruanruan said softly, "I know, dont tell Bao Jingyan about this for now." Although old Zhao was puzzled, he nodded and agreed. Chapter 307: Mu Jiu Grandly Courts Favor

Chapter 307: Chapter 307: Mu Jiu Grandly Courts Favor

Su Ruanruan hung up the phone. Pensive. Gu Jiarou ran over with three opera tickets, her face full of excitement: "Ruanruan, guess what these are?" Su Ruanruan took a look. To her surprise, these were tickets to a master of operas performance. The master was only singing two shows in Jiangcheng. The tickets were hard to get. And what Gu Jiarou held were box seats! Su Ruanruan was pleasantly surprised. She asked with a light voice, "Where did you get these from?" Gu Jiarou yed coy: "Just tell me if youre going or not?" "Of course Im going." Su Ruanruan held the tickets with great interest: "Ive always wanted to see this!" There were three tickets. As Mrs. Gu was also an opera aficionado, the trio changed their attire and headed to Jiangcheng Theater at four in the afternoon. When they reached the small second-floor box, They found it was filled with familiar faces. Bao Ziqi was apanying Madame Bao and Xia Minn to listen to the opera. Bao Jingyuan was there too! Seeing the Gu family trio, the Bao family members were quite surprised. Especially Bao Ziqi, who stared at Su Ruanruan for over ten seconds. She wore a thin ck wool dress. With a fine V-cut at the back, adorned with a row of delicate pearls. Her long hair was styled up, revealing her fair neck. Tender and quite lovely. Xia Minn felt a slight displeasure beside him. So did Madame Bao, seeing Su Ruanruan her mood dipped slightly. But she forced a strained smile on her face despite it: "What a coincidence!" Mrs. Gu was indifferent. She beckoned Su Ruanruan and Gu Jiarou to sit by her side. Mrs. Gu, fanning herself, pointed to the beautifully arranged stage: "Do you see? Such a spectacle could only be organized by Boss Yan!" Su Ruanruan responded with a shallow smile: "Nowadays, everyone is learning Western instruments and American singing styles, its rare to see our traditional culture being passed down! Boss Yan is quite a catch." Xia Minns voice was neutral but edged: "Miss Sus words seem to imply criticism towards those studying Western instruments for not passing down our traditional culture!" She looked towards Bao Ziqi by her side. Bao Ziqi clenched his jaw. Women are jealous and prone to stirring trouble. Su Ruanruan did not take offense. She spoke softly in apology: "If there was anything amiss in my words, I hope Miss Xia will forgive me." Xia Minn, wanting to create a difficulty, couldnt continue her reproach! Having been put at a disadvantage, Madame Bao wouldnt just stand by. She whispered orders: "Ziqi, go buy some snacks! Remember that Minn is on her period, dont buy her anything chilled." It was a subtle show of power. Mrs. Gu was unconcerned. She sent the two young maids to make their own purchases, but then a low, husky voice sounded from outside: "Is the seating to your liking?" The curtain was lifted. Mu Jiu entered. In his hands, he carried a sizable box, bearing the logo of a certain five-star hotel. Mu Jiu took out the contents one by one. "This is Aunt Gus favorite! This is what little miss Jiarou likes." Lastly, Mu Jiu presented Su Ruanruans favorite wine-marinated plums with a very tender voice: "You like sour stuff but must also moderate to avoid stomach aches!" After saying this, his eyes fixed unwaveringly on Su Ruanruan. It took a moment before he cracked a broad smile: "Ruanruan, you look really good in that outfit!" His attentiveness was obvious, and the Bao family members looked displeased! Especially Xia Minn. Compared to Mu Jius dog-like fussing, Bao Ziqis standoffishness made one want to cry. But Gu Jiarou just popped a fruit into her mouth without a care. She said carelessly: "I say, Mu Qun, why are you acting so strange today? Youre going to make people think you want to be our Gu familys live-in son-inw." Mu Jiu sat next to Su Ruanruan, coughed lightly: "Is that such a bad proposition?" Gu Jiarou, speaking hastily, almost brought up Bao Jingyan. By this time, what was unclear to Mrs. Gu? These tickets were Mu Jius doing. Mu Jiu still had those feelings for Ruanruan, so Mrs. Gu said softly: "Boss Yan is about to go on stage." Chapter 308: Jiuge, I Can鈥檛 Delay You

Chapter 308: Chapter 308: Jiuge, I Cant Dy You

Everyone fell silent. They were all attentively admiring Boss Yans grace. Only two people werent. One was Mu Jiu. The other was Bao Ziqi. Mu Jiu was openly staring at Su Ruanruans face,pletely indifferent to the stage performance. Bao Ziqis peripheral vision remained fixed on Su Ruanruan. He thought to himself: She can be so close to Mu Jiu, yet she avoids me at all costs! What kind of logic is that? He was angry in his heart and had no desire to talk to her much. The y was halfway through. Su Ruanruan whispered to Mrs. Gu, "Mom, Im going to the restroom." Gu Jiarou immediately stood up, "Ill apany Ruanruan." But Mrs. Gu said, "Jiarou, you sit down and enjoy the y." Gu Jiarou scratched her head, puzzled. Mrs. Gu did not exin. Su Ruanruan stood up and gracefully made her way to the restroom. She had only walked a little when Mu Jiu followed her. He didnt avoid it at all! Bao Ziqi clenched his fingers. ... At a deste corner. Su Ruanruan stood there quietly. Mu Jiu, seeing her, slowed his steps. When he approached, Su Ruanruan smiled lightly, "Brother Jiu." Mu Jiu looked down at her and asked softly, "Brother Jiu, is there still a chance?" Worried she might misunderstand, he exined: "Im not an old fuddy-duddy! I just think if you havent decided to be with Bao Jingyan, then you havent thought it through." Then he, might still have a chance. Su Ruanruan spoke softly to him, "Brother Jiu, Ive thought it through." Mu Jiu felt a pang of pain in his heart. But as if indifferent, he said, "Brother Jiu can try to wait a bit longer." But Su Ruanruan had other thoughts. Mu Jiu was already thirty; she couldnt hold him back. Su Ruanruan gently said, "I want to take care of Mother Mu together with Brother Jiu." Mu Jiu felt a wave of disappointment. But his feelings for Su Ruanruan were more than just romantic; he didnt want her to feel sad, so he changed the topic, "Werent you going to the restroom? Brother Jiu will wait here for you." He touched his chin, murmuring to himself, "There are so many perverts nowadays! And you look so beautiful." Su Ruanruanughed. Showing her small teeth. Very adorable. Mu Jiu couldnt help but touch her hair, saying, "Bao Jingyan is indeed lucky." After saying that, he waved his hand in a disgusted manner! Su Ruanruan visited the restroom and returned, walking shoulder to shoulder with Mu Jiu. As they lifted the curtain, Mrs. Gu nced at them. No expression. At the Bao Familys side, Bao Jingyuan whispered to Bao Ziqi, "Su Ruanruan really has some skill,pletely enchanting Mu Jiu." Bao Ziqi stuffed an apple into her mouth. As the y was about to end. Bao Mingyuan arrived. Mrs. Bao was both shocked and delighted. "Mingyuan," she called his name cheerfully. Bao Mingyuan, with a special status, naturally prompted several juniors present to stand and greet him. Even Mu Jiu greeted him. Bao Mingyuan nced around, his eyes finally resting on Su Ruanruans face. He was very gentle, "Ruanruan is here too! This morning, grandma was still talking about you visiting." Su Ruanruan responded, "Ill visit grandma tomorrow." Bao Mingyuan smiled faintly and said no more. At this moment, the theater manager approached. He said, "Boss Yan heard distinguished guests have arrived, please wait a moment! Boss Yan wille to reminisce after changing." Bao Jingyuan immediately said, "He must know dad hase, wanting towork." Mrs. Bao hastily said, "Boss Yan is a significant figure! Very noble, Jingyuan, dont say such things from now on." But in her heart, she also thought the same. Her husband was the wealthiest man in the city. It was only normal for Boss Yan to lower his status. They bantered like that, And the theater manager just smiled slightly. He said to Mrs. Gus group, "Mrs. Gu, please have a seat as well." Mrs. Gu, gently fanning herself, spoke appropriately, "I have always wanted to meet Boss Yan but never got the opportunity." "ttery, madam," the manager bowed. Before leaving, his gaze fell on Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan smiled and nodded. Mu Jiu said, "So corny! Luckily you didnt end up with me, or I would feel suffocated every day." Inside the box, it suddenly became quiet as the graveyard! About ten minutester, light footsteps could be heard outside. Boss Yan lifted the curtain and entered. He was dressed in a dark long gown, with a slicked-back hairstyle. Thin but very good-looking. Mrs. Bao put on a reserved expression. Even Bao Mingyuan prepared to be attended to by an artist. But to their surprise, Boss Yan immediately addressed Su Ruanruan upon entering, "Ruanruan, do you still remember uncle?" Chapter 309: Outside the Car, It鈥檚 Bao Mingyuan!

Chapter 309: Chapter 309: Outside the Car, Its Bao Mingyuan!

Upon hearing this, everyone was stunned. Boss Yan knows Su Ruanruan? His esteemed guest turns out to be Su Ruanruan! Compared to their surprise, Su Ruanruan was very calm. She lightly called out: "Hello, Uncle Qing." Then Boss Yan smiled. He was born handsome, and his gentle smile was indeed the most charming. He reached out to measure and said, "Havent seen you for years, youve grown this tall." Su Ruanruan also smiled lightly: "Its been years since Ive listened to Uncle Qings performance, even better than before." "Youve grown into a tterer!" Boss Yan spoke with her very amicably. After chatting idly for a bit, Su Ruanruan introduced the several groups of people in the box to Yan Qing. Being an artist, he seemed quite indifferent to riches and honors. He was warmest towards Mrs. Gu, and indifferent towards the rest. Simply because she was Su Ruanruans biological mother. However, Mu Jiu didnt want to be outdone and also called him Uncle Qing. Gu Jiarou rolled her eyes: "Boss Yan is just over forty, how old are you now, and you still have the nerve to call him uncle?" Mu Jiu made a motion to hit her: "You little girl, why are you always against me?" Mrs. Guughed lightly: "Howe you two sound like a bickering couple?" Gu Jiarou blushed, turned her head, and ran off: "Who is a bickering couple with him?" Mu Jiu: ... Su Ruanruan spoke up: "Mom, there are some things I want to ask Uncle Qing." She then said to Mu Jiu: "Could you please take my mom home, Ninth Brother?" Mu Jiu agreed readily. Su Ruanruan nodded to the Bao Family, then followed Boss Yan backstage. The crowd gradually dispersed. Mrs. Bao felt unpleasant: "I never expected that Ruanruan would have friends all over the world! Even someone like Boss Yan, she knows!" Bao Mingyuan did not speak. Mrs. Bao thought he was unhappy. After all, he had been neglected by Boss Yan! ... Teahouse. Thest wisp of sandalwood incense burnt out. Dawn broke in the sky. Su Ruanruan and Yan Qing had been talking all night. Her father, Su Peiming, was a close friend of Yan Qing, and she missed her father, eager to hear Boss Yan talk about him. Boss Yan stretchedzily, saying: "Its already light out, yet this kid doesnt sleep." He stood up briskly: "Ill take you home! Ill be in Jiangcheng these few days; well get together for a meal another day." Su Ruanruan nodded. She said: "Our family driver is waiting downstairs, Ill walk you out, Uncle Qing." Yan Qing waved his hand: "The hotel is just diagonally across! Ill walk back by myself." Su Ruanruan didnt insist. She watched Boss Yan leave, then turned to get into Old Zhaos car. But the moment she opened the car door, her gaze froze. Bao Mingyuan was sitting in the back seat. His expression was calm. Yet there was a hint of restlessness. Su Ruanruan didnt move for a while, then he opened his eyes: "Why do you look at me like youve seen a tiger or some fierce beast?" After pondering for a while, Su Ruanruan still got into the car. Old Zhao in the front seat was shivering. Early in the morning he hade to pick up Miss Su, and Sir popped up out of nowhere into his car. Bao Mingyuan then said: "Old Zhao, you head home first!" Old Zhao hesitated. Su Ruanruan softly said: "Do as Uncle Bao says." Old Zhao trembled and shakily got out of the car. Bao Mingyuan turned to Su Ruanruan: "Youre quite forthright." Su Ruanruan gave a faint smile and didnt say much. Bao Mingyuan got out of the car, walked around to the drivers seat, fastened the seatbelt, and tapped the steering wheel: "Come to the front, I have something to talk to you about." Su Ruanruan had no choice but to get out of the car. And sit next to him. However, Bao Mingyuan didnt start the car immediately but lit a cigarette. He asked, "Going to the Gu Family, or to Jingyans ce?" Chapter 310: Everyone Slept Already, How to Divide?

Chapter 310: Chapter 310: Everyone Slept Already, How to Divide?

Su Ruanruans body shivered. "Scared?" Bao Mingyuan took a harsh drag on his cigarette. He said vulgarly, "You two got together right under my nose, how did you have the courage then?" Su Ruanruan whispered an apology. Bao Mingyuan sneered, "It seems you have no intention of turning back, right?" Su Ruanruan did not deny it. Bao Mingyuans eyebrows twitched with anger! This was a child he greatly admired; he always hoped she would end up with Ziqi, or at least see her as his own daughter. He would nurture and care for her! But now, she had gotten involved with his eldest son. How could this be allowed? The entire Jiangcheng knew she had kept watch over Ziqis room; what would people think if she married Jingyan now? How could he face Ziqi? Ziqi had always liked this girl! Bao Mingyuan hardened his heart and said, "Break up! Break up immediately!" Su Ruanruan bit her lip, just about to speak... The car door was opened! Bao Jingyan was outside the car. Dressed in a light blue shirt and a fine coffee-colored tie. Over it, a gray thin coat. His eyes carried a hint of moroseness. He didnt bother with Bao Mingyuan but tenderly said to Su Ruanruan, "Come to my car first." After saying that, he reached out to help her unbuckle her seatbelt. He half-carried her into his car. Su Ruanruans body was still trembling, and she grasped his arm. "Bao Jingyan!" "Sit here quietly," he stroked her face gently, "Ill talk to him." Then he closed the car door for her. Bao Jingyan sat next to Bao Mingyuan. Bao Mingyuan was still smoking. Hearing the car door m shut, and then someone sitting beside him, He mocked, "Have you pacified her?" "Didnt you see for yourself?" Bao Jingyan countered. Bao Mingyuan turned to look at his eldest son. From a young age, he had been outstanding and independent. He never had to worry about him. Unexpectedly, it was love that eventually made things difficult for him. "I do not agree!" Bao Mingyuan cut to the chase, "It doesnt sound good that Ruanruan kept watch over Ziqis room. While not many people know yet, break it off immediately!" "We cant break up now," Bao Jingyan straightforwardly responded. Bao Mingyuans eyebrows twitched with irritation, "How can you not break up? You havent even registered for marriage!" "Weve already slept together, how can we break up?" Bao Jingyan took a cigarette from the glovepartment and lit it while he calmly spoke. Bao Mingyuan red at him. Bao Jingyan, with his slender fingers holding the cigarette, flicked it. "Strange, isnt it?" Bao Jingyan uttered infuriatingly, "Im perfectly healthy!" "Shes only 18 years old!" Bao Mingyuans forehead veins throbbed, "Jingyan, if not for your reputation, think about her health! Stop being selfish!" He was rarely this angry, "Youre corrupting a young girl!" He trembled with rage, "How long has it been? How long have you been with her, sleeping together?" Bao Jingyan casually said, "Anyway, its been longer than you think! By the way, Ziqi has known for a while." Bao Mingyuan was shocked! Ziqi knew too? "Among the family, other than him, youre the first to know," Bao Jingyan added. Bao Mingyuan mocked, "Should I feel honored then?" "What else?" Bao Jingyan retorted, "Do you think Ruanruan is my disgrace?" Bao Mingyuan was speechless. He wanted to bring up the olddy, to bring up keeping watch But he also knew that was absurd! Finally, he said to Bao Jingyan, "Let the girle here, I have something to tell her." Bao Jingyan didnt move. Bao Mingyuan, infuriated, eximed, "Would I harm her? After all, she calls me Uncle Bao!" Chapter 311 Bao Mingyuan鈥檚 Fatherly Love is as Great as a Mountain

Chapter 311: Chapter 311 Bao Mingyuans Fatherly Love is as Great as a Mountain

"Not necessarily!" Bao Jingyan leisurely finished his cigarette, then rolled down the car window to air it out. He said to Bao Mingyuan, "Put out your cigarette, Ruanruan doesnt like secondhand smoke!" Bao Mingyuans voice was cold, "Dont think I agree with your messed-up affair!" His words were harsh, but his body honest. He stubbed out the cigarette in his hand. Bao Jingyan exited the car. Thatzy yet slightly arrogant demeanor irritated Bao Mingyuan. This bastard, was this how he tricked Ruanruan? ... Bao Jingyan walked to his car. He opened the door, bent down. And made eye contact with Su Ruanruan. His gaze was gentle, he touched her little head and whispered, "He has something to say to you,e over." Su Ruanruans legs went weak: "Arent youing?" He hummed thoughtfully, then counter-challenged her, "Scared?" He stretched his hand to rub her slender fingers adorned with a diamond ring, "You werent scared when you put on the diamond ring." Su Ruanruan gave him a reproachful look. She shifted her body and got out of the car. Bao Jingyan stood by the car roof, supporting her waist. Ahead, Bao Mingyuan was dizzy with anger watching his eldest son behave like that. He should have realized it earlier! During the time Ruanruan stayed at their house, Jingyan always stayed over in the mansion. He treated Ruanruan exceptionally well. They clearly were together from the start! He was blind not to see it! Su Ruanruan gently sat beside him. Bao Mingyuan red at her with discontent: "Set on being together with Jingyan?" Su Ruanruan quietly hummed in affirmation. Bao Mingyuan couldnt hold back: "Whats so good about him? Hes older and not very romantic, how did you fall for him?" He changed his question: "How did he trick you?" "He treats me very well," Su Ruanruan softly said. This answer surprised Bao Mingyuan. He stared at her little face for a long while. Su Ruanruan remained silent. She hadnt slept all night. Still beautiful, but there was a hint of tiredness between her delicate brows. And her eyes were slightly red. Bao Mingyuan suddenly felt a softening in his heart. That feeling was almost like an old father relenting to his beloved daughter! He gently asked her, "Do you really like him that much? It has to be him or no one?" Su Ruanruan hummed. Bao Mingyuan sighed softly. After a long time, he struggled to say, "As Ziqis father I shouldnt agree, you both know the olddy wont agree either! But as... your Uncle Bao, I cant bring myself to oppose!" He indeed owed this child. Finally, he said, "At least, wait till Ziqi is married! Whether the olddy agrees then will be up to your fate!" After saying this, Bao Mingyuan felt sorrow himself. He shouldnt have given in so easily, it was quite a loss of face. Su Ruanruan was somewhat choked up. She hadnt expected Bao Mingyuan to utter such words. He had actually always treated her not so badly. "Thank you, Uncle Bao," she said, her voice trembling. Bao Mingyuan turned to look at her. At this moment, she greatly resembled Weilian. Bao Mingyuan felt even more saddened. He thought, Ruanruan... might as well be hispensation to Jingyan! He took off his coat and draped it over her shoulders, his tone very gentle: "Its so cold, Jingyan didnt even think to get you a jacket, who knows what your future holds! Donte crying to me if things dont go well!" "Also, I havent agreed! Im just toozy to bother and will turn a blind eye." He spoke each sentence, and Su Ruanruan could only nod. She wanted to cry! Ever since she set foot into the Bao Family, she had been scheming. Bao Mingyuan might not be unaware, but in the end, he easily forgave her. Bao Mingyuan waved his hand: "Alright, go over! Jingyan is waiting for you!" Chapter 312: Ruanruan, Say You鈥檙e Willing

Chapter 312: Chapter 312: Ruanruan, Say Youre Willing

His voice was unexpectedly choked up. Su Ruanruans lips trembled. Bao Mingyuan spoke again: "Go ahead!" Su Ruanruan dragged her leg towards a car parked behind. Bao Jingyan was by the car, smoking, and took several fierce puffs when he saw hering. He threw it away and stomped it out. The two got into the car, and Bao Jingyan watched the car ahead drive away. After a long while, he finally took his gaze back: "What did he say?" Su Ruanruan leaned her head on the seat, speaking softly, "He didnt agree, but he didnt object anymore either." Bao Jingyan remained silent. Su Ruanruan, thinking of what he had been doing recently, didnt say anything. She just held his hand. After sitting in silence alone for a while, he finally drove the car back to the vi. As soon as the car stopped, Bao Jingyan hurried around to open the door. He took her hand and led her upstairs. Taking off his coat as they walked. Aunt Li came to meet them, asking if they wanted breakfast. But Bao Jingyan seemed not to hear. Halfway up the stairs, feeling that Su Ruanruan was too slow, he just carried her across his arms. Su Ruanruan felt a bit embarrassed and patted his shoulder and back: "Hey, whats wrong with you?" Bao Jingyans dark eyes were fixed on her. He kicked the bedroom door open with one foot. She was thrown onto the soft bed. The white pillows carried his uniquely masculine scent. Su Ruanruan smelled it and felt a bit dizzy. Before she could react, her shoulder was pinned down. Bao Jingyan cradled her head, kissing her ardently... Su Ruanruan turned her face aside, her breaths hurried. "Bao Jingyan, whats wrong with you?" He stared at her intensely, as if his gaze could see right through her. After a long time, he suddenly sat up. He picked her up all at once and held her close in his embrace. She was tiny in his arms, sitting between his legs. Her cheeks flushed, she dared not move. Bao Jingyans voice was husky: "I told him weve been intimate before! Do you know what I was thinking about while sitting in the car afterwards?" "What?" Su Ruanruans voice trembled. Bao Jingyan kissed behind her ear, whispering low: "Ruanruan, I want you." His lips moved slowly to hers, his voice hoarser, more alluring: "Ruanruan, say youre willing!" He kissed her again. Su Ruanruans heart raced and her face flushed, she rested her face on his shoulder. After a long while, she finally asked softly, "Is it too difficult?" Bao Jingyan did not respond, just gazed at her with clear and bright eyes. Su Ruanruan dared not look at him. And would not let him touch her! ... Su Ruanruan didnt sleep all night. She had been startled. And ultimately fell ill! Aunt Li, unaware of the truth, looked at Bao Jingyan with using eyes for several days. Bao Jingyan let her misunderstand. Not until Su Ruanruan had recovered did Bao Jingyan settle ounts with her. He used her: "When I wasnt here, you went to watch a y and had heart-to-hearts all night with others?" "I went with my mother and Jiarou!" Su Ruanruan bit her lip: "And about heart-to-hearts! That was an old friend of dads, are you also jealous of elders?" "I forgive you." Bao Jingyan was magnanimous, leaning in to kiss her. Su Ruanruan was reserved, not willing to be affectionate with him in the hall. She sat upright, pretending to flip through a magazine. At this moment, Old Zhao came in from outside. "Its from Doctor Zhou." Old Zhao handed the item to Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan knew it was the medicine analysis she had requested, she opened it and looked. After a moment, she gently closed the file. Bao Jingyan asked her: "Whats wrong?" Su Ruanruan had a bitter expression: "It just confirmed some things." She also said, "The medicine my father was taking before he passed away wasnt authentic! It containedponents that could damage the nervous system." Bao Jingyan wrapped an arm around her shoulder. Su Ruanruan sniffled, "Im okay." At this moment, Old Zhao remembered something: "Oh, I just saw Su Minghua the eldest son, he was begging to see Miss Su." Old Zhao chuckled: "I reckon the young master seems to be having some tough timestely." Su Ruanruan naturally guessed. She said softly, "If hes desperate, hell find a way to contact me." Old Zhao was very impressed by her. Just then, Su Ruanruans phone rang. It was Gui Zhi calling from Madam Baos side. Follow current novels on freewe(b)novel.c(o)m Chapter 313: Bao Jingyan鈥檚 Audacity Knows No Bounds!

Chapter 313: Chapter 313: Bao Jingyans Audacity Knows No Bounds!

Ruanruan nced at Bao Jingyan and picked up the phone. On the other end, Gui Zhi spoke with great warmth: "Next week, the olddy turns eighty, and we want to discuss with Miss Su how to handle it." Suspecting Bao Mingyuan would be there, Ruanruan thought about politely declining. But Bao Jingyan took the phone from her and said to Gui Zhi: "Well be back soon." Gui Zhi was somewhat flustered. She knew that young master Jingyan and Miss Su were a couple, but wasnt young master Jingyan being too indiscreet! Gui Zhis feelings were mixed. Ruanruan, reserved and shy, got angry with Bao Jingyan: "How am I supposed to face people in the future?" "Am I the one who cant face people?" Bao Jingyan retorted. Ruanruan couldnt find words to argue back. She was so annoyed that her face turned red. In the end, it was Auntie Li who had the clever idea: "If Old Zhao drives Miss Suter and master drives himself, wont that dispel any suspicion?" Ruanruans face turned even redder. She went upstairs to change clothes. Bao Jingyan, speaking to Old Zhao and Auntie Li, sought sympathy: "See, shes spoiled andwless!" Auntie Li covered her mouth andughed: "A man who fears his wife is blessed." "Is that so?" Bao Jingyan raised an eyebrow. He was in a very good mood. Ruanruan gave him the cold shoulder when she came downstairs, and he didnt mind. Ruanruan arrived at Bao Family first. As soon as she got out of the car, Gui Zhi came over with a smile: "The olddy has been waiting for Miss Su for a long time." Ruanruan, still unsettled by the earlier incident, blushed faintly from her earlobes down to her neckline. Gui Zhi pretended not to notice. Just as they were about to go to the courtyard, Bao Mingyuan happened toe out. He looked at Ruanruan and said lightly: "Here to see the olddy?" Ruanruan lowered her eyes and nodded gently. Bao Mingyuan was slightly aloof. Actually, after what happened that day, he didnt know how to treat this girl. If he was too nice, it would be too easy for her and Jingyan. The two had just arrived, one after the other, and Gui Zhi saw right through their act, warming up the scene: "The olddy is about to celebrate her birthday and asked Miss Su over for some advice!" Bao Mingyuan immediately made a suggestion: "Now that youre here, lets discuss together with the family after dinner." Ruanruan nced at him. Bao Mingyuan coughed lightly and told Gui Zhi: "Call the eldest young master and have hime over too!" As the words left his mouth, a golden Bentley Continental drove into Bao Mansion. The man getting out of the car was Bao Jingyan. Bao Mingyuan nearly bit his tongue. That damned guy! Coming back one right after the other, as if they wanted everyone to know they were together? Ruanruans head hung lower! Gui Zhi was inwardly overjoyed! But outwardly, she cheerfully said: "The eldest young master is just in time!" Bao Mingyuan lost all temper, waving his hand and entering the house. Bao Jingyan got out of the car, taking off his coat and draping it over his arm. Tall and straight. Handsome and regal! He walked beside Ruanruan and asked softly: "Did he give you a hard time?" "No!" Ruanruan wished he would keep his distance. But this man had the audacity. He walked alongside her. Open and aboveboard. Bao Mingyuan sat in the living room drinking tea, watching them enter together. He snorted lightly. Bao Jingyan, with his thick skin, not only sat down but also invited Ruanruan: "Miss Su, please take a seat!" Bao Mingyuan red. Miss Su? Bao Jingyan, have some shame, wont you? The Bao Family members gradually entered the hall, and by seven in the evening, everyone was present. Bao Ziqi had eyes only for Ruanruan sinceing downstairs. Bao Mingyuan had a headache and deliberately asked: "Why didnt Minne?" "Shes attending an academic conference," Bao Ziqi answered indifferently. Bao Mingyuan immediately agreed: "Its good to have education! Girls still need to study." Bao Ziqi neither agreed nor disagreed. It was Bao Jingyuan, on the sidelines, who eximed: "Ruanruan hasnt been to school for a month or two! Shes not in thepany either; shes just idling her days away." Chapter 314: Concubine Bo Causes Trouble Again

Chapter 314: Chapter 314: Concubine Bo Causes Trouble Again

Bao Jingyuan couldnt stand it. She just wanted to belittle Su Ruanruan. Bao Mingyuan was also quite helpless. Both the palm and the back of the hand are flesh; although Jingyuan is uneducated, she is still his own flesh and blood. A father does not despise an ugly child! He was about to make peace when the olddy came over with the support of Gui Zhi. As soon as the olddy arrived, she scolded Bao Jingyuan: "Ruanruan is talented and capable, now having multiple careers, what about you?" She then said to Mrs. Bao: "Manage this girl who causes trouble all day." Mrs. Bao was scolded. She was not very pleased. She held this grudge against Su Ruanruan. Mother-inw and daughter-inw discord, Bao Mingyuan, as the son, found it most difficult to handle. He smoothed things over and had the servants serve dinner. Only then did the olddy let it go. She hadnt seen Su Ruanruan for a long time and kept her by her side to chat. Treating her like a dear granddaughter. Bao Jingyuan was almost driven to tears. Mrs. Bao whispered, "She will marry someday, and then having a husband, it wont be appropriate for her to frequently visit our home. Jingyuan, just endure this moment of annoyance." Bao Jingyuan thought about it, and that made sense! Thus, she regained herposure. During the meal, she always tried to converse with her two elder brothers, trying to iste Su Ruanruan. Bao Ziqi was in a bad mood and did not engage much in her conversation. Bao Jingyan held a cup in one hand, tasting the appetizer drink. With the other hand, he was holding and gently massaging Su Ruanruans small hand. Absolutely shameless! Bao Mingyuan saw this clearly from his angle, and was so angered he chose to look away. ... After the meal, the family sat on the sofa discussing the olddys birthday arrangements. Normally, Mrs. Bao took charge. But this time, Mrs. Bao feigned a headache. She said, "Im not feeling well! Why not let Ruanruan take care of the olddys birthday celebration, it would be worth the affection the olddy has for her." She was extremely gentle and caring: "Ruanruan is capable, I am utterly confident in her." Bao Mingyuan was still upset with Su Ruanruan. He did not agree immediately. Mrs. Bao pressed on, "You always value her, but others dont know her abilities, wouldnt this be the perfect opportunity to showcase her talents?" Su Ruanruan was drinking tea on the side. She was well aware of Mrs. Baos schemes. At this moment, Bao Mingyuan looked over at her. Su Ruanruan did not refuse. She said, "I am willing to take care of the tasks for the olddy." Bao Mingyuan thought for a bit and then nodded: "Its also good for gaining experience." Mrs. Baos wish was granted. She sipped her tea, her eyes full of calctions. Well, she would manipte behind the scenes, and Su Ruanruan would be hugely embarrassed! Su Ruanruan took on the task, then asked the olddy, "Olddy, do you have any specific ideas?" The olddy was happy, "No need to go to a hotel! Those ces are stuffy! I just want... to set up a stage in our house, invite a famous actor to perform a good y! Invite all the famousdies and wives of Jiangcheng to join the fun!" The olddys wishes, Su Ruanruan was willing to fulfill. But... this famous actor... Mrs. Bao smiled broadly, "Ruanruan, dont you know Boss Yan? Just invite him toe and perform a y for the olddy!" She had an ulterior motive. Boss Yan had already left Jiangcheng. Moreover, even if he were in Jiangcheng, its unlikely he would condescend to perform in honor of an olddys birthday! Su Ruanruan did not have that kind of influence! As she said this, indeed it piqued the olddys interest. Old Lady Bao regretfully said, "Boss Yans performances are indeed good! But he is a major figure, not just anyone can invite him!" Su Ruanruan merely smiled without speaking. She just quietly drank her tea. ... After the family meeting ended, Bao Jingyuan couldnt hold back anymore. She ran to Mrs. Bao and said, "Mom, why are you elevating Su Ruanruan again? If she gains the olddys favor, thats it for us!" Mrs. Bao nced at her, "Am I that foolish?" Chapter 315: Performing the Empty Fort Strategy for Su Ruanruan

Chapter 315: Chapter 315: Performing the Empty Fort Strategy for Su Ruanruan

Mrs. Bao instructed her daughter. "Ruanruan that girl has been toocent for too long! If we dont suppress her a bit, shell almost forget who thedy of this house is!" Bao Jingyuan hugged Mrs. Baos arm and acted coquettishly: "Mom, I knew you wouldnt let Su Ruanruan have an easy time!" Su Ruanruan is no match for Mom! She awaited Su Ruanruans downfall. ... The next day, Mrs. Bao made her move. She invited Xia Minn for coffee. Xia Minn knew that Mrs. Bao was recently displeased with her. She was extremely cautious! Unexpectedly, Mrs. Bao was very gentle today. After talking for a while, Mrs. Bao got to the point. "The olddy is having a birthday, and we need to arrange a proper celebration at home." Xia Minn immediately responded: "If theres anything I can help with, just let me know, aunt." But Mrs. Bao shook her head. She said, "This time, Su Ruanruan is in charge of the arrangements." Xia Minn was shocked. She defended Mrs. Bao: "How can Su Ruanruan step over you like this?" Mrs. Bao sipped her coffee, nonchntly saying, "If she wants to handle it, let her handle it! Whether she does a good job and can please the olddy, thats up to her fate." Xia Minn got the hint. She understood Mrs. Baos intentions. Seeing her catch on, Mrs. Bao continued: "You are Ziqis fiance! If you can make the olddy happy on her birthday, your status in the Bao Family will naturally surpass Su Ruanruan." Xia Minn was deeply moved. Mrs. Bao recountedst nights events. Xia Minn pondered for a moment. She came up with an idea: "Su Ruanruan is setting up a stage for the olddy, I guess shell just invite local actors, probably not impressive enough! Our university is hosting a seminar, I could suggest to the organizers to invite a famous Yue opera actor, itll be on the olddys birthday! Then, the olddy would happily leave everything behind to go there, wouldnt that insult Su Ruanruan?" She smiled calmly: "Then Su Ruanruan will be embarrassed!" Mrs. Bao pped in approval: "Then shell be performing an empty city strategy, wont she?" She was full of admiration: "Minn, I didnt know you were so capable." Mrs. Bao, shrewd as ever, pondered a while before adding, "Go ahead and do it! I will also use my connections to support you! On that day, all the high-societydies of the city will be at your event." Xia Minn was thrilled. She had never felt so close to Mrs. Bao. She took the initiative to show favor: "I wont disappoint you." Mrs. Baos tone was light: "Then do a good job!" ... For the olddys birthday. Su Ruanruan cleared all her engagements. She also specifically sought advice from her mother, Mrs. Gu, who knew best about etiquettes. Mrs. Gu gave her pointers. First, it must be lively and dignified. The actors invited must not be minor ones! Secondly, the olddy is advanced in age and still cares about certain matters. One must engage with sentimentality. Su Ruanruan took it to heart. She sat in the study, thinking hard. Actors, she could invite the most prominent one. As for sentiments... she really couldnt guess the olddys intentions at the moment. While she was pondering, a call came from Bao Mansion. The olddy invited her for afternoon tea. Su Ruanruan took the call and rode in Old Zhaos car. The car had just parked, and the door was opened. Bao Mingyuan stood outside. He wore loose-fitting woolen pants and a ck sweater. Clearly, he didnt go to the office. His expression was somewhatplex. Su Ruanruan softly called out: "Uncle Bao." Bao Mingyuan gave a cold chuckle: "Not calling me Mr. Bao anymore?" Su Ruanruan dared not speak. Chapter 316: King Yan Fights, the Little Ghost Suffers!

Chapter 316: Chapter 316: King Yan Fights, the Little Ghost Suffers!

Bao Mingyuan took a step back to let her out of the car, he said: "The olddy has been missing you! She asked me to wait here." He exhaled through his nostrils: "Your face value has be significantly greater now." Su Ruanruan could only say: "Its because of your filial piety." Bao Mingyuan snorted lightly and walked ahead. Su Ruanruan obediently followed behind. Old Zhao felt uneasy. Su Ruanruan said: "It might take a while, Uncle Zhao, you can take the car for maintenance." Bao Mingyuan turned around: "Are you afraid Ill harm her?" Old Zhao was somewhat cowed. Fine! When King Yan fights, the lesser ghosts suffer! After Old Zhao left, Su Ruanruan spoke up for him: "Uncle Zhao didnt mean that! Please dont take it out on him." Bao Mingyuan said with displeasure: "Dont worry, the ones who would do something like that are you two! I wont be angry with Old Zhao." Su Ruanruan suddenly felt that it was better not to have spoken at all. She shut her mouth. Bao Mingyuan then found it boring. They entered the small courtyard one after the other. In the afternoon. The sunlight was just right. Gui Zhi had moved the reclining chair into the small courtyard. The olddyy sunbathing and admiring the beautifully bloomed flowers at the same time. Bao Mingyuan bent over to tell the olddy: "Ruanruan is here." The olddy wanted to get up. Su Ruanruan immediately went over and helped her: "Its nice for you to lie down." The olddyfortablyid back down, patted her hand, and asked with concern: "Where did youe from? Have you eaten?" After asking, Bao Mingyuan gave Su Ruanruan a look. In his eyes, there was a hint of mockery. Ha, Id like to see how you deceive the olddy! But, unbeknownst to him, Su Ruanruan was unfazed. She said: "I just came from my eldest brothers ce." Bao Mingyuan looked up at the sky: Fine! Youve got guts! The olddy was clearly confused: "Why did you go to Jingyans ce?" Su Ruanruan took a check out of her bag and yfully said: "The olddys birthday needs to be lively and that requires money! The richest person in our family is big brother, who else should I ask for money if not him?" The olddy took her reading sses to look. "How many zeros are on this?" Su Ruanruan whispered: "Big brother gave me thirty million! He wants me to give the olddy a proper birthday celebration." The olddys wrinkles blossomed, but she feigned anger: "You child, youre really not reserved with your big brother! He just gave you thirty million like that?" Su Ruanruan appeased her, pleased: "Big brother Jingyan is generous towards the olddy." The olddy was mollified. Unspeakably happy. Bao Mingyuan nced at Su Ruanruan again. Keep pretending! Just keep pretending! You and Jingyan probably collude behind the scenes, that check is just moving from one pocket to another! And using the olddy as an excuse! He reassessed Su Ruanruan. In the past, he always thought she resembled histe wife, Sun Weilian. But now he understood. That was just the surface! Look at how she maniptes him, maniptes Qi Meiyu, and wins over Boss Mu! I heard she even caused chaos in the Su Family! Weilian was nothing like her, full of cunning ns! She and Jingyan are clearly cut from the same cloth, which is why they attract each other. Bao Mingyuan was inwardly sneering. Su Ruanruan leaned over the olddys knees, softly asking: "On the olddys birthday, which opera would you like to hear?" The olddy said: "It doesnt matter who it is!" She waved her fan and closed her eyes: "If I could still listen to an opera by Boss Yan while this old body is alive, I would die content." Although Bao Mingyuan was still angry, he helped clear up for Su Ruanruan. "Youre confused! Boss Yan has gone back to B city! If you want to listen to his opera, Im afraid youll need to make a trip to B city." The olddymented sorrowfully: "Mingyuan, do you think this old body can travel that far?" Chapter 317: This Looks Like Boss Yan鈥檚 Outfit!

Chapter 317: Chapter 317: This Looks Like Boss Yans Outfit!

Bao Mingyuan felt a tinge of sadness! The olddy was close to eighty, and who knew how many years she had left. Su Ruanruan sensed that the atmosphere was amiss. She took the olddys hand, smiling as she said: "I will apany the Old Lady." The Bao olddy found greatfort in this. She leaned back in her lounge chair, recounting the past: "Thest time I listened to Boss Yans opera was with the Sun Familys Old Lady, its a pity..." Back then, after Bao Mingyuans wife passed away, he remarried her rival in love, which led to a riff between the Bao and Sun Families, with no contact for nearly 20 years. This was the olddys heartache. It was also Bao Mingyuans heartache. He touched his cigarette case but ultimately set it down. Su Ruanruan remained silent. In the end, the olddy waved her hand: "I dont know whether this old frame of mine would scatter, whether Id get the chance to meet my inws grandmother again, or listen to Boss Yans opera with her one more time!" Bao Mingyuan finally couldnt resist and pulled out a cigarette to clench between his lips. He said with difficulty: "I have troubled the Old Lady." The olddy sighed. With some sorrow in her voice. Su Ruanruan remembered what Madame Gu had said. Madame Gu had said: For the Old Ladys birthday, it needs to be lively and graceful. Su Ruanruan had an idea in her mind. When she departed, Bao Mingyuan saw her out. He wasnt in a good mood. Feeling somewhat sorry for the Old Lady. Su Ruanruan smiled slightly: "Uncle, rest assured, the Old Lady will definitely be happy on her birthday." Bao Mingyuan sighed softly: "Just do your best!" Su Ruanruan knew he didnt believe it. She didnt say much more. The Old Lady treated her well, and on her birthday, she was going to give the Old Lady two surprises. ... Su Ruanruan got even busier. Running around without a moments rest. During this time, she took a long trip. Nobody knew where she went. By the time she returned, the Bao familys opera stage was already set up. Right in the courtyard behind the Bao Mansion. Gui Zhi apanied the olddy in admiration, eximing: "Its really nice!" The olddys vision was blurry; she put on her reading sses to take a closer look. After studying for a long while, the olddy turned to Gui Zhi and said: "It doesnt look quite right to me! These banners and gs are exquisite and beautiful, much like Boss Yans own setup." Gui Zhi giggled behind her hand: "Youve been yearning for it so much, maybe your eyes are ying tricks on you!" Gui Zhi added: "Boss Yan is in B City! How could his things appear in our home?" The olddy nodded. Indeed, she must have been seeing things. ... In the distance, Mrs. Bao and Xia Minn stood together. Mrs. Bao whispered: "Minn, how is your parting along?" Xia Minn gracefully answered: "Guess who Ive managed to invite?" Mrs. Bao watched her intently. "Its Mei Changqing, a disciple of Boss Yan," Xia Minn saidposedly: "He was reluctant at first, but after I visited him several times alone, he finally agreed toe." Mrs. Bao was delighted: "To have a disciple of Boss Yan is indeed fortuitous." She held onto Xia Minns hand, saying: "With this, we can be quite confident." The olddy loved Boss Yans opera. If he could note, but his disciple did... The olddy certainly wouldnt want to miss that! Mrs. Baos gaze tenderly met Xia Minns: "Youre a really capable girl!" Xia Minn smiled lightly: "Its most important for the Old Lady to be happy." She added: "I heard Su Ruanruan recently went out for a trip, she really lets down the good intentions the Old Lady has for her." Mrs. Bao sneered: "She really thinks she can handle this household!" She was, after all, more experienced and instructed Xia Minn: "Keep the news of Boss Yans discipleing to Jiang City a secret! On the night of the Old Ladys birthday, well give everyone a wonderful surprise." They were in conversation. Bao Ziqi approached. He nodded towards Xia Minn: "What are you two discussing?" Xia Minn spoke openly: "Im discussing with my Aunt about the opera stage for the Old Ladys birthday." She praised: "Its set up beautifully, Ruanruan has put a lot of effort into it!" Bao Ziqi looked over in that direction... Indeed, the opera stage was ready. But after a bit of searching, he didnt see that slender figure. Bao Ziqi felt a slight loss. Chapter 318 Ruanruan, You are Neglecting Your Husband

Chapter 318: Chapter 318 Ruanruan, You are Neglecting Your Husband

Su Ruanruan was still incredibly busy. She promised Grandma two surprises, not one less. She was busy every day, Bao Jingyan could hardly see her. This evening at eight oclock, she returned to the vi in Old Zhaos car. Bao Jingyan caught her at the door. When the car door opened, he looked down at her: "You really look like a dutiful wife now, busy all day, neglecting your husband." "Nonsense!" Su Ruanruan got out of the car. She took his arm. Bao Jingyan threw away his cigarette butt and stamped it out, "How long has it been since youst had a proper meal with me?" The two entered the dining room together. Aunt Lee served the dishes, continuously urging, "Eat more, youre still growing!" Su Ruanruan blushed. She had indeed grown a little recently. Originally 162 cm, now she was 164 cm. Bao Jingyan served her dishes, deliberately saying, "Only 18, you can still grow for two more years." Su Ruanruans face turned even redder. Just then, a hearty voice came from the doorway. "What delicious food are we having?" As the voice fell, Mu Jiu walked in. He rubbed his hands: "Perfect timing, I havent eaten! Aunt Lee, serve me a big bowl of rice!" Aunt Lee had not yet moved, Bao Jingyan red at him, "Dont they serve food at your house?" Mu Jiu brazenly sat down, very shrewdly: "Whats wrong with mooching a meal at my sisters house? Or is this not her home?" Bao Jingyan was angered. He held his wine ss and sipped the aperitif. Aunt Lee covered her mouth andughed, "I will serve Mr. Mu." Mu Jiu was satisfied and teased Bao Jingyan, "Were all family, dont be so stingy!" Bao Jingyan elegantly set down his wine ss. That attitude and tone, even Mu Jiu had to admit. Among the distinguished young masters, he was top-notch. Bao Jingyan smiled unhurriedly: "Indeed! Family! Dont go back tonight, Mu Jiu, sleep in the room next to Ruanruan and me." Mu Jiu was internally cursing! Su Ruanruan modestly and shyly kicked Bao Jingyan. She said: "Mu Jiu is here to discuss important matters!" Luckily, at this moment, Aunt Lee brought over arge bowl and ced it in front of Mu Jiu. Mu Jiu, a man of hearty appetite, devoured his food like a storm. He couldnt stop praising how delicious Aunt Lees cooking was. Aunt Lee was extremely pleased. After finishing the meal and wiping his mouth, Mu Jiu finally spoke of serious matters. "That concubine in your household is truly causing trouble behind the scenes." Su Ruanruan smiled slightly: "I heard that Xia Minn invited a disciple of Boss Yan to perform at the theatre, coincidentally on Grandmas birthday! Mrs. Bao will surely persuade Grandma to go, to embarrass me!" Her eyes glittered sharply: "The nobledies who are close to Mrs. Bao will also add fuel to the fire." Mu Jiu red: "You know about this?" Mu Jiu was very imposing! He said: "Mu Jiu will help you! Once thosedies enter Bao Mansion, I will have people surround the ce tightly, threeyers inside and threeyers outside!" He wagged his tail, seeking praise: "Ruanruan, I guarantee not even a fly can get out!" By then, all the audience will still be for Ruanruan! After he finished, Bao Jingyan pped. "Mu Jiu is clever! I could never think of such a great idea!" Mu Jiu proudly: "Naturally." Su Ruanruan was annoyed and red at Bao Jingyan. She said: "Stop messing around!" Bao Jingyan picked up his wine ss and gestured to Mu Jiu. Mu Jiu scratched his head, gruffly: "Is this n not good?" Su Ruanruan, not bearing to crush his spirits, softened her tone: "Whats the fun in forcing people? I want to make those nobledies willingly stay to celebrate Grandmas birthday!" She gently said: "I also want to fulfill a big wish for Grandma! Making her a birthday she will never forget." Chapter 319 My Ruanruan Is So Capable!

Chapter 319: Chapter 319 My Ruanruan Is So Capable!

Bao Jingyan was somewhat moved. He grasped her hand. Old Nineined with a sour tone, "Only if you manage to invite someone bigger than Boss Mei!" Su Ruanruan smiled lightly. Old Nine gaped in disbelief, "No way? You really got someone?" Su Ruanruan retorted, "Have I just been ying around these days?" Old Nine Mu was convinced. And a little dejected, too! Su Ruanruan was so capable that he couldnt be of much help! Su Ruanruanforted him: "I have a special task for Ninth Brother! No one else but Ninth Brother can handle this." Old Nine Mu was instantly invigorated. Only he could do it! These words were so gratifying to hear! Su Ruanruan murmured a few instructions. Old Nine Mu pped his chest, vowing: "Forget the rest; if you need people or spectacle, Ninth Brother is the best!" He strode out: "Ill take care of it right now! I guarantee the grand theatre wont y to an empty house that night!" Su Ruanruan lowered her gaze. A trace of calction lingered between her delicate brows. Bao Jingyan stood up and held her from behind. He murmured softly by her ear, "My Ruanruan is so capable." Su Ruanruan, blushing, pushed him away, "Auntie Li is right outside." "Then lets go upstairs!" Bao Jingyans voice grew huskier: "Little Mrs. Bao, please fulfill these past days obligations." Su Ruanruan called him shameless. Bao Jingyan simply carried her upstairs... In an instant, she fell into the soft pillows. Bao Jingyan made sure she was pleasured first. Su Ruanruan trembled, not knowing if it was morning or evening. He coaxed her softly, "Ruanruan, like thest time, do it like that..." ... In the blink of an eye, the olddys birthday arrived. That day, the Bao Mansion was bustling with activity. Su Ruanruan had everything well-organized. She brought in the best pastry chef, the finest band, and even summoned 40 beautiful waitresses from the Dijing Hotel. The scene was luxuriously extravagant! The young nobledies could enjoy themselves there. As for the elders, they were by the stage in the backyard, gently waving their fans. Waiting for the performers to take the stage. The olddy, stroking the back of Su Ruanruans hand, said to Bao Mingyuan, "Although the child is young, she already has the poise of a matriarch in charge of the household!" Bao Mingyuan gazed deeply. He nced at Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan gave a faint smile. Then Bao Mingyuan said to the olddy, "This is the olddys blessing!" The olddy was even more delighted. She flipped through the opera brochure, "Who is performing tonight, and which y will they perform? Theres no clear program on this list." Su Ruanruan replied, "The olddy will know once the performance starts." Madam Bao on the side sneered coldly. Su Ruanruan was being mysterious, probably because she had nothing impressive to show! If it was a renowned actor, she would have probably printed it on the brochure for showing off. As she pondered the right moment, she said with a smile, "Its a pity Minn is busy with the exchange meeting today and couldnt make it in time to celebrate the olddys birthday." The olddy replied indifferently, "Career is important." Madam Bao beamed brightly, "That child is alsopetent; this time she has even managed to invite Boss Yans leading disciple Mei Changqing! Here we are, Mei Changqing will take the stage at the theatre in half an hour!" The olddy was startled, "Boss Yans disciple?" She admired greatly, "I didnt expect Minn had the influence to invite him." Madam Bao smiled modestly. She kept silent. At this moment, her close circle of noblewomen began to chime in. [I heard its just for today, the performance starts in half an hour.] [Its a pity to miss such a good opportunity!] [Actually, if we each take our own cars, its just a 20-minute drive, and we can still make it.] [But what about all this here?] ... As the old Madame Bao listened to their prattle, she felt an irresistible itch. She also wanted to see Boss Yans disciples opera performance! Chapter 320: Birthday! Boss Yan Makes an Appearance

Chapter 320: Chapter 320: Birthday! Boss Yan Makes an Appearance

Madame Bao felt it was about time. She spoke in a gentle tone, "Grandma loves to watch ys! Why dont we go together? Ruanruan will take care of things here." Grandma didnt overthink it. She truly wanted to go. So after pondering for a moment, she said to Bao Mingyuan, "In that case, you and Ruanruan keep an eye on the house, and Ill go to the theater to enjoy a y! Ille back and continue the birthday celebration after its over." Bao Mingyuan knew the situation like the back of his hand. This was a contest between the two women of the household! He thought, despite Ruanruans earnest preparations, She was still no match for Meiyu! The old are indeed wiser! He was trying to find a way to give Su Ruanruan some face. But Su Ruanruan, with her sharp wit, retorted to Grandma, "If Grandma goes to the theater to hear the y, wont you miss out on the great y going on right here at home?" Grandma gave a soft cough, "Its a y by the disciples of Boss Yan!" Su Ruanruan sat down. She was born beautiful and wore a crystal tasseled dress. She could rival the brightness of the moon! With a delicate, regretful look on her petite face, she said, "It seems I will be the only one to enjoy Boss Yans yter!" Grandma was jolted again! A y by Boss Yan? Not just her, but everyone present was shocked! Did Su Ruanruan say she invited Boss Yan? No way! That would be a huge favor! Madame Bao was utterly incredulous. She thought this was just a tactic by Su Ruanruan to keep Grandma around. Childs y! Madame Bao was about to sneer when she saw the stage curtain slowly drawing aside... Boss Yan, dressed in costume. With a beautiful spin. The auditorium burst into waves of apuse. Everyone was surprised: It really was Boss Yan! Madame Baos entire body stiffened. She hadnt expected Su Ruanruan to actually bring Boss Yan! How could this be! How could it happen? Bao Mingyuan didnt look at his wife but instead said to Su Ruanruan, "Youve done a good job with this, Grandma is happy." Grandma stared intently at the stage. Murmuring and singing softly. Truly delighted. Su Ruanruan smiled faintly, "Whats this! I have something else to make Grandma even happier!" Bao Mingyuan was skeptical, "Is there anything even more prestigious than having Boss Yan perform?" Su Ruanruan helped Grandma stand up and pointed to the courtyard entrance. "Grandma, look who that is?" Madame Bao was right in the middle of enjoying the y and was about to feign scolding her. But in the blink of an eye. Her eyes welled with tears! Grandma trembled her lips and softly called out, "My dear inw." At the entrance to Bao Mansion, the Old Madame from the Sun Family was being supported by her two daughters-inw. She had a self-possessed air. Walking slowly towards them. The hands of the two olddies tightly sped together... Madame Bao lost herposure! The Old Madame from the Sun Family pretended to question, "Are you not happy to see me here?" "Happy, happy!" Grandma kept patting her hand, "How many years has it been since west saw each other, dear inw?" The Old Madame from the Sun Family wiped away Grandmas tears and said, "Dont be too happy just yet! I came for Boss Yans y, not necessarily to see you." Grandma felt crestfallen. She turned to Su Ruanruan, feigning anger, "You child, such a thing you did! Why didnt you tell me in advance and saved me the embarrassment of making a fool of myself?" Su Ruanruan helped her to sit down, coaxing her, "I wanted to give you a surprise!" She also helped the Old Madame from the Sun Family to her seat and arranged for the two aunts to sit down. The two aunts from the Sun Family had prestigious statuses. One was the wife of Sun Jingan. The other was the wife of Sun Jingyu. All the noblewomen present could only look up to them. They were astonished: How did Su Ruanruan manage to invite such figures? Its known, the Bao and Sun families hadnt interacted for over twenty years! Everyone there dared not look down on Su Ruanruan again! For among all those people, only Su Ruanruan was able to speak casually with the two distinguisheddies from the Sun Family. The two nobledies seemed to like her very much. They treated her with great warmth. Chapter 321: Doesn鈥檛 Jingyan Take Care of You?

Chapter 321: Chapter 321: Doesnt Jingyan Take Care of You?

Bao Mingyuan stood to the side. His eyes were warm with emotion. For more than 20 years, he never received the Sun Familys forgiveness. The Sun Family once dered they would never step foot in the Bao house again, but Ruanruan had invited them over. The olddy had now gained the greatest face! This birthday, the olddy would never forget in her lifetime. Bao Mingyuan felt grateful in his heart. A fathers tender feelings surfaced again. He saw that the tea by Su Ruanruans hand had gone cold, so he personally had someone rece it. After the tea was reced, he approached the old Lady Sun and wheedled, "Mom, youvee?" Old Lady Sun scowled, "Didnt you see?" Bao Mingyuans attempt to charm fell t. The olddy also didnt stand up for her son, "Well scolded!" Old Lady Sun snorted with displeasure, "I came for olddys sake, not for you! Dont hover in front of me! Its irritating." Bao Mingyuan touched his nose. He then cordially greeted the two maternal aunts from the Sun Family, before wisely sitting far away! Looking somewhat pitiful! Su Ruanruan apanied the two maternal aunts from the Sun Family to watch the opera for a while, then quietly sat down next to Bao Mingyuan. Bao Mingyuan gave her a look, "Youve handled this well!" Before Su Ruanruan could speak, he scoffed, "Dont think by doing this great deed, I would agree to you and Jingyan being together! The outrageous things you two have done are innumerable!" With each word he said, Su Ruanruan nodded. Leaving Bao Mingyuan without a temper. He red at her, "What are you still doing here? The wind is so strong, if you catch a cold, that bastard Jingyan will use me of being harsh to you!" He looked around and didnt see Bao Jingyan, so he asked her, "Where is he? Just left you here?" Su Ruanruan smiled faintly, "He probably has other matters to attend to." Bao Mingyuan knocked the ash from his cigarette, snorted coldly, "Hes really at ease! Not afraid someone might take advantage of you." He was referring to Mrs. Baos scheming. Su Ruanruan smiledfortably, "He knows what Im capable of." "Capable?" Bao Mingyuan sneered, "Full of tricks, arent you?" Su Ruanruan: ... * In the Bao Mansion, the small flowery hall. Decorated sumptuously. Bao Jingyan in an expensive, tailor-made suit, tall and erect. A snow-white shirt, a velvet evening gown. His elegantly boned hands fiddled with the teacup, exuding privileged ease. A jittery young man sat across from him. Su Minghua. Tonight, the Su Family did not receive an invitation. But this Doctor Su spent a long time making a fuss outside. Bao Jingyan saw him. In front of the distinguished eldest son of the Bao Family, Su Minghua was at a loss. He stammered, "I want to see Ruanruan." Bao Jingyan nced at him. "Ruanruan is in the backyard apanying the olddy to listen to the opera! She wont be free any time soon!" Su Minghua grew anxious, "I have urgent business with her." Bao Jingyan took a sip of tea, "As I said, shes not avable." Su Minghuas lips trembled with cold. He had heard of this young master Baos methods, and knew hed gain nothing by being aggressive. Yet he was in despair. He followed her to City B, only to find out hed been yed by Song Wei. When at his wits end, he suddenly thought of his ex-wife, Wang Meihe. She had always loved him deeply. If he turned back, she would surely ept him. He tried every means to get her address, only to find it impossible to reach out to her. Wang Meihe, arm in arm with a decent-looking young man, walked cheerfully into a coffee shop. Her figure was slim. Her waist was slimmer than before, her skin whiter and more tender. He didnt call out to her, but Wang Meihe spotted him. She came out to tell him that the man was her new boyfriend. She already has a boyfriend so quickly! Heartbroken, Su Minghua returned to Jiangcheng. And to the throngs of the festive Bao Mansion. This jubtion had nothing to do with him; he just wanted to see Ruanruan and ask for her guidance. Su Minghuas eyes burned with anger, "Today is the olddys big day! Young Master Bao would not want misfortune to befall his home, right?" Chapter 322: Want to Compete with Su Ruanruan? Dream On!

Chapter 322: Chapter 322: Want to Compete with Su Ruanruan? Dream On!

Bao Jingyan sipped his tea leisurely. "Do you want to harm yourself?" "There are no buildings to jump from here, at most you could hit a doorpost! Whether you end up with a bloody head or dead, the servants of Bao Mansion can drag you away within seconds, then wash away the blood on the ground." "No more than a minute! No one would know." Bao Jingyan gave a cold smile. His expression became even more disdainful. But Su Minghua trembled all over. He had never imagined this young master Bao to be so cold-hearted and ruthless. Su Minghuas legs gave out, and he sat down on the ground. Just as he was in utter disarray, the door to the small hall creaked open. Su Ruanruan walked in. Seeing the situation inside, she hurriedly helped Su Minghua up. "Big brother, whats wrong?" Upon seeing her, Su Minghua cried as if he had seen his birth parents. "Ruanruan! Ive been yed by Song Wei." He sobbed again: "Your sister-inw has another man too." Su Ruanruan expected as much. At this moment, Bao Jingyan let out a light scoff. "How tragic! Might as well just smash your head dead!" Su Ruanruan nced at him disapprovingly. Bao Jingyan pretended to sip tea. Su Ruanruan turned her head andforted Su Minghua: "Were not at a dead end yet." Su Minghua clung to her words like a lifeline. Su Ruanruan analyzed for him: "Big brother, you are immersed in academics, when you seed in your career, why worry about not finding a beautifulpanion?" Su Minghuas eyes brightened. Thats right! Initially, Wang Meihe was attracted by his talent! He found a solution and left rejoicing. He secretly regarded Su Ruanruan as his confidante. Su Ruanruan watched him leave. Deep in thought. Behind her, a lightugh sounded. "Are all the men of the Su Family such cowards?" Su Ruanruan looked at him reproachfully: "My second brother is not like this." "For all in the nest, I see little difference," Bao Jingyan intentionally remarked. Su Ruanruan thought he was petty. She walked out of the small hall, saying as she went: "You wait a bit before going." But her wrist was caught. She was pulled to him. Bao Jingyan lowered his head and gazed at her, his eyes full of tenderness: "My Ruanruan is really beautiful." Su Ruanruan blushed. She bit her soft red lips, "When am I not beautiful?" Bao Jingyan justughed. After a while, he asked her: "What are your ns for the Su Family?" Su Ruanruan idly yed with the crystal tassels of her gown. After a moment, she said: "Just an eye for an eye!" They conspired to kill her father, she wanted them to pay it back in full. Thats all. Bao Jingyan touched her little head and whispered: "Lets not talk about that! Today is just for celebrating the olddys birthday." Speaking of this, Su Ruanruan smiled lightly. She said: "Theres still one more thing unfinished!" To avoid suspicion, they went back to the backyard one after the other. Boss Yans y was nearing its end. The guests were enjoying themselves. After changing back to his usual clothes, Boss Yan came down from the stage to wish the olddy happy birthday. The olddy held Grandmother Suns hand, like two fangirls, asking Boss Yan for autograph. Boss Yan directly presented a signed birthday gift. The olddy was as happy as could be. She said to Bao Mingyuan: "I have had countless birthdays, but today is the happiest." Bao Mingyuan nced at Su Ruanruan. His gaze was full of admiration. Beside them, Mrs. Bao sneered. Su Ruanruan had overlooked one detail. She said with a smile that concealed the sharpness: "The olddy is happy! Only, Im afraid it must be quite deserted at Madame Meis, I heard she specially emptied the VIP box for thedies, now its all empty, isnt that like singing a song to an empty city for Boss Mei?" After Mrs. Bao finished talking, all eyes turned to Su Ruanruan. An empty VIP box is the greatest insult to a famous performer! Boss Mei is a disciple of Boss Yan. Offending Mei Banban is offending Boss Yan! But Su Ruanruan remained calm. She smiled lightly and said: "Dont worry! Madame Meis ce wont be neglected." Chapter 323: Everyone is Impressed! Miss Su is Awesome

Chapter 323: Chapter 323: Everyone is Impressed! Miss Su is Awesome

Su Ruanruan finished speaking. Everyone disbelieved her. Clearly, all the nobledies of Jiangcheng are here, who could support Boss Mei? Mrs. Bao was the first to stand out. With a soft tone that cut deep, she said: "Ruanruan, I know you want to make the elderlydy happy, but... the fact that Boss Mei was humiliated here remains." Su Ruanruan smiled: "Madam, I dont understand your words! It was Miss Xia Minn who invited Boss Mei; shouldnt all the honor and disgrace be her responsibility? Why is it attributed to me?" Murmurs of agreement arose from the crowd. [Yes! It was Miss Xia who invited him.] [Miss Xia acted without thorough consideration! She knew it was the elderlydys birthday today!] [Its ridiculous for Mrs. Bao to me Miss Su.] ... Mrs. Bao found herself unable to refute. Su Ruanruan continued: "Boss Mei is a celebrated artist! As a prominent figure, he deserves respect, so I had my brother Mu Jiu bring people to support him early! Just now, Brother Jiu sent a photo showing the private room packed full, with exactly 666 bouquets to honor Boss Mei adequately." She opened her phone. Showing the photo to the various nobledies. Indeed, it was an impressive scene. Suddenly, someone eximed [Isnt that Mr. Su Jingan?] [Exactly, the one to the right of Boss Mei is Sun Jingyu.] ... Everyone was amazed. Such prominent figures, and Ruanruan was able to invite them! Su Ruanruan and Boss Yan exchanged a smile. She said: "Boss Yan and my father Su Peiming are close friends. If my personal affair troubled him, it would be my fault! Hence, I asked the two Mr. and Mrs. Sun to take separate actions: to make the elderlydy happy and not let Boss Mei feel neglected." Mrs. Bao, the elder, led the apuse: "This girl is meticulous in her thoughts!" She joked with Mrs. Sun the elder: "Its a pity that Ziqi and she arent fated! Otherwise, marrying such a girl to manage the household would be wonderful!" Mrs. Sun the elder just smiled without speaking. Su Ruanruan felt a bit flustered and found it difficult to speak. Just then, amotion arose at the entrance of the courtyard. Everyone looked. It was the two from the Sun Family together with Boss Mei. Protected by Mu Jiu! Su Jingan, with the highest status, led the way to wish the elderlydy a happy birthday. Mrs. Baos eyes welled with tears. She deeply appreciated that this honor was bestowed by Ruanruan and cherished her even more. Mu Jiu bumped Su Ruanruans shoulder, lowering his voice: "How well did Brother Jiu handle this for you?" "Exceptionally well! Brother Jiu has outdone himself," praised Su Ruanruan. Mu Jius tail almost wagged to the sky. Su Jingan noticed their interaction. He said to Su Ruanruan: "You recognize a good brother." Upon saying this, he thoughtfully nced at Bao Jingyan. Jingyan often offends many with his high-handed actions, but Ruanruan understands people and leaves room for maneuvering. She would be a virtuous partner for Jingyan! Heplimented, and Su Ruanruan gave a slight smile. Her smile made her look much younger. Su Jingan suddenly remembered, Su Ruanruan was only 18. With the Sun Family present, they naturally took center stage. Bao Mingyuan personally hosted, and the Bao Family members busied themselves. Mrs. Bao found herself unable to intervene! Moreover, her position was awkward. Just then, Xia Minn hurried over. Her face full of disappointment. Upon seeing her, Mrs. Bao said lightly: "Wait until the elderlydy is free to offer her a birthday greeting!" Xia Minn couldnt believe the oue that evening. She murmured, "Why did this happen?" Mrs. Bao, furious, said: "I want to ask you what is going on! Now all the limelight is on Su Ruanruan, what else is there for us?" What terrified her the most was that the elderlydy had considered letting Su Ruanruan manage the household. But she denied it: Impossible! Su Ruanruan and Ziqi have no future, she has no status or stance to manage the Bao Familys household affairs! Chapter 324 My Ruanruan is Pure and Cute

Chapter 324: Chapter 324 My Ruanruan is Pure and Cute

A birthday banquet, all the guests were merry. After seeing off the guests, the olddy couldnt sleep. She suggested ying mahjong. Bao Mingyuan pondered for a moment, then said, "Then me and a few of the children will stay, apanying the olddy to y all night." The olddy specifically instructed, "Dont forget to keep Ruanruan here." Bao Mingyuan agreed. He asked Bao Jingse, "Where are Ruanruan and Jingse?" Bao Jingyuan interjected, "The two of them are seeing off the Gu Familys guests." She said very pettily, "Su Ruanruan is after all from the Gu Family, shes not wholeheartedly with us." "Why do we need to be wholehearted? Are there kebabs?" Bao Jingse tapped her. He went out to look for Su Ruanruan. Bao Jingyuan felt incredibly aggrieved. Tears glistened in her eyes. ... Bao Mansions parking lot. Lady Gu dressed in extravagant clothes, draped in a fur coat. Beautiful and opulent. She held Su Ruanruans small hand and praised, "You did extremely well today! You not only didnt be aughingstock, but you truly shook them all." She added, "With such a formidable concubine around, Mom has always been worried about you being bullied! Now Im relieved." Su Ruanruan softly said, "Mom, dont worry! I wont let anyone bully me." Lady Gu extended her jade finger to tap her forehead, "You little mischief! Now I really have nothing to worry about." At this moment, Gu Ze handed Su Ruanruan a check, "Take this to spend! Dont let anyone look down on the Gu Familys daughter." Su Ruanruan hung her head. She said bashfully, "Bao Jingse has given me money, he doesnt allow me to ask Dad or brother for money." Gu Ze chuckled. He said, "Therell be some entertainmentter! Keep this money close at hand!" Ruanruan was naive, she had no idea that socializing as the daughter of a wealthy family could be quite costly. So Su Ruanruan epted it! At this time, Bao Jingse arrived. He brought a coat for Su Ruanruan to wear. He said, "The olddy is keeping you to y cards." Su Ruanruan nodded, indicating she understood. She said to Lady Gu, "Ill arrange to have coffee with you and Jiarou another day with Sister Jingse." Lady Gu, smiling, said to Gu Yuanpei, "Look at her, a girl all grown up is beyond our grasp! To see our own daughter we now have to make an appointment." Su Ruanruan blushed. With no outsiders present, Bao Jingse boldly put his arm around her shoulder. He nced at Bao Jingse, "Are youing?" Bao Jingse knew clearly in her heart, Ruanruan was there for her. Keeping this favor in her heart, she said to Lady Gu, "Ill bring Ruanruan over when thepany isnt busy." A character like Lady Gu, how could she not see? But she didnt expose it. Gu Ze had been nomittal all along, saying it out loud would not be good for Jingse. The Gu Family left. Su Ruanruan and Bao Jingse changed their clothes and went to the olddys courtyard. Qi Meiyu again feigned a headache. Bao Mingyuan, Bao Ziqi Xia Minn, and Bao Jingyuan, several people continued the excitement at the olddys ce. Seeing the three of theme over, Bao Mingyuan asked them to join. Housekeeper Wang had long set up the table. Gui Zhi brewed some high-quality refreshing tea. As for the mahjong yers The olddy was definitely getting in on the action. Bao Mingyuan counted as one. The remaining spots, Su Ruanruan and Xia Minn were surprisingly encouraged to y. The game started, and Xia Minn already took her seat. She often apanied her mother at social events, ying the national game quite well. Soon, it would be her time to shine! Su Ruanruan, however, declined, "I dont really know how to y." Bao Mingyuan was in a great mood and readily said, "Let Jingse sit by your side to assist you with the game." Bao Jingse lightly guided her. Su Ruanruan found herself seated at the mahjong table. She helplessly nced at him. Just about to shuffle the mahjong tiles, Bao Jingyuan pouted, "Su Ruanruan, did you bring money? Dad always ys big! Lets get this straight beforehand, you cant use the money left over from the olddys birthday celebration." Chapter 325: Su Ruanruan, the Master of Tea Art! Sister Minglan, let me take a turn.

Chapter 325: Chapter 325: Su Ruanruan, the Master of Tea Art! Sister Minn, let me take a turn.

Bao Mingyuan wished he could tell her to scram. Su Ruanruan pulled out the check Gu Ze had given her. She shed a beautiful smile showing her pearly whites: "Fortunately, I was already prepared." Bao Jingyuan immediately took it to look. She counted seven zeros. Suddenly, she was at a loss for words. She sat down on the other side of Xia Minn and whispered, "Let her lose all her moneyter and teach her a lesson." Xia Minn gave a bitter smile. She couldnt afford to put up that much capital. A check was ced in front of her. It was from Bao Ziqi. The amount was about the same as Su Ruanruans. Xia Minn felt warmth in her heart and gave Bao Ziqi a slight smile. Rather tender indeed! Bao Jingyan had moved a chair next to Su Ruanruan early on. Seeing this scene, he chuckled, "Ruanruan, look at him spending money on his fiance so rightfully." Su Ruanruan shuffled the tiles and said lightly, "Big brother can find someone to spend money on rightfully too." Bao Jingyan said she had a sharp tongue. Their back-and-forth had a very intimate vibe. Xia Minn felt a bit dazed. Why did she feel that the rtionship between Su Ruanruan and Ziqis elder brother... was unusual? As she was thinking, Su Ruanruan gave her a sweet smile. "Sister Minn, youll have to go easy on meter!" Xia Minn managed a smile. Of course, she wouldnt go easy; she had taken a big fall tonight and was thinking of ways to recover. Xia Minn thought winning against Su Ruanruan would be a breeze. Four yers, being a steady third out of one. But after a round, she realized she had thought too simply. Where was Su Ruanruan a novice? Clearly, she was an expert among experts. Sitting downstream from Su Ruanruan, she never won a single hand. Not only that, but Su Ruanruan also specifically targeted the tiles she discarded. Either an all-suit hand or pairs and triples! After one round, Xia Minn had lost quite a bit. Bao Mingyuan and the olddy were slightly better off than her. While drawing tiles, Bao Mingyuan asked Su Ruanruan, "Arent you being dishonest, kid, saying you cant y?" Su Ruanruan replied honestly, "Ive only seen my mom y a few times." Bao Mingyuan was surprised. How could this kid y so well? Su Ruanruan drew a tile with her delicate, fair hand. One push. Another all-suit hand. As she collected the money, she smiled lightly, "Since I was a child, Ive had a photographic memory! I generally remember where the shuffled tiles were ced earlier, and I also have a rough idea of which tiles went to which yer." The other three yers at the table stiffened. They struggled to keep ying a few more rounds... Su Ruanruan won by andslide. She counted the chips in front of her. She had actually won with seven extra zeros. She nced surreptitiously at Xia Minn. She only saw that the misssplexion had turned pale, obviously unable to withstand the shock. Usually, Su Ruanruan never cared to show off; she was merely teaching this miss a lesson. This Miss Xia and Mrs. Bao were in cahoots, full of mean tricks. Su Ruanruan only kept a little money for tea, giving the rest back to everyone. Xia Minns face burned with pain. She wanted to seek Bao Ziqis help, but he appeared nonchnt. As if ustomed to it. She felt somewhat disappointed. Fortunately,ter the olddy actively called for a change of yers, swapping the two youngdies for Bao Jingyan and Bao Ziqi. Seeing the olddys attitude, it seemed she wanted to y all night. Su Ruanruan was recently exhausted and had been entangled by Bao Jingyan tilltest night. She wanted to go back to her room to sleep. Under the table, Bao Jingyan caught her hand. With just one nce at him, she knew he wouldnt let her leave. To prevent others from seeing, Su Ruanruan could only sit back down beside him. Bao Jingyan was in a very good mood, smilingly he said to Bao Ziqi, "I dont y very well either, Ziqi, youll have to let me winter." Chapter 326: Show Off Your Love, Get Back Home!

Chapter 326: Chapter 326: Show Off Your Love, Get Back Home!

Bao Ziqis gaze was cold. He retorted, "Isnt Ruanruan sitting next to you?" Bao Jingyan picked up a tile, smiling joyfully: "Right, Ruanruan can help me!" He tilted his head, "Ruanruan, you would help me, right?" Su Ruanruan was somewhat speechless. Sometimes, Bao Jingyan can be really childish. Her small face tightened slightly. The elderlydy spoke up: "Ruanruan, just help your elder brother, andter he will give you a reward." Bao Jingyan pped down a tile. He asked Su Ruanruan, "What kind of reward would you want?" The word "reward" was spoken by him in a rather suggestive tone. The elderlydy didnt understand, but Bao Mingyuan and Bao Ziqi did. Bao Mingyuan was screaming inside. Stop provoking Ziqi with this flirtation! Show off your love at home! Bao Ziqi was verbally outyed and naturally in a bad mood. Unwary, he yed a tile. "Pure Suit!" Bao Jingyanid down his tiles,ughing heartily: "Ziqi, youve blown it." Bao Ziqi counted out his chips. His mood worsened. Bao Jingyan, buoyant with victory, shuffled the tiles, saying, "Just now watching Ruanruan y for eight rounds was quite beneficial!" He affectionately added, "You should apany me to social gatherings in the future!" The elderlydy then said with augh, "There are all kinds of unsavory things in business social settings, Ruanruan is innocent, dont corrupt her." Bao Jingyan alsoughed: "True, Ruanruan is best kept at home." Xia Minn wanted to cultivate a good rtionship between Bao Ziqi and Bao Jingyan. Thinking she was clever, she spoke up: "Elder brother has a noble character, I dont know what kind of girl would be worthy of him!" Bao Jingyan shuffled and yed tiles. He didnt miss a beat. He said casually, "A girl suitable for both home and social settings would be good! Someone who brings peace of mind at home." Bao Mingyuan sitting across from him, gave his eldest son a meaningful nce. Jingyan had made his intentions clear. But the elderlydy showed no reaction. He did not rify it further, preferring to smooth things over! Su Ruanruan couldnt sit still anymore. This man has no shame. She went to the restroom. When she came out, Bao Ziqis fiance was waiting for her. Su Ruanruan washed her hands. She politely asked, "Ms. Xia, did you want to see me?" Xia Minn was watching Su Ruanruan. The girl was wearing a pink cotton house dress with a white woolen coat over it. Warm andfortable. And such attire was indeed something one would wear at home. From head to toe, Su Ruanruan projected the status of ady of the house. It made Xia Minn very ufortable. She spoke hurtfully, "I heard that you have stayed in the same room as Ziqi." Su Ruanruan asked softly, "So what?" Xia Minn couldnt keep herposure, saying, "The fact is that I will be Ziqis wife in the future! And you have no ce in Bao Family." Having said it, she felt much better inside. Su Ruanruan dried her hands. She looked at Ms. Xia in the mirror. She gently smiled, "I didnt realize that Ms. Xia is now in charge of Bao Family." Xia Minn choked. A momentter, she retorted, "Im merely reminding you of your ce." Su Ruanruan turned to face Xia Minn. She smiled faintly, "Im the only daughter of the Gu Family! Im also a business partner of Mu Jiu, the head of the Dijing R&D Department, oh, and I also have the trust of Uncle Bao... Ms. Xia, may I ask what do you have?" Xia Minn was stunned. Yet she still blustered, "I am Ziqis fiance." "You also said fiance! Not wife," Su Ruanruan smiled lightly. Chapter 327: Ruanruan, I am sick!

Chapter 327: Chapter 327: Ruanruan, I am sick!

Xia Minns face was pale. Su Ruanruan gave a slight smile: "Even married couples cant guarantee everything, let alone fiancs." She sincerely suggested, "Miss Xia alsoes from a schrly family, why not improve yourself? If you better yourself, why fear not being able to hold a mans heart?" After speaking, she drifted away. Leaving Xia Minn standing there, her face turning red and then white. She had just been lectured by a young girl. Su Ruanruan was only 18, even younger than her students! Not far away, Bao Mingyuan stood silently. He had heard everything that was said. Ruanruan was insightful, she had done more than her duty towards Xia Minn. After tonights heart-stopping events, he had made up his mind about who should be the mistress of the household. Ruanruan was steady, managing the household with her would be perfect. ... Su Ruanruan returned to the small parlor. Shortly after, Bao Mingyuan also returned. The card game continued until dawn. Bao Jingyan pushed the cards aside and counted the chips in front of him. He had won quite a bit. Aside from giving back to the olddy, he gave all his winnings to Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan was startled. Bao Jingyan picked up his coat, got up, and smiled, "Surprised? Let your brother buy you some treats." The olddyughed, "If Jingyan gives it, just take it." Bao Mingyuan: Can someone please show some shame, son! Su Ruanruan could only ept it. When their hands touched, Bao Jingyan yfully scratched the palm of her hand. Then he stretched, "Going upstairs to sleep." He told Bao Jingse, "Dont drive back after a restless night, sleep with Ruanruan." Bao Jingse nodded, "I got it, big brother." Everyone dispersed. Su Ruanruan and Bao Jingse went to her bedroom. The servants had already turned on the heating, and it was warm as soon as they entered. Su Ruanruan went to check the bathroom, then popped her head out, "Jingse sister, would you like to take a bath?" Bao Jingse was deep in thought. Hearing this, she quietly looked at Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan was a sensitive child. Sensing something was up, she poured Bao Jingse a cup of hot cocoa. She asked softly, "Whats wrong?" Bao Jingse held the hot cocoa, and after a long time, said, "Ruanruan, I am ill." Su Ruanruan was momentarily stunned. But she quickly tried to sound cheerful, "Tell me where it hurts, Ill give you some acupuncture." "In the heart," Bao Jingse said quietly. Although Ruanruan was young, her thoughts were meticulous, and she was close with her brother. At this moment, Bao Jingse treated her as a sister-inw. Su Ruanruan calmed down. She also poured herself a cup of hot cocoa and sat on the couch next to Bao Jingse. Their feet touching feet. Very affectionate. She didnt hurry to ask, but waited for Bao Jingse to calm down. She could tell it was difficult for her to speak. After a long time, Bao Jingse finally whispered, "Im not a good girl!" Su Ruanruan held her hand, "Nonsense!" She spoke softly: "Youre beautiful, excellent, and ambitious, couldnt be better." Bao Jingse remained silent. Su Ruanruan didnt press her. She could see that Bao Jingse had secrets that took courage to reveal. Her brother Gu Ze, probably was her courage. Su Ruanruan only said, "Jingse sister, if theres something you really want, you must be brave! Whether or not you get it in the end, the effort itself is beautiful!" Bao Jingse held the hot cocoa. The steam fogged her eyes. ... The next afternoon, Su Ruanruan left the Bao Mansion. The olddy instructed Bao Jingyan, "Send Ruanruan home and give my regards to Mr. and Mrs. Gu Yuanpei. Tell them we owe them a lot for this time." Bao Jingyan nodded. He leaned against the car waiting. Deep blue shirt, grey wool trousers. A light coat over it. Elegant and handsome. His long fingers held a cigarette, showing great patience. Chapter 328 Bao Mingyuan鈥檚 Arrangement

Chapter 328: Chapter 328 Bao Mingyuans Arrangement

The olddy was not willing to let go. She held Su Ruanruans hands, "Come and stay over when you have time." Su Ruanruan obediently nodded. Bao Mingyuan, seeing how hard it was for them to part, said, "There will be plenty of opportunities in the future." The olddy gave him a sidelong nce, then let them go. Su Ruanruan walked to the car side. Bao Jingyan stubbed out his cigarette and opened the car door for her. He extended a hand but didnt actually touch her, a very gentlemanly gesture. After Su Ruanruan got in the car, he went around to the other side to get in. The golden Bentley Continental slowly drove away from the Bao Mansion. The olddy watched until they were gone. Suddenly, she wiped her eyes, "Mingyuan, am I seeing things? Jingyan and Ruanruan together seem too natural, dont they?" Bao Mingyuan looked up at the sky. He thought to himself: Not at all, Granny, your eyesight is just fine! ... In the car, Su Ruanruan turned her head to ask Bao Jingyan, "Are you going to thepany today?" Bao Jingyan was focusing on the road ahead. "Theres an important meeting." Su Ruanruan didnt ask further. But he still told her, "The board meeting today will announce Jingses promotion to deputy general manager." Su Ruanruan was happy for her. She said, "Sister Jingse is really amazing." "I think my Ruanruan is amazing too." Bao Jingyan held her small hand, driving with one hand. Su Ruanruan eximed. "Bao Jingyan, focus on driving!" He released her hand with a light cough. All serious now. Su Ruanruan turned slightly, feeling a sweet warmth in her heart. After a while, she remembered something from earlier in the morning and softly said to him, "You should pay more attention to Jingse regrly!" "Why?" Bao Jingyan asked with a slightly hoarse voice, "What has Jingse been saying to you?" Su Ruanruan thought the matter was quite important and told him everything in detail. Bao Jingyan was silent for a while before rubbing her little head, "I knew my Ruanruan is bing more and more like an elder sister." Su Ruanruan emphasized, "Im serious." "I know." Bao Jingyan stroked her head again. After a little bit, he added, "Dont be jealous!" Su Ruanruans face flushed, "I wouldnt be." Bao Jingyan thenughed... ... The news of Bao Jingses promotion to deputy general manager reached Mrs. Baos ears. She paced back and forth in the living room. Bao Jingyuan anxiously said, "Mom, all the good things are going that way. Will Dad leave us with nothing in the future?" Mrs. Bao sat down looking confused. She looked at her youngest daughter and sighed lightly, "Mom doesnt know either." Bao Jingse and Bao Jingyan were born of the same mother. Her promotion quite obviously paved the way for Bao Jingyans ascension. Being his confidante, Mrs. Bao could still understand her husbands intentions. She was extremely anxious. At night, she naturally tried to probe her husband in their bedroom. Bao Mingyuan leaned against the headboard, lighting a cigarette. Within half a cigarettes time, she got to the bottom of things with him. "Dijing Group will definitely be left to Jingyan! The thirty percent he holds as Weilians shares cant be touched, as for the forty percent in my hands..." Mrs. Bao held her breath. Bao Mingyuan said indifferently, "It will be split into five parts! Jingyan gets twenty percent! Jingse, Jingyuan, Ziqi, and Ruanruan each get five percent." Mrs. Baos face turned ashen. She couldnt believe her husband could be so heartless. She trembled her lips, "I wont argue about other things, but why does Ruanruan get shares? Even if shares were to be distributed, it should be to Minn." Bao Mingyuan flicked off some ash, "Minn and Ziqi are not even an item yet!" "But Su Ruanruan is not part of the Bao Family either." Bao Mingyuan frowned, "Ruanruan ispetent! Isnt that enough?" Mrs. Bao turned away, crying loudly. She had been his mistress and subsequently became his wife. For over 20 years, she held no position in his heart. As she cried, Bao Mingyuan couldnt be bothered with her and simply shrugged off the nket, putting on a piece of clothing, and heading downstairs. ... But in less than fifteen minutes. The Bao Mansion was brightly lit. The doctor hurried over. Bao Mingyuan, in his thin pajamas, waited at the parking area, going up to meet the doctor as he arrived. He spoke softly, "Its happened again! Causing more trouble for Doctor Tang." Chapter 329: Daddy is Here With You, Daddy is Here!

Chapter 329: Chapter 329: Daddy is Here With You, Daddy is Here!

Doctor Tang is a well-known neurologist in Jiangcheng. He is close friends with Bao Mingyuan. Carrying his medical bag, he asked while walking, "It hasnt happened for several years, how could this happen now?" A trace of pain appeared on Bao Mingyuans thin face. This was a pain beyond words. His beloved daughter, Jingse, the pride of heaven. But ever since a kidnapping incident, she has been left with a condition that makes her lock herself away whenever it strikes. Her whole body trembles. Bao Mingyuan searched high and low for famous doctors, thinking that Jingse had been improving over the years. However, just now, a servant quietly told him that the young miss had another episode. Bao Mingyuan led Doctor Tang to the second floor. He knocked on the door, his voice very gentle, "Jingse, its Dad!" Inside, there was silence. Bao Mingyuan and Doctor Tang exchanged nces. Doctor Tang lifted his chin, "Open the door! Just in case something has happened inside." Bao Mingyuan forcefully twisted the door lock. Inside the bedroom, it was dim. Only a sliver of moonlight spilled through the curtains. Bao Jingse, wearing a robe with her hair down, curled up at the head of the bed. She sped her arms around herself, murmuring for her brother. A pain struck Bao Mingyuans heart. He wanted to touch her but feared startling her, so he could only say softly, "Ive already called your brother. Hell be here soon." Bao Jingse buried her head in her arms. She trembled incessantly, her body gently convulsing. "Its my fault, Ive caused harm to brother." Bao Mingyuan was in unbearable pain. He gentlyforted his daughter, "Jingse, your brother is fine! Hesing right over." But Bao Jingse waspletely immersed in her own world. She couldnt listen to his words. Bao Mingyuan felt a loss. He said to Doctor Tang, "Give her a sedative!" Though reluctant, Doctor Tang stepped forward and together with Bao Mingyuan held Bao Jingse down. The long needle pierced into her skin. Bao Jingse struggled fiercely, shouting loudly Sweat moistened her forehead. She murmured, "Daddy... dont..." Bao Mingyuans heart was overwhelmed with pain. He cradled her head, continuallyforting, "Daddy is here with you. Good girl Jingse, Daddy is here." Bao Jingse sobbed... ... A flurry of messy footsteps sounded. Bao Jingyan quickly entered the bedroom. The room was dim, but he immediately found his way. He sat by the bed, taking Bao Jingse from Bao Mingyuans arms. By this time, Bao Jingse was powerless. She had fallen asleep. Bao Jingyan quickly realized, his eyebrows filled with gloom, "Did Jingse get a sedative?" Doctor Tang replied, "Her emotional state was very bad." Bao Jingyan didnt say anything, lowering his head to look at his sister in his arms... He and Jingse had lost their mothers protection since they were young. They supported each other until today. He felt very heartbroken for her. He asked quietly, "Isnt there a better way? Its been years, cant we find a permanent solution?" Doctor Tang dared not answer. Bao Mingyuan patted his sons shoulder, not saying anything. At this moment, light footsteps sounded again by the door. Bao Mingyuan was surprised. With Jingses condition, aside from him and Doctor Tang, others were not allowed toe close. He couldnt allow anyone to see his daughter in her wretched state. Just as he was furious and about to demand the intruder to leave. Su Ruanruan pushed the door and entered. Bao Jingyan whispered, "I asked her toe! Jingse was still talking to her yesterday. Dad, let Ruanruan see Jingse." Bao Mingyuan looked at Su Ruanruan, "What did Jingse say?" Su Ruanruan shook her head. What Jingse said, she couldnt disclose to Bao Mingyuan, her elderly father. She adjusted the bedsidemp slightly, examining Bao Jingse closely. During this, Bao Mingyuan held his breath. After Su Ruanruan put down her hands, he anxiously asked, "How is she?" Chapter 330: I Will Cure Jingse

Chapter 330: Chapter 330: I Will Cure Jingse

Su Ruanruan thought for a while before saying: "I need to sort things out properly." She said to Doctor Tang, "You are Jingses attending physician, right? Could you please show me her medical records and prescriptions?" Doctor Tang looked towards Bao Mingyuan. Bao Mingyuan nodded: "Give them to her." At that moment, Doctor Tang understood Su Ruanruans status in the Bao Family. After seeing him off, Bao Mingyuan returned to the bedroom. Bao Jingyan had already put his sister down. He sat by the bed quietly gazing at Jingse. Su Ruanruan took a towel and wiped her sweat; she was meticulous and very thoughtful, her eyes gentle. Bao Mingyuans deeply scarred heart suddenly felt somewhat healed. Fortunately, his Jingyan had found happiness. Ruanruan was not only good to Jingyan but also took care of Jingse. Bao Mingyuans eyes grew warm. After a long time, he said to them: "Go rest! Ill watch over Jingse here." Bao Jingyan thought for a moment, then agreed. They walked out of the bedroom together. When leaving, Su Ruanruan couldnt help but turn her head again. She saw Bao Mingyuan sitting by the bed, hisrge palm stroking Jingses ck hair. His look was almost heartbroken. Su Ruanruan pursed her lips and followed Bao Jingyan to his bedroom on the third floor. Just as they entered, Su Ruanruan was pinned against the door. Bao Jingyan pressed against her, his face buried in her neck. He did nothing. She knew he was sad; her fingers gently massaged his scalp, tenderly asking, "Whats wrong?" He did not speak. Su Ruanruan said again: "Jingse still needs your care! Theres also so much going on at thepany that needs your attention." Bao Jingyan chuckled hoarsely, "I always said you have the potential to be a good wife." Su Ruanruan pushed him off: "Be serious." Bao Jingyan washed his face, and his spirits lifted when he returned. Su Ruanruan brewed him a cup of fragrant tea. But Bao Jingyan took off his jacket and said, "Lets sleep." As theyy down, he was restless. Su Ruanruan nestled in his arms, feeling his heartbeat. Knowing he wasnt asleep, she quietly asked, "What happened to Jingse?" Bao Jingyan pressed her head against his, his voice deep, "When Jingse was 16, something happened... I went to find her, and we both ended up kidnapped." "They took 500,000 ransom and wereter caught by thew! But Jingse was left with a lingering illness," Bao Jingyan kissed her hair, his voice growing even lower, "Shes been much better these past few years, we thought it wouldnt recur." "She was just promoted to vice president yesterday afternoon." Bao Jingyan sighed deeply, "With this situation, she needs to rest for a while." Su Ruanruan was silent. Under the nket, her small hand tightly clutched his. After a long while, she murmured into his neck: "Bao Jingyan, I will always be by your side." Bao Jingyan hummed, turned over, and held her in his arms to sleep. After a while, he suddenly asked, "Earlier, when I was holding Jingse, were you jealous?" He thought she was asleep, but Su Ruanruan was awake. Her voice was very soft: "A little." She added, "Bao Jingyan, I will do my best to cure her! Do you believe me?" "Believe!" Bao Jingyan felt warmth flood his heart. His Ruanruan was the most dependable person in this world. ... Many people were destined to be sleepless that night. This included Mrs. Bao. Her husband had stormed out, leaving her in agony. But then she learned that Jingse had fallen ill. She almost cried fromughter... Hahaha, heaven has finally seen! That girl was Bao Jingyans right-hand; now that she was ill, it would be hard for her to reach the upper echelons of Di Jing. Her Ziqi and Jingyuan still had a chance. A scheming glint appeared in Mrs. Baos charming eyes. Taking advantage of this opportunity, she nned to remove the thorn in her side, Bao Jingse. Chapter 331 - 231: Men Work Outside, Women Manage the Home

Chapter 331: Chapter 231: Men Work Outside, Women Manage the Home

It was dawning faintly. Su Ruanruan got up. She and Bao Jingyan stood side by side in front of the floor-to-ceiling window. She was tying his necktie. Once done, she looked up and said gently, "Lets split up! You secure Jingses position at Emperor Views, and Ill take care of her illness." She was gentle and wise. A lump formed in Bao Jingyans throat, he hummed in agreement. Ultimately unable to part with her, he lowered his head and lightly pecked her lips. "Ill go to the small courtyard first," Su Ruanruan spoke softly, "Now is not a good time to go public." Bao Jingyan let go of her. Su Ruanruan quietly returned to the small courtyard, while Bao Jingyan went to check on Jingses bedroom. About an hourter, There was a stir in the Bao Family. Su Ruanruan helped the olddy to the main house, the olddy was crying sadly. "How could Jingse be so thoughtless! It has been so long already." She harshly retorted at her son: "If it werent for you driving her mother to her death, how could she end up with no one to confide in?" Bao Mingyuan stood in the corridor in his thin clothes. He nced at Su Ruanruan and guessed that she had slipped into the small courtyard early in the morning. Su Ruanruan consoled the olddy, "Medical science is advanced now; there will be a way." The olddy immediately leaned on her shoulder, "I believe you, Ruanruan! Im entrusting Jingse to you! No need for her ck-hearted father to interfere." Bao Mingyuans heart skipped a beat. The grandmothers words were not ordinary. But Su Ruanruan, anxious in her heart, hadnt noticed. Just then, Bao Jingyan came out of the bedroom. He said, "Shes awake, but not in a good mood!" He and Su Ruanruan exchanged nces, and then he calmly said, "Dad will stay with Jingse, I must go to thepany to stabilize! Also, have Doctor Tang send over the medical records as soon as possible." Bao Mingyuan understood immediately that this was the result of the young couples discussion. Man handling external affairs, woman managing internal ones. Great! Bao Mingyuan was heartened, patting Bao Jingyan on the shoulder, saying, "Jingse is not only your sister, but she is also my daughter. If anyone dares gossip, let theme to me!" Bao Jingyan nodded and went directly to thepany. Once he left, Bao Mingyuan said to Su Ruanruan: "Your aunt has been having headaches these days, the olddy is unsettled, you take charge of the house affairs for now." Su Ruanruan gave a light hum. At this time, Doctor Tangs assistant arrived. Carrying a small secure box, handed it to Bao Mingyuan. Such caution showed the protection orded to Jingse. Bao Mingyuan handed it over to Su Ruanruan, his voice hoarse and unsteady: "If theres anything unclear, call Doctor Tang directly! He is an old friend of mine and has watched Jingse grow up." Su Ruanruan nodded. Following that, everyone took to their roles. Bao Mingyuan took care of Bao Jingse. Su Ruanruan returned to the small courtyard to research those medical records and medications... The atmosphere at the Bao Family was tense and servants gossiped quietly about Miss Jingses illness. This was instigated by Mrs. Bao. She intended to tarnish Bao Jingse, ensuring she could no longer be Bao Jingyans right-hand person. In the small courtyard, Su Ruanruan also heard disgraceful remarks. She stepped out of the courtyard and called for Housekeeper Wang. Housekeeper Wang said softly, "There are a total of 42 servants in the house, most of them side with young master Jingyan, but there are still a dozen or so from that other side." He also said, "In matters of the household, as a man, young master Jingyan is awkward to interfere outright, and Miss Jingse, due to her youth... so..." Su Ruanruan nodded: "I understand." She instructed Housekeeper Wang, "Please gather all those working in the house for me, including gardeners, drivers, kitchen staff, and have them wait for me in the small courtyard." After a moments thought, she added: "And please let Uncle Bao know, tell him I need to borrow hiswyer for a bit." Chapter 332 - 232: Rest Assured, No One Objects to Su Ruanruan

Chapter 332: Chapter 232: Rest Assured, No One Objects to Su Ruanruan

She moved decisively and swiftly. Housekeeper Wang was overjoyed. Master Jingyans favoreddy indeed had capable means. Ruanruan whispered again, "Call Auntie Fu hereter, I have questions for her." Housekeeper Wang nodded. He said, "Auntie Fu is an old servant by Miss Suns side, Miss Su can trust herpletely." Ruanruan smiled faintly. She picked up the medical record to read again. Completely calm and graceful. Housekeeper Wang immediately set out to arrange things. He gathered the servants in the olddys courtyard, forming arge densely packed group. The olddy was startled. She asked Gui Zhi, "Why are all these people standing here? Is our Bao Family going to be ruined?" Gui Zhi inquired and thenughed, "Miss Su is reorganizing the household servants! I heard some gossip this morning; she wants to clean up those loose tongues!" The olddy then calmed down. Eyes on the nose, nose on the heart. After a while, she said to Gui Zhi, "Ruanruan is not a simple child, I think she can defeat the concubine." Gui Zhi tucked in the olddys nket gently, whispering softly, "Exactly, the difficult days for that person are yet toe!" ... Housekeeper Wang then found Bao Mingyuan. He conveyed Ruanruans intentions. Bao Mingyuan was very supportive and immediately made a call to summon Lawyer Wang. After hanging up, he asked Housekeeper Wang, "What kind of earth-shattering thing is Ruanruan nning to do?" Housekeeper Wang lowered his eyes and replied, "I dont know exactly, we have to wait for Miss Sus instructions." Bao Mingyuan was in a slightly better mood. He said, "Go ahead, whatever the child wants, give it to her!" Housekeeper Wang, clever as a monkey, guessed that Bao Mingyuan had acknowledged the rtionship between Master Jingyan and Miss Su, thus he followed Ruanruans orders more boldly and confidently. Thismotion naturally also rmed Madam Bao. Bao Jingyuan did not go to school. She said angrily while sitting on the sofa, "Mom, look at Su Ruanruan, shes acting like this is her own house! Look, all the servants in the house have been driven to the small courtyard, lined up in rows. Ruanruan is really throwing her weight around!" Madam Bao leisurely drank her coffee, serene and calm. She said, "She just aplished something big, shes eager to show off!" Setting down her cup, she chuckled, "All the household servants are old hands, how can she, a young girl, control them? Just wait for her to retreat when she finds it difficult." Bao Jingyuan pped her thigh. "Mom, youre right! Ruanruan is not one of our family, no one will obey her." Madam Bao lovingly said to her daughter, "Dont be such a worrywart in the future, mom still calls the shots in this house." Bao Jingyuan let out a cry and hugged her moms legs. After a while, she jumped up, "Im going to call Dad! Let him see how Su Ruanruan humiliates herself." Madam Bao did not stop her. She continued to drink her tea calmly and serenely. ... At ten-thirty in the morning. Thewyer arrived. Everything else was also ready. Housekeeper Wang came to fetch Ruanruan. Ruanruan put down the medical record and locked it in a security briefcase. Not a drop could leak out. She followed Housekeeper Wang to the small courtyard. When she arrived, the densely packed crowd stirred. Housekeeper Wang had privately informed the people on Jingyans side. But those on Madam Baos side, intentionally made noises to instigate disturbances. [Are we not working anymore?] [Yeah, making us stand here, who will cook lunch?] [Thisdy is not in charge, unaware of the essentials of life!] ... Ruanruan ignored these unpleasant words. She walked up to the temporarily set-up tform. Thewyer was already there, and Auntie Fu stood towering like a mountain. It was reassuring just to look at her. Chapter 333 - 233: Shocking! Miss Su, You Can鈥檛 Do This

Chapter 333: Chapter 233: Shocking! Miss Su, You Cant Do This

Su Ruanruan stood firm. She picked up a stack of thick paper documents and said, "There are a total of 42 employment contracts here." After she finished speaking, there was another stir below. [Is she going to fire us?] [How is that possible? She has no right! We were employed by Mr. Bao.] ... These people were audacious and fearless. Su Ruanruan smiled faintly. Auntie Fu handed her a cup of tea, "Miss Su, take a sip to moisten your throat." Su Ruanruan took a sip of tea. Putting down the teacup, she then said, "Lets not talk about whether I have the right." She picked up an ount book from the side. "Housekeeper Wang, read out the kitchens expenses from July to September for everyone." Housekeeper Wang picked it up and began to read emotionlessly. Half a momentter, the people below started to stir. [One pound of chicken thighs costs 50 yuan!] [The regr price for shrimp is actually 120, when the market price is clearly only 80!] ... [Oh my! Theres so much graft in the kitchen!] Below, a womans legs went weak. She fell down, crying out, "Miss Su, you cant do this to us!" Su Ruanruan smiled slightly, "Dont cry yet!" The womans tears and snot came to an abrupt stop. Su Ruanruan took the list from Housekeeper Wang, her elegant brows swept across it. She said, "I have looked at it, and in these three months, you have covertly taken an extra thirty to forty thousand yuan." The woman wanted to argue. But when she met Su Ruanruans gaze. She lost her nerve and lowered her head. In the past, thedy of the house turned a blind eye to her fetching small perks. But she had to listen to thedys orders and do things for her. Su Ruanruan said to Housekeeper Wang, "Pull out her employment contract from the pile." Housekeeper Wang immediately found it and handed it to her. Below, there was a sea of people, all stunned. It seemed like Auntie Lin would be the first example, to be dismissed! Auntie Lin prostrated on the ground, also believing she would lose her job. Who would have known that Su Ruanruan said to her, "Now Ill give you two choices! One is topensate for all the money embezzled over the years and then leave the Bao Family. The other is, I have another contract here with a sry three thousand yuan more per month than your current one. Sign it, and you can continue to work for the Bao Family, but you must not engage in any underhanded activities ever again." Auntie Lin was dumbstruck. So was everyone else. They thought Miss Su was clear about rewards and punishments. Who would have known that someone who made a mistake could actually get a raise. Such good fortune, who wouldnt want it? It seemed, Miss Su was a pushover! If she were the housekeeper, the domestic staff would turn the ce upside down. Just as Auntie Lin was overjoyed, Su Ruanruans delicate palm pressed down on that contract. She was young and beautiful, but her small face turned stern. Commanding without anger. That demeanor suddenly reminded the household staff of someone. Master Jingyan. When Master Jingyan got stern, his expression was exactly like this. Sure enough, Su Ruanruan continued to speak, "This contract is not to be signed with the Bao Family, but with a headhuntingpany under Mu Jiu! From now on, you must not only work diligently for the Bao Family but also ept thepanys assessments, with rewards for good work and immediate dismissal for poor performance!" She took another sip of tea: "Taking Auntie Lin as an example, her new monthly sry will be fifteen thousand, but she will have to pay three thousand yuan to thepany as a management fee." Auntie Lin immediately objected. "This is not a raise, this is clearly putting a tighter grip on me!" Su Ruanruan smiled faintly. She said indifferently, "Then terminate the contract! You are free toe and go." Others felt this was too lenient for her. But Su Ruanruan smiled lightly, "After this kind of incident, what reputable family would dare to hire you? Also, with one word from my Ninth Brother, none of the entertainment venues or restaurants in the whole Jiangcheng would dare to hire you!" Everyone understood. Miss Su was employing both carrot and stick. By acknowledging Mu Jiu, she became half the dark hidden influence! Chapter 334 - 234: Great! From now on, we鈥檒l listen to Miss Su.

Chapter 334: Chapter 234: Great! From now on, well listen to Miss Su.

Just now, those who thought Su Ruanruan was a naive sweet girl. Wished they could bite their tongues. Aunt Lin had been manipted by Su Ruanruan here and there. She had long lost her own voice. She only knew that Miss Sus offer was herst resort. "Ill sign," she clenched her teeth. Finally, she betrayed Madam Bao. Su Ruanruan lowered her gaze with a light smile, "Forgot to mention, I also have shares in this staffingpany! Which means from now on youll be reporting to me. Thepanys top rule is to not discuss the employers private affairs; if discovered, immediate termination!" Aunt Lins mouth gaped opened. She had said quite a bit this morning. Su Ruanruan tapped the contract, asking her, "Can you do it?" Aunt Lins lips trembled. She ground her teeth: "I can do it." "The reporters outside offer you benefits for information, you know what to do now?" Su Ruanruan continued. "I know! I will say Miss Jingse takes good care of us! Those who talk nonsense will have rotten tongues!" ... Su Ruanruan had won her over. She nced over the crowd and asked lightly, "As for you all, do you want to take the severance and leave the Bao Family or sign this new contract like Aunt Lin?" Below, silence reigned! They had finally seen Miss Sus tactics! Refusing to sign meant no way out in Jiangcheng. By now, Aunt Lin had already signed the contract. She breathed a sigh of relief. Su Ruanruan instructed Housekeeper Wang, "Aunt Lin has changed employers, the Bao Family should not treat her poorly! Housekeeper Wang, calcte her years of service, pay her one month for each year!" Housekeeper Wang took out a calctor. After a moment, he said, "She has worked for the Bao Family for 11 years, at 9,000 per month, thats 99,000 yuan to be paid to her." The people below were practically boiling! Almost a years sry! Just like that, given away! Miss Su is so generous! Aunt Lin was even more shocked. She thought she was in for a tough time, who knew she could suddenly receive 100,000 yuan! She couldnt believe it, but Housekeeper Wang really did open a safe. Inside, all pink banknotes! Housekeeper Wang counted out 100,000 yuan for her. Aunt Lin took the money, overjoyed. She returned to the line with the cash, whispering to her old sisters, "Follow Miss Su from now on, she calls the shots in this house." That old sister was shocked. She immediately raised her hand: "Miss Su, I also want to change my contract." fre\e(w)ebn ov.e l\. co.m The others saw this. Goodness, another one of Madam Baos people! Su Ruanruan naturally knew as well, and she said to Housekeeper Wang, "Please calcte for this person too." Housekeeper Wang crunched the numbers,ing up with 120,000 yuan. Everyone was stunned. Miss Sus way of handling things, straightforward. Money spoken of arriving instantly, unlike the general grumblings only met when payment was made. Then, everyone raised their hands. "I want to change my contract too." "Me too!" "Hehe, I was just worried about the ten-something thousand short for the down payment on my house, Miss Su really helped me out." ... The hastily arranged tform was surrounded by people. The money-counting machine whirred... The money in the safe slowly diminished. Those who took the money and signed the new contract became Su Ruanruans people. From now on, they would have to listen to Su Ruanruan. If they went against her, everyone had seen what Miss Su was capable of. Not to mention, she had Mu Jiu behind her! ... From a distance, Bao Mingyuan watched the scene. He was extremely surprised. He knew Ruanruan was capable, but he hadnt expected her to be so seasoned. One stick, one sweet date. She didnt offend anyone but instead got these crafty old hands in line. Paying out a few million, in exchange for these peoples loyalty. The reputation of his cherished Jewel, Jingse, was also safeguarded... Chapter 335 - 235: Tonight, I鈥檒l Come to Thank You

Chapter 335: Chapter 235: Tonight, Ill Come to Thank You

Su Ruanruan had finished her task, and Bao Mingyuan was waiting for her. "Well done!" Bao Mingyuan said just one sentence and then turned back, hands behind his back, to the main house. He still had Jingse to take care of. Su Ruanruan lowered her eyes, with a faint smile. She returned to the small courtyard, focusing on studying Jingses medical records. Stack upon stack. Spanning over a decade. Suddenly, Su Ruanruan felt a warmth in her eyes... she could empathize. She could understand such pain. At that moment, she scrutinized the prescriptions even more carefully... After a day of work, she naturally felt weary. In the evening, Bao Jingyan returned. He first visited Jingse, then came to the small courtyard. Su Ruanruan was still examining them closely. Bao Jingyan did not disturb her, choosing instead to go wash his face first. When he came out, Su Ruanruan had already noticed his arrival, and she asked him softly, "How is Jingse doing now?" "The same! Refuses to talk," said Bao Jingyan as he sat beside her. He nced at the medical records next to her and said softly, "Tired?" Su Ruanruan smiled lightly: "Thats nothing! Its just the domestic affairs that are really annoying." She recounted the issue with the servants. Bao Jingyan pinched her cheek, "I heard at thepany that Miss Su was impressive, quickly putting an end to the bad behavior in the house." "Who told you that?" Su Ruanruan was curious. Bao Jingyan flipped through the medical records casually, saying, "It was Housekeeper Wang who told me! He has a lot of respect for you." Su Ruanruan then fell silent. She focused again on the medical records. Bao Jingyan saw a trace of fatigue between her brows and felt distressed, "Eat some food before you continue!" Su Ruanruan softly said, "Let me finish this record first." Bao Jingyan got up, moved behind her, and began to gently massage her shoulders. He said, "Ille thank you tonight." Su Ruanruanughed, revealing a row of small white teeth. "What good stuff could I possibly have?" Bao Jingyan bent down, whispering in her ear, "Ruanruan, Ill make you happy." Su Ruanruan, showing restraint, pushed him out. But in the evening, after he had taken care of Jingse, he really dide to her bedroom. No matter how much Su Ruanruan pped or scolded, she couldnt stop him. She was pressed between the pillows by him... He paid no attention to himself, just focusing on her pleasure alone. When things quieted down, her snow-white pillow was stained with her tear marks. Her entire body was sweaty. Bao Jingyan kissed her unwillingly to leave, asking softly how she felt. Su Ruanruan raised a hand to push him, saying weakly, "Let me go wash up." Bao Jingyan carried her to the bathroom, helping her clean up. He even personally changed the bedsheets, letting her lie downfortably. As he was leaving, Su Ruanruan quietly watched him... wondering in her heart, what about him? Bao Jingyan felt her gaze and leaned down to murmur in her ear, "Tonight, I wouldnt dare trouble Miss Su." Su Ruanruan pulled up the nket, covering her face. He really has no shame! ... Meanwhile, elsewhere. Madam Bao was in a very bad mood. She had originally thought she couldpletely suppress Bao Jingse. \n(o)v.e\l After all, the girl was truly ill! But Su Ruanruan had whipped the household servants into shape, and those who used to help her now gave her a wide berth as if theyd seen a ghost. Jingses illness was also kept strictly under wraps. The same was true for thepany. Bao Jingyan, this smiling tiger, had intimidated everyone. In such argepany, everyone merely thought Jingse had been sent on a business trip. Madam Bao clenched her teeth in frustration. It was her oversight that caused her to lose such a good opportunity! But then she reconsidered! It didnt matter, Jingses chronic illness couldnt be cured. One day, when she gets married and moves to her husbands house, her illness will eventually be exposed! No matter how capable Su Ruanruan is, she wont be able to change the fated oue! Chapter 336 - 236 I Want to Take Jingse to City B

Chapter 336: Chapter 236 I Want to Take Jingse to City B

Before I knew it, several days had passed. Su Ruanruan, apart from studying medical records and pharmacology, also went to visit and take care of Jingse. Jingse rejected other people, but she was still okay with her. Bao Mingyuan was not around, so it was Su Ruanruan who wiped Jingses body. Naturally, she also saw the bruises on Jingses body. Those were the marks she made herself when she felt ufortable. Su Ruanruan felt distressed. ... She pored over those documents day and night. Without any result. All the treatments were correct. Su Ruanruan wasnt willing to give up, refused to believe in curses. She meticulously reviewed them again. Finally, she found a line of small text written by Doctor Tang after Bao Jingses first treatment. [Suggest involving a psychological therapist] Su Ruanruan looked at Doctor Tangs next treatment time. It was half a monthter. And after that, it was every one or two days. Very frequent. Su Ruanruan gently set down the medical record and took a long breath out. She finally found the crux of the problem. Su Ruanruan locked up the medical records and changed her clothes before heading out. Two hourster, she returned to Bao Mansion. She went to find Bao Mingyuan. Bao Mingyuan was looking after Bao Jingse. Su Ruanruan sat down, gently stroked Bao Jingses long hair, and spoke softly, "I have something I want to discuss with uncle." Bao Mingyuan looked at her surprised, "What is it?" Su Ruanruan said gently, "I want to take Jingse to City B! I have contacted the best psychotherapist in the country." Bao Mingyuan hesitated. He pondered for a moment and said, "In the early years, we had seen a psychotherapist, but it only made things worse." Su Ruanruan looked at him directly, "Have you ever considered that perhaps it was that treatment that has kept Jingse from getting better?" Bao Mingyuan was shocked. After a moment, he called Su Ruanruan out. In the quiet parlor, Bao Mingyuan spoke after much thought, "Ruanruan, I have seen your talents these days! I feel relieved having you by Jingyans side, but for Jingse, uncle doesnt want you to be criticized because of this." Su Ruanruans expression remained calm. Bao Mingyuan spoke frankly, "Jingse is my precious gem, but I also value Jingyans future! The Bao Family needs a presentable mistress." He cherished Jingse, but he also treated Ruanruan as his own child. Bao Mingyuan didnt want to gamble Su Ruanruans reputation for an uncertain future. Su Ruanruan understood his meaning but did not agree. She said, "Jingse is Bao Jingyans only sister! She is much more important than my reputation and dignity. Moreover, an excellent mistress is not just about maintaining superficial peace but being able to protect every member of the family." She spoke inly, "I have already made arrangements with the two uncles from the Sun Family; the private jet is also arranged." Bao Mingyuan was dumbfounded. This child was too capable. She actually managed to instruct Sun Jingan and Sun Jingyu! Bao Mingyuan thought it over and over. In the end, he still went to thepany to discuss it with his eldest son. Bao Jingyan was also surprised. But he agreed readily, he said, "Let her take Jingse with her!" Bao Mingyuan sat on the couch, nearly burning his fingers on the cigarette. He said, "Are you just going to trust her like that? Ruanruan is still a child!" Bao Jingyan poured him a cup of tea, smiling slightly, "She is Jingses sister-inw, how can she be a child? Jingse, Jingyuan, and Ziqi, they all need to listen to her!" Bao Mingyuan found himself at a loss for words! In the end, he agreed. He called Su Ruanruan, telling her his decision. Su Ruanruan nodded, "Im not going alone, Ill also need to borrow someone from uncle! This person can ensure our safety during the journey, guaranteeing there will be no danger whatsoever." Bao Mingyuan naturally assumed, "Jingyan will naturally go with you." "Not necessarily," Su Ruanruan smiled lightly, "The person I want to borrow will also need thedys approval." Chapter 337 - 237: Su Ruanruan鈥檚 Scheme Against Mrs. Bo

Chapter 337: Chapter 237: Su Ruanruans Scheme Against Mrs. Bo

Bao Mingyuan was at a loss all of a sudden. Ruanruan, whose support is she exactly seeking? Meiyu has to agree! Arent their rtions bad? He voiced it for Bao Jingyan to hear, but Bao Jingyan immediately guessed it. Just, he refused to say. ... In the evening, the Bao Family had a meeting. The grandmother, Mrs. Bao, and all the children were present. Bao Mingyuan dered his decision: "Tomorrow, Ruanruan will take Jingse to City B to see a psychologist." Mrs. Bao was shocked: "Isnt Doctor Tang treating her well? Why see a psychologist now?" She added, "She had psychological treatment years ago, didnt it worsen her condition?" Su Ruanruan smiled faintly: "City B is more developed after all, the doctors there have seen more of the world." Mrs. Bao narrowed her eyes. She absolutely could not agree. Su Ruanruan has proposed psychological treatment, could it be that she has discovered something? She looked to her husband, fervently opposing: "Ruanruan is an outsider, how can she bear such a heavy responsibility?" Bao Jingyan gave a coldugh: "Outsider?" He asked slowly: "Then may I ask you, what are you to Jingse? An insider, or an outsider?" Mrs. Bao trembled. She did not anticipate Bao Jingyan would give her no face like this. She wanted to say stepmother... But that term would only make her aughing stock. Mrs. Baos cheeks trembled, too embarrassed to step down. She forced a smile: "Jingyan, these words of yours do make me out to be an outsider." Her face showedpromise, but her heart remained as it had always been. Wanting to plot against Bao Jingse. idents can happen at any time in City B, right? Just as she was full of guile, Su Ruanruan, not bearing a grudge, helped her out of the dilemma. She feigned anger: "Big brother, thats not a fair thing to say." Bao Jingyans fingers gracefully toyed with his teacup, which was a very enticing gesture. He chuckled lightly: "Where was I unfair?" Su Ruanruan gazed at Mrs. Bao with mild eyes, saying: "Aunt is also Jingses rtive, wouldnt she care about Jingse?" Mrs. Bao was taken aback. This girl, Ruanruan, actually spoke on her behalf. However, her face indeed regained muchposure. Because Bao Jingyan actually followed on: "Then I have wronged her!" "Thats good as long as big brother understands," Su Ruanruan said softly: "Its best when a family loves and cherishes each other." Originally, Bao Mingyuan was quite moved. But listening to this, he could not bear it any longer. These two were ying a double act! And his wife, foolishly falling deeper into it! Yet, what made him more curious was who Ruanruan intended to borrow! Then, Su Ruanruan went on, "Now the family is in a difficult situation, naturally each member should contribute." She gently asked Mrs. Bao: "Aunt surely agrees, right?" Mrs. Bao proudly responded: "Of course, I watched Jingse grow up." Su Ruanruan gave a slight smile: "Then Im relieved!" She took out a boarding pass and pushed it to Mrs. Bao. Mrs. Bao, puzzled, picked it up for a look. Her expression changed instantly. "I do not agree! Ziqi cannot go to City B!" Su Ruanruan smiled faintly: "Just now, aunt said she would help!" Mrs. Bao was stunned for a moment. At this point, she understood she had been manipted by this girl. She had no choice but to seek help from her husband: "Mingyuan, how can we let Ziqi go there?" Bao Mingyuan also realized at this moment. What Ruanruan wanted to borrow was actually Ziqi. This move... quite clever. But at the same time, he could not but wonder. What went wrong with the psychological treatment years ago? And why is Ruanruan plotting against Meiyu? A scale weighed in Bao Mingyuans heart, immediately he said to his wife: "Ziqi and Jingse are siblings, shouldnt he take care of her when shes sick?" Chapter 338 - 238: Awesome! Bao Ziqi, became a hostage!

Chapter 338: Chapter 238: Awesome! Bao Ziqi, became a hostage!

Mrs. Bao was dumbfounded. Her own husband was not even helping her. Hatred and venom brewed in her heart. What difference would it make if Ziqi were with her? When the timees, even Ziqi wont be able to stop whats meant to happen! Just as she was nning, Ruanruan crisply added: "Besides me, Housekeeper Wang, and Ziqi, my ninth brother also arranged for Yan Kuan and Qin Chao to escort us. They are his trusted aides, and their skills are unmatched." After she finished speaking, she took a sip of tea. She gazed at Mrs. Bao with a smile. Mrs. Baos face turned ashen, looking extremely unpleasant. She finally understood why Ruanruan wanted to take Ziqi to City B! She was using Ziqi as a hostage! Such a venomous heart this girl has! Mrs. Bao trembled with anger. Ever since she married into the Bao Family, she had never been so humiliated. And yet, she couldnt speak out. Mingyuan also realized what was happening. His feelings were immenselyplicated. In the midst of this tension, Bao Ziqi softly said, "Ill just make a trip." He added, "Both Jingse and Ruanruan are women; many things are inconvenient for them. Its best if a man from the family goes." Mingyuan was very reassured. He patted his second son on the shoulder, "Good job, Ziqi, you know how to take care of your sisters." Bao Ziqi gave a faint smile. Mrs. Baopletely broke down. Her foolish son, how could he possibly understand Ruanruans sinister intentions! She was powerless to change the situation. Back in her bedroom, she burst into inconsble tears, hoping to win back her husbands heart. Mingyuan was distressed and agitated. He tugged at his shirt buttons and questioned her: "If you didnt have ulterior motives, why would you be afraid of Ziqi going there?" fr\(e)ew(e)b.(n)o (v)(e)l Mrs. Bao was at a loss for words. Mingyuan took a step forward, "And the psychologist from ten years ago, you introduced them, right? You know very well whether there was a problem!" Mrs. Bao copsed onto the bed. Indeed, Mingyuan was suspicious of her. But she was not afraid. She had long ago paid that person to hide their identity. Tears streaking down her face, Mrs. Bao protested, "Mingyuan, how could I do anything to harm Jingse? You are wronging me. If you dont believe me, you can find that person and confront them." She spoke with finality. Mingyuan was helpless. He sped his wifes waist, his dark eyes fixed on her as he said each word distinctly, "This time, if anything at all goes wrong with the kids Jingse and Ruanruan in City B, Ziqi wont be able to escape responsibility, understand?" Mrs. Bao was momentarily stunned. She realized her husband did not trust her. A subtle rift had appeared between them. She tried to seduce him again. Unfortunately, Mingyuan was not in the mood. His whole heart was with Jingse. When his child is sick, what father has the heart to be intimate with his wife? He turned and left. Mrs. Bao felt utterly hollow. Her beautiful face still wet with tears. Her husband no longer loved her! ... Second floor. The gloomy bedroom. Jingse refused toe out and wouldnt switch on the lights. Ruanruan had the kitchen prepare a bowl of century egg and lean pork congee, and she personally brought it to the bedroom. Inside, Jingyan was keeping his sisterpany. Ruanruan brought over the congee and served a small bowl. She said, "You havent eaten much all day, lets have some congee." Jingse looked at her. Her gaze was unlike usual. Ruanruan treated her the same as before: "Here, Jingse sister, drink it yourself." She ced the congee in Jingses hands. The temperature of the porridge was just right, neither hot nor cold. It wasforting and warm. Jingse pressed both her lips together; they were very dry. Ruanruan took a towel to wipe her sweat and softly said, "After drinking the congee, lets take a bath, and tomorrow Ill take you out for some fresh air." Jingse shook her head: "I dont want to go out!" Chapter 339 - 239 Bao Jingyan, You鈥檙e Not Allowed to be Jealous

Chapter 339: Chapter 239 Bao Jingyan, Youre Not Allowed to be Jealous

Su Ruanruan spoke cheerfully: "I brought bodyguards! You know about Yan Kuan and Qin Chao, right? Theyre both capable aides of my Ninth Uncle. Yan Kuan can break a stick with his bare hands, and Qin Chao is even more impressivehe can take on eight foes single-handedly without breaking a sweat!" Bao Jingse didnt believe it: "Are they really that amazing?" "Ill have them give a demonstration in front of you tomorrow," Su Ruanruan said as she picked up a bowl and started feeding her. One bite after another. Bao Jingse was very cooperative. Su Ruanruan added, "But theres someone even more impressive." Naturally curious, Bao Jingse asked, "Who?" ncing towards Bao Jingyan, Su Ruanruan said, "Your brother! Hes really something. He gave Qin Chao a pretty hard time!" She exaggerated the story of what happened in the basement. Afterward, she asked, "Jingse, do you think you still need to worry about him?" Bao Jingse then looked at Bao Jingyan. Bao Jingyan coughed lightly and said, "Su Ruanruan, thats enough." It had been a long time since he had called her Su Ruanruan. Hearing it now sounded rather intimate. Bao Jingses look was indescribable. Su Ruanruan patted her shoulder lightly: "Jingse, sister said yes, so were going to City B to have fun tomorrow!" Bao Jingse remained silent. Su Ruanruan felt a bit nervous. Fearing she would refuse. After a while, Bao Jingse finally spoke, "If you go, Ill go." Su Ruanruan let out a sigh of relief, exchanging a look with Bao Jingyan. There was a mutual understanding in their gazes. Back at the small courtyard. Bao Jingyan wanted to properly thank her again. Su Ruanruan stopped him, whispering reproachfully, "Stop it, I have something to tell you." Bao Jingyan had to sit on the sofa and asked, "Is it about Ziqi?" Su Ruanruan sat beside him, speaking softly, "Youre not allowed to get jealous! And definitely no settling scores with me afterwards!" "Am I that petty?" Bao Jingyan asked her back. Su Ruanruan stayed quiet. She just pursed her lips and smiled. Bao Jingyan pulled her into his arms, tormenting her thoroughly. She melted in his embrace. Listening to the thumping of his heart. Bao Jingyan looked down tenderly and said, "When I heard you were going to City B yesterday, I had this n in mind." "Really?" Su Ruanruan was skeptical. Bao Jingyan pinched her nose, "Shouldnt you be moved that our hearts are in sync?" Su Ruanruan pushed his hand away. She was bashfully contrary: "Whos in sync with you?" His mind was filled with those ideas all day long. She certainly didnt want them! Seeing her blush, Bao Jingyan could roughly guess what was on her mind. He whispered in her ear, "Not thinking about it doesnt make one a man!" He coaxed her further, "Ruanruan, I dont believe youve never fantasized about it!" "I havent!" Su Ruanruans face was burning up. She shooed him away. Bao Jingyan left with a low chuckle, knowing his teasing wasnt meant to be taken seriously. She was still young, and with the family in disarray now, he felt it wouldnt be respectful. The source of this is It would be unfair to her. No sooner had Bao Jingyan left than Housekeeper Wang came crouching over. He said, "Miss Su, the eldest of the Su Family wishes to see you." Su Ruanruan was tidying up her clothes and paused upon hearing this. Housekeeper Wang continued, "If Miss Su doesnt want to see him, I can send him away." Su Ruanruan stopped him, "Let him wait for me in the small parlor." Housekeeper Wang went to take care of it. Su Ruanruan packed her luggage and changed into an outfit for receiving guests. Upon arriving at the small parlor, Su Ruanruan was taken aback. Havent seen him for a few days, Su Minghua looked haggard beyond words. She personally poured him a cup of tea and asked, "Big brother, is business not going well?" Su Minghua opened his mouth. But he didnt utter a word for a long while. Having a rough guess, Su Ruanruan smiled subtly, "Big brother, if you acknowledge me as your sister, you can talk to me. If not, we still have a second brother and a third sister at home who can help." Chapter 340 - 240: The Truth! Have You Forgotten How Your Second Uncle Died?

Chapter 340: Chapter 240: The Truth! Have You Forgotten How Your Second Uncle Died?

Su Minghua pped his thigh. He said, "Your second brother has gone abroad and cant help! Your third sister has a grudge against me for not marrying Song Wei, and she doesnt think highly of me." As he spoke, the man actually burst into tears. Su Ruanruan took out a handkerchief to help him wipe them away. She gently said, "Its normal for siblings to have some conflicts! Your third sister cares about you." Su Minghua grabbed her hand: "Ruanruan, now only you can help me." Su Ruanruan calmly pulled her hand away and picked up a cup of tea to drink. "Just speak out, big brother." Su Minghuas lips moved and finally, he spoke. "I want to borrow twenty or thirty million for an emergency." Su Ruanruan was taken aback. "Big brother, didnt you still have seventy millionst time! How could it... be all spent?" Su Minghua felt embarrassed. He confided in her. "I want Song Wei toe back, I want her to look up to me! If I win big money, Ill have the confidence to pursue Song Wei again. Who knew that not only did I lose the seventy million, but I also ended up owing over ten million!" Hearing this, Su Ruanruan sighed lightly. "Big brother, how foolish! Its always been about putting money in there, never about taking money out." Su Minghua, who used to be a learned man, could hardly sit still. He was extremely ashamed. And he was afraid that Su Ruanruan would look down on him and refuse to help. Little did he know, Su Ruanruan was very nostalgic. She went to get a check of twenty million. She ced it in Su Minghuas hands, saying tenderly, "Take this money and pay back what you owe! Never gamble again in the future." Su Minghua was so moved that he was nearly sobbing. "Ruanruan, you really are... I..." Su Ruanruan patted the back of his hand, "What are you talking about! You are my big brother." She added, "After paying back the money, go buy some new clothes! Work hard in the hospital, and dont worry about not making it." Su Minghua sighed. He held the money and left cheerfully. Su Ruanruans face slightly darkened. She didnt want to be utterly ruthless towards Su Minghua. These twenty million, consider it apensation for his broken marriage. But if he didnt learn his lesson and still went to gamble, then no one else could be med. * Meanwhile, Su Minghua, having taken the money, Immediately went home and took a bath. He changed into a fine checkered suit. He looked nothing like the embarrassment he was before. Whistling, he came down the stairs, twirling the BMW car keys in his hand. Downstairs, Su Qionglin was sitting on a fancy sofa. Her face was gloomy: "Did you get this money from Su Ruanruan?" Correct content is on f(r)eew(e)bnovel.(c)o(m) Su Minghua chuckled lightly: "You didnt want to lend me money, and you dont want Ruanruan to be good to me either?" Su Qionglin scoffed coldly: "Big brother, wake up. Ruanruan, with all her scheming, would be good to us?" Su Minghua retorted: "Ruanruan is very pure! Dont talk nonsense." He looked suspiciously at his sister: "Could it be that youre jealous of Ruanruan? Well, it makes sense. Ruanruan now lives in luxury, decked out in gold and silver, of course youre ufortable!" Su Qionglin snapped, "Have you forgotten how our second uncle died?" Su Minghua covered her mouth. His voice was harsh: "Nobody else knows about this matter." He warned: "Ruanruan doesnt know either! As long as she doesnt know, she will continue to care deeply for our family." Su Qionglinughed in exasperation: "You still think shes the young little sister!" She spoke slowly and emphatically: "In the Bao Family, she has secured her position step by step! What do you think she relies on?" "Is it really just because shes the Gu Familys precious daughter?" "Have you not seen her status surpassing that of Mrs. Bao?" ... Su Minghua felt irritated after listening. He waved his hand: "The old man always said, whoever can help the Su Family, is the guest of honor in our home." Su Qionglin was livid. Why does no one in this family trust her? Su Ruanruan was out to harm the Su Family! No, she had to do something, to show the family who was truly reliable! Chapter 341: Just One Word, Play!

Chapter 341: Chapter 341: Just One Word, y!

Early the next morning. Su Ruanruan took Bao Jingse north to City B. The servants of the Bao Mansion were tight-lipped, not a word leaked out. Su Ruanruan had informed the two uncles from the Sun family in advance, who approved special treatment. Thus, their journey went smoothly. Within the private jet, the front and back were divided. There were areas for male and female guests, respectively. Bao Jingse was still not in good spirits, wearing sunsses. She didnt talk to anyone else. But the mere fact she was willing to leave home was already quite rare. She also met Yan Kuan and Qin Chao, referred to by Su Ruanruan, indeed two burly men. The sort that could knock down two men with one punch each. Her heart felt a little more at ease. Su Ruanruan had put on a movie, about to watch together. fre(e)webnove.l.c.om Then Bao Ziqi appeared. He was dressed in a ck casual sweater, with coffee-colored trousers beneath. Refreshingly handsome, yet his face was expressionless. "Su Ruanruan, I have something to ask you." Bao Jingse frowned. Su Ruanruan patted her gently: "Ill talk to Ziqi for a moment ande right back." Bao Jingse looked at the two muscr men and felt very reassured. Su Ruanruan and Bao Ziqi went to the rear of the ne. On this trip, Su Ruanruan intended to get along well with him. She spoke in a gentle tone: "Whats up, is something the matter?" Bao Ziqi knew what his "position" was this time. He hated her ruthless heart. Yet secretly, he was delighted. He asked her with a cold voice: "Going to City B, what arrangements do you have?" Su Ruanruan was very patient: "Well stay in a hotel vi, and apart from necessary outings, well solve everything like dining within the vi." "Arent you afraid Ill run away?" Bao Ziqi asked sarcastically. Su Ruanruan smiled faintly. She deliberately asked him: "Would you run?" Bao Ziqi was infuriated. He put both hands in his pockets and walked back to his seat. The flight attendant poured him a ss of Romantikonny. He downed it as if it were in water. Yan Kuan and Qin Chao, sitting opposite him, exchanged a nce. Yan Kuan said: "Miss Su really has a way. Even a great artist has been brought along as a hostage." Qin Chaoughed naively: "Miss Su said the young master Bao is here as a guest." ... Bao Ziqis mood worsened. ... Two hourster, the private jetnded at the North Airport of City B. Sun Jingan arranged for a car to take them to the vi. The two uncles from the Sun family and their wife had nned toe and visit. Su Ruanruan declined politely. She said on the phone: "Maybe in a few days!" Sun Jingan nodded: "Treatment is the priority!" He was concerned about Jingse, so he asked Su Ruanruan about the treatment n. Su Ruanruan gave him one word: "y." Sun Jingan held the phone, lost in thought for quite a while. After a moment, he asked his wife: "Are young people these days different from our time?" Correct content is on freew.ebnovel.c om. His wife hung up the phone for him,ughing: "Are you worried? Bao Mingyuan was willing to entrust his lively daughter to Ruanruan." Speaking of this, Sun Jingan said irritably: "Thats cheap for him!" He shared with his wife the news of Bao Ziqi apanying them. His wife also expressed admiration: "This child, she truly has strategies." She massaged her husbands shoulders, speaking softly: "With such a wife for Jingyan, arent you happy?" Sun Jingan patted the back of her hand: "Of course, I am happy." Afterwards, he sighed with emotion: "Back in the day, if Weilian had half the strategies Ruanruan has, she wouldnt have let that woman gain the upper hand." He was in a bad mood. His wife, understanding of his feelings, rested her head against his. She whispered softly: "Weilian was kind and has umted blessings for her children! Heaven sent Ruanruan to Jingyan and Jingse, with her around, you can rest assured." Sun Jingan looked at her: "Can ying really cure the illness?" His wife smiled warmly: "Thats a question for Ruanruan! I certainly dont understand medical reasoning." Chapter 342: Bao Jingyan, Actually Changed His Temperament?

Chapter 342: Chapter 342: Bao Jingyan, Actually Changed His Temperament?

Just like Sun Jingan. Everyone thinks that Su Ruanruan is unreliable. Can ying cure an illness? Can it address the root problem? Bao Mingyuan, the old father in Jiangcheng, holds no hope. He said to his eldest son, "Lets just consider that Ruanruan is taking Jingse out to rx." Though, the scale of it has been quiterge. And so have the owed favors. But the kids are happy! And thats what matters. Secretary Dong poured coffee for both BOSSes then left. There was no one around. Bao Mingyuan then said to Bao Jingyan, "Thanks to you in thepany, youve shut those people up." As a father, he has more concerns. "Others her age are already discussing marriage..." free\NovelFire.c o(m) Yet his Jingse, due to her illness, has never experienced even a single romance. Bao Mingyuan felt sorry for his daughter. Bao Jingyan replied indifferently, "She doesnt want to marry, keeping her at home hasnt been bad." Bao Mingyuan sighed lightly, "But what about after Im gone a hundred years from now!" "Dont worry, Ruanruan and I will continue to take care of her," Bao Jingyan took a sip of coffee. Bao Mingyuan widened his eyes. Shameless! Who agreed to you and Ruanruan being together? ... For several days. News came from City B. Su Ruanruan was indeed traveling around with Jingse. However, she was very careful, the ces they went had good security. Jingse was very happy. Su Ruanruan also took many photos with her and sent them to Bao Mingyuan. Bao Mingyuan, showing them off to Bao Jingyan, said, "Jingyan, Ruanruan didnt send photos to you, right?" Bao Jingyan was reviewing documents. He nced at his father, who looked like he found a treasure, and snickered. "She sent me a special version." He casually threw his phone over. Bao Mingyuan took a look. Indeed, the photos on it appeared much more intimate. Bao Mingyuan felt a bit upset, he secretly transferred those photos to his own phone... At night. Back at the Bao Mansion. During dinner, the grandma asked, "Has Jingses illness gotten any better?" "Just a few days, how can it be so fast!" Bao Mingyuanughed. The grandma sighed. She asked about the doctors and specific treatment ns. Bao Mingyuan didnt know what to say. Bao Jingyan outright told the grandma, "Theres no treatment n, shes just having fun!" The grandma oh-ed. She turned to Gui Zhi and said, "Having fun is good too! Jingse is just too tense! Let Ruanruan take her to have a good time." Madam Bao listened. And was relieved. Shed thought Su Ruanruan was acting mysterious, holding some big secret. Turns out, she just had a selfish desire to go out and have fun. And even used a private jet, satisfying her vanity. Madam Bao leisurely sipped her tea, saying softly, "With Ziqi here, mom, you can rest easy." The grandma didnt pay her much attention. In the midst of talking. A servant from the family came over and whispered to Bao Jingyan: "The elder young master from the Su Family is here looking for Miss Su." Bao Jingyan stood up. He went to meet Su Minghua. Still the richly decorated small parlor. Su Minghua was even more nervous, he couldnt even sit. At that moment, the Carved Gold Bronze Door suddenly opened. Su Minghua looked up. Then, his face turned pale. It wasnt Ruanruanit was the same fearsome King Yan he had met before. Bao Jingyan! Light blue shirt, grey trousers. Very much the corporate elite. But Su Minghua had seen his methods before; this young master Bao was cut from the same cloth as Lord Mu Jiu. He instinctively wanted to leave. But Bao Jingyan, contrary to his usual manner, Was very polite and gentle. "Its big brother Su." Bao Jingyan sat down in the main seat of the sofa, then gestured. A servant brought some fine tea. Of course, including one for Su Minghua. This reception made Su Minghua tongue-tied. He was lost for words. Bao Jingyan tapped lightly on his teacup, his slender phoenix eyes lifting slightly: "Big brother, why dont you take a seat?" Chapter 343: Promoting Immorality and Leading to Crime

Chapter 343: Chapter 343: Promoting Immorality and Leading to Crime

Su Minghua shivered. Has the young master of the Bao Family changed his personality today? He suspected him of harboring ill intentions. Bao Jingyan spoke slowly: "Looking for Ruanruan?" Su Minghua quickly nodded: "Yes, yes, may I ask if its convenient to call her over?" Bao Jingyan lowered his head to drink tea. Setting down the teacup, he finally said: "Ruanruan has gone to City B to have fun." Su Minghua froze. He muttered: "Such bad luck, she went to City B." He stood up dispiritedly, ready to take his leave. Bao Jingyan seeing that he had troubled him enough, rxed his tone: "However, Ruanruan did leave a message before she left." Su Minghua quickly asked: "What did she say?" Bao Jingyan patted his trousers and said: "She said if Big Brother Sues looking, to treat him with courtesy." Su Minghua was deeply moved and murmured: "She really keeps me in her heart." His eyes were eager. Yet, he couldnt bring himself to speak in front of Bao Jingyan. How could Bao Jingyan not know? He took out a check from his wallet and said: "This is from Ruanruan for you." Su Minghuas eyes showed greed. And a desperate craziness. He hastily took it and saw. It was ten million. His hands shook, not knowing what to do! He kept muttering: "I always said Ruanruan sincerely cares for the Su Family." He thanked Bao Jingyan and was about to rush off. Bao Jingyan called out to stop him. Su Minghua turned around stiffly. He feared this young master Bao. Bao Jingyan still sat on the carved French sofa, looking noble. He smiled slightly: "Ruanruan also asked me to tell you to take care of yourself." Su Minghua felt ashamed and embarrassed. He quietly said thanks and then turned into the night. Bao Jingyan sat alone drinking the rest of his half cup of fragrant tea. After a moment, he gave a cold smile. Su Minghua is indeed, unable to change his ways! Just as expected, he wille again! ... Indeed, two dayster Su Minghua came over. ) Bao Jingyan didnt say much, just gave him ten million each time. Later, it became twenty million, thirty million... Within about ten days, it had umted to slightly over a hundred million. And the creditor on the IOU was Bao Jingyan, this live King Yan! Bao Jingyan called and told Ruanruan. She was silent for a long time before softly saying: "Hes beyond saving." Thats fine; she just had some questions to ask him anyway. Ruanruan hung up the phone, her delicate eyebrows furrowed. Behind her, Bao Ziqis hands were in his pockets. He emotionlessly asked her: "Where are we going today? I heard Universal Studios is quite fun." Ruanruan came back to her senses. She looked at Bao Ziqi. His face showed impatience. Factually, he had more fun than anyone! Ruanruan sighed lightly: "Today we are going to a bar!" Bao Ziqi was startled. Just then, a knock on the door sounded. Ruanruan went to open the door. Outside, the hotel attendant carried severalrge bags: "Miss Su, the clothes you ordered have arrived." Ruanruan took them and closed the door. She rummaged through the bags and handed one to Bao Ziqi. "You try these on to see if they fit!" She added: "We leave at 9:30 sharp tonight." Bao Ziqi red at her. He returned to his bedroom and pulled out the contents of the bag. ck skinny trousers, a low-cut ck shirt. Wearing it looked extremely provocative! He gritted his teeth and was about to go find her to argue. But as the door opened. He was stunned. Bao Jingse was wearing a ck strapless mini dress, her long ck hair styled into loose curls. With a height of 172 cm, her exposed legs were straight and slender. Extremely sexy. Bao Ziqi had never seen Jingse dressed like this. He looked again at Ruanruan. Her attire was also shockingly immodest. Wine-red slip dress, with a very slim waist. Exposing her white back. The gap between her dress hem and her high heels revealed tender legs. Temptingly criminal. Chapter 344: Must Watch! Refreshing! Recovery!

Chapter 344: Chapter 344: Must Watch! Refreshing! Recovery!

At the entrance of the hotel vi. A ck Lincoln luxury MPV is parked. The door slides open, and two muscr men in ck step out. Yan Kuan, Qin Chao. Their tight suits entuated theirrge pectorals. ???????????????????????.?????? Su Ruanruan is satisfied. Quite imposing. Yan Kuan gets very into his role: "Miss Bao, Young Master Bao, Miss Su, please get in the car." Bao Ziqi is exceedingly gentlemanly. He helps the twodies into the vehicle, hand on their waists. The two bodyguards follow them in. Inside the luxury MPV, limited edition perfume, 82 Lafite. Everywhere exudes opulence. Bao Jingse is slightly nervous. But Su Ruanruan pretends not to notice, sighing softly, "Ive never been to a nightclub before, I want to see what its like." Bao Jingse hesitates, wanting to say more. But Bao Ziqi seems to sense something. He gazes at Su Ruanruan thoughtfully. His look is tender and lingering. ... About half an hourter, the car stops in front of the biggest nightclub in City B. The doorman sees the license te. Immediatelyes forward and respectfully opens the car door. What you see are three attractive men and women stepping out, followed by two husky men. Very high-profile, arrogant! ... Another hour passes. Sun Jingan and Sun Jingyu receive a phone call. Ha, the Jingyan family is causing trouble in the nightclub with their niece, getting into a big fight. Its said that even that meek artist born to the second wife joined the fray. Sun Jingan is furious. These kids are revolting! Isnt River City enough for them to run amok in? Now theyre causing trouble in City B. Sun Jingan goes to bail them out at the police station while calling Bao Mingyuan. Gives him a thorough scolding. Bao Mingyuan feels very wronged. Ruanruan went to City B with your approval, oh great one. The private jet, the hotel, wasnt that all on you? You said it was to show some heart for the kids. Now you turn your back over a little brawl? Bao Mingyuan hangs up the phone. After some thought. Hes made up his mind. Still the same old thing, as long as the kids are happy, thats good! Anyway, Ruanruan has plenty of ways to deal with that old codger Sun Jingan! ... Bao Mingyuan pretends to be oblivious. With Jingse in Ruanruans hands, he is very reassured. No news from Ruanruan means all is stable. But when his wife hears the news, she gets both angry and anxious. Sheins to her husband, "Su Ruanruan is really out of control, taking Jingse and Ziqi to a nightclub and getting into a fight." Bao Mingyuan leans on the head of the bed smoking. His eyes lift upon hearing the news: "Whats wrong with nightclubs?" He hums, "With those two bodyguards from Mu Jiu, they wont suffer." Madame Bao is extremely angry. But then she thinks it over. Good, with Su Ruanruan busy ying around, she wont get anything substantial done! Wait until Jingse has another episode, lets see what face shell have then! She settles down and earnestly tends to her husband. Bao Mingyuan has been worried about Jingses issuestely and hasnt had any intimate moments for a long while. He is in his prime and has needs. His wife is beautiful and gentle, taking the initiative, and he quickly loses control... With a roll over, he enjoys himself to the fullest. * An intense session of passion. They dont wake up until noon the next day. After eating something, he goes to thepany. Thinking about sharing intimacy with his wife in the evening, Sun Jingans calles through again. "Bao Mingyuan, are you going to discipline your kids or what?" Bao Mingyuan rolls out of bed. His tone carries the irritation of being interrupted. "What now? Surely those kids havent hit the nightclubs again?" Sun Jingan curses fiercely. "Why not?" "Right now, get to City B and take them back!" ... Bao Mingyuan hangs up the phone. He tells Madame Bao, "They got into another fight and got taken in." Madame Bao rejoices secretly. Su Ruanruan, raised in a humble family, just cant seize opportunities. Instead of reproaching her in front of her husband, she says, "Its good for the children to let off some steam after being repressed for so long." Bao Mingyuan is very pleased. He says, "Youve finallye around." With such interactions, the affection between husband and wife recovers considerably. Madame Bao, while attending to her husband, feels like everything is under her control. In a few days, shell regain her husbands trust. After several days of repetition, Bao Mingyuan receives anotherte-night call from Sun Jingan. He says impatiently, "Alright, alright, Ille pick them up tomorrow." But Sun Jingan doesnt speak for a long while. Bao Mingyuan thinks, is Sun Jingan so angry hes speechless? Has Ruanruan caused a huge disaster? Just as hes about to plead and smooth things over, Sun Jingan speaks in an extremelyposed tone, "After expert examination, Jingse is fully recovered from her illness." Chapter 345: Ruanruan, what did you just call Jingyan?

Chapter 345: Chapter 345: Ruanruan, what did you just call Jingyan?

Bao Mingyuan waspletely stunned. He asked in disbelief, "What did you say?" Sun Jingan tried to remain as calm as possible: "Ive consulted the best psychological specialists for Jingse, and all the data indicates that her mental illness is cured." Bao Mingyuans voice trembled: "Jingan, I really thank you this time." He then said, "I owe you a big favor." Sun Jingan said directly: "If you want to thank someone, thank Ruanruan. That kid is bold yet meticulous, very assertive." Bao Mingyuan couldnt care less about being affectionate with his wife. He quickly threw on a coat and rushed downstairs to tell his grandmother the news in the courtyard. Bao Jingyan was already there. The olddy and Gui Zhi were crying together in a bundle of emotions. Bao Mingyuan said softly, "Its good news, why is the olddy crying?" The olddy wiped her tears, "Mind your own business! Im just happy inside." She went on, "I always thought that Jingse would still be unwell on the day of my death, but who knew that a savior woulde to our home and rescue Jingse just like that." The olddy was happier than on her birthday. She stood up shakily and said, "Quick, quick, quick, I want to set off firecrackers." "Olddy, its not New Years Day." "Isnt today even happier than New Years Day?" Bao Mingyuan then instructed Housekeeper Wang to prepare them. In the end, it was Bao Jingyan who personally set off the fireworks, a total of one million sts. At Bao Mansion, the sound of the fireworks was thunderous. The servants, not knowing the reason, all came to join the excitement. The olddy was happy and gave the order. "Theres a joyous asion in the house! Give each person 18,000." The servants were overjoyed. Someone mentioned, "This must be Miss Sus age." The olddy beamed with joy: "You are quick-witted." Bao Mingyuan was also excited. Rubbing his hands together, he said to his eldest son, "No, I must make a trip to City B." He wanted to personally bring the children back. Bao Jingyan smiled lightly: "How about I go! And I can stop by to thank my uncle while Im there." After some thought, Bao Mingyuan agreed. He patted his shoulder and said generously, "Go and have fun for a few days! Ruanruan has worked hard during this period, make sure to thank her properly." Bao Jingyan smiled with a deep significance. That night, Empire Scenery arranged a charter flight. Direct to City B. There, City B was bustling all night long. Su Ruanruan and Bao Jingse were at Sun Jingans house. Sun Jingyu and his wife, along with their children, also came to join in the fun. The Sun brothers admired Su Ruanruan tremendously but still had to maintain their demeanor. Sun Jingan asked her, "How did you cure this illness?" Su Ruanruan ced her hand on Bao Jingses hand, and smiled slightly. She said, "I have to start from ten years ago." She revisited her suspicions and concluded, "Back then, a psychologist used hypnosis to imnt suggestions in Sister Jingse, causing her to feel guilty towards Bao Jingyan all these years, and thats why she frequently fell ill. This time I found an outstanding psychologist, who tailored the treatment and used hypnosis again to remove Sister Jingses psychological shadows." Bao Jingse pursed her lips slightly. She was also frightened in retrospect. At that time, she was only 16. And she had been persecuted by someone. Sun Jingan and Sun Jingyu were furious. Especially Sun Jingan, his tone ice-cold: "I can guess who was behind it." Su Ruanruan helplessly said, "Physical and witness evidence, Im afraid have been dealt with a long time ago." Sun Jingan was a person of status; he called over his secretary and murmured a few instructions. Su Ruanruan overheard some of it. She did not interject. After Sun Jingan took care of the matter, he suddenly gave her a smile. He teasingly said: "Ruanruan, what did you call Jingyan just now? Bao Jingyan... isnt it a bit too formal?" Chapter 346 Call Me Husband!

Chapter 346: Chapter 346 Call Me Husband!

Su Ruanruan was taken aback. How did the topic end up on her? The elders of the Sun Family were all looking at her with smiles. Mrs. Sun Jingan even teased, "Youve drunk our daughter-inw tea and epted the ceremonial gifts, and met the parents, shouldnt you call him Jingyan at least?" She nced around yfully, "I dont believe Jingyan has no opinions on this." Su Ruanruan blushed. She remembered something. Once in bed, he had left her in turmoil. She murmured his name lowly, but Bao Jingyan whispered in her ear. "Call me husband." Su Ruanruan, reserved as she was, naturally refused. But he persuaded her that night, persistently until she called him so. Now, it was brought up unintentionally by others. Su Ruanruan felt shy. All her cleverness was not enough. Bao Jingse helped her out of the awkward moment. "Ruanruan is ten years younger than my elder brother! Calling Jingyan makes her sound older." Both Mrs. Sun Jingan and Mrs. Sun Jingyu, being women, nodded in agreement. At that moment, Bao Jingse added, "Calling him elder brother sounds too old! Ruanruan, you should call him brother! Its endearing and unique." Su Ruanruan became even shyer. Mrs. Sun Jingan couldnt stopughing. She said to everyone, "Jingse is joking now." Bao Jingse looked at her gently. After leaving the Sun Family and getting into the car, she held Su Ruanruans hand. "Ruanruan, youve given me a second chance at life." Su Ruanruan held her hand back. ... Back at the hotel vi. Bao Ziqi was sitting on the sofa, seemingly waiting for them. Bao Jingse checked the time. It was already 11 PM. She sincerely said, "Ziqi, thank you for apanying me this time." Bao Ziqi was very gracious, "Youve just recovered, best to rest early." Bao Jingse nodded. Bao Ziqi then said he needed to make a trip to City C. After saying this, his gaze shifted towards Su Ruanruan. It seemed he had something to say. Knowing he had always liked Ruanruan, Bao Jingse let them talk and first went upstairs. The spacious living room. Now only Bao Ziqi and Su Ruanruan were left. Bao Ziqi walked towards Su Ruanruan. A step away, he stopped. He looked down at her, his voice husky, "Really want to marry into this family?" Su Ruanruan found it hard to reply. Bao Ziqiughed self-deprecatingly. He then said to her, "Su Ruanruan, if one day my mother is at your mercy, could you please be lenient towards her?" His voice was low and sad, "Consider it for my sake!" Su Ruanruan wanted to speak. But he interrupted her, "You know what I mean!" Su Ruanruan understood. Many times, Bao Ziqi could have been ruthless towards her. But he wasnt; he was always awkward around her. He never truly hurt her, rather, he had helped her a lot. Finally, Su Ruanruan spoke with difficulty, "If she does no wrong, I naturally wont make things difficult for her." Bao Ziqi smiled faintly. He picked up a suitcase from the side. Su Ruanruan was surprised, "Youre leaving now?" Bao Ziqi gave her a deep look and without responding, he just pulled the suitcase and left. At the doorstep, a ck sedan was waiting. Su Ruanruan suddenly felt sad. She had been indeed not very friendly to him. But she would never try to reconcile; that would only hurt him more. Su Ruanruan was troubled. She returned to the bedroom. On the bedside, there was a delicate paper box. And a card. It had only one sentence: Dont worry! Jingse has one too. Su Ruanruan knew it was from Bao Ziqi; she opened it to see. Inside, there was a pair of beautiful pearl earrings. They werent extremely expensive. But they suited her very well. Su Ruanruan knew she would never wear them, just as she was about to close it A pair of strong arms embraced her from behind, the pure masculine scent enveloping her. Mixed with the familiar scent of aftershave. "Bao Jingyan." She wanted to turn around. But he held her tightly, his voice hoarse and raspy, "Did you miss me?" Chapter 347 What if We Have a Child by Accident?

Chapter 347: Chapter 347 What if We Have a Child by ident?

Su Ruanruan inexplicably recalled the incident that had just urred at the Sun Familys home. Then she remembered having called out "husband." She was extremely shy. Hisrge hand was restlessly caressing her waist. Su Ruanruan held him down and turned her head to ask softly, "How did you end uping over?" Bao Jingyan had no interest in answering that. While exercising his rights as a boyfriend, he said absently, "I missed you, so I came." Su Ruanruan felt that he should visit Jingse first. But Bao Jingyan said, "Ive watched her grow up! It wont bete to see her tomorrow." He gently pushed her. Su Ruanruan raised her head to look at him. Her eyes were moist and captivating. Innocent yet tantalizing. Bao Jingyan started unbuttoning his shirt and unbuckling his belt. Clothes fell to the floor... * Afterwards, he leaned against the headboard and smoked. Su Ruanruan didnt stop him. She snuggled in his arms, sleepy and drowsy. But Bao Jingyan wouldnt let her sleep; he wanted her to talk with him. He said he missed her. Su Ruanruan nestled in his arms, retorting softly, "Then why did you still do that!" "That part missed you even more." He kissed her. Then he reached over with one hand and picked up the delicate box. Opened it, chic earrings inside. Su Ruanruan hurriedly exined: "Jingse also has a pair." Bao Jingyans expression was half-mocking. As ifughing at her attempt to cover the truth. Su Ruanruans face turned red, and she whispered, "I wont wear them." Bao Jingyan didnt say much. But she knew thats how dark male thoughts usually went. She wanted to sleep again, and this time he didnt stop her, but as she was about to drift off, he whispered, coaxing her, "Ill take you to a nice ce tomorrow." Su Ruanruan grunted in response. She turned over and found afortable position in his arms. Bao Jingyan also put out his cigarette and embraced her to sleep. The next morning. Bao Jingse saw her eldest brother in the dining room. He was wearing a ck robe, the kind that exudes a noble and sensual aura. She peered out, "Wheres Ruanruan?" "Still sleeping! She was tiredst night," Bao Jingyan said without any hesitation to hide the fact. Bao Jingse felt speechless and advised, "You should exercise some restraint, big brother. Ruanruan is still young and has to go to school! What if she gets pregnant?" Bao Jingyanzily responded, "Looks like theres really no problem! If theres no problem, stay in B City and develop a new market." Bao Jingse: ... While they were talking, Yan Kuan and Qin Chao came downstairs, stretchingzily. Upon arrival, they asked, "Has Ziqi really left?" Then they saw that Bao Jingyan had arrived. Yan Kuan and Qin Chao exchanged a nce. An unspoken consensus: immediately call Mu Jiu and tell him not toe. If hees, hed just be fed affection by the couple. ... Over in Jiang City. Mu Jiu was eagerly preparing to board the ne. Suddenly, he received a message from Qin Chao. [Mu Jiu, you better note! Bao Jingyan is here, and were afraid you cant handle the blow!] Mu Jiu cursed. Damn! Mu Jiu was very unhappy. Mu Jiu was in a mood. He called his sister. Su Ruanruan was asleep, the ringing of her phone woke her up. She answered, "Mu Jiu?" Mu Jiu ranted discontentedly. "Su Ruanruan, you better make it clear today! Whos more important, your brother or your man?" "Im at the airport now and will be in B City in a bit." "Its either him or me!" ... Su Ruanruan faced an interrogation early in the morning. She leaned back. She said to Mu Jiu, "Come on, Mu Jiu! Ill spend the day with you today!" Mu Jiu was delighted. In his sisters heart, he was still the most important. Su Ruanruan hummed in agreement, "Ive made ns with Song Wei, the three of us are going to have fun all day." Mu Jiu asked uncertainly, "Song Wei?" Su Ruanruan nodded. Mu Jiu: Okay! Bye! What a sneaky child Ruanruan is, how could he chase a girl in front of old buddy Song Wei? Chapter 348 Sweet! I鈥檓 Pampering You

Chapter 348: Chapter 348 Sweet! Im Pampering You

Su Ruanruan hung up the phone. A warm body pressed against hers. "Howe youre dismissing people so easily, hmm?" he nibbled gently on her neck. Su Ruanruan melted into his embrace. She said something softly. Bao Jingyan pinched her small hand, his white teeth grinding slightly: "Wait till youre older, lets see if Im still this easy to dismiss?" Su Ruanruan blushed and pushed him away: "I need to get out of bed." He didnt make it difficult for her anymore. After a while, the sound of washing up came from the bathroom. Bao Jingyan asked her, "Are you going to meet Song Wei?" Su Ruanruan hummed vaguely. She said: "Yes! Weve arranged dinner! Song Wei has booked the restaurant." Su Ruanruan poked her little head out, "You shoulde with me." He did not object. After Su Ruanruan finished washing up, she changed into a pearl white wool dress. Simple style. The neckline had a small design, making it chic. She deliberately braided her hair into a fishtail braid, adding a touch of refinement. Bao Jingyan watched her for a while and said, "Those earringsst night would really suit todays outfit." Su Ruanruan asked him back, "Are you telling me to wear them?" Bao Jingyan just smiled gently. He drove her out himself without using a driver. About half an hourter, Bao Jingyan parked the car in the underground parking lot of the busiest area in City B. Su Ruanruan tilted her little head, "Are you buying me something?" Bao Jingyan unbuckled his seatbelt: "What good things has Miss Su not seen?" He suddenly leaned in close to her: "Werest nights gifts not enough, or not good enough?" Su Ruanruan blushed. She turned her face away: "I dont know what youre talking about!" Her blush, really enticing. Bao Jingyan couldnt help but gently scrape her tender cheek. He restrained himself. He took her out of the car and walked around the underground parking lot to a private elevator. Su Ruanruan was surprised. He found her expression cute. "This building was bid by me two years ago and only put into use this year." The elevator reached the 42nd floor. It continued ascending. Su Ruanruan bit her lip: "This is City B! This building is worth at least a hundred billion." He nodded, "Ruanruan, I own 30 percent of Dijing Group, which is a little less than Bao Mingyuan, but I dont need to support a whole family, and I have money to spare." He nced at her: "Having a girlfriend gives me a genuine reason to spend money." Su Ruanruan felt it was better not to speak. The elevator reached the 58th floor. A "ding" sound, and the door opened. Two young and beautiful secretaries greeted them respectfully: "President Bao, Miss Su." The secretary led them to his office. One secretary reported work. Another secretary brewed fragrant tea and brought Su Ruanruans favorite snacks. Su Ruanruan was quite surprised. Bao Jingyan took a moment to tell her: "Xiao Ran instructed them to do so." She nodded and walked to a whole wall of floor-to-ceiling windows overlooking the bustling streets of City B. It must be beautiful when the lights light up in the evening. Bao Jingyan finished discussing business, then hugged her from behind. His tall nose rubbed against her earlobe, inducing a tingling sensation. "Finished talking?" Su Ruanruans voice trembled slightly. Bao Jingyan buried himself in her neck, his voice low and hoarse, "Thepany is mine, but the building is in your name. Ruanruan, do you like this betrothal gift?" Su Ruanruan was somewhat surprised. A financial center building worth a hundred billion. He said hed give it just like that? She wanted to say something, but his long fingers pressed against her lips. "Dont you want to marry me?" Su Ruanruan was reserved. Unwilling to speak. Bao Jingyan then pressed her against the transparent ss Her wrists were held by his hand, raised above her head. Behind her was an abyss. She was scared and trembling slightly. "Bao Jingyan, dont bully me." Bao Jingyan kissed her tenderly: "Im cherishing you." Then he gently pinched her chin and kissed her. At first, he was cautious. Like treasuring pearls and jewels. Later, it got a bit out of control... Chapter 349: Sweet! Ruanruan, I鈥檓 afraid I can鈥檛 wait

Chapter 349: Chapter 349: Sweet! Ruanruan, Im afraid I cant wait

At the end, he looked somewhat debauched. His tie was loosened. The top two buttons of his shirt were undone. Even his belt hung loosely around his hips. There was an indescribable sexiness. Su Ruanruan wrapped her arms around his neck, trembling lightly in his embrace. "Just a kiss, and youre like this?" His voice was hoarsely unrecognizable. Men have their inherent ws. On his own territory, conquering the woman he most wanted to conquer. Yet his little one wasnt quite willing to let him touchpletely. He couldnt bear to either. "Ruanruan... wait until you turn 20 and well get married." Su Ruanruan looked up at him, her eyes pitiful. Bao Jingyan ced one hand on his belt and wrapped the other around her waist. He whispered softly behind her ear, "Ruanruan, Im afraid I cant wait." Su Ruanruan blushed. She clung to his chest, her small hands fiddling with his shirt buttons. After a long while, she responded, "Wait until I turn 20." Bao Jingyan kissed her. Su Ruanruan, truly shy, ran to the couch. Pretending to sip tea. Looking all pure and innocent. Bao Jingyan liked her reserved demeanor in public, indicating she wasnt easily swayed. He had seen her reject Ziqi and Lord Mu Jiu. As if she had a heart of stone. Bao Jingyan admired it greatly. After their y, he still had matters to attend to. Su Ruanruan massaged him from behind. She asked in a low voice, "Did you leave Jingse in City B to manage thepany here?" Bao Jingyan nodded. He added, "Lets borrow someone from Lord Mu Jiu, I think Yan Kuan is not bad." Su Ruanruan agreed. She said, "Its best for Yan Kuan to stay in City B to protect Jingse." Bao Jingyan stroked her little head. In the afternoon. He indeed apanied her to have a good shopping spree. In City B, hardly anyone recognized them so they didnt need to be cautious. Su Ruanruan purchased many clothes. About ten sets of autumn clothes, ten sets of winter clothes. Even underwear was bought. Bao Jingyan respected her choices, picking styles suitable for young girls. This made Su Ruanruan veryfortable. All these, he paid with his card and had it delivered to the vi in Jiangcheng. Su Ruanruan pulled Bao Jingyan to shop for mens clothing. Mens clothes looked the same every few years, especially for business elites like Bao Jingyan. But Su Ruanruan still picked out two shirts for him. One light yellow, one light fruit green. Making him look younger. He usually dressed conservatively. Bao Jingyan questioned Su Ruanruan, "Do you think I look old?" Su Ruanruan was picking out a belt for him, deliberately cooing, "This is for the mature women at thepany to see! They are all smart, just by seeing the color of the shirt theyll know you have a very young girlfriend, and with their age, they probably wont dare topete with me!" She stated it bluntly. With a spoiled and cherished expression on her face. The salesgirl looked on envious and astonished. Normally, young girls shopping with wealthy men would act spoiled and please them! But this one! She was full of possessive desire! They covered their mouths and giggled. Bao Jingyan was just about to lecture Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan picked two belts. She lowered her voice, teasing him intentionally, "I picked out two belts, afraid youd break them if youre too hasty sometimes." Bao Jingyan lost all his anger. He nced at her. Willingly swiped his card... [Su Ruanruan has a love sickness!] Once in the car, he bullied her severely. Su Ruanruan softened in his arms. She tenderly protested, "Stop messing around! We still have to dine with Song Wei soon." Song Wei had a sharp eye, she was afraid she would notice. Bao Jingyans gaze red with passion. Su Ruanruan had no choice but to submit humbly, softly promising to serve him likest time... Bao Jingyan finally let her go. He sat upright. Looking impable. The image of a dignified young master. Su Ruanruan straightened her clothes, yet her eyes stealthily nced at him. She secretly sighed: Hes truly handsome! Chapter 350: Yin Zhao鈥檚 Stunning Beauty

Chapter 350: Chapter 350: Yin Zhaos Stunning Beauty

Evening rush hour. B City is even more congested than Jiangcheng. When Bao Jingyan arrived at the restaurant with Su Ruanruan, Song Wei was already waiting. She was in a ck evening dress. With a graceful figure. Her long hair was pulled up, adorned with a cunning touch of a green hairpin. It smacked slightly of vanity. Very attractive to men. Su Ruanruan went forward to greet her: "Sister Song Wei." Song Wei was quite fond of her, this young girl, already an old acquaintance. But Bao Jingyan was someone she normally couldnt aspire to associate with. Especially since he was backed by the Sun Family. The Sun Familys roots in B City ran extraordinarily deep. Song Wei put away some of her lethargy and was very attentive in her dealings. Song Wei was keen onworking with him and knowing that he had business in B City, she offered quite a few connections and business opportunities. Bao Jingyan did not refuse and treated her with considerable grace. The French restaurant had a very romantic atmosphere. Su Ruanruan felt that using it for business talks was somewhat of a waste. But she was especially considerate towards Bao Jingyan in these matters; as they discussed business, she took interest in a piano near the bar. She softly called the manager over and conversed with him in French for a few phrases. The manager smiled at her and made a gesture. Su Ruanruan then sat down at the piano, her hands gently falling onto the ck and white keys... Upbeat piano music leapt forth. It was a very joyous piece. At this moment, Su Ruanruan was in love. And she was very rxed. She was utterly oblivious to how alluring she was, how stunning she appeared. Bao Jingyans gaze. Was fixed on her. Forgetting about business, he almost ignored Song Wei across from him. Song Wei didnt mind. She propped up her chin, whispering, "Ruanruan really is an exceptional child." Ordinary girls, facing this sort of situation, Would probably cling tightly to Bao Jingyan, fearing he might cheat. But not Su Ruanruan. She was confident enough. And quite carefree. Song Wei then suddenly said, "Ruanruans cool disposition has been warmed up by you! Whats your trick, Young Master Bao?" Bao Jingyan took a sip of his aperitif. He smirked slightly: "Persistent pestering!" Indeed, at first she loathed him. Every touch seemed like a trial for her. Bao Jingyan had no regrets. If this way he could tie her down early, he didnt mind her crying and shouting. Song Wei was somewhat envious. ... In a corner of the circr restaurant. Yin Zhao was impably dressed. He was negotiating with a very influentialdy. Thisdy had recently been widowed and was in the process of transferring a maternity center she owned. Yin Hospital, Asiasrgest United Hospital, was coincidentally looking to expand into this area. After engaging with the affluentdy for days, he had be quite irritated. Just then, he saw Su Ruanruan. A girl who was wlessly beautiful. She wasposed and lovely. Her figure seated at the piano. Was like an oil painting. Almost instantly, the bachelor Yin Zhao entertained the idea of marriage. He thought, taking such a girl home would be very pleasing to the eye. But he had no chance to get to know her. Because the affluentdy agreed, and they spent half an hour signing the contract. By the time he finished and went searching, The space in front of the piano was empty. The manager said, the girl was just a customer. Though Yin Zhao felt it was a pity, he had no intention of looking further. His nature was aloof, and he was past the age of impulsiveness. Yet asionally when he remembered, he would feel a bit of regret... * Bao Jingyan stayed in B City for a couple of days. He flew back to Jiangcheng with Bao Jingse and Su Ruanruan. Bao Mansion, lively and bustling. The olddy pulled over her eldest granddaughter and scrutinized her carefully: "You look healthier, and more spirited too." Bao Jingse smiled. She picked up two boxes: "This is what Ruanruan and I bought for you and Aunt Gui." The olddy was ted beyond words. She took the hands of siblings Bao Jingyan and Bao Jingse, saying earnestly: "You two, you must thank Ruanruan properly." Bao Jingyan nced at Su Ruanruan. She was very calm, sipping her tea there. Bao Jingyan chuckled: "Jingse has nothing to offer in thanks to her, how about I pledge myself in marriage?" Chapter 351 Bao Mingyuan Slapped His Wife

Chapter 351: Chapter 351 Bao Mingyuan pped His Wife

"I cant listen to this anymore." Su Ruanruan felt ashamed. Others, however, thought it was just a joke. The olddy red at Bao Jingyan and scolded him, "Dont you see how old you are! How old is Ruanruan! She is a perfect match for a twenty-three or twenty-four-year-old." Bao Jingse looked at his elder brother. Bao Jingyan touched his nose. Without uttering a word. The olddy saw his expression and secretly rejoiced. The olddy then told Su Ruanruan, "Dont always stay here, your uncle is waiting for you." Su Ruanruan softly hummed in agreement. There was something that needed to be settled with Bao Mingyuan. She tidied up her appearance and went to Bao Mingyuans study. ... Bao Mingyuan felt a heavy weight in his heart. He was waiting for the clouds to part and the sun to shine. But he was also fearful. The older he got, the more he feared uncovering the cruel truth. Su Ruanruan pushed the door open. Bao Mingyuan perked up and asked kindly, "Are you tired?" Su Ruanruan gently shook her head. She sat opposite him. A record was ced in front of Bao Mingyuan. Bao Mingyuan flipped through it. Su Ruanruan softly said, "Wan Lin is the best psychologist in City B! She simted the scene of the year when Sister Jingse was kidnapped, repeatedly helped her rx, and finally managed to hypnotize her." Bao Mingyuan looked up. Su Ruanruan continued, "Dr. Wan found that Jingse was hypnotized back then! Jingse firmly believes that she harmed Bao Jingyan, which has be her obsession." Bao Mingyuan put down the record. His hand heavily set down. He pulled out a cigarette and lit it. He seemed to hesitate with Su Ruanruan there. Jingyan said she didnt like second-hand smoke. Su Ruanruan shook her head indicating she didnt mind. Bao Mingyuan, with a heavy mind, smoked half of the cigarette intensely. Then, he stubbed out the half-smoked cigarette in the ashtray. Su Ruanruan softly said, "Up to now, who had bribed the psychologist back then and where they are now... its all a mystery." Bao Mingyuan felt an awkward exposure. He wasnt just unable to let go of Qi Meiyu. But it involved Jingyuan and Ziqi. Especially Ziqi, with such a mother, what about his reputation? Su Ruanruan could understand him but didnt agree. She left the study. As she came out, Mrs. Bao was slowlying down from the third floor. Noble and indifferent. She saw Su Ruanruan, her face devoid of any smile. "Ive underestimated you! You really are a capable child." Su Ruanruan understood her meaning. She had done things without leaving traces. She couldnt bring her down. Su Ruanruan smiled faintly, "Thedys status is undoubtedly unshaken, but what about the heart? What about feelings?" Mrs. Baos expression turned even colder. Su Ruanruan nodded lightly. Then she turned and left. At that moment, a servant came and said with difficulty, "Madam, the master asks you to visit the study." Mrs. Bao tensed up. ... Inside the study, the smoke was thick. Very suffocating. Mrs. Bao entered and couldnt stop coughing several times. Bao Mingyuan sat there, his eyebrows deeply furrowed. He asionally took a puff of smoke. "Mingyuan," Mrs. Baos voice trembled slightly. She was considerate as before. She took the cigarette from her husbands hand, gently stroked his shoulder, "Why are you hiding in the study smoking when Ruanruan and Jingse are back?" Bao Mingyuan didnt move. Mrs. Baos voice became even gentler, "Today is a day of great joy! I ordered the kitchen to prepare a great feast." Seeing her husband unmoved, she specifically said, "Some dishes are Ruanruans favorites." Unknown to her, she was using Su Ruanruan to please her husband. Finally, Bao Mingyuan stirred. He turned around, quietly staring at his wife. Mrs. Bao was about to speak with a smiling face... A p, "smack", was flung towards her... Chapter 352: Kneel Before Weilian and Repent

Chapter 352: Chapter 352: Kneel Before Weilian and Repent

Madam Baos body mmed into the corner of the table. The sharp pain was real. She was dressed in splendid clothes, exquisitely dolled up. Yet devoid of dignity. Her husband grabbed her hair and yanked it with brute force. She fell heavily into the sofa. "Mingyuan." Qi Meiyu covered her face, voice trembling, "What did I do wrong?" A stack of papers was thrown onto her face. She hurriedly looked through them. For a moment, her beauty drained away as she hastily exined, "Is this Su Ruanruan sowing discord? This is a frame-up! I didnt do any of these things, Bao Jingses illness has nothing to do with me, I can swear to it." "Do vows matter? Then why do we havews?" Bao Mingyuan supported the back of her head. Her features were delicate. And even more beautiful than when she was young. The wealth of the Bao Family had turned her into ady of high society. Bao Mingyuan clenched his back teeth, "Back then, I married you under pressure, for the sake of Ziqi and Jingyuan! I thought even if you werent good to Jingyan and Jingse, you wouldnt harm them." "I didnt!" Madam Baos face was streaked with tears. "You didnt?" Bao Mingyuan almostughed in anger, "You know the truth! How much money did you give that psychologist to harm Jingse like this?" Bao Mingyuans anger grew as he spoke. "Youve witnessed Jingse suffer through the years, how could you be so heartless? Dont you have nightmares?" "Mingyuan, I didnt!" Bao Mingyuan didnt want to hear her excuses. There was no evidence, but he was certain she did it. He pushed her away. His voice was quiet as he spoke, "Go to the ancestral hall, kneel before Weilian and repent! Kneel there all night, and from now on, pay your respects to her every day to atone for your sin!" Madam Bao waspletely stunned. She shifted her body, kneeling before her husband, pleading. "Mingyuan, how can I show my face if you do this? What will the servants think of me?" "Ziqi and Jingyuan will also be judged by others." Most importantly, once the word got out, she couldnt mix in the circle ofdies anymore. Bao Mingyuan sneered. He said, "Rest easy! The servants have been well trained by Ruanruan and wont leak a word. Outside the house, youll still be the distinguished Madam Bao!" Madam Bao copsed to the ground. She knew that nothing she said would matter anymore. Her husband was convinced that she had harmed Bao Jingse. Never mind! Bao Jingse was fine, and even if he knew it was her, so what? He would never bear to part with the brother and sister she bore for him. As long as... she kept the most important secret. Madam Bao ground her teeth in hatred. She staggered to the deserted ancestral hall, its interior dark and gloomy. The photograph of Sun Weilian hung there. Madam Bao walked over. With a thud, she knelt down. She had always been strong-willed; the person she hated the most was Sun Weilian. Yet now, she was forced to kneel before her. Outside the ancestral hall. Housekeeper Wang and Aunt Fu stood there. They watched the kneeling woman, their expressions cold and stern. In the sky, a fine rain began to fall. Aunt Fu looked up, her voice shaking, "My dear Miss, can you see this? The wicked are finally getting their retribution!" "Dont worry, Miss! Young Master Jingyan and Miss Jingse are doing well, and theres Miss Su, shes Jingyans love and is very capable, she wont be bullied." Housekeeper Wang patted her shoulder. Aunt Fu cried out in anguish. She had waited for this day, for far too long! ... Madam Bao knelt there as punishment. Inside the Bao Mansions lively hall, Bao Mingyuan was in a sour mood, but he managed to mingle. Only Bao Jingyuan was jumping about lively, "Wheres mom? Why isnt sheing down?" At her question, everyone froze. Bao Mingyuan cleared his throat, "Your mother is not feeling well, shes resting." Bao Jingyuan, oblivious and lighthearted, uttered an "Oh." She simply thought her mother didnt like Su Ruanruan, thats why she didnte downstairs for dinner. And she didnt take it to heart. Chapter 353: Her Tenderness Belongs Not Only to Him

Chapter 353: Chapter 353: Her Tenderness Belongs Not Only to Him

Su Ruanruan had been away from home for a long time and missed Madame Gu very much. The olddy still had Bao Jingyan apany her. Gui Zhi took the opportunity to tease: "Madame, you always have Jingyan send her off, others might think that Mr. Jingyan is escorting Miss Su back to her maternal home!" The olddy pped her hand: "Is Jingyan not worthy of Ruanruan?" "You just mentioned they are mismatched in age." The olddy pretended to be displeased: "Gui Zhi, you are bing too talkative." Gui Zhi justughed. She helped Su Ruanruan organize the gifts. Returning from City B, it was necessary to buy things for the elders of the Gu Family. Gui Zhi knew the etiquette well and noticed that these were gifts for her father-inws family during the festival. She teased Su Ruanruan: "Mr. Jingyan must have helped carry these, right?" Su Ruanruan blushed. Then, Gui Zhi whispered: "Actually, the concubine is kneeling as a punishment in the ancestral hall!" Su Ruanruan was surprised. Gui Zhi restrained her smile: "Your uncle Bao always cares most about the Sun Family line. Now that the concubine has made a mistake, they cant punish her publicly, but at home, they have ways to discipline her." Su Ruanruan responded with a hum. Gui Zhi stopped at that point. ... When they got into the car, Su Ruanruan ryed what Gui Zhi had said to Bao Jingyan. Bao Jingyan was not surprised. He focused on driving. At a red light, he slowly stopped the car. He turned to ask her: "When will you give me a legitimate status?" Su Ruanruan blushed. What status did he want? Bao Jingyan stared at her face, speaking slowly: "It cant always be improper for me to keep visiting the Gu Family, right? Those who dont know might think Im interested in Gu Jiarou." Su Ruanruan startedughing. She gazed at him, "Can you wait a bit longer?" She still had some matters to rify. Bao Jingyan didnt say anything, just squeezed her hand. Su Ruanruan thought, wait till the New Year. It would be just about right then. ... Back at the Gu Family, Bao Jingyan had a cup of tea then left. Leaving Su Ruanruan deeply bonding with Madame Gu. Su Ruanruan was in an excellent mood, she checked the gifts she brought back. Each one was precious. Madame Gu appreciated them: "Jingyan is very meticulous." She was happy but also reluctant to see her young daughter marry off so early. Su Ruanruan was somewhat shy, snuggling into her mothers embrace. At that moment, Gu Ze came down from the second floor. He had been at a party the previous night and had stayed out all night. He had caught up on sleep during the day, just awoken now. At this moment, wearing a ck robe. With his chest widely exposed. Madame Gu scolded him smilingly: "Your sister is still here, show some decency! Button up your clothes." Gu Ze came over and draped an arm over Su Ruanruans thin shoulders. Deliberately saying: "Hasnt she seen Bao Jingyans body?" Madame Gu hit her son. Such nonsense. Gu Ze then apologized to his sister, then joyfully epted her gifts. Madame Gu was troubled by him, saying: "I heard you broke up with the actress?" "It was never going to work out, it wasnt really a breakup," said Gu Ze casually. That young actress, was gentle and soft. But she was not stupid; she was stringing along several men, not just tender towards him. Gu Ze was just ying. Turn a blind eye! But seeing it with his own eyes changed things. Once, at her apartment, clothes and belts were strewn everywhere on the sofa. Mens and womens. In the bedroom, there were familiar sounds of men and women. Quite intense! He thought at the time: the actresss voice was as pleasant as ever. But, he was no longer interested in hearing it. Gu Ze and her parted amicably, even though she knelt in his office crying and repenting for two hours. She said she was forced. Gu Ze thought her act was not bad. No wonder she won the Best Actress... Chapter 354: The Difference Between a Wife and a Lover

Chapter 354: Chapter 354: The Difference Between a Wife and a Lover

Madam Gu was infuriated. Jingyan was a hundred times better than that rotten son. Privately, a heart-to-heart conversation took ce between mother and daughter. She was deeply moved to know that Jingyan was willing to endure for Ruanruan. Given Jingyans appearance and family background, it was truly remarkable. Madam Gu then said, "Your sister has found her ce! Gu Ze, youre not young anymore, find someone and settle down soon!" But Gu Ze just took an apple and peeled it for Su Ruanruan to eat. He said, "Lets talk about it after Ruanruan gets married." Now that he had a sister to love, he wasnt in need of a wife. Besides, he wasntcking women. Madam Gu could do nothing about him. Su Ruanruan also didnt dare to criticize his view on gender rtionships. She utterly dismissed the idea of introducing Jingse to him. She told Madam Gu, "Jingse is quite conservative and hasnt dated anyone yet." Madam Gu pondered for a moment and also said, "Im afraid its not suitable." She was more afraid that her son would y with people and make it difficult for their own daughter in her marital home. Let the matter drop. But the scheduled afternoon tea still had to be enjoyed together. ... On Friday afternoon, Madam Gu and Su Ruanruan waited in the caf. Su Ruanruan told Madam Gu about the affairs of the Bao Family. Madam Gu softly said, "If it werent for your cleverness, Mom wouldnt be at ease with you marrying into that family." She continued, "I used to think Qi Meiyu was difficult to get along with, but I never expected her to be so vicious! These years, Jingse has suffered a lot." While talking, they inadvertently saw Su Qionglin. Recently, Su Qionglin had gained quite some fame. Returning to the runway, she had won a big award. Young, beautiful and with a great figure, naturally she had no shortage of suitors. Madam Gu quietly said to Su Ruanruan, "See that man across from her? Hes the youngest son of a well-known tycoon in City B, who spares no expense for women." At that moment, Su Qionglin also noticed Su Ruanruan. She greeted the person across from her and sauntered over to their table with confident poise. "Do you mind if I sit here?" Madam Gu sipped her ck tea. Su Qionglins status was not enough to have a conversation with her. Her target wasnt Madam Gu, so she didnt mind. She said to Su Ruanruan, "You think just because youve firmly caught Bao Ziqi, I cant find a man? The man Im having coffee with is the youngest son of the Zhou Family from City B! The only son, much more precious than Bao Ziqi." She fiddled with her fingers. Between her fingers, a sea-blue pigeons egg diamond. Very prestigious. She said, "Young Master Zhou fulfills all my wishes! Im incredibly happy now." Su Ruanruan pitied her, "Do you like him then?" Su Qionglin sneered fiercely, "Like? How much is that worth? I once liked someone too, but when he didnt want me, he was utterly ruthless." She carelessly said, "Now when I choose men, as long as they are willing to spend money on me." Su Ruanruan gave her advice. Calling her Third Sister for a rare moment, "You should distinguish clearly between a wife and a mistress." Su Qionglins face changed. Furious, she left, "He will marry me." ... After Su Qionglin left, Su Ruanruan felt a chill in her heart. Madam Gu softly asked, "Whats wrong?" Su Ruanruan sighed softly, "That Young Master Zhou, a few days ago was caught by my brother at the house of the movie queen. He is not only my third sisters boyfriend, but also a special guest of the movie queen." Madam Gu clucked her tongue in disapproval. Su Ruanruan smiled, "My third sister is determined to surpass others, she wont listen." Just then, Jingse came over. She was here to bid farewell. Su Ruanruan was a bit surprised, "Leaving next Monday?" Jingse apologized with a smile, "Yes, my older brotherspany needs people! I told dad I was going out to clear my mind, and he agreed." Su Ruanruan was reluctant. Holding Jingses hand, she softly said, "In these two days, Ill apany you well." Thus, she called Gu Jiarou to join them in seeing off Jingse. The venue was at the best club owned by Mu Jiu. When Su Ruanruan and the others arrived, Qin Chao was visibly shaken. The young boss has arrived... Chapter 355: Kiss me and I鈥檒l stop making trouble

Chapter 355: Chapter 355: Kiss me and Ill stop making trouble

Qin Chao gave a signal to his subordinate. The subordinate understood and immediately reported to Lord Mu Jiu. Qin Chao himself received Su Ruanruan. Being ady of nobility, Qin Chao cleared out the fourth floor. Only after adjusting the air conditioning and lighting did Mu Jiu rush over excitedly. Lord Mu Jiu had also learned some tricks. He didnt say he missed her, only that Old Lady Mu was looking forward to seeing her. Su Ruanruan smiled lightly, "Ive brought some gifts back. Ill visit Mom Mu tomorrow." Lord Mu Jiu felt a lot more at ease. He sidled up to her, asking if City B was fun. "Fun," Su Ruanruan obediently told him about her meeting with Song Wei. Lord Mu Jiu couldnt sit still anymore, "Why mention her?" Su Ruanruan just smiled without speaking. Lord Mu Jiu took off running. Gu Jiarou was very impressed: "Ruanruan, you really know how to stir him up, drove him away in just a few moments." Su Ruanruan spoke softly, "Its just us girls having fun, having another older brother around is inconvenient." Bao Jingse agreed deeply. They were all daughters of wealthy families; they would never behave in a drunken manner. They were just looking for some fun andughter. They only drank a little. But Gu Jiarous tolerance was really poor, getting tipsy from just one fruit beer. Su Ruanruan took her to the restroom. Gu Jiarou ran east and west, ending up in the hallway. Fortunately, this ce was Lord Mu Jius territory and very safe! Mu Qun stood smoking at the entrance of the corridor. Gu Jiarou still recognized him. She leaned against the wall, questioning him like a kitten, "Song Wei is your woman, right?" Mu Jiu turned his head. Looking at her flushed face, he mocked, "So useless." He walked over to her, intending to hand her back to Su Ruanruan. But as soon as he approached, Gu Jiarou wrapped her arms around his neck. "Is she pretty? Is her body soft?" Mu Jiu patted her head, "Thats none of your business." Gu Jiarou was drunk. She clung to him, refusing to let go, her eyes seductive. Her small tongue gently licked her lower lip. Mu Jiu cursed softly. He gruffly said, "Shes pretty, her body is very soft." "Am I soft?" Gu Jiarous nose almost brushed against Mu Jius. Her feet stood on his. Disrespectfully, irreverently. Mu Jiu had gone through lots of women before, without discrimination. In his younger years, he dragged beauties and uglies alike to bed. But they were all women of the night. He never touched decent girls. But here in his arms was just that type. A genuine nobledy. Mu Jiu wanted to carry her back, but Gu Jiarou held him and whispered low, "Ive never been kissed. Give me a kiss and Ill stop bothering you." Lord Mu Jiu had no choice given her persistence. He bent down and kissed the girls lips. It was like kissing a little kid. But as soon as the kiss happened, Gu Jiarou firmly held his head while capturing his lips. Mu Jiu was also a man. He had been abstinent for many days. Suddenly faced with such a fragrant, tender little thinging on to him, if he had no reaction at all he wouldnt be a man. His rationality copsed. He panted heavily, his hot breath spraying on her tender lips. "ying for real?" Gu Jiarou looked at him like a kitten. Directly, intently. Mu Jiu had nothing left in his mind. He just wanted to y around with her a bit. Mu Jiu lifted her up single-handedly, as light as a feather in his hold. He held her, her body against the wall like a childs. She was incredibly naive. Mu Jiu, tall and strong, appeared next to her like a wild beast. Gu Jiarou couldnt handle it. Her little head rested on his shoulder, murmuring, "Its just short of having spikes." She leaned against his chest and fell asleep. Mu Jiu was still burning hot. His heart pounding fiercely. Chapter 356 Gu Ze: I鈥檓 Not a Good Man!

Chapter 356: Chapter 356 Gu Ze: Im Not a Good Man!

His back was covered in cold sweat. He nearly got carried away with a young girl. And that girl was brought here by Ruanruan. The ninth master was relieved that he managed to put the brakes on in time. He called upon Qin Chao, asking him to carry the girl back. He himself fled in panic. For the following month, he didnt dare to get close to Su Ruanruan. Luckily, no one else knew about what happened that night. Even Gu Jiarou had forgotten. But every time the ninth master saw her, he would remember how she clung to him. In fact, it was quite seductive. ... On the other hand, Qin Chao carried the cat-like drunk Jiarou back home. Su Ruanruan was looking for her and breathed a sigh of relief upon finding her. She said to Bao Jingse, "Being this drunk, she cant go back to her own home; shell undoubtedly get scolded!" Just then, Bao Jingyan and Gu Ze arrived simultaneously to pick up their respective charges. After some discussion. Bao Jingyan took the two younger girls from the Gu Family home. Gu Ze took Jingse. That was Bao Jingyans idea. Su Ruanruan was not entirely reassured. She asked, "Are you sure its fine?" As Bao Jingyan ced the little pig Gu Jiarou in the back seat, he replied, "Jingse is an adult, she knows what she wants!" Having said that, he closed the rear car door. His manner was almost like closing a trunk. Su Ruanruan was quite speechless. She wanted to climb into the back seat to take care of Gu Jiarou. Bao Jingyan stopped her: "Theres carpet inside; she wont break anything if she falls." Su Ruanruan gave him a look that was fraught with unsaid words. ... Elsewhere. It was Bao Jingses first ride in Gu Zes car. There was a faint scent of womens perfume. Suited for flirtation between men and women. She had some words she wanted to say to him. But after all these years, Gu Ze wasnt ignorant of her feelings. Before she could speak, he said, "Jingse! My n is to y around until I marry a woman of equal social status, without involving feelings, just to produce an heir." He gently asked her, "Do you want to be that well-matched woman?" Bao Jingses fingers curled. She didnt speak, feeling embarrassed. Gu Ze smiled faintly. His voice was almost coaxing: "In the future, youll have to call Ruanruan your sister-inw. I cant bring disaster upon you." Bao Jingse asked with difficulty, "Dont you even want to try?" Gu Ze pulled over to the road side. He turned to look at her. Bao Jingse was beautiful. Not any less striking than top actresses, and she would only be more stunning. Moreover, she was pure and unblemished! Gu Ze murmured, "Jingse, I only bring my kidney to a rtionship. If I were with you, I might be in your bed today and in another womans bed tomorrow! Whats the point of being with someone like me?" He touched her face, "Find a good man and have a proper rtionship." Bao Jingse remained silent. As if to agree. Gu Ze dropped her off at the Bao Mansion. Once she got out of the car, his vehicle slowly drove away. Just now, he had received a phone call. It was from a woman, her voice soft. She wanted Gu Ze to stay the night. The woman said she had prepared champagne, and even pajamas. Gu Ze did not refuse. Bao Jingse stood in the breeze, feeling a bit cold. * She didnt sleep well all night and didnte downstairs until almost noon. The Bao Familys hall was filled withughter and cheerful voices. Bao Jingse nced over. There was a lively young girl in the house. She recognized her as Tian Familys daughter, Tian Tian. Their family was incredibly wealthy, making their fortune in mining up in the northwest. The girl was pretty sweet-looking, with a simple and cute mind. Madam Bao was buttering up her husband: "Little Tian is 22 years old and working as a violin teacher, a cousin of Minn! She would be a perfect match for Jingyan." Mingyuan had been unforgiving towards her these days. After much pondering, Madam Bao thought she had to start with Bao Jingyan. She showed her care for him by introducing him to a girlfriend. Mingyuan would surely be touched. Of course, this girlfriend couldnt be more outstanding than Minn. Chapter 357: Bao Jingyan鈥檚 Venomous Tongue

Chapter 357: Chapter 357: Bao Jingyans Venomous Tongue

Bao Jingse teased, "I thought auntie was nning to rece Ziqis girlfriend!" Xia Minn felt embarrassed. She forced a smile, "Last time I heard big brother say he liked well-behaved girls, so I thought of Tian Tian." Bao Jingyan chuckled lightly. He sat on the sofa, wearing a fruit-green shirt and a light-grey sweater over it. Looking homely and youthful. He was texting. [Ask Old Zhao to bring you over for a meal!] Putting down the phone, he retorted to Xia Minn, "Miss Xia, do you think I should keep all well-behaved ones at home? The Bao Familys not a pigsty." Tian Tians hand reaching for pastries froze. Her lips trembled, about to cry. He called her a pig!? Hes so poisonous tongued! No woman would want to marry him! Miss Tian Tian covered her face and left in her bejeweled Rolls-Royce... Bao Jingyan browsed his phone, with a bit of Schadenfreude, "She gave up on me on her own." Xia Minn was extremely embarrassed. Bao Jingyan didnt give her any face at all. Bao Jingyans phone was dead. Hezily went upstairs. Only came down when he heard car noises. Su Ruanruan looked exceptionally beautiful today. In a light purple wool dress. Perfectly fitting. Bao Jingyan stood on the second floor, silently observing her for a while. He felt she had grown more graceful recently, her curves more luscious. He smiled silently, walking over as if casually remarking, "Ruanruan, your timing isnt great. If you came earlier, you might have seen the girl I was set up with." Su Ruanruan looked at Bao Mingyuan. Bao Mingyuan coughed lightly, "Minn brought her, I didnt know beforehand." Unable to stay silent, Bao Ziqi finally spoke up, "Maybe big brother already has a girl he likes?" Xia Minn found her angle, feigning reproach, "Ziqi, why didnt you tell me? You made me embarrass myself!" Bao Ziqi stared at Bao Jingyan. He said, "Why dont you ask him who it is and what shes like?" Bao Jingyan chuckled. He leisurely replied, "My taste is simr to Ziqis! Whatever type Ziqi likes, I like the same type!" Xia Minn blushed uncontrobly. Does elder brother Jingyan really admire me? Bao Jingyan patted his pants, nonchntly adding, "Ill bring her home during the New Years!" Mrs. Bao and Xia Minn were happy. In the past, Su Ruanruan was always around single Bao Jingyan. Sending and fetching! It almost seemed like they were a couple! But now that Bao Jingyan has someone, things are different. His partner must be someone formidable, where does that leave Su Ruanruan? Mrs. Bao eagerly hoped for the New Year toe soon. Intending to disgust Su Ruanruan, she suggested, "Lets host a dinner party at home on New Years Eve! We can warmly wee Jingyans girlfriend, shell definitely be good friends with Minn." She pleased her husband, "Mingyuan, this is a big event for our family!" Bao Mingyuan truly couldnt object. Could he say that Jingyans girlfriend is right in front of you, the person you dislike? Could you still throw a wee party then? Bao Mingyuan silently supported Su Ruanruan in his heart. Jingyans words meant that the young ones are ready to go public during the New Year, he had no objections. Bao Mingyuan nced at Su Ruanruan, speaking indifferently, "Better to settle it early." Mrs. Bao was satisfied. As long as New Yearses, Su Ruanruan will have no more reason to stay in the Bao Family. But she overlooked one thing. Bao Mingyuan was usually strict about Bao Jingyans marriage matters, yet he didnt inquire about the partners background and agreed so readily... They were kept in the dark. But Bao Ziqi wouldnt be. He watched Su Ruanruan, observing her sitting meekly next to Bao Jingyan. Her gaze downcast and submissive. Just when the atmosphere was chilling, Housekeeper Wang came in. He whispered into Bao Jingyans ear, "That person is here again." Chapter 358 Bao Jingyan is Kind-hearted!

Chapter 358: Chapter 358 Bao Jingyan is Kind-hearted!

Su Ruanruan guessed it was Su Minghua. She had just moved when Bao Jingyan held her down. He gestured with his eyes: Ill go. Su Ruanruan continued eating, showing no sign of concern. It was still that small flower hall. Su Minghua was burning with impatience. In recent days, his luck was terrible, and he had racked up debts of over twenty million! His creditors were merciless, warning him that they would cripple his hands if he didnt pay. As a surgeon, his hands were extremely valuable! He had no choice but to turn to Bao Jingyan for help. From his observations over the past few days: this young master Bao appeared cold outside but was warm inside, and actually very kind-hearted at his core. He would definitely help him. Su Minghuaforted himself. The bronze-flowered gates creaked open. Housekeeper Wang led the way, with Bao Jingyan walking slowly into the hall behind him. Su Minghua spoke ingratiatingly as soon as he entered. "Jingyan, that shirt looks good, did your girlfriend give it to you?" As Bao Jingyan took a seat, he smiled, "You have quite the eye." Just as Su Minghua was about to ask for money, Bao Jingyan continued, "I was just thinking about settling the ounts, and youvee at the right time." He signalled with his eyes. Housekeeper Wang pulled out a few IOUs and took out a calctor to tally them up. The total was one hundred and thirty-five million. Su Minghuas lips lost their color. He spoke with difficulty: "Its not... I..." Bao Jingyan patted his pant legs. He asked casually, "Are you thinking of denying your debts?" Su Minghua didnt have the courage. He pleaded with Bao Jingyan, "Master Bao, make an exception just this once! Just once! Ill pay it all back in a few days." "What will you repay with?" Bao Jingyan countered, "Are you sure you can turn your fortunes around?" Su Minghua looked utterly dejected. He slumped in the chair, thinking he had to take back his previous words. This Master Bao was not kind-hearted after all! He looked up, eyes hollow and spiritless, "What do you want? I dont hold any shares in the hospital anymore." Bao Jingyan sipped his tea. Housekeeper Wang spoke on his behalf, "Young Master Su might not have shares at hand, but the deeds to the Su family estate are in your possession. Located in the city of Jiangcheng, such a property is worth quite a bit of money. Weve had it evaluated, and its worth one hundred and eighty million." Su Minghua became slightly agitated, "If the old master finds out, Im dead." "If you dont pay the money, youre dead either way when you leave," Housekeeper Wang shrewdly said. The atmosphere was somber. After struggling for a moment, Su Minghua finally spoke in a low voice, "I really cant pledge this! If I do, where would the entire Su family live?" Bao Jingyan put down his teacup. He smiled faintly, "Just stay there for now! You can buy it back when you have the money." Su Minghua did not have the courage. Bao Jingyan did not force him. He let him off the hook. ... When Su Minghua left, he was inplete despair! He didnt know how he had gotten to this point. He went to drink. He got drunk. He thought of Song Wei, still concerned for her well-being. But in his drunken stupor, he dialed his ex-wife Wang Meirus number. The call was answered by a man. Afterward, he handed the phone to Wang Meiru. Su Minghua sobbed uncontrobly, pleading with his wife, "Meiru, can youe back? I wont go after other women anymore; Ill just stay by your side and live a good life." He spoke many drunken words. After a long while, Wang Meiru finally spoke softly, "Minghua, Im pregnant." Su Minghua felt as if struck by lightning. After sobering up, the embarrassment was even worse. The Su family had always med the inability to have children on his ex-wife, but after their divorce, she had gotten pregnant with another man. This was a mortal humiliation for Su Minghua! He smashed the phone. And wept uncontrobly. Chapter 359: The Su Family Ancestral Home, Returned to Su Ruanruan

Chapter 359: Chapter 359: The Su Family Ancestral Home, Returned to Su Ruanruan

Dijing Group. Top floor CEOs office. Bao Jingyan is seated behind his desk, examining documents. In a light grey shirt and a slim tie. His hair trim and neat, looking fresh and dapper. The sunlight streams through the floor-to-ceiling windows, casting him in an almost divine light. Xiao Ran knocks and enters: "Young Master Jingyan, Miss Sus elder brother wishes to see you." Bao Jingyan puts down his pen and smiles: "Let him in." Soon, Su Minghua entered. He looked considerably more worn out than the previous night. He was awestruck by the luxury of Dijing Group. He observed that Bao Jingyans private office alone was about 200 square meters. Bao Jingyan instructed Xiao Ran: "Bring Doctor Su a cup of coffee." Xiao Ran quickly made the coffee and brought it in. She thoughtfully closed the door. The coffee, Su Minghua dared not drink. He hesitated before asking Bao Jingyan: "Does what you saidst night still stand?" Bao Jingyan leaned back in his chair and asked leisurely: "Have you thought it through?" Su Minghua sheepishly nodded. He was desperate. Bao Jingyan leaned forward and pressed the inte: "Have Lawyer Lie in." In less than five minutes, a middle-agedwyer entered. Bao Jingyan pointed at Su Minghua and said: "Draw up a property sale contract! The Su Family mansion, one billion eight hundred million." Lawyer Li was taken aback. Su Minghua didnt dare lift his head. The contract was quickly prepared. Su Minghua signed it, his hand trembling. Lawyer Li gathered the contract to process the paperwork and the Su Family mansion would belong to Bao Jingyan. Su Minghua held onto that check. He was somewhat dazed, yet a trace of frenzy lingered in his eyes. Bao Jingyan watched him leave. He sighed softly. ... Nighttime, Gu Mansion. Su Ruanruan received a phone call. It was from Mu Jiu. Just after hanging up, Mrs. Gu asked with concern: "Something wrong?" Su Ruanruan spoke softly: "I am going to see Brother Jiu." Half an hourter. Su Ruanruan arrived at the club "Drunken Present." Thergest den of vice in Jiangcheng. All kinds of entertainments were avable. Her visit was because of Su Minghua. Su Minghua got one billion eight hundred million from Bao Jingyan, and after paying off his debts, he clearly still had millions left. But he was irresponsible! He came here to squander it again. ording to Su Ruanruans instructions, Mu Jiu called to inform her toe collect someone. Su Ruanruan got out of the car and, led by Qin Chao, reached the fifth floor. There were more than a dozen people inside the private room. Both shady and upright types were present. All capable of high stakes. Su Ruanruan, a young girl, had arrived. Yet, none of these worldly men dared take liberties with her. Miss Sus reputation was well known by everyone in Jiangcheng. Su Ruanruan nodded to those present, looked around. Su Minghua was huddled in a corner, his expression nk. He had gambled away all his money and still owed some! Su Ruanruan did not intend to be utterly ruthless. Su Minghua was scum, but she didnt want to take his life. The real viins were Su Yugu and the Su patriarch, the two old foxes. Su Ruanruan pulled him up and patted his clothes. She called him "Big Brother." Su Minghua, like a child, began to cry: "Ruanruan, big brother is not human! My hand is not obeying me!" He sobbed on Su Ruanruans shoulder, his words shaky: "Your beautiful sister is pregnant! I am useless, all these years She and I had no children, but another man managed it in no time." Such disgraceful words made Su Ruanruan feel agitated! Other men hushed. Some even whistled. Su Minghua wanted to die even more. Su Ruanruan patted him,forting, "Big brother, you still have your career." Su Minghua dared not speak for a moment. Chapter 360: Su Ruanruan is Stolen by Zhou Wan

Chapter 360: Chapter 360: Su Ruanruan is Stolen by Zhou Wan

Su Ruanruan soothed him before turning to those people and saying, "Su Minghua is my elder brother! Today, Ill repay the money he owes, but I have one condition." Those people were quite amodating to her. Su Ruanruan said softly, "If hees again in the future, please dont y with him!" The people chuckled, "Hes the one with a big addiction to losing! We dont even want to y with him." Su Ruanruan smiled faintly. She took out a checkbook and wrote an amount for those people. The people couldnt stop praising her, "Miss Su is so straightforward!" Su Ruanruan was popr with both the Gu Family and the Bao Family. Who wouldnt want to befriend her? Then someone proposed, "We want to be friends with Miss Su! Well forget about the money." Su Ruanruan didnt ept their offer of not taking the check. She gave the check to Su Minghua. Her voice was gentle, "Donte here anymore." Su Minghua was too choked up to speak. Seeing him like that, Su Ruanruan didnt feel good inside. She thought: Now Im in the position of power, and hes at my mercy. Was it also this bleak for Dad back in the day? ... On the way back, she asked Old Zhao to find a hotel and bought a new set of clothes for Su Minghua. Told him to clean up before returning home. Su Minghua was very touched. Especially after seeing her status. Those who were bossing him around were respectful to Ruanruan. Ruanruan was now quite something. Su Minghua was more inclined to be close to her. He and Su Ruanruan sat in the back seat of the car, which was a Rolls-Royce. He touched the cars interior and coughed lightly, "Is this car provided by the Bao Family?" Su Ruanruan nodded. She turned her head and asked Su Minghua quietly, "Do you still remember how I came to be with the Su Family?" Su Minghua was startled. He thought Su Ruanruan was going to settle scores and quickly distanced himself, "Ruanruan, let me tell you! This has nothing to do with our Su Family. It was your second aunt who was infertile and crazy, she stole you over." Su Ruanruan lowered her eyes. Sure enough, just as she thought. Su Minghua forced augh, "The second uncle was furious at the time! He wanted to find out to send you back, but with your second aunt threatening suicide at every turn, he had no choice but to keep you! Their rtionship also faded afterward." Su Ruanruan turned her head away. Her heart was indescribably sad. For Su Peiming. Su Minghua wanted to say more, but seeing Su Ruanruans expression. He didnt dare to utter another word. After a long while, he said, "Come home for a meal tomorrow, okay?" "Hm?" Su Minghua said bravely, "I havent been performing well at the hospitaltely, Ruanruan, could you help me plead for leniency?" He pulled on her arm, "Big brother is asking you for onest favor." Su Ruanruan agreed. ... She sent Su Minghua back to the Su Residence. But she herself returned to Bao Jingyans vi. When she arrived, Bao Jingyan was working out. Surprised, he wiped the sweat off his brow and asked, "Didnt you say youd stay at Aunt Gus ce, whye here?" Su Ruanruan slowly moved closer and hugged his waist. He was covered in sweat. But she didnt mind. She just wanted to hold him now. Bao Jingyan lowered his head and kissed her hair, his voice even more gentle, "Whats wrong, Ruanruan?" Su Ruanruan shook her head. She just held him. Bao Jingyan let her hold on for a while, and when she was feeling a bit better, he spoke softly, "Im going to take a shower, okay?" She nodded obediently. After his shower, Su Ruanruan nestled in his embrace again. Bao Jingyan, with his long limbs, sat on the couch and positioned her in the middle of his body. He turned on the television. A boring variety show was on. Su Ruanruan leaned against him and recounted the evenings events. Bao Jingyan stroked her little head and whispered, "Academician Su is not just redeeming himself, but also because he loves you." He soothed her like a child, "Ruanruan, nobody dislikes you." "Some do! My third sister, Jingyuan, Xia Minn, and Qi Meiyu, they dont like me." Bao Jingyan answered her this way, "Thats because theyre not human!" Su Ruanruan: That seems to make some sense. Chapter 361 He Was Just Playing with Su Qionglin

Chapter 361: Chapter 361 He Was Just ying with Su Qionglin

The next day, Su Ruanruan went to the Su Family. As soon as she entered, she encountered the old servant. The old servant had received a sweetener and was even more willing to work for Su Ruanruan. "The old master has kept a pair of sister flowers outside! Barely 20 years old." Su Ruanruan smiled faintly. She gave the old servant a thousand bucks. The old servant quietly withdrew. Su Ruanruan stepped into the Su family mansion, and from afar, she could hearughter and merry voices. Walking in, she realized it was Su Qionglins boyfriend who hade. It was none other than young master Zhou. Young master Zhou was in high spirits and very willing to spend money. The gifts in the hall were all very valuable. Su Qionglins aunt was ying with an emerald green bracelet. Seeing Su Ruanruaning over, she pretended to be affectionate: "Oh, Ruanruan is back." She pulled Su Ruanruan to sit down, pushing the bracelet in front of her: "This is from Qionglins boyfriend, Ruanruan, you know the goods, can you tell your aunt how much this is worth?" Su Ruanruan took the bracelet. She nced at Su Qionglin. Her third sister was leaning against young master Zhou, her expression provocative. Su Ruanruanughed lightly: "Its got to be worth tens of millions! Third sister has found herself a real tycoon." She handed the bracelet back to Su Qionglins aunt. Su Qionglins aunt put it on her wrist, modestly saying: "Jinhua said this is nothing! Qionglin wont suffer following him." Su Ruanruan asked casually: "Is third sister talking about marriage?" Su Qionglins aunt choked up. But Su Qionglin couldnt wait for her to ask this. She was dating young master Zhou with marriage in mind, but there were many women pursuing him! She considered herself the most special. So, when Su Ruanruan asked, she softened her voice: "Jinhua, when will you take me back to see your parents?" Young master Zhou had no intention of marrying Su Qionglin. Like a movie star, she was nothing more than a ything. He wasnt done ying with her yet, naturally, he couldnt be blunt about it. Young master Zhou, a man of social graces, was very good at sweet-talking. He said: "My parents are abroad right now, when they return to the country, Ill invite your parents and the old master to B city, okay?" This answer satisfied Su Qionglin. The Su family from top to bottom were as if they had struck gold. Heavens! Jinhua truly respects the Su family! The first visit was to meet the parents. Qionglin marrying into a wealthy family is within reach! Su patriarch and Su Yugu exchanged a few pleasantries, saying something about climbing the socialdder. Su Qionglin cared about her face. She would not agree, coquettishly saying to young master Zhou: "Although our Su family isnt as good as yours, Tongsheng Hospital is entirely in our Su familys hands, even this vi we live in is worth more than a hundred million." Su Minghua coughed several times. Su Ruanruan was unruffled. She inwardly sneered: Su Qionglin probably couldnt imagine that the ce she was living in now already belonged to her, Su Ruanruan. She nned to kick the Su family out today; they couldnt drag it into tomorrow. It was young master Zhou who gave a gentle smile: "The Su family is also a family of schrs and literary grace." Members of the Su family were very proud. But Su Ruanruan heard a hint of contempt. How could young master Zhous family, with assets worth hundreds of billions, care for the insignificant Su family? Watching Su Qionglins mother and Su Qionglin herself so delighted, as if they were about to pick out a wedding dress. Su Ruanruan, however, was mindful of Su Minghuas entrustment, and she sought out Su Yugu alone to plead on his behalf. Su Yugu valued her face. He only scolded his son once, and then allowed him to go back to work. Su Minghua was endlessly grateful to this sister. Su Ruanruan instructed: "Work hard, dont gamble anymore." She gave this instruction with intention: The Su family was bound to fail! Su Minghua wasnt the worst of sinners; as long as he kept his job, hed have something to eat in the future. Chapter 362 My Brother, He Doesn鈥檛 Deceive in Marriage

Chapter 362: Chapter 362 My Brother, He Doesnt Deceive in Marriage

Coming out of the study. The Su Family was still being overly affectionate. Su Ruanruan didnt want to stay for dinner, so she took her leave. The aunt from the Su Family feigned insistence for her to stay, but was actually eager for her to leave. Su Ruanruan left the estate. Just as she was about to get into the car. Young Master Zhou followed her out, calling after her from behind. Su Ruanruan turned around. Young Master Zhou was quite handsome; purely based on looks, one would never suspect him of being licentious. He leaned against the doorway, his voicezy. "Are you Gu Zes sister?" Su Ruanruan watched him quietly. Young Master Zhou stepped closer, speaking frivolously, "Why didnt you expose me just now? I dont believe you were unaware of my affair with the actress." That affair was personally busted by Gu Ze. It wasmon knowledge in their circle. Su Ruanruan sneered, "Does Young Master Zhou find this something to be proud of?" Young Master Zhou didnt care, "Doesnt your brother y around all the time too?" "But he doesnt deceive women into marriage!" Su Ruanruan looked down on him, "If theres no intention to marry, dont make it too embarrassing for others." She did not like Su Qionglin. But that didnt mean she condoned Zhou Jinhua toying with women. Young Master Zhou suddenly stepped closer, "If it were you, I might actually intend to marry." Su Ruanruan frowned. Before she could retort, Old Zhao came out from the car. Old Zhao, with an umbre in hand, started beating Zhou like beating a dog. "Shameless! Cant even smell your own stink!" "Our Miss Su is as pure as ice and as clean as jade, and you, a scumbag, dare to covet her?" "Ill beat you to death, you bastard!" ... Su Ruanruan was first taken aback. Then, she stepped back. Well... It wasnt bad to let Old Zhao teach him a lesson. Young Master Zhou came with the intent to flirt, but ended up getting beaten by Old Zhao. Furious and frustrated, he was even more afraid of causing a big scene. "What a lunatic," he cursed, as he beat a hasty retreat. Old Zhao spat in his direction. Then he turned around, "Miss Su, are you alright?" Su Ruanruan smiled, "Im fine! What could he possibly do? Were still at her future inws ce!" Old Zhao opened the car door for her while chuckling awkwardly, "Do people from the Su Family actually believe such a yboy?" Su Ruanruan smiled without a word. Indeed, something even Old Zhao could see through... yet the Su Family could not! ... On the other side, Young Master Zhou patted his clothes, preparing to return to the hall. In the courtyard, Su Qionglin was waiting for him. Her expression was coquettishly alluring, "What did you say to Ruanruan?" Young Master Zhou was experienced in dealing with women. He nonchntly wrapped his arms around her shoulders, saying softly, "I have business dealings with her brother, we just exchanged a few extra words." Su Qionglin didnt believe him. She always felt that Su Ruanruan was sabotaging her good fortune. Maybe, she even tried to seduce Jinhua. For this reason, she intentionally sought out Su Ruanruan. After several phone calls, Su Ruanruan finally agreed to meet her. In a cafe. Su Qionglin said bluntly, "Your seduction of Jinhua is futile! He doesnt like little girls like you." Su Ruanruan stirring her coffee gently. She took a light sip. Su Qionglin grew impatient, "Im talking to you, did you hear me?" Su Ruanruan chuckled, "Young Master Zhou has many girlfriends, elder sister, isnt it tiring to caution each of them one by one?" Su Qionglin couldnt stand such words. She said, "Youre just jealous of me! Hes going to marry me." "Is the date set?" asked Su Ruanruan. Su Qionglin sneered, "His parents are not in the country! Well get engaged once they return." Su Ruanruan looked down. She had just contacted Song Wei. Song Wei had just met with Young Master Zhous parents a few days ago for business. But she wouldnt be the bad person. She had given Su Qionglin several hints, but she wouldnt listen, and there was nothing she could do. Chapter 363: If You Can Accept It, Continue Discussing Love

Chapter 363: Chapter 363: If You Can ept It, Continue Discussing Love

Su Ruanruan stood up to leave. She had made ns with Gu Jiarou to go to an art exhibition. But Su Qionglin wouldnt let her go. She grabbed Su Ruanruans arm: "You are not leaving! Promise me you wont seduce Jinhua." Su Ruanruan frowned. She said, "A wife who goes hysterical just because her husband has a chat with someone else wont sustain her marriage for long!" In her heart, she thought: Even if Mr. Zhou chose someone to marry from among his acquaintances, that person wouldnt be Su Qionglin. Su Ruanruan tried to reason with her. But Su Qionglin might not appreciate her good intentions. She continued to make a fuss. Just then, someone slowly descended the staircase from the second floor. Bao Ziqi. He had heard their conversation. He slowly approached. Su Qionglin still had feelings for him, murmuring softly, "Ziqi." Bao Ziqi, having heard about her and Zhou Jinhua, made noment. He simply said, "Su Ruanruan will not get involved between you and Zhou Jinhua." Because she is already with Bao Jingyan. Su Qionglin then suspected, "Is she with you now?" Su Ruanruan was speechless. She took her leave: "You two talk!" She turned and left. However, Bao Ziqi wanted to dismiss Su Qionglin. He told her, "I have a fiance." Su Qionglins expression at that moment was ugly. Almost crying, she asked him, "You broke up with me and didnt end up with Su Ruanruan, Bao Ziqi, does our breakup have any meaning then?" Bao Ziqi couldnt answer. He liked Su Ruanruan and wanted no other woman. He had never even touched Xia Minn. Bao Ziqi still had some decency. He handed a tissue to Su Qionglin, saying, "That Mr. Zhou, he wouldnt marry easily." Su Qionglin was stunned. Bao Ziqi, not wanting to entangle too much, made his point and left. Su Qionglin of course went to find Zhou Jinhua. She went to his apartment. Zhou Jinhuas apartment overlooked the river. It was vast andvish! He liked to bring women home for fun. As long as he paid, theyd do anything he wanted. Last time, a seven-million-dor diamond ring. A movie star had performed a full set of gymnastics on his couch. Today he was bored half to death at the Su Familys all day! In the afternoon, he invited a young model over to entertain him. The young model was young, obedient, and did whatever he asked! Zhou Jinhua enjoyed it immensely. When Su Qionglin arrived, the young model was still serving him. The door opened. Su Qionglin was shocked. She exploded, "Zhou Jinhua, youre cheating!" She threw a tantrum, wanting to hit the young model. "Touch a single hair on her head and see what happens," Zhou Jinhuas voice was as cold as ice. Gone was his previous manner of indulging her. Su Qionglin was stunned. She thought he would exin and send the girl away. Zhou Jinhua patted the young model on the head, coaxing her, "Wait for me in the bedroom." The young model knew he wanted to continue. She couldnt help feeling triumphant. Swinging her slender hips, she went into the bedroom. Su Qionglin trembled with rage, "Zhou Jinhua, what do you mean by this?" Zhou Jinhua straightened his bathrobe. He lit a cigarette and looked at her coldly. After a while, he sneered, "Didnt you see it all? I have more than one woman! If you can ept it, lets continue dating; if not, get lost." Su Qionglin was relentless, "You said you were going to marry me!" "Ive said that to many women," Zhou Jinhua shrugged, "You believed that?" He had actually favored her more. She had a bit of a status in the entertainment industry, and he gave her more money. He was also willing to indulge her. However, if she couldnt appreciate his situation, there were plenty of other women. Zhou Jinhua ran out of patience. He directly got up and headed towards the bedroom The young model earlier was quite entertaining; he wouldnt send her away for Su Qionglin. Shortly, sounds that quickened the pulse echoed from the bedroom... Chapter 364: She Knows Best What He Likes

Chapter 364: Chapter 364: She Knows Best What He Likes

Su Qionglins face was pale. She couldnt just leave like this; she needed to talk to him. She believed that once he had his fill of fun, he would eventually settle down and marry. ... It was four oclock in the afternoon. Young Master Zhou came out wearing a bathrobe. He grabbed a ss of ice water and unexpectedly saw Su Qionglin sitting on the sofa. "Still here?" He sat next to her, unscrewed the cap and drank some water, while flirting with her: "If you dont leave, I wont have the energy to entertain you anymore." Su Qionglin finally waited until he said something soft. She leaned on hisp and cried. She called him heartless, called him cruel. She told him how heartbroken she was when he was nice to others. Young Master Zhou was always amorous, so naturally, he was willing to coax and pamper her when she showed weakness. Thus, he carried her to another bedroom... She tried her best to please him. That evening, Young Master Zhou took her shopping and bought her a diamond ne worth twenty million. Though Su Qionglin still had some reservations, She believed she held a special ce in his heart. ... However, that little model spread the news around their circle! Su Qionglin was quite embarrassed. But Young Master Zhou did not punish the model. Because he was not done having fun. Naturally, the news also reached Su Ruanruans ears. Su Ruanruan was originally reading a book, but couldnt help but spend more time on her phone after receiving the gossip from Gu Jiarou. Bao Jingyan happened toe back and asked her, "What are you looking at?" Su Ruanruan told him about it. Bao Jingyan took off his coat and squeezed with her on a single-seater sofa. He sat down, letting her lean against him. He took her phone. Gu Jiarou might not be diligent in her studies, but her gossip was juicy and vivid. Su Ruanruan blushed and tried to snatch the phone back. Bao Jingyan held her waist firmly, preventing her from moving. After he finished reading, he looked down and said to her, "Your third sister really knows how to let go when she needs to." Su Ruanruan sighed, "Shes just too strong-willed!" She changed the subject: "Qin Chao has already investigated the background of those two sisters." Bao Jingyan smiled lightly, "Does that old man find it useful to keep women?" He whispered in Su Ruanruans ear, uttering a few risqu remarks. Su Ruanruans face turned red. She endured quietly. She continued, "This investigation has revealed that the pair of sisters belong to a scam ring, specializing in tricking wealthy men and then setting them up for a downfall." Bao Jingyan pinched her cheek, "Then your familys old master is in for a big loss! He cant even bite properly, can he?" Su Ruanruan could no longer tolerate it. She softly retorted, "Medical books say men can still reproduce at 80." Bao Jingyans gaze was clear. He moved closer to her ear and softly bit it, "So, you want me to wait until Im 80?" Su Ruanruan was bashful. She picked up the book she was reading before and pretended to read. Meanwhile, she said, "Dont disturb me, Im thinking of a n." Bao Jingyan found it amusing. He held her and continued to tease her, "Every time you get shy, you pretend to read, but that wont work if you do it too often." She gave him a stern look, Ignoring him. Bao Jingyan chuckled, "Can you really focus?" Unexpectedly, she replied, "I cant." She wrapped her arms around his neck and kissed him... He knew what she liked! Bao Jingyan felt extremely tender inside; he held her hand. His voice was huskier than ever, "Let me do it!" She was young, and sometimes he couldnt bear it. Later, Bao Jingyan still felt she was somewhat distracted. He was dissatisfied and used all his methods. Su Ruanruan felt worse than death in his hands. After it was over, she fell asleep. Bao Jingyan sat by the window smoking. In his hand was Su Ruanruans phone, disying a WeChat friend request. From Young Master Zhou. Su Ruanruan had not epted it. Bao Jingyan deleted the friend request record and made a phone call! Chapter 365: Bao Jingyan Beats Up Rival in Love

Chapter 365: Chapter 365: Bao Jingyan Beats Up Rival in Love

The next morning, a new story broke out in Jiangcheng. Zhou, the yboy from City B, got beaten up. He wasnt paralyzed but ended up with two broken ribs. Su Ruanruan saw the news during breakfast. She checked her phone and then said in a soft voice, "Such a familiar style!" "Feeling sorry for him?" Bao Jingyan chuckled. Su Ruanruan then said, "Should I visit him in the hospitalter?" "You wouldnt dare!" Bao Jingyan warned. He lowered his voice, "Wasntst nights lesson enough?" Su Ruanruan blushed. She was worried that Auntie Li would hear andugh at her. Bao Jingyan said, "With all that noisest night, Auntie Li must have heard it." Su Ruanruan was both embarrassed and angry. She secretly swore that she wouldnt help him again next time he was in pain. Bao Jingyan, however, talked business: "What are we going to do about the Su Family?" Su Ruanruan thought for a moment, "Lets just let it be for now! I doubt those two sisters can endure for long." Bao Jingyan smiled. He quickly left for work. Su Ruanruan went alone to the study to read. Auntie Li brewed her a cup of aromatic tea and casually prepared a small te of snacks. "I wont have the snacks," Su Ruanruanined softly, "Ive gained two pounds recently." "Being plump feels better to the touch," Auntie Li scolded her, "Which man dislikes women with a bit more flesh?" Su Ruanruan was momentarily speechless. Auntie Li happily went downstairs with the empty te. Soon after, Gu Jiarou came running over. She brought todays sensational news. Su Ruanruan gave her the te of snacks and brewed a pot of tea just for her. Gu Jiarou spoke animatedly, "You have no idea, Zhous hospital room was so lively." Her little hand gestured, "Three or four women in the ward, each acting as if they were the official girlfriend... they were about to start fighting." Su Ruanruan flipped through her book. She asked, "What about Su Qionglin?" Gu Jiarous smile faded: "Of course she was there too! I dont know what she was thinking." She continued to talk about other things, like how that little model also went. Su Ruanruan didnt say much! Gu Jiarou knew what she had to do and tried tofort her: "Its not your fault shes like that! Its her own vanity and desire to climb the socialdder!" ... At the hospital. After a struggle. Zhous girlfriends decided to take turns caring for him each day. The first day belonged to Su Qionglin. She tenderly peeled fruit for him andforted him with her own familys experiences. "Its not a serious injury, nothing much!" Zhou, pampered since birth, when had he ever suffered like this? He was ambushed with a blow to the head at his front doorst night. Punched and kicked until two ribs were broken. Su Qionglin even dared to call it a minor injury! He was so angry he couldnt speak. Su Qionglin added, "I once injured my foot and it took days to recover, and my second brother also broke two ribs, and my grandfathers leg had been broken... they all recovered fine." But Zhou Jinhua was not as foolish as she! Upon hearing this, he frowned immediately, "When did all these happen?" "These past six months," Su Qionglin sighed, "The familys luck hasnt been very good this half-year." Zhous eyes narrowed, and suddenly he thought of someone. Su Ruanruan! He harassed her yesterday and even added her on WeChat. She didnt ept... And beat him up? Zhou was both embarrassed and enraged! He was about to force himself to get up when a nurse came in with a bouquet of flowers. Zhous pupils dted when he saw the flowers. "Take them out!" he said quickly and urgently! The nurse was confused; instead of taking them out, she put them in a vase. "Mr. Zhou, lilies are very soothing." Soothing my ass! He was allergic to lilies! Chapter 366: Injecting the Fish with Chicken Blood to Placate Him

Chapter 366: Chapter 366: Injecting the Fish with Chicken Blood to cate Him

Master Zhous face changed dramatically. Sneeze after sneeze... He couldnt stop them! The injury in his ribs ached as if they were broken. Master Zhou was in so much pain it felt like death! Su Qionglin panicked, hastily throwing out the flowers... and then called for a doctor. Half a day passed. Master Zhous life seemed to be half gone from all the torment. He lost all interest he had in Su Ruanruan... Su Qionglin took care of him all day. Early the next morning, she returned home. The moment she arrived, the atmosphere was gloomy. Su Ruanruan was actually there too. Su Qionglin felt ufortable and tossed her handbag onto the sofa. "Why the long faces?" "Has the Su Family gone bankrupt?" ... Old Master Su unusually kept silent. Su Yugu was alsomenting with sighs! Aunt Su, however, took charge: "Qionglin, quickly think of something, theres trouble at home." It was difficult for her to say, but Aunt Su still spoke up. A few days ago, Old Master Su took a fancy to two sisters, bought a mansion to keep them. Who knew, both sisters had fiancs! Now their men havee looking for justice, demanding an exnation. Otherwise, they threatened to go to the press and file awsuit. After Aunt Su finished speaking, Old Master Su took a deep drag on his cigarette: "I cannot be ruined!" Su Yugu couldnt help butin: "Dad, I told you from the beginning it wasnt right! You insisted on having them even when they were unwilling!" Aunt Su was shocked: "Yugu, you knew about this all along?" She looked at her husband in fear. Afraid that one day he too would bring home a mistress. Ruanruan held a handkerchief to her nose. This matter was indeed disgraceful. She had heard bits and pieces. One day Old Master Su dined out and saw two pretty out-of-town waitresses. Despite their youth, Old Master Su insisted on taking them. One kept in each mansion. Upon trying, he discovered they were virgins. Old Master Su treasured them like gems. Little did he know, they had used fish dders and chicken blood to deceive him. Now, their fiancs knew and were determined to take them back and sue him. Old Master Su was both afraid and reluctant to let them go. He paused and then said to the younger members of the family: "Lets settle this privately! Give them more money to resolve the matter." Su Yugu disagreed: "Dad, for those two girls, do you think fifty million each is worth it?" "How is it not worth it?" Old Master Su retorted: "Theyve been with me, pure and innocent." He stood firm: "If you dont help, Ill sell this old mansion." Ruanruan chuckled softly. Old Master Sus face flushed red: "I called you back to discuss this matter, not to beughed at!" Ruanruan thought it was humorous. But she said considerately on the surface: "Old Master is very sentimental." Old Master Su wiped away tears. "How could I not be! Nobody understands me!" He grasped Ruanruans hand: "I have some savings of my own, Im just short by twenty or thirty million, Ruanruan, lend it to your grandfather first! Ill return itter." Ruanruan agreed. She said: "Its just twenty or thirty million, how could I let Old Master return it?" Old Master Su praised her greatly: "Good child!" Su Qionglin was not happy! She turned her face coldly to Su Ruanruan: "What do you mean, Su Ruanruan? Acting like theres no one else in the Su Family, right? Must you take the lead in everything, do you want to take charge of the Su Family?" Old Master Su was furious: "You scold her, will youe up with the money?" "I will," Su Qionglin said assertively. She fiddled with her delicate fingernails: "Its just twenty or thirty million, for Jinhua thats just a trifle." Ruanruan remained silent, sipping tea. Old Master Su was very satisfied. After Su Qionglin spoke, she took her handbag and headed for the hospital. The family was in trouble, Master Zhou would surely help her. But when she pushed open the door of the hospital room... The patient, Master Zhou, was full of life, with a second-tier actress sitting on him. Engaged in the eighth set of partner exercises. Chapter 367: The Su Family is at the End of Its Rope

Chapter 367: Chapter 367: The Su Family is at the End of Its Rope

The sound of the door opening startled the two of them. Zhou Jinhua looked up. His expression unchanged. He directly signaled Su Qionglin to leave. Su Qionglin clutched her handbag tightly. She wanted to explode with curses, she wanted to argue with him. But she didnt dare. She endured the humiliation and walked out... Upon reaching the hallway, her tears streamed uncontrobly. She thought of Bao Ziqi. Even if he no longer loved her, he wouldnt treat her this way. Zhou Jinhua was an asshole! But the words she had uttered were out, and she had to fill that hole. Su Qionglin took several pieces of her jewelry, including a ne that Zhou Jinhua had bought for her. After negotiating, she amassed thirty million. She walked out of the pawnshop. A ck sedan slowly pulled up. Su Ruanruan got out of the car and approached the front desk. The front desk manager recognized her noble demeanor at once and received her enthusiastically. Su Ruanruan asked softly, "What items did a youngdy pawn just now?" The manager checked and smiled, "Some jewelry! Quite valuable." He added, "The pawn value was high, she probably isnt nning to redeem it." Su Ruanruan wrote a check, handed it to him. "Ill take them." The manager was ecstatic. From this transaction alone, he made five million. Seeing the signature, he suddenly respected, "So its Miss Su." The manager grew more respectful, "We have some other items here, would you like to see them?" Su Ruanruan originally didnt intend to look. But having nothing else to do, she decided to have a look. Su Ruanruan took interest in a pair of Green Crystal Stone cufflinks. The manager praised, "Miss Su has great taste! This pair was designed by a renowned designer, there are only two or three pairs in the world." Su Ruanruan saw the price and wrote him another check. She returned to the Su Family. With this back and forth, Su Qionglins status underwent a huge change. She became the savior of the elderly Master Su. Su Auntie was radiant with pride. Su Qionglin sat on the couch, saying reservedly, "Like I said, this amount of money is nothing to Jinhua!" Su Auntie was greedy andined that her daughter should have asked for more. "Asking for more would make them look down on us!" Old Master Su scolded his daughter-inw. Su Auntie was displeased inside. Su Ruanruan just came in. She started trembling again, "Ruanruan, our Qionglin is now someone who throws around millions with ease!" Su Ruanruan gave a light smile. She said, "Thats good." Su Minghua knew Su Ruanruans background well and feared his mother might offend someone. He hurriedly said, "Ruanruan has helped too." "Our Su Family might not need it anymore!" Su Auntie was overjoyed. She even felt that Old Master Sus issue came at an auspicious time, serving as an emotional test for Mr. Zhou! Su Ruanruan originally wanted to caution them: This approach is clearly selling your daughter! But now there was no need. The Su Family had no shame, they were beyond saving! ... Su Ruanruan, having watched the drama unfold, returned to the vi. It was somewhat hot today, and since Bao Jingyan hadnt returned, she took a bath first. Midway, Bao Jingyan did return. He heard the sound of the shower and smiled. He leaned on the sofa, sipping the tea she had drunk. His gaze was drawn to several boxes. He opened the smallest one, insidey a pair of Green Crystal Stone cufflinks. Quite unique, to his liking. In no time, Su Ruanruan came out. Wrapped in a pure white bathrobe, her hair still damp. Her body slender, her face radiant. Bao Jingyan called her over to dry her hair. Su Ruanruan knelt beside him, closing her eyes. Bao Jingyan gently dried her hair, his voice even softer, "What made you think of buying something for me?" Su Ruanruan then spoke of todays events. She said, "The Su Family is at their wits end! Even a mere few millions required my elder sister to pawn jewelry." With her eyes closed, she calcted mentally. She had a n in her mind. Chapter 368: Old Master Su鈥檚 Heart and Soul Runs Away

Chapter 368: Chapter 368: Old Master Sus Heart and Soul Runs Away

Several days passed. The Su Family called again, asking Su Ruanruan toe back. Ruanruan had an idea of what it was about. She brought Old Zhao with her. As soon as they entered the house, they heard the heartbroken cries of the Su patriarch. "My precious darlings! Who could have the heart to do this to you!" "What if they fall into the hands of evil people?" "If something happens to them, I wont be able to go on living." ... Old Zhao followed behind, unable to hold back hisughter. "Your patriarch really knows how to cherish beauty." Ruanruan replied softly, "This is not a blessing." Old Zhao immediately swore to the heavens, "I am wholeheartedly devoted to my wife at home." Then, Ruanruan let him be. She walked up to the patriarch and gentlyforted him, "Whats happened?" The patriarch was more upset than if he had lost his wife. He confided in his granddaughter, "Meili and Meibao are missing! I suspect someone wicked has taken them." Ruanruan of courseforted him. But Su Yugu couldnt hold back, "Youre the only one who treasures them so, theyre not even fit to enter a club with their looks! Patriarch, youve seen the world in your days, how could you be fooled by these two sisters!" Ruanruan said softly, "Its precisely because my sisters Meili and Meibao are pure that the patriarch values them so greatly." The Su patriarch gripped her hand firmly. "Only Ruanruan understands me!" The Su patriarch refused to give up on the sisters. He said, "We must find them no matter what, they might even be carrying your little brothers or sisters in their wombs!" The Su Family members were collectively lost for words. Su Minghuas aunt was also angry. They spent hundreds of millions on these two unworthy women. She wanted to find them and y them alive! So, Su Minghuas aunt said, "Lets report it to the police!" Ruanruan immediately objected, "No! If they start investigating the patriarch, what will be of our reputation?" The Su patriarch gripped Ruanruans hand even more tightly. Ruanruan understands me the best! Su Minghuas aunt was furious, "Then what do you suggest we do?" Ruanruans brows furrowed slightly. After a moment, she had an idea, "Lets ce a missing persons ad in the newspaper under the name of rtives! I will also ask my elder brother to have his people search for them discreetly." The Su patriarch thought it was a good idea, "Lets do as Ruanruan says!" The others also agreed that it was a good n. Ruanruan immediately set out to take care of it. Outside. Su Minghua stood there, his expression somewhat hesitant. Ruanruan smiled softly, "Whats wrong, big brother?" Su Minghua hesitated before speaking, "Ruanruan, I still owe you a lot of money." In total, about thirty to forty million. But Ruanruan asked, "How has work been for you these past few days, big brother?" "Well... its been pretty good," Su Minghua replied, his hands in his pockets. His crumpled pack of cigarettes was squashed t. His fingers were trembling. Ruanruan was extremely perceptive. She fixed her gaze on his hand. After a long time, Su Minghua finally said in a hoarse voice, "I dont have any other skills! Just give me a shout if you need anything." After speaking, his face flushed. He hurried into the house and went upstairs. Ruanruan stood there, not moving. Old Zhao said slyly, "Hes not stupid after all, hes caught on." Ruanruan hummed in agreement. She knew in her heart that Su Minghua had weighed his options. He was standing by her side, or rather, he chose to protect himself. As they got into the car, Ruanruan said to Old Zhao, "My efforts towards him were not in vain." But the Su patriarch wasnt so lucky. His two darlings. Their disappearance made the headlines in major newspapers, and the men of Jiuye were also sent to look for them. The whole city of Jiangcheng was turned upside down. But there was no sign of them. The Su patriarch was in agony. Tears streamed down his face. He clutched the clothes of his precious daughters, his thoughts filled with them. Chapter 369 Your Treasure, A Woman in Her Thirties

Chapter 369: Chapter 369 Your Treasure, A Woman in Her Thirties

Su Ruanruan gently persuaded, asionally having servants bring ginseng tea for Old Master Su to sip on. Afraid that he might not catch his breath. The rest of the Su Family reluctantly offeredfort. Just at this moment, two men in uniform arrived. "Is this the residence of Su Yugu?" they inquired. Su Yugu hastily approached: "Yes, yes, yes! May I ask what brings you here?" The two men said with a faint smile, "Its nothing serious, just wish to have your elderly father assist with an investigation." Investigation? Investigation of what? Old Master Su looked utterly bewildered. The two officials were forthright: "Heres the thing! Weve been investigating a fraud ring! ording to reliable sources, thest person they contacted was your father." Upon hearing this, the Su Family members were dumbstruck. Particrly Old Master Su, who was beyond agitated: "What ring? I know nothing about it!" The two officials were not to be trifled with, strictly professional. "We hope for your cooperation." "The rings main members include Zhang Cuixia and Li Guirong, both 33 years old with an elementary school education." Old Master Su was on the verge of madness. "One is called Meili, and the other Meibao." "They are both just in their early 20s, pure and innocent young women." ... The two menughed. "Both have had several children. Whilemitting their crimes, they often used fish dders and chicken blood to garner sympathy from the elderly, then their husbands would follow up to extortrge sums of money." ... Swindlers! Old Master Su copsed onto the couch with a thud. Lying back, he muttered, "My treasures... turned out to be swindlers! They are no longer maidens." At this moment, Su Qionglin couldnt hold back any longer. She burst out, "Old Master, look at your age! What nonsense are you thinking of!" She was also decisive: "Fortunately, neither of those women got pregnant with the old masters seed, or there would be endless troubles." Her words reminded everyone else. Su Yugu immediately said to the two men, "We will cooperate with the investigation, but can you keep it confidential throughout? Our old master is somewhat of a public figure, after all." "Of course! We will refer to him as Mr. Su in our documents." The Su Family members breathed a sigh of relief. But before the two officials left, the scandal of Old Master Su being duped by the sisters had already been exposed. It became the top trending topic on Jiang Citys local search. [Scandalous Affairs of a Distinguished Family] [Shocking! Billion-dor sisters turn out to be women in their thirties!] [The full story of Old Doctor Su being scammed...] ... Su Yugu, trembling with rage, scrolled through his phone. "Nonsense!" "Minghua! Handle the PR immediately." Su Minghua nodded, "Ill contact our legal department right away." As he left, he stealthily nced at Su Ruanruan. He knew that the public rtions efforts might not be efficacious. The opposition was wealthy and prepared. After organizing everything, Su Yugu went to console his elderly father. Old Master Su was pointing at the sky, mouth agape He murmured, "Never... never..." Old Master Sus head tilted to one side. "Hes had a stroke," Su Yugu eximed, immediately attempting to provide aid. The Su Family descended into chaos. Old Master Su was rushed to the hospital... Eventually, overwhelmed by the shock, he suffered a stroke and became paralyzed. He would never be able to speak or walk again, let alone go after his treasures. The Su Family members stood in the hallway, utterly devastated. Stricken by the turn of events, it was Su Minghua, the eldest son, who took care of everything. But before he did anything, he would always look for Su Ruanruans reaction. The hospital had an unpleasant smell. Su Ruanruan didnt stay long. She went downstairs, ready to take her leave by car. In the elevator, she encountered Su Minghua. "Sister Four," Su Minghua called her, uneasy. Chapter 370: Domineering! I Don鈥檛 Like People Betraying Me

Chapter 370: Chapter 370: Domineering! I Dont Like People Betraying Me

Su Ruanruan smiled faintly, "Big brother, have we be such strangers?" Su Minghuas emotions were extremelyplex. Su Ruanruan harbored ill intentions towards the Su Family. He himself was being tormented in the palm of Su Ruanruans hand. When he was about to fall into hell, Su Ruanruan pulled him back. He understood in his heart. For Su Ruanruan to defeat the Su Family was as easy as lifting a finger. He only begged her, "Can you spare Ruan and Qionglin?" Su Ruanruan looked up at the red numbers of the elevator disy. After a moment, she indifferently said, "Second brother has treated me very well! Third sister... If she doesnt court death, no one will harm her." Then she informed him about something, "Big brother might not know, but in order to gather those twenty-something million, third sister sold several pieces of jewelry. She wont be able to marry into the Zhou Family." Su Minghua closed his eyes briefly. He had guessed as much. The elevator reached the first floor. He took the initiative to press the button, opening the door for Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan walked a few steps, then turned back. She smiled shallowly, "Big brother, I dont like it when people betray me." Su Minghua broke out in a cold sweat. * Su Ruanruan left the hospital. She went directly to a club owned by Mu Jiu. Yan Kuan was already waiting there. As soon as Su Ruanruan got out of the car, he went to open the door for her, "Miss Su, everyones been honest!" Su Ruanruan smiled faintly, "Youve worked hard these past few days." She whispered an order, "Give each person involved 20,000 from my ount." His underlings were as happy as can be. Yan Kuan patted one of them on the head, "Arent you going to thank Miss Su?" The kid, looking to be about 22 or 23 years old, immediately said respectfully, "Thank you, Miss Su." Su Ruanruan then softly said, "Work well, and you wont be treated unfairly! And if Mu Jiu ever causes trouble, you must tell me, too." Yan Kuan was particrly moved. He had originally thought Su Ruanruan acknowledged her kin just for the convenience of her own affairs. But unexpectedly, Miss Su truly cared for Mu Jiu. With connections to both the Gu and Bo families. Mu Jius business had be much more respectable. He led Su Ruanruan into a private room on the fourth floor. The door opened to a pitch-dark room. Yan Kuan turned on the light, saying, "Its not very presentable, Miss Su, please bear with it." As soon as the light came on, Su Ruanruan understood what he meant by "not presentable." Men and women were confined together. There were about seven or eight of them. Among them were two darlings of the old Su patriarch. Without their makeup, the two darlings suddenly looked like they were in their forties. "They werent cooperative when they were first brought here; now theyre behaved," Yan Kuan said, as he kicked those men. Su Ruanruan only addressed Meili and Meibao. "I heard you have kids at home," she said. Those two women also emerged from the rough and tumble, and they now recognized the prestigious identity of thedy before them. "You are Miss Su!" At another nce, there was no doubt. Those two master-gamers immediately began to wail, "Speaking of which, were still your grandmothers!" "Who are Miss Sus grandmothers?" Yan Kuan snapped. One p each. They immediately became docile. Su Ruanruan was not annoyed. She said, very gently, "The old patriarch has taken ill! Hes suffered a stroke and is paralyzed!" The two darlings felt guilty, thinking she came to settle ounts. Su Ruanruans delicate features became even gentler, "If you go out now, Im afraid you wont live past tomorrow." The two darlings trembled with fear. Su Ruanruan felt it was almost enough, and then said, "Your only way out now is tomit suicide! Confess everything youve done and everything you know." The two women refused, "We still have children!" Su Ruanruan lightly covered her teacup, "I will hire the bestwyer for you, and strive to get you a few fewer years." The two women didnt believe her. Could the granddaughter of the old Su bastard be this kind-hearted? Su Ruanruan smiled, "I not only do not hate you, but I also have to thank you." Chapter 371: Sweet Explosion! Such a Great Atmosphere!

Chapter 371: Chapter 371: Sweet Explosion! Such a Great Atmosphere!

When they came out, those people had already been sent to the station. Old Zhao opened the car door for Su Ruanruan, smiling and saying, "Miss Su handles things beautifully." But Su Ruanruan was not in the mood to celebrate. She smelled herself. "Uncle Zhao, do you think I smell a bit odd?" Old Zhao, driving, chuckled, "Miss Sus perfume is naturally the best." Su Ruanruan shook her head. Something felt off. Upon careful thought, she realized her body carried the scent of Meili and Meibao. Back at the vi. She hurried to take a shower. Of all times, Bao Jingyan was at home. When she pushed the door open, he was just rolling up his sleeves after unbuttoning his cuffs. Upon seeing her, he reached out and pulled. Pulling her into his arms. He moved to kiss her. Su Ruanruan hastily stepped back two steps and ended up falling onto the sofa. Bao Jingyan took the opportunity to close in, trapping her body between his. His tall nose nestled behind her ear, gently rubbing as he murmured, "Whats keeping you busy? Havent seen you for two or three days!" As he spoke, he began kissing from behind her ear. Moving to her cheek, then to her soft lips. Su Ruanruan kissed him for a while, but still insisted on taking a bath. "Whats the matter?" His voice raspy, "Thinking of doing something in the bathroom?" Su Ruanruan was shy. She leaned on his shoulder with one hand, whispering into his ear. Bao Jingyans nose touched her body. Smelling here and there. Su Ruanruan felt weak from his actions. She seriously said, "Stop it! I dont like it." "Smelling someone else on you, you dont want me to notice?" Bao Jingyan hovered away without touching her, his tone teasing, "Ruanruan, youre jealous over this?" Su Ruanruan wanted to say it wasnt true. But after a careful thought. It seemed it was. She disliked him interacting with others, even the scent on her from someone else was no exception. Bao Jingyan continued muttering, then pinched her cheek and kissed her. Their kisses deep and lingering, he breathed out between them, "I dont smell any other woman here, will you let me touch you? Hmm?" He was extremely skillful. And deliberately enticing her. Su Ruanruan soon couldnt resist, wrapping her arms around his waist. Bao Jingyan rested his forehead against hers, his voice hoarse, "Shall I carry you to the bathroom?" Su Ruanruan held him tight. Bao Jingyan horizontally lifted her, talking as they walked, "Such a delicate little thing!" But he cherished her delicacy. ... They stayed in the bathroom for a whole hour and a half. When they came out, both looked thoroughly satisfied. Su Ruanruan wore a ck silk bathrobe, her long hair flowing. Shey in Bao Jingyans arms to rest. Bao Jingyan gently tickled her earlobe, whispering, "Shall we have dinner upstairs?" Su Ruanruan had no strength, merely humming in response. Knowing she had been tired these past days, Bao Jingyan became even more gentle and considerate. He went downstairs to bring up dinner for two. But Su Ruanruan sat up. She looked at Bao Jingyan and said, "The Su Family is nearly done for! But theres still someone who might help the Su Family." Bao Jingyan obviously knew. He moved her close to his side, personally feeding her. "Ill help you solve it." Su Ruanruan feigned disbelief, "Do you know who it is?" Bao Jingyan snorted with a smirk. He countered, "Miss Su, didnt they add you on WeChat?" Su Ruanruan, both embarrassed and annoyed, "Bao Jingyan, you snooping on my phone and you still justify it?" Bao Jingyan continued feeding her, coaxing, "Stop fussing! Lets keep a good atmosphere!" Su Ruanruan nced at him. He just loved this! Bao Jingyanughed, "Ive already said it, if I didnt, I wouldnt be a man." ... Meanwhile, the Su Family was in utter chaos. The grandeurpletely faltered. The dirty deeds of Old Master Su couldnt be covered up anymore. The reputation of the Su Family was ruined. Su Qionglin was not willing to give up, not to mention she was still well-connected in their circles. Her fate tied with the Su Family. For better or for worse. She went to find Master Zhou. Master Zhou had been discharged from the hospital and was residing in his riverside grand apartment. Chapter 372: He Doesn鈥檛 Talk About Emotions, Only Business

Chapter 372: Chapter 372: He Doesnt Talk About Emotions, Only Business

Last time, they parted on bad terms at the hospital. Su Qionglin stubbornly did not seek him out. Young Master Zhou naturally would not humble himself. When she came this time, Young Master Zhou was not surprised. Something happened to the Su Family. She naturally came to seek his help. Young Master Zhou had a rib injury and hired an auntie for 24-hour care. Young Master Zhou asked her to pour a ss of water for Su Qionglin. He was very polite. Su Qionglin, on the other hand, was at a loss. Throwing a tantrum was out of the question for her. Pleasing him was another matter, especially with an old maid present. The atmosphere was tense. Young Master Zhou, an old yer, softly instructed the auntie to go to his room. The auntie, who came from City B, only advised briefly: "Thedy instructed you to restrain yourself. She said she would visit in a few days." Young Master Zhou was rather polite to her: "Alright, I got it." It was not the aunties ce to meddle too much. She returned to her room, only discreetly sending a message to Mrs. Zhou. With no others around, Su Qionglin leaned close to Young Master Zhous leg and softly asked him, "Hows your health?" Young Master Zhou pinched her chin lightly: "Still care about me?" Su Qionglin hurriedly expressed, "Jinhua, we have feelings for each other." Young Master Zhou scoffed. He picked up a mug next to him and sipped some red wine. He asked her, "Su Qionglin, do you love me?" "Of course I love you." Young Master Zhou shook his head, "You dont love me! If you did, how could you tolerate the existence of other women?" He was a charmer but not a fool. Since she came to ask him for help, they needed to negotiate properly. He didnt talk about feelings, only deals. Young Master Zhou said, "Marriage is out of the question!" Su Qionglins lips twitched. Finally, she managed a strained smile: "I can ept that!" She quickly spoke out, "Jinhua, I just beg you to help me!" Su Qionglins delicate face hardened: "Those two bitches are bent on ruining the old master! Jinhua, if the old masters reputation is destroyed, I will have a hard time in the future." Young Master Zhou agreed. He said, "Ill handle it!" Su Qionglin nestled by his leg, softly said, "Not a word from them should leak out! Let them rot in jail!" Her obedience was fresh to Young Master Zhou. He patted her cheek, his voice suddenly deep. "How will you thank me?" Su Qionglin knew what he wanted! Usually, she upheld her dignity, unwilling to attend to him like those minor celebrities. He was always dissatisfied. But she... still felt it was beneath her. Young Master Zhou smiled wryly. He raised the stakes. He took out a diamond ne from the safe. It was dazzling and very expensive! Young Master Zhou sat on the sofa, mentioning nonchntly, "It was auctionedst week at Christies." Su Qionglin was thrilled. Holding the ne, she admired it repeatedly: "For me?" It just so happened she pawned onest time. This one, only better than thest. Young Master Zhou watched her happy expression, his eyes carrying a hint of mockery. Such goods, only suitable for appreciation. If she had more backbone, he might actually respect her a bit more. Young Master Zhou leaned close to her ear, whispering lowly, "Go take a bath! Come back wearing just this." He wanted her to serve him, kneeling at his feet... Su Qionglin struggled momentarily. She gave in. She went to take a bath, wearing that expensive ne. Truly beautiful! Zhou Jinhua still sat there. Holding a ss of red wine, he gently savored it. His gaze on her carried both appreciation and interest. Su Qionglin still wanted to talk to him about affection. But Young Master Zhou saw through her little tricks, he directly said, "This ne, how many people want it?" Su Qionglin thought of the Su Family, thought of Su Ruanruans haughty demeanor. She steeled her heart,pletely bing Young Master Zhous ything... Chapter 373: No Hurry! It鈥檚 Just a Flicker of Hope Before the End

Chapter 373: Chapter 373: No Hurry! Its Just a Flicker of Hope Before the End

She made Mr. Zhou happy. And Mr. Zhou took care of things for her. The next day, the disgraceful news about the old master of the Su Family was suppressed. It was rumored that a significant amount of money was spent. The Su Family finally breathed a sigh of relief. ... Hospital. The old master of the Su Family couldnt speak, but his mind was clear. Su Yugu stood by the bed, affectionately bringing good news to his father. "Dad, dont worry! Jinhua has suppressed everything." The old master of the Su Family looked towards Su Qionglin. His eyes were filled with appreciation. After a moment, he lifted his hand, and Su Yugu said, "Ruanruan is here too!" Su Ruanruan stepped forward and grasped the old masters hand. She said softly, "They deceived the old masters feelings! With Sister Qionglin here, those two women wont have a good end." The old master of the Su Family nodded incessantly. Ruanruan understands me! In Su Ruanruans eyes, there was a gleam of broken light. She was willing to let the Su Family have their moments of pride! Consider it... theirst hurrah! After making an appearance, she left the hospital room. Behind her, Su Qionglin called out to her: "Su Ruanruan." Su Ruanruan turned around. She smiled slightly, very gracefully: "Did you call me, third sister?" Su Qionglin walked up to her, her face fierce and hostile: "The old master and my dad were deceived by you, but I certainly wont be! Youve never had good intentions toward the Su Family." Su Ruanruan casually countered: "Do you have any evidence, third sister?" Su Qionglin sneered: "If there was evidence, do you think you would still be standing here?" She continued: "As long as Im here, the Su Family will not fall, and I wont let you have thestugh." Su Ruanruans gaze, however, fell on her ne. If she remembered correctly, it was an auction item from Christiesst week. Bought by someone sent by Mr. Zhou. As for why its on Su Qionglins neck, Su Ruanruan could guess a thing or two. She smiled: "The ne is very beautiful." Su Qionglin said sweetly: "Jinhua bought it for me at Christies." Then, she turned to inquire about Su Ruanruans private affairs. "By the way, I heard the Bao Family might have a double celebration by the end of the year! Bao Jingyan also has a girlfriend now, Ruanruan, will it be inconvenient for you to visit the Bao Family in the future?" Su Ruanruan gave a faint smile: "Youre quite well-informed." Su Qionglins voice was full of malice: "Su Ruanruan, no matter that you are the daughter of the Gu Family, who would be willing to marry you in Jiangcheng after youve kept vigil in Bao Ziqis room?" Su Ruanruan remained calm. She said: "Youre very considerate, third sister." She turned and left. Su Qionglin felt triumphant inside. She yed with the diamond ne in her hand, thinking: Jinhua must still have some feelings for her. She had face, and naturally, she was even more pleasing to Mr. Zhou. These things, she did very naturally. Mr. Zhou found her exciting at first but then got a bit tired of her. He was injured and didnt touch her much after two days. Su Qionglin took it as his consideration. After her bath, she snuggled against him and softly spoke ill of Su Ruanruan. "Jinhua, do you remember Ruanruan?" Mr. Zhou was originally disinterested and ready to sleep. But now he opened his eyes: "Su Ruanruan?" Su Qionglin hummed in response. She said: "When Bao Ziqi had an incident, I should have been the one to go to the Bao Family! At that time, Ruanruan was still an orphan, yet she rushed to take my ce." She raised her eyes: "Ruanruan is alright in every aspect, but shes just too vain." The thoughts of women. Zhou Jinhua understood them best. How could he not see through such petty tricks? He couldnt be bothered with her and just gave a nonmittal hum. Closing his eyes to sleep. Su Qionglin, not receiving a response, was somewhat angry but didnt dare to provoke him. ... The next morning. Mr. Zhou, however, was tickled by the mention of Su Ruanruanst night. He was in the mood. He was about to start things with Su Qionglin when his cellphone rang. It was a call from City B, from Mr. Zhous parents. Chapter 374: Young Master Zhou is Summoned Back to City B

Chapter 374: Chapter 374: Young Master Zhou is Summoned Back to City B

Master Zhou has always held his parents in high regard, and he took his mobile phone to the window to answer a call. Su Qionglin sought to assert her presence. Feigning ignorance of who was calling, she hugged Master Zhou from behind. Her voice soft, "Jinhua, whose call is it?" On the other end, her voice was indeed heard. Lady Zhou never took a liking to women from outside their circle, and she told Master Zhou, "When Im talking to you, dont let any indiscreet women linger around." Her tone was moderate, but it reached Su Qionglins ears. Su Qionglin felt humiliated. Master Zhou, however, had some manners, patting her and asking her to leave. He took the call. About ten minutester. Master Zhou came out. He was already dressed neatly. He told Su Qionglin, "I have to go back to City B for a month." Su Qionglin was shocked. Master Zhou did not conceal the reason. He said directly, "My mother has arranged a blind date for me! I must spend this month with her to see if we are suitable for marriage." All of Su Qionglins pride was shattered. She knew her status in his life, but this... was too soon. She couldnt help but fight for it: "Jinhua, do we not stand a chance?" "No!" Master Zhou was straightforward. "Because of social status?" He looked at her and suddenly said, "No! Because I dont love you." Master Zhou was a very pragmatic person. Either he would marry a woman of equal social standing, or someone who would drive him wild with passion regardless of everything. Unfortunately, she was neither! Master Zhou also opened up to her: "My mother found out I was helping the Su Family and pressured me to withdraw all assistance!" He wrote her a check for 30 million. "Lets part on good terms!" Su Qionglin felt like she had fallen from heaven into hell. Before leaving, Master Zhou gave her a piece of advice: "The Su Family has offended someone they shouldnt have." ... That day, Master Zhou flew to City B. Lady Zhou didnt take him for the blind date. Instead, they went to the Sun Mansion. Graceful Lady Zhou kept her smile and waited for two hours at the door of the Sun Mansion just to see Mrs. Sun Jingan. Lady Zhou said to Mrs. Sun Jingan, "Jinhua is thoughtless and has troubled you! Ive brought him here to apologize." She also tentatively inquired about Sun Jingans whereabouts. Mrs. Sun Jingan smiled reservedly, "Lady Zhou is too kind! Its normal for children to be mischievous!" She added, "Jingan is not here! Its usual for him to be away during the holidays and not return for several days." She was quite cordial to Master Zhou, "I hear youre doing business in Jiangcheng?" Master Zhou was good at ttering women. Be they old or young, he excelled. Heplimented Mrs. Sun Jingans fair hands, saying that the jade from Jiangcheng suited her the best. Mrs. Sun Jinganughed, "My husbands ancestral home is in Jiangcheng, youre trying to fool me!" She added, "Jingans nephew is Jingyan." With this hint, Master Zhou understood. The Sun Family stood behind Su Ruanruan. She and Bao Jingyan were in a romantic rtionship! No wonder, just a few flirtatious words and a WeChat request got him beaten up. Exiting the Sun Mansion, Lady Zhou instructed, "Dont meddle in the Su Familys affairs anymore! Otherwise, you might offend someone unknowingly, making it difficult for your father and me to conduct business." She continued, "A girl like Su Qionglin is far too frivolous! You are not to associate with her anymore." Lady Zhou also felt some regret. She had heard Song Wei speak highly of Miss Su Ruanruan and admired her greatly. Being the only daughter of the Gu Family, it would have been wonderful if she could have been matched with Jinhua. Unfortunately, Jinhua no longer had that chance. ... Master Zhou also knew the ways of business. He agreeably consented. He stayed in City B, keeping to himself. He had no women around him, but asionally thought of Su Ruanruan... Without his assistance, The Su Family quickly copsed! The pride and joy of the Su patriarch revealed all the bluster and posturing he had maintained over the years. Not only personal morals but also medical ethics were called into question. In a moment, the reputation of the Su patriarch was in ruins, and his infamy widely spread. Chapter 375: Su Ruanruan Takes Advantage of the Situation

Chapter 375: Chapter 375: Su Ruanruan Takes Advantage of the Situation

The Su Familys treasures were all ced on Su Qionglin. Su Qionglin made countless phone calls. Young Master Zhou did not answer. Her face pale, she put down the phone. Su Yugu harshly took a drag of his cigarette. Auntie Sus voice sharp: "Jinhua returning to City B at this time, is he deliberately avoiding us?" She looked at her daughter: "Qionglin, give mom a straightforward answer, is there a problem between you two?" At this moment, Su Qionglin had no choice but to admit: "He went back to City B for a blind date." Auntie Su burst out cursing: "Heartless, faithless creature!" She wanted to go and settle scores with someone. Su Qionglin pleaded, "Mom, please save me some face!" Auntie Su, frustrated, said: "That shouldnt allow him to take advantage for free." Su Qionglin stayed silent. Then, Su Yugu solemnly said: "Now its not just the old mans reputation thats ruined, the hospital operation also has major problems! Those pharmaceuticalpanies that always used to beg me are now each knocking on my door demanding payments." He looked at his daughter: "Qionglin, how much cash do you still have?" Su Qionglin, a model, had a handsome ie. But she was a big spender and hadnt saved much. She only had a few decent pieces of jewelry. She agreed with Su Yugu wholeheartedly, "Dad, I can stille up with twenty or thirty million." "Thats not enough!" Su Yugu lit another cigarette. Su Qionglin looked distressed. At this moment, Su Minghua spoke up, "Dad, why dont we ask Ruanruan for advice?" Su Yugus brow twitched. He looked up at his eldest son. Su Minghua felt slightly guilty and forced himself to appear calm. Fortunately, Su Yugu agreed. ... Asking Ruanruan was not smooth for the Su Family. Ruanruan was busy socializing. Either apanying Mrs. Gu to the opera or going with Old Madam Bao to burn incense. After asking three or four times, she finally found a spare moment. Ruanruan brought Qin Chao and Yan Kuan along. ck wool skirt, a warm-colored thin coat over it. The fabric was very soft. With her ck hair, her face looked clean and innocent. Su Yugu invited Ruanruan to the main seat. Auntie Su personally poured tea. Ruanruan asked with concern, "Uncle, did you call me over for something?" Su Yugu took a moment and said, "Youve seen the rumors outside! The family is in trouble." Ruanruan took a sip of tea, smiling, "Its all scandals! In a while, some celebritys love life will naturally overshadow this." She was watertight. Su Yugu was left speechless. Auntie Su, anxious, spoke first: "Ruanruan, the hospital operation has encountered problems, you cant refuse to help." Ruanruan set down her tea cup. She smiled lightly: "I remember that I dont have any shares in Tongsheng! The shares from dads time were taken by uncle, even the ten percent given by Bao Family were taken by you." Su Family appeared pained. Havingmitted countless misdeeds, they now found themselves without an exit strategy. Ruanruan made her point, then stood up: "I have a four oclock flight, I should go." The Su Family was reluctant to let her leave. Su Yugu gave a signal to his eldest son. Su Minghua then said, "Youngest sister! If not for Buddhas sake, then for the monks." He added, "Second uncle is watching from above!" Ruanruan then gently said, "Now, no one knows if Su Family can get through this. I cant throw my billions into the water, uncle, you need to give me an exnation." Su Yugu thought Ruanruan was seizing the opportunity to feast! He then spoke of a loan, offering high interest. Ruanruan said, "Ill put up two billion, buying twenty percent of the shares from uncle." Su Yugu was furious! Veins bulging on his neck. In good times, this part of the family business was worth three billion. Ruanruan was clearly taking advantage of the fire! Chapter 376: Revenge! Feed All These Medicines to Old Master Su

Chapter 376: Chapter 376: Revenge! Feed All These Medicines to Old Master Su

Su Qionglin shouted sharply, "Dad, you cant agree to her!" Su Yugus face was as grim as still water: "If you dont agree, can youe up with two hundred million?" Su Qionglin couldnt. She red at Su Ruanruan with all her might. She didnt believe Su Ruanruan could produce two hundred million. Su Ruanruan sat down and lightly wrote a series of checks. Su Qionglin, disbelieving, made a phone call to the bank. The bank manager spoke to her politely on the phone: "Miss Sus avable ount bnce is still over 1.8 billion, and additionally, she has a fixed ie of 50 million every month. The checks she writes, there is absolutely no chance theyd bounce." Su Qionglins face turned pale. She felt like she had been struck a blow. Su Ruanruan didnt squabble with her; she brought awyer and made the transaction with Su Yugu in person. Half an hourter, she acquired another twenty percent of Tongsheng Hospitals shares. Su Yugu did the math, he still held forty percent. Minghua had ten percent. No matter what, the Su Family still called the shots at Tongsheng Hospital. He decided to deal with Zhou Xuan, with the two hundred million in capital. Su Ruanruan put away her checkbook and stood up. Su Qionglin was still fighting like a trapped beast: "As long as I marry into the Zhou Family, this amount of money is nothing!" Su Ruanruan smiled slightly: "Bing thedy of a prominent family, many things are not as morous as the third sister imagines! Without a husbands love, how could one spend freely?" Having said that, she no longer paid attention to Su Qionglin. At this moment, she had someone to meet! ... At the high-end sanitarium. The old Master Suy quietly on the hospital bed. He had suffered a stroke, paralyzing him. He couldnt speak, but his mind was clear. Su Ruanruan pushed the door in. Yan Kuan and Qin Chao followed behind her. "Is everything taken care of?" Su Ruanruan asked softly. Yan Kuan replied respectfully: "Nh Master personally took care of it, nothing will go wrong." Su Ruanruan smiled faintly. Something seemed off to the old Master Su lying on the bed. Ruanruan no longer resembled his understanding granddaughter. "Of course, Im not!" Su Ruanruan said with a coldugh. She raised a few documents in her hand and walked up to the old Master Su. "This is thirty percent of the Tongsheng Hospital shares, and thend deed for Su Residence. They all belong to me now." The old Master Sus eyes suddenly widened! He frantically patted the bed, trying to call for someone! "No one wille!" Su Ruanruan tenderly fixed the old Master Sus nket, her tone gentle: "Because today, I want to have a good talk with you, old Master." The old Master Su couldnt speak. He could only stare at Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan smiled lightly: "Since old Master cannot speak, let me do the talking. Remember Song Wei? She was someone I brought in, it was a trap from the beginning. She seduced my eldest brother, making him unable to extricate himself, and the Su Family coveted her wealth! Not only did they give the money to sister Meiru, but my eldest brother was recorded and extorted out of fifty million. Oh yes, those fifty million were exchanged with shares." At this point, the old Master Su was fiercely clutching the nket. He was ready to fight Su Ruanruan with all hes got. "Dont be angry, theres more!" Su Ruanruan smiled faintly: "My eldest brother was always gambling, and to repay his gambling debts, he sold the residence to me! But dont worry, old Master, he has now reformed and started anew." The old Master Su suddenly let out a few gasps. "How vicious!" "You... evil..." ... "Where could I be as vicious as you, old Master?" Su Ruanruan pulled out a medicine bottle from her handbag. The old Master Su saw the medicine bottle. His expression became bizarre. It was as if he had regained some rity. Su Ruanruans grip tightened: "I dont believe you dont recognize this! Nor do I believe you dont know about my eldest uncle giving this to dad!" "Er... Er..." The old Master Su shook his head desperately. Su Ruanruan lowered her gaze. She gently opened the lid. She said: "Since I cant hear the exnation from you, old Master, theres still my eldest uncle." Qin Chao and Yan Kuan stepped forward. They forcibly opened old Master Sus mouth. Su Ruanruan fed the pills into his mouth, one by one... Chapter 377: This One, Reserved for Eldest Uncle

Chapter 377: Chapter 377: This One, Reserved for Eldest Uncle

Su Lao Yezi struggled fiercely. His withered fingers clenched the bedsheet into a tight ball. Yan Kuan delivered a heavy p. All the medicine went into Su Lao Yezis belly. Su Ruanruan gently said, "Your reputation is now ruined, staying conscious is only more painful!" She smiled lightly, "By the way, those sisters didnt run away. It was I who captured them and forced them to relentlessly use Lao Yezi. The harsher they used, the fewer years I let them stay in prison." Hatred filled Su Lao Yezis eyes. Yan Kuan pped him again. "Still thinking its like the old days! An old fool who even harms his own son, are you even human!" Su Lao Yezi was struck till he could barely breathe. Su Ruanruan softly said, "Dont let him die! I still want toe and give Lao Yezi the good news on the day his brother is sentenced." She held thest pill. Leaning close to Su Lao Yezis ear, she whispered, "This one, is saved for uncle." Su Lao Yezi foamed at the mouth... Having done all this. Su Ruanruan went to the cemetery. She stood alone in front of Su Peimings grave for a long time. ... Su Residence. Two billion yuan injected vitality into the Su Family. Su Qionglin hired topwyers, vowing to take down those two despicable people. She came home to share the good news. But saw Su Yugu looking despondent. "Whats wrong, Dad?" Su Yugu said gravely, "Lao Yezi has be a vegetable." Su Qionglin was stunned. Having been the favored child in the family, she was now extremely angry. Choking up, she said, "Dad, I must kill those two bitches. I want them to rot in jail." Su Minghua, standing by, remained silent. After a while, he went upstairs alone. He sat in his bedroom, smoking fiercely. Ruanruan was more ruthless than he had anticipated. But he felt what she did wasnt too excessive, as back then... Lao Yezi and his father treated his uncle the same way. His fingers trembled. He knew, his own father was next. ... One monthter. Early winter. Gu Mansion. Su Ruanruan received a phone call early in the morning. From Bao Mansion, saying it had snowed and inviting Su Ruanruan to enjoy the snow. It was cold, and Su Ruanruan didnt want to go out. Later, Bao Mingyuan personally called, yfully saying the olddy missed her. Su Ruanruan reluctantly agreed. This visit meant she would stay for a couple of days. Madame Gu prepared her belongings, jokingly said, "Are you fighting with Jingyan and now need the elders to mediate?" Su Ruanruan and Bao Jingyans conflict. It was but a minor disagreement between the sheets. Modest, Su Ruanruan wouldnt admit it. She just bit her lip, "Im going for the sake of the olddy." Madame Gu pretended not to know. She packed severalrge suitcases for Su Ruanruan, not counting the gifts from Bao familys women. All very proper. When Su Ruanruan arrived at the Bao Mansion, it was already noon. Gui Zhi took her to sort out her luggage, Bao Jingyan came down from the third floor. He wore light-colored pants and a white high-neck sweater. Mature and handsome. His gaze towards her. Unfathomable. It had been over a week since Su Ruanruan had seen him. She couldnt help but steal a few more nces. Bao Jingyan said, "Its cold in the courtyard with the snow, stay in the main house! Theres an empty room on the third floor, east side." Gui Zhi dared not decide on her own. Bao Mingyuan said, "Madame Gu sent you over, its improper to stay in the courtyard, do as Jingyan said!" Su Ruanruan wanted to refuse, but feared being too obvious. She nced at Bao Jingyan. His gaze was burning. Following Gui Zhi upstairs, she avoided him but Bao Jingyan moved closer. Their bodies brushed past each other. He whispered in a low voice, "Still mad?" [Happy Mid-Autumn Festival~~] Chapter 378: And I Can Only Sympathize with Brother

Chapter 378: Chapter 378: And I Can Only Sympathize with Brother

Su Ruanruans face flushed, and her steps quickened. Bao Jingyuan mored, "Big brother, you have a girlfriend. If you and Su Ruanruan stay alone on the third floor, your girlfriend will get angry." Bao Jingyan walked down the stairs slowly, "Get angry?" Bao Jingyuan seriously replied, "Of course shell get angry!" Bao Jingyan teased, "Then what should I do to make amends?" Bao Jingyuan eagerly said, "Just keep your distance from Su Ruanruan, big brother!" A faint smile yed at the corner of Bao Jingyans mouth. Afraid shell get even angrier. When Su Ruanruan came downstairs, Xia Minn had also arrived. She also brought a suitcase, as if nning a short stay. Mrs. Bao spoke gently, "I invited Minn over." She intended to get close to Bao Jingyan, saying, "Jingyan can also invite his girlfriend over. The snow scene in the Jing Garden is really not bad this year!" Bao Jingyan smiled faintly. He looked at Su Ruanruan and frowned, "You finished packing so quickly?" In front of others, Su Ruanruan didnt want to upset him. She said, "Aunt Gui Zhi packed for me." Bao Jingyan deliberately picked on her, "You dare to boss Aunt Gui around?" He added, "Only the olddy canmand her, how cozy must you two be to have this clout?" Su Ruanruan was both angry and embarrassed. He was clearly taking advantage of her. On the side, Bao Mingyuan thought he was behaving like an old dog. Cant Jingyan have a bit more shame? Xia Minn, on the other hand, looked downcast. Her treatment at the Bao Family was far worse than Su Ruanruans. Her heart was not content, as she was supposed to be the future daughter-inw of the Bao Family! Yet she didnt realize, her arrival was abrupt. Bao Mingyuan didnt really like it. Bao Ziqi saved her face, helping her with the luggage to the second floor. Xia Minn was going to stay in the bedroom next to Bao Ziqis. Bao Ziqi said in a t voice, "No." Xia Minn opened the door curiously, "Why not? I think theyout here suits an unmarrieddy." "If I say no, then no," Bao Ziqi closed the door. Xia Minn suddenly blushed. She looked at him shyly, "Ziqi, do you want me to stay in your room?" Bao Ziqi was taken aback. A faint blush rose on his pale face. Not because of affection. But difort. He had never thought of anything happening with Xia Minn... Luckily, he quickly regained hisposure and took her to a bedroom at the northernmost end, "You can stay here." "The north-facing room! Wont it be cold?" "Theres central heating." Their back and forth left Xia Minn somewhat disheartened. After putting down her luggage, they went downstairs for a meal. During the meal, Mrs. Bao tried to ostracize Su Ruanruan by bringing up Bao Jingyans girlfriend multiple times. Even Bao Mingyuan was annoyed, "Isnt Ziqis issue enough for you to worry about?" Mrs. Bao immediately fell silent. Her husband had been very cold to her recently. On her face, she put on a pitiful and charming appearance. Bao Mingyuan, always tender-hearted to women, said when no one was around after the meal, "Its cold. Theres no need to kneel at the ancestral hall for the next few days." Mrs. Baos eyes brimmed with tears again. It was cold outside, but the bedroom was warm. Knowing her husband had softened a bit, she went to the bathroom to freshen up. Bao Mingyuan had the habit of an hours nap at noon. That day, he stayed in the bedroom for a full three hours... * First floor. Housekeeper Wang made a firece, and the youngsters gathered around for fun. The olddy also came. The olddy wanted to y mahjong. Xia Minn rememberedst time and didnt want to participate. Su Ruanruans pale slender hands were warmed by the firece. She said, "I wont join this time." Only then did Xia Minn show the demeanor of a true fiance. She yed cards with the olddy, keeping her happy. Bao Ziqi and Bao Jingyan also joined the table. Su Ruanruan sat alone in front of the firece, holding a book to read. On the snowy day, she wore a printed wool long dress. Her ck hair draped over her shoulders. Quietly readinga true beauty! Bao Jingyans gaze drifted over there from time to time... Chapter 379: Sweet! Bao Jingyan is Not Being Human Today 1

Chapter 379: Chapter 379: Sweet! Bao Jingyan is Not Being Human Today 1

Bao Jingyuan shouted, "Big brother, youve set off firecrackers again!" The granny was shuffling the deck and said, "Jingyan, what are you doing spaced out? Youve lost quite a bit of money." Bao Jingyan hung his head. Indeed! He then said to the other side, "Ruanruan,e help me take a look! If I lose, you wont have any candy to eat." Su Ruanruan was unwilling toe over. The granny then smiled and said, "Come over! Hes getting anxious because hes losing." Su Ruanruan, not wanting to disrespect the granny, had to put down her book ande over. Gui Zhi immediately moved a chair next to Bao Jingyan. A cup of hot fragrant tea was ced in her hand. Xia Minn was not pleased. Gui Zhi was overly enthusiastic towards Su Ruanruan! She pondered: Does this Gui Zhi not know how to assess the situation, thus not trying to please me? She was about to say something. Bao Jingyan grabbed a tile. He didnt look at it. Covering it, he leaned towards Su Ruanruan, "Ruanruan, blow on it! Lend me some luck." Su Ruanruans delicate little face suddenly looked charmingly alluring. She bit her lower lip. Bao Jingyan pretended not to notice. He smiled, "Blow on the tile, hmm?" There were quite a few people around! Apart from those ying mahjong, there were also seven or eight distinguished servants watching. No matter how upset Su Ruanruan was, she could only blow gently. Bao Jingyan flipped the tile. He immediatelyid the tiles down single-handedly, "Sorry, pair upon pair, Ive won." With a face full of delight, he epted the chips from everyone, while saying, "Its different when Ruanruan blows on it." The granny suddenly looked enlightened! Bao Ziqis face was tense. Su Ruanruan felt both embarrassed and angry. At this moment, the granny pretended to have a headache, "Ouch! Im feeling a bit cold, Gui Zhi help me go back and put on an extra piece of clothing." She then asked Su Ruanruan to y for her. Su Ruanruan didnt refuse. She sat down at the mahjong table, directly next to Bao Jingyan. Afterward, she specifically targeted Bao Jingyan, refusing to win unless Bao Jingyan set off the firecrackers. A few roundster. Xia Minn was puzzled. Was Su Ruanruan targeting big brother? Was their rtionship really bad? Bao Jingyan was in a great mood, he yed a tile with a smile, "Hey, this is for Ruanruan to eat." Su Ruanruan was about to eat it. But with him saying that, she felt awkward to do so. Her cheeks had a light blush. She looked very pretty. Bao Jingyan yed another tile. He leaned in close to Su Ruanruan, "Ruanruan, did I set off firecrackers?" Actually, he did! But how could she win with him saying things like that? Luckily, Bao Jingyan knew when to stop, and he said, "Im tired! Im going upstairs to rest for a bit." After he left, Xia Minn couldnt help saying, "Big brother probably lost six or seven million, huh?" The Bao familys servants all remained silent. They thought this Miss Xia was somewhat unsophisticated. Instead, Bao Jingyuan eximed, "Su Ruanruan won the most!" Su Ruanruan nced at her, then pulled out a few bills for her. Bao Jingyuan saw them. It was actually over a million. She was angered but also tempted. Su Ruanruan then distributed the rest of the money to the distinguished servants as a winter festival gift. The servants were all pleased, thinking Miss Su was kind. Then, Bao Jingyuan suggested, "Its snowing heavily outside! Lets go make a snowman." Such childish activities really werent of much interest to aristocraticdies. But Su Ruanruan didnt want to go up to the third floor. She put on her coat, changed her shoes, and went along. Bao Ziqi watched outside. Xia Minn, not wanting to be outdone, gritted her teeth and also ran out into the snowy field. Bao Jingyuan, heartlessly, started ying wildly... She insisted on making a bigger snowman than anyone else. Su Ruanruan epted the challenge. Initially, the physically strong Bao Jingyuan indeed made a bigger one. But the Bao family servants, having received benefits from Su Ruanruan,ter started shoveling snow one by one to help Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruans snowman, gigantic. Bao Jingyuan screamed furiously... Xia Minn quietly watched. She was so jealous of Su Ruanruan and was nearly going mad. Chapter 380: Sweet! Bao Jingyan is Not Being Human Today 2

Chapter 380: Chapter 380: Sweet! Bao Jingyan is Not Being Human Today 2

Su Ruanruan felt pleasantly warm all over and content. The phone in her pocket rang. She nced at it, then looked towards the third floor of the main house. On a balcony on the third floor, a tall figure stood. His voice was husky: "Gone crazy with ying?" Su Ruanruan hung up the phone directly. She continued to build her snowman. But, going crazy with ying had its consequences. That night, her period came, and her feet were painfully cold. The olddy had Gui Zhi bring over some ginger soup. Gui Zhi, following the olddys orders, had wanted to say more, but just then Bao Jingyan entered. Gui Zhi smiled, "Master Jingyan, you say it." Bao Jingyan closed the door. Su Ruanruan was still angry at him and sat on the sofa by the floor-to-ceiling window. Reservedly drinking her ginger soup. Bao Jingyan found a foot bath somewhere, filling it with hot water and medicinal herbs. "What are you doing?" Su Ruanruans voice was somewhat tender. Bao Jingyan bent his knee. Took hold of her foot, helping her take off her shoes and socks. Her instep was extremely attractive, and her skin was pale too. Bao Jingyan gently touched it and ced it in the hot water. He massaged the sole of her foot; Su Ruanruan sighed infort. "Not angry anymore?" Bao Jingyan looked up at her, his voice raspy. Quite enticing. Su Ruanruans face flushed, "Angry." She said reservedly, "What nonsense were you spouting while ying cards today?" Bao Jingyan chuckled lowly. He said, "Just teasing you! Youve been ignoring me for days." Su Ruanruans face reddened even more, as the incident came back to her mind. She was young, inexperienced. He always teased her in various ways. He just liked to see her breakdown crying... Su Ruanruan stayed silent. Bao Jingyan didnt speak either, but the air was filled with tenderness. He spoke to her softly, teaching her that it was not unusual for most married couples to do such things... Su Ruanruan felt he was coaxing her. "Where am I coaxing you?" Bao Jingyans voice was unbelievably gentle, "Ruanruan, are you going to say youre notfortable?" Su Ruanruan grabbed a throw pillow and hit him. Hitting him head-on. More than shy, she was truly annoyed. Bao Jingyan held her in his embrace. Her hair was a mess,pletely disheveled. But Bao Jingyan didnt care. He also gathered her feet into hisp, not minding that they were wet. He said in a husky voice, "Just now, seeing you ying with Jingyuan reminded me how long its been since our home has been lively, Ruanruan, shall we buy a big house and have more children in the future, okay?" Su Ruanruan blushed. She said she didnt want to have many children. Childbirth would change her figure. "Ill exercise with you!" Bao Jingyan coaxed her. Su Ruanruan then said he was greedy, wanting both children and a wife with a good figure. Bao Jingyanughed softly, saying, "Ruanruan, Im ten years older than you! My crisis is bigger than yours, I have to worry not only about my figure but also about going bald." Su Ruanruan looked at him. Imagining him bald, she couldnt help but feel cheerful. "Made up?" Bao Jingyan pressed. Su Ruanruan, face red, nodded. Then Bao Jingyan stared at her, "Miss Su, your ideological stance isnt strong enough!" Su Ruanruan, irritated, hit him with the throw pillow again. After yfully fighting for a while, he folded her in his embrace and kissed her. It had been a week. In body and mind, both deeply missed each other... ... That night, Su Ruanruan was feeling unwell and didnte downstairs for dinner. Madam Bao was in a good mood and didnt say anything. Bao Jingyuan even said: "She got tired from ying cards." She then prattled on about the afternoons events. Bao Mingyuan listened and then looked at his son. Act properly! Put on some clothes! Just then, Xia Minn seized the opportunity and spoke reservedly, "Uncle, I have something to say but Im not sure if I should." Chapter 381 Premiere! Ruanruan, protect me!

Chapter 381: Chapter 381 Premiere! Ruanruan, protect me!

Bao Mingyuan doesnt like her very much. Her family background is mediocre, and so is she. He was about to respond with a few words, but Bao Jingyan spoke up before him: "Miss Xia, its best not to speak when youre unsure." Xia Minn thought he was looking out for her. She smiled faintly: "I did it for the reputation of the Bao Family!" Bao Mingyuan found it quite distasteful. The snowy weather was just right. Bao Family has been doing well recently, what reputation do they need? Xia Minn expressed her worries: "I thought Miss Su was a proper girl, but seeing her arrogant behavior because shes spoiled, I think its inappropriate, not to mention the recent scandals of the Su Family..." She looked earnest: "Doesnt Uncle think this could affect the Bao Family?" Lady Bao listened to her talking nonsense. She struggled not to roll her eyes: Just shut up! Think you can take down Su Ruanruan with such trivial matters? She couldnt help worrying about Ziqis offsprings genes! Bao Mingyuan couldnt even bother to smile, "Ruanruan is the youngest child in our family, whats wrong with spoiling her a bit? Miss Xia, you are overthinking." Xia Minn looked upset. The youngest child in the family. Miss Xia... It was clear who was more important. Just when she felt ufortable, Housekeeper Wang entered the door covered in light snow. He was holding an invitation. Bao Mingyuan asked, "Whose is it?" Housekeeper Wangs expression wasplex as he said, "Its for Young Master Jingyan." He respectfully handed the invitation to Bao Jingyan. Bao Jingyan didnt care much, just flipped through it casually. Bao Jingyuan eximed loudly, "Its a premiere of a movie starring the Best Actress! She even invited our whole family to watch it." Bao Jingyan looked indifferent. Bao Jingyuan murmured, "Isnt that Best Actress Su Ruanruans big brothers girlfriend? Why is she making a move on big brother now?" Just then, Su Ruanruan came downstairs to pick up her afternoon books. She heard it. Bao Mingyuan rejoiced in others misfortune: "Jingyan really has good market, even the Best Actress pursues him home! Luckily Jingyan doesnt have a wife now, otherwise, wouldnt it cause a family crisis? The jealousy would be overwhelming!" Bao Jingyan lightly weighed the invitation. He looked up, as if he just noticed Su Ruanruan. He asked her, "Do you want to go?" Bao Jingyuan wrapped her arm around his, cheerfully saying, "Big brother, I want to go!" Bao Jingyan patted her: "Call Ruanruan, lets all go as a family." These words "as a family" were quite loaded. Su Ruanruan felt his wicked sense of humor. Bao Jingyuan was happy, then asked Su Ruanruan, "Will you feel ufortable seeing your former sister-inw?" Bao Jingyan added, "The Best Actress and Mr. Zhou have some history! In fact, shes not only Ruanruans former sister-inw but also the ex-girlfriend of Ruanruans current brother-inw." He intentionally mentioned Mr. Zhou. He was really bothered by it. Su Ruanruan simply sat next to him. Bao Jingyan lowered his voice, "These days are free, why not go out and rx?" Su Ruanruan bit her lip: he just wanted to see her get jealous. Bao Jingyan added, "You definitely wont be happy with others coveting me in private! Who knows how theyll pester me in the future, why not protect me in person, hmm?" Bao Mingyuan, who was close by, heard some of it. He had a toothache! This eldest son is so shameless! Unexpectedly, Su Ruanruan agreed. She smiled lightly, "Ill go and keep an eye out for big brother! Who knows, maybe big brother will take a liking to her!" No need for others to say, Bao Jingyuan was the first to disagree, "Big brother wont like her! Big brother likes... likes..." She thought for a long time, but couldnt figure out what type big brother likes. Her gaze shifted. Then she muttered, "I think big brother likes someone like Ruanruan." Xia Minn added her two cents: "Big brother should like a dignified and elegantdy." Bao Jingyan just smiled lightly. Chapter 382: Premiere! Red Carpet Slay!

Chapter 382: Chapter 382: Premiere! Red Carpet y!

Two dayster. The blockbuster drama "Secret Meeting" premiered in Jiang City. Su Ruanruan, still not feeling well, was forcibly dragged out by Bao Jingyan. "Its cold, I dont want to wear a dress," Su Ruanruan coquettishlyined. Bao Jingyan pampered her, "Wear a dress, and cover it with a coat! My Ruanruan looks good in anything." Su Ruanruan gave him a side-eye. After all, she was a girl; she obediently got up to get styled. She picked a DIOR haute couture from a previous season. A red long gown, with light, pleated tulle. A subtle reveal at the back. The waist cinched tight, her slender white legs faintly visible. Bao Jingyan thought it was too much! He felt a pang of jealousy but was afraid of making Ruanruan think he was an old fuddy-duddy if he voiced his concerns explicitly. He kissed her, trying to coax her into taking it off and changing. But Su Ruanruan earnestly said, "All the big names of Jiang City will be there today, dont you want to walk the red carpet with me?" Bao Jingyan immediately ceased his attempts. "Ruanruan, you want to walk the red carpet with me?" As Su Ruanruan put on her purple diamond bracelet, she counter-asked him, "Or do you want to walk with the movie queen?" She knew the movie queen had invited him. But Bao Jingyan had declined. Su Ruanruan felt such a husband was good, and he deserved a proper reward. Bao Jingyan jokingly asked, "The kind that holds hands?" "Um-hmm," Su Ruanruan consented. She added, "But itll be just the two of us from our house!" She had thought it through. Bao Mingyuan and his wife took Bao Jingyuan. Bao Ziqi with Xia Minn. And herself with Bao Jingyan. Not out of ce at all! She exined her analysis to him, leading Bao Jingyan to exim: Never did he imagine he would one day bask in Bao Ziqis light. But it was a pleasant surprise, nheless. ... To make a grand entrance. The Bao Family dispatched three RVs to the event. At the premiere, to emphasize their significance, the organizers cleared the area specially. The three RVs came to a stop. First, Bao Mingyuan and his wife with Bao Jingyuan walked the red carpet. Bao Jingyuan, arm in arm with her parents, strutted confidently. Followed by Bao Ziqi and Xia Minn. This artist, cool and aloof. The hosts didnt dare to chat much with him. Thest ck RV slowly came to a halt. The movie queen approached personally. Though Bao Jingyan had rejected her, the young movie queen was a ma for the wealthy. To this day, undefeated. Everyone in the circle knew she was skilled in hairstyling. She believed Bao Jingyan would also be willing to have an affair with her. The door slid open, revealing a pair of slender legs from the vehicle. Next, Bao Jingyan stepped out. A crisp white shirt. A ck velvet suit. Tall and upright, handsome with a divine aura! Though wrapped in expensive fabric, his well-defined, muscr silhouette couldnt be concealed. The movie queen showed an innocent face. That was her trump card! Just as she was about to speak, Bao Jingyan bent down and led a young girl out of the RV. The DIOR red dress from a past season. Slim and delicately frail in stature. Her presence instantly overshadowed the movie queen. Not to mention, the string of purple diamonds on her delicate wrist exuded immeasurable nobility. The movie queens smile froze at the corners of her mouth. Su Ruanruan? The movie queen had a history with Gu Ze, and they were caught in infidelity. But she had strong mental fortitude. Still smiling, she asked Su Ruanruan, "Ruanruan, I havent walked the red carpet yet, would you mind..." borrowing Bao Jingyan to walk down the red carpet? She was polite, yet fully scheming. Su Ruanruan gave a faint smile. Her gaze pure and innocent, "I dont mind at all! Ill walk the red carpet once with Jingyan bro, then apany Sister Yin." The movie queen turned pale with dismay. She had no intention of walking the red carpet with Su Ruanruan! Besides, Su Ruanruans haute couture outshone her regr off-the-rack dress. Su Ruanruans purple diamond bracelet was priceless, while her diamond ne was merely sponsored. There was noparison at all! The movie queens lips trembled unnaturally, "No need! Ill find someone else." Chapter 383: Bao Jingyan鈥檚 Loyalty, Su Ruanruan鈥檚 Confidence

Chapter 383: Chapter 383: Bao Jingyans Loyalty, Su Ruanruans Confidence

Su Ruanruan smiled faintly. Perfectly gracious. Then her hand was taken by Bao Jingyan. The evening wind was brisk. She was in a long red dress. At the prime of her life, gazing at him. They walked the red carpet together, nearly exhausting all the photographers rolls of film. Their pictures topped the local trending searches. Sparking a heated debate. [The female leads looks and charisma outshine the Best Actress!] [Such a celestial pair of beauties.] [Isnt that Su Ruanruan and Bao Jingyan? Oh my, Su Ruanruan once stayed over for Bao Ziqi, and now shes walking the red carpet with Bao Jingyan? Im shipping an impossible CP!] [Impossible! Heard through the grapevine! Bao Jingyan has a girlfriend, the kind you meet the parents with at the end of the year!] [Too bad! He and Su Ruanruan are quite a match.] ... [At this time, shouldnt you be concerned about my ex-husband (Bao Ziqi)s heartbroken little eyes?] [Indeed, guarding the room has blossomed feelings!] [Fantasy! The grand drama of the elites in 2021!] ... After walking the red carpet, Bao Jingyan took a coat and draped it over Su Ruanruan. "Mrs. Bao, youre quite the sensation," he teased her. Su Ruanruan gave him a sidelong nce. He was in a great mood. His sense of mischief was satisfied. Su Ruanruan followed him to the VIP seats. Once seated, she whispered, "You just want to see me jealous, dont you?" "Did you get jealous?" Bao Jingyan asked her. Su Ruanruan initially acted reserved. After a moment, she murmured softly, "A little upset." That was jealousy! Bao Jingyan found her cute with the tips of her ears turning red. Ruanruan was delicate in thought, but she never yed games with her emotions. Very transparent! He treasured this about her a lot. Bao Jingyan felt a tenderness in his heart and whispered in her ear, "Tomorrow is New Years Day. Stay with me for the night outside, and lets celebrate the New Year together." Su Ruanruan thought it over and agreed. At that moment, the Best Actress approached them again. Apanying her was Young Master Zhou. Just before, when the Best Actress was unable to save face, it was Young Master Zhou who had just returned to Jiangcheng that helped her out of the situation. Young Master Zhou saw Su Ruanruan. His eyes glided over her with admiration. But that was all he dared - admire. He didnt dare to look any more than necessary. The Best Actress hadnt given up on Bao Jingyan. She asked Bao Jingyan in a very familiar tone, "After the event, Im hosting a New Year party, would Mr. Bao be interested in joining?" She added, "Gu Ze, Young Master Zhou, and Ziqi have all agreed already." Bao Jingyan was quite surprised. She has quite the clout! However, he always respected himself and wasnt fond of such actors or celebrities. He nodded politely, "Thank you, Miss Yin for the invitation! But Ive got ns to celebrate the New Year with my girlfriend." The Best Actress was somewhat disappointed. She turned to Su Ruanruan, deciding for her, "Come with meter! Your brother will be there too." Su Ruanruan also felt she had great energy. At the same time, she marveled: The Best Actresss influence could match ten Su Qionglins. She smiled faintly, "I have an appointment already." No issues with that statement! Young Master Zhou stood by, pockets sped. The corner of his mouth amused. Nice! Many coveted the man and woman. Under the radar, they got together! Just as the Best Actress was temporarily backing off, Bao Jingyuan popped out of nowhere. She yelled at the Best Actress, "Stop fancying my big brother! Hes got a girlfriend now, and he wouldnt date a female celebrity!" Bao Jingyuan was very bold. Then in dissatisfaction, she said to Su Ruanruan, "Control your former sister-inw!" Su Ruanruan: ... The Best Actress was quite embarrassed. The rest of the premiere was gloomy and filled with sorrowful expressions. Su Ruanruan understood in her heart. This was the Best Actresss tactic. She didnt take it to heart; such tricks might work on womanizing yboys. But on Bao Jingyan. Simply a waste of time. She suddenly realized: Bao Jingyan wasnt there to see her get jealous, he was rejecting the Best Actress in person, in front of her. Chapter 384: Rare Date, Focus More

Chapter 384: Chapter 384: Rare Date, Focus More

The premiere ended. Bao Jingyan quietly took Su Ruanruan away. He had booked the presidential suite on the 78th floor of Dijing Hotel. It boasted the best view for watching fireworks. Upon entering the room, Ruanruan caught a cold. Bao Jingyan asked her to take a bath first while he called the reception to send up some ginger tea. After hanging up the phone, he took off his coat. He walked into the bathroom. Steam filled the air. He bent down, hands braced on either side of the bathtub, murmuring lowly, "So fragile, how are you going to watch the fireworkster?" Ruanruan, somewhat embarrassed: "Bao Jingyan, please leave." Bao Jingyan lowered his head and kissed her. While kissing, heined, "Why did you change out of the dress so quickly?" Ruanruan wrapped her arms around his neck, softly saying, "I saw my third sister today." Bao Jingyan vaguely hummed in response. Ruanruan continued, "Su Yugu had an ident; she must havee to seek help from Young Master Zhou, right?" Bao Jingyan was dissatisfied. He bit her delicate neck, "Its rare that we date outside; focus!" Ruanruan also wanted him to be happy. So she obediently tilted her little face, letting him kiss her... Bao Jingyan kissed her for a while but soon couldnt restrain himself anymore, coaxing her to undo his belt. Ruanruan was half-willing, half-reluctant. At that moment, there was a knock on the suite door. Bao Jingyan tensed slightly. He kissed her a few more times, somewhat impatiently saying, "Its probably the ginger tea being delivered. Ill go open the door." He said they would continue afterwards. Ruanruan, ever so reserved, thought otherwise. After he left, she put on a bathrobe and went into the master bedroom. Bao Jingyan went to open the door. The door opened. But it wasnt a waiter. Instead, it was the scheming actress Miss Yin. Bao Jingyan was not always gracious; his expression immediately turned cold. He asked her bluntly, "How do you know my room number?" Miss Yin was stunned. Rumors had Bao Jingyan as impably mannered, not crudely abrasive. At the same time, she noticed his shirt was wet. His belt was half undone. Miss Yin knew at a nce. Using her skills against men, Miss Yin said, "My set is also in this hotel! I identally found out Mr. Bao was here, and I wanted to ask if Mr. Bao and his girlfriend would like to join us?" She smiled subtly. Innocent and harmless. But Bao Jingyan wasnt buying it. He opened the door wide without inviting her in. Miss Yin quietly walked in. She aimed to win Bao Jingyan over. But Bao Jingyan immediately pressed the internal line, "Im Bao Jingyan! Get the duty manager here!" His tone was stern. In moments, the duty manager, along with the one delivering the ginger tea, arrived. Bao Jingyan took the ginger tea. He pointed to Miss Yin, telling the duty manager, "This guest vited regtions by obtaining my personal information! Please have her leave the hotel now, and also immediately dismiss any associated staff." The duty managers gaze held indescribable implications! Miss Yin was even more shocked. She truly did not expect Bao Jingyan to disrespect her like this. He wanted to kick her out of the hotel. Bao Jingyan couldnt care less about her. He carried the ginger tea back into the bedroom. Soon, his gentle voice came from inside. "Be good, drink this and youll feel better soon." "Its not bitter, I had them add a plum." "Shall I taste it first?" ... Then followed the gentle voice of a woman, indiscernible what she said. Bao Jingyan responded, "Dont mind those unrted!" "Baby, finish the ginger tea! Or else there wont be any fireworks to watch... Hmm, Ill hold you while we watch! Be good..." Outside, Miss Yin almost burst into tears instantly. Was that Bao Jingyans girlfriend inside? He was coaxing her like that! She realized then just how overconfident she had been. She was forced to leave the hotel. ... In the parking lot. Young Master Zhou was sitting by his car, watching her with amusement. Miss Yins tears hadnt dried yet. She threw herself into Young Master Zhous arms... Chapter 385: Right Now, I Only Feel Sorry for You

Chapter 385: Chapter 385: Right Now, I Only Feel Sorry for You

Several rounds of intimacy. Master Zhou leaned against the headboard, his slender fingers pinching a cigarette. His other hand was swiping on his phone. He opened a picture. It was an image of Su Ruanruan and Bao Jingyan walking hand in hand on the red carpet. She turned her head and gazed at Bao Jingyan. Master Zhou cropped out Bao Jingyan and saved the photo of Su Ruanruan. At that moment, his phone rang. It was from Su Qionglin. Master Zhou frowned but still answered the call. Late at night, Su Qionglin cried her heart out. "Jinhua, my dad is in trouble! Please help me! Could you help me once more?" Master Zhou refused: "Miss Su, weve already turned the page on our affairs! Find someone else to help you!" He hung up the phone directly. The movie queen came over wrapped in a bathrobe. Rich with fragrance, smooth, and silky. Extremely morous. She leaned close to Master Zhous ear: "Feeling sorry for her?" Master Zhou pinched her cheek: "I am only sorry for you right now." The movie queen smiled faintly: "Its strange how one misfortune after another has befallen the Su Family." Master Zhou yed with his lighter. Pensive. The movie queen cozied up to his chest: "Jinhua." "Hmm?" "Do you know which familys daughter is Bao Jingyans girlfriend?" The movie queen was not quite ready to let it go. Master Zhou flipped over, grabbed her chin, and warned: "Dont set your sights on him! Not unless you want to be cklisted." The movie queens face stiffened. Master Zhou got out of bed and dressed. "Leaving sote?" The movie queen hugged him from behind. Master Zhou was a true lover. She had been very pleased just moments ago. Master Zhou turned around and patted her cheek, "Ill seek you out next time." When he left, he left behind a check for 5 million. ... Master Zhou had only just left the hotel when Su Qionglin blocked his path. She stood in front of his car. Su Qionglin was in a dire state. In the winter night, she wore only a thin coat over her evening gown. Shivering intensely. A habitual kindness overtook Master Zhou. He got out of the car and draped his woolen coat over her shoulders. He was quitepassionate. Su Qionglin bit her lip and threw herself into his embrace: "Jinhua." After that, she was taken to his grand apartment. The two of them tangled again and again. When they finally calmed down, Su Qionglins face had a faint blush. She turned on her side, her voice tender and pleading: "My dad is in trouble! A medical incident from over a decade ago has been dug up for investigation! Jinhua, you know so many people, please help me." Master Zhou leaned against the headboard, smoking. He remained silent. Su Qionglin was getting anxious but dared not to lose her temper. Finally, Master Zhou spoke: "I cant get involved in this matter! Qionglin, if youre willing, we can still date like we used to." Su Qionglins face turned deathly pale. "Youve been toying with me." Master Zhous expression turned cold: "How interesting you are, Miss Su! Ive pampered you so well, given you this and that, whos toying with whom?" He grabbed her chin: "Men and women seek pleasure, isnt that what its all about?" "Bastard!" Su Qionglin pped him. Master Zhou was not one to take it lying down. He retaliated with a p of his own. With a smack, Su Qionglin was left ringing in the ears. Master Zhou pointed at a pile of clothes on the floor and told her to get lost. ... Su Qionglin stumbled back to the hotel. She sat in her sports car. And burst into heavy sobs! Through her tear-veiled eyes, she thought she saw Bao Ziqis car driving by from the opposite direction. She called out to him. Bao Ziqi didnt hear her. Like grasping at a lifeline, Su Qionglin started her car to chase after him. In the snowy winter night. The roads were slippery. When Bao Ziqi noticed Su Qionglins car running parallel to his own, he frowned. He lowered the car window: "Su Qionglin, driving like this is dangerous!" Su Qionglins face was covered in tears. Everything in front of her was a blur as she cried out: "Ziqi, I regret it, can we start over, please?" Chapter 386: Bao Ziqi was in a car accident

Chapter 386: Chapter 386: Bao Ziqi was in a car ident

Bao Ziqi gritted his teeth. He felt she was going insane. He gripped the steering wheel tightly, feeling the car brush against hers. He bellowed, "Slow the car down and pull over to the curb." But Su Qionglin was having an emotional breakdown. Her car clung stubbornly to his. Finally, Bao Ziqis car tires slipped, and with a loud bang, it crashed into a streetmp ahead. The car was half-suspended, its wheels still spinning. Su Qionglin stopped the car and ran over to open the door. Bao Ziqi was sitting inside. His head leaned back on the seat, and a crimson trickle of blood slowly flowed down his forehead... ... Bao Jingyan received a call at four-thirty in the morning. Su Ruanruan was in a daze as she heard him talk and then felt him getting out of bed to dress. She sat up, "What happened?" Bao Jingyan was fastening his belt, donning his overcoat. He bent down to kiss her, "Ziqi had a car ident, Im going to the hospital." He tucked her in, "Get some more sleep, you cane tomorrow." Su Ruanruan nodded. But she still got up to button up his coat for him. "Drive slowly." Her hands stayed on the button, looking up at him. Her look, her voice, all very gentle. Very much like a wife. Bao Jingyan could not help but kiss her again, "Go back to bed! Ill text you when I get there." "Tell me if anything happens to Ziqi," she said. ... When Bao Jingyan arrived at the hospital, Bao Ziqi was already in the operating room. His spleen was somewhat ruptured, and he had a concussion. Zhou Zizhuo was performing the surgery himself. In the middle of the night, the Bao Family members all rushed over. Mrs. Bao covered her mouth, crying. Bao Jingyuan wasforting her. Even the elderlydy offered a few words of constion. Bao Jingyan asked Bao Mingyuan, "What happened?" Bao Mingyuan suppressed his rage, "Ziqi was on his way home when Su Qionglin forcefully sideswiped his car, crashing it into a streetlight." Bao Jingyan nced at Su Qionglin. Su Qionglin was squatting in a corner, muttering to herself, "I didnt do it on purpose." "If anything happens to Ziqi, Ill fight you with my life," Mrs. Bao shouted at Su Qionglin fiercely. At this moment, she wished she could y Su Qionglins skin off. Su Qionglin buried her head in her arms. In the corridor, the sound of urgent footsteps arose. It was Xia Minn who had arrived. Xia Minn was very agitated. She, just like Mrs. Bao, detested Su Qionglin to the extreme. She kept ming. Su Qionglin retorted, "If Su Ruanruan had epted Bao Ziqi back then, what would it have to do with you?" Although the words were harsh, they were brutally honest. In the hospital corridor, a deathly silence ensued. Bao Mingyuan erupted in anger. He said, "If you want to squabble, get out, all of you." No one dared to speak any further. A nurse brought over nkets to keep them warm. For the parents there, how could they be in any mood! Bao Mingyuan asked Bao Jingyan in a low voice, "Wheres Ruanruan?" He subconsciously felt that as long as this child was there, his heart would be at peace. Bao Jingyan said, "Shelle in the morning!" Bao Mingyuan thought it over and felt it really wasnt appropriate for her toe under the circumstances. Bao Jingyan sent Su Ruanruan a WeChat message. ... The Bao Family continued to wait anxiously. At seven in the early morning. Zhou Zizhuo came out once. He handed the surgical consent form to Bao Mingyuan to sign, casually mentioning as if an afterthought, "The spleen has been sessfully repaired, but he still hasnt woken up." Suddenly, he patted Bao Jingyan on the shoulder, "Hes only called a few peoples names." A jolt went through Bao Jingyans heart. Bao Mingyuan also realized what this meant. He cursed inwardly, "What a mess this all is!" ... At ten in the morning. The surgery was over, and Bao Ziqi was moved to the VIP ward. The Bao Family members huddled around, eagerly looking on. But Bao Ziqi showed no signs of waking up. Chapter 387: He Kept Calling Ruanruan鈥檚 Name

Chapter 387: Chapter 387: He Kept Calling Ruanruans Name

Madam Bao said, "Mingyuan, shall we invite a master to chant for us?" Bao Mingyuan couldnt help but smile wryly: "All that is feudal superstition." Madam Bao fell silent. Madam Bao didnt sleep all night and looked haggard. She sat beside her sons sickbed, wiping his sweat with a handkerchief. Her heart ached. Xia Minn was helplessly wiping away her tears on the side. At that moment, Bao Ziqis lips moved slightly, uttering a few faint words. Madam Bao beamed with joy: "Ziqi is awake." But he wasnt. Bao Ziqi just kept repeating those few words. Over and over. As if it was an obsession in his heart. Madam Bao leaned in to listen but couldnt make out what he said. Bao Jingyuan didnt believe it; she leaned in close to her brothers lips. Suddenly, she yelled out: "Brother is calling Ruanruan." She was straightforward and bold: "Brother cant forget Ruanruan; hes even calling her name in his dreams." Everyones face turned sour. Bao Jingyan was the first to p her head. "Nonsense! He is clearly calling Miss Xias name." Bao Jingyuan argued: "Its clearly Ruanruans name! You all dont know that brother still keeps a photo of Su Ruanruan in his wallet." She rummaged around and pulled out a photo from the inneryer of Bao Ziqis wallet. It was indeed Su Ruanruan! Bao Jingyuan triumphantly said: "I wasnt wrong, was I?" Bao Mingyuan pointed at Madam Bao: "Send her away! Her education has gone to waste." How could he, Bao Mingyuan, who was always so astute, have a daughter this foolish? Madam Bao felt both hurt and ashamed. She said to her daughter: "Jingyuan, you go back with the olddy first!" But Bao Jingyuan had her own ideas: "Mom, if brother doesnt wake up, let Su Ruanruan wake him up. Hes so attached to her, surely he will wake up quickly." Bao Mingyuan: Shut up! ... Su Ruanruan came to the hospital. The atmosphere was strange. Especially Xia Minns resentful gaze upon her. Su Ruanruan was utterly confused. Just then, Zhou Zizhuo came to make his rounds. Madam Bao tearfully asked: "Doctor Zhou, when can Ziqi wake up?" "Its hard to say!" Zhou Zizhuo didnt hide the truth from her: "Because its the second time his brain has suffered an injury!" He said to Bao Mingyuan: "If he doesnt wake up for a long time, it is very unfriendly to his other bodily functions." Bao Mingyuan was also quite worried. He looked up at his eldest son. "Jingyan, go out for a smoke." Bao Jingyan knew what he wanted to say and followed him out. Indeed, Bao Mingyuan proposed Bao Jingyuans idea. Bao Jingyan refused. "Ruanruan is going to marry me! What does it mean for her to be unclearly involved with Ziqi now?" He added, "Besides, its only been half a day." "What if he doesnt wake up for days?" Bao Mingyuans gaze was piercing. Bao Jingyan was at a loss for words. Over the next two days, Xia Minn called to Bao Ziqi affectionately every day. But Bao Ziqi did not respond to her calls. Xia Minn was disheartened. Madam Bao spent days in tears. She knew clearly who upied Ziqis heart. He hadnt woken up, but he often muttered in his sleep. He was calling out Su Ruanruans name. After two days, Madam Bao couldnt cope anymore. Crying, she begged her husband: "Speak to Ruanruan, have her talk to Ziqi... as long as she can wake Ziqi up, Im willing to agree to any condition she has." Bao Mingyuan stood in the corridor smoking, feeling at a loss. He said to his wife: "What if he wakes up? Ziqi will be even more stuck in the past." Yet Madam Bao already had a n. Su Ruanruan now had status. With a good family background, popr in Jiang City, and valued by Mingyuan. She was also very beautiful, a perfect match for Ziqi! Chapter 388: Ruanruan, There鈥檚 Only One

Chapter 388: Chapter 388: Ruanruan, Theres Only One

Mrs. Bao lowered her voice. She said to her husband, "Ruanruan is still unattached, and Ziqi likes her so much! If its possible, after his illness improves, to have the olddy match them up, would it not be perfect?" Bao Mingyuan was stunned into silence. After a long while, he hoarsely said, "You really know how to bend and stretch." Mrs. Bao wiped away tears: "Im doing all this for Ziqi." Bao Mingyuan sighed softly. He neither approved nor disapproved. ...At a corner not too far away. Xia Minn stood there, feeling both embarrassed and angry. She had not expected Mrs. Bao to be so heartless. To think she wanted to support Su Ruanruan...where did that leave her? ... Bao Mingyuan had visited Bao Jingyans vi. He had deceived his eldest son and abandoned his pride. The first snow had thawed. The vi was bright and shining everywhere. Old Zhao was whistling as he washed the car, and was stunned when he saw Bao Mingyuans car approach. "Im looking for Ruanruan," Bao Mingyuan patted his shoulder. Old Zhao scratched his head. Bao Mingyuan found Su Ruanruan in the kitchen. Su Ruanruan was making dumplings with Aunt Li. She was not very skilled, but Aunt Li was teaching her patiently. The sunlight shone through the window, illuminating a section of the kitchen with a serene and beautiful scene. Bao Mingyuan felt a warmth in his eyes. Both his sons had good taste. But there was only one Ruanruan. He coughed lightly, "Making dumplings?" Aunt Li and Su Ruanruan were startled. Aunt Lis attitude was no longer sarcastic as before. She poured tea for Bao Mingyuan. She said, "Why dont you and Miss Su go to the living room to talk? Its not appropriate to talk here." Momentster, Bao Mingyuan and Su Ruanruan sat in the living room drinking tea. Bao Mingyuan looked around and said, "Your life with Jingyan seems quite nice!" Su Ruanruan smiled faintly, "It wont be this leisurely after the New Year." Bao Mingyuan nodded, "You should go back to study soon." After saying this dryly, he was at a loss for words. What he wanted to say was difficult to express. But Su Ruanruan already knew his purpose. She sipped her tea, looking outside. After a moment, she said softly, "Tonight, I will talk to Bao Jingyan." Bao Mingyuan was surprised, "You...want to tell him?" Su Ruanruan hummed in affirmation. She said, "Its not good to keep such things a secret! It will be worse if he finds outter! Furthermore, he is not indifferent to Ziqi, he will not disagree." Her tone was light and casual. Bao Mingyuan was quite impressed. Ruanruan was young but more than capable of managing Jingyans household. She very much had the appearance of ady. Bao Mingyuan said, "When you and Jingyan get married, your uncle will give you a big gift." Su Ruanruan blushed slightly. Bao Mingyuan felt affection for her and wanted to pat her head. But thinking of the tiger-like Aunt Li, he decided against it. At that moment, Aunt Li came over, saying that the dumplings were ready to be cooked. Su Ruanruan invited him to stay, "Stay for the meal! I wrapped them myself!" Bao Mingyuan had not been eating well or sleeping muchtely. His wife only had Ziqi on her mind. Otherwise, it was the big matter of changing daughters-inw! Now receiving care from the younger generation and eating hot dumplings, he was nearly moved to tears. ... Bao Mingyuan left. Su Ruanruan made a call to Xiao Ran to inquire about Bao Jingyans schedule. Xiao Ran told her that Bao Jingyan had an engagement today and would probablye homete. Su Ruanruan then went to read a book. At nine in the evening, she picked out one of his ck shirts and walked into the bathroom... After about half an hour. Bao Jingyan returned. Opening the bedroom door, he was instantly enraptured. His darling was wearing a ck shirt, kneeling on the sofa as she dried her hair. The sleeves of the shirt were rolled up to her elbows, her wrists delicate and pale. As she raised her arms, the shirts hem rose too. Revealing a generous expanse of alluring skin. Her slender and fair legs were folded on the dark-colored velvet sofa, Indescribably tempting. Chapter 389: Su Ruanruan鈥檚 Beauty Trap!

Chapter 389: Chapter 389: Su Ruanruans Beauty Trap!

Bao Jingyan smiled lightly. He took off his coat. Casually tossed it on the sofa. While loosening his tie, he teased her, "Dressed up so grandly today?" Su Ruanruan put down the hair dryer. She took the initiative to sit in his arms, unfastening two buttons on his shirt for him. "Have you been drinking?" She leaned close to his neck and took a sniff. "Just a little red wine." He seemed a bit weary, leaning back on the sofa with his eyes closed to rest. Yet, his hand didnt let her go. Su Ruanruan blushed, not refusing. After a moment, he asked in a hoarse voice, "Being so good today?" Su Ruanruan snuggled into his arms, whispering, "Uncle came by today." "Hm?" Bao Jingyans slender phoenix eyes opened slightly. Su Ruanruan rested her chin on his shoulder. She whispered, "I want to go to the hospital and see Bao Ziqi." Su Ruanruan was afraid hed get angry. But Bao Jingyan just chuckled, "Its not like Ive stopped you from visiting! You went through all this trouble for me?" He shamelessly teased her even more, "Arent you afraid your brother cant handle it, huh?" Su Ruanruan struggled to get down. Taking advantage of the alcohol, Bao Jingyan pulled her beneath him... ... After a long while. He held her. Closed his eyes to rest. Su Ruanruany in his arms, whispering softly, "Actually, you had the same idea, didnt you? You just didnt know how to say it, right?" Bao Jingyan stroked her head. His voice was hoarse as he said, "Im afraid of wronging you." "If you dont misunderstand, I wont feel wronged," Su Ruanruan gently closed her eyes. She sighed softly, "The end of the year is approaching." "Thinking about getting married?" He yed with her small fingers. Su Ruanruan was shy. Bao Jingyan suddenly turned over, propped his head up with one hand, and whispered to her, "At the social event today, I heard some gossip." Su Ruanruan was quite surprised. Normally, Bao Jingyan didnt pay attention to these things. Bao Jingyans hand roamed over his territory as he slowly began, "Just idle talk at the dinner table! They said that Young Master Zhou cherishes a girl from his past, Ruanruan, can you guess who it is?" Su Ruanruan knew that he cared most about these things. She went along with his words, "Should I have Ninth Brother teach him a lesson tomorrow?" Bao Jingyan chuckled, "Thats not necessary." He thought to himself, it must be painful not to get what one desires! Su Ruanruan felt that Bao Jingyan had been very toleranttely. ... The next day. Su Ruanruan went to the hospital. Bao Mingyuan was smoking in the hallway, his fingers trembling when he saw her approaching. He lowered his voice, "Jingyan agreed?" Su Ruanruan responded softly with a hum. She lifted the book in her hand. "I will read to Ziqi for an hour each day." Bao Mingyuan was moved. Whether it was useful or not, the thought counted. The two entered the ward. Madam Bao was so moved to tears, grasping Su Ruanruans hand, "Auntie wont let you down." Su Ruanruan smiled faintly. She took off her coat and sat down on the small sofa beside the bed. Bao Ziqiy there quietly. Su Ruanruan read to him. In the quiet hospital room, only the clear sound of Su Ruanruans reading filled the air. About half an hourter, Bao Ziqis hand moved slightly. Madam Bao, who had been quiet as a mouse, covered her mouth in tears. "Mingyuan, look, Ziqi moved." Bao Mingyuan was both overjoyed and filled withplicated feelings. Madam Bao had no idea of his emotions. She had her own calctions. Secretly she thought: Once Ziqi wakes up, she can go to the Gu Family to propose a marriage for him! After reading for an hour, Su Ruanruan closed the book. She ced it on the bedside table of Bao Ziqi. She went to find Zhou Zizhuo and had a talk with him. Bao Mingyuan said to her, "Ruanruan, uncle thanks you." Su Ruanruan spoke softly, "It will be fine once things are made clear with Miss Xia." Bao Mingyuans lips twitched. He still felt that Ziqi and Xia Minn wouldnt make it to the end. Chapter 390: Su Qionglin is pregnant, looking for a cheap father

Chapter 390: Chapter 390: Su Qionglin is pregnant, looking for a cheap father

Su Ruanruan came every day. asionally, she would run into Xia Minn. Unexpectedly, Xia Minn was not only not difficult to her, but rather warm to her. Su Ruanruan was not foolish. Miss Xia was using her to awaken Bao Ziqi and then discard her afterwards! She didnt mind. Because she was not there for Xia Minn. ... Today, after finishing reading, she prepared to leave. On the first floor of the inpatient department. Su Qionglin was waiting for her. Just as Su Ruanruan came over, Su Qionglin stepped forward: "Ruanruan." Su Ruanruan sighed softly. She had already heard about Su Qionglin, the movie star, and Master Zhous scandal. It was a mess. Su Qionglins face was haggard, not as morous as before. She pleaded with Su Ruanruan: "Lets talk." Su Ruanruan thought about it and agreed. The coffee shop across from the hospital. Su Qionglin grabbed Su Ruanruans hand, asking anxiously, "Are you going to be with Ziqi?" Su Ruanruan withdrew her hand. She said softly: "No." Su Qionglin didnt believe her: "Youe to the hospital to see him every day, I dont believe you dont have that intention." Su Ruanruan helplessly: "Big sister, if you hadnt hit him like that, I wouldnt need toe here every day." Su Qionglin felt guilty. After a moment, she said: "Ruanruan, help me! I want to get back with Bao Ziqi." Su Ruanruan was shocked. Her older sister had romped around outside, and now she wanted to reconcile with Bao Ziqi. How could that be possible? Su Ruanruan wouldnt be the bad person here! The refusal shoulde from Bao Ziqi himself. Moreover, there was Xia Minn. She smiled faintly: "You should speak to him yourself." She wanted to leave. But Su Qionglin wouldnt let her go. She said: "Dad is in trouble, Ruanruan, you cant just ignore it." Su Ruanruan smiled slightly, "Medical malpractice, its best to leave it to the professionals to assess! Big sister, dont you think?" Su Qionglin was so angry she gritted her teeth: "Su Ruanruan, the Su Family raised you, wont you repay the favor?" Repay the favor? A hint of mockery shed through Su Ruanruans eyes. Wasnt she already repaying the Su Familys favor? The incident with Su Yugu from over a decade ago, it was her who dug it up for people to make a fuss about... Su Qionglin left in anger. Su Ruanruan slowly finished half a cup of coffee and was also ready to leave. But her gaze shifted. A piece of papery on the ground, which looked like a hospital report. She picked it up and looked. Then she was stunned. Su Qionglin was pregnant. Pregnant for 28 weeks. Counting the days, it couldnt be Bao Ziqis or Master Zhous. Bao Ziqi had broken up with her long ago. And Master Zhou was in City Bst month. So was Su Qionglin rushing to reconcile with Bao Ziqi in order to find a ready-made father for her child? Su Ruanruan kept a calm facade. She quietly had Yan Kuan investigate who Su Qionglin had been with recently. At the same time, she was also quite puzzled. Her older sister was pregnant and still dared to have that kind of rtion with Master Zhou, wasnt she afraid of a miscarriage? She couldnt ask others. She could only ask Bao Jingyan. At night, Bao Jingyan was sitting on the sofa looking at documents. Su Ruanruan hugged his neck from behind and asked softly, "I heard that you cant have intercourse during the first three months of pregnancy, is that so?" Bao Jingyan put down the documents in his hand and intentionally asked her, "Ruanruan, are you pregnant?" Su Ruanruans face turned red. They hadnt really gone all the way, how could she be pregnant? Ignoring her burning cheeks, she changed the subject: "Its about someone I know." "Is it Su Qionglin?" Bao Jingyan said casually. Su Ruanruan thought he was amazing. Bao Jingyan continued: "Shes been running to the hospital recently, trying to get Ziqi to be the scapegoat, right? And also to resolve the Su Familys crisis." Su Ruanruan nodded in understanding. Bao Jingyan looked up: "Not asking anymore?" "Asking what?" Su Ruanruan put her small face on his, coquettishly saying, "No matter who youre looking for, you wont find anyone like you." "Youre that confident?" Su Ruanruan stayed silent. In her heart she thought: He always seemed so eager with her, she knew he wouldnt have another woman... Chapter 391: She Became His Sister-in-law, She Bore Sons and Raised Daughters for Bao Jingyan

Chapter 391: Chapter 391: She Became His Sister-inw, She Bore Sons and Raised Daughters for Bao Jingyan

The next morning. Qin Chao made a visit to the vi. He had a deep memory of this vi. His legs shook as he entered. Fortunately, Bao Jingyan had gone to thepany early in the morning, leaving only Su Ruanruan alone. Qin Chao handed her a file. Su Ruanruan opened it. Inside the kraft paper bag were dozens of photos. She looked through them one by one. She looked at Qin Chao in surprise: "Are you sure?" Qin Chao honestly replied: "The Ninth Master used some connections to get these, its certain that Su Qionglin has only had close contact with him recently!" His old face turned red: "Theyve checked into hotels at least four or five times." Su Ruanruan feigned calm. She put the photos away and told Qin Chao to go back to work. In a while, she called him back: "Lets keep this matter quiet for now." After Qin Chao left. Su Ruanruan looked through the photos again, still surprised. Her older sister really has guts! ... Su Ruanruan still went to the hospital to read to Bao Ziqi. She found Madame Bao unusually enthusiastic. Every time she visited, there was fragrant tea prepared and snacks ready. Su Ruanruan said nothing. But it was exaggerated that Madame Bao even gave her a gift. Upon opening it, it was quite valuable. A set of emerald jewelry. Worth at least thirty million. Su Ruanruan steered away from the subject: "Im doing this willingly, no need for special gifts." Madame Bao naturally had other intentions. She said with a breezy smile: "Ziqi has shown clear signs of awakening, Doctor Zhou said it could be any day now." She patted Su Ruanruans hand: "Auntie is very grateful." Su Ruanruan insisted on not epting it. Her face tensed with a certain dignity. Madame Bao didnt dare to overstep. However, she didnt dislike her at this moment, instead, she felt that only such a girl could stabilize the family household. Ruanruan would make a good wife for Ziqi. Su Ruanruan did not hide this matter from Bao Jingyan. She whispered it to him. Bao Jingyans voice was cold: "Dream on!" He hugged her from behind, whispering: "Why not make it public, hmm?" Su Ruanruan pondered deeply. After a while, she shook her head: "Lets wait until the end of the year! I always feel theres something more." Bao Jingyan had great faith in her abilities. He agreed with her. But he also made ns. He requested Mingyuan visit the hospital every day to keep his wife in check. Su Ruanruan felt much more at ease. That afternoon. The sun was shining brightly, the room was clean and bright. Bao Ziqiy quietly, while Su Ruanruan sat beside him reading aloud. Her voice was gentle, like a clear spring. The person on the bed moved his fingers. No one noticed. He searched for that voice that brought him peace. Instinctively, his hand caught Su Ruanruans. Gently, he grasped it. Su Ruanruan paused for a moment. She blinked and looked towards Bao Ziqi. Bao Ziqi was awake. He silently gazed at her, his dark eyes filled with only her. He even stubbornly held onto her hand with all his strength. Su Ruanruan felt it. She didnt pull away. She gently held his hand too. "Ziqi, youre awake." She smiled gently at him. Bao Ziqi also smiled faintly. They had always had a difficult rtionship. But as he awoke, she could hold his hand. Bao Ziqi was healed. He even felt that not having her was okay now, that he had a ce in her heart. She didnt wish him dead. She read to him every day. In the future, he could still listen. She would be his sister-inw, bear children for Bao Jingyan. She would sing to them, read to them, and y the piano for them... Nearby. Madame Bao was crying with joy. She sobbed: "Ziqi, youve scared mommy to death." Mingyuan also said: "Finally he has awakened." Chapter 392: What is He Dragging Ruanruan to the Room For?

Chapter 392: Chapter 392: What is He Dragging Ruanruan to the Room For?

Su Ruanruan stepped aside to make space. She was still very gentle: "Talk to uncle and auntie; theyre all very worried about you." Naturally, Mingyuan and his wife stepped forward, concerned about their son. Su Ruanruan retreated to the edge of the hospital room. Bao Jingyan had arrived at some point. With a sweep of his arm, she was whisked away. Bao Ziqi watched silently. In that moment, he was willing to give anything to trade ces with Bao Jingyan... ... Su Ruanruan was brought to an empty VIP hospital room. Bao Jingyan kicked the door shut. Su Ruanruan was pressed against the door panel by him. One hand of his protected her back, the other was grasping her chin. He leaned down and kissed her eagerly. He had never been so rough before. Su Ruanruan was shy, yet she put up no resistance. She willingly let him take firm control, letting herself be at his mercy. After who knew how long, Bao Jingyan let go of her. He gazed at her flushed face and asked hoarsely, "Why so obedient?" "Because youre jealous," Su Ruanruans voice trembled. She was still feeling dazed and simply leaned her head against his chest. Her hand slid down to find his, their fingers entwining tightly. "Bao Ziqi wont misunderstand," she pleaded softly, "Stop making a fuss, okay?" Bao Ziqi has confessed countless times, and she has refused every time. She was certain he wouldnt misunderstand. Bao Jingyan knew it too. But still, he felt jealous, "Sounds like you two have some little secrets." Su Ruanruan nuzzled his chin in a pleasing manner. And then she promised softly in whispers. Bao Jingyans body shuddered. His elegantly boned fingers gently caressed her red lips, his voice was hoarse beyond recognition, "Really?" Su Ruanruan turned her face away with reserve. A faint blush spread from her ears... Bao Jingyan made a new demand. He whispered, "Go to Bao Mansion." Su Ruanruan refused. He coaxed her by her ear, "Just now you said youd listen to me in everything." She was demure. But how could she resist him? So in broad daylight, Bao Jingyan took her back to the Bao familys old mansion. The moment they got out of the car, he pulled Su Ruanruan up to his bedroom on the third floor. The olddy was at the hospital visiting her second grandson. In the blink of an eye, she saw her eldest grandson pulling the young girl upstairs. The olddy rubbed her eyes. She asked Gui Zhi, "Was that Jingyan and Ruanruan just now?" The olddy then asked, "Whats he taking Ruanruan to his room for? y mahjong?" Gui Zhi chuckled nervously, "Ziqi has woken up, arent you eager to see him?" The olddy shrewdly said, "Ziqi almost lost his life; Im afraid Jingyan is in such a rush that he might cause another life toe into being." But the olddy also added, "It might be good if a lifees of it! Just might be able to celebrate all in one go." Gui Zhi helped her into the car. While doing so, she probed, "Did you notice it a while ago?" The olddy gave a cool smile, "I saw it the day we yed mahjong; Jingyan really thinks people are fools!" Gui Zhi thenughed, "Nothing gets past you, old madam!" The olddy said, "I dont know anything!" Gui Zhi: ... ... Everyone from the Bao Mansion had gone to the hospital. In the mansion, only Bao Jingyan and Su Ruanruan were left as the masters. The servants, more or less, knew. But it was an unspoken understanding. It was Su Ruanruans first time doing anything in Bao Jingyans bedroom. Shy, yet there was a vor that was unlike the usual. ... Late at night. Bao Jingyan went downstairs once. He wore a white bathrobe, his tall figure both athletic and attractive. He brought up dinner for two. As he pushed open the door, a sweet fragrance wafted from the bedroom. The bed sheets had been changed. Su Ruanruan was nowhere to be seen, only the sound of water flowing from the bathroom could be heard. Chapter 393: My Ruanruan Has Someone

Chapter 393: Chapter 393: My Ruanruan Has Someone

In the bedroom. The bed linen had already been changed. Bao Jingyan set down the meal and walked into the bathroom. Su Ruanruan was there washing the sheets. Bao Jingyan hugged her slender waist from behind: "Let the servants wash it." Su Ruanruan, reserved, refused: "It wouldnt look good if others saw." Bao Jingyan kissed her earlobe: "Do you think theyre fools? Almost everyone in this house knows." Su Ruanruan still refused. Bao Jingyan saw that she was severely embarrassed. His heart filled with tenderness, he said: "You go eat, Ill wash it." Su Ruanruan felt he wouldnt know how. Bao Jingyan then carried her to the bedroom and ced her on the sofa. He fed her himself. After finishing the meal, he went to the bathroom to wash the sheets himself, then called Aunt Fu to hang them up. When Aunt Fu came, she miraculously brought a bowl of silver fungus soup. She said it was the most suitable for womens nourishment. Su Ruanruan was reading a book, her face reddened upon hearing this. Bao Jingyan closed the door. He seriously said to her: "I think Aunt Fu is right!" Su Ruanruan didnt argue with him, sitting on hisp obediently drinking the bowl of silver fungus soup. Neither felt sleepy, so they casually chatted. Bao Jingyan said: "The New Year ising, what gift would you like?" Su Ruanruan held his hand, softly saying: "Bao Jingyan, I want to study medicine." He was a bit surprised. Being a doctor is very arduous, he subconsciously felt reluctant to let her. But Bao Jingyan said: "If you want to go, then go!" Su Ruanruan looked up at him: "What if I go abroad to study for a few years?" "Ill visit you twice a month," Bao Jingyan said without a second thought. His attitude quite surprised Su Ruanruan. Bao Jingyan is usually very possessive and likes to see her every day... but when she said she wanted to study medicine, he didnt impose any restrictions. Su Ruanruan was sure he was the one to spend her life with. Even, she felt pity for his endurance. Willing to give him everything. But Bao Jingyan seemed... willing to wait. ... Bao Ziqis health was improving day by day. A weekter, he was discharged from the hospital. Bao Mingyuan personally set off firecrackers. Xia Minn visited the Bao Family daily, whereas Su Ruanruan avoided it. Madam Bao started scheming. This dy wasnt a solution! She decided to immediately take action Madam Baos action was not disclosed to her husband. She believed Mingyuan would definitely support her. Madam Bao had arranged several meetings, and finally met up with Mrs. Gu. Two esteemeddies sat in a private room of a high-end club, drinking tea. Madam Bao proactively offered a gift as an apology. She said politely: "Lin Sheng, we had some unpleasantness before, today Im here to apologize." Mrs. Gu smiled faintly: "Why so formal today?" She continued: "If its because Ruanruan lent a small hand, theres no need for this! Whoever it was, Ruanruan couldnt have stood by and done nothing." Madam Bao sipped her tea, covering her face. After pondering for a while, she straightforwardly said: "These days, after much thought, I feel Ziqi and Ruanruan are truly the mostpatible! Having shared both joys and sorrows before, Lin Sheng, for the sake of the children, we should set things right and let them be together." Mrs. Gu understood her intentions. Sheughed incredulously: "Qi Meiyu, unless Im mistaken, Ziqi has a fiance! And that Miss Xia was personally introduced by you." Madam Bao forced a smile: "Thats my fault! I havent been able to cultivate feelings between them for so long." She added: "Ruanruan is also single now, and since everyone knows everyone well... perhaps..." Mrs. Gu interrupted her: "Who said our Ruanruan is single?" Mrs. Gu said: "Ruanruan is in a stable rtionship and is already discussing marriage!" Chapter 394: She Wants to Be a Real Husband and Wife

Chapter 394: Chapter 394: She Wants to Be a Real Husband and Wife

Mrs. Bao was surprised. She didnt believe it: Su Ruanruan was so young, how could it be so quick? Besides, apart from the Bao Family, which other family could match the Gu Family? She was not discouraged. Back at Bao Mansion, Mrs. Bao had a heart-to-heart talk with her son. Bao Ziqi said indifferently: "Su Ruanruan and I are impossible! Mom, stop wasting your effort." Mrs. Bao was irritated by hisck of ambition. "You obviously like Su Ruanruan! She has even kept a vigil in your room, how could you say its impossible?" Mrs. Bao went on to analyze the various benefits of marrying Su Ruanruan. Bao Ziqi looked up, pain flickering in his handsome eyes. He said: "If she doesnt like me, how can we be together?" Mrs. Bao was stunned for a moment: "Looking all over Jiangcheng, apart from you, who else could she possibly like?" Bao Ziqi quietly read his book. It was left in the ward by Su Ruanruan. Later on, she probably forgot about it. Seeing him like this, Mrs. Bao couldnt say more. A few more days passed. Bao Ziqi fully recovered. He went out to handle the matters of going abroad. He was nning to go to Britain after the New Year. For about a year or two. Upon leaving the embassy, he saw a red sports car parked at the entrance. It was Su Qionglins. "Ziqi." Su Qionglin called his name. Bao Ziqi lowered his head and lit a cigarette. Su Qionglin walked up to him and said softly: "Thank you for not pursuing it! Ziqi, do you still have feelings for me?" Bao Ziqi took a long drag of his cigarette. A mist rose. He looked at her and said: "Consider this as me repaying you! For before, Im sorry." Bao Ziqi was a man of integrity. It was better this way, he was willing to let her off. But it was not enough for Su Qionglin. She wanted more than just his forgiveness; she wanted the status of his wife. But she no longer had the chance. Bao Ziqi turned down her invitation to the hotel. As he opened his car door, Su Qionglin hurriedly caught up to him. Her voice trembling, she asked him: "Bao Ziqi, have you ever loved me?" Bao Ziqi pondered for a while. He nodded. It struck Su Qionglin like lightning. Bao Ziqi finally drove off... She silently watched the tail of his car. Tears streaming down her face! She loves Bao Ziqi, and she still does now. But she had to find a father for the child in her belly. Since Bao Ziqi wont sleep with her, she had no choice but to turn to Master Zhou. These days, he has been with her! ... Bao Ziqi was not in a good mood. He returned to Bao Mansion. After much thought, he made a phone call to Su Ruanruan. He told her about Su Qionglins incident and that he didnt n to pursue her criminal liability. Su Ruanruan sighed softly. After hanging up the phone, she said to Bao Jingyan: "Ziqis heart is too soft; my elder sister is bound to cause trouble in the future." She also said: "Fortunately, he rejected her and didnt go to the hotel with her." Bao Jingyan flipped through his documents. He asked quietly: "Are you so worried about him?" Su Ruanruan felt he was jealous. So she deliberately said: "Yes! In the future, as his sister-inw, Ill have to care about my brother-inw every day." "You dare!" Bao Jingyan reached out and flicked her. Su Ruanruan climbed into his arms and wrapped her arms around his neck. She said coquettishly: "Bao Jingyan, I also like seeing you jealous." Hearing this, Bao Jingyanughed silently, almost inaudibly. ... On the other end, Bao Ziqi hung up the phone. There was a knock on the door. It was Xia Minn who came in. She wore a rose-red tight-fitting thin woolen dress that showed off her figure. Her long hair was newly curled, adding a few touches of charm. Xia Minn asked him softly: "Ziqi, is this hair color okay?" Bao Ziqi had seen plenty of beautiful people and wasnt very impressed. But he humored her: "It suits you." Xia Minn cast aside her reserve. She bit her lower lip and said softly: "Ziqi, when will we be a real husband and wife?" Chapter 395: Xia Minglan鈥檚 Jealousy! She鈥檚 Flirting with Big Brother All Day

Chapter 395: Chapter 395: Xia Minns Jealousy! Shes Flirting with Big Brother All Day

Bao Ziqi was taken aback. He had never thought of holding her in his embrace. His expression saddened Xia Minn. But she was willing to be a bit more proactive. She leaned in to kiss him, whispering low, "I heard you met Su Qionglin today, you rejected her! Ziqi, Im so happy." Her hands began to undo the buttons of his shirt, wanting to be truly husband and wife. Bao Ziqi caught her hands. He rejected her. Xia Minn felt both embarrassed and humiliated. Trembling, she straightened her clothes, and questioned him, "Bao Ziqi, are you trying to be a monk for Su Ruanruans sake?" Bao Ziqi squinted at her. He said, "I suggest you calm down a bit." But Xia Minn was at the end of her patience, "Youre pining after her, yet she doesnt even give you a nce! No, she doesnt want you, yet flirts with you constantly, dancing around in front of you with her innocent face, seducing you so you cant get her out of your head, thenes to cold-shoulder me! Bao Ziqi, you may treat her like a treasure, but in my eyes, shes nothing but a slut! Have you seen the ambiguous behavior between her and your elder brother? Even though elder brother has a girlfriend, shes always coquettishly acting spoiled with him! She looks down on you, yet she might have already secretly climbed into elder brothers bed." She said all this in one breath, feeling much relieved. Bao Ziqis expression was icy cold. He retorted sarcastically, "Are you so concerned about Bao Jingyan?" Xia Minn choked for a moment. She defended herself, "I just cant stand the way she flirts around! She thinks shes so clever, elder brother is probably just ying with her, and once hes had his fun, hell still marry a proper wife." Jealousy filled her tone. How could Bao Ziqi not know? He was truly weary. Bao Ziqi then said, "Think it over calmly, whether you want to continue this rtionship or not!" He added, "If you cant tolerate Ruanruan, then let me tell you now, Ruanruan will always be part of the Bao Family, and that wont change. Also, my elder brother isnt the kind to toy with her, and Ruanruan is not an unchaste girl." Xia Minn wouldnt listen. She believed Su Ruanruan ruined her marriage. ... She parted with Bao Ziqi on bad terms. Walking downstairs. She ended up running into Su Ruanruan, who had just arrived. Xia Minn changed her mind. She wasnt leaving. She wanted to catch Su Ruanruan in the act and expose her. Let everyone see her true face. Xia Minny in wait at the Bao Mansion for half a day, finally finding her opportunity. In the olddys courtyard, Bao Jingyan stood smoking, with nobody around. Su Ruanruan walked over and hugged him from behind. She slid her hand into the pocket of Bao Jingyans overcoat, and he turned his head to speak a few words with her. Su Ruanruan dared to reach further into his coat. cing it over the mans heart. Xia Minn sneered. Shameless! Flirting with a man who has a girlfriend! Its all just a game to elder brother Jingyan! She quietly took pictures. Her heart thumped wildly! As long as these photos were released, Su Ruanruan would have no face left to go on. Even Jingyan elder brothers girlfriend would not tolerate her. Xia Minn loathed Su Ruanruan. She skipped any further negotiations. Holding her phone, she left the Bao Mansion like a warrior. Su Ruanruan was still clinging to Bao Jingyans back. Her hand continued to be restless. After Bao Jingyan finished his cigarette, he pulled her into his arms. Su Ruanruan chuckled softly. "Whats so funny? Acting like a silly girl," Bao Jingyan pinched her nose. Su Ruanruan rested on his shoulder, her beautiful eyes gazing towards the direction of the Bao Mansion gates. After a long while, she faintly said, "Imughing at the fool." She looked up at him, "We might be making headlines for a scandal, are you afraid?" Bao Jingyan casually replied: "What can we do, weve already slept together!" Su Ruanruan found dealing with Xia Minn to be simpler byparison. Bao Jingyan is just a filthy scoundrel! Chapter 396: The Scandal Between Bao Jingyan and Su Ruanruan

Chapter 396: Chapter 396: The Scandal Between Bao Jingyan and Su Ruanruan

days before the Lunar New Year. A big news broke out in Jiangcheng. A video of Bao Jingyan and Su Ruanruan was leaked. It shot up to the top of the trending search. Netizens discussed it massively. [I knew the CP I was shipping is real!] [Real what!? Bao Jingyan has an official girlfriend emmm] [Didnt anyone notice? Its at the Bao Mansion!] [So thrilling! I want my ex-husband (Bao Ziqi) to feel the mental shadow!] [The way I see it, its Su Ruanruan who took the initiative...] [Right? She even reached into his clothes! So proactive, learnt something new!] ... Su Ruanruans reputation isnt that great. Preying upon a man who has a girlfriend. Even many feel sorry for Xia Minn. ... At the club. Su Ruanruan leaned on the sofa browsing the trending topics. Mu Jius voice was muffled: "Stop looking! Thesements are too harsh!" Jiu cared for the girl very much. He said fiercely, "If I find out who it is, Ill crush the bastard!" But Su Ruanruan didnt care: "Im afraid at that time, Brother Jiu would be too tender-hearted." "Pah! Am I that superficial?" Mu Jiu huffed. Su Ruanruanughed: "A big beauty indeed!" Mu Jiu shivered. Su Ruanruan called Brother Jiu over: "I have a task for you." Another task? Mu Jiu listened closely. Su Ruanruan said, "Help me keep an eye on two people." She wrote down two names on a piece of paper. Jiuughed: "Youre not worried about your own affairs, but worrying on behalf of others!" Su Ruanruan took a sip of tea. She said, "This matter, it could revive the Su Family from death! Naturally, I must pay close attention." Mu Jiu stoppedughing then. He said, "Su Yugu is out on bail at home, still dreaming someone will save him!" Su Ruanruan gave a light smile. She picked up her handbag, ready to leave. Jiu was reluctant to part and invited her to stay for dinner. Su Ruanruan said, "I have to go to thepanyter." Jiu naturally asked, and Su Ruanruan didnt hide from him that she was going for apany PR photo shoot. Mu Jiu paused. He realized that Su Ruanruan and Bao Jingyan were going public with their rtionship. He felt a sense of loss but still was happy for her: "After youre married, live a good life." He waved his hand, "Thatd Bao Jingyan isnt too bad!" At least, Jiu had never heard any scandals about him! Ruanruan wont be mistreated following him! ... Su Ruanruan went to thepany and took PR photos with Bao Mingyuan and his son. Bao Mingyuan looked at the photos. Somewhat proud, he said, "Release them on thepanys year-end party day, to blind all those old fogeys." After speaking, he red at his son and daughter-inw. His eyes bulged: "Why are there rumors about you two? Youve been properly dating, but instead, Ruanruan is made out to be some shameful mistress." Bao Mingyuan wants to suppress the trending searches. Bao Jingyan said, "No need!" He and Ruanruan were both unmarried. Besides, the truth will be known in a few days. Bao Mingyuan thought it over and let it be. Once Su Ruanruan left, Bao Mingyuan discussed family matters with his eldest son. He astutely said, "These photos and videos were taken in our house, guess who would have the means to film and upload them online?" Bao Jingyan half leaned against Bao Mingyuans office desk. His legs long and lean. Looking at the photos, he said with a smile, "Quite aesthetically shot." Bao Mingyuan was angry: "Im talking serious business here." He lit a cigarette. Amid the smoke, he said, "Ive never been quite satisfied with Ziqis fiance! And now after this incident, even more so, shes not presentable. Jingyan, what do you think?" Bao Jingyan removed the cigarette from his lips. He replied slowly and with a smile, "What happens in Ziqis room, I shouldnt interfere." Bao Mingyuan snorted: "Stop pretending! Youve even taken the person from his room! Get out, get out! None of you are as understanding as Ruanruan." Chapter 397: Family Gathering, Su Ruanruan No Longer Qualified to Attend

Chapter 397: Chapter 397: Family Gathering, Su Ruanruan No Longer Qualified to Attend

Bao Mansion. The lights were brilliant, the atmosphere lively. The Bao Family gathered together for a meal. Bao Mingyuan asked Bao Jingyan, "The New Year is almost here, Jingse should being back soon, right?" Bao Jingyan nodded indifferently. After that, no one spoke. It was still because of that video involving Su Ruanruan and Bao Jingyan. It had been truly shocking! Especially to Mrs. Bao! At this moment, she felt particrly relieved that Mrs. Gu had not agreed that day. Otherwise, Ziqi wouldve been utterly cuckolded! She asked with feigned casualness, "Why didnt Ruanruane today?" Bao Jingyuan immediately stated, "She still has the face toe? She seduced my older brother, the whole city knows about it." She addressed Bao Jingyan, saying, "Big brother, your girlfriend must be angry!" Bao Jingyan just smirked with a curve of his lips. Xia Minn sitting opposite him thought: Big brother Jingyan really has a way with his girlfriend - even with such a big scandal, she didnt make a fuss! With a mind to please, she said, "When a woman deliberately seduces, men can hardly resist. This cant be med on Big brother Jingyan." Bao Jingyan set down the tall ss in his hand. His gaze was deep and inscrutable: "Miss Xia seems quite experienced in such matters?" He added, "Perhaps it was with my consent?" Xia Minn felt a bit awkward. However, she was quite pleased. At gatherings like this, Su Ruanruan no longer held the qualifications to attend. Mrs. Baos attitude towards her had also improved a lot C after the meal, she even pulled her aside to write invitations. The Imperial View thank-you dinner! Wanting to probe, Xia Minn said, "Should we invite Ruanruan? After all, she is a daughter of the Gu Family, it wouldnt be good to offend them too much." Mrs. Bao gave a cold smile. She stated, "She doesnt deserve the honor! Its better not to invite her." She whispered, "Your uncle said theres no need to invite her." Xia Minns heart settled in her stomach. She was overjoyed. Ha! Su Ruanruan, who was meticulous in everything, still ended up failing due to her impropriety. In the future, she would have no ce in high society. Xia Minn tasted temporary victory. Her demeanor became much more elevated. As she walked within the Bao Mansion, she disyed the airs of thedy of the house towards the servants. But these servants were contracted by Mr. Mu Jiuspany. Furthermore, they didnt believe Miss Su would be defeated. No one listened to Xia Minn. Xia Minn was furious. Inwardly she vowed: once she and Bao Ziqi were married, shed rece all these people! Bao Ziqi slowly descended from upstairs. He approached Xia Minn. "Did you shoot the video?" His voice was cool. Xia Minn made no admission. Instead, she insinuated that Bao Ziqi felt sorry for Su Ruanruan, and with a sharp tone, suggested that he now had his chance. Bao Ziqi watched her in silence for a few seconds, then returned upstairs. With a bang, he shut the door. Xia Minn didnt dare to create a scene in the Bao Mansion. She ingratiated herself with Mrs. Bao, with the elderly matriarch. And also with Bao Mingyuan. Although the olddy and Bao Mingyuan always treated her indifferently, not seeing Su Ruanruan at the Bao Mansion for several consecutive days brought her unspeakable joy. A woman in power can hardly resist unting it to her rivals. Xia Minn was no exception. She found Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan had made an appointment with an old friend from City B. Wang Meiru, the ex-wife of Su Minghua. She had had someplications during her pregnancy, and Su Ruanruan had helped her find a good doctor. Wang Meirus husband held a good reputation in City B, and came with his wife to express their gratitude. They had just had coffee and left. Su Ruanruan was ustomed to staying for a while longer. In a nce, she saw Xia Minn sitting down across from her. Su Ruanruan smiled lightly. "Miss Xia, what can I do for you?" Xia Minn looked at Su Ruanruan with envy. She thought Su Ruanruan would be like a dog that had lost its family, but instead, she appeared as fine as ever. A white Chanel suit with scalloped edging. Unique pearl earrings. Her features were delicate, her eyes and brows like a painting. Chapter 398: You Look So Skilled Holding Him!

Chapter 398: Chapter 398: You Look So Skilled Holding Him!

Su Ruanruan was stunningly beautiful. Xia Minn thought: No wonder Bao Jingyan couldnt resist the temptation! But a mistress could not be unted publicly. Xia Minn said with a condescending tone, "You havent been to the house these past few days, I was somewhat worried." She feigned concern: "Ruanruan, just apologize after breaking up with big brother Jingyan! Uncle will forgive you." Su Ruanruan chuckled, "Where did I go wrong?" Xia Minns demeanor was aristocratic, "You touched someone you shouldnt have, shouldnt you apologize?" She deliberately provoked Su Ruanruan, "The whole city knows youre the third party." Su Ruanruan smiled, "I should thank sister Minn for fanning the mes." Xia Minn wouldnt admit it. She said, "It must be because youre too strict with the servants, someone took revenge on you." Su Ruanruan was indifferent. Xia Minn felt extremely satisfied inside. She ordered a cup of coffee, took a sip, "Thepanys year-end party ising in a few days, you know?" Su Ruanruan remained silent. Xia Minn continued, "Didnt big brother Jingyan tell you?" She looked regretful, "It seems he was just ying with you, without the intention of cherishing." Thats when Su Ruanruan asked Xia Minn, "Which is better, being Bao Jingyans mistress or Bao Ziqis wife?" Xia Minn was taken aback. Su Ruanruans eyes flickered as she looked down. She said softly, "In my view, its better to be Ziqis wife! What do you think, Miss Xia?" After speaking, she stood up. She thought: Xia Minn is not smart! And to think shes a university professor! ... Su Ruanruan descended from the elevator to the underground parking lot. Unexpectedly, she stumbled upon a juicy scene. Su Qionglin and Young Master Zhou. They were entangled in the car. After a passionate kiss, they pped each other... Then kissed again. Quite intense! Su Ruanruan shook her head. She couldnt help but think, was her rtionship with Bao Jingyan too nd? Look at them!!! Full of youthful vigor! She intentionally passed by, but Su Qionglin noticed her. Su Qionglin still soundednguid after the tryst "Little sister, seeing your third sister and not saying hello?" "Or are youying low due to recent trouble?" Su Ruanruan smiled at the disheveled couple. She said, "I wanted to leave some dignity for my third sister, but she insists not." Su Qionglin got out of the car straight away. A fiery red tight dress. Ten-centimeter heels. Su Ruanruans gaze swiftly swept over her belly. No trace. Su Qionglin sized up Su Ruanruan and chuckled lightly, "Who would have thought, Ruanruan, you kept Bao Ziqis room warm only to end up in Bao Jingyans bed, and youre so adept at holding him! How long has this been going on? You didnt know he has a girlfriend?" She dropped another bombshell, "Youre really disgracing the Gu Family!" Su Ruanruan wasnt angry. She spoke lightly, "Third sister might want to worry about Uncleswsuit instead!" Su Qionglins face stiffened. She couldnt help but look back at Young Master Zhou. Young Master Zhou swung open the car door. A cigarette hung from his mouth, watching the scene with interest. Su Qionglin immediately got into the car. She said, "Lets go." Young Master Zhou pinched her cheek, "Jealous?" In a moment, the car whooshed past Su Ruanruan... Su Ruanruan caught the smell of smoke. She thought: Third sister doesnt love the child in her belly! Shes pregnant and fooling around with men, wearing high heels and inhaling second-hand smoke! The child is just a tool for her. She found Old Zhaos car. Just as she sat down. A sports car screeched to a stop beside her. The window rolled down. It was Young Master Zhou returning. Young Master Zhou tapped on the window. Su Ruanruan lowered it, expressionless. Chapter 399: Must Read! Su Ruanruan is My Girlfriend 1

Chapter 399: Chapter 399: Must Read! Su Ruanruan is My Girlfriend 1

Young Master Zhou leaned against the car window. He chuckled lightly, "The Su Family is nearly ruined because of you, and youve yed Bao Ziqis fiance like a fiddle. Su Ruanruan, youve got some real power!" Su Ruanruan didnt argue. Young Master Zhou wasnt stupid. On the contrary, he was quite clever. Su Ruanruan merely said, "I see a dark cloud over your browtely. Im afraid disaster may befall you!" Young Master Zhou didnt believe her. He teased her, "Will you ward it off for me?" As soon as he finished speaking, Old Zhao came over with an umbre. Young Master Zhou ran off swiftly! Old Zhao thought this was letting him off too easy and spat in contempt. Su Ruanruan told him, "Hell have some good fruits to reapter." Old Zhao started the car, hee-heed and asked, "Does Miss Su know how to read fortunes?" Su Ruanruan lowered her head and smiled lightly. ... Young Master Zhou went to the hotel. Su Qionglin was dressed in a strapless nightgown, lying on the chaise lounge. Her wavy hair framed her snow-white skin. Extremely enticing. Young Master Zhou stood by the door, chuckled and asked, "Have youe to your senses?" Su Qionglins eyes were seductive. She said, "Jinhua, youre right, one must enjoy life while they can!" Young Master Zhou didnt care. He was going to sleep with whichever woman anyway! He was not gentle or considerate. After the deed was done, Su Qionglin quietlyined to him while she was cleaning up in the bathroom. Young Master Zhou leaned back on the chaise lounge. He squinted while smoking a cigarette. The thought of the untouchable Su Ruanruan was in his mind. Yet, he had also seen her cling to Bao Jingyan willingly. She was so soft and inviting. Young Master Zhou thought again: If it were Su Ruanruan with him, he wouldnt bear to press her, hed cherish and adore her in the palm of his hand. In the bathroom, Su Qionglin looked down at her stomach. Over a month in, it didnt show. But she was scared. She feared that Young Master Zhous roughness might cause her to miscarry. Then shed lose all her leverage! From that day on, she rarely became intimate with Young Master Zhou. Young Master Zhou lost interest and sought out other women... ... On the eighteenth day of the twelfth lunar month. Dijing Groups year-end g. At nine at night. Fragrances mingle, and the room is full of celebrities! Almost all the middle and senior members of Dijing Group were present at the banquet, and the employees were also watching the live broadcast in several other banquet rooms. The atmosphere was grand! Madam Bao personally took charge. She told Minn, "Your uncle might announce your identity at the banquet tonight." Minn felt incredibly shy. She looked especially bright and generous today. Wearing a white, in-season evening gown. Embellished with emerald jewelry. She thought to herself: Madam Bao is old and faded! She, Minn, was practically the mistress of Dijing. Yet, she had some regrets in her heart. After all, Ziqi wasnt the heir to Dijing Group! Just as she was feeling regretful, she saw Bao Jingyan. Bao Jingyan was wearing a ck and white ssic suit tonight. His features were sharp and handsome. His physique tall and straight. Minn approached, ingratiatingly asking, "Why hasnt big brothers girlfriend arrived yet?" Bao Jingyan was sending a message to Su Ruanruan. He replied indifferently, "Shell be here soon." After that, Bao Jingyan left. Minn felt a bit let down. Bao Jingyans girlfriend was reallying! If shes not easy to get along with... Just as she was worrying, she saw amotion at the entrance. Upon looking, it turned out to be Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan was extremely beautiful tonight. Dressed in a light pink MIUMIU haute couture. Around her neck, an expensive diamond ne. Adorned with an 18-carat pigeon blood ruby. Her ck glossy hair was slightly curled, softening her facial features. Beautiful, ethereal, and noble. Beside her were her father, brothers, and mother... Minn sneered. Su Ruanruan actually had the nerve to show up! Wasnt she afraid of being embarrassed by Bao Jingyans official girlfriendter? However, Madam Bao frowned. She was worldly. The outfit Su Ruanruan wore today indicated a ceremony for establishing a marriage alliance! Chapter 400: Must Read! Su Ruanruan is My Girlfriend 2

Chapter 400: Chapter 400: Must Read! Su Ruanruan is My Girlfriend 2

While everyone was in surprise and suspicion, the PR department of Dijing Corporation released this years public rtions photo. Everyone would have thought, as usual, it would be a group photo of thepanys top executives. But upon checking their phones. They were stunned. There were only three people in the photo. Bao Mingyuan, Bao Jingyan and Su Ruanruan. In the presidents office of Dijing. Bao Mingyuan was seated on a leather sofa. Behind him, Bao Jingyan and Su Ruanruan stood shoulder to shoulder. Bao Jingyans hand gently wrapped around Su Ruanruans shoulders! This intimacy brought a hint of family atmosphere to the otherwise solemn PR photo. Even a fool could see. The photo contained two meanings. Bao Jingyan was the heir to Dijing. Su Ruanruan, as the futuredy of the house, appeared together in the frame. ... The moment the photo was released. Multiple banquet halls erupted inmotion. Even the city of Jiangcheng was boiling over. Netizens brought up that secretly filmed video to rehash. [Disgusting couple! Ahhhh Im so sickly sweetened!] [A divine level of attractiveness! No objections epted!] [A perfect match! Lock them down already!] ... [Su Ruanruan is just 19 after the new year! Bao Jingyan, act like a gentleman tonight please!] [Goddess is about to be devoured! My heart cant take it...] ... That was the effect Bao Mingyuan wanted! Heh, the Bao and Gu families marriage alliance! Stocks would soare tomorrow! He watched his eldest son and daughter-inw with satisfaction, feeling a happiness he hadnt experienced in many years. If he was happy, someone else was not. Xia Minn waspletely stiff. She couldnt bring herself to believe what she saw. Su Ruanruan was actually Bao Jingyans girlfriend! Had they been together all along? Then what was the meaning of all she had done? Xia Minn trembled with anger. Mrs. Bao calmed down and warned her, "Dont lose yourposure." Xia Minn struggled to contain herself so as not to make a scene in public. She pleaded with Mrs. Bao: "Are they just putting on a show? Please tell me its not true!" Mrs. Bao was not as naive. She thought it through carefully and suddenly realized that Bao Jingyan had already been making it semi-public recently. It was they who, clouded by their own delusions, refused to believe it! ... The year-end party of Dijing. Turned into Bao Jingyan and Su Ruanruans engagement celebration. To show his regard for Su Ruanruan, Bao Mingyuan personally went on stage and spoke for ten minutes. He transferred the management rights of the Bao Familys real estate properties to Su Ruanruan. Including the Bao Mansion. Su Ruanruan whispered, "Thank you, Uncle." Bao Mingyuanughed heartily. He couldnt help but embrace her, then gently ruffled her hair. As if she were his beloved daughter. He felt a lump in his throat, "After were married, youll call me Dad." He nced at his eldest son standing beside him and cleared his throat, "If this brat bullies you,e straight to me." Gu Yuanpei indicated: Bao Mingyuan stole his lines. Bao Mingyuan was absorbed in the role, greatly moved. He said to his son, "Jingyan, whatever you have to say, say it to your wife!" Bao Jingyan took out a velvet box from his coat pocket. He walked over to Su Ruanruan and knelt on one knee. Spotlights shone down on them. The scene was dreamlike. Bao Jingyan held Su Ruanruans hand and kissed her fingertips. Su Ruanruan felt him trembling slightly. He murmured, "Ive liked you for 5 years! I never had the chance to say it, I thought I missed it! But then you appeared in our home! At first, I was not nice to you, I forced and coaxed you to be with me, I was unscrupulous, but if it starts again, I would still treat you the same! Su Ruanruan, you cant escape." He didnt ask if she was willing. He gently slipped a tinum Ring onto her ring finger. The whole venue screamed! So romantic! Such a huge revtion! Chapter 401: Must See! Su Ruanruan is My Girlfriend 3

Chapter 401: Chapter 401: Must See! Su Ruanruan is My Girlfriend 3

Su Ruanruan lowered her head and gazed at him. Bao Jingyan smiled softly. He said, "Ruanruan, we are now fiancs." He urged her to put the ring on him. But Su Ruanruan bent down. And kissed him on the lips voluntarily. Bao Jingyan originally wanted a more picturesque moment, but he couldnt resist He kissed her deeply! The whole ce screamed! Bao Mingyuan told everyone he met, "Young people! Its normal to be passionate!" He smiled and had it captured. "Post it online, let everyone see they are in a normal rtionship! Its not because the empire is failing I, Bao Mingyuan, am selling my son." Gu Wupai coldly responded: Have some shame! Eventually, this part was posted as a small highlight of the Empires year-end party. It reached over 60 million views! The segment where Bao Jingyan confessed and kissed deeply. Youngizens were utterly obsessed! [Five years! Damn! I believe in love again!] [In Jiangcheng, only Bao Jingyan is worthy of Su Ruanruan!] [Please Bao Jingyan be merciful! The child is still young... sob...] ... Presidential suite in the hotel. Bao Jingyan was scrolling through Weibo. He was still in the same attire, just threw his jacket on the couch. Su Ruanruan came out in a bathrobe. She was drying her hair, "What are you looking at!" Bao Jingyan put down his phone. He pulled her into his arms and chuckled, "Netizens are telling me to be a man tonight." Su Ruanruan blushed, "Stop reading thosements." Bao Jingyan felt tender inside. He had her sit on hisp and helped her dry her hair. After a while, he held her fingers and whispered, "Do you have any regrets? Settling down at only 19?" He knew many girls at a young age would want to choose more or y more. Su Ruanruan shook her head. She was naturally detached and not easily moved. She asked him, "What about you? Men are in their prime at 37 or 38!" Bao Jingyan smiled. He said he was picky and it took him a long time to find the one. Su Ruanruan pushed him to take a shower. Bao Jingyans voice was hot and close to her ear, "Ill take care of you in a bit." Su Ruanran felt shy. Just then, there was a knock on the door. Bao Jingyan went to answer it. It was the hotel waiter. Holding a box and spoke respectfully, "A guest said this is for Miss Su." Bao Jingyan took the box and closed the door. He handed the gift to Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan opened it to find a jade bracelet! The entire piece was bright green, extremely valuable! Su Ruanruan nced at it and said, "Its too big, Im afraid it wont fit!" Bao Jingyan held it up and agreed, "Its not suitable." "Keep it!" he generously said. Su Ruanruan then asked him, "Arent you going to ask who sent it?" Bao Jingyan kissed her lips and murmured, "No matter who sent it, you are still my wife." With that, he stood up and headed to the bathroom. Shirt and belt tossed aside... ... In arge apartment near the river. Young Master Zhou expressionlessly drank strong alcohol. Tonight, Bao Jingyan and Su Ruanruan were engaged. On impulse, he sent a grand gift. The more he drank, the clearer his mind became. And the worse he felt. Having been with countless women, how did he end up falling for a young girl? Young Master Zhou took out his phone and opened Su Ruanruans photo. He stared at it for a long time and scoffed. Bao Jingyan had loved Su Ruanruan for five years, he had only loved her for a few months. Under bewilderment, he posted on Weibo. [If I start liking you now, is it still toote?] With the picture: Su Ruanruan on the red carpet alone! Chapter 402: Bao Jingyan鈥檚 Gagging Warning!

Chapter 402: Chapter 402: Bao Jingyans Gagging Warning!

Master Zhou didnt wake up until noon the next day. The phone kept vibrating. He turned over and picked up the phone to look. Upon looking, he was instantly fully awake. [OMG! How dare you confess your love to Bao Jingyans fiance?] [Jinhua, forget it! The next one will be better!] [Master Zhou, you know youve hit the trending searches, right?] [The trending search got removed! Images deleted across the!] [Jinhua, youre muted...hahaha...] ... Master Zhou immediately opened his Weibo homepage. Sure enough, it showed that he was muted. He rubbed his face and flung himself back onto the bed. How could he have lost his mindst night and made such a post! Now, who knows how the circle isughing at him! Just then, his phone rang again. It was a call from his mother. Madame Zhou gave her son a thorough scolding. Master Zhou felt so gloomy, he arranged to meet his rowdy friends at the club for fun. But on his way to the club, he couldnt help but drive to the Dijing Hotel parking lot. He got his wish and saw Su Ruanruan. Inside a golden Bentley Continental, Su Ruanruan was pinned against the seat, being kissed. Her whole body went limp in Bao Jingyans arms. One small hand wrapped around the mans neck, the other resting on his shoulder. Rubbing against him restlessly... It seemed like they had been kissing for a long time. Master Zhou watched nkly. It was only then that he recognized this unwillingness as a broken heart! He shook his head, unwilling to believe it. He went to the club and drank with friends. When others teased him, he said nonchntly, "Just ying with the young girl! Took it seriously?" But when he drank too much, he knew. He was serious. Later on, a young model came to attend to him. Attentive and meticulous. He grabbed her hair in his drunken state, wanting to see her face... And then feltpletely disinterested! He thought, if his private life wasnt so unrestrained, he possibly would have had the courage to say a sentence in front of her. "Su Ruanruan, I like you too!" Master Zhou was drunk. He simply let loose even more... Like smashing a pot thats already cracked! Just then, the door of the private room was pushed open. Inside, someone cursed, "Are you blind? Cant you see were in good spirits?" At the door, Su Qionglin stood there. She said softly, "Jinhua, Im pregnant." All around, it was dead silent. Master Zhou slowly pushed away the model on hisp. He wiped his face and asked, "What did you say?" "Im pregnant! Its your child," Su Qionglin repeated softly. Master Zhou sobered up instantly. He got angry, "Su Qionglin, are you sick? Everyone is just having fun, and you bring a child into this?" ... Su Qionglin ced ab report in front of him. Master Zhou drained the ss of alcohol before him. After a moment, he said coldly, "Abort the child! I cant have this kid." But Su Qionglin said, "Ive already posted on Weibo, telling everyone the good news." Zhou Jinhua was so angry he wanted to get physical! People around him held him back, "Jinhua! Think of your parents reputation." Master Zhou calmed down all of a sudden. He suddenly remembered what Su Ruanruan had said a few days ago. She told him his forehead was darkened, indicating an uing disaster! Damn! The girls mouth is bewitched! ... The gossip about Master Zhou and Su Qionglin hit the newspapers. When Su Ruanruan received the news. It was dusk. She wore a work uniform, tending to the flowers and nts in the olddys courtyard. Gui Zhi was assisting her. Gui Zhi chuckled, "The third young miss of the Su Family is pretty capable! The Zhou Family in B city is not short of money, and they only have one son." Su Ruanruan nodded, "My third sister has always been ambitious." While the two were talking. Housekeeper Wang came over, saying in a low voice, "Master Zhou would like to have a word with Miss Su." Chapter 403: Young Master Zhou Acquires Knowledge

Chapter 403: Chapter 403: Young Master Zhou Acquires Knowledge

Su Ruanruan was quite surprised: "What is he here for?" Housekeeper Wang smiled and said, "Hes caused a huge mess! Hes probably here to learn from Miss Su! Hes currently in the small floral hall." Su Ruanruan took off her gloves. She washed her hands again. Then, with a light smile, she said: "If he werent usually so ostentatious, I would be willing to show him the right path." Housekeeper Wang added: "The young master of the Zhou Family who came knows about it! Im afraid they might chatter about it." Su Ruanruan said: "It doesnt matter!" After thinking, she added: "My uncle has always wanted to expand the business to City B, and the Zhou Family is a good channel!" Although she did not borate, Housekeeper Wang has always held her in high regard. He said, "Miss Su surely has a good n in mind!" Su Ruanruan gave a light smile: "Its just a favor Im bestowing! But he will have to suffer a bit first!" This was because she resented his recklessnessst night. Giving gifts and posting on Weibo. Su Ruanruan does not like to unt matters of men and women. Inside the main hall, Mrs. Bao was talking to her husband. "Ruanruan just got engaged to Jingyan and a man is already showing up, isnt that inappropriate?" Xia Minn also chimed in: "The man has even chased her to our doorstep, it will be embarrassing if word gets out!" Bao Mingyuan usually protects Su Ruanruan fiercely. He cant stand such talk. He warned the two women: "Is it abnormal for a young girl to be pursued? That Ruanruan is still pursued after her engagement just shows how charming she is and how good Jingyans taste is!" Mrs. Bao wanted to say more, but could not. Inside the small floral hall. The young master of the Zhou Family finally met Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan changed into a long DIOR dress. Fresh and elegant. The young master of the Zhou silently admired her. Su Ruanruan was not flustered by his impulsivenessst night. She sat in the main seat and softly instructed Housekeeper Wang to brew tea for the young master of the Zhou. Housekeeper Wangs expressions were full ofpliance. Then, a maid came over to bring some tea snacks. They were very respectful towards Su Ruanruan. The young master of the Zhou,ing from a distinguished background, had discerning eyes. He took a sip of tea and said, "You seem quite at ease in the Bao Family." Su Ruanruan politely replied: "Its alright! What did the young master of the Zhou need from me?" The young master of the Zhou found it hard to say. Could he admit that he carelessly fathered a child while messing around with your elder sister? After a while, he finally said: "Last time you mentioned I was facing a disaster, it was quite urate! Why not predict something for me again?" Su Ruanruan simply smiled without speaking. The young master of the Zhou felt awkward. He really came to probe Su Ruanruan, but it seems she had no solutions. The young master of the Zhou felt somewhat resigned. He said to Su Ruanruan: "I apologize forst nights incident! I was impulsive and should not have posted on Weibo! It was not malicious." Su Ruanruan acknowledged with a hum. The young master of the Zhou looked at her and found her increasingly appealing. Outwardly gracious. And privately, quite charming. He couldnt help but say: "My parents are in business, we cant afford to lose face! In a few days, well have toe to Jiangcheng to propose marriage... Im sorry for any wrongs toward you and the Su Family!" After he finished, his throat felt dry. He didnt like Su Qionglin. But for the sake of the Zhou Familys reputation, he was going against Su Ruanruan! Su Ruanruan did not mind. She said: "If it can protect the Su Family, then it also shows the skill of the young master of the Zhou." The young master of the Zhou looked at her. With a deep gaze. He felt his old habit ring up, wanting to profess his feelings again. At the right moment, Lao Zhao entered and bluntly said: "Whats the use of spouting this nonsense now? Wouldnt it have been better to control yourself before?" He inherently counteracted the young master of the Zhou. The young master of the Zhou, rebuffed, slunk away. Lao Zhaos eyes lit up, and he said to Su Ruanruan: "Miss Su, you really are divine! That guy is truly unlucky." Su Ruanruan sipped her tea. After a while, she said: "This time he got off easy! If it wasnt for the Su Family in between, hed really need a harder lesson." Lao Zhao scratched his head: He just couldnt understand what Miss Su was saying! Chapter 404 Su Ruanruan: The Third Sister鈥檚 Admirable Belly

Chapter 404: Chapter 404 Su Ruanruan: The Third Sisters Admirable Belly

Ten days before the New Year. Su Ruanruan paid a visit to the Su Family. The Su Family was brightly lit and adorned with festive decorations, beaming with joy. In the yard, an old servant appeared quietly. She said, "The Third Miss is going to marry into a wealthy family, the Master is holding his head high with pride now." Su Ruanruan offered a shallow smile. She took out several thousand yuan to the old servant, "Its New Year, go buy yourself some clothes." ... Su Ruanruan just entered the hall. A burst ofughter and cheerful voices. Su Qionglin leaned on her Aunt Sus side, her hand resting on her t belly. Su Yugu looked lovingly at his daughter. A picture of paternal affection and filial piety. Su Ruanruan lowered her eyes and offered a light smile. Aunt Su started again, "Ruanruan, I originally thought you would be the first to get married! Who knew it would be our Qionglin to tie the knot first." "Its all thanks to the Third Sisters impressive effort!" Su Ruanruan yed along with her words. Aunt Su was indeed pleased. Su Yugu was also satisfied with the Zhou Familys son-inw. He envisioned great prospects in his heart, "Qionglin will need someone to take care of her after marriage. By that time, well move Tongsheng to City B and seek to establish a great business there." He told Su Ruanruan, "Please take more care of the old Master here." Su Ruanruan smiled faintly. Su Qionglin was not happy, she said, "Just hire more people to help! Its not that Qian Jinhua cant afford it; if you pinch pennies like this, he will be unhappy." Su Qionglins uncle and aunt immediately nodded in agreement. This son-inw was very capable. Su Yugu had learned this lesson the hard way after a narrow escape from disaster! After Su Qionglin finished speaking, she paid more attention to Su Ruanruan. Young Master Zhou had dered his love for Su Ruanruan. This wasmon knowledge throughout the city. She felt uneasy in her heart. ... Just then, the sound of a car arrived at the door. The Su Family hurried out to wee the guests. It turned out to be the Zhou Family! Su Qionglin, relying on her pregnancy, remained seated on the sofa. She said to Su Ruanruan, "Although the Zhou Family isnt as prominent as the Bao Family, they conduct their business in City B, which is quite different! By the way, Ruanruan, Jinhuas parents are very traditional and disapprove of young girls dating at an early age. Try to keep a low profileter!" Su Ruanruan lowered her eyes and chuckled softly. Did the Third Sister want to use the Zhou Family to intimidate her? But she had heard the sound of the car just now. It sounded like only one or two vehicles. Not a big procession. This indicated that the Zhou Family did not ce much importance on Su Qionglin. During the conversation, Young Master Zhou arrived with his parents. He was very surprised to see Su Ruanruan there. He nced at Su Qionglin one more time. With a tender voice, Su Qionglin said, "Jinhua, these must be your parents!" She sweetly called out, "Uncle, Auntie." Madam Zhou held the authority. She had never been fond of Su Qionglin. So, she merely nodded coldly in response. However, upon seeing Su Ruanruan, her expression softened considerably, "Arent you at school today?" Su Ruanruan smiled, "Im preparing to study medicine after the New Year." "Well, being a doctor is good," praised Madam Zhou. Their conversation was amiable. They seemed to be very familiar with each other. Su Qionglin was anxious, but she restrained herself and asked Young Master Zhou, "How does your mother know Ruanruan?" Madam Zhou answered herself, "I have business dealings with Song Wei and Elder Mu Jiu." Upon the mention of Song Wei, the Su Family couldnt help but get upset. But in front of Madam Zhou, no one dared to act rashly! Since Madam Zhou hade to propose marriage, she would naturally bring a gift. She presented a ruby jewelry set. Worth over ten million yuan. Su Qionglin cherished it greatly. At that moment, Madam Zhou called Su Ruanruan over, "I always hear Mrs. Sun Jingan mentioning you, its rare to see you today." She took off a diamond watch from her wrist. Gave it to Su Ruanruan. Young Master Zhou knew his goods; he immediately recognized it as his mothers most valuable piece of jewelry. Chapter 405: Became Su Ruanruan鈥檚 Lapdog, Assimilated?

Chapter 405: Chapter 405: Became Su Ruanruans Lapdog, Assimted?

Ruanruan didnt want it. Mrs. Zhou insisted on giving it. She said, "We will inevitably meet when you visit City B! Consider it a small gift from an elder." So Ruanruan epted it. She said softly, "Uncle and Aunt Zhou are new to Jiangcheng, I should host you on behalf of Sister Song Wei." Mrs. Zhou was keen on making connections. She couldnt wait! Ruanruan instructed her staff to arrange for Mr. and Mrs. Zhou to stay in the presidential suite. She also booked a dinner for Bao Mingyuan to join them. Mr. and Mrs. Zhou got into the car. Mrs. Zhou said to her son, "Both are daughters raised by the Su Family, how can they be so different?" She added, "Su Qionglin only focuses on admiring jewelry, with no sense of the bigger picture. Look at Ruanruan, young as she is, she already has the demeanor of a matriarch!" Young Master Zhou remained silent. Mrs. Zhou knew he was troubled inside. So she gently patted his shoulder and said softly, "I know you like her, and mom is happy that your taste is not bad!" Su Family. Still joyous and festive. Su Qionglin and her mother were still admiring jewelry. But Su Yugu was worried, "The parents-inw didnt stick around for dinner, I always feel uneasy." Aunt Su beamed with joy, "Important people are always busy! The engagement date is set, whats there to worry about?" She then patted her daughters belly, "Our Qionglin has a promising tummy! The entrance into this wealthy family is secured." Restroom. Ruanruan washed her hands. Su Minghua walked up behind her. In the mirror, Ruanruan saw him and asked quietly, "Big brother, is there something you need?" After hesitating, Su Minghua finally asked, "How has Song Wei been recently?" Ruanruan slowly dried her hands, then said, "Big brother is still concerned about her?" Su Minghua dared not ask further. Since the old master became a vegetable in the sanatorium, he felt both dread and fear towards Ruanruan. Ruanruan gracefully descended the stairs. Su Qionglin came over. She scoffed, "Song Wei, that wretched woman caused you such misery, and you still think about her?" Su Minghuas Adams apple moved. After a while, he said, "After all, I wronged her in the past." "Oh, since when did big brother be so gentle and merciful? It doesnt seem like your style!" Su Qionglin sneered, "Or did you change after bing Ruanruanspdog, influenced by her?" Su Minghua narrowed his eyes, "What nonsense are you spouting?" Su Qionglin scoffed, "Dont think I dont know, youre on her side!" She added, "But I wont lose to her! She has the Bao Family; I have the Zhou Family! Big Brother, you saw it! Today I got precious jewelry, Ruanruan only received something Mrs. Zhou wore!" Su Minghua rxed. It seemed Qionglin didnt know certain things. He warned his sister, "Mind your own business! Take good care of your pregnancy, dont fall and lose it, or how will youtch onto the Zhou Family?" Su Qionglin stomped her foot in anger. Ruanruan was passing through the courtyard, about to leave. At the gate, there stood a tall figure. Su Ruan stood there with a suitcase. Ruanruan was momentarily stunned. She softly called out, "Second brother." Their eyes met. Neither took a step forward. After a long while, Su Ruan smiled lightly, "Stunned? Not happy to see your second brother back?" Ruanruan snapped back to reality. She went over to carry his luggage. Her smile was soft. Very charming. Su Ruan felt as if he was seeing the old Ruanruan. But yet, it felt different. He reached out and touched her head, "Second brother will wash up, and then take you out for dinner." Ruanruan felt a lump in her throat. She agreed with a yes. Watching Su Ruans receding figure. She couldnt guess how much he knew... Chapter 406: Coddling You is a Husband鈥檚 Duty

Chapter 406: Chapter 406: Coddling You is a Husbands Duty

Su Ruanruan apanied Su Ruan for dinner. He treated her the same as before, without asking about the Su Familys affairs. Because of this, Su Ruanruan felt even more distressed. Her second brother treated her extremely well. She had wronged him. Later, they went to a cafe and sat for a while. Su Ruan talked about the interesting things in Africa, about the local customs and people. At four oclock, Bao Jingyan came to pick up Su Ruanruan. It clearly wasnt the end of the workday. Su Ruanruan felt somewhat embarrassed. Yet, Su Ruan stood up and fetched her coat. He said, "Go on! Hes been waiting for you for quite a while." Su Ruanruan softly called out, "Second brother." Su Ruan reached out and stroked her head. He took a box out of his pocket and gave it to her. "This is the engagement gift from your second brother." He looked at her deeply once more, nodded towards Bao Jingyan, and then left through the side door. Su Ruanruan felt a pang of sadness. Bao Jingyan walked over and helped her don her coat. He said, "There are so many people here! Dont you cry your eyes out, that would look bad." Su Ruanruan bit her lip: "I wouldnt do that!" "If not, thats good!" Bao Jingyan took her hand and headed towards the exit of the cafe. He said, "Our Miss Su is ady with dignity!" Su Ruanruan was so annoyed that she punched him. Bao Jingyan looked down, gently retorting, "Isnt that the case?" Su Ruanruan felt much better. She hooked his arm and spoke softly, "Bao Jingyan, you always know how tofort me." "A husbands duty!" He chuckled softly. Then he deliberately drawled, whispering, "And you always know how to make mefortable!" Su Ruanruan was both embarrassed and annoyed! They were still on the street! She made a fuss about going home. "Walk with me for a while." He pulled her into his embrace, "Youve been with your second brother all day, wont you spend some time with me? What kind of wife acts like this?" Su Ruanruan couldnt help but look up at him. A snow-white shirt, a dark coffee-colored slender tie. A three-piece suit. Covered with a thin wool coat. Mature and dashing. Su Ruanruan felt both moved and affected. She reached out her hand to interlock fingers tightly with his. Passersby nced at them quietly. Some recognized them and sneakily took photos with their phones. Su Ruanruan felt somewhat shy. She hid in Bao Jingyans embrace, her little hand stealthily warming itself on his chest. Bao Jingyan looked down: "Miss Su taking the initiative again?" Su Ruanruan ignored him. Bao Jingyan kissed the top of her head: "Go see a movie, hmm?" Su Ruanruan thought it over: they had been together for a long time, but seldom had an official date. So she agreed. They saw a movie, and while dining, they once again bumped into a group of people Bao Jingyan had social engagements with. It was already ten oclock at night when they finished their social meal. Su Ruanruan worried about the olddy, so she proposed to stay at the Bao Mansion. Bao Jingyan carelessly suggested, "Sleep at my ce?" Su Ruanruan felt it wouldnt be appropriate. Knowing her restraint, Bao Jingyan coaxed her: "Wasnt it quite nicest time?" Su Ruanruan blushed. Bao Jingyan held the steering wheel with one hand and grasped hers with the other. Neither spoke. There was an unspoken, cozy ambiguity between them. Returning to the Bao Mansion. It was nearly 11 pm. The Bao family members were unexpectedly still up, chatting in the living room! Xia Minn was also there. Su Ruanruan nodded lightly towards her, then went to visit the olddy. Back in the hall. She sneezed! Housekeeper Wang was very astute: "It seems youve caught a cold." Su Ruanruans voice was nasal: "Seems like it." Bao Jingyan called her over and touched her small hands. They were a bit cold. So, he instructed Housekeeper Wang to stew a portion of birds nest soup for her. Housekeeper Wang was about to go, but Xia Minn stopped him. She said, "I think Im feeling unwell too, Ill have a portion as well!" Housekeeper Wang, easy to talk to, nodded and went to take care of it. Chapter 407: Xia Minglan Brings Shame Upon Herself

Chapter 407: Chapter 407: Xia Minn Brings Shame Upon Herself

Su Ruanruan took a bath, changed into her loungewear, and headed downstairs. A light pink cashmere robe. Over it, she draped a coat that belonged to Bao Jingyan. They were now legitimately engaged. There was no need for her to avoid him anymore. She cuddled up next to Bao Jingyan, reading a book. The firece burned brightly, and she feltfortable. Housekeeper Wang brought over several servings of birds nest. Bao Jingyan took them and personally fed Su Ruanruan... Bao Mingyuan watched the young couple, feeling very pleased. He said to Mrs. Bao, Bao Jingyuan, and Xia Minn, "You should have some too! Birds nest is excellent for women." Mrs. Bao smiled faintly. With an attentive husband, she was also in a good mood. She hadnt noticed it, but Xia Minn had sharp eyes. She immediately noticed that Su Ruanruans serving of birds nest was different from the others. Su Ruanruans was golden blood birds nest. Extremely precious. While theirs was white birds nest, which, though also valuable, was somewhat inferior. As sister-inws,petition was natural. Xia Minn seized the opportunity and delicately said, "Ruanruan, I dont mind at all. But managing the houses finances calls for fairness and justice! Just like this bowl of birds nest, I dont mind being slighted, but it wouldnt be proper if thedy of the house were to receive less." Mrs. Bao heard this and paid attention. Indeed, they were different. She then looked to her husband. To see what he would say! Bao Mingyuan put down his tea. With his temperament, he wanted to kick this Mrs. Xia out of the door right then. Besides causing trouble every day, what good was she? But Ziqi had not given the word. So he had to endure her freeloading meals every day! Ha, and now shes being picky! He was about to speak. But Bao Jingyan said in a calm tone, "Housekeeper Wang, you tell it." Housekeeper Wang smiled and said, "Indeed, these birds nests are different! What thedy, Miss Jingyuan, and Miss Xia have are the usual in our household, even the olddy eats this kind!" Xia Minn felt a block in her throat. She asked, "Why is Su Ruanruans different?" Housekeeper Wang smiled at her and said, "Miss Sus golden blood birds nest was specially sent by Madame Sun Jingan, saying Miss Su is young and frail, and instructed us to stew it for her every other day." Xia Minns fingers clenched tight. Madame Sun Jingan... such a distinguished person actually cared about this trivial matter with Su Ruanruan! She refused to believe it! Housekeeper Wangs words were sharp as a knife: "The item specifically intended for Miss Su by Madame Sun Jingan, I cant possibly give it to someone else, can I? Miss Xia, isnt that right?" Xia Minn was extremely embarrassed! Tears swirled in her eyes! Everyone could see she looked like the aggrieved party. She looked towards Bao Ziqi, hoping he would stand up for her. Bao Ziqi had been disappointed with hertely and was considering breaking up. His expression was indifferent. Xia Minn said her farewells, downcast. Su Ruanruan reclined on the sofa, her beautiful eyes following her figure. She pondered: This Miss Xias temperament is too extreme, shes unlikely to let this go easily. Such a personality, if left in the Bao Family, would ultimately be harmful. Su Ruanruan remained calm. She returned to her bedroom. In her eyebrows lingered a touch of scheming. Bao Jingyan helped her off with the coat, unhappily pressed her into the sofa, and kissed her. "What are you thinking about again?" he nibbled on her little nose. Su Ruanruan looked up at him. Her long ck hair, small oval face. Her skin was even more delicate. Bao Jingyan kissed her eyelids, calling her baby. Su Ruanruan clung to him and acted spoiled, "Bao Jingyan, I have a cold." Bao Jingyan turned her face towards him, kissing from her cheek to her lips. After a long kiss, he pressed against her forehead and muttered softly, "Ruanruan, how could I bear it!" Chapter 408: The Thirtieth Year, I Rush Back

Chapter 408: Chapter 408: The Thirtieth Year, I Rush Back

Ruanruan was recovering from a cold, and the Lunar New Year was just days away. She bade farewell to the elderlydy. Bao Jingyan happened to hear her speaking. Hispany was on holiday, and he nned to spend quality time with Su Ruanruan. Yet, she was returning to the Gu Family. Bao Jingyan was reluctant. But he knew she was someone who cared about propriety. Bao Jingyan then said, "Stay two more days, Ill take you back on the 29th." Su Ruanruan said, "Mom has asked me to help prepare for the New Year!" When they were alone, she said to him, "Its my first year going back home, I dont want to make her sad." Bao Jingyan then packed her luggage. She had arrived with severalrge suitcases. This time, he dragged out a 20-inch carry-on. He only packed her frequently used skincare products and a set of pajamas. Su Ruanruanughed: "What are you doing?" Bao Jingyan pulled her into his arms. Holding her entirely. His thin lipsnded behind her fluffy ear, "If you take everything back, people will think you were kicked out by your inws." "Then Im noting back?" Su Ruanruan asked softly. "You dare!" He couldnt bear it, and he kissed her. In the afternoon, he drove her back to the Gu Family. Prepared by Bao Mingyuan himself, the holiday gifts were carefully checked by Gui Zhi, he told his eldest son, "Its the first year, we cant be careless!" Bao Jingyan closed the trunk. Su Ruanruan put on her down jacket and got into the car. Bao Mingyuan told her, "On the first day of the New Year, your aunt and I will visit the Gu Family." Su Ruanruan smiled lightly, "Thank you, uncle." Bao Jingyan took a phone call and got into the car. The cars heater was on full st, and Su Ruanruan took off her coat. She asked him softly, "Has Jingse not returned yet?" Bao Jingyan focused on driving, briefly replying, "Im flying to City B tonight." "Is there something at thepany there?" Su Ruanruan asked. Bao Jingyan hmmmed. He said, "Ill rush back on the thirtieth." He drove Su Ruanruan to the Gu Family. After delivering the gifts and having a couple of cups of tea, he then prepared to drive to the airport. Su Ruanruan stood up to see him off. She disagreed, "Let the driver take you." "Its only an hours drive," Bao Jingyan fastened her coat gently, "Hurry inside, its cold outside." Su Ruanruan returned to the living room. Gu Ze teased her, "Get married quick next year; otherwise, even New Years will be torture." Su Ruanruan stuck out her tongue at him. Gu Ze fished out a red envelope from his coat, "Lucky money!" He picked up a suitcase, ready to leave. Mrs. Gu came down from upstairs and stopped him, "Jingyans business trip is for work, why are you running out during the New Year?" Gu Ze waved his hand, "Going to see my wife." Mrs. Gu scoffed, "Your wife is all over the ce!" Su Ruanruan couldnt help butugh. Mrs. Gu pulled out her red envelope to check. Inside was a check for 20 million. She said, "At least he has some conscience." Su Ruanruan, more concerned, asked, "Has brother started dating a girlfriend recently?" Mrs. Gu was hopeless, "All I know is that hes always rushing to City B, probably found another actress." City B? A thought struck Su Ruanruan. She remembered someone was in City B! She kept it to herself, holding Mrs. Gus hand, ready to apany her for New Year shopping. Mrs. Gu looked her daughter up and down, "Youre too inly dressed, during New Years you should wear something bright and vibrant." Su Ruanruan called for Gu Jiarou. Gu Jiarous parents were very fond of Su Ruanruan and were happy to let their daughter be close to her. Half an hourter, the three of them were strolling in the biggest trade center in Jiang City. Mrs. Gu had good taste. She picked a lively outfit for Gu Jiarou. It really showed off her legs. Su Ruanruan, now engaged, needed to dress more formally. An understated floral dress inside, paired with a thin red down jacket. Itplemented herplexion. Su Ruanruan liked it very much... Chapter 409: Xia Minglan, Let鈥檚 Break Up

Chapter 409: Chapter 409: Xia Minn, Lets Break Up

Su Ruanruan moved out of the Bao Mansion. Xia Minn got the news. She felt indescribablyfortable and immediately took a car ride over. In the afternoon, the Bao Mansion was rather quiet. Her steps were light. She wanted to spend a tender moment with Bao Ziqi and mend their rtionship. Pushing the door open, Bao Ziqi was packing his things, with a passport lying at the end of the bed. Xia Minn was stunned. She went over, picked it up and flipped through it: "Ziqi, youre going abroad?" Bao Ziqi didnt hide it, "Yes, Ill leave after the New Year." Xia Minn panicked: "What about me? What should I do?" Bao Ziqi lit a cigarette and sat down on the couch. After a while, he said, "This period is a good time to cool off. Xia Minn, we really arent suitable for each other." He tried hard to like her. He also tried hard to tolerate her ws. But he just couldnt feel it. Bao Ziqi didnt want to settle. After finishing a cigarette, he said, "Lets break up!" Xia Minn slumped at the end of the bed, muttering, "Werent we aiming for marriage?" "But we dont suit each other," Bao Ziqi extinguished the cigarette butt. He took out a delicate box from the bedside table. A set of valuable jewelry. "Its mypensation to you," Bao Ziqi said softly. Xia Minns dreams were shattered. She lost herposure to the extreme and knocked over the box Bao Ziqi was holding. The diamond ne and bracelet fell to the ground. Bao Ziqis temper wasnt good either! But he wished for a good parting. He picked them up, packed them again, and stuffed them into her hands. Xia Minn wept and copsed into his arms: "Ziqi, I dont want to break up!" Bao Ziqi handed her a few tissues. When she calmed down a bit, he said, "Donte over anymore." Xia Minn was extremely embarrassed. She could have not taken the jewelry, making him never forget her. But in the end, she still took it. ... The sound of a car leaving echoed in the courtyard. Bao Jingyuan was lying on the balcony spying, and then she ran back to the living room to report to the Bao Madam. "Sister Minn really left." "Did Second Brother really break up with her?" Bao Madam leisurely drank her tea. She nced at her daughter: "She wasnt up to par." Bao Jingyuan naively nodded her head. After a while, she asked again: "Mom, does this mean we have to listen to Su Ruanruan from now on?" Bao Madam became furious. Bao Jingyuan immediately ran away! ... Xia Minn took a car ride home. She was dispirited. Xias mother wanted to demand an exnation from Bao Madam. A phone call over, and she was ridiculed by Bao Madam instead. Xias mother was furious, and Xia Minn was even more distressed to the point of wanting to die. She sat on the sofa, drinking sullenly. Xia familys cousin Xia Minghan, who had keys in hand, was ready to go out. He had returned from studying abroad and was eager for social interaction. Seeing his cousin this way, he naturally asked. Xia Minn, half-drunk but still lucid, med everything on Su Ruanruan. She thought: If someone were to hurt Su Ruanruan, wouldnt she be even more miserable than herself? Xia Minn clung to her cousins shoulder, tears streaming down her face, saying: "Ziqi broke up with me! Its all because of Su Ruanruan, she was jealous of my status in the Bao Family and couldnt tolerate me, determined to drive me out!" She did not hesitate to twist the truth: "Minghan, did you know? When Ziqi was unconscious in the hospital, Su Ruanruan was holding his hand every day. Which man could forget her?" Xia Minghan was furious. He spoke sternly to Xia Minn: "Dont worry, Ill take care of her." Xia Minn was disoriented: "Minghan, what are you going to do?" "Dont worry about it! Leave everything to me!" Xia Minghan had the familys servants watch over her and drove away himself. Chapter 410: The Real Father in Su Qionglin鈥檚 Belly

Chapter 410: Chapter 410: The Real Father in Su Qionglins Belly

He had arranged a meeting at the hotel. It was not with a stranger, but with Su Qionglin. He had been fooling around with Su Qionglin for nearly two months. He knew she was Zhou Jinhuas woman. Now, she even intended to marry into a wealthy family because of her unborn child. But so what? When they were together, she would always call him "husband" with every other word! He unlocked the suite door and entered. Su Qionglin wore a ckce camisole, covered with a matching nightgown. Her wavy hair reached her waist. Very sexy. Leaning on the couch, her perfectly manicured fingers held a ss of red wine. Xia Minghan ced his car keys down. He leaned against the door, smiling, "At this time, you still dare to meet me? Arent you afraid Zhou Jinhua will break your legs?" Su Qionglin curved her lips. She beckoned him over. While entwined, she said coyly, "Why would he care about me! Hes heartbroken over his sweetheart right now!" After their lovemaking. Xia Minghan looked at her belly: "Can you find out in less than a month?" A trace of guilt shed across Su Qionglins eyes. She swatted his hand away and twisted her body to go wash up. She returned after a moment. Xia Minghan sat smoking a cigarette; Su Qionglin also wanted one. He stopped her: "Arent you pregnant? Its not good for the baby." Su Qionglin paused, then said sheepishly, "You care so much about the child in my belly? One would think you are the father!" She then touched her own belly. Saying dejectedly, "Jinhuas heart has beenpletely captivated by Su Ruanruan, he doesnt care about me or the baby at all." Xia Minghan squinted, "Su Ruanruan again? Is she that bad?" Su Qionglin knew about his rtionship with Xia Minn. She wanted to use him to get rid of Su Ruanruan. It would be best if he ruined himself in the process; that way, her baby would be safe. Su Qionglin softened in his arms, adding oil to the fire, distorting truth and fiction as she plotted. Xia Minghan then prepared to teach Su Ruanruan a lesson. "Have someone kidnap her! Take some sensational photos." He meant to catch Su Ruanruans weak spots, keeping her from causing trouble in the future. But Su Qionglin wanted more. She would make Su Ruanruan notorious. In Jiang City, there would no longer be a ce for her! To motivate Xia Minghan, while also satisfying herself. Su Qionglin, with seductive nces,unched another offensive... ... The next day. Su Ruanruan was reading a book in Gu Mansion. The servant said a Mr. Qin hade to see her. Madam Gu asked, "Which Mr. Qin?" Su Ruanruan smiled and said, "Qin Chao!" Madam Gu alsoughed, "Qin Chao is young; calling him that makes him sound old." Su Ruanruan went to the small reception room to meet the guest. Madam Gu chided yfully, "All so mysterious!" ... This was Qin Chaos first visit to the Gu Family and he was a bit uneasy. Su Ruanruan sat opposite him, asking softly, "Any news?" Qin Chaos face turned red, digging out a kraft paper bag. Su Ruanruan opened it. Inside were a dozen photos and a USB drive. The photos were of Su Qionglin and Xia Minghan, hugging and kissing. Very intimate! As for the USB drive, Su Ruanruan didnt want to see it. Qin Chao then said, "Last night, Xia Minghan actually paid off our two lowest ranking brothers who just came from the countryside and had never seen the world." Su Ruanruan smiled, "Tell them to y along well." Her eyes reflected intelligence: "Xia Minghan wants to catch my weak spots, but Su Qionglin wants me dead! Its perfect, Ill root out these bloodworms all at once!" She beckoned Qin Chao closer. Whispering a few words. Qin Chao nodded: "Ill follow Miss Sus orders." Su Ruanruan took out some money, instructing him to distribute it among his men. She also handed Qin Chao a box of golden blood birds nest, "I heard from Aunt Mu that your sister is frail, this will be useful for her. Take it back and have someone stew it for her." Qin Chao was touched. Chapter 411: Give Miss Su a Good Reception

Chapter 411: Chapter 411: Give Miss Su a Good Reception

On New Years Eve. Su Ruanruan received a call from Bao Jingyuan. Bao Jingyuans voice trembled. "Su Ruanruan, my car broke down! Come pick me up!" Su Ruanruan was somewhat surprised. Xia Minghan actually set Bao Jingyuan up to work for him. She responded indifferently, "Im not your driver, you should call Housekeeper Wang." Bao Jingyuan insisted righteously, "You are my sister-inw! Im asking you for help." Su Ruanruan asked for her location. Hung up the phone. She put on her coat and went out. Qin Chao was waiting outside. Su Ruanruan gave him a few low orders. Qin Chao then said with a smile, "Miss Su, dont worry, we are professionals at this! Besides, those two guys are our own people." Su Ruanruan cracked a faint smile. She got in Old Zhaos car. The car drove for about 30 minutes to the location Bao Jingyuan mentioned. But there was no sign of Bao Jingyuan. Old Zhao said, "This ce is deserted, could there be some setup waiting for us?" No sooner had he finished speaking when Old Zhaos mouth and nose were covered. Old Zhao, with a fiery temper, struggled violently. But he was no match against multiple attackers. He was tied up, thrown into the car, and had a stinky sock stuffed in his mouth. Su Ruanruan pretended to run. "Miss Su! Seeing is believing." Xia Minghan emerged from the shadows. Su Ruanruan was pressed against the car, and to make it seem real, her calf was bruised with a violet hue. Su Ruanruan asked him, "Did Xia Minn make you do this?" Xia Minghans heroplex acted up. He greatly despised Su Ruanruan. He said, "There are plenty of people who want to deal with you!" Su Ruanruan bluntly asked, "What do you want to do?" "What do I want to do?" Xia Minghan sneered, "Naturally, to give Miss Su a proper wee!" He signaled with his eyes. The twonky guys with blond hair immediately put a brown paper bag over Su Ruanruans head. Old Zhao in the car made a few muffled noises... Xia Minghan ordered his men to push Su Ruanruan into a dpidated room. Su Ruanruan sat on a chair, unable to see. Then, a timid voice rang out, "Xia Minghan, youre just going to scare her, right? Shes my big brothers precious darling; if something happens, youre done for." Xia Minghan casually responded with a few words. Bao Jingyuan was pleased, "Ha! Lets see if she dares to show off to me in the future!" Su Ruanruan was speechlessly amused. Did Bao Jingyuan grow up on brain supplement pills? Bao Jingyuan thought everything was foolproof. Happily, she went home! Xia Minghan quickly removed the paper bag from Su Ruanruans head! He said to the twonky blond guys, "First tame this woman with a beating, then take some thrilling photos." Outside the door, Bao Jingyuan returned after leaving. She had forgotten something. She overheard Xia Minghans words. She was frightened. Turns out Xia Minghan deceived her; he wasnt just going to scare Su Ruanruan. He intended to do something bad! Bao Jingyuan was extremely afraid. She wanted to go in and stop them, but she was afraid she might end up stripped of her clothes... After a struggle, she ran away quickly. ... Back at Bao Mansion. Bao Jingyuan developed a high fever. She kept muttering, saying it wasnt on purpose. Bao Mingyuan was furious. He said to his wife, "Its New Years Eve, and she runs outside and gets sick!" Lady Bao felt quite aggrieved. The olddy said aside, "She seems to be shocked, must have done something wrong and encountered a ghost! She suggested finding a master to perform rituals. Bao Mingyuan didnt know whether tough or cry. Just at that moment, Bao Jingyan and Bao Jingse returned from City B and stopped by to check in. As soon as Bao Jingyuan saw Bao Jingyan, she became even more hysterical. She sat up straight, shouting, "Su Ruanruan is in big trouble! Someone is harming her." Chapter 412: Bao Jingyan Knows Her Abilities

Chapter 412: Chapter 412: Bao Jingyan Knows Her Abilities

Everyone looked at each other in dismay. But Bao Jingyuan kept ranting. She couldnt make any sense! Bao Jingyan ordered someone to bring cold water. In the dead of winter, they doused Bao Jingyuan from head to toe. Mrs. Bao cried and screamed. Bao Jingyans heart was as cold as a fish-ying knife at the supermarket. Finally, Bao Jingyuan came to her senses. Her eyes fixed sternly: "Big brother, Su Ruanruan was kidnapped by Xia Minghan! He said he would beat her up and even take pictures." Bao Mingyuan pped her across the face. He furiously scolded his wife: "Youve raised a fool!" Mrs. Bao was also in a panic. Although she hated Su Ruanruan, she knew that Jingyuan was involved in this matter. If anything happened to Su Ruanruan, given Bao Jingyans personality, he could kill Jingyuan. Mrs. Bao hugged her husbands legs and pleaded, "Its no use hitting her now, the most important thing is to bring her back." By this time, Bao Jingyan had already gone downstairs. Bao Mingyuan immediately followed. He wanted tofort his eldest son. But Bao Jingyan said, "Ruanruan will be fine!" Bao Mingyuan felt heavy. He was not optimistic. Ziqi and Xia Minn have broken up. Xia Minghan must be trying to fight for Xia Minn. Just as Bao Jingyan was about to take action, the news of Su Ruanruans kidnapping spread wildly. Someone anonymously called the police. Even the crime scene location was disclosed. Behind the scenes, dark forces made a huge spectacle; many live streamers and inte celebrities followed the rescue team to broadcast live. They all wanted to grab the first-hand explosive news. Everyone thought, Su Ruanruan was doomed! The first sight must be tragic! So, on New Years Eve evening. Everyone in Jiangcheng was glued to the live broadcast. [Jiangchengs top socialite brutally attacked!] [A wealthy marriage in jeopardy!] [Pray for Su Ruanruan! After all, shes too naive!] ... Su Family! Su Qionglin was holding a ss of red wine. She watched the live broadcast on TV and coldlyughed. Xia Minghan, sorry! Who told you to be stupid! After all, you are the childs father! Lets have you apany Su Ruanruan in her downfall! In a moment, when the rescue team arrives, Su Ruanruan will be disgraced in front of the whole city. From then on, high society will be without Su Ruanruan! Young Master Zhou was also at the Su residence. He had just gone to the restroom. Coming out, he saw the scene on TV. Stunned for a long time, he then asked, "Su Ruanruan has been kidnapped?" How is that possible, shes such a clever person! Su Qionglin hummed lightly, "Shes always in the spotlight, isnt it normal for her to be unlucky?" Young Master Zhou picked up his coat and strode out. Su Qionglin called out from behind him, "Zhou Jinhua, you stop right there." Young Master Zhou didnt look back. He drove towards the live broadcast location. He thought to himself: Please, let nothing happen! Shes Su Ruanruan, how could anything happen to her? But, shes as defenseless as a chicken. Falling into their hands... ... Bao Mingyuan and his eldest son sat side by side in the back of the car. He felt very conflicted. Loving cares can be chaotic! He forgot about Su Ruanruans capabilities! But Bao Jingyan didnt forget! His little one is very capable! He was both angry and proud. What he wanted most now was to find her and give her a good spanking on hisp. Poor Bao Mingyuan and his son werent on the same wavelength; he didnt even dare to make a sound. For fear of agitating his son! All he could do was tell the driver, "Drive faster!" The driver floored the elerator. The Bao family and the police nearly arrived at the abandoned house at the same time. Both vehicles just stopped. Arge group of live streaming teams also arrived. They couldnt be stopped. The top official of Jiangcheng, with vast experience in handling cases, came personally. He gave Bao Mingyuan and Bao Jingyan a precautionary warning, "After rescuing her, please consult a psychologist!" Bao Mingyuan gave a bitter smile. Bao Jingyan, however, kicked open the broken door of the house... Chapter 413: So Refreshing! Super Comeback!

Chapter 413: Chapter 413: So Refreshing! Super Comeback!

That moment. Everyone took a breath. The faint-hearted couldnt even bear to watch! Those guarding the live broadcast were staring wide-eyed. They all thought they were about to witness a tragic scene. But then, when those people took a closer look. They were all shocked! Ruanruan was perfectly fine, not a hair out of ce. She was wearing a coat, sitting on an old chair. Old Zhao was serving her hot tea. The aroma of the tea filled the air! Behind her, two skinny guys with yellow hair were being very respectful. Calling her Miss Su all the time. And the greatly wicked Xia Minghan, with a swollen nose and bruised face, was kneeling and writing a self-criticism. His Chinese wasnt good; every time he wrote something wrong, Ruanruan would tear it up and make him rewrite it. When the door-breaking noise urred. She looked up. Her appearance was pure and innocent. She took out a voice recorder, and said softly, "This Mr. Xia wanted to harm me, so I took some legitimate defense!" Themander heaved a sigh of relief. At the same time, he was extremely surprised. He whispered to Bao Mingyuan, "Your young wife is no simple character! Compared to her, this Xia fellows skills are as good as water on toilet paper." Bao Mingyuan was so proud. Beyond words! Ruanruan had fought a beautiful victory! However, Bao Jingyan walked over and gently lifted Ruanruan. On her leg was arge bruise. He looked at her coldly: "Isnt it a bit challenging for you?" "Bao Jingyan!" She softly called his name. Bao Jingyan wasnt buying her act! He walked straight out. Bao Mingyuan followed his son, pleading continuously, "Ruanruan knows what shes doing! Jingyan, dont scare her with that sulky face." Bao Jingyan carried her into the car and mmed the car door shut. He drove away directly. Bao Mingyuan then said to Old Zhao, "Hes angry at his wife, why vent it on me!" Old Zhao didnt dare to make a sound. Bao Mingyuan patted his shoulder, adding, "But its normal for Jingyan to be angry! Today was indeed perilous." Old Zhao scratched his head: "Actually, everything was calcted by Miss Su! Except for Xia Minghan, the rest were our own people, just ying along in the act." Bao Mingyuan was stunned! ... Bao Jingyan brought Ruanruan directly to Bao Mansion. The Gu Family arrived too. Madam Gu then realized why her daughter had been so secretive these daysit was to carry out such a significant act. She saw Bao Jingyan had a bad expression and quietly asked Ruanruan. Ruanruan whispered softly: "Hes angry." Madam Gu smiled tenderly: "Hes upset because you put yourself in danger, hes worried about you!" Ruanruan naturally knew. Mother and daughter shared everything. She bit her lip and softly said: "Actually, I shouldnt have gotten involved with Ziqis matters! But Xia Minn..." Madam Gu guessed a bit of it. She patted her daughters hand and said, "Your thoughts are meticulous, and if youve felt that way, then it wont be wrong!" She asked what to do next. Ruanruan smiled lightly: "Bao Family will handle Xia Minn! As for Su Qionglin, I have to deal with her myself." Madam Gu agreed. She said, "Shes also ruthless! The news today must have been leaked by her, right?" Ruanruan smiled subtly. Madam Gu felt quite reassured about her daughter. Ten Su Qionglins wouldnt be a match for Ruanruan. While they were talking, Bao Jingyan entered with a medical kit. He was very respectful to Madam Gu. But he didnt have a pleasant expression for Ruanruan. Madam Guughed softly, leaving some space for the couple. Bao Jingyan closed the door, turned around, walked over, and sat on the bed side. He didnt look at her, just pulled one of her legs out from under the nkets and began applying medicine. She was delicate, afraid of pain. Bao Jingyan scoffed coldly, "Isnt our Miss Su quite formidable? What now, afraid of pain?" Chapter 414: Bao Jingyan Protects His Wife

Chapter 414: Chapter 414: Bao Jingyan Protects His Wife

Su Ruanruan was fearless before him. She wrapped her arms around his neck, her eyes shimmering bright. The voice that spoke was incredibly coy. Bao Jingyan lifted his gaze, his dark pupils hiding an unfathomable depth. His voice hoarse, he asked, "Deliberate?" Su Ruanruan looked straight at him. Bao Jingyan couldnt resist leaning in to kiss her. Su Ruanruan spected: He should have calmed down by now. But Bao Jingyan suddenly pushed her over. The nket was thrown over her face. Su Ruanruan curled up on his bed, biting the pillow. Only then did she realize that he was truly angry. ... Bao Jingyan walked out of the bedroom, where Housekeeper Wang was waiting. He asked, "Where is Jingyuan?" Housekeeper Wang spoke in a low voice, "She has a high fever, so we called the doctor again." Bao Jingyan didnt ask any further. He slowly descended the stairs. Downstairs, the Xia Family were all gathered together. Men and women, around a dozen in total. No one offered them seats, so they could only stand. Xia Minn was also among them, her expression one of sorrow. She had thought that even at the cost of Minghans downfall, Su Ruanruan would be pulled down too, but unexpectedly, she had only managed to sacrifice her second uncles sole heir. Su Ruanruan was unscathed! In the midst of sorrow, footsteps echoed from the staircase. Xia Minn looked up. Bao Jingyan descended the stairs gracefully. He had not had time to change out of his business attire. A ssic ck and white suit. His hair neatly trimmed. Under the light, his facial features appeared even more chiseled. The Xia Family had rarely seen him before, and they were all surprised at how handsome the eldest son of the Bao Family was in person. Like a male god from magazine pages. At this moment, Xia Minn saw him as her only hope. She pleaded earnestly, "Big brother, I beg you to spare Minghans life." Bao Jingyan stopped on the staircase. His gaze fell coldly on Xia Minn. He asked lightly, "What did you call me?" Xia Minn was utterly mortified. She was too ashamed to speak! Bao Jingyan slowly walked down the steps and settled himself on the sofa. He looked around at the Xia Family, "Youvee to plead for mercy?" Minghans parents had some sense. The evidence was conclusive, their son could not deny it. They begged humbly, "Minghan is young and ignorant, we beg you, Mr. Bao, please show mercy." Before Bao Jingyan could reply, Xia Minn spoke up again. With a pitiful expression, she said to her second uncle, "It seems only asking Miss Su will do! No one else can make a decision if she doesnt let Minghan go." Her schemes ran deep. She actually shifted the me onto Su Ruanruan. Minghans parents were deceived by her, actually begging to see Su Ruanruan. Bao Jingyan let out a coldugh. He said, "The person you should be begging is Miss Xia." The Xia Family was stunned. Xia Minns face turned pale with shock, "I... I dont know what youre talking about!" Bao Jingyan curved his lips slightly, "After Ziqi broke up with you, are you saying you didnt instigate Minghan against Ruanruan? Otherwise, why would he, having no grievances with Ruanruan, fuss over this matter?" His reasoning was sound. The Xia Family looked towards Xia Minn with doubt. Xia Minns panicked demeanor betrayed her. In the end, she could only retort weakly, "I justined a few times." Minns second aunt gave her a p. She cursed aloud, "Minn, I never thought youd be so venomous! Just because a man doesnt want you, you go so far as to persecute your own kin!" Although Minns parents were heartbroken, they still defended their daughter! Suddenly, a fight broke out. It was quite a disgraceful scene! Bao Jingyan sat quietly on the sofa, observing with cold detachment. Once their fight had nearly run its course, He instructed Housekeeper Wang in an indifferent voice, "Close the main gate! And then make a call to Officer Hao, tell him that someone is causing a disturbance at the Bao Familys home during the New Years celebration." Chapter 415: Haven鈥檛 He and Ruanruan Reconciled?

Chapter 415: Chapter 415: Havent He and Ruanruan Reconciled?

Housekeeper Wang immediately set about handling the situation. Within moments, the entire Xia family had been taken away. Men and women, more than a dozen of them. Bao Mingyuan wrapped up his business and hurried back, just in time to encounter this scene. He was dumbfounded. When he reached the hall, he inquired with his eldest son. Bao Jingyan responded with indifference: "The matters you and Ziqi didnt take care of, I am handling now." After speaking, he went upstairs. Bao Mingyuan asked Housekeeper Wang, "Hasnt he reconciled with Ruanruan?" Housekeeper Wang reported truthfully: "It seems like hes still angry!" Bao Mingyuan stood downstairs, hands on his hips, pacing back and forth. So the little rascal is ming him for not keeping a closer watch on his wife! Damn it, what could he have done! I couldnt possibly have followed them to celebrate the New Year at the Gu familys home! Bao Mingyuan, annoyed, sat down to drink tea. Housekeeper Wang waited upon him with bowed head andpliant eyes. Madam Bao came downstairs, pleading with her husband, "Jingyuans fever has reached 40 degrees." She alsoined about how heartless Bao Jingyan was. Although Bao Mingyuan hated his daughters foolishness, she was still his child after all. He immediately got up, ready to take her to the hospital personally. But Madam Bao begged him, "Isnt Ruanruan skilled in medicine? Besides, Jingyuans illness is psychosomatic." Bao Mingyuan snorted, "Jingyuan hurt her, and you still expect her to treat Jingyuan? Qi Meiyu, I think even your mind isnt clear during the New Year festivities." Madam Bao continued to plead. Bao Mingyuan was irritated and said, "I have no face to ask her! If you want help, go ask for it yourself." Madam Bao looked stricken with misery. ... On the second floor, Bao Ziqi stood there. He watched his parents for a long while. Momentarily, he went up to the third floor. He knocked on the door of the bedroom at the farthest south. Bao Jingyan opened the door. The meeting between brothers was somewhat delicate. Bao Ziqi was not one to easily bow his head to him, but this time he spoke up. He asked, "Wheres Ruanruan?" "Do you want to see her?" "I have a few words I want to say." Bao Jingyan stepped aside to let him in, then he himself walked into the adjoining study. Bao Ziqi had heard about their cold war. It was no surprise. He walked further into the living room. Su Ruanruan was sitting on a sofa by the window, reading a book. Under the soft, yellow light, her facial features appeared exceptionally gentle. Bao Ziqis throat tightened. Su Ruanruan looked up, somewhat surprised, "Ziqi?" Bao Ziqi walked over and sat opposite her, asking in a low voice, "Are your injuries serious?" "Not serious." Su Ruanruan gave a faint smile. She thanked him for his concern. Her warmth was tinged with a trace of politeness. Bao Ziqi felt a bit dejected. Heposed his emotions and still asked, "Jingyuan is sick, could you go check on her?" He knew he was imposing, with no right to ask. He expected she would refuse. But Su Ruanruan put down the book in her hands and said, "Is it serious? Ill go have a look." So Bao Ziqi told her about the incident of her falling ill back home. Su Ruanruan nodded. She left with Bao Ziqi. Bao Jingyan suddenly opened the door of the study, his gaze intense. His expression was as if he was catching an adulterer in the act! He asked her, "Doesnt your leg hurt anymore?" Su Ruanruan gestured downstairs, "Ill go check on Jingyuan." Bao Jingyan didnt say anything more and closed the door to the study. Bao Ziqi touched his nose, "Arent you afraid of him?" "I used to be afraid, but not so much now," Su Ruanruan spoke softly. Bao Ziqi didnt ask anymore. He had that much emotional intelligence. They had a good rtionship. Even if Bao Jingyan lost his temper, it was just a lovers tiff. The two reached Bao Jingyuans bedroom on the second floor. Bao Mingyuan and his wife were about to take her to the hospital and were stunned to see Su Ruanruaning over. Bao Mingyuans eyes held some warmth. The child he valued was always better than others. Madam Bao was even more shocked; she hadnt expected Su Ruanruan to be willing toe. Chapter 416: Sweetie, Are You Still Mad at Me?

Chapter 416: Chapter 416: Sweetie, Are You Still Mad at Me?

Lady Bao was shocked. She stuttered, "Are you really willing to save Jingyuan?" Su Ruanruan quietly replied, "Ill take a look at her." On the bed, Bao Jingyuan was drenched in sweat. She was still talking nonsense. One moment Xia Minghan... another moment Su Ruanruan. Lady Bao wiped away her tears, "Its Chinese New Year, how could she go crazy like this?" Su Ruanruan had someone fetch a medicine kit from the small courtyard and ordered a few strong maidservants to hold Bao Jingyuan down, preventing her from moving. Lady Baos heart was in pain. Su Ruanruan signaled the men to leave. She gently pulled back Bao Jingyuans clothes and inserted a few silver needles at several points on her back. From the needle pricks, a few strands of dark red blood flowed. The silver needles were removed and reced with heated cups. The heat made Bao Jingyuan howl in pain. Lady Bao was worried Su Ruanruan was seeking revenge, "Is this effective? Why does Jingyuans sweat seem to be flowing even more?" Su Ruanruan nced at her indifferently. Lady Bao fell silent. After about half an hour, Bao Jingyuan slowly calmed down. Shey on the bed as if she had fallen asleep. Lady Bao reached out to check. She cried out in surprise, "Jingyuans fever has gone down." Bao Mingyuan, concerned for his daughter, came into the room. Lady Bao sobbed with joy, "Mingyuan, Jingyuans fever is gone and shes speaking sensibly now." Bao Mingyuan examined her. Indeed, it was true. He rubbed his hands, "Ruanruans medical skills are extraordinary. Now we can have a good New Year." Su Ruanruan packed up the medicine bag and instructed, "Dont let her go out these next few days and keep her warm." Lady Bao quickly nodded. She personally escorted Su Ruanruan to the door. Outside, she found it difficult to say, "When Jingyuan wakes up, Ill scold her!" Bao Mingyuan came out, saying, "Dont bother, let Ruanruan discipline her! Such a shameless girl!" Lady Bao was embarrassed. But she didnt say much. Su Ruanruan smiled faintly. As she was about to go upstairs, Bao Ziqi stopped her. He said, "Ruanruan... thank you." Su Ruanruan just gave a light smile. She returned to Bao Jingyans bedroom on the third floor. He had changed into home clothes and was leisurely smoking in the living room. So manly! Su Ruanruan approached him and leaned on hisp, acting coy, "I heard tonights New Years Eve dinner isvish." Bao Jingyan looked down at her. Su Ruanruan pleasingly asked, "Have you prepared a red envelope for me?" Bao Jingyan bent forward. He was about to say something when there was a knock at the door. Housekeeper Wang said from the doorway, "Master Zhou wishes to see Miss Su." "Tell him to get lost!" Bao Jingyan said bluntly. Su Ruanruan knew trouble was brewing. She thought to run. Her slender waist was hooked by someone, and she fell into his hands. "Dont want a red envelope?" His breath was warm on the back of her ear, and his tone was very gentle. The next second, she was pressed down on the couch. Bao Jingyans voice was husky, "When Im not here, they chase after you like this? Youre so desirable, what shall we do?" Su Ruanruan curled up beneath him like a little animal. Submissive, obedient. Her voice trembled, "Bao Jingyan, what do you want?" He chuckled softly. His upright nose touched hers. Su Ruanruan shivered slightly. She was kissed. Bao Jingyan treated her gently. Her eyes moist... Everything stopped abruptly. Bao Jingyan washed his hands in the bathroom and came out. He propped his hands on either side of the couch. Admiring her appearance. After a moment, he murmured in her ear, "Go wash up, were having New Years Eve dinner soon! Dont be aughingstock, okay?" Su Ruanruan bit into the couch. Embarrassed and angry. He did it on purpose! Bao Jingyan felt slightly better. He went downstairs first. Upon reaching the first floor, Housekeeper Wang reported, "Master Zhou is still at the door, refusing to leave." Chapter 417: You鈥檙e So Big Now, You Still Need Someone to Sleep With You?

Chapter 417: Chapter 417: Youre So Big Now, You Still Need Someone to Sleep With You?

Bao Jingyan furrowed his brows. He opened an umbre, braving the snow to walk to the Bao Mansions main entrance. Mr. Zhou hopped off from the car. Bao Jingyan scoffed. "Mr. Zhou, instead of visiting the Su Family for the New Year, why have youe to our ce?" Mr. Zhou asked in a low voice, "Is she doing well?" "Very well," Bao Jingyan said earnestly. "There arent many in Jiangcheng who can get the better of Ruanruan." Mr. Zhou was convinced. He hesitated for a long while, but eventually took his leave. ... Bao Jingyan slowly returned inside the mansion. Su Ruanruan had alreadye downstairs. She was talking to the elderlydy by the firece, with Jingse. Upon seeing him, the elderlydy scolded, "I heard from your dad that youre still angry with Ruanruan? Its so hard for people toe back and instead of cherishing her youre still being at odds with her! Thats outrageous." Su Ruanruan didnt speak. Her demeanor, a bit coquettish. Bao Jingyan sat down beside Su Ruanruan. He took her hand and said to the elderlydy, "Ive already apologized to her upstairs just now!" The elderlydy was skeptical. Bao Jingyan then asked Su Ruanruan, "Did I or did I not?" As he asked, his gaze was bright. It had a kind of mature mans mischievous charm. Su Ruanruan felt bashful and yet infuriated. Just now he had messed with her like that... and left her behind... And now he was actually turning the truth on its head! But how could she talk about this intimate bedroom matter? Silently, she tried to pull her hand away. Bao Jingyan wouldnt let go. He held on tightly, and then pulled her hand into his coat pocket. Su Ruanruan was taken aback for a moment. She then realized that he had forgiven her. Just as Su Ruanruan was about to say something. Bao Jingyan whispered to her, "After dinner, I need to go out for a bit." Su Ruanruan looked at him. He reached out to lightly flick her little nose, "So grown up and still need someone to stay with you to sleep?" Bao Jingse and the elderlydy both started tough. He had no shame, but Su Ruanruan still did! She refused to deal with him. At that moment, Bao Mingyuan and his wife came downstairs. The family had their reunion dinner. After the meal, Bao Jingyan went out. With so many people around, Su Ruanruan was too embarrassed to ask. Bao Jingyan got into the car and sent her a message. [Wont be back tonight! Go to sleep early.] Upon receiving the message, Su Ruanruan still felt a bit down. She thought to herself, Bao Jingyan, being a businessman, often has socialmitments that cant be avoided. ... An hourter. Bao Jingyans car stopped in front of a club. Yan Kuan opened the car door for him. Yan Kuan respectfully said, "Master Jiu is already here." Bao Jingyan nodded and followed Yan Kuan to the third floors private room. The private room wasrge. Over 200 square meters, luxuriously decorated. In addition to Mu Jiu and several familiar faces, the person in charge of handling Xia Minghans case was also there, surprisingly. Bao Jingyan greeted him as soon as he came in. The man resignedly said, "Jingyan, its New Years..." Bao Jingyan took off his coat and casually tossed it on the sofa. He smiled and asked, "Uncle Hao, are you so distant now that you wont even y cards with us?" Mr. Hao knew his intentions and just bitterly smiled, "Alright, well y a few rounds." Master Jiu had a rogue look about him, "A few rounds? We should y all night." Mr. Hao shook his head. Bao Jingyan sat down at the card table. He lit a cigarette and put it in his mouth. While shuffling the cards, he teased, "Uncle Hao doesnt seem afraid of his wife." Mr. Hao dealt the cards, "Jingyan, you dont know the terror of women over 40!" Bao Jingyan chuckled softly. The man continued, "But your little girl, I reckon shed look like a fairy even at 50." "Tough handler, though," Bao Jingyan yed a card and said indifferently, "When I left, she was adamantly against it." Laughter filled the card table. The atmosphere grew harmonious. Mu Jiu even brought over a few young stars to sing onstage. The scene slowly heated up. Chapter 418 What Kind of Abnormal Physical Strength Is This?

Chapter 418: Chapter 418 What Kind of Abnormal Physical Strength Is This?

Mr. Hao also had fun ying. But after all, hes old and couldnt stay awake past 3 a.m. He begged for mercy, saying they should hang out some other time. Bao Jingyan pressed his hand gently: "What time is it now? Why is Uncle Hao in such a hurry to meet someone?" That person shook his head and had no choice but to sit down and continue the game. At six-thirty in the morning. Mu Jiu, used to ying, was already finding it hard to keep up. He looked at Bao Jingyan opposite him. What a sight, he still looked the same as when he arrived. Not a hair out of ce. So dashing! Mu Jiu thought to himself: What kind of abnormal stamina is this? He couldnt take it anymore, not to mention Mr. Hao. He admitted defeat. He said, "Alright Jingyan, Ill leave this person to you for now, but dont make it hard for me." Bao Jingyan smiled: "Dont worry, Uncle Hao." Mr. Hao stood up, patted his shoulder: "I have nothing to worry about with you handling matters." He was about to leave, then suddenly remembered something. He handed over a red envelope: "This is for your wife!" Bao Jingyan epted it on behalf of Su Ruanruan. ... He drove back to Bao Mansion, arriving at eight in the morning. Su Ruanruan was still asleep. Suddenly felt a coolness on his neck. She opened her eyes. Bao Jingyan leaned against the headboard and whispered, "Still sleeping in?" Su Ruanruan, close to him, naturally smelled the cigarette scent on him. There was no scent of perfume. She asked softly where he had gone. Bao Jingyan took off his coat and climbed straight into bed. Heined: "Im dead tired!" Su Ruanruan wanted to ask more, but he had already closed his eyes. She disliked the heavy cigarette smell on him, and he hadnt taken a shower. "Stop fussing!" he pulled her into his arms, reaching into his coat to pull out a red envelope for her: "This is from Director Hao." Su Ruanruan opened it and looked. She asked quietly: "Howe you were with him?" Bao Jingyan slightly opened his eyes. He casually recountedst nights events. Su Ruanruan was pleasantly surprised. Bao Jingyan retorted: "What else did you think I was doing, romancing and carousing?" Su Ruanruan didnt utter a sound. After a while, she nestled against his neck softly saying: "Should I thank you then?" He stroked her hair, his voice husky: "Even if you want to thank me, I have no strength left! Lets sleep for a while." Su Ruanruan obediently stayed with him. Bao Jingyan slept until noon. The refreshed man had vigor to spare, and it had been a long time for the two of them. He went at it twice. ... Bao Jingyan asked her to eat in the bedroom. Su Ruanruan, fearing ridicule, went downstairs with him after cleaning up. Upon descending, they encountered Bao Jingyuan. On seeing Su Ruanruan, Bao Jingyuan bristled. Bao Mingyuan sternly shouted: "Forgotten what you were supposed to say?" Bao Jingyuan was startled. She blurted out involuntarily: "Ruanruan, I didnt mean to harm you! Im sorry." Su Ruanruan intended to teach her a lesson. She said: "After dinner,e to my ce." Bao Jingyuans mouth opened and closed. Madam Bao wanted to speak but was afraid of her husband. Mother and daughter, bothpletely controlled. Bao Mingyuan felt very relieved. Having Ruanruan handle the women in the family really saved him a lot of trouble. ... After dinner. Su Ruanruan sat in the study reading. Bao Jingyuan brought a letter of repentance that Bao Mingyuan had her write. She looked very aggrieved. Su Ruanruan put down her book, calling her over. Bao Jingyuan pped the letter of repentance on the desk in front of her: "There, Ive apologized! From now on, youre not allowed to target me!" "Why would I target you? Isnt it you whos always been targeting me?" Su Ruanjuan retorted. Bao Jingyuan was at a loss for words. After a while, she argued illogically: "Thats because you stole my big brother and second brother." Su Ruanruan calmly responded: "So, the first day I came, you drugged me?" Chapter 419: Su Ruanruan Tames Bao Jingyuan

Chapter 419: Chapter 419: Su Ruanruan Tames Bao Jingyuan

Bao Jingyuan screamed, "So it was you who did it that day! You never had good intentions towards me!" "I have bad intentions? I could have tied you and Xia Minghan together in the woods yesterday and taken a few splendid photos." Su Ruanruan scared her. Bao Jingyuans face drained of color. She muttered, "You wouldnt do that! No matter what, I am still big brothers sister." Su Ruanruan sneered, "At least you know that!" Bao Jingyuan grew somewhat scared. She felt Su Ruanruan was capable of anything, and it would be too easy for her to harm her. After scaring her, Su Ruanruan then mixed threats with kindness. She epted the letter of repentance and took out a box from the drawer. Bao Jingyuan opened it to see. It was an incredibly expensive diamond ne. She breathed lightly, "Is this for me?" Su Ruanruan gave a hum of confirmation, "A New Years gift!" Bao Jingyuan couldnt put it down, trying it several times around her neck. She asked, "How did you know I wanted this?" Su Ruanruan took on the attitude of a sister-inw, "You did something wrong to me, and now youve taken my stuff, so you will have to listen to me in the future." Bao Jingyuan readily said, "Ill call you big sister-inw from now on." A great weight fell from her heart. She couldnt wait to show off. Downstairs, high-level executives from Emperor View hade to pay a New Year visit, and the Bao Family members were apanying them in conversation. Bao Jingyuan fluttered down like a butterfly. Her little face flushed with excitement and with that string of ne, she swaggered in front of her family. "Look, this is from Ruanruan." Madame Bao nearly fainted! Bao Mingyuan felt embarrassed by his youngest daughters foolishness, but at the same time, he was proud of Su Ruanruans shrewd tactics. He thought to himself, Jingyuan has been led astray by Qi Meiyu. From now on, let Ruanruan manage her more. Perhaps theres hope! ... Su Ruanruan only stayed at Bao Mansion for two days. She returned to the Gu Family on the second day of the New Year. On the fifth day, the Su Family asked her toe over for a meal. Su Ruanruan epted the invitation. She pondered: Its time to reel in the! Su Ruanruan took a festival gift and visited the Su Family. Auntie Sus eyes heated up at the sight. Su Qionglins anger red. Sacrificing a Xia Minghan did not bring down Su Ruanruan! And Xia Minghan had actually fled! He was like a ticking time bomb! Su Ruanruan observed her expression and smiled faintly, "What is big sister thinking about?" Su Qionglin, hand on her belly, pretended to be calm, "Im thinking about what to wear for the engagement banquet on the sixteenth! Ruanruan, can you give me some advice?" Su Ruanruan spoke softly, "Big sister has a good figure, everything looks good on you! And with a luxurious diamond ne, it would be even more perfect." She took out a box, "Big sister is marrying into a wealthy family, this is a small token of my heart." Auntie Su immediately opened it. The sparkling diamond ne dazzled her eyes. Auntie Su held it and eximed, "This must be worth tens of millions! Ruanruan, youve spent a fortune." Others in the Su Family also praised Su Ruanruan for her generosity. Only Su Qionglins face was deathly pale. That ne was the one she had pawned off. And now it was in Su Ruanruans hands! All her pride was trampled underfoot. Not a shred remained! Yet Su Ruanruan had a smile, "As long as big sister likes it." Su Qionglin clenched her teeth. She forced a smile, "When I and Jinhua get engaged, fourth sister must not be absent!" Su Ruanruan lowered her eyes. Sparks flickered within. She said very softly, "Whoever might be absent, I will not." After the meal, Su Ruanruan left the Su Family. She had an appointment in the afternoon. Song Wei had arrived in Jiangcheng and had asked her out for coffee. Su Ruanruan reached the hotel lobby and met Song Wei. Song Wei hade for business. She wanted to invest in a project of Bao Jingyans in City B. But Bao Jingse had not relented. Chapter 420: Her Big Brother, Truly a Romantic

Chapter 420: Chapter 420: Her Big Brother, Truly a Romantic

Song Wei sighed: "Bao Jingse is brilliant at doing business!" She wanted to get Su Ruanruan to help. And she brought out sincerity and benefits. Su Ruanruan took a sip of coffee and smiled lightly: "Sister Song Wei, Im not really in a position to deal with business matters about Bao Jingyan." Song Wei felt somewhat disappointed. Su Ruanruan ced her hand on the back of hers and spoke softly: "But I can point out a way for Sister Song Wei." Song Weis spirits lifted. Su Ruanruan said: "Uncle Bao is currently wanting to do business with Zhou Family, but both sidesck some trust! Sister Song Wei, you have a deep rtionship with Mrs. Zhou, why not start from there?" Song Wei suddenly realized. She praised: "Its good that you dont go into business, otherwise where would we get our food from?" Su Ruanruan smiled. After a while, she lowered her voice and murmured a few words. Song Weis flirtatious eyes shifted. It was indeed him! He actually came with Su Ruanruan! Song Wei gave face to Su Ruanruan, she stood up, fluffed her hair and said goodbye. Very charming. Su Ruanruan nodded lightly. After a moment, Song Wei left the coffee shop and entered the elevator. A tall and lean figure shed by... Su Ruanruan lowered her gaze and smiled faintly. Her elder brother, truly a man of love. She was ustomed to drinking half a cup of coffee, but unexpectedly an unwee guest arrived. Xia Minn. Xia Minn looked haggard, and even luxury clothes could not hide her weariness. She sat opposite Su Ruanruan. And reevaluated this young girl! Su Ruanruan asked indifferently: "Miss Xia, would you like something to drink?" "Im not here to have coffee with you!" Xia Minns tone was sharp: "I just want to ask you one question: Has this all been within your calctions from the beginning?" Su Ruanruan lowered her gaze and chuckled lightly: "I dont understand what Miss Xia means!" She was utterly calm. Xia Minn was furious: "You knew in advance that Minghan was going to harm you!" Su Ruanruan smiled: "I didnt know he was going to harm me, I knew you were going to harm me." Xia Minn had nothing to say. She was now in a miserable state. Xia Family couldnt amodate her anymore. She was expelled from the family, and her university position was also gone. She knew it was the work of the Bao Family. She asked Su Ruanruan: "Why cant you amodate me?" Upon hearing this, Su Ruanruan gently put down her cup. She looked at Xia Minn, her gaze sharp, unmatching her young age. She spoke softly: "Miss Xia is Ziqis girlfriend, but think about it... who are you most concerned about in the Bao Family?" Xia Minn turned pale. She didnt expect her little schemes to be seen through. She became angrily ashamed: "Do you think you will have good days in the Bao Family? You have stayed with Bao Ziqi, the Bao Family will care, with Mrs. Bao around, youll never truly be the mistress." She was unyielding. Su Ruanruan didnt want to waste more words. Just as she was about to stand up and leave, a butterfly flew over. Bao Jingyuan clung to Su Ruanruans arm, pouting discontentedly: "Su Ruanruan, you sneaked out again!" Su Ruanruan replied indifferently: "Didnt I ask you to stay at home and draw?" "I finished drawing!" Bao Jingyuan said coaxingly: "I was bored to death at home! Lets go shopping!" She then said: "Can youe to school with me when it starts? Ill introduce a boyfriend to you." Su Ruanruan said: "Arent you afraid your big brother will break your legs?" Bao Jingyuan shrieked and dragged her away! From beginning to end, she didnt even nce at Xia Minn. Xia Minn sat there. Her face was burning hot! As if she had been pped in the face! Meanwhile, Su Ruanruan was still thinking about Song Wei. Chapter 421: Advanced Age and Infertility

Chapter 421: Chapter 421: Advanced Age and Infertility

Song Wei and Su Ruanruan parted ways. She went straight back to the hotel suite. Su Minghua followed her all the way, stopping at the suite door. As Song Wei swiped the room card, he embraced her from behind. Su Minghuas voice trembled slightly: "Song Wei!" Song Weis body tensed. After a moment, she turned around in his arms. Without rejecting, she leaned against the door in that pose. She stretched out her slender fingers and gently traced the contours of Su Minghuas face, breathing out softly: "Youve lost quite a bit of weight." Su Minghua said nothing. The fire in his eyes! Song Wei looked him up and down. Intently. Few men could resist her in such moments, especially since Su Minghua himself had feelings for her. Unable to help himself, Su Minghua blurted out: "I havent been with any women these days! I was just thinking of you." Song Wei chuckled softly, tugging at his tie: "Werent you also missing your ex-wife? I heard you got quite drunk!" Su Minghua felt annoyed and somewhat humiliated. Song Wei knew when to stop. She swiped the door open while still in his arms and then, holding his hand, asked softly: "Wont youe in and sit?" Su Minghua couldnt believe it. Song Wei had already pulled him into the suite... Both being single, and especially since Su Minghua had been unupied for months. Everything fell naturally into ce. After the deed. Song Wei hurried him to leave, saying, "I have an appointment to discuss business in a little while." Su Minghua, holding her, asked hoarsely: "Are you still in the mood for business?" Song Wei scoffed coldly: "If I dont handle my business, am I supposed to wait for a man to support me? How many men can be relied upon?" She retorted: "Or are you saying that if I were with you, you could provide me a life of luxury?" Su Minghua couldnt. He was silent for a while, then began to dress. But he couldnt bear to leave her. Song Wei was straightforward. Wearing a ck robe, she leaned against the sofa smoking. She said she also enjoyed doing things with him and would seek him out when she came to Jiang City in the future. Su Minghua was deeply hurt. He challenged: "So Ive just be a kept man for you?" Song Weiughed coldly: "Su Minghua, do you have the looks to be a kept man? At your age, and you cant even father children." Su Minghuas face hardened. He buttoned up and was about to leave. Being infertile was his eternal pain! Grasping the doorknob, his body was once again embraced by Song Wei. "Really willing to leave?" Song Weis voice was soft and enticing: "Su Minghua, you know, many men wish to enter this door." Su Minghua was eventually angered: "Go find whoever you want!" "They cantpare to you!" Song Wei kissed his ear affectionately, murmuring softly: "Minghua, you were my first man! But our past was not pleasant, and now Im a person of status in City B, how can I just settle for any man? Wont that be aughingstock?" Su Minghua softened a bit. He asked her quietly: "Do you despise me for being ipetent?" Song Wei wrapped her arms around his waist. Her body pressed against his back. Soft and tender. "How you are is naturally fine by me, but others dont see it that way!" Song Wei encouraged him: "Minghua, show them what a man can achieve, let everyone know that Song Wei has good taste in men." Her maniption tortured Su Minghua immensely! He wanted to repay her with his body once again. Song Wei was not easily persuaded this time. She told him: "Ruanruan is verypetent, work well with her!" She revealed some insider information to him. Song Wei briefly mentioned Su Ruanruans assets in City B. Finally, she added: "With such a capable sister, are you still worried about not seeding? Work hard, then we might have a good future." Su Minghua still harbored some worries. He asked: "You... dont you want children?" Chapter 422: Yin Zhao Appears in Jiangcheng

Chapter 422: Chapter 422: Yin Zhao Appears in Jiangcheng

Song Wei giggled behind him: "I was just tricking you!" She said in a soft and seductive voice: "When we are together in the future..." She whispered something into his ear, and Su Minghuas blood boiled instantly. Song Wei straightened his clothes for him, then scolded yfully: "Now go to work properly, no cking off! And dont disturb me when Im doing business!" Su Minghua couldnt help but lower his head to kiss her. He said: "I will surely seed in my career, so that no one will look down on you." He left. Song Wei adjusted her clothes. She poured herself a ss of red wine and took out her phone to dial Su Ruanruans number. She said: "Off to work! Probably will be quiet for a while." ... A few dayster. Song Wei finally signed a contract with Bao Jingse. She thanked Su Ruanruan and invited her to her hotel for a chat. Su Ruanruan arrived as promised. Song Wei took out her gift. All of them were very valuable tonics. Su Ruanruan epted them, thinking they would be useful for Old Mother Mu and Qin Chaos sister. Song Wei was in a good mood and poured two sses of wine. Naturally, the conversation turned to Su Minghua. Su Ruanruan feared that Song Wei would be taken advantage of. Flipping her hair, Song Weiughed lightly, unconcerned: "What disadvantage? As long as he does his job well, Im happy." Su Ruanruans face flushed. After all, she had never truly been through it. Song Wei, experienced as she was, knew at a nce. She softly asked: "You and Bao Jingyan havent really done it yet?" Su Ruanruan gave a nonmittal hum. Song Wei then said: "Men at his age rarely have the patience! I dont believe he isnt interested." Song Wei added: "He cherishes you very much." Su Ruanruans face remained flushed until she left the suite. Thinking about every detail of her interactions with Bao Jingyan, she too felt that he was very good. Today was Valentines Day, and Su Ruanruan nned to finish her work and then pick up Bao Jingyan from work. At the entrance of the hotel was the busiest street in the city. Old Zhaos car was parked roadside. Su Ruanruan walked over, opened the door, and got into the car. ... On the other side of the street. Yin Zhao came out of a business club and was about to get into his car. He looked up. And was stunned. The girl who had captivated him three months ago in City B wasing out of the hotel. Her ck hair was soft. Delicate features, eyes brimming with emotion. She wore a light purple long dress. Delicate shoulders, a waist so slim... Her entire being radiated romance and beauty. Yin Zhao watched her get into a Rolls Royce. He wanted to chase after the car to see the license te. But there were too many cars, and the Rolls Royce quickly disappeared into the traffic... Yin Zhaos gaze was profound. So, she was from this city. He could tell from her demeanor in City B that she came from a very good family, and today he was even more certain. The unmarried Yin Zhao thought again about marriage. He wanted to find her. He thought she was of age and probably not yet settled down. Lost in thought, a gentle voice sounded behind him: "Yin Zhao, what are you looking at?" Yin Zhao turned around. A beautiful, noblewoman stood there. Yin Zhao smiled faintly: "Aunt Qin." The Yin Family patriarch, Yin Changhe, lost his wife early, leaving behind a son and a daughter. The son, Yin Zhao; the daughter, Yin Mingzhu. Qin Su was Yin Changhes new wife whom he married two years prior. Ever since marrying Qin Su, the United Hospital under Yin Family thrived, and thus the Yin Family valued her greatly. Qin Su held a cell phone in her hand, speaking gently to her stepson: "Theres been an incident at the hospital; your father wants you to rush back to City B to deal with it." Yin Zhao frowned. He wanted to find the girl from just now. But he had a strong sense of duty towards his career, and after careful consideration, he decided to head back to City B first. Seeing his expression, Qin Su thought he was preupied with other matters and said: "I will attend the engagement party with the Zhou Family. From the attitude of Mrs. Zhou, it doesnt seem she ces much importance on it." Yin Zhao nodded. He instructed his secretary to arrange a private jet and flew back to City B that same day. Chapter 423: Xia Minghan: I Sympathize with You, Fool

Chapter 423: Chapter 423: Xia Minghan: I Sympathize with You, Fool

Su Ruanruan and Song Wei said goodbye. She went to a club owned by Mu Jiu. Mu Jiu was already waiting for her, personally opening the car door for her. Su Ruanruan just got out of the car. Mu Jiuined: "You vanished before and after the new year, Ive been thinking about you just like an old mother chanting scriptures at home." Su Ruanruan then had Old Zhao bring out the tonics. Mu Jiu was quite pleased: "This nourishment! It shows you have a conscience." Su Ruanruan smiled lightly: "It was a gift from Sister Song Wei." Mu Jiu almost bit his own tongue off. He quickly changed the subject: "That kid inside curses the streets every day!" Su Ruanruan paused momentarily, then said, "A few days ago, I saw Xia Minn, she does not have a shred of sympathy for her cousin who became her scapegoat." Mu Jiu said coldly: "This woman, her heart is extremely venomous." Su Ruanruan smiled faintly, no longer speaking. The ce where Xia Minghan was detained was very concealed, and soundproofed well. No matter how loudly Xia Minghan shouted, nobody would hear him. Mu Jiu apanied Su Ruanruan inside. Seeing Su Ruanruan, Xia Minghans face contorted fiercely! But he had just gritted his teeth when Mu Jiu called out, "Hey, kid, havent suffered enough? Be good, or else Ill throw you into the sea to feed the fish!" Xia Minghan then calmed down. He curled up on the sofa, looking ruined. Gone was his previous debonair appearance. Mu Jiu turned on all the lights, and he shriveled further. Su Ruanruan sat in front of him, telling him: "Your cousin Xia Minn is going abroad, did you know?" Xia Minghan was taken aback. Su Ruanruan continued: "Shes been expelled by the Xia Family! No need for me to say why." Xia Minghan, full of youthful vigor, retorted hard: "It was my own choice, what does it have to do with my cousin?" Su Ruanruan smiled faintly. She asked him: "Then tell me, what deep-seated grudges do we have?" Xia Minghan could not say a word. After a while, he blurted out what Su Qionglin had told him. Su Ruanruan looked down, "It was my third sister who told you, right?" Xia Minghan shut his mouth. He had some feelings for Su Qionglin after all. Su Ruanruan saw it in his expression. She said: "Yourenguishing here, while shes about to marry into a wealthy family, dont you hate it?" Xia Minghan defiantly said: "It was just a brief fling, whats there to hate? Her marrying into the Zhou Family is her capability." He then suspiciously looked at Su Ruanruan: "Could it be that youre jealous?" Su Ruanruan sipped her tea, speaking softly: "I just pity this fool." Xia Minghan bristled immediately. He said: "I dont need your pity! At most Im just squatting for a few years, you dont need to sow discord here." Su Ruanruan set down her teacup. She ced a pregnancy test report in front of Xia Minghan. Xia Minghan looked at her doubtfully. Then he picked it up to read. Momentster, hisplexion turned pale. Su Ruanruan smiled lightly: "You see? The child in Su Qionglins belly could never be Zhous son, based on the timing the child is yours! Of course, unless that month Su Qionglin was with another man." Xia Minghan held the paper, muttering: "Impossible! I was with her throughout that month." He suddenly looked at Su Ruanruan. He didnt believe, he couldnt believe that Su Qionglin was so ruthless! Su Ruanruans gaze was merciful. Yet her words pierced like a dagger. "She carried your child and used you against me, killing two birds with one stone! From then on, her position was secure, Xia Minghan, you were merely a pawn in her hands!" Xia Minghan was shook to his core. Su Ruanruan elegantly stood up. She left a golden invitation on the coffee table. She said, "Saturday night at Yunjin Hotel! If you want toe, Brother Jiu will arrange everything." Chapter 424 Valentine鈥檚 Day! Su Qionglin Catches a Cheater

Chapter 424: Chapter 424 Valentines Day! Su Qionglin Catches a Cheater

After leaving, Mu Jiu worried: "Arent you afraid this kid might chicken out?" Su Ruanruans eyes twinkled with wisdom: "He wont! He has only one path to take!" Mu Jiu admired this girl immensely. He invited her to visit Old Madam Mu. Su Ruanruan said she would go tomorrow, exining that today was Valentines Day. Mu Jiu felt somewhat sour. He waved his hand: "Alright, go on your date!" Although saying that, he still gave her a big red envelope. Su Ruanruan got into the car. Old Zhao said: "Mu Jiu really dotes on you." Su Ruanruan smiled lightly: "Am I not good to Brother Jiu?" Old Zhao stepped on the gas, "Absolutely not! Miss Su is genuinely kind." Su Ruanruan asked Old Zhao to stop the car at a flower shop. She bought a bouquet to meet Bao Jingyan after work. The initial snow had melted. In the Di Jing lobby, employees wereing and going. Everyone saw Miss Su picking up little President Bao from work. Bao Jingyan took the private elevator down. As he approached her, he nced at the flowers in her hand: "Afraid I wouldnt buy them and lose face?" Su Ruanruan said: "These are for you." Bao Jingyan then lectured her: "What kind of girl buys flowers on Valentines Day to pick up a man from work?" Su Ruanruan took his hand. Bao Jingyan whispered lowly: "Ive made reservations! How about we spend the night out, hmm?" Su Ruanruan thought about what Song Wei said today. She was quite tempted. After getting in the car, Bao Jingyan buckled the seatbelt and turned his head: "What are you thinking about?" Su Ruanruan wouldnt say. Bao Jingyan leaned in and whispered: "Well try something new tonight, and you are not allowed to cry, okay?" Su Ruanruan shyly turned her face away. Her face was flushed with a charming red. Bao Jingyan gently scraped her cheek and started the car. He had reserved a spot in the citys highest revolving restaurant. It was French and very romantic. The desserts here were good, and Su Ruanruan ate a small piece. Bao Jingyan slowly savored the aperitif. From time to time, he spoke to her in a low voice. Su Ruanruan rarely dated him, and she felt very good. She was young, ten years his junior. But their conversation had no barriers and was very romantic. Right when the atmosphere was just right, Su Ruanruan spotted a familiar person in the corner. Young Master Zhou. He was flirting with a young model. Feeding each other, kissing. The young model nearly sat on hisp, her hands also restless. The scene was only missing a bed. Su Ruanruan watched for two more seconds, and Bao Jingyan looked over as well. He smiled faintly. Su Ruanruan then asked him: "Are you... jealous?" Bao Jingyan counter-asked: "Jealous of what? Jealous of him sleeping with different women every day?" Su Ruanruan blushed. She bowed her head and ate her dessert. Bao Jingyan suddenly held her hand and said softly: "I dont like exposing my secrets in front of strange women, nor do I like my most vulnerable self being seen by others. Su Ruanruan lightly hummed in agreement. Bao Jingyan scraped her little nose. He whispered: "Shall we watch a movie first, or go straight to the hotel?" Su Ruanruan bit her lip, "Lets go watch a movie!" This small wish of hers, Bao Jingyan was willing to fulfill. Ruanruan was only 19. She should have what others have in a rtionship. Bao Jingyan was just about to sign the bill to leave. Su Qionglin stormed in furiously to catch a cheater. She pped the young model, "Slut, Jinhua and I are getting engaged and youre still clinging to him." The young model instantly hid in young master Zhous arms. Young Master Zhou was very protective of women. He patted the young model, then raised his eyes to Su Qionglin and said: "Why the hysteria? If you want to go crazy, go home." Su Qionglin exploded. She threw her purse at Zhou Jinhua: "Zhou Jinhua, youre heartless! Im carrying your child and youre messing around outside!" Chapter 425 If You Don鈥檛 Want To, Get The Hell Out!

Chapter 425: Chapter 425 If You Dont Want To, Get The Hell Out!

Young Master Zhou was furious: "Are you sick, Su Qionglin? Just because I agreed to the engagement, did I promise not to have a girlfriend?" He left with a young model. The young model hid in his arms, showing a victorious smile. Only foolish women try to tie down a man with a child; men like Young Master Zhou can never truly be tied down. Its far more practical to seek happiness and jewels! Su Qionglin lost face. She made a scene like a shrew. Young Master Zhou became furious. He bluntly said: "If youre willing to get engaged, then lets do it. If not, get the hell out!" Su Qionglin was stunned. Young Master Zhou didnt care about her at all and went off to have fun with the young model. The people in the restaurant were all whispering and pointing. Su Qionglin said coldly: "Havent you ever seen a couple argue?" Out of the corner of her eye, she suddenly saw Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan gave a calm smile and nodded her head. However, Su Qionglin approached her. She spoke in a cold voice: "Su Ruanruan, do you think youre watching a joke unfold with me?" Su Ruanruan lightlyughed: "If elder sister thinks its a joke, then it is; if you dont care, then its really no big deal." Su Qionglin held her head up. She maintained her pride and dignity: "I dont love him, I just want the status of Mrs. Zhou!" Su Ruanruan gave a slight smile: "Youll need to secure that position firmly then." Su Qionglin red at her fiercely. She left abruptly. After she left, Su Ruanruan said to Bao Jingyan: "If you ever keep other women in the future, I wont continue this rtionship with you." Bao Jingyan didnt promise he wouldnt. He just agreed. Su Ruanruan smiled. Her smile was somewhat charming. ... Su Qionglin left the restaurant. She was in despair. She wasnt as carefree as she had appeared; she knew well how miserable a woman unloved by her husband could be. Zhou Jinhua didnt care about her pregnancy at all! All he cared about was the prestige of the Zhou Family. Out of revenge, Su Qionglin found a man to spend the night with. During Valentines Day fireworks, she and that man had a wild time... She came to a realization. There was no love between her and Young Master Zhou. So, she would just maintain the marriage. If Young Master Zhou yed around, so could she. After having a child, she nned to find a steady man to satisfy her own needs. Aftering to this conclusion, Su Qionglin felt much better. She went to Young Master Zhous apartment. In the apartment, there was another girl. Su Qionglin wasnt angry; instead, she was very considerate of his physical needs. Young Master Zhou asked the young actress to leave first, then sat on the couch with Su Qionglin. Holding her hand, he teased: "Howe youve be so sensible?" Su Qionglin leaned on his shoulder, softly saying: "Since Im pregnant and cant apany you, its okay for them to keep youpany! Once I give birth and get busy with my career, I wont mind others keeping youpany." Young Master Zhou chuckled softly. Like a shrewd man, he knew exactly what she was implying C they would both do as they pleased. Spending his money and finding other men outside! In his dreams! But he remained calm and didnt show his feelings. Su Qionglin then demanded: "Our engagement ceremony must be grand! At least grander than Ruanruans." Young Master Zhou agreed immediately. Su Qionglin happily nestled into his arms. Young Master Zhous gaze was indifferent. ... On the sixteenth of the first lunar month. A good day chosen by the Su Family. The Zhou Family booked Yunjin Hotel to hold the engagement banquet for their only son, Zhou Jinhua, and Su Qionglin. It was a grand affair. The Su Family was extremely pleased with themselves. At the Gu Mansion. Su Ruanruan and Lady Gu were preparing to leave. Lady Gu whispered: "The Su Family clearly wants to overshadow you." But Su Ruanruan remained unworried. She told her mother: "Ive asked Song Wei, and very few rtives and friends of the Zhou Family will attend! The Zhou Family probably hasnt truly epted this marriage yet." Lady Gu smiled: "Naturally, what proper family would easily approve of something so absurd?" Su Ruanruan smiled faintly. Half an hourter, a ck limousine stopped in front of Yunjin Hotel. The driver opened the door for them... Chapter 426: Engagement Banquet! Exposing the Truth 1

Chapter 426: Chapter 426: Engagement Banquet! Exposing the Truth 1

Yunjin Hotel, where celebrities gather like clouds. Su Ruanruan deliberately kept a low profile. d in a simple, yet elegant white suit, Embellished only with a sapphire around the neck, Yet it exuded a high-ss aura. She walked hand in hand with Mrs. Gu to the entrance of the banquet hall. Tonight, Su Qionglin was the epitome of ady of high society, Adorned with off-season haute couture and exquisite jewelry. She eyed Su Ruanruan and covered her mouth with a lightugh: "Ruanruan, how is it that youve be so modest after getting engaged?" Su Ruanruan smiled: "Tonight, third sister is the main character." Su Qionglins demeanor became even more restrained. Meanwhile, Young Master Zhou said to Mrs. Gu: "Auntie Gu, please take Ruanruan inside first." After people left, Young Master Zhou spoke to Su Qionglin: "Why bother making enemies?" Su Qionglin clung to his hand, acting coquettishly: "I rarely get the chance to best her!" Young Master Zhous expression remained faint. He pondered over Su Ruanruans appearance just before. He was quite smitten. She was different today. At that moment, Madam Zhou came to usher them inside, saying that the engagement banquet was about to officially start. Su Qionglin was taken aback. She asked: "Havent many rtives and friends from City B arrived yet?" Madam Zhou was rather cold towards her: "They will naturally see everyone when we get married." Su Qionglins spirits lifted again. She lifted her head and said to Young Master Zhou: "Lets have two weddings! One in City B and one in Jiangcheng, dont you think thats a good idea?" Young Master Zhou, with his hands stuffed in his pockets, smiled. Auntie Su from the Su Family came over. She was beaming with joy. Qionglins engagement dowry from the Zhou Family was 68.88 million. They gave enough to keep up the pomp. Inparison, Ruanruansst engagement was too hasty. A in ring, and it was settled. Su Qionglin whispered to her mother: "The daughter of the Gu Family is not worth much." Auntie Suughed reservedly. At this moment, the shbulbs went off. It was time for the official engagement... Su Qionglin, blushing coyly, walked slowly to the stage arm in arm with Su Yugu. Young Master Zhou was standing there. He was suave and handsome, with a family wealth of billions! Su Qionglin, holding her high status, suddenly made a request. She said: "I hope my youngest sister Ruanruan could y a piece for me personally. Getting engaged to Jinhua amidst the blessing of music would make me feel particrly happy." As soon as the request was made, Everyone at the venue was shocked! Su Ruanruan was the daughter of the Gu Family, and also the future daughter-inw of the Bao Family, How could she be asked to perform such a service? But Su Qionglin was audacious and fearless. Didnt the Bao Family want to do business with the Zhou Family? Whats the harm in ordering Su Ruanruan around just this once? Her malice was evident, and Young Master Zhou couldnt bear it anymore. He warned in a low voice, "Su Qionglin, youre going too far!" "Feeling sorry for her?" Su Qionglin toyed with her fingernails: "I insist she y the piano for me today!" Everyone thought Su Ruanruan would refuse. Madam Zhou was even more anxious! But Su Ruanruan was very agreeable. With a slight smile, she said: "Of course, I wish to bless my third sister." She gently voiced her blessings: "May this day recur year after year, may this moment return age after age." Having said this, she proceeded to the piano and sat down. Her hands fell upon the ck and white keys and she softly began to y the "Moonlight Sonata". The melody was soft and romantic, Perfectly fitting for a wedding. A round of apuse broke out at the scene. The aunt from the Su Family let out a sigh of relief. Originally, she had been worried that Su Ruanruan would be humiliated, yet this girl lowered herself toply. It seemed that the Bao Family had to consider the Zhou Familys wishes. Su Qionglins lips curled into a sneer Finally, she had Su Ruanruan underfoot. She linked arms with Su Yuhua and slowly walked towards the stage... Just as she was a step away from Young Master Zhou, a voice rang out from the entrance of the hall. "Wait a moment!" Su Qionglins body stiffened. She slowly turned around... Chapter 427: The Engagement Banquet! Revealing the Truth 2

Chapter 427: Chapter 427: The Engagement Banquet! Revealing the Truth 2

At the entrance to the banquet hall. Xia Minghan stood there in his evening attire. No one knew how he had gotten in! He walked straight towards Su Qionglin... The scene was quiet. Only the music of "Moonlight Sonata" yed on without pause. Su Qionglins face turned pale. She pointed at Xia Minghan and screamed at the security guards: "Get him out of here fast, hes a wanted criminal." The security guards were about to move. Young Master Zhou raised his hand. Su Qionglins face contorted, she grabbed Young Master Zhous hand: "Hes a dangerous man, Jinhua, quickly get rid of him." On the side, Su Ruanruan smiled faintly: "Maybe Mr. Xia is here to deliver an engagement present to the third sister!" Su Qionglin took a step back. She pointed at Su Ruanruan and shouted: "It was you, it was you who arranged this, wasnt it?" The "Moonlight Sonata" continued. Su Ruanruan looked down with drooping eyebrow and eyes, "Do you still like the big gift I sent you, third sister?" Su Qionglin was going mad. The Su Family members were all confused. The Su Family aunt was earnestly persuading: "Qionglin, hes just an irrelevant person, dont get so agitated! This is the golden grandson of the Zhou Family." A coldugh rang out. Xia Minghan raised a pregnancy test report in his hand. He said: "Su Qionglin, is the child in your belly truly Zhou Jinhuas seed?" Madame Zhou was bold and meticulous. She immediately snatched away the report. After calcting the dates, she scolded Su Qionglin with rage: "You dare to smear Jinhuas name by carrying someone elses child! The world has never seen someone as shameless as you." Su Qionglin denied it. She said vehemently: "The child in my belly is Jinhuas!" "Slut! You still want to deny it!" Xia Minghan sneered. A stack of provocative photos was thrown onto Su Qionglins face. The scene immediately became chaotic. Those photos were very explicit, each one featuring Su Qionglin and Xia Minghan. Su Yugu lost face greatly. He raised his hand and gave his daughter a p. Su Qionglin had tears all over her face. She clung to Young Master Zhous arm, begging: "Jinhua, I can abort the child! We can start over." Young Master Zhou threw off her hand. His tone was cold: "I have never loved you! How can we talk about starting over?" Xia Minghan was already standing in front of Su Qionglin. He gritted his teeth: "Ive had quite an experience with you! But all you wanted was my death!" Su Qionglin had no way out. She simply threw a tantrum: "Its all your own doing!" She chuckled lightly: "Arent you going to jail anyway? Will your end be any better than mine?" At that moment, several uniformed officers arrived. Xia Minghan did not struggle. He let the officers take control. Su Ruanruan stood up and walked over to Xia Minghan. He looked at her. He hadplex feelings towards Su Ruanruan. Because of her, he was going to jail, but she also brought him back to being a human. Su Ruanruan whispered softly: "If you cant find anything to do when you get out,e find me at Ninth Brothers club." Xia Minghans body shook. He was taken away. ... The scene quieted down. Madame Zhou spoke with a strong tone: "From now on, our Zhou Family has nothing to do with the Su Family!" After she spoke, the Zhou Family members all left. Su Qionglin crouched there crying. The elites anddies of the entire city whispered and pointed at her. Su Qionglin was utterly disgraced. She raised her eyes, and yelled at Su Ruanruan: "This is all your doing! Su Ruanruan, you wont have a good ending." Su Ruanruan looked down with a faint smile: "Perhaps third sister should be more concerned about uncle! Without the Zhou Familys protection, how long can unclest out there?" Su Yugu finally came back to his senses. It was this damn girl making all the troubles! Su Yugu, with his pride in the Su Familys foundation, was notpromising. He gave a coldugh: "The Su Family still has some assets, we wont be reduced to begging." He left with his wife and daughter... Only Su Minghua followed behind with a guilty conscience. Most of the Su Familys assets had already been squandered by him... Chapter 428: The Curtain Falls, the Su Family is Thoroughly Defeated

Chapter 428: Chapter 428: The Curtain Falls, the Su Family is Thoroughly Defeated

An engagement party came to a preposterous end. Su Ruanruan gently closed her eyes. She said to Mrs. Gu, "Lets go!" Mrs. Gu knew she was struggling internally and patted her hand. Arriving at the parking lot, Su Ruanruan was about to get into the car. A figure caught her eye from the corner of her vision. She saw a distinguisheddy. Her appearance and demeanor had an inexplicably familiar feeling. Following her gaze, Mrs. Gu said with a smile, "Thats Xu Xuan from the Yin Family of City B. I heard from Mrs. Zhou that shes highly regarded by the Yin Family and holds an extraordinary status." Su Ruanruan continued to stare intently. The distinguisheddy seemed to notice her gaze. She smiled at her in a friendly manner. Su Ruanruan forced a smile. ... Su Qionglin was utterly disgraced. She aborted the child the next day. Su Yugu was summoned once again. Su Qionglin, having just had a miscarriage, was forced to apany others. But when the businessmen learned of her miscarriage, they found it inauspicious. No one was willing to take over. Outside Tongsheng Hospital, a crowd of patients who had been victimized by Su Yugu in the past had gathered. They were holding banners, demanding justice. Su Yugu temporarily returned home. He dared not even leave the house. He said to his eldest son, "We cannot stay in Jiangcheng any longer! Sell the hospital shares, and this old house too. Lets move to a smaller city together." The aunt of the Su Family had an expression of profound misery. She asked her husband, "How did we end up in such a plight?" Su Yugu took a fierce drag on his cigarette. Just then, Su Qionglin came stomping down from upstairs. In her hands were two transaction statements. Trembling with anger, she said, "Dad, big brother has sold us out long ago! Su Ruanruan already owns thirty percent of Tongshengs shares, and this house has also been sold by him." Su Yugus hands shook as he took the statements. He stared at them for a long while before speaking shakily, "We have nothing left!" The aunt of the Su Family couldnt withstand the shock. Her eyes rolled back, and she copsed! Momentster, an ambnce came and took her away... Hospital. While the aunt of the Su Family was being resuscitated. Su Yugu furiously pped his eldest son several times, cursing at him: "You worthless thing! A woman has ruined you." Su Qionglin cried, "Hes now Su Ruanruanspdog." Su Yugu looked up. Suddenly, he said, "Call Ruanruan here! I have something to say to her." Su Minghua then made a phone call. He also asked Su Ruanruan to bring two bodyguards with her. Su Yugu, infuriated, pped him two more times... ... Su Ruanruan arrived half an hourter. She met with Su Yugu in a small reception room. Before Su Yugu could speak, Su Ruanruan ced a small medicine bottle on the coffee table. Su Yugus Adams apple bobbed fiercely. He sighed, "You knew all along." He picked up the bottle, gently caressing it. After a while, he said, "Back then, Peiming made a mistake, he felt so guilty he wanted to turn himself in! The old master and I forbade him, but he was determined to go!" His voice grew impassioned: "Once he went, the reputation of the Su Family would be destroyed. Who would dare to seek treatment from the Su Family?" Su Ruanruan had never heard about this. Su Yugu continued: "To stop him from spouting nonsense outside, the old master and I gave him this! He became delirious, and within a month, hemitted suicide." He was resentful. He said to Su Ruanruan, "Clearly, he was the one who made the mistake. Why should the Su Family suffer for him?" Su Ruanruan said softly, "He made a mistake, and thew should have punished him, not poisoned by his own family!" Su Yugu let out a bitterugh. He gently opened the bottle. There was one pill left inside. He shoved the pill into his mouth with haste. Su Ruanruan remained unmoved. Like a dog that had lost its home, Su Yugu begged miserably, "I only ask you to spare your aunt and Qionglin." Su Ruanruan looked down. After a moment, she said, "I can agree to that." Su Yugu closed his eyes... Chapter 429: Su Ruanruan鈥檚 Divine Tactics

Chapter 429: Chapter 429: Su Ruanruans Divine Tactics

The Su Family is ruined. Everyone in Jiangcheng knows it. Tongsheng Hospital is besieged by rtives of medical malpractice victims every day. Demanding an exnation. Su Minghua doesnt have the courage. All the shareholders, big and small, were moring to cash out. The meeting escted to heated arguments. Su Minghua was drenched in sweat. The meeting room door gently opened. Su Ruanruan walked in, followed by Qin Chao and awyer. Those shareholders despised her, yelling at her to get lost. Yet Su Minghua yielded his seat, respectfully saying, "Fourth Sister, please take a seat." Su Ruanruan gracefully sat down. Su Minghua personally poured her a cup of fragrant tea. This move puzzled the others. Su Ruanruan said to thewyer at her side, "List those who want to cash out, Ill buy their shares at a discount right away." Those people were shocked. Wow, such bold words. Even the Miss of the Gu Family couldnt swallow that much at once, right? Their shares were worth at least a few hundred million! Thewyer smiled, "Miss Sus ount bnce is 21 billion." Those people were astounded. Then, they hesitated. To cash out, or not? Su Minghua spoke up at the right moment, "Now, thergest shareholder of our hospital is Fourth Sister, who has more capital than everyone can imagine." Su Ruanruan looked at him approvingly. Su Minghua seemed more energized, "Once you cash out, dont expect to get back in." Those people mored. [The hospital is in such a mess now! We want an exnation.] [Yeah, theres so muchmotion outside.] [Our entire fortune is in this, Miss Su needs to be considerate of us all.] ... Su Ruanruan smiled slightly, "I understand everyones concerns!" She said to Qin Chao, "Tell those outside to send in two representatives, say I want to speak with them." Qin Chao nodded. He left. Hope rose in the shareholders. Miss Su personally handling it. The hospital still had a chance. After a short while, two middle-aged men arrived. inly dressed, with expressions of deep sorrow. They were quite agitated, listing the crimes of Su Yugu... Su Ruanruan listened patiently until they finished. Finally, she said, "I understand what youre after, but Tongsheng Hospital will not settle privately." The two representatives were furious, "Were already bankrupt from medical expenses, how could we afford to sue you? As expected, capitalists are heartless." The shareholders felt even more that Su Ruanruan was an inexperienced youngdy. In this situation, how could she provoke the families? But Su Ruanruan remained calm. She introduced thewyer by her side, "This is Attorney Chen, he leads a team of over 20wyers who will serve you and sue Tongsheng Hospital on your behalf for the next six months! How muchpensation and the specific amount will be decided by the court, what do you think?" The two representatives were astounded. They couldnt believe it... Tongsheng Hospital was actually paying for the patients to sue them? How is this possible? Su Ruanruan smiled gently, "Nothing is impossible! Please trust the new management of the hospital." She solemnly introduced Su Minghua, "Dean Su will be fully responsible for this matter from now on! If he doesnt do well, you can tell me." Su Minghua was stunned. Su Ruanruan softly said, "Ive said before I intend to make greater use of my elder brother." Su Minghua was filled with a sense of purpose. The two family members immediately went out to spread the good news... People said Miss Sus word is reliable. Back in the meeting room, Su Ruanruan called in the Director of Public Rtions. She instructed, "Make a big headline out of Tongsheng Hospital hiringwyers for the patients to sue us, let everyone in Jiangcheng know that Tongsheng is reforming and will continue to serve the public." Her strategy won over the shareholders. Apuse broke out. [Miss Su is decisive in her actions! Im convinced.] [Im not cashing out! I believe in Miss Su!] [Me neither...] Chapter 430: Ruanruan, I Want to Get Married

Chapter 430: Chapter 430: Ruanruan, I Want to Get Married

The PR incident at Tongsheng Hospital. Became a benchmark within the industry. Everyone was curious about the mastermind behind this PR campaign. Su Ruanruan was very low-key. She put Su Minghua in the front. She told him, "The future of Tongsheng is all in big brothers hands." Su Minghua was heavily career-oriented. He took out a list and said to Su Ruanruan, "A batch of doctors left the hospital, Ive drawn up about a dozen people, I have some connections with them. I want to invite them over!" Su Ruanruan agreed. She left a fund for him. When Su Ruanruan was about to leave, Su Minghua stopped her, "Fourth sister." Su Ruanruan turned around, "What is it, big brother?" Su Minghua walked up to her and said softly, "Dad has gone in, and he probably wont be out for twenty or thirty years! I packed upst night, ready to move out with mom and Qionglin." Su Ruanruan didnt try to keep him. She nodded, and only asked, "Is third sister still drinking every day?" Su Minghua gave a wry smile. Su Ruanruan believed that after this event, he would grow. She walked out the door. Walking down the corridor of Tongsheng Hospital, her feelings wereplex. Was this really the end? She always felt that everything was going too smoothly. Inside, it felt empty instead. ... She returned to Bao Jingyans vi. Auntie Li was making dumplings downstairs, and Su Ruanruan wanted to help. Auntie Li said with a smile, "The master is at home, just apany him, dont spend your days with an olddy like me." Su Ruanruan blushed a bit. She gracefully went upstairs. She found Bao Jingyan in the study. He stood behind the desk, holding something and looking at it. Su Ruanruan hugged him from behind and asked in a soft voice, "What are you looking at?" His body stiffened for a moment. Then, without any expression, he put the thing in his hand into the drawer. He turned around to look at her. His eyes were deep and inscrutable. Su Ruanruans heartbeat quickened under his gaze. She couldnt help but cover his hand, her voice raspy, "Whats wrong?" Bao Jingyan suddenly picked her up. She was ced on the desk. He kissed her earnestly... Su Ruanruan began to resist a bit, butter couldnt help but embrace him. She tilted her head back to kiss him. In the midst of their intimacy, Bao Jingyan pressed his forehead against hers. "Be mine, will you?" His Adams apple kept rolling, and his voice was hoarse. Su Ruanruans face was flushed, and her heart was pounding. Her voice trembling, she said, "Its almost time for dinner." Bao Jingyan kissed her again... In the dazedness, Auntie Li knocked on the door to say the dumplings were ready. Bao Jingyan calmed down. He took his time to regainposure against her soft neck. Su Ruanruan leaned onto him, her clothes disheveled, and spoke softly to the outside, "Well be down in a bit." At the door, Auntie Lis old face flushed. Su Ruanruan stroked Bao Jingyans face and asked him, "What happened?" Bao Jingyan stepped back. His face still bore a trace of emotion. He straightened her skirt for her. After a long while, he said in a hoarse voice, "I want to get married." Su Ruanruan embraced his waist and said softly, "Lets wait another year." Bao Jingyan gave a faint smile. Su Ruanruan always felt he was hiding something. Bao Jingyan suddenly said, "Ive applied for you, well leave for Britain in a couple of days." Su Ruanruan was stunned for a moment. Bao Jingyan teased her nose, "Dont you want to go to Britain?" Su Ruanruan blinked lightly, "Bao Jingyan, do you have a mistress?" "Do you want me to prove my innocence?" he asked in a low voice. Su Ruanruan hugged him and buried her face in his chest. In the end, they didnt get to eat the dumplings. Bao Mingyuan called them toe back for dinner. Bao Jingyan agreed. Sitting in the car, Su Ruanruan looked at him, "I thought you wouldnt want to go." Bao Jingyan drove and said softly, "It just so happens I have some things to attend to back there." Chapter 431: Bao Jingyan: You Harmed My Mother

Chapter 431: Chapter 431: Bao Jingyan: You Harmed My Mother

Bao Mingyuan had also heard about the incident at the hospital. During dinner, he couldnt stop praising Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan smiled lightly: "Its just a little trick!" Bao Mingyuan, feigning sternness, said: "How could an ordinary person think of such a method?" He was happy and asked the servants to open a bottle of red wine. After a few sses, Bao Mingyuan noticed his wife. He asked: "Why do you look so pale?" Qi Meiyu touched her face and managed a weak smile: "Really?" Bao Mingyuan felt he had recently neglected his wife. Back in the bedroom, he wanted to make love to her. Qi Meiyu wasnt in the mood, but she couldnt resist her husbands passionate advances... After it was over. Shey beside him, calling him: "Mingyuan." Bao Mingyuan was somewhat exhausted, "Hmm?" Qi Meiyu snuggled closer to him: "Would you forgive me if I did something wrong?" Bao Mingyuan, with his eyes closed, replied: "Depends on what it is!" Madam Baos face grew even paler. She was distracted all day long. Early the next morning, she called for her younger daughter. Bao Jingyuan had been in a great moodtely. She cuddled up to her mother, "Mom, what is it?" Madam Bao gently stroked her younger daughters hair, asking in a low voice: "Have you been getting close to Ruanruantely?" Bao Jingyuan looked up. Suspiciously she warned: "Mom, dont harm Ruanruan! She is my older brothers beloved." Madam Bao gave a bitter smile. She said: "Mom wont harm her! Not only that, but mom has something to tell you." Bao Jingyuan, relieved, became sweet again. Madam Bao whispered her instruction: "No matter what happens in the future, just follow Ruanruan, understand?" Bao Jingyuan was puzzled. Madam Bao had to make it clearer: "Only Ruanruan can protect you." Bao Jingyuan became happy; she told her mother all about her interactions with Su Ruanruan. With a hint of showing off! Madam Bao felt even more bitter inside. If only she could do it all over again, how wonderful that would be! But, fate was toying with her. Zhou Wan... hadnt died after all! She hade back for revenge! Two years ago, Ziqi fell off a cliff, and Su Ruanruan came to guard the Bao Family home. It was all a trap. That woman used Su Ruanruans hands to eliminate the Su Family, and now she wasing for her life! At that moment, Madam Bao received a phone call. Her entire body felt cold. ... Cemetery. Bao Jingyan stood in front of Sun Weilians grave. Madam Bao stumbled over. With a trembling voice, she called out: "Jingyan!" Bao Jingyan turned around, his expression frosty. He lifted a paper bag in his hand, speaking softly: "Inside this is my mothers medical records from when she was alive! As well as the details of the deal you made with Su Peiming back then." Qi Meiyu desperately shook her head. Bao Jingyans tone was cold: "If Im not mistaken... back then, you knew Zhou Wan stole a child, you got a hold of Su Peimings weakness, and you threatened him to harm a person for you without anyone noticing! Su Peiming deeply loved his wife, so he did it for you, but his conscience tormented him and he wanted to turn himself in, yet was killed by Su Yugu and his son." He spoke even colder: "You caused my mothers death." Qi Meiyu could not deny it. She knelt down to beg him: "Jingyan, forgive me just this once! For your fathers sake, considering Ziqi and Jingyuan both see you as an older brother..." Tears streaming down her face: "Also consider Ruanruan... Her father was involved, do you really want the world to know that the father who raised her killed your mother? How will Ruanruan manage in the Bao Family, how will the Sun Family look at her?" She clutched Bao Jingyans legs: "Jingyan... the family is doing so well right now, Ziqi no longerpetes with you for Ruanruan, Jingyuan likes Ruanruan so much, think of it as sparing a dog, please?" Bao Jingyan asked her: "Zhou Wan isnt dead, is she?" Chapter 432: Ruanruan, I鈥檓 taking you to Britain now

Chapter 432: Chapter 432: Ruanruan, Im taking you to Britain now

Qi Meiyu was stunned. Momentster, she murmured as if possessed by a nightmare, "She didnt die! She has always been around us." She clung to a lifeline, "We must find her! We destroy all the evidence, and then no one will ever know this secret. Jingyan, cant we just live together as a family, please?" Bao Jingyan kicked her away. Mrs. Bao curled up on the ground, no longer in the guise of a noblewoman... Her voice trembling, she spoke of atoning for her sins. But Bao Jingyan knew she was useless. Zhou Wan had changed her identity; there was no starting point for investigation! He said softly, "I give you three days! Think about Ziqi and Jingyuan, and you should know what to do." Mrs. Baos face turned pale. Bao Jingyan was suggesting shemit suicide. It was all... to protect Su Ruanruan. Mrs. Baoughed hysterically, "Whats the point? If that person can give you the goods, couldnt she also give them to the Sun Family or Jingse?" As she spoke, footsteps echoed nearby. Bao Jingse stepped forward, appearing in the cemetery. Mrs. Bao shivered. Bao Jingses voice trembled, "It was you, who killed my mother." She then questioned Bao Jingyan, "Big brother, are you going to let her go? Do you think she will end herself?" Bao Jingyan retorted, "Otherwise what? Announce it to the world? How would Ziqi and Jingyuan hold up afterward?" Bao Jingseughed coldly, "Ziqi and Jingyuan? Big brother, isnt the one you really want to protect Su Ruanruan? Her father, Su Peiming killed our mother, and you still want to marry her?" She spoke deliberately, "Grandmother and the two uncles would never allow it." Bao Jingyan spoke softly, "Jingse, the whole world can disagree, but you... have the least right to object!" Bao Jingse smiled through tears, "Consider it a debt I owe her." Bao Jingyan narrowed his eyes, "What have you done?" Bao Jingse faced the gravestone, quietly said, "Grandmother already knows! The two uncles are also rushing to Jiang City." Her voice was very soft, "Brother, are you going to oppose the whole family for Su Ruanruan?" A pnded on her face. Bao Jingyans face was pale. He asked her, "What fault does Ruanruan have?" Bao Jingse couldnt answer. Bao Jingyan took a step back, his voice cold, "Bao Jingse, dont call me big brother anymore." He then ignored her and Mrs. Bao, leaving the cemetery quickly. Getting into the car, he made a call to Xiao Ran, "Arrange a private jet to fly directly to Britain." Xiao Ran was surprised. Bao Jingyan simply said, "Im sending Ruanruan away." Xiao Ran sensed a brewing storm. ... Bao Jingyan drove at breakneck speed. A one-hour journey, hepleted in half an hour to the vi. Getting out of the car, his legs felt somewhat weak. Su Ruanruan, dressed in a gardeners attire, was trimming thewn in the yard. Bao Jingyan walked over and dragged her upstairs. Su Ruanruan was startled. She could hardly keep up with his pace, "Bao Jingyan, whats wrong?" He directly took her to the bedroom. He asked her to change clothes, while he packed her luggage. A 20-inch carry-on suitcase. Very rushed. Su Ruanruan sensed that something big was happening. They usually shared everything, but at this moment, looking at his face She dared not ask a single question. She obediently changed her clothes. Bao Jingyan took her documents, carrying the suitcase downstairs. On the way to the airport, he told her, "Qin Chao, Old Zhao, and Aunt Li will join youter." Su Ruanruan grew even more uneasy. This setup didnt seem like she was going to study abroad. Rather, it seemed like... moving house... Chapter 433: Jingyan, You Can鈥檛 Escape

Chapter 433: Chapter 433: Jingyan, You Cant Escape

Su Ruanruan curled up in the passenger seat, her little face pallid. Bao Jingyan took her small hand. At the red light, he kissed it gently. Su Ruanruan called out to him with a trembling voice: "Bao Jingyan." "I love you, Ruanruan," he said, looking into her eyes, "Do you want to be with me?" "Yes." "Even in death, we wont part?" Her eyes were moist. She agreed. She said she would never leave Bao Jingyan. Bao Jingyan did not speak again. Hisplexion had slightly improved. An hourter, he parked the car in the parking lot. He said to her, "You go ahead by yourself! Ille over after dealing with some matters." Su Ruanruan did not ask; she obediently listened to him. Bao Jingyan couldnt bear to part with her. He felt so heartbroken. Resting his forehead against hers, he murmured, "My Ruanruan is so good." Su Ruanruan did not speak. She just gently held his middle finger... Bao Jingyans voice was hoarse: "Remember what you said, that even in death, we wont part." She hummed in response. She said: "Bao Jingyan, Im going to board the ne now." He let go of her, got out of the car, and took her luggage. Xiao Ran was waiting for them in the VIP lounge. She handed the boarding pass to Su Ruanruan and said softly, "President Bao will arrange everything." Su Ruanruan clutched the thin card tightly. She looked up at Bao Jingyan. Her gaze lingered with longing. In a soft voice, she said, "Im leaving, Bao Jingyan." He did not make a sound, only gazing at her intently. Su Ruanruan looked down, thinking of turning away... Suddenly, Bao Jingyan pulled her into his embrace. His body was burning hot as he held her with all his strength. Su Ruanruans body ached as if her bones were being crushed by him. But she did not utter a sound. She cried... out of fear. ... Slowly, a crowd gathered around. Sun Jingan approached them. His gaze was particrlyplex: "Jingyan, the olddy is in shock, she wants to see you!" Bao Jingyans Adams apple bobbed: "Ill return with you." Sun Jingan slightly lifted his hand: "Miss Su cannot leave Jiangcheng either." Bao Jingyan was almost ready tosh out. Sun Jingans tone cooled: "The olddys life is hanging by a thread, think about the consequences, Jingyan!" Bao Jingyan calmed down. He gently touched Su Ruanruans hair and said softly, "Let Xiao Ran take you home! Ille back after Im done, be good." Su Ruanruan stood there. She watched him hurriedly leave with Sun Jingyu. Although she didnt know the whole truth, she guessed... it had something to do with Bao Jingyans mother, Sun Weilian. Her phone rang. It was a call from Bao Jingse. Su Ruanruan gently answered. After about two minutes... the phone slipped from her fingertips. Shattered on the ground. Xiao Ran asked her worriedly, but she said nothing. Until she was seated in the car, Xiao Ran asked where they were going. Su Ruanruan absent-mindedly said: "To Bao Jingyans vi. I will wait for him there." Xiao Ran held her hand. Su Ruanruan returned to the vi. Aunt Li was worried, but Su Ruanruan said nothing. She sat alone in the bedroom waiting. She knew she was the most selfish person in the world, but she did not want to give up on Bao Jingyan. He... he didnt want to give up on her either. She had promised him, even in death they would not part. Su Ruanruan waited in the vi for three days and three nights. She ate very little, she was totally anxious. Because she could do nothing, and she could not share his burden. All she could do was wait, wait for him toe back. She imagined countless times that he woulde back and embrace her... He might be in a bad mood, but he would say in a muffled voice: "Ruanruan, I will send you to Britain." She was willing to go to Britain, willing to go for a month or even a year. Just to see him once. He had said, she was young, and they could wait for each other. Su Ruanruan closed her eyes, with tears at the corners... Chapter 434: Slap! Jingyan, You Are Not Calm Enough Now

Chapter 434: Chapter 434: p! Jingyan, You Are Not Calm Enough Now

Jiangcheng First Hospital. VIP ward. Madam Suns life hangs by a thread, and surgery is urgently needed. Yet she refuses food and drink, gritting her teeth and waiting for Bao Jingyan topromise. Bao Jingyan respects Madam Sun immensely, but its been three days He hasnt budged at all. The atmosphere inside the ward is oppressively tense. Bao Jingyan looks much thinner. Hes still wearing the same clothes he had on three days ago. He urges Madam Sun to have the surgery: "Ruanruan and I cannot be separated. You should cherish your own life." Madam Sun is on herst breath. Disappointed, she closes her eyes. The doctores in to check. He says to Sun Jingan, "Mr. Sun, we cant dy any longer with Madams condition." Sun Jingans expression is solemn. He says to Bao Jingyan, "Come with me!" Bao Jingyan follows him to the adjacent empty ward. Sun Jingan is a revered figure, rarely losing his temper. But now he cant contain his anger, giving his most respected nephew a p. He points at Bao Jingyans nose and scolds: "I know what you are thinking! Yes, the old issues have nothing to do with Su Ruanruan. She is even a victim! But think about how much the olddy loves your mother, and how much shes suffered these years? This isnt something that can be resolved by merely being righteous." He adds coldly: "I see youre not calm enough, let me remind you! Jingyan, if the olddy doesnt make it this time, you and Su Ruanruan truly wont stand a chance! Think about it carefully." Having said that, Sun Jingan leaves. He is now extremely irritable. Bao Jingyan stays alone for a while! He takes out his phone and calls Su Ruanruan. Her voice is very soft, she doesnt ask when hesing back. She only says, shes fine. Bao Jingyan responds gently: "Ruanruan is the best." Then he hangs up. Just as he leaves, he sees Bao Mingyuan arriving with the olddy. Behind them follow Mr. and Mrs. Gu Yuanpei. Bao Mingyuan sees his eldest son. He pats his shoulder, his voice hoarse: "Ill go see the olddy." But Madam Sun refuses to see him. Sun Jingyues out to ry the message. He says: "Madam doesnt want to see anyone right now! Mingyuan, please leave!" The elder Mrs. Bao raises her voice, "Old Sun, you wont even see me?" Sun Jingyu is in a difficult position: "Shes truly heartbroken this time! No one can persuade her." He nces at Bao Jingyan with a look of reproof. At this moment, no one feels worse than Bao Mingyuan. His third son conspired against his wife, and yet he married the third sons mother and had children with her. Now, because of such matters, Jingyans marriage is in jeopardy. Bao Mingyuan is the top tycoon in Jiangcheng. A man always determined to seed. But at this moment, hes just an ordinary father. He makes a call to Auntie Li. Auntie Li says that Ruanruan is locked at home, having lost a lot of weight. And his Jingyan, due to his fault, has be a criminal in the Sun Family. Bao Mingyuan sets aside all his pride. Madam Sun wont see him. He kneels outside her ward door. "Mom, its Mingyuan who has erred! Please give the children a way out!" "If you dont want to see that child in the future, then dont! I beg you to have the surgery!" ... Inside, there isnt a sound. Madam Sun does not respond to him. Bao Mingyuan remains kneeling, he even ps himself several times. His family is torn apart. His wife has fled due to her crimes. Ziqi keeps silent, Jingyuan is in constant terror. His Jingyan is in tremendous pain. This family, needs Ruanruan... The voice of Bao Mingyuan reaches into the ward. Madam Sun opens her eyes wide, listening. She is unwilling. She hates... how could Weilian endow such a person! She would rather die than amodate. Chapter 435: You鈥檙e After Jingyan鈥檚 Life!

Chapter 435: Chapter 435: Youre After Jingyans Life!

The day was beginning to break. Another exhausting night. Bao Mingyuan had knelt for the whole night. In the corridor of the VIP ward, a faint sound of footsteps was heard. It was Su Ruanruan. Old Zhao followed behind her, incessantly saying: "Miss Su, please go back first!" Su Ruanruan gently shook off his hand. She held her breath, watching Bao Mingyuan. He knelt there. From the tips of his hair, grey strands were faintly visible. She then looked at her own parents. They had stood the whole night, their faces weary. Su Ruanruan felt a dull pain in her heart. Her lips moved slightly, as if she wanted to say something... Bao Jingyan suddenly grabbed her hand, his tone strict: "Why are you here?" He raised his voice, asking Old Zhao to take her back. But Su Ruanruan broke free from his grip. Bao Jingyan grasped her shoulder again, staring into her eyes: "I will not give up." "But I cant," Su Ruanruan gently shook her head. Sobbing, she said: "Bao Jingyan, I can follow you without self-respect, but I cant let everyone around me live without any dignity!" "Do you want to break up?" His voice turned cold. Su Ruanruan didnt respond. Her pale fingers clenched tightly onto his sleeve. Gripping, then releasing... Finally, they gently slid off. She drooped her shoulders and said softly: "Bao Jingyan, let go, please! Persisting like this wont lead to happiness." Bao Jingyan stared at her deathly. But he, he couldnt me her. Nor could he hold on... Sun Jingans words took effect: the olddy was gone, he and Ruanruan had no possibility! Su Ruanruan helped Bao Mingyuan up. She whispered an apology. Bao Mingyuan, who had been a business tycoon for decades, now shed tears. He gently patted his child, murmuring: "Its uncles failure to protect you!" Su Ruanruan shook her head. She closed her eyes tightly and resolutely pushed open the door. Madame Suny there. Sun Jingan, Sun Jingyu, and their wives were attending her. Su Ruanruan entered. They were not surprised. Sun Jingan nced at her a few times. Su Ruanruans nose was red and the corners of her eyes were moist. Clearly, she had been crying! Sun Jingan told the olddy: "The child from the Gu family hase." Madame Sun did not open her eyes. Su Ruanruan said: "Let the olddy conserve her energy! Ill leave after I finish speaking." Sun Jingan nodded: "Thatll do." Su Ruanruan slowly walked to the olddys bedside and gently knelt down. She said to the olddy: "For my fathers sins, I apologize to you on his behalf." She kowtowed. Sun Jingan and Sun Jingyu, the couple, were somewhat moved... This child maintains her dignity so well even at this moment! After a long time, Su Ruanruan raised her eyes. Her expression was not as lively as before, now she was indifferent. She said: "Olddy, rest assured! From today onwards, I and Bao Jingyan will breakup." She gritted her teeth: "In a week, I will go to Britain to study! Unless its something special, I will not return to Jiangcheng." Madame Suns eyes moved slightly. Sun Jingan nced at Su Ruanruan. He told the olddy: "I will keep an eye on it, the olddy should put her mind at ease." Madame Sun sighed very lightly. Sun Jingan then knew she had consented. His look towards Su Ruanruan was even moreplex. This child loved Jingyan so deeply. Loved to the extent of... making a decision for Jingyan. He had always favored Su Ruanruan, feeling very sorry at this moment. He said: "Youre a youngdy, let the Gu family announce the cancetion of the engagement." Su Ruanruan smiled faintly: "Thank you, Mr. Sun." That "Mr. Sun" stung Sun Jingan. Su Ruanruan calmly said: "Previously calling you uncle was my ignorance, but now I must thank Mr. Sun for your mercy." Sun Jingan felt very uneasy inside. But he could not find anyforting words. When Su Ruanruan pushed the door to leave, Sun Jingans wife covered her face and cried. She said, "Youre demanding Jingyans life!" Chapter 436: Bao Jingyan, Don鈥檛 See Me Off! I鈥檓 Afraid I Can鈥檛 Bear to Let Go

Chapter 436: Chapter 436: Bao Jingyan, Dont See Me Off! Im Afraid I Cant Bear to Let Go

Su Ruanruan walked out. Her legs were weak, and she could hardly stand. Bao Jingyan wanted to escort her. She refused, propping herself up against the wall. Her gaze lowered, falling onto the buttons of his shirt. Su Ruanruan whispered, "Madam Sun is undergoing surgery soon, you stay with her!" Bao Jingyan frowned, wanting to reach out and touch her. "Dont," Su Ruanruan choked: "Ill leave by myself." She said, "Bao Jingyan, dont see me out... Im afraid I wont be able to let go." Her hand, slowly moved from the wall to his shoulder. Then to his face. She gently traced the contours of his features, as if to etch them into her heart. Bao Jingyan forcefully grasped her hand. He refused to let go. Su Ruanruan shook her head and softly said, "Ill go to Britain in a week, donte looking for me." She took out a high-speed train ticket from her pocket. From Jiangcheng to City B. She said, "Theres a very suspicious old servant at the Su Residence! When Jiuge found her, she had already died, leaving only this!" She added, "Zhou Wan, in City B." She lifted her head, nced at him. It was a tacit understanding only between them. [Take care of everything] ... Su Ruanruan left. Bao Jingyan punched the wall forcefully. Blood sttered. But he felt nothing. Bao Jingse came out of the ward, stunned for a moment: "Big Brother." She wanted to inspect his wound. But Bao Jingyan coldly pushed her away. He said, "I dont have a sister like you." Bao Jingse stood there, petrified... ... Su Ruanruan returned to the vi. Auntie Li was very worried about her. Su Ruanruan softly said, "Thank you for your care during this time, Auntie Li." Those words signaled a departure! Auntie Li wiped her tears and said, "Does Miss Su have any other instructions?" Su Ruanruan shook her head but after thinking, she said, "I want to be alone for a while!" After speaking, she slowly went upstairs. She entered the master bedroom and drew the curtains. The bedroom was pitch-ck. She locked herself in there, lying on the couch... On the pillow, there was still a hint of Bao Jingyans tobo scent. Su Ruanruan gently pressed against it. Reluctantly, she caressed everything... Later, she fell asleep. When she woke up, her face was wet with cold tears. She thought she had slept for a long time, but it had only been a quarter of an hour... She began to pack her things. A small suitcase was all she took. All the jewelry, she left it all behind. The pink diamond, lying on top of the passbook Bao Jingyan had given her. Su Ruanruan carried the suitcase downstairs. Downstairs, Gu Ze was talking to Auntie Li, hearing footsteps. He looked up and stretched out his arms towards Su Ruanruan. He said, "Ruanruan, your brother is still here." ... A dayter. The Gu Family held a press conference, announcing the termination of the marriage arrangement between the Bao and Gu families! Gu Familys daughter Su Ruanruan, would go to Britain to study in a week. Once the press conference was released. Jiangcheng was in an uproar. Everyone thought that the Bao and Gu families had fallen out. Su Ruanruan would no longer pull herself together. Otherwise, she would not have traveled so far to another country. The rumor mills spun wildly... Someone was manipting things behind the scenes. In an old apartment. Cans and beer bottles scattered everywhere. Aplete mess. Su Qionglin drank, sneering coldly: "Su Ruanruan, how does it feel to be abandoned by a man? Kicked out by the Bao Family, no wealthy family will want you again!" Sheughed through tears. She said, "In the end, the fate of us sisters is the same!" ... The Gu Family suppressed the rumors again and again. Gu Yuanpei returned from thepany. As soon as he set down his briefcase, he asked his wife, "Wheres Ruanruan?" Mrs. Gu sighed, "In her room, she hasnt reallye out all day." Gu Yuanpei embraced her shoulder, gently saying, "You also need to be strong! Otherwise, how can youfort our child?" While the couple was whispering, the Housekeeper reported, "Sir, Madam, someone from City B has arrived." Chapter 437: So Charming! Su Ruanruan is Still the Top Socialite

Chapter 437: Chapter 437: So Charming! Su Ruanruan is Still the Top Socialite

B City? Gu Yuanpei and his wife exchanged a nce. The housekeeper spoke with some difort, "Theyvee looking for the young miss and have made quite a big show of it." The Gu Familys main gate was wide open, ready to wee the distinguished guests. A line of ck Rolls-Royce Phantoms entered the Gu Mansion one after another. The Madame Gu silently counted. There were as many as 18 cars. Who could it be, to put on such a show? At this time, someone alighted from the leading car. It turned out to be Madam Zhou. Madam Zhou hade with her son to propose marriage! This time, the young master of the Zhou Family hade with sincerity. Regardless of sess or failure, he had cleared away all the other women around him. He was different today than usual. Polite and proper. A true young talent. The Gu couple was shocked; this was too abrupt. But Madam Zhou did not find it abrupt at all; instead, she felt that her timing was perfect. She had taken an early liking to Su Ruanruan, butmented that the girl was already spoken for. Now that the Bao and Gu families had dissolved their engagement, Jinhua saw an opportunity. Madam Zhou, with a spring in her step, directed the servants to carry in gifts. The Gu couple felt it sudden, but they couldnt refuse to host those who hade from afar. The host and guests proceeded into the hall together. They brewed some fine tea. Madam Zhou took a sip of tea. She cut straight to the point: "I heard that Ruanruan is going to Britain, and Jinhua will also be expanding his business in Britain next year, so they could keep each otherpany. I wonder if Mr. and Mrs. Gu are considering this?" The Young Master Zhous yboy reputation was known throughout the city. Even if he turned over a new leaf and treated Ruanruan well, it would still be unfair to her. Gu Yuanpei lightly tapped on the tea cup, tactfully declining. He said, "The child is in a bad mood, its too soon to discuss these things." Madam Zhou knew what was going on. This meant refusal. But she was not angry. She had known the oue before she came; this visit was just about registering her sons interest in advance. Su Ruanruan was still young. After this incident, shed probably avoid rtionships for two or three years. Jinhua would just make his feelings known for now. Afterwards, he would be able to linger around Ruanruan with legitimacy. Madam Zhou sipped her tea smilingly. Just as she was about to ask Su Ruanruan toe down and alleviate her sons longing, the housekeeper came to report again. "Mr. Bao has arrived." Gu Yuanpei frowned: "Which Mr. Bao?" The housekeeper said: "Bao Mingyuan, Mr. Bao." Madame Gu asked gently, "What is he here for?" As her words fell, Bao Mingyuan had already walked in. He spoke to Madame Gu, "Ivee to see Ruanruan." At the same time, he shot a nce at Madam Zhou! Heh, that was swift action! Bao Mingyuan pretended not to know, and asked Madame Gu to call Su Ruanruan down. Madame Gu exchanged a look with her husband. Under these circumstances, it was better not to have Ruanruan appear! Bao Mingyuan did not insist. After sitting for a while, he left, only leaving behind a share transfer agreement. Ten percent of the shares of Di Jing. He had transferred them to Su Ruanruan. He told Mr. and Mrs. Gu, "Ruanruan is my child now! She shoulde back home and visit when she has the time." After Bao Mingyuan left, the atmosphere was somewhat delicate. Madam Zhou put down her teacup. She smiled slightly: "I didnt expect Ruanruan to be so sought after! Mrs. Gu, our Zhou Family is sincere too. If Ruanruan ends up with Jinhua, she will be in charge in the future." The Gu couple looked at each other. Just as they were thinking about how to refuse, Su Ruanruan started descending the staircase gracefully. She had lost a lot of weight. Looking even more heartbreakingly beautiful. The young master of the Zhou Family longed for her greatly. He stood up involuntarily: "Ruanruan." Madam Zhou, seeing her son about to express his feelings, quickly stopped him. She was like any ordinary elder, holding Su Ruanruans hand and saying, "Auntie was passing by Jiangcheng, and came to see you with Jinhua. If you have any troubles in the future, you can turn to Jinhua." She took a sip of tea, her face full of joy, "Jinhua may be unruly, but he does have some capabilities." Chapter 438: The One She Can鈥檛 Bear to Leave is Still Bao Jingyan

Chapter 438: Chapter 438: The One She Cant Bear to Leave is Still Bao Jingyan

Mrs. Gu felt a surge of apprehension. Mrs. Zhou was incredibly cunning. Such tactics made it almost impossible to refuse... Yet Su Ruanruan remained indifferent. She had no interest in Zhous son, so the oue of any interaction would be the same. The hosts and the main guests sat together for a while and talked about Su Ruanruans uing trip to Britain. Mrs. Gu felt somewhat sad. Her daughter had just been acknowledged... Gu Yuanpei suggested, "Why dont we just throw a farewell party? Let the younger generation have some fun." Su Ruanruan did not refuse. This time she would be gone for five years; there were quite a few people she needed to say goodbye to. ... The night before Su Ruanruan left for Britain. She invited those she wanted to bid farewell to. The location was at Mu Jius club. The news spread quickly. When Su Ruanruans car arrived at the parking lot, there were already many reporters waiting there. This was the first appearance of the Gu heiress after her heartbreak. The reporters were all waiting to take photos for the headlines. The ck limousine slowly pulled up, and the Gu family driver opened the door for Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan got out of the car. Her face was pale. Her features were exquisite. She wore a light-colored long dress. The evening breeze lifted it, making her appear like a fairy. ... The photos were posted online, instantly bing a hot topic in River City. Netizens immediately began to discuss. [I bet several packs of spicy strips! It must be Su Ruanruan who initiated the breakup!] [If I were Bao Jingyan, Id be kneeling on eggs tonight.] [I dont believe they would break up...] ... At this point, an "anonymous source" released information. [The Zhou family from City B has approached the Gu family with a marriage proposal!] [Insider information! Authentic! Su Ruanruan still holds an important position in the Bao family.] [The goddess is very much in demand!] ... Su Ruanruan entered the club with the escort of her bodyguards. Rather than a farewell party, it seemed she had matters to instruct. Mu Jiu, Su Minghua... she couldnt stop worrying about them. She gave thorough instructions. Mu Jiu was reluctant to part with her. Su Ruanruan smiled: "Mu Jiu, if you have time,e visit me in Britain." She also said to Su Minghua, "Manage the hospital well; you are the Su familys only hope now." Su Minghua nodded. He said, "Little sister, Ill be waiting for your return." Su Ruanruan embraced them. Gu Jiarou was particrly upset. But she didnt utter a word ofint. They had arranged in advance. Tonight, they wanted Ruanruan to be happy. Su Ruanruan drank some wine. The light was dim. She leaned on Mu Jius shoulder, appearing to be drunk. But only Mu Jiu knew. Su Ruanruan was crying. What she truly couldnt let go of, was still Bao Jingyans pretty face. Mu Jiu felt terribly sad, and he gently patted her shoulder. He said, "I see that he has many schemes up his sleeve! He might not be at his wits end yet." Su Ruanruan shook her head. Mu Jiu didnt understand just how powerful Sun Jingan was. Having made a promise, how could she go back on her word? It was enough that she had already hurt both others and herself. Mu Jiu felt a chill in his heart. He had always liked Ruanruan, but seeing her so distressed now, he was filled with a newfound determination. Nothing was more important than her happiness! Mu Jiu knew how to enjoy life. But Su Ruanruan was restrained, regainingposure after a briefpse. She said her goodbyes without wanting anyone to see her off. Gu Jiarou leaned against Mu Jiu, weeping bitterly. ... Su Ruanruan left the club. The night breeze brushed her face as she closed her eyes for a moment. When she opened them again, her body froze. Bao Jingyan stood across the parking lot. Wearing a ck shirt and dress pants. He had lost a lot of weight, especially noticeable at the cheekbones. His gaze was profound as he calmly watched her. Su Ruanruan looked back into his eyes... After a moment, he walked towards her. When he was just a step away, Bao Jingyan stopped. He asked in a low voice, "Youre leaving tomorrow?" Su Ruanruan hummed in affirmation. He offered to take her home, but Su Ruanruan declined. Her voice trembled slightly as she pointed to the car ahead, "The driver is waiting for me." Chapter 439: Ruanruan, I Beg You to Take Care of Him

Chapter 439: Chapter 439: Ruanruan, I Beg You to Take Care of Him

Bao Jingyan gazed deeply at her. He walked her there. They walked side by side for a while, but eventually reached the endpoint. Bao Jingyan opened the car door for her, gently saying, "Ruanruan, have a safe journey." Su Ruanruan felt like crying. But she eventually got into the car. The ck limousine slowly drove away, Su Ruanruan crying hard inside the car... In the night breeze, Bao Jingyan stood quietly. He lowered his head and lit a cigarette. A mist rose, his gaze profound and inscrutable. Suddenly, his body shuddered. At the intersection ahead, a loud crash resounded. The sound of tires screeching on the ground, and the heavy noise of cars colliding... Bao Jingyan quickly got into his own car. ... At the scene, three cars collided. Su Ruanruans ck limousine was pushed aside, hitting a utility pole. The car body was intact! The driver had passed out. The other two sports cars, he knew well. One was Ziqis, the other was Su Qionglins. Bao Ziqis car was smashed into pieces. Su Ruanruan was leaning on the car door, desperately calling his name. Bao Jingyan ran over and saw. He slowly clenched his fist. Bao Ziqis left leg was trapped in a heap of scrap metal. Flesh mangled, it was doubtful it could be salvaged. ... Hospital. Zhou Zizhuo operated on Bao Ziqi. He discussed ns with Bao Family members. "Crush fracture," Zhou Zizhuos voice was hoarse, "Theres only a 20% chance of normal recovery. And it will need at least five or six years of rehabilitation." Bao Mingyuan closed his eyes, "Ziqi ys the piano! How can he not have his leg?" Su Ruanruan wanted to speak. Bao Mingyuan didnt allow her to. Su Qionglin had already been thrown into jail, where she would be particrity taken care of. She could forget about getting out in this lifetime! Bao Mingyuans heart was shattered; he slowly sat down on the bench and wiped his face! Exhausted! Just then, a flurry of hurried footsteps sounded. Bao Mingyuan grew tense. The fugitive Mrs. Bao stumbled into view. She knelt before her husband pleading, "Mingyuan, how is Ziqi?" Bao Mingyuan looked down at her. He despised her! But at this moment, he didnt have the strength to hate. He spoke woodenly, "Crush fracture, the left leg might not be saved." Mrs. Bao was stunned. She refused to believe her son would be disabled, again crying and begging her husband. Bao Mingyuan said coldly, "I am Ziqis father, Ill definitely try my best to save him. As for you..." Qi Meiyu blinked. She suddenly turned towards Su Ruanruan, her voice soft, "Ziqi was trying to save you! Ruanruan, I beg you to look after him! Only if you care for him will he possibly stand again!" Bao Mingyuan exploded, "What nonsense are you talking?" Qi Meiyu slowly stood up, smoothing her appearance. Her expression was like making a major decision, "Im willing to turn myself in! Confess everything." Bao Mingyuan found it absurd. How much effort does it take to care for a patient? Several years, and Ruanruan wont date anyone else? Her staying with Ziqi, whats that about? He firmly disagreed. But Su Ruanruan quietly spoke up, "I will take him to Britain." Mrs. Bao wept for joy. A siren sounded, Mrs. Bao was taken away... Su Ruanruan turned her head, Bao Jingyans gaze was profound. Su Ruanruan lowered her eyes, she said to him, "Im taking Bao Ziqi to Britain for treatment." Bao Jingyan did not object. His hands tucked in his pockets, he said softly, "Take good care of Ziqi." Su Ruanruan was surprised. She looked up wanting to see him, but then her head was struck... She copsed in his arms. Chapter 440 He Took Her Most Precious Thing

Chapter 440: Chapter 440 He Took Her Most Precious Thing

A sterile white space, filled with medical equipment. On a single bed in theboratory. Su Ruanruany quietly. Bao Jingyan sat beside the bed, gently caressing her cheek. She had been gone for years, and she took Ziqi with her. He always needed something to remember her by. A female doctor entered: "Mr. Yan, everythings ready!" Bao Jingyan stood up, his expression solemn: "Ill do it myself." After a while. He changed into a sterile suit and put on medical gloves. ... When Su Ruanruan awoke. She was in a hospital. Bao Jingyan sat beside her, his voice hoarse: "Awake?" Su Ruanruan was somewhat dazed. She still hadnt snapped out of her dream... she had dreamt she and Bao Jingyan had a child. Upon waking, her waist felt a bit sore. If it were before, she could have clung to him and coquettishly imed she had a dream. But now... Su Ruanruan sat up, "Ill go see Ziqi." Bao Jingyan caught her hand. Su Ruanruan struggled, but couldnt break free. His face was calm, and just by looking at his expression, one couldnt tell how much strength he was using. "Bao Jingyan," she softly called his name. She said: "Im not angry, nothing else... I owe him." Bao Jingyan challenged: "Do you owe him enough tomit your life to him?" Su Ruanruans eyes were moist as she whispered, "No." Bao Jingyan let go of her hand. He said, "I believe you." Su Ruanruan didnt understand his meaning, and she fled in panic. ... Bao Ziqi woke up after the surgery. He was very calm. On the day he was discharged, he went to see Qi Meiyu once with Bao Jingyuan. Bao Ziqi had hired awyer for her. He told her: "Im going to Britain! Jingyuan ising too." Mrs. Bao, holding the phone, cried uncontrobly on the other end. She covered her mouth, sobbing: "Ziqi, Jingyuan, Im sorry!" Bao Jingyuan was crying too hard to catch her breath. Bao Ziqi gently patted his sisters shoulder. Upon leaving, Su Ruanruan was waiting outside for them. Bao Jingyuan softly said: "Big brother, I never thought one day we would be dependent on Su Ruanruan." Indeed, dependent on each other. The three of them, their rtionship delicate. Going to Britain was the best choice. Su Ruanruan stepped forward to take Bao Ziqis wheelchair, she told Bao Jingyuan: "The apartment in Britain is just over 100 square meters, not even asrge as your bedroom! There, there are no banquets or beautiful jewelry, we have to cook for ourselves, plus Ive only hired one caregiver, are you sure you want to go?" Bao Jingyuan followed her. She pitifully said: "Im not afraid of hardship! I can attend sses during the day, and take care of big brother at night!" She was afraid that Su Ruanruan would change her mind and clung to her arm. Staying close. Su Ruanruan smiled faintly. ... A week after Bao Ziqi was discharged. They flew to Britain. That morning, Bao Jingyan stood in front of the floor-to-ceiling windows in his office. The flight to Britain flew over Jiangcheng. He watched quietly. Xiao Ran entered. Seeing her boss standing at the window, she realized she was interrupting him. Just as she was about to leave, Bao Jingyan spoke. He said: "Ziqi and Jingyuan are with her, Im a bit angry, but Im also pleased!" The Bao family, shattered to pieces. Time is the best healer. If thats not enough, theres still Ruanruan. Just then, Bao Jingyan received a call. It was from the female doctor in theb, she softly congratted Bao Jingyan: "Mr. Bao, its a great sess." Bao Jingyan lowered his eyes, smiling tenderly. Ruanruan, how could I possibly let go! Ive said, we can both wait... Chapter 441: One Year Later! Reunion

Chapter 441: Chapter 441: One Year Later! Reunion

Britain. Su Ruanruan bought a 120 square meter apartment. Three bedrooms and two living rooms. Bao Ziqis bedroom has an en suite bathroom, which Su Ruanruan and Bao Jingyuan share. Su Ruanruan studied medicine, Bao Jingyuan still studies fine arts. During the day, a caregiver looks after Bao Ziqi. At night, Su Ruanruan cooks. Bao Jingyuan has learned massage skills to serve her second brother. On Sundays, Su Ruanruan takes Bao Ziqi to see the doctor. Rtives from Jiang City oftene to visit. Young Master Zhou alsoes over for meals from time to time. However, there has never been any news about Bao Jingyan. Su Ruanruan hasnt sent him any messages, and neither has he. They are as distant as if they had never had any interaction... Bao Jingyuan has always been carefree, but Bao Ziqi knows that Su Ruanruan hasnt forgotten; some nights, he sees her sitting by the window. Silently gazing eastward. He thinks: She must be missing Bao Jingyan! Half a year after arriving in Britain, news came from Jiang City. Qi Meiyu was sentenced to 20 years. Su Ruanruan gave the letter to Bao Ziqi, and afterward, they continued living tranquilly. Autumn passed and winter arrived. Before their first Spring Festival in Britain, the Bao Family made a phone call. The Bao family matriarch was critically ill. Su Ruanruan slowly hung up the phone. She said to Bao Ziqi and Bao Jingyuan, "The olddy is very sick; we might have to return to Jiang City for the Spring Festival. Bao Jingyuan immediately started packing. Su Ruanruan said to Bao Ziqi with a smile, "Jingyuan has be much more sensible." By the firece. Bao Ziqi sat in his wheelchair. Wearing a white sweater, his facial features handsome. He had a grey wool nket over his knees. He asked Su Ruanruan, "Do you... want to see him?" Su Ruanruan was taken aback. She didnt answer the question. She just said softly, "Ill help you pack in a bit! The flight is at nine in the morning." ... Jiang City Airport. Bao Mingyuan personally came to pick up the kids. Having not seen them for a few months, he missed them terribly, but the olddys critical illness inevitably weighed heavily on his heart. Arriving at the Bao Family home. Naturally, Bao Mingyuan had the driver take down all the luggage, and he said to Su Ruanruan, "Stay here these days, the olddy has quite a few things she wants to talk to you about." Su Ruanruan shook her head. She said, "I will still go back home to sleep at night." Bao Mingyuan could only sigh inwardly. Su Ruanruan directed the driver to deliver the luggage to the Gu Family house and to let her parents know she was safe. Bao Mingyuan, with the kids, went to the courtyard to see the olddy. The olddy wasnt seriously sick. Its just that over the past year, due to various disheartenments, her body had weakened. The doctors were powerless. They hinted that there wasnt much time left, and arrangements for the inevitable could be made. During winter days, the olddyy in her usual reclining chair, vaguely hearing footsteps. She asked Gui Zhi, "Has Jingyane back with Ruanruan?" Gui Zhi nced at Bao Jingyan. She bent down and told the olddy, "Youre confused; Ruanruan is in Britain with Ziqi and Jingyuan!" The Bao family matriarchs eyes moistened. She sighed with disappointment, "Ruanruan is still in Britain? When will shee back?" She clutched Gui Zhis hand tightly, "Will that child nevere back for the rest of her life? What about my Jingyan?" Gui Zhi wiped away tears. She pleaded with Bao Jingyan, "Young Master Jingyan, please say something to the olddy to cheer her up a bit." Bao Jingyan was just about to speak. But upon lifting his eyes, he saw Su Ruanruan standing by the door. She had grown a bit taller, and her features had matured. It seemed she had heard what the olddy said, her eyes brimming with tears... Bao Jingyan swallowed the words he wanted to say. He told the olddy, "Olddy, Ruanruan and Ziqi, theyve returned." The olddy immediately widened her eyes, took deep breaths. Bao Jingyan had the doctor give her oxygen... it took quite some time for her to calm down. Chapter 442: Bao Jingyan: Sorry, I Have a Child Now 1

Chapter 442: Chapter 442: Bao Jingyan: Sorry, I Have a Child Now 1

Su Ruanruan felt heartache for the elderlydy. She walked over and leaned beside the elderlydys knee, whispering, "Old Madam, I came back to see you." Tears welled up in the olddys eyes. She felt sorry for this child. If she hadnt asked her to stay and keep house in the first ce, this child wouldnt have had to go through all these hardships. The olddys withered fingers trembled as they touched Su Ruanruans cheeks. She struggled to look up, saying to Gui Zhi, "Still as beautiful as ever." Gui Zhi was holding back her tears, "This past year, what Old Madam has been most concerned about is Miss Su." Su Ruanruan softlyforted her, "Ive been doing very well in Britain! Jingyuan is sensible too, she helped me a lot." Bao Jingyuan couldnt help but cry. She threw herself beside the olddy, crying and saying, "You were doing well when we left! Why didnt you tell us earlier, then we would havee back to see you sooner." The olddy also touched her face. In the past, she had never liked Jingyuan. But now, she has been well guided by Ruanruan. And her son Ziqi, has also pulled himself together... looking very spirited. The olddy closed her eyes. Tears streamed from the corners of her eyes... she had only one unfulfilled wish. She would die with eyes open! Everyone present could see that. But no one dared to speak. ... At a time filled with sorrow for the Bao family, Housekeeper Wang approached. He said to Bao Jingyan, "Old Madam Sun asks for Young Master Jingyan to visit." Bao Mingyuan rebuked him, "Cant you see the house is in a mess? Ziqi and Jingyuan have just returned, why visit the Sun Family now?" Housekeeper Wang remained silent. Bao Mingyuan knew perfectly well, and everyone present was no fool. The Sun Family had a purpose in calling Bao Jingyan over at this time. Old Madam Baos life is nearing its end. If she passes away, the younger generation at home couldnt celebrate any joyous events for at least two years. Unless, its done within a hundred days. The Sun Family intended for Bao Jingyan to meet a potential match! Bao Mingyuan nced at Su Ruanruan unconsciously. Su Ruanruan was only talking to the olddy, showing no reaction. Bao Mingyuan sighed, telling his elder son, "You go take a trip." Bao Jingyans gaze fell on Su Ruanruan, who was not looking at him. He stuffed his hands into his coat pockets, saying to the olddy, "Ill go for a while and will be back for dinner." Those words were meant for Su Ruanruan to hear. ... An hourter. Bao Jingyan parked his car at the Sun Mansions parking lot. He didnt get out of the car right away but sat there smoking a cigarette. Smoke rose. His Adams apple bobbed a couple of times. He stubbed out the cigarette and opened the car door to get out. Near the Spring Festival. Sun Jingan and Sun Jingyu returned to River City with their wives. The hall was bustling. Bao Jingyan took off his coat and chatted with them about family matters for a while. Sun Jingan wife timely brought out seven or eight photos, smiling as she said, "Each of these girlses from an excellent family background and is of remarkable appearance, Jingyan take a look first, if not suitable we can change another batch!" After she finished speaking, the Sun Family members all watched Bao Jingyan. Afraid that he would resist! Over the past year, Jingyan had lived like a monk. No femalepanions at his side. Now, with Old Madam Bao seriously ill, they couldnt stop Su Ruanruan from returning. So, they hastily arranged this disy. Bao Jingyan wasnt angry. He picked up the photos and flipped through them casually. "Aunt has good taste, theyre all pretty good!" Sun Jingan wife sipped her tea with a smile. She asked, "If theres one you particrly like, we can arrange for a tea meeting these days." Bao Jingyan put down the photos. He patted his trousers and said slowly, "I might have to disappoint uncle and auntie! I dont deserve these girls." Sun Jingan suppressed his anger, "Because Su Ruanruan is back?" Bao Jingyan smiled faintly, "Not exactly! Its because I have a child now, you arranging a blind date for me, should ask if they are willing to start off by being a step-mother immediately upon entering the door!" Chapter 443 Bao Jingyan: Sorry, I Have a Child Now 2

Chapter 443: Chapter 443 Bao Jingyan: Sorry, I Have a Child Now 2

Bao Jingyans words. Thrown the Sun Family into turmoil. Sun Jingan sneered: "Jingyan, where did you conjure up a child out of thin air?" Just from the way Bao Jingyan has been chaste for Su Ruanruan. He didnt believe it. Bao Jingyan was still indifferent. He said, "I know you dont believe me! So Ill bring the child over for you to see, and youll probably give up hope then." Sun Jingan was too angry to speak. His wife, Zhou Xuan countered: "Jingyan might not be talking nonsense." Sun Jingan disbelieved: "Hes clearly just buying time, waiting for our familys olddy to..." Pass away... These words, as her son, he couldnt bring himself to say. At this moment, the housekeeper came in. He said, "Young Master Jingyans Aunt Li is here with a child." Everyone was shocked. Bao Jingyan slowly continued drinking his tea: "Ive told you already that I have a child." Sun Jingan flung a teacup over in anger. Scalding tea sshed onto Bao Jingyan. "Ridiculous!" Sun Jingan was furious: "Jingyan, what is your status? Who will inherit the connections Ive built up? Now you bring out an illegitimate child, what will people say about you?" Bao Jingyans face darkened too. He said, "If it werent for considering Uncle, I would have eloped from the start!" Sun Jingan grew even angrier. But then, scoffing, he said: "You talk of deep affections, yet you still end up having a child with another woman." He stood with hands on hips, "I want to see where this childes from." As he was speaking, Aunt Li stepped into the hall. She was holding a little baby. Wrapped in a pink nket. Old Zhao was steadying her on the side. As cautiously as if he were handling his own ancestors! Bao Jingyan flicked tea leaves off himself and pointed at Sun Jingan, instructing Aunt Li, "He disbelieves, show him." Aunt Li was quite adept at handling the situation. Sun Jingans nostrils red in anger, yet she still smiled and spoke words of blessing: "Our little darling is greeting great uncle! Wishing great uncle promotions at every step." Sun Jingan lifted his head, unwilling to look. But after a moment, he couldnt help but nce. A delicately beautiful child. Eyes full of charm. A tiny, well-shaped nose. A rosy, plump little mouth. Exceptionally beautiful! Sun Jingan chuckled and said to Bao Jingyan, "Youve really learned a trick! How much did it cost to find a woman to have a child for you?" Bao Jingyan shamelessly retorted: "She has no mother! I gave birth to her." Sun Jingan sneered again: "Can you give birth to a child all by yourself?" While he was mocking, his wife and Sun Jingyus wife could not help themselves. They had longed to be mothers for a long time and adored the little baby. [Ah! So adorable!] [So rosy! Her mother must be very beautiful.] [Im your great aunt, little darling... call me great aunt!] ... Sun Jingan disapproved of his wifes naive demeanor. He pointed at Bao Jingyan and said, "I havent acknowledged it yet! Dont lose ground prematurely!" Sun Jingans wife ignored him. She said, "The child isnt yours; what do you need to acknowledge?" She picked up the little baby, looked carefully, and asked Aunt Li, "This child looks about two or three months old! Where is her mother?" Aunt Li followed the ruse: "Young Master Jingyan gave birth to her." Servants poured Bao Jingyan another cup of tea. Bao Jingyan took a sip of tea and said, "Uncle and Aunt, rest assured, theres no emotional conflict! The child bears the surname Bao, andter Ill take her back to show the olddy at home, shell be delighted." Sun Jingan cursed: "Committing such morally corrupt acts, yet still expecting others to praise you!" Bao Jingyan set down the teacup. His tone slightly cold: "I dont dare to expect Uncles praise, Id just be thankful if Uncle does not separate me and my daughter." With that, he instructed Aunt Li to leave together. Sun Jingan was stunned for a long time before he said, "Hes holding a grudge against me!" [Updates will continue tomorrow night!! Happy National Day~~] Chapter 444 Bao Jingyan: Sorry, I Have a Child Now 3

Chapter 444: Chapter 444 Bao Jingyan: Sorry, I Have a Child Now 3

Bao Mansion. The small courtyard was enveloped in twilight. Su Ruanruan checked the body of the elderlydy and then had Gui Zhi prepare a ginseng soup. She personally fed the elderlydy. The elderlydy, who had not been eating for several days, rarely agreed to drink. Bao Mingyuan rubbed his hands and said, "It is Ruanruan who has a way." After drinking the ginseng soup, the elderlydys spirit improved somewhat. Gui Zhi leaned in and said, "The roses that Miss Su nted are about to bloom in a few days! Ill support the elderlydy to enjoy them when the timees." The elderlydy smiled, "Youre just trying to cheer me up! How can roses bloom in winter?" Gui Zhi then said, "Young Master Jingyan made a greenhouse for them; they began to form buds a few days ago!" The elderlydy closed her eyes. A hint of a smile appeared at the corner of her mouth. Upon hearing this, Su Ruanruan felt immensely sad in her heart. The health of the elderlydy might notst until the flowers bloom... She went to the restroom and washed her face with cold water. When she looked up, she saw Bao Jingse. Bao Jingse seemed to be waiting for her. Su Ruanruan had no intention to converse with her and passed by Bao Jingse without a word. "Ruanruan," Bao Jingse called her with a trembling voice. Su Ruanruan stopped in her tracks. She turned around and spoke coolly, "Dont worry! I wont stay overnight here! After...the affairs of the elderlydy are settled, Ill still take Ziqi and Jingyuan back to Britain! I wont bring any trouble to you all." Bao Jingses face turned pale. She murmured, "After you left, big brother never spoke to me again!" Not just that, he also stripped her of all rights to herpany in City B. Bao Jingse returned to Imperial Scenery. Su Ruanruan waspletely unruffled. She said, "That is something between you siblings! It has nothing to do with me." She straightened her clothes, ready to bid farewell to the elderlydy. The elderlydy was reluctant. Su Ruanruan held her hand and said, "Ziqi and Jingyuan will keep youpany! Ille again tomorrow morning." The elderlydy was still reluctant. Gui Zhi softly said, "Madame, please consider Miss Sus situation." Su Ruanruan was thus able to leave. She exchanged a nce with Bao Ziqi. He nodded, "Ill stay with grandmother tonight." Su Ruanruan hummed in acknowledgment. She called over Bao Jingyuan and instructed her, "Youll sleep in my former bedroom tonight! At ten oclock, give a massage to your second brother, and dont forget to keep his knees warm." Bao Jingyuan was very obedient. She noted each instruction. As Su Ruanruan left, Bao Jingyuan went to see her off. Seeing that the children got along so well brought somefort to Bao Mingyuans heart. When alone, he whispered into the elderlydys ear, "I understand what you want, but Ruanruan is still young and may not wait until that day." The elderlydy gripped her sons arm tightly... ... Bao Familys car park. An SUV was parked. Gu Ze leaned against the car, smoking on and off. Su Ruanruan approached, "Brother." Havent seen her for a long time, Gu Ze touched her head. Bao Jingyuan very pleasingly called out, "Brother Gu Ze." Gu Ze casually handed her a red envelope, "Its almost New Year, take this." Bao Jingyuan expressed her thanks. She then said to Su Ruanruan, "Come early tomorrow morning, the person the elderlydy cant bear to be without is you." Su Ruanruan nodded and gave a few more instructions. Just as she was about to get into the car, her gaze swept over to not far away. Bao Jingse was standing there. Su Ruanruan then asked Bao Jingyuan to return to the courtyard, while she sat in the front passenger seat. Gu Ze stubbed out his cigarette and prepared to get into the car as well. Bao Jingse stopped him, "Gu Ze." "Something wrong?" Gu Ze closed the car door and asked her, frowning. Bao Jingse clenched her hands. She whispered, "Can we talk for a moment?" Their rtionship had been very poor over the year. Gu Ze no longer frequented herpany, and he didnt answer her calls. Chapter 445 Bao Jingyan: Sorry, I Have a Child Now 4

Chapter 445: Chapter 445 Bao Jingyan: Sorry, I Have a Child Now 4

Gu Ze sneered coldly: "Have a talk? About what?" He bowed his head and lit a cigarette. Slowly exhaling a smoke ring, he then said, "Ive told you before, there are only two types of women around me! One type is for warming the bed, the other type is for passing on the family lineage! Bao Jingse, if youre not the second type, then youre the first. What, thought it was real after sleeping with me for a few months?" Bao Jingses face was pale. She couldnt utter a single word. Gu Ze fiercely inhaled the cigarette and stamped out the butt. He crisply got into the car, no longer paying attention to her. In reality, they both knew it wasnt as he said. During the time they were dating, there was no one else around Gu Ze. He visited City B every week. Their meetings were mostly at her apartment... when she was too tired to move, he would cook for her. After eating, he would hold her tenderly. A storm caused Ruanruan to move to Britain. Gu Ze naturally gave up on Bao Jingse. Even if he had truly been moved. Seated in the car, he clenched the steering wheel as his Adams apple bobbed. Su Ruanruan turned her head, wanting to ask. Gu Ze gently stroked her head, whispering, "I cant possibly marry someone who would annoy my own sister!" Su Ruanruan didnt ask further. She returned to the Gu Family, where Gu Yuanpei and his wife doted on her endlessly... ... Bao Jingyan returned to the Bao Mansion, Su Ruanruan had already left. He wasnt surprised. She was avoiding him! Bao Jingyan took a baby from Aunt Lis arms and walked directly into the courtyard. Mingyuan was in the yard smoking, wanting to discuss the olddys big matter upon seeing his eldest son return. But his eyes caught sight of his eldest son holding a baby. His mind exploded with a buzz. Pointing at the little bundle he asked, "Where did thise from?" Bao Jingyan answered smoothly, "Its mine! Im taking it to the olddy, maybe seeing a child will make her feel halfway better." Mingyuan blocked him, "Are you trying to anger the olddy to death?" While they were talking, Bao Ziqi came out pushing a wheelchair. He also saw the baby. His handsome face slightly tightened. His pale and long fingers gripped the armrest of the wheelchair. He stared at Bao Jingyan: "The child of my elder brother?" Bao Jingyan hummed affirmatively. He carried the baby over to Bao Ziqi and then asked him, "How does he look?" Bao Ziqis face was full of restraint. He coldly looked at his own elder brother, pausing after each word, "Of course, good!" Bao Jingyan curled his lips slightly: "If Ziqi says its good, then there are no problems." Mingyuan was still in shock. Bao Ziqi spoke up, "Let the elder brother take him inside! The olddy will like it." Mingyuan couldnt understand his two sons anymore. Bao Ziqi added, "Elder brother probably wont get married easily, having a child is also good." The old father conceded. He leaned in for a closer look. Then stated, "Truly Jingyans seed! Especially simr in the eyes and brows." But he calcted the days. Ruanruan had just gone to Britain, and Jingyan this guy was already messing around with women. Mingyuan felt his hopes dashed; with Jingyan having a child, how could Ruanruan ever agree to follow him? He waved his hand: "Go inside, dont overly shock the olddy." Bao Jingyans lips held a smile. He carried the baby into the olddys bedroom, sending away everyone except Gui Zhi. The olddy looked somewhat better. Bao Jingyan showed her the baby. He bluntly stated, "This is the great-granddaughter I bore for the olddy, the first child of this generation in the Bao family." The olddy widened her eyes... She gasped a few times before asking, "Jingyan, what did you say?" Bao Jingyan nudged the baby a bit closer. He gently told the olddy, "This is my child! Her mother is a gem in my heart, therefore, this child is named Bao Jiaren." Chapter 446 Bao Jingyan: Sorry, I Have a Child Now 5

Chapter 446: Chapter 446 Bao Jingyan: Sorry, I Have a Child Now 5

Bao Jingyan finished speaking. The olddy was greatly shaken in her heart. Though her time was short, her mind was clear. Jingyans child. Bao Jiaren! The olddy struggled to turn onto her side, tears brimming in her aged eyes. Bao Jingyan ced the little baby beside the olddy. The olddy stared at the baby for a good while. She said softly, "Well-formed! Like her mother." Gui Zhi held her breath desperately. Oh heavens... what did she know! She didnt dare to listen any further. At that moment, the olddy, having been agitated, became tired. She closed her eyes, and softly said, "Gui Zhi, fetch the jade ne that came with my dowry... give it to the little miss." Gui Zhi wiped away her tears. She hummed in acknowledgment and immediately began looking for it. Shortly after, she retrieved it and gently ced it in the small infants arms. The olddy gave her a deep look. Gui Zhi understood and said, "This was originally meant for Miss Su! Now... give it to Miss Jiaren!" Bao Jingyan handed the child over to Aunt Li. He leaned down and kissed the olddys white hair. ... Bao Jingyan walked out of the courtyard. Bao Ziqi was sitting in his wheelchair, blocking him. His gaze was cold, "Big brother, always full of surprises!" "Is that so?" Bao Jingyan replied, "Not giving a meeting gift to your niece?" Bao Ziqi red at him. He pushed his wheelchair forward, fuming. Bao Jingyan stood in the yard, exhaling softly. At this moment, Bao Mingyuan came running over, asking his eldest son, "The olddy wasnt upset, was she?" Bao Jingyan lit a cigarette and said, "Gave the jade ne to the child." Bao Mingyuan was speechless with shock. He asked again, "What about the childs mother? nning to get married?" "No mother!" Bao Jingyan stated crisply; "The child is mine alone!" Bao Mingyuan continued to be dumbfounded. He wanted to see the child again, but Bao Jingyan personally had the little Jiaren taken away. ... News of the president of Imperial View having an illegitimate child. Spread throughout Jiang City by that night. The reporters worked tirelessly, digging three feet into the ground. Yet they couldnt find the childs mother. The little infant seemed to have popped out of a crack in a rock. The Gu Family, of course, also received the news. Gu Ze said resentfully, "Bao Jingyan is no different from the others, unable to control his lower half!" Heforted his sister, "The next one will be better." Madame Gu gave her son a look. Hinting at him not to speak any further! Su Ruanruan was stunned for a long time. Finally, she spoke softly, "Now that he has a child, I can take good care of the olddy in herst days." Madame Gu felt sorry for her daughter but really couldnt advise her otherwise. After dinner, Su Ruanruan went upstairs. Madame Gu told her husband and son, "From now on, no one is allowed to mention Bao Jingyan." ... Su Ruanruan sat on the sofa in her bedroom. Without turning on the lights. At this moment, it was as if she was back to those nights a year ago. Darkness... with no sign of dawn. She rarely indulged, but she poured herself red wine. One ss after another. When she was drunk, tears were cold at the corners of her eyes. The phone rang. It was a call from Bao Ziqi. Su Ruanruan picked up, her voice slightly hoarse, "Whats the matter?" Bao Ziqi asked softly, "Have you been crying?" "No." Her voice was nasal, "Ille to see the olddy tomorrow morning." Bao Ziqi suddenly added, "The olddy has seen the child and likes her very much... Ruanruan, dont you want to see her?" The call was abruptly hung up... Bao Ziqi thought: She still cares a lot. But shes always so strong! ... The next morning, Su Ruanruan arrived early at Bao Mansion. Her little face was pale. Her eyes somewhat swollen. One could tell she had been crying. In the courtyard, she and Bao Jingyan ran into each other... Chapter 447: Ruanruan, have you been crying?

Chapter 447: Chapter 447: Ruanruan, have you been crying?

Its been a year since theyst met. Bao Jingyans demeanor had grown even colder. In the cold winter days. He stood in the courtyard. Tall and superior, mature and upright. In a deep blue shirt. A light grey sweater, and a well-made overcoat on top. Su Ruanruan didnt want to talk to him, her eyes dropped as she prepared to pass by him. But Bao Jingyan stepped forward to block her... He drew in so close, close enough for her to smell the pleasant male scent on him. Bao Jingyans voice was husky, incredibly sexy: "I have a child, are you unhappy about that?" Su Ruanruan couldnt bear it. She said softly, "Step aside." "What if I dont?" His voice grew even more low-pitched. Su Ruanruan pushed him: "Bao Jingyan, dont go too far!" Her eyes were wet: "All I wanted was to apany the olddy during herst days, what more do you want?" Bao Jingyan saw tears in her eyes. He reached out to wipe them away, his voice almost a whisper: "Do you feel like Im bullying you?" Su Ruanruan took a step back. She felt very ufortable. At that moment, Bao Mingyuan came from the main house. As soon as he entered the courtyard, he saw his eldest son bullying the youngdy. He cursed silently: Bao Jingyan, have some shame! You already have a child; do you still expect her to wait for you? He intervened for Su Ruanruan: "The olddy has been talking about you all morning!" Su Ruanruan immediately walked into the courtyard. Bao Mingyuan lectured his son: "Now that you have a child, stop bothering Ruanruan! Look at her... shes probably been crying." He nced at his son again. Angry that he couldnt control his desires. Bao Jingyan, with hands in pockets, had an unfathomable look in his eyes. Bao Mingyuan continued: "Youre a grown man who cant take care of a child; find a woman and get married!" Bao Jingyan looked at him. His gaze was cold. He followed Su Ruanruan into the olddys bedroom. Su Ruanruan was very strong-willed, taking meticulous care of the olddy even though she had cried half the night. The olddy was clear in her mind. But some things had to be buried deep down for now. Su Ruanruan cared for her half a day. She had lunch at the Bao Family, and afterwards rested in the bedroom of the courtyard. Bao Jingyuan, worried about her, clumsily tried tofort her. Su Ruanruan quietly read her book. Ignoring her. But Bao Jingyuan could ramble to herself for an hour... In the afternoon. It began to snow from the sky. Bao Mingyuan had someone add more coal to the fire in the olddys room, rubbing his hands he said: "Lets set up a small stove tonight, have a hotpot together, warm things up." The younger generation all felt mncholic. The olddyy listening to the sound of the snowkes falling. Suddenly, her spirit improved, and she could sit up. She said: "I just want to y cards one more time." The corner of Su Ruanruans mouth trembled slightly. She knew the olddys time was near; this was her rallying before the end. Bao Mingyuan saw her and realized it too. He covered his sorrow and asked Housekeeper Wang to set up a card table. He asked Jingyan, Jingyuan, and Su Ruanruan to y a few rounds with the olddy... Bao Ziqi sat beside her as the advisor. Ten minutester, the card table was ready. Gui Zhi helped the olddy to the table. The olddy was cheerful and lucid. But the younger ones all knew. The olddys time wasing... Bao Jingyuan couldnt hide her emotions. She found an excuse to run to the bathroom and sobbed loudly... Bao Mingyuan hugged his younger daughter. Bao Jingyuan cried in his embrace. After ying a few rounds of cards, the olddys head slowly drooped... Bao Mingyuan was overwhelmed with grief. He called out: "Olddy." The olddy didnt react much... Housekeeper Wang rushed in. He said, "The roses in the greenhouse have bloomed..." At herst moments, the olddy heard him. She spoke with effort: "The ones Ruanruan nted... Jingyan, Ruanruan... apany me to see them onest time." Chapter 448: The Last Will! Ruanruan, You Must Trust Jingyan

Chapter 448: Chapter 448: The Last Will! Ruanruan, You Must Trust Jingyan

Bao Mingyuan had someone move the olddys recliner into the greenhouse. The winter chill was severe. Inside the greenhouse, it was as warm as spring. One could faintly smell the fragrance of flowers. As the olddy lingered at deaths door, she slightly opened her eyes... She only allowed Bao Jingyan and Su Ruanruan to apany her. Although Bao Mingyuan felt it was inappropriate, this was the olddys final journey. He gently embraced Su Ruanruans shoulders, choking up, "Stay with the olddy." Tears filled Su Ruanruans eyes. As the others withdrew, the olddy let out a faint breath. It took a while before she could recover. She whispered to Bao Jingyan, "Pick some flowers for me... Ruanruan nted them for me!" Bao Jingyan knew she had words to say to Su Ruanruan. He knelt down, tucking in the nket for the olddy, "The olddy likes white roses the most, Ill pick some for her!" When he looked up, he nced at Su Ruanruan. His gaze was deep. Once he was at a distance, Su Ruanruan knelt before the olddy. With tears in her voice, she said, "When nting the flowers, I was thinking about waiting for them to bloom so I could bring the olddy over with Bao Jingyan to see." The olddy closed her eyes. She patted Su Ruanruans hand. "Dont cry... we... are still together." Suddenly, the olddy opened her eyes. Looking at the ss tiles above, her voice was very soft. "That year you came to our home... Jingyan joked with me about finding someone like Ruanruan, and I knew then that you and he were destined... Gui Zhi, that... that old thing always thought I couldnt see it... heh heh... how could I not see it, Jingyan looks at you differently..." Tears swam in Su Ruanruans eyes. But she listened intently to every word the olddy said. The olddy gently stroked her ck hair. Her tone grew urgent, "No matter what... believe in Jingyan." Su Ruanruan was in a daze. The olddys voice became more stern, "Ruanruan, promise me." Su Ruanruan looked up. The olddy seemed more spirited than before. But it was nothing more than thest flicker of a dying me. To fulfill the olddys wish, she nodded, weeping, "I promise!" The olddys head leaned back into the chair. Slowly closing her eyes. Su Ruanruan burst into painful sobs... Bao Jingyan picked a bunch of white roses. He slowly knelt down, cing the roses in the olddys hand. He tenderly kissed the olddys white hair. He said, as if to console a child, "Grandmother, go in peace without looking back!" Su Ruanruans grief intensified. Bao Jingyan lifted her up, and whispered, "The olddy has passed away." He led her in a bow. Su Ruanruan sobbed helplessly... Bao Jingyan pulled her into his embrace. She struggled, but he forcefully held her. His lips close to her ear, he murmured, "Dont forget what you promised the olddy." ... The Bao Family matriarch was no more. Bao Mingyuan fell seriously ill. But the funeral required arrangements to be made. Outside, Bao Jingyan took charge. However, a woman was still needed to attend to the home. After much consideration, Bao Mingyuan asked Su Ruanruan to take care of it. No one in the Bao Family objected. But the Gu Family felt for their daughter. Especially Lady Gu who had her reservations. She said to Su Ruanruan, "The Bao Family matriarch did indeed treat you well, and now youve taken care of Ziqi and Jingyuan, as well as flown back from Britain to see her off on her final journey. Youve done quite enough! Ruanruan, you are an unmarried woman and tending to such affairs for the Bao Family will not reflect well on your reputation." Not to mention, Bao Jingyan was a consideration. Su Ruanruan was well aware. But she dared not forget the kindness the olddy showed her that day. When she was abandoned by the Sun Family, Bao Mingyuan and the olddy protected her even more. Su Ruanruan conveyed this to her mother. Nevertheless, Lady Gu couldnt bepletely at ease. Because of this, Bao Mingyuan personally made a trip to the Gu Family, begging endlessly. Gu Yuanpei managed to persuade thedy. Chapter 449: You Have Power and Influence, Impressive Huh?

Chapter 449: Chapter 449: You Have Power and Influence, Impressive Huh?

The olddy passed away, and her funeralsted seven days. This was thest significant event for the olddy, and while Su Ruanruan was grieving, she still spiritedly took charge. Overseeing expenses and social obligations. She handled everything very appropriately and with dignity. She also discussed matters with Bao Jingyan. But beyond that, nothing else... On the third day. The Sun Family came to pay their respects. The elder Madame Sun came in person. Apanied by her two sons and daughters-inw, they offered thest respect to the olddy. Bao Jingyan and Bao Ziqi paid their respects. Madame Sun Jingan donated the condolence money, and she saw Su Ruanruan sitting in front of a temporarily set up tform. She was discussing with a servant while holding the ount book. Madame Sun Jingan greeted her with a slight smile, calling out, "Ruanruan." Su Ruanruan looked up and saw her. She nodded, "Madame Sun." Feeling the distance in her greeting, Madame Sun Jingan felt disappointed. She had always been fond of Ruanruan. Just as she was about to speak, outside, her husband started causing trouble. Sun Jingan said to Bao Jingyan, "Even if the Bao Familycks a woman in charge, it should not fall on Su Familys child! Jingyan, you havent forgotten your initial promise, have you?" The Gu Family couple was also present. Their daughter was already feeling wronged, now faced with further difficulties. They were close to confronting the situation head-on. Bao Jingyan coldly said, "Right now is the olddys important matter! The olddy divided her inheritance into three parts. One for Jingse, one for Jingyuan, and another for Ruanruan. She treated Ruanruan just as her own granddaughter, and now that she has passed away, with Qi Meiyu in prison and me unmarried, naturally, the three granddaughters are in charge! Jingse doesnt involve herself, Jingyuan cant handle it, so it is only right for Ruanruan to take the lead! If uncle has any objections, he can go and ask for the intentions of our familys olddy!" Sun Jingan was furious. He pointed at Bao Jingyans nose. Humph... he thinks Im unaware of his little schemes! He and Su Ruanruan, like a man leading outside and a woman managing inside. Whats the difference from a married couple? At that moment, Su Ruanruan walked out from the inner room. She was not wearing mourning clothes, but she appeared very simple and pure. Sun Jingan was taken aback. Then, he questioned Housekeeper Wang, "Is this how you and Auntie Fu manage the affairs for the young miss (Sun Weilian)?" Being named, Housekeeper Wang, who was a crafty old fellow, responded respectfully to Sun Jingan, "We people have received the young misss kindness, and naturally, we want to repay her." Sun Jingan sat down and took a sip of tea. "Thats more like it." But then Housekeeper Wang continued, "The young miss is no longer with us, so now we repay young master Jingyan!" Sun Jingan put down his teacup. He sneered, "And how do you n to repay him? By joining him against me?" Auntie Fu came forward with bowed head andpliant eyes. She said, "The young misss spirit in heaven would not want to see her child bullied." Her defiance was evident. Sun Jinganughed in anger. Indeed, Jingyans well-trained dogs! Ha-ha... Child? With Jingyans heavy scheming, still a child? He wanted to make things difficult once again. At that moment, Bao Mingyuan rushed over after removing the IV drip. He said to Sun Jingan, "Its all my fault! If you feel unsatisfied, juste at me. No matter what, the Bao Family wont simply crumble! Even if it does, I will take Jingyan, Ziqi, Jingyuan, and Ruanruan to beg in City B! Ha-ha, if anyone asks, Ill say I am Madame Sun Jingan Suns brother-inw!" He was so shameless. Sun Jingan was shocked! At that time, the Bao Familys servants became stirred up. [The Bao Family is conducting a funeral!] [Youre being too domineering!] [What did Miss Su do wrong!] [Indeed, its unreasonable! Having power doesnt make you mighty!] ... These servants had experienced Su Ruanruans kindness and severity, they both loved and resented her. But they too were born of parents, with blood and flesh. Miss Sus overseeing despite past differences, thats kindness. They wanted to repay the olddys kindness! Defending Miss Su! Chapter 450: Bao Jingyan Gets Jealous! Release the Child!

Chapter 450: Chapter 450: Bao Jingyan Gets Jealous! Release the Child!

The mourning hall, bustling with activity. Despite Sun Jingan and Sun Jingyu being influential in City B. It was of no use at this moment. Old Madam Sun said to her son, "Jingan, calm down." Sun Jingan red fiercely at Su Ruanruan. At this moment, Gui Zhi came over. She handed a letter to Old Madam Sun. She said, "The olddy left this specifically before she passed." Old Madam Sun caressed the envelope, sighing inwardly. She and Old Madam Bao were sisters since their youth, yet because of their children... ... The following few days passed without incident. Su Ruanruan took care of daily chores, returning to the Gu Family around ten at night. On the night of the vigil, she was to apany the olddy for onest night. In the small courtyard, although the charcoal fire was burning fiercely. It was still bitterly cold. Su Ruanruan had been kneeling for a long time and softly coughed. A coat was draped over her shoulders. It was a scent she recognized. Su Ruanruan paused for a moment, intending to take it off. Bao Jingyan gently pressed on her shoulder. His voice was deep: "Im here with dad, go and rest." Bao Jingyuan also said, "Ruanruan, you should go sleep first, youve lost a lot of weight these days." Su Ruanruan wanted to persist, but she truly was physically drained. Before leaving, she returned the coat to Bao Jingyan. Bao Jingyans gaze was profound. He said nothing. Instead, Bao Mingyuan looked at his son with a meaningful expression... Su Ruanruan returned to the main house. She stayed in the former bedroom on the second floor, next to Bao Ziqi. This was also to avoid suspicion. To avoid suspicion from Bao Jingyan! Although she felt a bit unwell, she felt much better after drinking a cup of ginger tea. Before going to sleep, she prepared to check on Bao Ziqi. During cold weather, Bao Ziqis leg would asionally hurt. As Su Ruanruan arrived, he was taking pain medication. Su Ruanruan took the medicine box and asked, "Does it hurt a lot?" "Its manageable." Bao Ziqi slightly squinted his eyes, his forehead veins popping. That meant it was very painful. Su Ruanruan turned up the heating and then went to the bathroom to wring out a hot towel. She ced it on the painful area of Bao Ziqis leg. After about 20 minutes, she gently massaged him. "Jingyuan is in the small courtyard, she probably forgot," Su Ruanruan spoke softly, "If she forgets again, just call me." Bao Ziqi sat in his wheelchair. He looked down at Su Ruanruan from his elevated position. His features were charming. He wore a in white nightgown. Tied at the waist with a belt. The three of them lived together, and he had seen her like this many times. But at this moment, he found her moving. He couldnt help but ask her, "After the olddys affairs are settled..." Su Ruanruan softly said, "Well leave after the funeral on the seventh day." Bao Ziqi then fell silent. This moment felt to him as if it were stolen... At the slightly ajar door. Bao Jingyan stood there quietly. He knew she had been living with Ziqi and Jingyuan for a year. They got along very well. But this was the first time he had seen it. He clenched his fists and turned to leave. ... At one oclock in the early morning. Su Ruanruan returned to her own bedroom. After taking a shower, she felt fresh and clean. She sat by the floor-to-ceiling window, gazing at everything outside. She remembered how Bao Jingyan once held her in hisp at this spot. How terribly he treated her. Yet, she still fell for him. Su Ruanruan lowered her eyes, unwilling to think further. He already had a child. Just as she thought this, the cry of a baby reached her ears. Su Ruanruan was startled. Then she immediately realized whose child it was... Bao Mingyuan, fearing she might be disturbed, did not let her contact the child, whom she had never seen. But in the deep of the night, the babys cry was clear... Footsteps echoed in the stairway. Up and down. Chapter 451: Ruanruan, you feed her!

Chapter 451: Chapter 451: Ruanruan, you feed her!

Su Ruanruan couldnt sleep. She opened the door to check. Just then, Aunt Li was holding a baby, walking towards the third floor. Seeing her, Aunt Li involuntarily called out, "Miss Su." Su Ruanruan couldnt help feeling sentimental. She stood there, pointing at the little thing in Aunt Lis arms, and asked in a thin voice, "Is this Bao Jingyans child?" Aunt Li nodded. She bent down to cuddle the little one, saying lovingly, "Probably hungry." Suddenly, she stepped forward and ced the baby directly into Su Ruanruans arms. Aunt Li eagerly said, "Miss Su, please feed her." With a sudden soft thing in her arms, Su Ruanruan became stiff. She was actually avoiding this. But now the child was in her arms, and she couldnt help but look. A little pink bundle. Very adorable. And particrly looked like Bao Jingyan... Su Ruanruans gaze dimmed. Yet the little one grabbed her pajamas, finding her spot. Su Ruanruan felt a bit of pain. She also felt a bit shy. After all, she was still a young girl, never having been a mother. Watching this, Aunt Li felt envious. She said to Su Ruanruan, "Miss Su, hold her for a while; Ill go make her some form." Su Ruanruan wanted to call someone. But Aunt Li ran off quickly. With the hallway draft, fearing the child might catch a cold, Su Ruanruan had to bring her back to her own bedroom. She didnt know how to take care of children. She just ced the little one on the bed. Then found a book for herself and sat down by the floor-to-ceiling window to read. She considered this book her Heart rity Spell. Instead of Aunt Li, Bao Jingyan was the first toe. The baby made small noises. Bao Jingyan pushed the door open and nced at Su Ruanruan, saying, "She has wet her diapers." Su Ruanruan looked at him and kept reading her book. Pretending to be indifferent, she said, "Take her back and change her!" "The heating on the third floor is broken," Bao Jingyan said matter-of-factly. "Tonight, the littledy will sleep here with you." Su Ruanruan bit her lip, "I dont know how to take care of children." "Shes well-behaved when full." He added softly, "Better behaved than you in your sleep." Su Ruanruan felt both angry and embarrassed. She ignored him. Just then, Aunt Li came with a bunch of stuff. Diapers, a milk bottle, fairy tale books, and an electronic keyboard. Su Ruanruan couldnt help saying, "There are many bedrooms on the second floor." "You expect Ziqi to take care of her for me? Isnt his leg hurting?" Bao Jingyan asked her. Su Ruanruan was extremely smart. She guessed that he had noticed earlier. Bao Jingyan had a child with someone else but still clung to her and Bao Ziqi. She ignored him. Seeing them bicker like before, Aunt Li felt nostalgic. Tears in her eyes, she efficiently changed the baby. Then, she fed her the milk. Bao Jingyan walked up to Su Ruanruan, his elegantly boned fingers gently taking the book from her hand. He looked at it: "Like reading this?" Su Ruanruan hadnt really paid attention before, and only now realized what kind of book it was. She felt angry and embarrassed again. Bao Jingyan returned the book to her. He said very considerately, "It must have been lonely for you in Britain this past year." Su Ruanruan threw the book at him. Bao Jingyan caught her, his voice low as he warned, "Dont make noise thiste!" Then he left first. Leaving the child behind. After Aunt Li finished feeding the baby, she too ran off quickly... In the bedroom, it was quiet. Only the babys gentle, shallow breathing. And a faint scent of milk. Su Ruanruan watched the little one intently, fearing she might start crying. But the little thing was as Bao Jingyan said, very well-behaved after eating. Su Ruanruan struggled for a long while, but eventuallyy down on the bed... Chapter 452: This Child, Has a Face Shape Like Mom

Chapter 452: Chapter 452: This Child, Has a Face Shape Like Mom

Su Ruanruan had a little thing by her side, who dared not sleep much. She was afraid of crushing the little one. So, she dimmed the lights. Shey on her side, watching that little thing. Not fussy about beds, it slept soundly. Its skin also white, nose fine and prominent. Very good-looking. She watched for a long time, eventually sumbing to sleep too... Early in the morning, Su Ruanruan woke up. Opening her eyes, she saw that little thing. It was awake. Its eyes dark and bright. Its small mouth red and pointed. With a few soft tufts of hair on its head. Like a newly born chick, tender and cute. Su Ruanruans heart suddenly softened... At that moment, there were a few knocks on the bedroom door. Then someone pushed the door and entered. Su Ruanruan thought it was Bao Jingyaning to pick up the child, but instead, it was Bao Ziqi. Bao Ziqi was also surprised to see the little thing on the bed. Su Ruanruan got up to tidy her clothes. She said, "Auntie Li brought it over." Her attempt to cover up made Bao Ziqi unabashed to expose her. He pushed his wheelchair over. Peered and said ambiguously, "The eyebrows and eyes are like big brothers, the faces nose and mouth must resemble moms!" Su Ruanruan, while observing, said, "Ziqi, are you deliberately picking a quarrel with me?" Bao Ziqi chuckled softly. He said, "How could I?" They together studied the little baby, both very curious. When Bao Jingyan arrived, what he saw was this scene. Bao Ziqi and Su Ruanruan, heads together. Both staring at the little baby on the bed. They looked quite like a young couple. Bao Jingyan, hands in his pockets, said indifferently, "The funeral is starting soon, arent you getting up?" Bao Ziqi detected displeasure from his tone. He smirked a little. Bao Jingyan came over and took the child away. He ignored Su Ruanruan. Clearly, he was angry. Bao Jingyan left. Su Ruanruan pointed at the door and said, "It was clearly him who brought the child over." She was about to wash up. Bao Ziqi gently held her hand, softly saying, "Dont you know why hes unhappy?" Su Ruanruan brushed off his hand. She walked towards the bathroom, "He has a child now." "But you can never forget him in your life." Bao Ziqi was somewhat persistent. Su Ruanruan was quite speechless. After a while, Bao Ziqi said again, "Ruanruan, do you know, you are particrly tolerant towards him." Su Ruanruan paused. She sshed cold water on her face... choosing to ignore the pain in her heart. ... The olddys funeral was handled. It was already nearing the New Year. Su Ruanruan left the Bao Mansion, returning to the Gu Family. Bao Jingyuan was very reluctant. Su Ruanruan asked her to take good care of the second brother. Bao Jingyuan tentatively asked, "Can I and second brothere to visit you over the New Year? We can have fun in Jiang City for a couple of days?" Su Ruanruan looked towards Bao Ziqi. He didnt speak, his expression indifferent. But she could tell he wanted to go out for a visit. Su Ruanruan agreed. The driver moved her luggage into the car, ready to leave when Bao Jingyan walked out of the mansion. "Im heading the same way. Let me give you a ride." Su Ruanruan shook her head, "Ill just take the drivers car." After saying that, she got into the car. The car left in a cloud of dust. Bao Jingyuan softly said to her older brother, "There are many people chasing Ruanruan in Britain, big brother, now that you have a child, you dont stand a chance." Bao Jingyan lit a cigarette. He asked her, "How are they chasing her?" Bao Jingyuan straightforwardly replied, "Sending flowers and gifts! Fighting to clean our house." She wrinkled her nose, "Zhou Jinhuaes every week." Bao Jingyan nced at her. He got into his car and drove away. Bao Jingyuan then shouted to Bao Ziqi, "Big brother already has a child, and he still minds Ruanruan dating!" Chapter 453 Gu Ze Goes on a Blind Date, Bao Jingse Gets Drunk

Chapter 453: Chapter 453 Gu Ze Goes on a Blind Date, Bao Jingse Gets Drunk

Su Ruanruan returned to the Gu Mansion. Madam Gu was very happy. She said to Su Ruanruan, "The day after tomorrow is the Lunar New Year. Its good to finally spend it at home." Su Ruanruan hugged Madam Gu. Without saying a word. A mother and daughters hearts are connected. Madam Gu naturally knew what she was thinking. These past few days have been busy with no idle time to think, and now she truly felt heartbroken. Madam Gu was very kind-hearted. She patted her beloved daughter on the shoulder and whispered softly, "Its a good thing that he has children now. Youll be thirty after the New Year! Its not good to keep dying." Su Ruanruan didnt speak. She simply leaned against Madam Gus embrace. Later, when she was alone, she couldnt help thinking. She and Bao Jingyan had shared a bed for half a year, but never truly entered the alley of love. Right after she left, he immediately had a child. With that girl... was he really so irresistible? Su Ruanruan didnt want to think too deeply. She was very reserved, even if she couldnt let go, she wouldnt show it on her face. She just avoided him. ... A joyous event urred at the Gu Mansion. Gu Ze had a blind date. It was with the quite reputable Chen Family of Jiang City, a family of schrs. The Chen Family was full of academics. Chen Anan, a violin teacher, was somewhat mediocre among her siblings. Madam Gu had arranged to have tea with her future daughter-inw. Chen Anan had a height of 165 cm, her looks were naturally pretty. But somewhat in, not outstanding. A very light presence. Yet Madam Gu was very satisfied. She quietly said to Su Ruanruan, "Its not necessary to marry a leading figure from our circle. Whats important is that she fits in." Su Ruanruan deeply agreed. ... Chen Anan was gentle by nature. She had heard of Su Ruanruans exploits. And liked her very much. During the tea and casual chat, all thedies and misses were very happy. Just as Madam Gu was preparing to take the two children for a walk with some money, a group of people came downstairs from the second-floor business hall. Bao Jingyan was dressed in a ssic ck and white suit. Distant and aloof. Following him was Bao Jingse, along with a host of Empire Views senior executives. From the looks of it, they had just gone through a business negotiation. He caught sight of Su Ruanruan with one nce. He thought abouting over to say hello. But in the end, he justposedly nodded his head. Madam Gu was very gracious. She returned the gesture. It was, however, Bao Jingse whose gaze lingered here for quite some time. Chen Anans presence was something she couldnt overlook. She had heard that Gu Ze was on a blind date. The second daughter of the Chen Family, a very average woman. She thought Gu Ze wouldnt take a second look, but Gu Ze had agreed. Now, Gu Ze and this Chen Anan were in a rtionship leading up to marriage. Bao Jingse lowered her gaze, looking dejected. As they left, Madam Gu said with a smile, "People and events of the past are not worth fretting over anymore." Su Ruanruan gently stirred her coffee. Chen Anan, under the table, sped her hand. She yed the violin year-round. Her fingers were slender with some calluses. Yet they were very warm. Su Ruanruan suddenly understood why her brother chose Chen Anan... her gentle nature was very suitable for a wife. Back at the Gu Mansion. Su Ruanruan received a phone call. From a very unexpected person. Her fingers tightened around the phone as she said, "Ille over." Madam Gu saw herplexion wasnt good and asked, "Who was it?" Su Ruanruan breathed out a name, "Sun Jingan." Madam Gu was worried. But Su Ruanruan said, "If he wants to see me, of course I should go! With his high position and power, am I supposed to avoid him for the rest of my life?" Madam Gu praised, "Our Gu Familys daughters stand tall and live with integrity." She trusted Su Ruanruan very much. But she also assigned capable people to protect her, and the meeting ce was in a venue owned by Mu Jiu. Nothing could go wrong. ... Eight oclock at night. Su Ruanruan took a car to the club. What she didnt expect was to see Bao Jingse at the bar on the first floor of the club. She was in shock. Bao Jingse was in a bad mood. Drinking himself into a stupor at the bar, utterly drunk. Chapter 454: Mr. Sun Didn鈥檛 Come All This Way Just to Praise Me, Did He?

Chapter 454: Chapter 454: Mr. Sun Didnt Come All This Way Just to Praise Me, Did He?

Su Ruanruan certainly wouldnt let Chen Anan seed in tricking her. She thought for a moment. Then dialed Bao Jingyans number. Bao Jingyan answered the phone, his voice extremely gentle: "Ruanruan?" Su Ruanruan hummed in acknowledgment, she said: "Jingse is drunk,e and pick her up." She gave him the address. Bao Jingyan immediately said: "Wait for me, Ill be right there." Su Ruanruan shook her head: "No need, I have other things to attend to." She softly said: "Im going to meet Mr. Sun Jingan!" Bao Jingyan did not make a sound. He knew that any nice words now would seem hypocritical. He said to her in a low voice: "Dont meet him, I will talk to him." But Su Ruanruan had already hung up. She walked into the exclusive elevator of the club. The biggest feature of this dazzling club was the transparent elevator on the 58th floor. Ascending from the top during the night. The bustling scene of Jiang City was fully visible below. The elevator slowly rose... Su Ruanruan gazed at the distant fireworks, thinking: by the time the fireworks burn out, she would have to go to Britain again. However, she did not know. Another elevator passed her by. Inside the elevator was Yin Zhao. Vice-president of Asian United Hospital in B City, he came for the acquisition of Tongsheng Hospital. A year ago, Tongsheng was exposed for a scandal. Its reputation waspletely destroyed. Everyone thought the business that Su Peiming established was done for, but unexpectedly, a public rtions campaign saved Tongsheng. Following that, Tongsheng pushed out old waves for new. And did exceptionally well. Yin Zhao had been in Jiang City for two days, and had met once with Dean Su Minghua. Competence above average, butcking in boldness. Yet very tight-lipped, absolutely unyielding. Such a person could not have been the one who turned the tide a year ago. Yin Zhao was very curious, who was the real driving force behind Tongsheng Hospital? While he was pondering. He saw that girl again. She was alone inside the elevator. Her long hair reached her shoulders. Wearing a light purple dress, draped with a coat. She was looking at the distant fireworks. Even from afar, Yin Zhao could feel the sadness enveloping her. For whom... was she sad? Yin Zhao was a perfectionist. This thought pained him for a moment, but he still couldnt stop himself from wanting to meet her. But by the time he reached the first floor, the person in the elevator had already disappeared. ... Su Ruanruan found the private room. Qin Chao was already waiting at the door. Qin Chao helped to open the door while whispering: "Mr. Sun still has guests." Su Ruanruan hesitated: "Lets wait until Mr. Sun has met with the guests." However, Sun Jingans voice came from inside: "No need,e in." Su Ruanruan handed her coat to Qin Chao and stepped into the private room. Sun Jingan indeed had a guest. The president of United Hospital from B City. Yin Changhe. It seemed that Sun Jingan was well acquainted with him, speaking very casually during their conversation. As Su Ruanruan entered, The guest surnamed Yin stopped talking as he sized her up. But Sun Jingan turned his head and said with a smile: "Changhe, this is the junior I mentioned. Quite impressive! Dont you think the ce were sitting in is as splendid as anything in B City?" Yin Changhe took a sip of his tea. He said: "If Mr. Sun says so, there must indeed be a legendary story." Sun Jingan nced at Su Ruanruan. He said to his guest: "The person running this ce is Mu Jiu! But this youngdy managed to get Mu Jiu to sign over twenty percent of the shares without spending a dime, Changhe, wouldnt you say she is impressive?" Yin Changhe was very supportive: "I really couldnt tell!" Su Ruanruan watched them as if they were putting on a big y, a faint smile on her lips. She said: "Mr. Sun called me here, you didnt just want to praise me, did you?" Sun Jingan ignored her. He continued speaking to Yin Changhe: "Even Jingyan couldnt escape! Now things between us are very unpleasant." Yin Changhe initially did not take it seriously. Now, however, he began to seriously size up Su Ruanruan... Chapter 455: Madam Yin, Very Supportive to Her Husband!

Chapter 455: Chapter 455: Madam Yin, Very Supportive to Her Husband!

Yin Changhe sized up Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan suddenly spoke up: "I wonder, Mr. Sun, what is your purpose for having Dean Yin meet with me?" Sun Jingan was quite interested: "Do you know him?" "How could I not,ing from a medical family in City B?" Su Ruanruan sat down. She gazed at Dean Yin and said: "I met your esteemed wife at Young Master Zhous engagement banquet the year beforest!" Yin Changhe was surprised. Su Ruanruan continued: "Ive heard that ever since Dean Yin married Miss Qin, the hospital has been thriving! It seems Miss Qin brings good fortune to her husband." Yin Changhe thought of his wife. His demeanor was gentle. It seemed he was very much in love. Su Ruanruan then asked Sun Jingan: "Mr. Sun, I assume you called me here to meet with Dean Yin, right?" "Correct!" Sun Jingan was straightforward. He said: "I have high regard for you! Once you return from studying medicine abroad, join United Hospital." Su Ruanruan offered a faint smile. She countered: "Is it regard, or is it surveince?" Sun Jingan sipped his tea nonchntly... He thought Su Ruanruan would refuse. Unexpectedly. Su Ruanruan agreed: "I ept Mr. Suns proposal." Sun Jingan paused for a moment. He hadnt expected this child to be so clever. Her intelligence, beyond the ordinary. Sun Jingan masked his emotions. He said with a smile to Yin Changhe: "What do you think, Changhe? Will you give me this face?" Yin Changhe merely thought he wanted to control Su Ruanruan. He readily agreed. Besides, he had his own desires. Sensing the situation, Yin Changhe knew Sun Jingan had more to say, so he excused himself first. After he left. Sun Jingan nced at Su Ruanruan. He said: "Dont think that just because we have amon goal, Ill agree to your affair with Jingyan." Su Ruanruan smiled faintly. She lowered her eyes and sighed softly: "Mr. Suns game is quite impressive! Comparable to Boss Yan." Sun Jingan didnt get angry but instead chuckled. He said: "Its the first time a junior has dared to mock me!" Well, he would do it for Jingyans sake. But Su Ruanruan stated: "The Sun Family is of high status! I dare not im to be a junior to Mr. Sun." She called Qin Chao in and ordered softly: "Please charge Mr. Suns expenses to my ount." Su Ruanruan stood up. She said to Sun Jingan: "I will leave Jiang City on the fifth day of the month." She paused: "Rest assured, Mr. Sun." Su Ruanruan left. Sun Jingan remained seated... He had immersed in the art of power for decades. Never had he faced such a tough situation. He greatly admired this child, knowing she was a worthy match for Jingyan. But, from ancient times, it has been hard to fulfill both loyalty and filial piety. ... When Bao Jingyan arrived. Only Sun Jingan was left, sipping tea in the private room. Qin Chao didnt dare to make a sound, standing by his side. When Bao Jingyan pushed the door open, Sun Jingan merely nodded slightly. He spoke leisurely: "Jingyan, yourete." But Bao Jingyan didnt appear rash. He sat down and nodded at Qin Chao. Immediately, Qin Chao poured him a cup of fragrant tea... Sun Jingan mocked: "Ah, not drinking alcohol? Since when have you be so self-cultivating?" Bao Jingyan scoffed. He said: "I now have a family! Naturally, I should be restrained." Sun Jingan also scoffed. He eyed his most favored nephew and said: "The youngdy is more decisive than you." He took a sip of tea: "Shes leaving on the fifth day!" He looked as if he was enjoying the misfortune: "Besides, youve already made a child, would someone like her wait for you? Jingyan, I advise you not to dream." Bao Jingyan replied: "Theres still time! Uncle, why hurry to conclusions?" Sun Jingan threw a cup at him. He pointed at Bao Jingyan and said: "You really think youre that much in demand, dont you? Thedy has her own suitors, do you know how many there are? Do you think she will shamelessly agree to be a stepmother?" Bao Jingyan stood up. Sun Jingan stopped him: "Where are you going?" "Going home to take care of the child," Bao Jingyan said as if it were the most natural thing in the world. Chapter 456: The True Identity of Bao Jiaren 1

Chapter 456: Chapter 456: The True Identity of Bao Jiaren 1

New Years Eve. The Gu Family has the tradition of making dumplings. Mrs. Gu personally takes charge, with Su Ruanruan assisting her. As mother and daughter were chatting, the housekeeper came in. He said, "Young Master Bao has sent over a festival gift, should we ept it or not?" A festival gift? Mrs. Gu thought it was a thank you gift from Bao Ziqi, only to find out upon questioning that it was sent by Bao Jingyan. It was still a gift for her father-inw. Mrs. Gu was both amused and annoyed. And heartbroken. She said to her daughter, "If it werent for that child, I would dare to ept it." The festival gift was delivered by Old Zhao. Su Ruanruan asked him to take it back. But Old Zhao said, "Young Master Jingyan has another item to give to Miss Su." He took out a velvet box and handed it to Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan guessed what it was. She gently opened it. Indeed, it was the pair of in engagement rings. When she left initially, she had taken them off and left them at the vi. In a low voice, Old Zhao told her, "Young Master Jingyan said he has not forgotten the past! He also asked me to tell Miss Su that she once promised the olddy to trust him, and to not forget that too." After speaking, Old Zhao ran off quickly. The pair of in rings stayed with Su Ruanruan. She walked upstairs. Stayed alone for a long time... Later, Bao Jingyan called her. He spoke tenderly, "Ruanruan, Happy New Year!" Su Ruanruan did not respond. From his end, the sound of a baby babbling... and Aunt Li teasing the child could be heard. Such a scene. Su Ruanruan had once imagined it. Unknowingly, her tears flowed down her face. Bao Jingyan spoke softly, "Ruanruan, do you want to meet her?" Su Ruanruan sniffled. She asked him, "Bao Jingyan, what are you trying to do?" His voice lowered even more, "Dont cry, okay?" Su Ruanruans voice was nasally as she said, "Bao Jingyan, you bastard." She abruptly hung up the phone. She leaned on the sofa, tears streaming down her face. Back then, when she broke up with him. She had never cried like this before... Her crying rmed her family. The Gu Family members came to see her. Su Ruanruan leaned into her mothers arms, crying confusedly. She herself, was still just a child. Mrs. Gu thought it was Bao Jingyan who had upset her, and angrily cursed Bao Jingyan for not keeping his lower half in check... Su Ruanruan calmed down. She told Mrs. Gu, "Mom, I need to step out." ... The Gu Family was all shocked. New Years Eve, almost eight oclock. Where did this child want to go? Gu Ze took the car keys: "Ill take Ruanruan." Mrs. Gu was surprised. Chen Anan took a coat for Su Ruanruan to wear. Buttoned it carefully. She then told Gu Ze, "Drive safely!" Gu Ze nodded. He lit a cigarette, then told Chen Anan, "If Ie backte, just stay here overnight, Ill take you home in the morning." Chen Anan hummed in agreement. She saw her siblings out. Mr. and Mrs. Gu Yuanpei also stood at the parking area. Mrs. Gu thought about the afternoons festival gift, then about her daughters unusual behavior. She said to her husband, "Looks like we cant break them apart anymore." Gu Yuanpei hugged his wife. ... Forty minutester. Gu Ze parked the car in front of Bao Jingyans vi. He ruffled her long hair, whispering, "Dont be afraid of Bao Jingyan, our Gu Family isnt scared either!" He added, "But he really is quite a jerk! Ruanruan, what did you see in him back then?" The car door opened. Bao Jingyan stood outside. Severe cold weather. He wore only a thin sweater, with wool trousers below. He gently pulled Su Ruanruan out of the car. Su Ruanruan was irritated, "I can walk by myself." Chapter 457: The True Identity of Bao Jiaren 2

Chapter 457: Chapter 457: The True Identity of Bao Jiaren 2

During the New Year, Gu Ze didnt want to fight. He said, "Ille to pick her up tomorrow morning." But Bao Jingyan said, "Ill send her back early in the morning." Gu Ze didnt say anything and just drove away. The deserted parking lot. Bao Jingyan asked softly, "Have you been crying?" Su Ruanruans eyes reddened again. He continued, "I havent embraced anyone else, why are you crying?" Su Ruanruans voice was frail, "Hows the child?" "On the second floor, has a bit of a fever, Auntie Li is taking care of him," his voice was very gentle. It seemed as if the separation of the past year never happened. It seemed as if this moment was ordinary. Su Ruanruan walked towards the hall. But her hand was grabbed by Bao Jingyan. He looked into her eyes and said, "Ruanruan, Ive missed you a lot." Su Ruanruan lowered her gaze, whispering softly, "But youre also a real jerk." "If Im not a jerk, would you agree to Sun Jingans deal?" He gently touched her cheek and murmured, "Ruanruan, I know him better than anyone!" His uncle didnt approve of their rtionship. Yet he greatly admired Ruanruan. He wanted to take her under his wing. Su Ruanruan didnt want to talk about these things; she wanted to see the little guy. Bao Jingyan took her to the second floor. In the eastern part of the second floor, they had set up a baby room. Pink and delicate. Little Bao Jiaren was sleeping in her crib, Auntie Li was looking after her. Auntie Li was very excited to see Su Ruanruan, "Miss Su is here." Su Ruanruan felt a sting. But the child was sick now, nothing was more important than that. She checked over the child. Luckily, the fever was just over 38 degrees. The medicine prescribed by the doctor was also fine. She helped the little one with physical cooling methods and after about half an hour. Little Bao Jiarens temperature returned to normal. Auntie Li was overjoyed, "Miss Su is really capable." Su Ruanruan nced at her, and Auntie Li felt a bit uneasy. Bao Jingyan said, "Go prepare the New Years Eve dinner, Old Zhao and his wife cant cook as well as you." Auntie Li received a new task. She ran off swiftly. The quiet baby room, now left only Bao Jingyan and Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan still hadnt calmed down. She gently stroked the delicate little baby. Looked carefully and indeed as Ziqi said, the face shape and nose resembled hers. Su Ruanruan said softly, "The olddy and Ziqi must have noticed, right?" Bao Jingyan embraced her from behind. He murmured, "The olddy did notice; Ziqi knows me well enough." The next words, Su Ruanruan didnt want to hear. He intended to make things clearer. She turned around. Her slender finger touched his lips. Separated for a year. Such a little contact was enough to stir emotions. Bao Jingyan caught her finger, murmuring lowly, "Okay, I wont talk." He pulled her into his embrace, holding her tightly. "Do you miss me?" he whispered in her ear. "I dont," Su Ruanruan stubbornly replied. Bao Jingyan didnt say anything. He carried her into the master bedroom. Inside, it was dimly lit; he didnt turn on the light. Su Ruanruan was ced on the sofa, continuously pressed about the question of missing or not. "I dont," her voice was fractured. She felt wronged. She was only 20 at the New Year, and out of the blue... Since then, she had anchors to consider. Bao Jingyan kissed her. Intermittently... His voice raspy, he said, "You dont want me, do you really want to watch me embrace another woman?" He did all sorts of excessive things to her... She trembled in his arms. Completely overpowered. She whispered a tearful dont want... But how could she resist him? Bao Jingyan didnt concern himself, he only cared about her. After a long while, everything settled down. In the dimness, he found her fingers. Their fingers interlocked tightly. Chapter 458: The True Identity of Bao Jiaren 3

Chapter 458: Chapter 458: The True Identity of Bao Jiaren 3

In the dimness. Su Ruanruan was still trembling slightly. It took her a long while before she said in a low voice, "Dont think for a second that Ive forgiven you! What youve done is truly despicable." Bao Jingyans voice was deep and hoarse, "I know." Then he added, "But if given another chance, I would still do the same." Because he knew her well. Ruanruan was prideful; treated like that, she would not look back. Lil Jiaren, the only thread holding her back. He was so unabashedly justified about it. Naturally, Su Ruanruan was furious. She pushed him, but he felt aroused. Separated for a year, now she was tender and fragrant. He kissed her, somewhat impatient to do so. But Su Ruanruan would not yield. She felt wronged. Resting against him, she said softly, "I still havent forgiven you now, dont you dare..." Her voice trembled towards the end. Although Bao Jingyan desired her greatly, he saw the shimmer in the corner of her eyes. She cried. In that instant, all his thoughts vanished, leaving only heartache. He held her in his arms, consoling her like a child, "Stop crying, it hurts me to see you cry, okay?" Su Ruanruan thought of what he did. She bit down on his arm. Hard enough to draw blood. Bao Jingyan was in pain, but he still gently embraced her. Su Ruanruan cried uncontrobly in his arms. She said, "Bao Jingyan, I hate you so much." "I know, I know... its all my fault!" His tone was gentle, like a husband coaxing his little wife. Su Ruanruan was not appeased. She asked him to turn on the light. But once the light was bright, she regretted it. After what had happened before, she looked quite a mess. Su Ruanruan was dignified. She turned her back to tidy up her dress, but those tiny, rice-grain-sized buttons were too slippery. She couldnt fasten them properly. "Let me!" Bao Jingyan came from behind, wrapped his arms around her, and reached in front to fasten the buttons for her. His movements were skilled. After buttoning up, he couldnt resist embracing her tightly, his voice hoarse by her ear, "Dont be mad anymore, okay?" Su Ruanruan silently pushed him away. She went to check on Little Jiaren. Bao Jingyan went to the bathroom to tend to himself before following her. Little Jiaren was sleeping soundly. Su Ruanruan watched her infatuatedly. Bao Jingyan entered, she nced at him. He had changed into a fresh set of clothes. Beige casual pants and a grey turtleneck wool sweater. His facial features crisp and distinct. Radiating a vigorous charm. Su Ruanruan took an extra look. He whispered in her ear, "The previous clothes got dirty because of you." Su Ruanruan ignored his nonsense and simply said, "Give me all the documents about her birth." She was a mother. Of course, she had to take responsibility. Bao Jingyan was somewhat moved and wanted to say something. Su Ruanruan stopped him. She said, "You are you, and she is she... I told you I havent forgiven you yet." Bao Jingyan pocketed his hands. He smiled and said gently, "Understood." Su Ruanruan red at him. Later, they ended up having the New Years Eve dinner together. Mr. and Mrs. Zhao, Auntie Li, Bao Jingyan... all were familiar faces from the past. Now, there was an addition of a child. Auntie Li was so happy she was moved to tears. Su Ruanruan held her hand, "Havent I returned?" Auntie Li was reluctant to let her go, "You are leaving so soon! And the child is still so small." Su Ruanruan was silent. She was determined to leave. Partly because of the Sun Family, and partly because she truly needed to learn more. There were still things she had to do in City B. Zhou Wan was not dead. Everything started because of her. For her, Su Peiming made mistakes and lost his life. Sun Weilian also died because of her. So many suffered for years due to her selfishness. This debt, she wanted to make her repay it doubly! Chapter 459: The True Identity of Bao Jiaren 4

Chapter 459: Chapter 459: The True Identity of Bao Jiaren 4

Su Ruanruan could hardly bear to leave the child behind. She raised her ss. She toasted Mr. and Mrs. Zhao and Auntie Li. Mr. and Mrs. Zhao and Auntie Li were distraught. Su Ruanruan said, "I dont trust many people! Please take good care of Little Jiaren for me." Mrs. Zhao had received her favors before. They nearly fell short when buying a house. It was Miss Su who secretly gave them money to help out. When their son got married, Miss Su gave them a generous gift. It allowed them to save face in front of their inws. Miss Su treated them well, respected them as individuals. Just as it was with Mr. and Mrs. Zhao, Auntie Li felt even more so. They epted the toast. Mrs. Zhao added, "Young Master Jingyan also has important matters to attend to; although we might not be of great help, we do have experience in taking care of babies." Su Ruanruan felt relieved. Tonight was New Years Eve. She stayed with Little Jiaren, seeing her through another year. Deep into the night, Bao Jingyan asked her to go back to bed, but she refused. After being ridiculed by the Sun Family, she was unwilling to share that bed with him again... But Bao Jingyan did not lose his temper; he stayed with her, watching over their Little Jiaren. ... No matter how long the night, it alwayses to an end. Early in the morning at five. Before dawn. Su Ruanruan gently stroked Little Jiarens hair, saying softly, "I have to go now." She bent down and kissed the little one, kissed her for a long time. When she looked up, the corners of her eyes were moist. Bao Jingyan put a coat on her. She didnt want his closeness, but he said softly in a scolding tone, "Stop it! I am about to leave, not sure when Ill see you again." Su Ruanruan paused for a moment. Bao Jingyan embraced her. He pleaded softly, "Ruanruan, dont make me wait too long..." Su Ruanruan was in a daze as she remembered. Bao Jingyan was thirty years old this year. He escorted her back to the Gu Family home while it was still dark. The Gu Family members were also up all night, waiting in the hall. Bao Jingyan personally apologized and followed Gu Yuanpei into the study. When he came out, there were two red p marks on his face. Madam Gu was both angry and heartbroken. She whisperedints to her husband, "With Jingyans status, how could you hit him like that? Couldnt you leave some dignity for the child, he is a father after all." Gu Yuanpei sneered, "Youre already pitying him before hes even be our son-inw?" Madam Gu couldnt be bothered with him. She looked for medicine for Bao Jingyan. Bao Jingyan was in a very good mood, saying, "Dad was right to hit me; I deserved it." Gu Ze sneered too, "Our Gu Family hasnt acknowledged you yet, and you already call him dad." Shameless! His sister is beautiful and outstanding, how many people want to marry her? Why is she so fixated on Bao Jingyan? Its only because hes despicable and shameless! Bao Jingyan didnt stay long and left first. Madam Gu, holding the medicine, went downstairs and sighed when she saw the person had left. She asked Su Ruanruan, "What are your ns?" Su Ruanruan replied softly, "Im nning to return to Britain for the first time." Madam Gu agreed. She said, "A small impatience can ruin great ns! Rest assured... we will look after the child for you and not let her suffer." ... The fourth day of the lunar new year. Su Ruanruan went to see Old Madam Mu. Knowing she was leaving, Mu Jiu set aside all his matters and rushed over. When he arrived, Su Ruanruan was about to leave. Mu Jiu couldnt bear it and wanted to see her off. Su Ruanruan thought for a moment and agreed, saying, "My car is parked at the intersection ahead, Brother Jiu can walk with me for a bit." Old Master Mu wiped his face. He was still quite moved. On this day, light snowkes drifted through the sky. Soft and gentle. Walking side by side with her, Mu Jiu couldnt help saying, "Ruanruan, weve never walked together like this before." Su Ruanruan hummed in acknowledgment. She said, "Brother Jiu, youre turning thirty-two this New Year, do you have any ns?" Chapter 460: Four Years Apart! The Eve of Returning Home

Chapter 460: Chapter 460: Four Years Apart! The Eve of Returning Home

Upon hearing this, Lord Mu Jius face stiffened slightly. This past year, hed dismissed all the women by his side, not a single hen remained around him. He didnt believe Ruanruan wasnt aware of it. Of course, Su Ruanruan knew. She was grateful to Lord Mu Jiu, and there was familial affection, too. But she couldnt hold him back. She said to him, "Theres something Ive never mentioned to you, Brother Jiu. Ive kept quiet because I knew Sister Song Wei had feelings for you, and it seemed awkward. But now, seeing her getting along quite well with eldest brother, I think its necessary to talk to you about it." Lord Mu Jiu felt ufortable. He grumbled, "What could be more important than our stroll?" Su Ruanruan chuckled. She said, "Jiarou likes you." Lord Mu Jiu, who had been so righteous, suddenly wilted. Su Ruanruan smiled faintly, "Dont pretend you dont know, Brother Jiu! That year, I saw you kissing her in the hallway." Su Ruanruan reflected for a moment. She said, "Brother Jiu, you had feelings, too." Its just he was too obsessed with himself to repress them. When ites to affairs between men and women, Lord Mu Jiu was always all or nothing. Very open-minded. But when Su Ruanruan brought it up... it made him restless! The girl Gu Jiarou was still not fully grown. Lord Jiu would never admit he had thoughts about her. Now Lord Jiu was irritable, and refused to continue their walk. Su Ruanruan then took his arm, forcing him to go on. "Youre being unreasonable, Ruanruan!" Lord Jiuined with displeasure, "Youre more demanding than my own parents! Even I, who never takes orders, am telling you this." Su Ruanruan softened her voice, "Im not telling you to go pursue her!" At the end of the road, Su Ruanruan stopped. She said seriously to Lord Mu Jiu, "If Brother Jiu has feelings for her, then cherish her! If you have no such thoughts, then pretend I never said anything today." Lord Mu Jius expression became solemn. He pondered carefully. This past year, the girl Gu Jiarou indeed visited his mother often. Whenever Ruanruan sent things back, it was always her who delivered them. He wasnt oblivious; he simply didnt want to consider this possibility. Su Ruanruan watched him with a smile. Lord Mu Jiu spoke gravely, "I promise you! No matter what, Jiarou is a good girl, and I wont do anything to hurt her." Su Ruanruan nodded. Lord Jiu couldnt bear to let her go. He embraced her, murmuring, "We still have to expand our business to all over the country. Girl, Brother Jiu is waiting for you to return." Su Ruanruan hugged him back. She advised him to think thrice before acting. ... On the fifth day, Su Ruanruan took Bao Ziqi and Bao Jingyuan back to Britain. Bao Jingyan also came to see them off. Auntie Li followed beside him, holding the little darling in her arms. Su Ruanruans eyes were tearful. She couldnt resist, and hugged the little darling. Bao Mingyuan was smoking in the distance. He said to his second son, "Ah, women are so tender-hearted! Even Jingyan cant control his health, yet you see Ruanruan quite likes the child born to someone else." Bao Ziqi gave him a deep look. ... Su Ruanruan returned to Britain to continue her studies. For four years, she barely returned to Jiangcheng. Only in the third year, when the little darling was severely ill, did she secretly return to her country. She stayed only one night. That night, she barely closed her eyes. At dawn, Bao Jingyan took her to the airport. They didnt say anything - he just held her hand... Su Ruanruan cried bitterly. Ultimately, it was very hard for her to leave. At the age of 24, Su Ruanruanpleted her studies in Britain. That year, Gu Ze married Chen Anan. Su Ruanruan packed her luggage, preparing to return home. Bao Jingyuan felt insecure. She bounced into Su Ruanruans room, "Ruanruan, what about this ce?" Chapter 461 Mrs. Gu Ze is Pregnant

Chapter 461: Chapter 461 Mrs. Gu Ze is Pregnant

Su Ruanruan casually replied, "Lets keep it for now." Bao Jingyuan followed closely behind her. She helped with the packing in a ttering manner, and then asked cautiously, "After returning to the country, will you no longer want me and second brother?" Su Ruanruan paused in her movements. She nced at the doorway. Bao Ziqi was sitting in his wheelchair, watching her. Su Ruanruan lightly smiled, "I n to work at a hospital in B city! That hospital has an excellent rehabilitation center, very suitable for Ziqi." She pretend to say nonchntly, "But Jingyuan, you probably want to stay in Jiangcheng, right? After all, Uncle Bao is there!" Bao Jingyuan thickened her face. She said, "I want to take care of second brother!" Su Ruanruan hummed, "If you want to follow me, you have to listen to me." "I will, I will... Im the most obedient," Bao Jingyuan clung to her arm. She pressed her little face against it. At the doorway, Bao Ziqi slightly smiled. Then Su Ruanruan peeled her off. She said, "Hurry up and pack! The flight is early tomorrow morning." Bao Jingyuan immediately bounced back to her room. She was in high spirits. Su Ruanruan shook her head. Bao Ziqi wheeled himself in, saying, "I heard that Bao Jingyan has quite arge business in B city." Su Ruanruan acknowledged with a hum. Bao Ziqi continued, "Actually, you dont have to take me and Jingyuan with you, you should..." Su Ruanruan put down what she was holding. She squatted beside Bao Ziqis wheelchair and said gently, "If you and Jingyuan are willing, you can always stay with me." Bao Ziqis Adams apple bobbed. His voice hoarse, he said, "He wont mind?" Su Ruanruan smiled, "You and Jingyuan are his brother and sister, he has no choice but to not mind." In fact, Su Ruanruan knew. That Bao Jingyan was very supportive of her taking Ziqi and Jingyuan with her. At least, his family was still intact. After the conversation, Bao Ziqi nodded reservedly. He said he would go pack as well. ... The day Su Ruanruan returned to the country. Coincided with Gu Zes wedding. There was little time. Right after the nended, Mrs. Gu picked up Su Ruanruan and took her to the hotel for styling. Bao Jingyuan and Bao Ziqi went back to the Bao Mansion first. Naturally, it was quite lively. Inside the ck limousine. Mrs. Gu was dignified and beautiful. She quietly spoke to Su Ruanruan, "Anan is pregnant." Su Ruanruan was somewhat surprised, "My brother is not an imprudent person." Mrs. Gu smiled with content, "They have been together for several years, Gu Ze probably wants to settle down, which is why theyre having a child. I see that Anan doesnt mind about the timing of the marriage; she has a very gentle temperament." Su Ruanruan was also very happy. She said, "A child taught by her will definitely have a good personality." Mrs. Guughed, "What if the child takes after your brother, no amount of teaching will be of use." Su Ruanruan thenughed. An hourter, the car stopped in the hotel parking lot. Su Ruanruan met Chen Anan. Two months along, and her pregnancy wasnt showing. Gu Ze, however, was extremely cautious and didnt allow her to wear high heels, personally ordering a pair of mid-heeled shoes for her. Thankfully, the dress covered this up so it was not noticeable. Su Ruanruan had prepared a gift. She handed it to Chen Anan and said with a smile, "Open it and see." Chen Anan opened the velvet box. Insidey a pair of emerald rings. The design was unique and very prestigious. Su Ruanruan whispered, "Lets creation, a unique model in the whole world. You and my brother can wear them as a couple to parties." Chen Anan couldnt resist trying one on. Indeed beautiful, and itplemented her skin tone perfectly. She hugged Su Ruanruan, "This gift is truly precious." She nced at Gu Ze, and then said softly, "I also have a gift for you." Su Ruanruan smiled slightly. At that moment, the door to the brides dressing room opened A ridiculously pretty little girl ran in. She wore a floral dress. A little oval-faced beauty. Following her, was Bao Jingyan... Chapter 462: His Ruanruan, Grown into a Woman

Chapter 462: Chapter 462: His Ruanruan, Grown into a Woman

Bao Jingyan stared at Su Ruanruan. His eyebrows and eyes were fully expressive, and the corners of his mouth slightly tilted upward. Carrying a bit of allure. She wore a beige knitted dress. Tied with a coffee-colored slim belt. Her waist-length brown hair slightly curled at the ends. Very womanly. Bao Jingyans Adams apple moved uncontrobly up and down. In four years, he had only seen her once. Now, his Ruanruan had grown into a mature woman. While he was sizing up Su Ruanruan, Su Ruanruan was also ncing at him. But she only spoke to Jiarou. Jiarou recognized her, hugging her leg and calling her "sister." Su Ruanruan squatted down. She hugged the soft little thing. Jiarou was only five years old. Her body smelled sweet, carrying a hint of milk. Su Ruanruans heart felt a bit soft and also a bit sorrowful. She kissed the little one and took out a big box from her suitcase. Her voice gentle: "A birthday gift." Jiarou opened it to look. It was a set of Snow White crystal figurines. She especially liked them and nestled in Su Ruanruans arms. Unable to let go. Su Ruanruan watched the little one, almost unable to take her eyes off her. Bao Jingyan watched mother and daughter almost greedily and asked softly, "Not leaving?" Su Ruanruan hummed in affirmation. She said, "Ill report to United Hospital in City B next week." This was Sun Jingans arrangement. Bao Jingyan knew about it long in advance. He nodded, saying, "I often happen to be in City B too." Su Ruanruan bit her tender lips, indifferent. So Bao Jingyan said to Jiarou, "Sister bought a vi in City B. I heard there are lots of toys inside. Your aunt and little uncle are preparing to live there." Jiarous eyes twinkled. She said, "Then I want to live there too." Su Ruanruan was in a dilemma. She nced at Bao Jingyan. He did it on purpose! Bao Jingyan picked up Jiarou and said to her, "When we get to City B, you can stay at your sisters house." He casually added, "Unless sister wants to date." Jiarou asked, "Whats dating?" Bao Jingyan pointed at Gu Ze and Chen Anan, "Like them, getting married and having kids, thats called dating." Jiarou uttered an "Oh." She blinked at her dad, "Then why did I pop out from the cracks of a rock? Didnt you and mom date?" Bao Jingyan coughed lightly. He said, "Thats because your mother is a wooden doll." Jiarou looked again at Su Ruanruan. She said, "Sister is pretty, daddy and sister should date." Su Ruanruan felt a bit warm in the face. Bao Jingyan watched her, his gaze deep. It was Mrs. Gu who broke the awkwardness, she said, "The wedding is about to start, you should go get ready." Su Ruanruan hummed in acknowledgment. She took Jiarou with her. Tonight the main focus was on Chen Anan. Su Ruanruan was very low-key. She wore a Chanel 2022 new model. Thin straps, light gray gauze. The dress flowed elegantly. Her long hair was done up, and she wore high-heeled shoes. Enhancing her womanly charm. She was seated at a different table from Bao Jingyan, about two tables away. He kept watching her. Su Ruanruan pretended not to notice. To her surprise, Bao Jingse also came. She had someone with her, a recently very popr male celebrity in the entertainment industry. Gu Jiarou quietly told Su Ruanruan, "Bao Jingse single-handedly pushed his fame. She spent a lot of money!" Su Ruanruan gave a faint smile. Gu Jiarou also sighed heavily and asked, "Ruanruan, do you still keep in touch with her?" Su Ruanruan shook her head. Her contact with Bao Jingyan was solely because of Jiarou. Let alone Bao Jingse! Later she went to wash her hands in the restroom and encountered Bao Jingse. Bao Jingse watched her. Su Ruanruan nodded to her very gracefully. Bao Jingse suddenly asked her, "Have you and my elder brother not reconciled yet?" Chapter 463: Ruanruan, Don鈥檛 Leave Tonight

Chapter 463: Chapter 463: Ruanruan, Dont Leave Tonight

Su Ruanruan looked at Bao Jingse through the mirror. She gave a faint smile. She said, "Its not about whether he and I reconcile." As she spoke, she turned around: "Theres no need for me to mention the status of the Sun Family, right?" Bao Jingses face was pale. She whispered an apology. Back then, her heart was filled with hatred. Su Peiming indirectly caused her mothers death, she couldnt ept Su Ruanruan. At that time, she forgot how Ruanruan had once pulled her out of the abyss. Later, Gu Ze broke up with her. She tasted pain. Only then did she realize how cruel she had been. Bao Jingse apologized again. Su Ruanruan shook her head. She said, "No need to apologize! Jingse, just live a good life." She brushed past her and left. Bao Jingse stood there. Her whole body felt cold. She watched Su Ruanruans retreating figure, reminiscent of the past. In the past, Ruanruan was very close to her. Now, they were like strangers. In the afternoon, Jingyuan returned home, constantly talking about how impressive Ruanruan was. Ruanruan had made her food. Ruanruan had taken her out. Ruanruan said she bought a big vi in City B and invited her and her elder brother to live together. Bao Jingyuan spoke of these with great excitement. Listening to this, she felt an indescribable feeling inside her. ... The wedding was over. Su Ruanruan went to Bao Jingyans vi. She wanted to see the children. Inside the vi, the lights were bright. Aunt Li, hearing of her visit, was very pleased and prepared some supper early. When Su Ruanruans car arrived, she wiped her hands and ran out: "Miss Su is here." Su Ruanruan hadnt changed her clothes, just draped in a coat. She asked Aunt Li, "Wheres the darling?" "Shes taking a bath!" Aunt Li smiled, "The master is also upstairs." Su Ruanruan nodded. She walked into the hall and towards the second floor. Just as she reached the second floor, she heard a child singing... [Spring flowers bloom] [Miss Stone bounces out] [Daddy doesnt hurt Mommy doesnt love] ... Su Ruanruan felt angry. She was angry at Bao Jingyan. What was he teaching the children... Su Ruanruan entered the childrens room and was even more upset. In the bathroom, the little darling continued her high-energy output... Outside, their father sat on a little pink sofa, reading an English evening newspaper. He was still in his wedding clothes. Pure white shirt. Velvet suit. Four years had passed, and his facial features were a bit colder. Instead, it added a somewhat forbidden allure. Su Ruanruan didnt care about his appearance; she reproached him, "How could you tell the darling she popped out of a stone?" Bao Jingyan had known early on that she woulde. He was waiting for her! He folded the newspaper. Looking up, he watched her quietly. His gaze was bare and full of aggression. His voice was husky: "My Ruanruan has grown up." Bao Jingyan reached out and pulled her; she fell onto hisp. Her coat slid off onto the carpet. Only leaving her strapless dress. Her bare shoulders were smooth. Her skin seemed delicate enough to break. Bao Jingyan was a normal man, having restrained himself for many years. At this moment, his emotions stirred naturally. He asked her softly, "Why did you agree toe tonight? Arent you afraid I wont hold back?" Su Ruanruan leaned on his shoulder. She turned her face and said, "Im sleeping with the darling." "The darling wants us to date and have children." His voice was low and husky, obviously struggling to restrain himself. Su Ruanruan refused to yield. She said spitefully, "Then go find her several brothers and sisters from the stone cracks." Bao Jingyan chuckled softly, flipping her hair gently. Her brown hair spread out... Compared to before, she was truly charming. Her eyes had lost their naivety, revealing a hint of allure. He held her slender waist, lowered his head. Unable to restrain himself, he leaned in to kiss her... Chapter 464: Ruanruan, Don鈥檛 Leave Tonight 2

Chapter 464: Chapter 464: Ruanruan, Dont Leave Tonight 2

Su Ruanruan resisted him. She whispered, "Dont..." Bao Jingyan, somewhat relentless, held her hand and asked huskily, "Ruanruan, what should I do?" Su Ruanruans face flushed. She demurely turned her face away, "Thats your problem." She silently stood up. Bao Jingyan did not stop her. He knew she was strong-willed and couldnt get over something in her heart. So, he stood up and hugged her from behind. "I wont touch you, okay?" Su Ruanruan slightly struggled. But since he kept his hands and feet proper, she silently consented. Although they had been away from each other for a long time, they couldnt indulge freely. Even a simple hug was profoundly touching. Bao Jingyan enveloped her from behind. Her frame was delicate and close to perfect. Bao Jingyan couldnt help but murmur near her ear, "Havent you thought of me all these years? I dont believe it!" "I havent," Su Ruanruan stubbornly said. Bao Jingyan fell silent for a moment. He whispered softly, "I didnt n to let you know about Jiarens background so soon, but I was afraid youd cry at night." He sighed lightly, "Ruanruan, I cant bear it." Su Ruanruans heart softened. Just as she was about to speak, a wet little figure ran out of the bathroom. Big head, small body. Droplets hanging from hair tips. Only wrapped in a towel. She ran to Bao Jingyan and looked up curiously. Little Jiaren muttered to herself, "Daddy, why are you hugging sister?" Then she suddenly turned on the TV. She found an episode of "Animal World." Teacher Zhaos voice was rich and emotional [Spring has arrived, and everything revives! Its time for the animals to...] Bao Jingyan lost all thought. He went over expressionlessly. With a p, he turned off the TV. "Bao Jiaren, dont watch all this nonsense in the future." Little Jiaren looked disheartened. That sad expression was heart-wrenching. Su Ruanruan felt pity. She carried the little one to a small bed. While wiping the childs body, she said to Bao Jingyan, "Whats wrong with watching Animal World for children?" Bao Jingyan raised an eyebrow. He looked at her with a hint of amusement, "You really are safeguarding her!" Su Ruanruans face reddened with frustration. She ignored him. She dressed little Jiaren in a one-piece pajama and used a childs hair dryer to dry her hair. Little Jiarens hair was slightly curly. Fluffed up, it looked very cute. Su Ruanruan couldnt resist giving her a kiss. Little Jiareny on the bed, soft and tender, "I want to hear a fairy tale." Su Ruanruans heart nearly melted. At her request. She leaned on the headboard, reading a book to little Jiaren. The dim yellow light cast down on her. Her features were delicate, her eyes and brows captivating. She was still wearing a dress. Ethereally romantic. Bao Jingyans throat moved. He went out to the corridor and smoked a cigarette. Only when his chest was filled with painful tightness from the smoke did he feel real. After two cigarettes. Su Ruanruan came out. Bao Jingyans voice was hoarse, "You really do look like a mom." Su Ruanruan did not forgive him. She softly asked him, "Do you have pajamas?" The dress she was wearing was ultimately ufortable. Bao Jingyan did not respond. He just looked at her with his dark, deep gaze. When Su Ruanruan was about to give up, he finally spoke, "Your things are all here! Wash in the master bedroom, but dont wake the child." Su Ruanruan thought for a moment. She agreed. Bao Jingyan led her to the master bedroom. He was very gentlemanly, waiting for her to enter the dressing room before retreating to the living room. ... Su Ruanruan opened the wardrobe. Indeed, nothing had changed. Her previously worn clothes were well-kept, hanging there. She chose a white belt robe. Over these years, Su Ruanruan had grown a bit taller. She was now 166 cm, wearing her old clothes. Her curves more apparent. Very attractive. Chapter 465: Ruanruan, Don鈥檛 Leave Tonight 3

Chapter 465: Chapter 465: Ruanruan, Dont Leave Tonight 3

She dared not linger in Bao Jingyans bedroom, greeting him briefly before intending to leave. Bao Jingyan called her back. He spoke earnestly, "I have something to discuss with you." Su Ruanruan had no choice but to stay now. She sat down on the sofa, grabbed a towel, and began to wipe her slightly damp hair. Bao Jingyan poured two sses of red wine. He sat down opposite her and asked softly, "Heading to City B next week?" Su Ruanruan hummed in affirmation. Bao Jingyan continued, "What about Jia Ren? When you return, you cant still let her live without a mom, can you?" At this moment, Su Ruanruan didnt want to rehash the past with him. She wanted to give little Jia Ren the best. She thought for a moment and said, "Ziqi mentioned that your business in City B is quiterge, and you often visit. If youre in City B, I can go see her." Bao Jingyan held the wine ss. Suddenly, he chuckled. He asked her, "Why do you have to bring up Ziqi when talking about our issues? Are you afraid Im going to eat you up?" Su Ruanruans face flushed red. She put the towel down and said softly, "Show some respect." Bao Jingyan teased her, "How have I disrespected you? Is it respectful if I im to be pure and free of desire in your presence?" Su Ruanruan cursed him as a scoundrel! Bao Jingyan murmured gently, "Still the same as before, blushing at the slightest thing." He didnt make it difficult for her. He fetched some documents from the study and ced them in front of her. Su Ruanruan flipped open the documents. She was somewhat shocked, "Has United Hospital been so reliant on YR Companys supplies these past years?" YR Company was Bao Jingyanspany based in City B. He had been doing it quietly before. It only came to light in the past two years, causing Bao Mingyuan to curse the streets for a while. Betrayal! Eating from the pot and hoarding the bowl! Stepping on his fathers bones to pave his own path... In short, it was an exhaustive tirade! Bao Jingyan had given him a ten percent share to shut him up! Now, Su Ruanruan looked at those numbers. She couldnt help but feel stunned. It turned out that Bao Jingyan had also been preparing all these years. Her nose felt sour. It was that feeling of thinking she was walking the road alone, only to suddenly discover someone silently following and protecting her. But she held back, not wishing to speak sentimentally. Bao Jingyan knew she was moved. He said in a low voice, "Ruanruan, when I say we can wait for each other, its not just empty words, its a promise." Su Ruanruan did not respond. After a while, she set down the documents. She said goodnight to him in a low voice. Bao Jingyan didnt push her. After all, there would be plenty of time in the future... ... To avoid attention, Su Ruanruan only stayed for one night. She spent four days in Jiang City. Then Su Ruanruan went to City B. Bao Mingyuan wanted to send the children on a private jet, but Su Ruanruan refused. She said, "Im going there to work as a doctor, its better to keep a low profile." Bao Mingyuan gave a light cough, "Thats fine." He watched his children board the ne, feeling immensely grateful to Su Ruanruan. This child had brought the fragmented Bao Family together. While reflecting on this, he turned and saw Bao Jingyan. Bao Mingyuan asked him, "Arent you worried about bothering her by always having Jia Ren around her?" Despite saying this, he himself lifted up little Jia Ren. Kissing her over and over! [My dear granddaughter~ Grandpa will take you to ride a big horse!] Bao Jingyan lit a cigarette, following behind his father. After a moment, he said, "Ill take Jia Ren to City B in a few days; we may stay there a bit longer." Bao Mingyuan was not confused. He asked his son, "What are you nning to do? Still expecting that youngdy toe crawling back to you?" Bao Jingyans eyes and brows softened. He said, "Im the one wholl be crawling to her." Bao Mingyuan: ... He told little Jia Ren, "Ive never seen someone so shameless! Deserves to be without a wife." Little Jia Ren pped her hands, "Grandpa doesnt have a wife either." Bao Mingyuan: ... Chapter 466: Yin Zhao, Passing by Again

Chapter 466: Chapter 466: Yin Zhao, Passing by Again

The vi in City B. All the decorations are very tasteful. An elevator was installed for the convenience of Bao Ziqi. Bao Jingyuan looked around it once from top to bottom. Very satisfied. Su Ruanruan settled everything and went to report to United Hospital the next day. 32nd floor, office of the Vice Dean. Understated luxury. Yin Zhao sat behind his desk, reviewing some medical records. He was known to be diligent, a notorious workaholic. The HR Director came in, informing him that the intern assigned by Old Dean Yin had arrived, and asked how he wanted to arrange. Yin Zhao never liked taking shortcuts. He didnt really want to meet her, he simply said: "Just hand her over to Director Feng of the Surgery Department." Director Feng of the Surgery Department. An old subordinate and close friend of Yin Changhe. He carefully examined Su Ruanruans resume. Then, he looked up at her. A very beautiful girl. Her taste in clothing... every detail highlighted her well-off family background. Director Feng took a liking to her, and said with a smile: "Being a doctor is not like being a star or a model; on-call and surgeries are allmon urrences! Little Su, you have to be prepared mentally." Su Ruanruan smiled: "I know." Herpliance made Director Feng appreciate her even more. He called Lu Nansheng, the head of the surgical team, to mentor Su Ruanruan. As that person left. Yin Zhao came over with a medical record in hand. Seeing him, Director Fengughed: "If you hade just a bit earlier, you could have met the new Doctor Su! Shes a real beauty, seeing her might just cure your aversion to marriage, Yin Zhao." Yin Zhao had no interest in this Doctor Su. He couldnt help but think of a girl he had ckened with before. That time in Jiang City, he had looked for her. But didnt find her. Yin Zhao was rarely lost in thought. Director Feng jokingly said, "How about it, shall I arrange for you both to meet someday?" Yin Zhao refused. Director Feng still wanted to save the situation. He said: "I guarantee youll be interested when you see her." "No, I wont." Yin Zhao didnt want to talk any more. He just wanted to talk about work. It was quite a pity for Director Feng. ... Lu Nansheng was the head of the surgical team. A graduate from a prestigious university, not bad-looking. She was Yin Zhaos junior and was usually quite arrogant. The moment she saw Su Ruanruan, she felt a sense of crisis. Such outstanding looks! Su Ruanruans trench coat, Lu Nansheng had seen the price tag. More than 60,000 yuan. At that time, she didnt bear to buy it. Lu Nansheng deliberately wanted to suppress Su Ruanruan, hoping to drive her away. Su Ruanruans credentials should allow her to see patients. However, she arranged for Su Ruanruan to be in the emergency department. At the end, she still watched Su Ruanruan closely and said: "Doctor Su, you dont have any objections, do you?" Such little tricks, how could Su Ruanruan not know? She was new to the ce. She endured and replied with a light smile: "I have no objections." Lu Nansheng was quite pleased with herself. Just then, she received a call from Yin Zhao, asking her toe and discuss an operation next week. Lu Nansheng hung up the phone. She said, intentionally or not, "Vice Dean Yin is my senior, we have worked together for several years." Su Ruanruan just gave a light smile. Lu Nansheng went to meet Yin Zhao. Regarding the new Doctor Su, she said: "She probably has connections, not very professional in my opinion! Lets just ce her in the emergency for now, and if she cant adapt, well see then." Yin Zhao didnt say much. Lu Nansheng curled her lips Emergency department work is intense; that Doctor Su might not hold up. Lu Nansheng returned to the surgery department. It was quitting time. She went to the parking lot to get her car and happened to run into Su Ruanruan as she drove out of the hospital. Lu Nansheng took a nce. She saw Su Ruanruan walking towards the subway direction. Sheughed. She had thought Doctor Sus family was very well-off! Turns out, wearing a trench coat worth over 60,000 yuan, yet she couldnt afford a car to get around. Chapter 467: Su Ruanruan Wants to Keep a Low Profile, But She Can鈥檛!

Chapter 467: Chapter 467: Su Ruanruan Wants to Keep a Low Profile, But She Cant!

Su Ruanruan had arranged to have a meal with Song Wei. At a very charming French restaurant. When Su Ruanruan arrived, Song Wei was already there. They hadnt seen each other for a few years, and Song Wei had missed her terribly. Even more so, she felt heartache. She touched Su Ruanruans hand, "Its good that youre back." She also said, "I heard from Su Minghua that youre going to work at United Hospital? Ruanruan, youll have to start from the bottom, right? Thats so tough. Anyway, the business of Holy Enterprises has also moved to City B, wouldnt it be easier for you to rx and be the dean over there?" Su Ruanruan smiled lightly, "Big Brother Holy Enterprises is managing it quite well! Besides, I have other things to do at United Hospital." Song Wei always believed in her. She said, "The things you want to do must be important." She raised her ss of red wine, "Ruanruan, wee back." Su Ruanruan smiled lightly. The two clinked sses. ... Unfortunately. Doctor Lu Nansheng was also at this restaurant. It was a small gathering of the department, around seven or eight people. She had intentionally not invited Su Ruanruan. Her assistant doctor whispered beside her, "Isnt that the new Doctor Su? That dress shes wearing is really nice, its thetest from Fendi, isnt it?" Another male doctor had sharp eyes. He said, "The person opposite her is Song Wei! A socialite of City B." He sipped his appetizer drink, "The surviving frost of a wealthy businessman! She inherited arge fortune." Immediately, there were whispers all around. [How does Doctor Su know such a person?] [Right, they seem quite familiar with each other.] [Doctor Su looks like shees from a really good family!] ... Lu Nansheng heard this and felt bitter. She had worked hard till the age of 30 and mortgaged an 80 square meter apartment. Who wouldnt be envious? She had always been the most prominent in the surgical department! But now, this Doctor Su had stolen her spotlight with just one piece of clothing. Lu Nansheng was ufortable. She had the intention of taking Doctor Su down a notch. She cheerfully called out to Su Ruanruan, "Doctor Su." Su Ruanruan looked over. She was somewhat surprised. Previously, Doctor Lu had not been friendly to her. But now, she was unexpectedly enthusiastic. Song Wei whispered, "She probably wants to make things difficult for you! Go ahead, dont keep people waiting." Su Ruanruan smiled faintly. She walked over and greeted her department colleagues. She was beautiful and carried herself with grace. The male doctors all stared at her, something Su Ruanruan was used to. She didnt mind. Lu Nansheng was very enthusiastic. She said, "I was in a hurry today and didnt manage to invite you, but its always been a tradition in our department, that new staff would treat everyone to a meal." She seemed very considerate, "Doctor Su, thats okay with you, right?" The colleagues present looked at each other, thinking that the department head was going a little too far. This meal would cost at least seven or eight thousand, and they always went dutch. How could they let someone else treat? But Su Ruanruan smiled, not minding, "Wait for me a moment." She went back to Song Wei and said, "Looks like well have to meet up another day!" Song Wei gently patted her hand. She was a social butterfly and approached with her wine ss held high. Song Wei toasted the room, "Please look after our Ruanruan in the future." Her charm left several male doctors utterly infatuated. Song Wei added, "Feel free to order whatever you want! Today, its on me." She pulled out a card and directly paid 20,000 yuan. Her colleagues couldnt help but praise her generosity. Song Wei patted Su Ruanruans hand, winked, and left. Su Ruanruan then sat down to join her new colleagues. They crowded around her. Some asked about Song Wei. Others inquired about Su Ruanruans personal life. When had Lu Nansheng ever been so ignored? She kept a smile on her lips but was scheming inside. It didnt matter that Miss Song had paid for the meal! The entertainment that followed would certainly stretch Su Ruanruans resources thin. After finishing the French meal, it was nine oclock. Su Ruanruan intended to return home, but Lu Nansheng suggested going to a club to rx... She inquired Su Ruanruan, "Is it convenient for you? Do you need to borrow some money first?" Su Ruanruan assessed the situation. Doctor Lu didnt seem to be willing to let her off easily. It seemed that even if she wanted to keep a low profile, it wouldnt be possible. Chapter 468: Cracking Open a Wine Worth More than a Hundred Thousand

Chapter 468: Chapter 468: Cracking Open a Wine Worth More than a Hundred Thousand

Su Ruanruan simply said, "You choose the ce! Ill make a call home." She made a phone call. After hanging up, Lu Nansheng suggested, "Lets go to Zuijinzhao Club! Its quite famous in City B." She said to Su Ruanruan, "I heard it is opened by a big boss in Jiangcheng. Doctor Su, youre from Jiangcheng as well, right?" Others were worried for Su Ruanruan. Anyone could tell that Team Leader Lu was making things difficult for Doctor Su! Team Leader Lu was in good rtions with Dean Yin. No one dared to speak up for Su Ruanruan. However, Su Ruanruan nonchntly said, "Any is fine." A colleague kindly reminded her, "The minimum spend for a regr private room at Zuijinzhao is fifty thousand." Su Ruanruan just gave a faint smile. One hourter. The group appeared at the entrance of the Zuijinzhao Club in City B. The old subordinate Qin Chao was ushering guests. At a nce, he spotted the young boss. He was about to greet her when Su Ruanruan gave him a look. Qin Chao got the message. Lu Nansheng, proud of having a City B household registration and having been abroad, felt worldly. She was dealing with Qin Chao, "Wed like a private room." Unfortunately, all the regr private rooms were full. Qin Chao said, "Only the ultra-luxury grand private room with a minimum spend of 660 thousand is left." Lu Nansheng was startled. Her circle was limited; she had never seen anything like it. At this moment, her confidence in making things difficult for Su Ruanruan evaporated; she was embarrassed. Qin Chao looked at her. His gaze was intense. But it was Su Ruanruan who softly said, "Lets take it." Around them, a series of gasps could be heard. thousand, what does that even mean? Lu Nansheng snickered: so out of touch with reality. If Su Ruanruan wants to lose face, let her be. She waited to see the spectacle. ... Zuijinzhao, a ce of intoxicating luxury and splendor. The 660-thousand private room, an expansive 800 square meters, was opulently decorated to the extreme. When have these doctors ever seen such a scene? They were at a loss. But Su Ruanruan was used to it. She ordered two bottles of Romane-Conti and some snacks. Wine worth over a hundred thousand a bottle, not even blinking an eye! And a fruit tter nearly a meter wide, misting with cold air. It was quite the eye-opener. Qin Chao brought over a singer to energize the atmosphere, and when he left, he quietly said to Su Ruanruan, "Mr. Jiu is in City B, you should get in touch with himter." Su Ruanruan nodded. Lu Nansheng spoke up at the right moment, "Doctor Su, isnt this too hard on you? We dont necessarily have to drink such expensive wine." Su Ruanruan looked down. This Doctor Lu is really funny. The bottle is already opened, can it be returned? The colleagues seemed to have a conscience. They were constantly anxious. Su Ruanruan told them to just enjoy themselves, saying: "I can still afford it." Lu Nansheng snickered. thousand, as if Su Ruanruan sees it as only 66 dors! So, with various thoughts, they stayed until one oclock in the morning. Lu Nansheng felt it was about time. She stood up with a smile, "For being able to enjoy ourselves in such a nice private room today, we have to thank Doctor Su." Others were uneasy. Too cruel. Thats two or three years of Doctor Sus sry! Someone cautiously suggested, "Why dont we ask the manager for a discount?" Lu Nanshengs smile was full, "Doctor Su can afford it." Su Ruanruan gave a light smile. She beckoned a waiter toe over, whispering for him to call Qin Chao. She was rxed in her gestures. As if she had been here many times before. Lu Nansheng felt she was just putting on airs. Heh, as if she could summon the manager whenever she wanted? Surprisingly. Qin Chao couldnt wait to roll in. He presented the bill, telling Su Ruanruan, "Miss Su has opened a total of three bottles of Romane-Conti, totaling 860 thousand including other expenses." Everyone was stunned. It was over the limit! Lu Nansheng smiled demurely, waiting to see Doctor Sus farce... Chapter 469: A Slap in the Face! Miss Su, Please Sign Here

Chapter 469: Chapter 469: A p in the Face! Miss Su, Please Sign Here

Su Ruanruan remainedposed. She took the bill and nced over it casually. Then she signed her name on it. She said to Qin Chao, "If Ninth Master asks, just say I was entertaining friends." Qin Chaoughed, "The Ninth Master wouldnt bother asking about such a trifling matter! He wishes youde here to hang out every day." With these words, Lu Nansheng was stunned. The other colleagues were stunned as well. An expenditure of 860,000, and all Su Ruanruan needed to do was sign. And it was considered a trivial matter! Poverty was beyond their imagination. Lu Nanshengs lips quivered slightly. She intended to sneer some more but lost her courage. The other colleagues were envious and happy, regretting that they hadnt let loose and had fun earlier. Su Ruanruan picked up on their regret. She said softly, "Well have a chance to invite everyone for team building again in the future." Their good feelings towards her went UP, UP. Lu Nansheng especially couldnt contain her sourness. Yet she was powerless. Everyone went home. Qin Chao arranged a car for Su Ruanruan, but she received a phone call. She said to Qin Chao, "Ive got something to take care of." Qin Chao could tell by her expression. He felt somewhat annoyed. Su Ruanruan patted his arm softly, "I can handle it." She took her coat and walked out of the club, unruffled. A ck stretch limousine was parked at the entrance of the clubhouse. The license te ended in 666. Su Ruanruan climbed into the car, and the limo started to move slowly. In the back seat, Sun Jingan was resting with his eyes closed. He spoke indifferently, "I heard a female doctor gave you quite a hard time, nearly turned your den inside out?" Su Ruanruan countered, "Mr. Sun, are you interested in the osmanthus brew or in that female doctor?" Sun Jingan opened his eyes. He said, "I havent seen you for four years, yet your sharp tongue has improved." Su Ruanruan didnt want to talk to him. Truth be told, there werent many who could stand up to Sun Jingan. Especially not the young ones. But this kid always gave him attitude, and he couldnt get mad at her. He got back to the point. An invitation fell into Su Ruanruans hands. "A banquet on Friday night." "Yin Changhe will be attending with his wife." Su Ruanruan said, "I have a night shift on Friday." Sun Jingan took pleasure in her misfortune. The once high and mighty child in Jiangcheng now had to work night shifts. He deliberately said, "The banquet will be over by ten, and your shift starts at midnight, right?" Su Ruanruan didnt argue anymore. Sun Jingan patted his trouser leg, nonchntly suggesting, "Want to get inside the Yin Family? Youll need to make a name for yourself in the hospital first, its not toote to back out now." Su Ruanruan nced at him. Her eyes flickered with sharpness. Sun Jingan quite admired that. As they talked, the car stopped at her vi. Sun Jingan rolled down the window for a look. He asked her, "Youre still living with those two kids? Doesnt that bother you?" Su Ruanruan opened the car door. She said, "Ziqi saved my life, its only right to take care of them." She walked into the vi. Sun Jingan watched her receding figure. Suddenly feeling a bit mncholic. ... Su Ruanruan got home around midnight. Bao Ziqi and Bao Jingyuan were still awake. The moment Su Ruanruan entered, her eyes were covered. "Ruanruan, Ziqi and I got you a gift! Try to guess what it is." Su Ruanruan, relying on memory, set down her coat. She said with a slight smile, "I really cant guess." Bao Jingyuan let go of her hands. Thats when Su Ruanruan saw Gui Zhi. Gui Zhi smiled warmly, "Miss Su, we meet again." Su Ruanruan was pleasantly surprised. She covered her mouth and said, "Aunt Gui, howe youvee to City B?" Gui Zhi served her a bowl of osmanthus brew, speaking naturally, "It was Jingyuan who begged Mingyuan to have mee! Miss Jingyuan said you needed someone reliable by your side and insisted it had to be me." Gui Zhi feigned disbelief, "I just dont know if what Jingyuan said was true." Chapter 470: It Turns Out, Su Ruanruan is Being Taken Care Of

Chapter 470: Chapter 470: It Turns Out, Su Ruanruan is Being Taken Care Of

Su Ruanruan hugged Gui Zhi: "Its definitely real." She looked very cheerful. Even a bit of childishness was added. Bao Ziqi watched her with a smile. Bao Jingyuan was exuberant: "I knew Ruanruan would like this gift!" She said to please: "Second brother also has a gift." Su Ruanruan looked towards Bao Ziqi: "What is it?" Bao Ziqi said slightly reservedly: "Finish eating, and well go see it together." Su Ruanruan hummed in response. She ate very quickly. Gui Zhi startedughing: "So grown up, yet still like a child." She sighed to herself: In fact, both of us know shes already a mother! Only she and Ziqi know about it in this household. Others are still clueless! Bao Ziqi took Su Ruanruan to the garage. The vi wasrge, so naturally, the garage was as well. They came in a hurry, and Su Ruanruan hadnt bought a car yet. But now, several luxury cars were parked in the garage. Bentley, BMW, Porsche... Su Ruanruan took a liking to that blue Bugatti Veyron. Super low chassis, cool body. She asked Bao Ziqi: "Are they all for me?" Bao Ziqi pointed at the car: "This one is for your personal use, the others... are family cars." Gui Zhi also followed. There were some tears in her eyes. The children being so good, the olddy in heaven would rest assured. ... The next day, Su Ruanruan drove to work. She went early, unseen by anyone. But that blue Bugatti sports car was talked about by male doctors all day. [It must be for the VIP ward.] [But its parked in the employees spot!] [Having this car and stilling to work?] ... Lu Nansheng approached. She said: "Is it Yin Zhaos?" Whenever she mentioned Yin Zhao, she addressed him directly, suggesting closeness. These little thoughts, nobody pointed out. Team Leader Lu liked Vice Dean Yin. Both openly and secretly, she pursued him for many years. Well-known throughout the hospital. However, her mention of Yin Zhao still seemed reasonable to her colleagues at this time. In the entire hospital, only Yin Zhao could afford this car worth over 20 million. At noon. Su Ruanruan went to the restaurant for lunch. The previous evening, Lu Nansheng had seen her in a luxury car, the kind that sessful men typically use. She was somewhat disdainful. No wonder Su Ruanruan signed off on 860,000 casually, there must be someone financially supporting her. She scrutinized Su Ruanruan more closely. Extremely beautiful. Looked every bit like a mistress. She intentionally probed, asking warmly: "Doctor Su, how did you get homest night?" Su Ruanruan replied calmly, "I just happened to run into an elder who gave me a lift." Lu Nansheng scoffed. An elder? Clearly just some rotten old man! [Sun Jingans offscreen: Is that a polite way to talk about me?] Lu Nansheng felt mentally bnced. What good does having money to spend do? Its just a novelty, how good could it really be? 860,000? If you have the ability to buy luxury cars, buy a vi too? Disdain filled Lu Nanshengs eyes. Su Ruanruan pretended not to see. Lu Nansheng reminded her of someone from the past. Xia Minn. But at least, Xia Minn came from an educated family. This Doctor Lu, however, came from nothing. Where did she get the audacity to look down on everyone? Su Ruanruan was cold and indifferent, Lu Nansheng felt displeased. She wanted to find a fault. After work, she flipped through Su Ruanruans treatment records, looking for faults. But after looking through, she couldnt find any mistakes. She took out her phone. Flipped out a photo. It was a picture of Su Ruanruan getting into Sun Jingans car. Lu Nansheng curled her lip... someday, she would reveal Su Ruanruans true face to everyone. At this time, colleagues left work in small groups. Lu Nansheng purposely asked Su Ruanruan: "Taking the subway today? Want a ride?" Su Ruanruan grabbed her coat. Miyake Issey super seasonal model. She smiled slightly: "Thanks, Team Leader Lu, but I drove here myself." Chapter 471: Slap in the Face! The Car Belongs to Doctor Su

Chapter 471: Chapter 471: p in the Face! The Car Belongs to Doctor Su

Lu Nanshengs heart skipped a beat. She managed a smile: "I thought you didnt drive over." Its hard to hit a smiling face. Su Ruanruan was still smiling: "I still have to thank Team Leader Lu." Having said that, she gracefully left. She wore a mint green silk blouse. Matched with a ck knee-length skirt. On her feet, high heels of the same color as her shirt. Sophisticated and elegant. Both male and female colleagues were somewhat mesmerized, staring nkly for a long time. At this time, Lu Nansheng spoke up: "I just remembered I need to get my car serviced." She smiled: "Ill just ask Yin Zhao to give me a lift." The attention of others was drawn over by her. [So Team Leader Lu can ride in the Bugatti, huh?] [I wouldnt even dare to touch that car.] [It looks so luxe!] ... The corners of Lu Nanshengs mouth turned up slightly. She went to Dean Yins office to find him. Yin Zhao was still at work. Lu Nansheng knew how to get along with him, she went straight over and said: "About the surgery next week, I still have some doubts. Senior Brother, shall we have dinner and discuss it?" Yin Zhao happened to be hungry too. He didnt have a girlfriend. He treated Lu Nansheng like a workhorse. He agreed indifferently. On the way, Lu Nansheng was in a great mood. Yin Zhao inquired. Lu Nansheng turned to him and asked in the most feminine way possible: "I heard you bought another car?" Yin Zhao hummed a response. He had indeed added two more off-road vehicles to his collection recently, just for fun. Lu Nansheng was more convinced than ever. That blue Bugatti Veyron must be Yin Zhaos. In a moment, she would be sitting in that car. Everyone must be envious. ... Parking lot. Many people were still gawking at the sports car. Su Ruanruan said goodbye to her colleagues. She gracefully opened the car door and got in. Everyone was stunned. Lu Nanshengs assistant, Gong Xiaohong, asked timidly: "Doctor Su, is this your car?" Su Ruanruan rolled down the window, smiling: "Mm, it was a gift from my family." Gong Xiaohong was incredibly envious. She carefully asked: "Could I touch it?" Su Ruanruan then asked where she lived. "I live quite close." The girl couldnt help but give away her address. Su Ruanruan opened the passenger door: "Get in, Ill drop you off on my way." The girl was knocked out by the sweet treat. She hurried over in small steps, casting another nce at her colleagues before getting in. Pure envy was written all over them. Turns out todays heroine is Xiaohong! The assistant carefully got in and waved to her colleagues. Su Ruanruan put on her sunsses. Beautiful slender fingers gripping the steering wheel, she slowly drove away. A few young female colleagues covered their faces, whispering among themselves. [Doctor Su is really beautiful!] [She has the same kind of presence as Dean Yin!] [She muste from a really good family.] One male colleague said wistfully: "I wish I could call Doctor Su hubby." At that moment. Yin Zhao came over with Lu Nansheng. The Bugatti Veyron had already driven off. Lu Nansheng couldnt help but feel disappointed, it seems the car wasnt Yin Zhaos. She spoke out of turn. An onlooker said: "Thats Doctor Sus car! She looks so good driving it!" Lu Nansheng was shocked. What? ...Its Su Ruanruans car? How is that possible? How could someone pay such a high price just for beauty? She recalled that photo. She consoled herself. That old man must be in his seventies or eighties, right? Thats why he would go to such lengths to please Su Ruanruan. Her thoughts went dark. As she thought of tarnishing Su Ruanruan in front of Yin Zhao, she smiled and said: "The new Doctor Su is quite showy. Just takest night for example, at a casual colleagues gathering she insisted on going to Drunk Today." Her smile deepened: "And she spent 860,000 just like that!" Yin Zhao frowned. He disliked this ostentatious behavior. Everyone present had experiencedst night. They wanted to defend Su Ruanruan. But thinking of Team Leader Lus rtionship with Dean Yin, they still didnt dare to speak up. Chapter 472: Banquet! Zhou Wan, is that you?

Chapter 472: Chapter 472: Banquet! Zhou Wan, is that you?

Friday evening. An exclusive gathering of B citys elite. This event was highly private, and invitations were extremely hard toe by. At eight oclock sharp, Su Ruanruan made her timely appearance. She was dressed in a Celine nude-colored haute couture with embroidered details. Adorned with a ruby ne. Her tea-colored hair cascaded down naturally. Elegant and stunning. The party was in full swing. Her arrival dazzled many. Just as the others began to inquire about her, Sun Jingan came over. He told his colleagues and the influential figures, "She is a junior from Jiangcheng, now working under Yin Zhao." Those people were eager to tter Sun Jingan. "Doctor, what an honorable profession!" "Saving lives and aiding the injured! You deserve our respect." "If Mr. Sun favors this junior, she certainly must be exceptional." ... Su Ruanruan sessfully infiltrated the upper echelons. As an emergency room doctor. All this was thanks to Sun Jingans patronage. She nced sideways at him. He seemed very pleased with himself, apparently enjoying the ttery. Su Ruanruan merely smiled withoutmenting. She held a ss of red wine, surveying the surroundings. About an hourter, she caught sight of Mrs. Yin. Qin Su. Mrs. Yin stood on the second floor. She was dressed invish attire, embellished with rare jewels. She was thriving in the Yin Family. Su Ruanruan watched her quietly. Zhou Wan, is that you? Mrs. Yin on the second floor was also watching Su Ruanruan. She gracefully descended the stairs. Truly a vision of breathtaking elegance. She walked straight up to Su Ruanruan and said with a smile, "We met once in Jiangcheng, I didnt expect to have the fortune of meeting Miss Su here in B city." Su Ruanruan looked down with a faint smile, "If its meant to be, we shall meet again." Mrs. Yin was very gracious, "Miss Su is right!" Su Ruanruan added, "The Yin Family is a medical lineage, and I have a question Id like to ask Mrs. Yin." Mrs. Yin gestured with her hands. "Please ask." Su Ruanruan smiled lightly, "Id like to inquire, Mrs. Yin, can a person live without a heart?" Mrs. Yin covered her mouth. She replied with a restrained smile, "How could one live without a heart?" It just so happened that her husband, Yin Changhe, arrived. She leaned on her husbands side and introduced him, "This interesting Miss Su from Jiangcheng asked me whether a person could live without a heart." Yin Changhe had a deep memory of Su Ruanruan. She was not to be trifled with. He told his wife, "Miss Su is just teasing you!" Mrs. Yin nced at her husband. The couple was affectionate. Su Ruanruans eyes held a touch of sharp coldness. She raised her ss to Mrs. Yin and smiled, "If a person is heartless, they can not only live but live well." Mrs. Yins face froze for a moment. She wanted to say more. But Su Ruanruan had already gracefully left. Her long gown flowed enchantingly. Romantic and beautiful... Yin Zhao had no intention of attending this party. In a moment, he had surgery to perform! He had booked a room to rest, and when the time was almost right, he came down to greet his elders. He had just reached the second floor. His gaze froze! He saw that girl again. After four years. She was even more beautiful than before. Unable to help himself, Yin Zhao quickened his pace towards the hotel entrance. Mrs. Yin stopped him. She said with a smile, "Yin Zhao, several elders are looking forward to meeting you." Yin Zhao gently pushed her aside. He said, "I have something important to do." He had seen that girl three times, and this was the fourth. He didnt want to miss her again. Yin Zhao ran out of the hotels main entrance, searching everywhere. The hotel parking lot was filled with luxury cars. He searched car by car, even knocking on windows to get a clearer view inside. Some of the cars started honking. Chaos ensued. Yin Zhao was in a bad mood, and coincidentally, the hospital called. They reported that the patients condition worsened, and the surgery needed to be moved up. He hung up the phone, his handsome face slightly tense. In the end, he opened the door to his own car... Chapter 473: Bao Jingyan, how did you get here?

Chapter 473: Chapter 473: Bao Jingyan, how did you get here?

Inside the ck limousine. Sun Jingan sat side by side with Su Ruanruan. The atmosphere was somewhat chilly. Sun Jingan broke the silence: "Find anything?" Su Ruanruan spoke indifferently: "I probed her a little, and there was a slight change in her expression." Sun Jingan fell silent. After a while, he asked again: "Does Zhou Wan not have any old belongings? Isparing DNA really a dead end?" Su Ruanruan let out a coldugh: "Burnt to a crisp." She continued: "This is exactly what arouses suspicion! I suspect shes changed her appearance and took my ce... Su Peiming pandering to the Yin Family with his academic achievements, in exchange for wealth and honor!" Sun Jingan was in a bad mood. His sister had died a miserable death. Yet the masterminds behind it all were living sofortably. How could he be content? Sun Jingan was skilled at managing his emotions. He quickly recovered and turned his head to ask Su Ruanruan: "Heading to the hospital for your shift now?" Su Ruanruan didnt make a sound. Sun Jingan reveled in her misfortune. He said: "Really got yourself into a mess, huh! Might as well pack up and go back to Jiangcheng." Su Ruanruans tone was cool. She said: "Mr. Sun, you might as well join Boss Yan in opera singing." Sun Jingan intentionally provoked her. He patted his trousers and said: "Right, have you seen Jingyans child? Shes quite cute! The familys olddy likes her too, and is already looking for a stepmother for her!" Su Ruanruan nced at him. She remained silent. Even though, as of now, she and Bao Jingyan were still together. But, how to ount for the regret of being separated for so many years? How to ount for the mother-daughter separation? And how to ount for the humiliation of that day? Sun Jingan knew he had misspoken. As the car stopped in front of her vi, he wanted to say something to Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan spoke lightly: "Mr. Sun is meant for great things! No need to regret these trifles!" She closed the car door. And walked straight towards the front gate. ... An hourter, Su Ruanruan drove to the hospital. She handed over her duties to a colleague. It was a quiet night with few patients, and after seeing two, she had some downtime. Just as she was about to take a sip of water. At the door, Bao Jingyan came in carrying a little darling. The little darling slept, leaning obediently on her fathers shoulder. Endearing. Su Ruanruan was taken aback. She closed the door to the emergency room and asked him quietly: "Why are you here? When did you arrive in City B?" Bao Jingyan said: "She has a bit of a fever! Hearing that you were on duty tonight, I came over." Su Ruanruan took a closer look. Indeed, there was a fever-reducing patch applied. She reached out to feel, and listened to the little heart and lungs. "Just caught a chill." She instructed him to give the medicine and that would do. After checking the patient, Bao Jingyan should have left. But he didnt. He whispered to her: "Come over to my ce after your shift, alright?" Su Ruanruan patted the little darlings head. She agreed. She told him to take the child home early. "Hospitals are not ideal! Get a family doctor, and Ill tend to her when Im around." Bao Jingyan hummed softly in agreement. Being alone with her, emotions inevitably stirred. He missed her. Separated for four years, she had spent just a few days in Jiangcheng. Bao Jingyan also felt for her: "Ill have my driver pick you up after your shift! You are not to drive yourself." He added: "In a while, Ill have Old Zhao and the otherse over! Always more reliable to use people you trust." Su Ruanruan nodded. She was about to send father and daughter off. The door to the emergency room opened. Lu Nansheng eagerly greeted Bao Jingyan: "President Bao, youre here! Is the child sick? Let me have a look." Before, when the little darling was sick. She had cured her once. Ever since, she considered herself the personal doctor. Because she knew this President Baos status was no ordinary matter. That very powerful Sun Jingan was his uncle. She wanted to ingratiate herself firmly. Chapter 474: Ruanruan, Are You Tired?

Chapter 474: Chapter 474: Ruanruan, Are You Tired?

Bao Jingyan was always indifferent. He didnt like the behavior of this female doctor. He said with considerable coldness, "Doctor Su has already looked at it." Lu Nansheng was taken aback. Then she eagerly spoke up, "Doctor Su has just started her internship; Im afraid its not reliable." Su Ruanruan went to wash her hands. She let Bao Jingyan handle it. By the time she finished washing her hands, Bao Jingyan had already left. But Lu Nansheng was still there. She tapped the examination table lightly, speaking with the attitude of someone superior, "For President Baos appointments, let me handle them directly from now on." Su Ruanruan responded with a faint, shallow smile, "Okay." Lu Nansheng added, "Dean Yin will be in surgeryter, and Im the second surgeon! Take care of things here, and if you have any questions, you can ask me." After saying that, Lu Nansheng felt much morefortable. She wanted to make it clear to this Doctor Su that she couldntpare to her. ... She ced her hands in the pockets of her white coat. Passing nurses always greeted her respectfully as "Team Leader Lu." Lu Nansheng felt an indescribable joy. Yin Zhao wasing from the opposite direction, holding a medical chart in his hand. He was looking for Lu Nansheng. The surgery was about to begin, but Lu Nansheng was nowhere to be found. Lu Nansheng then said, "The new Doctor Su encountered some trouble, so I went to help solve it." She smiled cunningly, "Hes quite an important figure. President Bao from YR Company; Ive heard you mention his rtion to Sun Jingan." Yin Zhao took it seriously. He asked about the situation. Lu Nansheng yed it down, distorting the facts. In the end, she said softly, "Doctor Su was somewhat overwhelmed by amon cold; Older Brother, I dont think she can adapt to the work in the hospital." Yin Zhao frowned. He walked towards the emergency room. As a superior, he needed to issue a warning. Lu Nansheng stopped him. She didnt want Yin Zhao to see Su Ruanruan. With a serious tone, she said, "Theres an uing surgery, I will deal with Doctor Sus issue." Thus, Yin Zhao did not insist. He entrusted, "Follow up on President Baos case." Lu Nansheng smiled, "Older Brother, rest assured, when have I ever dropped the ball?" ... Early morning at eight oclock. Su Ruanruan got off work. Having worked through the night, she was a bit exhausted. Sitting in the car, she made a call to Bao Ziqi. Bao Ziqi was silent for a moment. He said, "I bought a gift for Xiaojiaoren; you can bring it to her next time." Su Ruanruan softly hummed in agreement. She continued, "Ive already scheduled with the reviewing physician, next Thursday Ill take you there!" ... Half an hourter, the driver entered a viplex. Su Ruanruan got out of the car. Auntie Li came to meet her, havinge over overnight. Bao Jingyan was afraid that Su Ruanruan was not ustomed. Su Ruanruan walked shoulder to shoulder with her, asking softly, "Is Xiaojiaoren feeling better?" Auntie Li replied with a smile, "Miss Su has seen her, so of course, theres no problem." She lowered her voice, "Shes still sleeping! The master took care of her all night." Su Ruanruan then walked upstairs. Theyout of the vi was generally the same, and she quickly found the childrens room. However, Xiaojiaoren didnt sleep there; she was in the main bedroom due to being sickst night. Su Ruanruan opened the door to the main bedroom. It was dim inside, illuminated only by a sliver of light from the curtains. Vaguely visible were two forms, onerge and one small, on the bed. Su Ruanruan took off her shoes. She tiptoed over and ced her hand on Xiaojiaorens forehead. Indeed, the fever had subsided. She was about to leave when an arm caught her. She fell onto Bao Jingyan. In a low voice, he asked her, "Are you tired from your shift?" His voice was husky in the early morning. Extremely seductive. Su Ruanruan struggled silently for a moment before saying, "If you want to talk, get up and do so." Bao Jingyan understood her modesty. And there was a child present. He carefully got up and gave her a gentle hug. He carried her to the living room sofa... Su Ruanruan was a bit nervous, "Bao Jingyan, get up and talk." But Bao Jingyan still squeezed onto the same sofa with her, without turning on the light, holding her in a half-embrace. After a long while, he suddenly said, "Ruanruan, are you tired?" Su Ruanruan softly hummed in acknowledgment. She said she was alright. Bao Jingyan whispered close to her ear, "How about I take care of you?" Chapter 475: Bao Jingyan has kept himself for her for six years

Chapter 475: Chapter 475: Bao Jingyan has kept himself for her for six years

Su Ruanruan couldnt resist. She was terrified of making a loud disturbance and waking up young Jiaren. Half pushing, half yielding. He only focused on her. Finally, he spent a full 30 minutes in the bathroom. Su Ruanruan leaned on the sofa, her eyes wet. She knew she was being somewhat pretentious. Bao Jingyan was 34 years old, and they had been together for nearly six years in total, during which she firmly believed he had no other women. Previously when they were intimate, he always stopped at the right moment. A man of 34... didnt he really want more? Su Ruanruan felt somewhat conflicted. But she couldnt get over this hurdle for now. Bao Jingyan came out in his homewear and softly said, "Go wash up, okay?" Su Ruanruan hummed a response. But she didnt want to move. Bao Jingyan didnt leave right away; he simply sat back down on the sofa and held her. After the bath, he smelled fresh. Mixed with the scent of aftershave, it was a uniquely masculine fragrance. He bent down and kissed her... It was a lingering kiss. In a daze, it felt like they returned to the past. After a while, he whispered, "Go wash up, eat some breakfast, and rest a bit with Jiaren." Su Ruanruan agreed. She took a bath but still wore her own clothes. When she came downstairs, Bao Jingyan watched her. Her bit of reserve, he saw it clearly. He didnt force her but served her millet porridge. "Its good for the stomach," he said gently. Su Ruanruan sipped the porridge slowly; she always liked Aunt Lis porridge. After breakfast, she went upstairs to sleep with young Jiaren. Bao Jingyan was working in the living room on the first floor. The sunlight was bright. He was in an excellent mood, his lips curling into a gentle smile. Just before noon, as he was about to go upstairs to check, Lu Nansheng arrived uninvited. She held a bag of fruits, chatting with Aunt Li. Lu Nansheng heard that Aunt Li had a foreign ent. She looked down on her somewhat. She asked Aunt Li, "Is President Bao home? I am Doctor Lu from United Hospital, and I have been treating little friend Jiaren." Aunt Li secretly rolled her eyes. Who does she think she is, acting so familiar? What does she mean she has always been treating her? Youre the one whos always sick, your whole family is sick! Aunt Li replied quietly, "Doctor Lu, if youre not in the hospital, whye to our house?" Lu Nansheng didnt want to deal with a rural girl. Her sharp eyes caught sight of Bao Jingyan sitting in the hall. A deep blue shirt. Iron grey trousers. Handsome features, mature and resolute. Lu Nansheng thought: If this President Bao didnt have a child, hed be a very suitable partner. What a pity... She confidently changed her shoes and entered. Bao Jingyan didnt look up. He directly asked Aunt Li, "Do we have a guest?" Aunt Li buzzed irritably, "Never seen her before." In this exchange, Lu Nansheng ended up in an awkward position. She put down the fruits and cautiously said, "President Bao, Dean Yin sent me to check on the little friend." She also asked with concern, "Is the child doing well?" Bao Jingyan didnt answer her. Such a personal question, he didnt feel obligated to satisfy this Doctor Lu. He straightforwardly said, "Doctor Lu, please donte again in the future! Ive hired a family doctor." Lu Nansheng was stunned. She had been rejected. A flush of red spread across her face, but she still pretended it didnt matter. She brought up Yin Zhao again, "President Bao, its Dean Yins order." Bao Jingyan put down his notebook. He folded his hands over his knees, watching Lu Nansheng quietly. That gaze was very oppressive. Bao Jingyan said very coolly, "Dean Yins orders? Why didnt hee himself?" Lu Nansheng wanted to retort. But she couldnt say it. Because Old Dean Yin was specifically Jingans doctor. The Yin Family was indeed lower in statuspared to the Sun Family. While she was feeling aggrieved, there was movement from the second floor. A gentle female voice sounded, "Bao Jingyan, do we have a guest?" Chapter 476: If She Doesn鈥檛 Refuse, Then She Likes It

Chapter 476: Chapter 476: If She Doesnt Refuse, Then She Likes It

Lu Nansheng was stunned. This voice, why does it sound so much like Doctor Su? Impossible! How could Su Ruanruan possibly be at President Baos house? She doesnt have that much influence! The person speaking upstairs slowly came downstairs, and when the face became clear... Lu Nansheng was deeply shocked. It was really Su Ruanruan! Su Ruanruan was wearing house slippers. Her hair was slightly messy, her expression carrying theziness of just having woken up. Lu Nanshengs heart sank. Su Ruanruan is so cunning. Just after meeting President Bao once she has climbed into his bed! She felt disdainful, yet jealous inside. She took the initiative: "Doctor Su, why are you here?" Su Ruanruan slowly descended the stairs. She sat on the sofa, and Aunt Li handed her a cup of warmed milk. Su Ruanruan took a sip before counter-asking Lu Nansheng: "Isnt Doctor Lu here as well?" Lu Nansheng sneered: "Dean Yin asked me toe!" Su Ruanruan smiled faintly. Aunt Li chimed in: "Our master invited Miss Su here, doesnt that carry more weight than Dean Yin?" Sheined: "Stop mentioning Dean Yin here all the time; he may be your father but not ours." Lu Nanshengs face turned pale. She really hadnt expected Su Ruanruan to be so clever. Flirting with that 666 license te guy on one hand, and climbing into President Baos bed on the other. That old man with the 666 license te, does he know? She deliberately stirred trouble, saying to Bao Jingyan: "President Bao, do you know the background of this Doctor Su?" Bao Jingyan didnt want to argue with her. He directly said to Aunt Li: "See the guest out." Aunt Li stated firmly: "Doctor Lu, please?" Lu Nansheng left in humiliation. Su Ruanruan continued to drink her milk, unhurried. Bao Jingyan then asked her: "Arent you going to ask?" Su Ruanruan put her cup on the coffee table, and lightly said: "Your taste isnt that bad!" After saying that, she went upstairs to check on the little darling. Bao Jingyan then asked Aunt Li: "Do you think she still cares about me now?" Aunt Li was displeased. She said: "Miss Su has suffered so much in the past, if she didnt care why would shee so early? Except for the sake of the little darling, doesnt she care about you at all?" Bao Jingyan couldnt help recalling earlier. When he had taken care of her, although she had not initiated. She had epted it. His Ruanruans reserve, that means she liked it. His heart surged with emotion, and he was just about to go upstairs when the sound of a car approached. Aunt Li hurried to check and quickly returned: "Its Mr. Jingan Sun and his wife, they probably came to see the little darling." No sooner said than done. Jingan Sun and his wife had already entered. Mrs. Jingan Sun adored the little darling. She always brought the finest things. She said: "I heard the little darling was sick, I couldnt rest withouting to check." Saying so, she wanted to go upstairs. Aunt Li still showed her respect. She hesitated for a moment. Bao Jingyang clenched his fingers and then said: "Take aunt upstairs!" He thought, if its exposed today. He has nothing to fear! Years of forbearance were precisely for today. But after Mrs. Jingan Sun went upstairs, she came back down with the same expression as usual. That means she didnt encounter Ruanruan. Bao Jingyan felt pain in his heart... What kind of person is Jingan Sun? His wife may be confused, but he is not. The expression of Jingyan was thought-provoking. He thought carefully: then felt somewhat certain. Jingan Sun didnt stay long; he took his wife and left. As soon as the visitors left, Bao Jingyan went upstairs. Su Ruanruan had alreadye out of the dressing room, her eyes a bit red. Bao Jingyan went over to embrace her. Su Ruanruan was indeed wronged, but she didnt want to make it difficult for Bao Jingyan; she softly said: "Perhaps I shoulde less often." Bao Jingyan wouldnt let her go. Their fingers interlocked, their foreheads touching. He spoke softly to her: "Earlier, I was ready to expose everything, but you hid. Ruanruan, dont converse with him, let me handle Zhou Xuan..." Chapter 477: Can I kiss you, is that okay?

Chapter 477: Chapter 477: Can I kiss you, is that okay?

Su Ruanruan is not a person of lofty ideals. She wont rush forward blindly. She knows that Bao Jingyan is Sun Jingans blood rtive. No matter what, Sun Jingan wouldnt treat him harshly. But its different for herself. She hmmed in response. Bao Jingyan felt a surge of emotion, and their interlocking fingers became even more entwined. The bedroom was dim. Only the breathing sounds of the little beauty in deep sleep could be heard. Their hearts were moved, and there were feelings. Bao Jingyan whispered in her ear: "Ruanruan, may I kiss you?" She shyly turned her face away. She didnt object, so Bao Jingyan naturally pressed her gently against the wall. Kissing her, over and over. Kissing until they were lost in passion. And then they kissed deeply... Su Ruanruans hand was ced on his shoulder and suddenly clenched tight. Then she couldnt help but stroke his short hair repeatedly. After what felt like a long time, he finally stopped. He gazed at her, never able to get enough. His Ruanruan had grown into a mature woman, yet he had never seen it with his own eyes. Not that he didnt want to, he just feared being hasty. He still wanted to kiss her, but Su Ruanruan felt it was enough. She leaned on his shoulder and murmured, "Lets stop here for now." After all, they had been apart for six years. Some things had be unfamiliar. Bao Jingyan respected her, and he straightened up her clothes for her... He wanted to say something, but then a gasp was heard beside his ear. The little beauty had woken up. She opened her eyes wide, looking at her dad holding her sister. In her twinkling eyes, there was nothing but curiosity. Bao Jingyan let out a long sigh. He said to Su Ruanruan: "With kids around, things are no longer as convenient as before." Su Ruanruans face turned red. She urged him to go over. Bao Jingyan turned on the light and pulled the little one out from under the quilt. The little beautyy on his shoulder. She was very happy now that she was no longer sick. Bao Jingyan skillfully changed her clothes and patted her lightly. "Do your own washing and brushing." The little beauty jumped off the bed and ran to Su Ruanruans side. She hugged Su Ruanruans leg. Rubbing against it happily. A warm current swept through Su Ruanruans heart... this child was as close to her as herself. She couldnt help looking towards Bao Jingyan. Usually, how did he talk about her? The little beauty asked softly: "Daddy said after I sleep, I would see my sister. When did youe, sister?" Su Ruanruan helped to tidy up her curls. She patiently replied: "Youve been to the hospitalst night! I came early this morning and even slept with you for a while." The little beauty said with a hint of embarrassment: "I had a dream! I dreamed that mommy was holding me in her sleep." Su Ruanruans heart felt tender. The little beauty became even more clingy. She pleaded: "Can you sleep with me every day from now on?" Bao Jingyan came over, and he picked up the little one. He deliberately said: "You wanted daddy to apany youst night! Now you want your sister, does that mean daddy has to sleep with you and your sister?" The little beauty had an innocent face. Upon realizing what was said, she pped her hands: "Then my little brother or sister wont just pop out from a stone crack!" "Very clever," Bao Jingyan patted her little head, telling her to go brush and wash. The little beauty ran off. Su Ruanruan was rather speechless. But really, she didnt know how to correct it. ... Su Ruanruan stayed with the little beauty for three days. During those three days, the house was calm and peaceful. Outside, though, it was not the same. Sun Jingan made a phone call and summoned his nephew. In the afternoon. A golden Continental stopped in front of a building. A dashing figure got out of the car. A white shirt, gray trousers. And a coat on the outside. Mature and trim. Sun Jingans secretary, with thest name Hao. He came out to greet him, smiled wryly: "President Bao has arrived! Mr. Sun is not in a good mood." Bao Jingyan lit up a cigarette. Took a deep drag and asked, "How so?" Chapter 478: Bao Jingyan鈥檚 Domineering Protection of His Wife

Chapter 478: Chapter 478: Bao Jingyans Domineering Protection of His Wife

Secretary Hao forced a bitter smile. Alright, this one is also a thorn. Just as difficult to handle as the one upstairs. Bao Jingyan leisurely finished a cigarette, Secretary Hao did not dare to rush him. Upstairs, in the solemn office. Sun Jingan sat upright, waiting for him. His expression was unpleasant. Bao Jingyan, unconcerned, sat down with ease. Secretary Hao served the tea. Bao Jingyan gently fiddled with the fine porcin cup and chuckled, "Uncle, did you call me here for something?" A huge stack of letters and documents was thrown at him. Sun Jingan pointed at his nose and scolded him harshly. "Look at the mess youve made!" "I knew you came to City B with ill intentions." "In just three days, youve turned the pharmaceutical industry upside down!" "Bao Jingyan, do you realize how many people havee toin to me?" ... Bao Jingyan casually picked up a few and flipped through them. Then he chuckled, "If they cant withstand the impact, thats their ipetence." That excuse might work on others, but not on Sun Jingan. He pulled out a cigarette from his pack. His fingers trembled with anger, failing to light it after several attempts. It didnt light. Bao Jingyan, on the other hand, walked over and respectfully lit the cigarette for him. Sun Jingan took a drag to calm his nerves. He red at Bao Jingyan harshly, "Dont think I cant guess! The moment Su Ruanruan returns, you bring your family to City B, what, nning to settle down and pursue her?" "I do have that intention!" Bao Jingyan admitted unabashedly. Sun Jingan took several puffs of his cigarette in anger. He countered, "If I dont agree, youll oppose me at work?" Bao Jingyan sat back on the sofa. He lightly stated, "Uncle made me ufortable, I just reciprocated." "Youre doing this all for that woman!" Sun Jingan threw a porcin cup at him. Bao Jingyan did not dodge. The cup hit him squarely on the forehead. A faint blush of blood appeared. Sun Jingan was startled. He didnt expect him not to dodge. Secretary Hao quickly grabbed the medical kit, but Bao Jingyan said it was unnecessary. He said, "It wont kill anyone." Sun Jingan sneered coldly, "Youre indeed tough! I should have known you wouldnt give up easily! Youve been quite active in City B over the years, even holding the Yin Familys lifeline in your hand." He couldnt help but sneer, "Bao Jingyan, youre really something." Bao Jingyan retorted, "Not as formidable as uncle threatening to break up lovers!" Sun Jingan scoffed again, "Jingyan, you can me me all you want, but the olddy at home is still robust, living another ten or twenty years wont be a problem! What can you do about it? Have her wait for you another ten or twenty years?" Bao Jingyan looked at him. The blood in his eyes made Sun Jingans heart skip. He had no doubts, if it werent for family ties, This nephew could tear their entire family apart. Eventually conceding, he softened his tone, "Since you like her, why then did you have a child with another woman?" Bao Jingyan naturally would not answer. Sun Jingan smoked two more cigarettes. Later, he said, "Jingyan, I cant control your overt and covert actions! But Ill make this clear, without the olddys approval, you cant be openly together with her." His mood soured, he added, "Its not that I want to separate you two." All the me fell on him, why should Jingyan only bite at him? Sun Jingyu is living her peaceful days. Sun Jingan felt quite wronged. He gave in, and Bao Jingyan also knew when to stop. He picked up the documents one by one, cing them back on the desk. He promised, "If uncle doesnt make things difficult for her, I wont make them difficult for uncle." Chapter 479: Bao Jingyan鈥檚 Domineering Protection of His Wife 2

Chapter 479: Chapter 479: Bao Jingyans Domineering Protection of His Wife 2

Sun Jingan was so angry that his veins were popping. He pointed at Bao Jingyan and said, "Is it honorable to stand up for a woman? You better get out of here now!" Bao Jingyan immediately walked out. Sun Jingan got even angrier. He said to Secretary Hao, "Look, this is what our Sun family produces!" Secretary Hao was good with words. As he cleaned up the debris on the floor, he said, "President Bao is young, and his passion erupts for a beauty! Thats a good thing!" Sun Jingan kept smoking his cigarette. After a moment, he sighed lightly, "Actually, its not Jingyans fault! Old Hao, if you saw that girl, you would understand." He emphasized, "Its rare to find someone who matches Jingyan." Secretary Hao kept a smiling face. He said, "Then I must take a look someday." ... Bao Jingyan drove back to the vi. Aunt Li was startled when she saw him, "What happened to you, sir?" Bao Jingyan waved his hand. He asked, "Where is Ruanruan?" Aunt Li immediately replied, "Shes upstairs. You should hurry up and let Miss Su treat your wound." Bao Jingyan smiled faintly. The second floor was silent. The little beauty was napping from exhaustion. Su Ruanruan was sitting in the living room reading a book. She wore a long dress with a cinched waist. Her tea-colored hair loosely spread over her waist. It was very aesthetically romantic. Bao Jingyan felt very moved as he watched her. He didnt disturb her and went straight over to hug her from behind. His voice was husky: "Hows the little beauty?" "Shes napping," Su Ruanruan turned her head to look at him. She saw the wound on his forehead. Su Ruanruans breath hitched, "How did you get hurt?" He didnt say anything, just entwined around her. Kissing behind her ear. He didnt speak, but she guessed something. The people at the hospital had been talking about President Bao these past few days. Su Ruanruan whispered, "Ill get the first aid kit." Bao Jingyan went to close the bedroom door, and when he returned, he lit a cigarette. The cigarette was held between his slender fingers. His thin lips lightly pursed, and he slowly exhaled the smoke. Very manly. Su Ruanruan was used to seeing this, but her face still flushed. She carefully sat beside him, cautiously treating his wound. They were close, their breaths mingling. Bao Jingyans dark eyes slightly lowered. He gazed at her luminous, jade-like face. One hand grasped her waist... dominant, irresistible. Su Ruanruans hands trembled slightly. She silently looked at him. Bao Jingyan spoke softly, "Why did you stop?" She had to continue treating his wound, her fingertips trembling. Later, he wasnt satisfied. He simply lifted her onto hisp... The first aid kit scattered on the floor. They held each other, passionately kissing. He wanted to please her again, Su Ruanruans heart softened. Her voice trembled, "Stop!" Bao Jingyan looked down at her. Su Ruanruans face was slightly hot, she actively hugged his waist... ... An hourter. Footsteps echoed in the stairwell. It was Aunt Liing upstairs. She said at the door, "Sir, theres a phone call for you." Bao Jingyan said to the outside, "Ille down and call backter." Aunt Li was experienced. Seeing no response from inside, she knew the couple was being affectionate. She quickly went downstairs. Inside the living room, the atmosphere was still enchanting. Bao Jingyan held Su Ruanruan, his voice hoarse and deep, "Ill go make a call." Su Ruanruan came to her senses. Couldnt help but be a bit shy. Seeing her act coy, Bao Jingyans heart fluttered and he was moved. He whispered a few crude words in her ear, Su Ruanruan hit him with a pillow. Heughed and got up to tidy up in the restroom. Momentster, he came out. Lookingpletely neat and dressed. ... After Bao Jingyan finished the call, he returned. He told Su Ruanruan, "I have to step out for a bit. Keep the littledypany." Su Ruanruan nodded. She behaved obediently. Bao Jingyan couldnt resist leaning in to kiss her. He asked her in a low, husky voice, "When will youpletely let go, hmm?" Chapter 480: Lu Nansheng鈥檚 Suppression

Chapter 480: Chapter 480: Lu Nanshengs Suppression

Bao Jingyans eyes were clear and bright, with a hint of a mans mischief. Su Ruanruan turned her face away, refusing to answer. Such things would naturally resolve themselves over time. Why was he asking like this? Her coyness and modesty were always things Bao Jingyan enjoyed. He didnt force her. He was already quite satisfied with the way things had gone... ... After taking a two-day break, Su Ruanruan went back to work at the hospital. During lunch in the cafeteria, she overheard some gossip. "Have you heard? The new Doctor Su has an immoral private life." "Isnt there an old man who is keeping her?" "Doctor Lu even said she seduced a patients family member!" "Really? Doesnt look like it!" ... The few doctors at the same table looked awkward. Lu Nanshengs little assistant, Gong Xiaohong, whispered, "I believe in Doctor Su." Everyone else also quickly offered words of constion. But, in reality, everyone understood. Doctor Su had crossed group leader Lu. Lu Nansheng was looking to give Doctor Su a hard time! Now with the rumors spreading, Doctor Sus days were probably not going to be easy. However, Su Ruanruan didnt care. She was waiting for the right moment to take care of Lu Nansheng. At five oclock in the afternoon, Su Ruanruan was finishing her shift. As she was about to leave, she saw an elderly couple helping each other out of the emergency department. The old mans face showed pain. His wife looked distressed and called out to him softly, "Old He, shall we see another doctor?" The old man waved his hand: "Its just an ordinary case of lumbar disc herniation! An old problem, not worth fussing over." They slowly headed towards the hospitals main entrance. Su Ruanruan noticed the old mans gait. It definitely wasnt just an ordinary lumbar disc herniation; it might be a sign of joint dislocation. If they dyed further, there was a 95% chance of paralysis. She immediately stopped them. Su Ruanruan softly said, "Sir, Im a doctor here, may I take a look at your medical records?" The elderly couple looked puzzled. Su Ruanruan showed her credentials. The olddy was concerned about her husband. She said, "If a doctor is willing to have a look, that would be great." The old man nced at her and said, "The older you get, the more you talk." Su Ruanruan took the medical records, smiled faintly and said, "The olddy is just worried about you." She reviewed the records. Then she picked up the CT scans to examine them carefully. After putting them down, she looked serious and said, "If its not too much trouble, could you do an enhanced local CT scan?" The elderly couple were doubtful. Su Ruanruan softly said, "Ill talk to the diagnostics department to get you in now! The doctor in the CT room will help to check the results." The couple agreed. But when they got to the diagnostics department, they ran into Lu Nansheng. Lu Nansheng saw that the two elderly people looked very simple. They didnt look like influential people. She casually took a look at the medical records. She concluded, "Director Wen took care of this case; there wont be a problem." Su Ruanruan insisted. Lu Nansheng got somewhat angry, "Doctor Su, do you think youre more skilled than Director Wen?" She added, "By doing this, you are tantly pping Director Wen in the face." Su Ruanruans expression cooled down. She said, "Since when does our hospital rely on personal rtions? Isnt the patients welfare the most important thing?" Surrounding them, a crowd slowly gathered. Doctors, nurses... formed a circle. They all tried to persuade Su Ruanruan to give up, with the same idea as Lu Nansheng. Director Wen is very skilled; there cant be any mistakes. Back and forth they went. The situation got a bit chaotic! The elderly couple started to back away... But not Su Ruanruan. She spoke softly, "I will take full responsibility for any issues." Around her, there were gasps of astonishment. Doctor Su was actually risking her career for an ordinary patient. Was she foolish? The olddy was incredibly moved. She quietly said to her husband, "Why dont we just get Yin Changhe toe and check on you? To avoid trouble for the youngdy." Chapter 481: Awesome! The Patient Turns Out to Be Sun Jingan鈥檚 Mentor

Chapter 481: Chapter 481: Awesome! The Patient Turns Out to Be Sun Jingans Mentor

The old man, however, had a sharp gaze. He was watching Su Ruanruan. This young girl, quite brave! Lu Nansheng coldly smirked, "Fine, well make an exception today! If the examination results are the same as Director Wens, Doctor Su, you should know what to do." She was pleased in her heart. Ha, she had thought that it would take so much effort to edge out Su Ruanruan. Turns out, she was so foolish. Lu Nansheng was certain that Director Wens judgement wouldnt be wrong. She awaited the good news. Everyone thought that the elderly couple were ordinary people. No one came forward to serve them. Only Su Ruanruan was bustling about. She entered the CT room and pointed out the key area to the radiographer. The radiographer was initially skeptical. But when he zoomed in and saw the signs of bone separation at that joint, he was stunned. He turned his head to look at Su Ruanruan. He whispered, "Doctor Su, youre incredible." Su Ruanruan smiled lightly. She said, "Actually, I also hoped that I was wrong." That doctor walked out with the films. Lu Nansheng was the first to confront him. She blurted out, "Director Wens diagnosis is correct, right? I said its just amon lumbar disc herniation." The CT technician suppressed his emotions. He said softly, "The patients bone joint is slightly disced! Immediate hospitalization is necessary." Lu Nansheng was shocked. So was everyone else. What? Doctor Su was actually correct, her experience exceeded Director Wens! Su Ruanruan was already assisting the elderly couple with their hospitalization procedures. Lu Nansheng was still muttering to herself. "How is that possible?" "How could she be so skilled?" The gazes around her were like ps. Stinging Lu Nansheng painfully. She retreated to her office and didnt take over the case of that ordinary patient. Su Ruanruan helped the elderly couple with the hospital admission. The olddy said directly, "Lets stay in the special VIP ward!" Everyone was shocked again. At that point, the elderly couple revealed their identities. The old mans surname was He. The mentor of Mr. Sun Jingan from B city. What that meant was self-evident! Suddenly, the hospital became busy. Doctors were attentive, nurses were sweet-talking. Addressing him as Old He at every turn. The olddy was very reserved. She told them, "Our Old He is unwell, please dont fuss around. Summon Doctor Su over, thats enough." Someone was about to reply. Lu Nansheng arrived upon hearing the news. She said Doctor Su had finished her shift, now she would be in charge of Old Hes condition. She brought out all her professionalism to discuss the condition with Old He. Old Hes attitude was indifferent. He said, "Have Yin Changhee to see me." ... Yin Changhe along with his son Yin Zhao, apanied Sun Jingan. As soon as Sun Jingan entered, he grabbed Old Hes hand. He said, "Teacher, youve suffered." Old He was ufortable and even crabbier. He nced at Yin Changhe and his son and snorted, "The suffering isnt so bad, but theres been some irritation." Yin Zhao furrowed his brows. He asked the nurse what had happened. The nurse didnt dare lie and told the whole story as it was. Old Hes wife had a cold expression. She said, "Today we are very lucky to have Doctor Su, otherwise our Old He might have been left in the care of United Hospital." Yin Changhe was extremely anxious. Sun Jingan was the best at soothing people. He consoled his mentors wife: "Dont be upset! Look, this hospital still has talent, Doctor Su is very good." He took charge of the situation: "Then lets invite Doctor Su over." He wanted to personally express his gratitude. The nurse smiled, "Doctor Su has finished her shift." Old Hes wife snorted, "Doing good without seeking recognition! Thats a true doctor!" Sun Jingan continued to cate her, "Tomorrow, Ill personally visit to express my thanks." Chapter 482: Yin Zhao Finally Meets Su Ruanruan

Chapter 482: Chapter 482: Yin Zhao Finally Meets Su Ruanruan

Mrs. He finally felt satisfied, "Thats more like it." She asserted her authority. She instructed Yin Changhe, "Changhe, Old He has fallen ill, you must use all your skills!" Then she told Sun Jingan, "You go back!" Sun Jingan gave a wry smile. He sat down, and said, "As my mentor is ill, its only right for me to stay and attend to him!" He added with heartfelt sincerity, "Everything I have is thanks to my mentor. Madam, please rest assured, I will do my very best to restore the mentors health." Madam Hes scolding had the desired effect. She reined in her emotions: "Alright, stop putting on an act! Its disgustingly cheesy." Sun Jingan wouldnt really stay and attend. He had an important meeting the following morning... Yet he still stayed in the hospital for four full hours, discussing Old Hes condition with Yin Changhe and his son. When high-profile figures were admitted to the hospital, Lu Nansheng couldnt get a word in. She was quite anxious. She was even more worried that Su Ruanruan would make a favorable impression in front of her senior, Yin Zhao. And if Old Hes status as a benefactor were added into the equation... She couldnt bear to think about it. However, if before Old He could find Su Ruanruan...to tarnish Su Ruanruans reputation. Then would Su Ruanruan have any chance of turning things around? Lu Nansheng tightly gripped her phone. After a long while, she opened that video. The one with Su Ruanruan getting into the car with license te ending in 666. In United Hospital, there was arge group. Over a thousand medical staff, all included. Lu Nansheng logged into a secondary WeChat ount. She released the video and added some text. "Doctor Su from the surgery department behaves inappropriately, suspected of having an affair with a rich man." As for Bao Jingyan. Since he was backed by Sun Jingan, Lu Nansheng didnt dare to mention him. ... Once the video was released. United Hospital was thrown into an uproar. Although the face wasnt clearly visible, the long hair and trench coat confirmed that the person getting into the car was indeed Su Ruanruan. The whistleblower presented both images and text. The entire medical staff was shocked. Comments appeared "It turns out the rumors are true!" "Doctor Su always seemed so refined, its hard to believe." "Regardless, shes a good person." ... Lu Nansheng watched thements stream by. She smiled. It wouldnt be long before the car owner was exposed. Su Ruanruan would bepletely disgraced in the hospital, unable to find a foothold. Shemented with the alternate ount in a sarcastic tone. "I heard that Doctor Su is involved with several rich men at the same time, how powerful!" ... Those who had received Su Ruanruans kindness felt sorry for her. But they all understood. With such a major scandal. Doctor Su probably had to leave the hospital. ... This matter should be handled by Yin Zhao. However, with Old He in the hospital, he was too preupied to deal with it. He casually told Lu Nansheng to handle it as she pleased. Exactly what Lu Nansheng wanted. The next morning, early. She mentioned it to Director Feng, and said, "I think its unnecessary to keep her any longer." Director Feng poured himself a cup of tea. He sat down and chuckled, "Lu, arent you rushing to a decision a bit hastily with this matter?" He suggested, "How about we investigate further?" Lu Nansheng spoke earnestly, "After what happened with Doctor Su, I sincerely think she doesnt fit our hospital." Director Feng was an old hand at office politics. He had a sharp eye for people. Doctor Su exuded an air of grace and nobility. How could she possibly have an affair with some wealthy old man? There must be some trickery afoot. But since Yin Zhao had left the decision to Lu Nansheng, he couldnt very well contradict her. So he said, "Alright then, call Doctor Su over." As Lu Nansheng left the office, she was thrilled. She had finally managed to push Su Ruanruan out. In front of all her colleagues, she deliberately humiliated Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan smiled faintly with her eyes downturned. She was very straightforward: "Okay, Ill go to Director Fengs office toplete the formalities." As she left, her colleagues were reluctant to see her go. Su Ruanruan smiled lightly: "We will see each other again." Lu Nansheng scoffed coldly. See each other again? Dream on! Su Ruanruan wouldnt argue with fools. She gracefully walked to the door of Director Fengs office. She knocked on the door. In Director Fengs office, Yin Zhao was discussing Old Hes condition with him. Upon hearing the knock, Director Feng invited her in. Su Ruanruan entered through the door. As that figure elegantly approached, Yin Zhaos blood froze in his veins... Chapter 483: He Always Misses Her by a Hair鈥檚 Breadth

Chapter 483: Chapter 483: He Always Misses Her by a Hairs Breadth

Yin Zhao stared intently at Su Ruanruan, his expression strained. He had been searching for her for four years. He never thought they would meet under such circumstances. She turned out to be the new Doctor Su! There was a warmth in Yin Zhaos eyes, for all the missed opportunities. Yin Zhao was somewhat out of sorts. For the first time in 32 years, he was this disheveled. He had driven her away with his own hands. Director Feng watched his expression and smiled with a hint of amusement. He said, "Yin Zhao, this is the Doctor Su I was telling you about! Her work is very good... What a pity to lose her!" Yin Zhaos Adams apple moved, as he wanted to say something. But Su Ruanruan just gave him a faint smile. She said to Director Feng, "Thank you for your care these days." She took off her work badge and gently ced it on the office desk. Director Feng still wanted to retain her. He looked towards Yin Zhao. The shock was too much for Yin Zhao, and he didnt know how to make amends on the spot. Moreover, he had never chased after a girl. Su Ruanruan nodded to Director Feng and then left straight away. She passed by him, just like every other time over the years. Only this time, he was so close to her... but still unable to hold onto her. The door closed softly. Yin Zhaos heart was still in turmoil. He didnt hear what Director Feng said. He picked up the work badge on the desk. It was a photo of Su Ruanruan without makeup. Her small face was as clean as Song Xues white plums. Just like the first time he saw her in City B. Yin Zhao murmured, "Uncle Feng, Ive met her." Director Feng was startled, "You know Doctor Su?" Yin Zhao was still looking at the badge, his voice very low, "Ive seen her several times." The work badge was taken away by Yin Zhao. ... Yin Zhao took a call in the corridor. He went to old Mr. Hes ward. Sun Jingan was also there. After conservative treatment, Mr. Hes pain was significantly reduced. Now he was thinking about repaying the favor. He happily said to Sun Jingan, "Jingan, I called Yin Zhao to bring you to find that young doctor, to properly thank her! Promote her if she should be promoted, reward her if she should be rewarded." Sun Jingan smiled, "Thats only right." Then a phone call came in. It was Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan was sitting in a car, her tone calm, "Mr. Sun, I am temporarily leaving my position." Sun Jingan didnt believe it. He asked again. Su Ruanruan said, "Its true! Rather than saying Im leaving my position, its more like I was fired." Only then did Sun Jingan believe it. He covered the phone and walked to the door, chuckling twice. He said, "You two are really just alike, both considering disgrace as something honorable! He couldnt help but say, "Youre both doctors. Someone saved Mr. Hes life, and now my teacher wants me to repay the favor! As for you, you cant even continue as an emergency doctor." No, he had to put her under strict orders. But before he could say anything, Su Ruanruan spoke lightly, "Dont worry, Mr. Sun, theres no need for me to handle it, someone else will take care of this matter." Sun Jingan scoffed, "Haha, you think this is Jiang City, where you can do as you please!" He mmed the phone down. Mr. He asked him what was the matter. Sun Jingan smiled faintly, "Just a naughty kid at home." Mr. Heughed, "Well, children need proper guidance." Sun Jingan didnt speak. Mr. He asked for someone from Yin Zhao again. Yin Zhao handled the request perfunctorily. He walked out of the inpatient building and to the parking lot where he opened his car door and sat inside. He sat for a long while before dialing his assistants number. "Send me Doctor Sus information." In about a minute, he received Su Ruanruans information. Including her address. In an upscale vi area in City B. Yin Zhao quietly looked at it for a while before starting the car... Chapter 484: Counterattack, Su Ruanruan is Skilled and Comfortable

Chapter 484: Chapter 484: Counterattack, Su Ruanruan is Skilled and Comfortable

Near noon. Yin Zhao found the vi. He turned off the engine and looked sideways. The European-style vi, adorned red and white, was well maintained. Argewn with a small rose garden beside it. Yin Zhao sat quietly. His mind wandered back to when he first met her. At a French restaurant in City B, she yed the piano, masterfully. In Jiangcheng, she had a driver. The car was a Rolls-Royce. She was very young then. Around 18 or 19 years old. She didnt look like someone kept by another person. Yin Zhao was usually disciplined and wouldnt smoke even if annoyed. But at this moment, he sat in the car and smoked a cigarette to relieve stress. He was just about to get out of the car. Su Ruanruan appeared. She was with a man. The man was in a wheelchair and she was pushing him out to the sun. The sunlight was dazzling. The mans face was handsome. Su Ruanruan treated him with great care... Yin Zhao squinted his eyes. He recognized that handsome young man, it was Bao Ziqi. A talented pianist. Five years ago, he was disabled in a car ident. Yin Zhao silently watched for a long while. He didnt leave the car, nor did he go to find her. Later, he started the car. He thought: Let it be! She is just someone who passed through his life! Thats all. He returned to the hospital, to the VIP ward. Old He was smiling and talking to Sun Jingan. When Yin Zhao came over, Old He asked about Doctor Su. Sun Jingan was sitting on the sofa against the wall, chuckling, "Yin Zhao, why are you holding back? Dont you want us to meet her?" Yin Zhaos expression was repressed. He took out Su Ruanruans work badge and gently ced it on the coffee table. He said: "Doctor Su has resigned." "Resigned?" Sun Jingan shook his head, "Why did she suddenly resign?" He picked up the work badge carelessly. He was stunned when he saw it. Why is it Su Ruanruans? He looked again at Yin Zhao. He seemed totally disheartened. As if he had a heartbreak. Sun Jingan had a clue. He smiled lightly: "What happened?" Yin Zhao couldnt speak. Sun Jingan stepped out to make a phone call. Su Ruanruan was in the vi, she answered the phone. Sun Jingan suppressed his voice: "Why didnt you say earlier?" "Say what?" "That you are the lifesaver of Old He!" Sun Jingan suddenly became suspicious: "Ruanruan, you are not plotting something, are you?" He had heard of her deeds in Jiangcheng. Full of tricks, just like Jingyan. Hearing this, Su Ruanruan let out a lightugh. She said: "Since Mr. Sun understands me so well, why bother asking more?" On the other end, Sun Jingan somewhat doubted life. ... Su Ruanruan hung up the phone. She called Qin Chao. Qin Chao brought a USB drive full of good stuff. In the vis hall. Su Ruanruan asked Qin Chao to y the video once. Then, they took a snapshot of Sun Jingan smoking outside the bar. Very clear. Including that particr car, and its license te. Su Ruanruan whispered instructions: "Acquire a third-rate newspaper and publish these photos with some text, the most important being that they were personally taken by Lu Nansheng, a doctor at United Hospital." Qin Chao understood immediately. He said: "Dont worry, Miss Su, were seasoned in handling these matters." Su Ruanruan coughed lightly. Qin Chao then realized Bao Ziqi was still around. He scratched his head and smiled awkwardly: "Young Master Ziqi is a refined person, my apologies." Bao Ziqi was unfazed. He said: "Extraordinary times require extraordinary measures, its normal." Qin Chao immediately went to work. He was efficient, and by the afternoon, there were whispers around City B. [Suspected Mr. Sun XX spotted at Drunken Today.] [Righteous female doctor, righteous exposure!] [Revealing the background of the female doctor...] Chapter 485: Mrs. Sun Jingan, Ready to Sacrifice Lu Nansheng to Heaven

Chapter 485: Chapter 485: Mrs. Sun Jingan, Ready to Sacrifice Lu Nansheng to Heaven

The news was specifically delivered into the ears of Madam Sun Jingan. Madam Sun Jingan has quite the status in high society. That afternoon, she was socializing and ying cards. Her attendant came over and whispered a few words. Someone else asked. Madam Sun Jingan smiled faintly: "Just a little rumor concerning Jingan, but Im sure, even if he was given ten times the courage, he wouldnt dare bring someone back." She said this with confidence. Her maiden family also has a significant status. Sun Jingan usually respects her greatly. For such news to be published in the newspapers is not ordinary. She had someone go investigate. The attendant is very capable. In no time at all, it was discovered that it was a female doctor named Lu Nansheng who stirred up the trouble. As Madam Sun Jingan yed cards, she casually asked, "Does she have any background?" "Not at all." The attendant smiled faintly. How intriguing! The otherdies then asked. Madam Sun Jingan said with a smile, "Its just a trivial matter! A child from our family just arrived in City B. I originally wanted Jingan to find her a job, but shes rather obstinate in wanting to be independent." Thedies eximed in admiration. [Its really rare to find such children these days.] [Exactly, so many rely on their parents.] [Shuci, you should take extra care of her.] ... Madam Sun Jingan continued to y cards. As sheid down a card, she added, "Shes also very honest, and in the hospital, she got bullied by others! It was this Dr. Lu Nansheng who, within a few days, had driven out our young one. Now, isnt that overbearing?" Thedies expressed their shock dramatically. [Who dares to mess with someone from Mr. Suns family?] [This is utterly outrageous.] Madam Sun Jingan smiled cidly. She said, "She is Yin Zhaos junior." One of thedies, resting her chin on her hand, chuckled lightly: "Even Yin Changhe has to look to Mr. Suns face!" Madam Sun Jingan pushed her cards away. She said, "Lets call it a day, I have matters to attend to." ... As she walked out. The attendant said, "The news has been suppressed, as if it was meant for you to hear it." Madam Sun Jingan pondered for a moment. She said, "This is Ruanruan giving me a heads-up! That female doctor was spreading rumors at the hospital. Fortunately, no one recognized the license te." If it had blown up. It would have been detrimental to Sun Jingans future. Madam Sun Jingan was very grateful to Su Ruanruan. She told the attendant, "This child has the makings of achieving great things." Following that, she made a call to Bao Jingyan. At the YR Group headquarters. Bao Jingyan was in a meeting. He indicated for the meeting to pause for a moment. On the phone, Madam Sun Jingan gave Bao Jingyan a thorough scolding. She recounted the incident. She challenged him, "Can you still protect your wife? If you cant handle it, I might as well take care of her for you." Bao Jingyan chuckled, "This little matter, Ruanruan is certainly capable of handling! Besides, arent you already eager to stand up for her?" Madam Sun Jingans face flushed. Bao Jingyans tone softened. He said, "No matter what, I thank you. I know youve always been on my side and often speak up for Ruanruan." Madam Sun Jingan sighed softly. She said, "How can I not help when theres a child involved!" Bao Jingyan fell silent. Madam Sun Jingan spoke resentfully, "With such a grown child around, your uncle must be blind!" ... On her side, she was plotting to take revenge for the child. But on the other side, Su Ruanruan received a phone call. It was from Su Minghua. A person well into her thirties, sobbing messily over the phone. A mix of snot and tears. As if both her parents had passed away, she wailed, "Ruanruan, Song Wei has a new boy toy!" Chapter 486: Ruanruan, Song Wei has a pretty boy

Chapter 486: Chapter 486: Ruanruan, Song Wei has a pretty boy

Su Ruanruan sighed. She said, "Big brother is someone with status now, how can he still be so fragile!" Su Minghua was still howling: "Fourth sister! You must help me this time no matter what." He begged desperately. Su Ruanruan agreed to go. Su Huahua led her to Song Weis hotel. In the elevator, Su Ruanruan sized up her elder brother. A look of being troubled by love. She sighed softly: The image of a dignified dean that he had strived to build over the years was ruined in an instant. Song Weis sister was his natural nemesis. Having support, Su Minghuamented. He said, "Recently, Song Wei has fallen for a male celebrity, Bai Muye! She even financed his movie with two hundred million yuan! Ruanruan, you say its just making movies, signing contracts, but taking someone to a hotel suite, what kind of contract is that?" His head adorned with green (a Chinese metaphor for being cheated on). He bitterly said, "I have entrusted her with everything over these years! She cant be so unscrupulous." Su Ruanruan was both amused and annoyed. She asked him, "Arent you and Sister Song Wei an open couple?" Su Minghua didnt care. He clung to Su Ruanruans hand, "Fourth sister, Ruanruan, you must help me! I cant bear this green hat! If she really dares to do something with that pretty boy, I will...I will..." The elevator door opened, and he hadnt noticed. Song Wei was standing there. She was wearing a ck cowl neck sheer top today, with a dark red sequined skirt beneath. Long curly hair, and her makeup was exquisite. Su Minghua felt even more "green" on his head. He dared not confront Song Wei. He implored Su Ruanruan with his eyes. How could Song Wei not know him? She told the celebrity and assistant by her side, "Just sign the contract properly, and Bai should act well." Bai Muye nodded. The assistant was very attentive: "Thank you, President Song, for this opportunity." Su Minghua was a bit stunned. The assistant was also there? Then wasnt she cheating on him? His mood improved, but how should he exin his earlier usations to Song Wei? He again sought Su Ruanruans help: "Ruanruan, arent you going to have a heart-to-heart with Sister Song Wei?" But Song Wei had already turned around. She said, "Su Minghua, get your ass in here." Su Minghua followed her in with a crestfallen look. As soon as they entered the suite. Song Wei grabbed his ear, "Feeling brave, huh? Daring to catch me cheating." She walked to the sofa and sat down. She leaned over and took a womans cigarette out of the pack. Su Minghua humbly leaned down to light it for her. Song Wei slowly blew out a ring of smoke, then gently stroked his neck with her hand. "Afraid I might sleep with someone else?" Su Minghua dared not speak. Song Weiy sideways on the sofa. Her posture seductive, eyes enchanting. Su Minghua couldnt resist; he wanted her. Song Wei kicked him away with one foot. Su Minghua was left hanging for a few days. He beseeched her. He disregarded his dignity, which Song Wei actually quite liked. But she would not easily yield. She asked him, "You dont even trust me this much, do you still see me as a toy in your heart?" Su Minghua swore to heaven. He grabbed her delicate feet, massaging them. While serving her, he said, "Im getting older and cannot have children." He earnestly said, "Im afraid one day youll want children, and then Ill have nopetitive edge at all." Song Wei listened, both amused and annoyed. She countered, "And whatpetitive edge do you have now? Talking about age, nearly forty, talking about other things, you cantpare with those in their early twenties. Why do you think Ive stayed with you all these years?" Su Minghua was ecstatic. He kissed her, babbling cheesy nicknames. He told Song Wei, "I didnt realize you valued me so much! Darling, you are my life." Chapter 487: You Don鈥檛 Know Miss Su鈥檚 Identity?

Chapter 487: Chapter 487: You Dont Know Miss Sus Identity?

Song Wei detested him. With her foot, she flicked his tie that hung lifelessly like a salted fish. She said, "Look at you, showing up in this state." Su Minghua finally came back to his senses. He flirted with her, "Isnt that because I care? Wouldnt I be nervous anywhere if it didnt involve you?" Over the years, Song Wei and he had gotten along well. Though she was nearing forty with wealth and status, finding a suitable man was not easy. Su Minghua, in various aspects, pleased her quite a bit. Besides, she wasnt particrly fond of children; having them or not didnt matter to her. She cared about him to some extent. She said to him, "Its just an investment in a movie, Bai Muye is only 24, what are you thinking?" Su Minghua wrapped his arms around her waist. He admitted his mistake: "My fault." After some entanglement, Song Wei wanted him. She pushed him to go take a shower. Su Minghua was eager to please her, naturally, he pulled out all the stops... ... Meanwhile, at the elevator entrance. Su Ruanruan paid her respects to Bai Muye. She said, "My older brother and Sister Song Wei have known each other since their youth, so... he got a bit emotional." Fortunately, Bai Muye understood. He knew the rtionship between Su Ruanruan and Song Wei. It would be somewhat rude for him to leave at this time. So, he invited thedy to sit in the coffee shop on the first floor. Su Ruanruan had nothing else on, so she agreed. Mainly because Jingyuan liked him and she thought to ask for his autographter. Upon reaching the coffee shop on the first floor, Su Ruanruan ordered a Blue Mountain coffee. After some casual conversation, she took out a card. Bai Muye smiled, "Is it Miss Sus younger sister?" Su Ruanruan nodded: "Sort of, she really likes Mr. Bais movies." She was very polite: "When Mr. Bais movies are released, our whole family will support them." Bai Muye was very fond of Miss Su. Her demeanor in dealing with people was cool and collected. But not to the point of making it awkward or ufortable. He instructed his assistant to cancel his schedule. It was clear to him that Miss Su came from a prominent background, and those who mingled in their circles naturally aimed to make connections wherever possible. But as it turned out, quite unfortunately, Lu Nansheng and a senior were also there drinking coffee. Su Ruanruan had left the hospital, thinking she had won. Yet she had not expected Su Ruanruan to hook up with someone else, a famous movie star from the entertainment industry at that. Lu Nansheng had always liked him. She came over to interrupt their conversation. She said to Bai Muye, "Mr. Bai, you dont actually know the real face of thedy opposite you; she specializes in angling for rich men." Bai Muye was a bit taken aback. Lu Nansheng saw his expression and thought he was shocked by Su Ruanruans deplorable character. But Bai Muye said, "Maam, you... are you not aware of Miss Sus identity?" Lu Nansheng chuckled lightly: "What status could she possibly have?" Bai Muye did not wish to continue the conversation with her. He stood up courteously. He said to Su Ruanruan, "Thank you for helping out today!" Su Ruanruan smiled: "It was my brother who was impulsive." Bai Muye gestured for thedy to leave first. Su Ruanruan departed gracefully. After she left, Lu Nansheng eagerly approached: "Xiao Bai, I am a fan of yours." Then, some unknown bodyguard appeared. He swiftly moved her aside, treating her like a madwoman. Bai Muye took her as thin air! How could anyone rise to the top in the entertainment industry without being shrewd? Lu Nansheng was both embarrassed and furious. She attributed yet another grievance to Su Ruanruans ount, trembling as she took out her phone. She wanted to apply the same old trick again. She still thought to smear Su Ruanruan another time. But just then, she received a call from Yin Zhao. Yin Zhao spoke irritably, "Group Leader Lu, can youe to the hospital?" Lu Nansheng was taken aback. Yin Zhao, holding back, said, "The wife of the owner of the car with the 666 license te has arrived, wanting to understand the situation." Su Nansheng was ecstatic. A rich old mans wife was looking for trouble with Su Ruanruan! Chapter 488: Su Ruanruan, She鈥檚 Our Child

Chapter 488: Chapter 488: Su Ruanruan, Shes Our Child

Hospital. Mrs. Sun Jingan came with the force of a thunderstorm. She first visited Elder He. Elder He was a lifelong friend of her parents and he and his wife cherished her like their own daughter. Mrs. Sun Jingan sat beside him and chatted for a while, then Yin Zhao entered. Mrs. Sun Jingans face sank immediately; she tossed the photograph away. That was the precursor to Yin Zhaos phone call. In order to show grave concern, Yin Zhao invited Mrs. Sun Jingan to his office to sit down. Mrs. Sun Jingan sat drinking tea. Yin Zhao, Director Feng, and a few other senior staff were apanying her. Mrs. Sunes from a powerful family and has a character not to be trifled withessentially a heroine. They dared not breathe too loudly around her. After roughly half an hours wait, Lu Nansheng arrived cheerfully. Shees from a lower social circle and did not recognize Mrs. Sun Jingan, perceiving her only as a noble and beautifuldy. Her demeanor exuded an unprovoked authority. Very much the air of an empress. To emphasize her identity as a doctor, Lu Nansheng deliberately spoke cordially, "Thisdy must be the victim, I presume?" Yin Zhao frowned, "Did you really take that photograph?" Lu Nansheng was taken aback. She only then remembered, how did her alias get out? Just as she was about to defend herself, Mrs. Sun Jingan put down her teacup. She said indifferently, "Ive heard Doctor Lu has made significant contributions to the hospital." Lu Nansheng quickly said, "Rest assured, Madam, Doctor Su has been dismissed." Mrs. Sun Jingan started to smile. She said, "Then do you know who youve photographed? Do you know what their rtionship is?" Lu Nansheng was stunned. Then she tried to wriggle out of it, "What can possibly happen in such a ce?" "That night, didnt Doctor Lu also go to Drunken Today? Could it be that Doctor Lu also engaged in some sort of misdeed?" Lu Nansheng haughtily said, "I did not get into a rich mans car." Mrs. Sun Jinganughed gently, lowering her eyebrows. She gave the clueless young doctor a pointer, "Youve photographed my husband Sun Jingan! Doctor Su is deeply connected to the Sun Familyas good as a child of our household." The more Mrs. Sun Jingan smiled, the icier her eyes became. Lu Nansheng was petrified. What? That license te with 666, was it Sun Jingans car? Su Ruanruan has ties with the Sun Family? Mrs. Sun Jingan went further, "Doctor Su should be calling Jingan Uncle." Lu Nansheng felt weak in the knees. She hadnt realized Su Ruanruans background was so substantial. At this point, she waspletely at a loss. Instinctively, her eyes sought Yin Zhao. Yin Zhao was put in a difficult position by her reckless moves, and couldntor didnt want tohelp her. Mrs. Sun Jingan was not about to let it rest. She questioned Yin Zhao, "For an anonymous photograph, you dismiss a fine doctor and keep someone whose morals and character are tainted. Yin Zhao, is this how you and your father Yin Changhe have repaid Jingan over these years?" Yin Zhao was indeed struggling. The other party was not only his elder but also of much higher status. He could only speak softly, "I will find a way to make it up to Doctor Su." "How can you make it up?" Mrs. Sun Jingan scoffed coldly, "Our Ruanruan has been pampered and cherished since childhood, and now for no good reason, shes been rumored to be someone elses mistress. Thats bad enough within the hospital, but if Doctor Lu, with enough ability, spreads it further in society, how will Ruanruans reputation be salvaged?" She went on, "It doesnt matter if Ruanruan frequents Drunken Today for fun, even if she should sleep there every day, theres nothing wrong with that." She spoke with emphasis, "Ruanruan is the second owner of Drunken Today." Lu Nanshengsplexion turned pale. She was shocked and envious. Mrs. Sun Jingan nced at her. Feeling it was about time, she stood up. Her posture was graceful, exuding a natural sense of high stature and pressure. She said, "Yin Zhao, I wont intervene in the hospital affairs! Sort it out on your own." She left him with onest remark, "Elder He has heard about it, too, and is very angry! Weigh your actions carefully." Chapter 489: Not Convinced! Just a relative by marriage of the Sun Family!

Chapter 489: Chapter 489: Not Convinced! Just a rtive by marriage of the Sun Family!

Yin Zhao forced a smile: "Aunt Shu." Mrs. Sun Jingan nced at him. She said, "Behave yourself." Yin Zhao escorted her to the downstairs. He did not return to the office until she got into the car. Director Feng was scolding, "Lu, Ive already said to check into this matter further. See how passive weve be now?" Lu Nansheng looked wronged. She said, "I was also thinking of our hospitals best interest." Director Feng gave her a meaningful look, his tone even more lingering: "I think you had other ideas, didnt you?" Lu Nansheng felt ufortable. Yin Zhao walked in, and she immediately approached him for protection: "Senior." Yin Zhao ignored her. He said, "Director Feng stays, everyone else leave." Lu Nansheng was reluctant. But she dared not say more; her only hope now was Yin Zhao. The door closed. Yin Zhao lit a cigarette. He asked Director Feng, "What do you say?" Director Feng was very straightforward: "Fire Lu." He was clear in his reasoning, "It was my poor arrangement. I wanted Lu Nansheng to guide Doctor Su, but who knew... This is a ssic case of workce bullying." Yin Zhao smoked. The smoke billowed up as he said, "Our surgical department is short-staffed, and Lu Nansheng is quite capable." Director Feng understood; this meant he wanted to keep Lu Nansheng. After all, they had been acquainted for over a decade. Director Feng wanted to say something else, but a nurse ran over. She said, "The condition of the patient in Room 95 is deteriorating, Doctor Lu is already preparing for surgery." Yin Zhao didnt say anything. ... About four hourster. The surgery was sessful. Lu Nansheng hadpleted a very difficult procedure. When she walked out of the operating room, she was greeted with apuse. And Yin Zhao was there too. Initially, Yin Zhao was still hesitating. Now he had made up his mind to keep her. Lu Nansheng removed her mask, her features glowing with confidence. She cheerfully called out, "Senior." Yin Zhao said to her, "Change your clothes,e out with me." As they walked side by side, Lu Nansheng feigned confusion, "It was just a normal surgery, senior, are you treating me to a big meal?" Yin Zhao said calmly, "Were going to Doctor Sus house to apologize." The smile froze on Lu Nanshengs lips. After a moment, she said, "Just call her toe back to work would be fine." Yin Zhao spoke directly, "Its the hospital boards decision. If you dont apologize, youll be fired directly." Lu Nanshengs lips trembled. She asked him, "Is Doctor Su really that important?" She took off her white coat, clearly unwilling. "Besides being from a better family and being a bit prettier than me, what else does she have?" Yin Zhao kept his hands in his pockets. His tone indifferent, "Not just a bit." Lu Nansheng was stunned. Yin Zhao had no interest in further discussion, "Ill be waiting with Director Feng in the parking lot." Lu Nansheng was extremely frustrated. But she still had to go, so she meticulously applied her makeup. She couldnt be outshone by Su Ruanruan. Later, when she got into Yin Zhaos car, she should have sat in the back with old Feng as a subordinate. But Lu Nansheng had other ns. She sat in the front passenger seat. Director Feng chuckled knowingly. Half an hour passed, and the car hadnt moved. Lu Nansheng said sarcastically, "Isnt Doctor Sus family very well-off? Why not buy a big t in the city center?" Yin Zhaos tone was indifferent: "There are no vis in the city center." A girl like Su Ruanruan belongs in a big mansion. Lu Nansheng pursed her lips. She didnt believe Su Ruanruan lived in a mansion; just a rtive of the Sun Family, nothing more. Really thought she was a princess? Five minutester, Yin Zhao stopped the car. He unbuckled his seatbelt and said softly, "Were here." Lu Nansheng shut up. The mansion in front, broad and luxurious. Especially elegant and attractive amid the greenery. Chapter 490: A Slap in the Face! Su Ruanruan is the True Lady

Chapter 490: Chapter 490: A p in the Face! Su Ruanruan is the True Lady

Lu Nansheng was still in shock. She murmured, "That must be several hundred million, right?" Director Feng chuckled, "Thetest quote from the broker: over 1.2 billion." Lu Nansheng was hit hard. But she quickly pulled herself together. She might note from the same background as Su Ruanruan, but she was certainly more capable than Su Ruanruan. They all got out of the car. Unable to help it, Lu Nansheng said, "Doctor Sus family is so well-off, does she really have the mind to work properly? If shes not good at her job, she doesnt belong in the hospital." Director Feng brought gifts. He chuckled twice. Yin Zhao personally rang the doorbell. Soon, someone who looked like a gardener came to open the door. Yin Zhao stated their purpose, and the person made a call before letting them in. An exquisitely decorated American-style lobby. Su Ruanruan was sitting on a set of dark green leather sofas reading a book. In a floral long dress. Her tea-colored long hair gathered in front of her. Quietly beautiful. Despite preparing himself mentally, Yin Zhao was suddenly taken aback. His heartbeat sped up. Lu Nansheng was looking at all this with envy. The gardener said softly, "Miss Su, your guests are here." Su Ruanruan looked up and observed them quietly. She put down her book and greeted them indifferently. Yin Zhao, Director Feng, and the others sat down, and soon Gui Zhi brought over several cups of tea. The fragrance of the tea filled the air. What she served to Su Ruanruan, however, was a bowl of Golden Silk Nest. Gui Zhi spoke softly and gently, "Your aunt by marriage had this sent over just now, shes so thoughtful." Su Ruanruan smiled faintly, "She has always been good to me." Gui Zhi knew when to draw back. She addressed the others with the tray, "You chat with Miss Su." After Gui Zhi left. Lu Nansheng said sourly, "What era is this? Howe there are still remnants like servants?" Su Ruanruan took a sip of the birds nest. She put down the bowl and smiled faintly, "Gui Zhi is one of our family elders, not a servant! If Doctor Lu thinks earning money throughbor is a remnant, then as Doctor Lu serves patients and even male patients, what does that make Doctor Lu?" Lu Nansheng was livid. Yin Zhao stopped her. He said to Su Ruanruan, "Doctor Su, wevee to apologize." Su Ruanruan still wore a faint smile, "I thought Doctor Lu came to criticize and instruct." Lu Nansheng held back, keeping herself from speaking. Director Feng spoke up, "Xiao Su, for my sake, pleasee back to work! Mrs. Sun Jingan is very concerned about you." Su Ruanruan smiled slightly. She said, "I understand your intentions." She added, "I only have one condition." Yin Zhao sped his hands, "You say." Su Ruanruan looked at Lu Nansheng, "I request the dismissal of Doctor Lu Nansheng." Lu Nansheng was desperate. She lost herposure and, without thinking, clung to Yin Zhaos arm. She pleaded, "Senior." Yin Zhao shook off her hand. Su Ruanruan took another sip of the birds nest, watching silently. She smiled unnoticeably. Doctor Lu liked Yin Changhe, always showing off her status as his girlfriend to everyone. Yin Changhe had never responded. But neither had he truly rejected her. This time, after what Lu Nansheng had done, Yin Changhes decision to keep her was merely to satisfy a mans vanity. It was not about liking her. But about enjoying this unrequited love. Not responding, so it could be as if it never happened. Su Ruanruan found it quite despicable. She watched the drama with a singing smile. Under such a gaze, Yin Changhe felt slightly embarrassed. He spoke with a heavy voice, "The hospital has already punished Team Leader Lu." Lu Nansheng suddenly felt reassured. Her senior still cared about her. Yin Zhao looked at Su Ruanruan and conceded a point. He said, "The hospital will demote Team Leader Lu and have her start from the ground up." Su Ruanruan felt it was enough. She wasnt really intent on driving Lu Nansheng away; she still wanted to keep her around to trouble the father and son, Yin Changhe. She agreed. Chapter 491: Awesome! Bao Jingyuan鈥檚 Intense Bright Output

Chapter 491: Chapter 491: Awesome! Bao Jingyuans Intense Bright Output

Yin Zhao breathed a sigh of relief. After finishing his official business, he had other things on his mind. But before he could open his mouth, Bao Jingyuan came ttering downstairs. d in a Chanel autumn outfit. Tall and shapely, with a stunning face. Her personality was still as fierce as a tiger. Midway down the stairs, she confronted Lu Nansheng: "Are you that doctor who has no money and still forced Ruanruan to reserve a 660k VIP room?" Lu Nansheng was dumbfounded. Where did this capricious girle from? Bao Jingyuan swayed down the stairs in an imposing manner. She sat next to Su Ruanruan. Very affectionate. She rudely said to Lu Nansheng: "And you even ran to my brothers house. Who do you think you are, the Virgin Mary? Even the Virgin Mary needs to be prettier! You should look nice like our Ruanruan." Lu Nansheng was truly pissed off. She wanted to retort. Bao Jingyuan pouted and added: "That Dior piece youre wearing is a knock-off; even our servants wouldnt wear it!" She was avenging Gui Zhi! Lu Nansheng was proud of her talents. But in front of Bao Jingyuan, she was helpless. However, Su Ruanruan gently patted Bao Jingyuan and softly said: "Dont be so impolite." Bao Jingyuan uttered an "Oh." She was obedient and submissive to Su Ruanruan. Quite remarkable. But when she looked up at the three of them, her expression turned sour again: "What are you still doing here? Want to stay for dinner?" The three of them left with tails between their legs. Yin Zhao and Lu Nansheng remained silent the whole time. But Director Feng was extremely happy. He said: "Doctor Su must be very charming to have tamed such a youngdy." ... Inside the vi. Bao Jingyuan asked Su Ruanruan for approval: "Ruanruan, how did I do just now?" It was rare for Su Ruanruan to praise her. She said: "Very good." Bao Jingyuan clung closer to Su Ruanruan. Not minding the heat. She looked at Su Ruanruans face for a while before saying cautiously: "That Yin guy, he likes you." Su Ruanruan remainedposed. Bao Jingyuan went on: "You kept Lu Nansheng around just to disgust him, right?" She said with discontent: "Just like how you used Su Qionglin to block the second brother before." Su Ruanruans voice was light: "Bao Jingyuan, youve grown up." Bao Jingyuan held her head. Su Ruanruan did not burst out. Because Jingyuan was right, she had made progress. Bao Jingyuan grew bolder. Clinging to Su Ruanruans arm, she coaxed: "Anyway, youre not allowed to like him. You either live with me and second brother, or marry big brother! Ruanruan, you cant leave me behind." Su Ruanruan gave her a nce. And counter-questioned her: "Arent you getting married?" Bao Jingyuans eyes reddened. Leaning on Su Ruanruans shoulder, she whispered: "With such a thing my mother did, who would want me?" Su Ruanruans heart tightened. She gently stroked Bao Jingyuans head, a warmth in her voice. She said: "She is her, and you are you! If you do well, in the future, many good people will like you." Bao Jingyuan wanted to act spoiled again. But Su Ruanruans phone rang. She answered it. It was a call from Mrs. Sun Jingan. Mrs. Sun Jingan phrased it indirectly: "Tonight, thedy of the Yin Family is hosting a card game and insists on having me! Ruanruan, Im short a yer and youre good at cards, do you want to join us for fun?" Su Ruanruan understood the situation. The Yindy and Qin Su wanted to win over Mrs. Sun Jingan. During the card game, it seemed they nned to give her money. Mrs. Sun Jingan didnt want to ept it and sought to use Su Ruanruan instead. Su Ruanruan owed her a big favor today. She was willing to help, so she agreed. Chapter 492: First Entry into the Circle of Socialites, Stunning at First Attempt

Chapter 492: Chapter 492: First Entry into the Circle of Socialites, Stunning at First Attempt

At seven in the evening. Mrs. Sun Jingan sent a car to pick her up. Su Ruanruan got into the car and arrived at a chic mansion owned by Mrs. Yin. Thedies of high society in City B know how to enjoy life. Even a casual card game is set up like a banquet. An old-fashioned record yer. A niche and serene tune. Four British butlers shuttle back and forth serving tea. Five or sixdies sit on couches,fortably sipping English tea. Naturally, Mrs. Sun Jingan is the leader of the pack. Mrs. Sun Jingan looked around and praised: "Mrs. Yins ce is really nice! Very charming." Naturally, the others agreed. Qin Su took a sip of tea, "Just some trinkets." She asked Mrs. Sun Jingan: "Regarding the card partner you mentioned, I wonder whose daughter she is." Mrs. Sun Jingan smiled. She said: "That child we talked about today." Qin Su was relieved. Recently, Changhe had not been very popr in front of Jingan, so she naturally needs to make her rounds. If Mrs. Sun Jingan brings someone who is not sharp, that would be favoring her own. Qin Su smiled. Thedies drank another cup of tea. The door of the mansion opened. A waiter ushered Su Ruanruan in. Tonight, Su Ruanruan dressed up specially. A fluffy ck long dress paired with a luxurious diamond ne. Elegant yet valuable. Mrs. Sun Jingan introduced her to others, "This is the child from our Jingans side, surnamed Su, named Ruanruan." Su Ruanruan greeted everyone. Her behavior and manners were proper and considered. She was also exceptionally beautiful. Others genuinelyplimented: "Unexpectedly, Jiangcheng has such a person!" Mrs. Sun Jingan had a full smile. She said: "The child is honest, go easy on herter." Thediesughed: "Theres no mercy in the game of cards~ Mrs. Sun, you better prepare some money." Mrs. Sun Jingan chuckled. She looked at Qin Su: "Mrs. Yin, shall we start?" Qin Su was momentarily distracted. Hearing this, she smiled slightly: "Of course." ... Sitting at the table. While shuffling cards, Su Ruanruan said softly: "I dont y often, please forgive me." Thedies were intent on winning. Tonight, it seemed there would be gains. This was Su Ruanruans first time ying cards with them, she held back during the first round. Several turnster, she kept losing. In the blink of an eye, she was down by several hundred thousand. Mrs. Yin chuckled: "Mrs. Jingan, did you bring someone here to give us money?" Othersughed as well. Ady propped her chin: "She really ys big." Su Ruanruan gave a shallow smile. Sheid out two tiles: "Pung." Thatdy then regretted, "I shouldnt have yed this tile." Mrs. Yin smiled: "No regrets in chess moves." She drew a tile, pondered, and then yed it. Su Ruanruan gentlyid out her tiles. She grinned: "Sorry, double Pung." Mrs. Yin didnt look very pleased. She was the best card yer here. Usually, she would y as needed, winning or losing appropriately. This time, she had been careless. She counted her chips, gracefully saying, "Miss Su yed well." Su Ruanruan collected the chips. She modestly said: "Just a bit of luck." Thedies began ying again... What followed was entirely Su Ruanruans show. Either self-drawing or winning on Mrs. Yins ys. asionally, she would also win on Mrs. Sun Jingans ys. When Mrs. Sun Jingan lost, she joked: "I brought you to see the world, but didnt expect you toe win my money, Ill have Jingan teach you a lessonter." Su Ruanruan feigned ignorance. She yfully replied: "Theres no mercy in the game of cards." Mrs. Sun Jingan pointed at her, and said to the others: "Look, shes learned to be bad." Some in the crowd sighed inwardly: Didnt you say earlier that she was honest? Chapter 493: You鈥檙e on your period? You come every day!

Chapter 493: Chapter 493: Youre on your period? Youe every day!

Mrs. Yin was sweating profusely in cold fear. She met her match. Su Ruanruan stepped up, overwhelming her with no chance to retaliate. She was here to lose money today, and now, much of her money had indeed been lost. But all to Su Ruanruan. Moreover, Mrs. Sun Jingan also lost money today, she could escape this predicament entirely. ... Thus, they yed several more rounds. Mrs. Sun Jingan pushed the cards away. She said, "No more ying, only losing money." This move was exactly what Mrs. Yin had hoped for. Mrs. Sun Jingan counted, saying, "Missing a few million." She then asked with concern, "Qin Su, how are you doing?" Qin Su forced a smile. She said, "Just twenty or thirty million!" The other twodies lost less than Mrs. Sun Jingan, not feeling too much pain. They looked at Su Ruanruan and praised, "Today Qin Su met her match, usually she ys the best." Su Ruanruan smiled, "Its my first time here, Mrs. Yin was gracious." She knew her manners and understood the big picture. Devotedly, she distributed two million chips to each party. The spectators also received a hundred thousand chips each. She gently said, "Please, have some tea." Mrs. Sun Jinganughed, "At least youre conscientious! Otherwise, I wouldnt dare bring you again." The otherdies, having gained their benefits, Helped speak for Su Ruanruan, "Miss Su is such an exceptional person, Mrs. Jingan shouldnt hide her away." Everyone could see that Miss Su was distributing Mrs. Yins wealth as a favor. Indeed, Mrs. Yin was forcing a smile. This circle is extremely mercenary. Mrs. Sun Jingans status was on disy here. Who wouldnt oblige her? Not to mention, she now had an additional helper. Involuntarily, everyone thought: Mrs. Yins time in City B is past its prime; its time to return the stage! ... Mrs. Sun Jingan made a phone call. She wanted to pick up thedy. Mrs. Sun Jingan intended to take Su Ruanruan away. But Su Ruanruan lightly said, "Bao Jingyan wille to pick me upter." That being said, she still apanied Mrs. Sun Jingan downstairs. A ck limousine was parked there, with Sun Jingan smoking in front of the car. Seeing thedy and Su Ruanruan together. His gaze was profound. Mrs. Sun Jingan bid farewell to Su Ruanruan. Very sincerely, she said, "Ruanruan, youve really helped me tremendously today." Su Ruanruan smiled, "It was nothing! And thank you for the birds nest." Over the past few years while she was in Britain, she had asionally received some. She never asked, but guessed they were sent by Mrs. Sun Jingan. Saying she was unmoved would be a lie. Only, these words were hard to speak under the current circumstances. Mrs. Sun Jingan patted her hand, her voice lowered, "You and Jingyan are really just missing the formalities." She gazed at Su Ruanruan. Young and beautiful, and intelligent too. Mrs. Sun Jingan sighed lightly, "How wonderful." She spoke cryptically, then turned to get into the car. Once in the car, the couple sat side by side in the back. Sun Jingan raised the partition. He asked his wife, "Why are you so close with this kid?" Mrs. Sun Jingan looked at him, feeling uneasy. She turned her face away. Sun Jingan loved pampering her, his tone softened, "I wasnt being harsh, why are you upset with me?" He turned his wifes face toward him. Indeed, there were tears. He wiped them away, then said, "Tonight that kid massively won; youd usually be over the moon about it." He teasingly probed, "Are you on your period?" Mrs. Sun Jingan, annoyed, hit him. She said, "Youre the one on your period! You have it every day." Though they were an old married couple, they were very affectionate in private. Sun Jingan then hugged his wife, asking softly, "Who upset you?" Chapter 494: Marital Affection

Chapter 494: Chapter 494: Marital Affection

Sun Jingans wife spoke softly, "You." With a hint of sadness in her tone, she said, "I, Mrs. Sun, may appear splendid outside, but who can understand my hardships?" She continued, "My family is well-regarded, and your status is high too! But who considers that I am also flesh and blood, and there are times when Im powerless? I cannot rely on Anran anymore, Ruanruan is capable and has a good temperament, she even understands warmth and cold, why cant I be close to her?" Sun Jingans wife grew increasingly sorrowful as she spoke. She said, "You are prestigious outside all day,pletely indifferent to whether I live or die." Her temper ring, her well-set hair came loose. Her exquisite clothes also became disheveled. Which added a touch of allure. Sun Jingan was both heartbroken and somewhat stirred. He slowly attended to his wife, softly coaxing her, "Havent I been good enough to you? When have I not treated you reverently in private?" Mrs. Sun blushed. She red at him, "Youre always so improper." Sun Jingan adjusted her clothes, saying earnestly, "Shall I ask the driver to drive faster?" When they returned home. There was a natural indulgence. Mrs. Sun talked about various matters. As a husband, hey quietly, lost in thought. After a while, he spoke, "If you need her, use her, just dont let the people in Jiangcheng know." Mrs. Sun cooed softly, "I, of course, know my limits." Sun Jingan then turned over. He smiled and asked his wife, "What do you understand?" Mrs. Suns face flushed. She said, "Ill go check on Anran." Mentioning their beloved daughter, Sun Jingan got up as well, "Ill go too." Mrs. Sun straightened up. She said to her husband, "How can you meet anyone looking like that?" Her delicate fingers pressed against his shoulder as she whispered, "Dont go to sleep, Ill be back soon." The night was cool as water. The light was dim. Mrs. Sun, wearing a robe, walked to the third floor. She pushed open the bedroom door, gently calling, "Anran." Sun Anran was still awake. She was sitting at her desk in a white nightgown. Sun Anran, 18 years old. Sun Jingans only daughter. She suffers from a congenital illness, unable to be in sunlight. She has been confined at home for 18 years, like a princess in a high tower. She was delicate, with very fair skin. Somewhat resembling Su Ruanruan. Mrs. Sun sat beside her, asking affectionately, "What are you drawing?" Anran showed her the sketch. Sitting next to Mrs. Sun, she asked, "Does it look like Xiaobai, mom?" Xiaobai was Bai Muye. A male celebrity Anran had always quite liked. Mrs. Sun looked closely and said with a smile, "It does resemble him." Anran was very happy. After a while, she looked up again and asked her mother, "Did Sister Ruanruane today?" "She did. She really is impressive and capable," Mrs. Sun pinched her beloved daughters cheek, "Mom has found a good helper." Anrany down in bed. As the light was about to be turned off, she whispered to her mother, "For my 18th birthday, I want to meet two people." One was Ruanruan, the other was Xiaobai. ... There, after seeing off Mrs. Sun, Su Ruanruan got into Bao Jingyans car. Su Ruanruan leaned back in the seat, softlyining, "My back is all broken from sitting." Bao Jingyan sped her hand, "What happened?" Su Ruanruan blushed. She whispered, "My period started." Bao Jingyan nced at her, his look quite meaningful. He drove the car back to his vi. Behind the car. Stood a person. Yin Zhao came to pick up Mrs. Yin, and just happened to see Su Ruanruan getting into Bao Jingyans car. As she got into the car, Bao Jingyan helped her by the waist. The intimacy between them was evident. Mrs. Yin walked down the steps gracefully. Seeing Yin Zhaos expression, she guessed a bit. She smiled faintly, "Miss Su was once Bao Jingyans fiance! They broke up a few years ago, and who knows why they are together again now!" Chapter 495: Sweet! Miss Su is Acting Coquettish

Chapter 495: Chapter 495: Sweet! Miss Su is Acting Coquettish

Yin Zhao clenched his fingers into a fist. His emotions were usually well-concealed, but he couldnt help losingposure at that moment. Madam Yin smiled: "I heard that President Bao had a daughter. Miss Su, such an outstanding person, I dont know why she would demean herself like this." Yin Zhao remained silent. He opened the car door for Madam Yin. Sat in the car. Madam Yin, understanding and considerate, said: "I know you like her!" She patted Yin Zhaos shoulder and said: "Miss Su is beautiful and wise, aunty hopes you can marry her." Yin Zhao still didnt speak. He started the car, his mind somewhat in turmoil. The girl he had liked for years appeared before him, but she... had already been with someone else. Yin Zhao was a perfectionist. Just thinking about her ever being with Bao Jingyan... doing everything that lovers do, he couldnt ept it. Therefore, he had no ns to pursue Su Ruanruan! ... On the other side, Su Ruanruan suffered from menstrual pain. Bao Jingyan quickly drove back to the vi. He carried her out of the car. Su Ruanruan felt a bit embarrassed, she reached out to stop him: "Auntie Li will see us." Bao Jingyans eyes were as dark as ink. He coaxed her: "In so much pain, and youre still thinking about these things!" Su Ruanruan had no choice but to let it be. She was truly in pain. And with Bao Jingyan by her side, she simply leaned her head against his chest. A slender arm wrapped around his neck. Looking up at him, her eyes gleamed brightly. Bao Jingyans heart was stirred, feeling affectionate, he asked her in a low voice: "On purpose?" Su Ruanruan was just about to speak. Auntie Li came over. Auntie Li didnt find it strange, she said with a smile: "Miss Su is acting coquettish?" Su Ruanruan struggled to get down. Bao Jingyan held her in ce. He told Auntie Li: "Its a womans issue! Auntie Li, please bring over a bowl of ginger soup." Auntie Li became concerned and asked several questions. Su Ruanruan was actually embarrassed. She leaned on Bao Jingyans shoulder, her face flushed. Bao Jingyan carried her upstairs, directly to his own bedroom. She was gently ced on the sofa. Su Ruanruan stood up, intending to look after the little girl. Bao Jingyan lightly pressed her waist: "Shes already asleep, its not toote to see her in the morning." Su Ruanruans body softened. Her long hair flowed like a waterfall. Her ck long dress fluttered elegantly. She was truly beautiful. Bao Jingyan helped her alleviate the menstrual pain while examining her. His voice husky: "Ive never seen you wear such attire." He couldnt help but kiss her. Because Auntie Li would being up soon, they didnt dare to immerse themselves too much. They kissed for a while, then talked for a while. Su Ruanruan hugged his neck, speaking softly: "When dealing withdies of high society, one must maintain a dignified appearance." Bao Jingyan kissed her again. In the end, his straight nose pressed against hers. Their breaths mingled together. Both were deeply moved. Bao Jingyan looked into her eyes, spoke with deep affection: "My Ruanruan is the most beautiful." Su Ruanruan then felt coquettish. At this moment, they seemed to be back to five years ago. Auntie Li brought the ginger tea. Guessing the sweet intimacy inside, she only called out from the doorway: "Sir." Bao Jingyan got up to fetch it. But Su Ruanruan stopped him. Her delicate fingers softly pulled at his belt, asking him to put on his coat. Bao Jingyan put on his coat and half threatened: "Youre secretly enjoying this, arent you?" Su Ruanruan leaned on the sofa andughed. When he came back, he did not scold her. He held her on hisp and fed her the ginger soup spoon by spoon. Su Ruanruan found it too bitter and spicy, reluctant to drink. "Arent you in pain because of your period? Be good, itll feel better after you drink," he coaxed her in a low voice. He gave her a preserved plum. In the past, he would do the same. Su Ruanruan leaned on his shoulder, sipping slowly. Bao Jingyans eyes were tender, his patience boundless. Chapter 496: Sweet! After Giving Birth, There鈥檚 No More Pain

Chapter 496: Chapter 496: Sweet! After Giving Birth, Theres No More Pain

Su Ruanruan felt a softness in her heart, remembering all that had happened over the past few years. It seemed that none of it mattered anymore! He treated her as he always had; he never thought of giving up. She didnt feel aggrieved. Su Ruanruan suddenly called out to him, "Bao Jingyan!" He hummed in response. Su Ruanruan reached out one hand to find his, intertwining their fingers. Bao Jingyan thought she was still in pain and continued to console her, "After giving birthter, it wont hurt anymore." She leaned on his shoulder, lightly biting her red lips. She was too reserved to speak out. She proved herself through actions. She served him like she used to, never so willingly before. Bao Jingyan couldnt bear it. But, he couldnt bear to push her away even more... Five yearster. They shared the same bed once again. Shey in Bao Jingyans arms, delicate and petite. The heat from Bao Jingyans body significantly eased her menstrual pain. Su Ruanruan needed to rest for two more days. She indulged herself in sleeping in, while Bao Jingyan, who woke up early, was also willing to apany her. The little darling woke up early. She had boundless energy. After running up and down the stairs, upon hearing Aunt Li say Ruanruan was in the main bedroom, she immediately bounced in. The corner of the quilt was lifted. Indeed, Ruanruan was dragged into bed by daddy to sleep. The little darlings round eyes widened. Her gaze shifted up and met her dads. The little darling swallowed and asked softly, "Will I have a little brother or sister soon?" Bao Jingyan blinked. Little brother or sister! Your parents arent even married, where would a brother or sistere from? To prevent the little darling from disappointment. Bao Jingyan childishly lied, "If I sleep with your sister Ruanruan every day, then youll have a brother or sister." The little darling uttered an "oh". She carefullyid down the quilt. Her expression was one of earnest devotion. Su Ruanruan was half asleep. She turned over, wrapping her arms around Bao Jingyans neck. Her expression was oddly coquettish. She murmured, calling him "Brother." In their bedroom, she sometimes called Bao Jingyan this. The little darlings expression looked quiteplicated. She felt it was too cheesy! The little one ran off in a sh... Bao Jingyan couldnt help but smile. He looked down at the person in his arms, deciding not to tell her she had beenughed at by the little darling. Downstairs. The little darling followed Aunt Li. Sheined, "Ruanruan is even better at being coquettish than me!" Aunt Lis eyes crinkled with smiles, "Your sister Ruanruan is having her period, shes ufortable." The little darling didnt understand. What does having a period mean? Aunt Li smiled warmly, "You little kid, you wouldnt understand this." The little darling pped her head. She said, "I understand! Ruanruan is bleeding!" She thought to herself: when she grows up, shell bleed a bit too, and then someone will care for her. But, she shouldnt bleed too much! Just a little... just to make the point. Su Ruanruans periodsted three days. On the fourth day, she went back to work at the hospital. Early in the morning, Su Ruanruan drove to the hospital. She went to see Yin Zhao for her reporting, as directed by the HR department. Su Ruanruan knocked and entered. Director Feng was also there, discussing Old Hes condition with Yin Zhao. As Su Ruanruan entered, Director Feng greeted her warmly. He said, "Little Su is here." Su Ruanruan smiled at him, "Good morning, Director Feng." Director Feng, a joker, immediately said, "Seeing a beauty first thing in the morning really refreshes ones spirit." He stood up: "You guys talk, Ille backter." Su Ruanruan showed him out. As she turned around, she caught Yin Zhao looking at her. His gaze was somewhat intense. Meeting Su Ruanruans eyes, Yin Zhao slightly retracted his intensity. He pulled out a personnel file, saying, "Due to Old Hes issue, the hospital has decided to directly hire you! Fill out your information, Director Feng will personally take care of you." Su Ruanruan sat opposite him. She picked up the contract and looked it over carefully... Chapter 497: Physical Examination, Su Ruanruan Pure as Ice and Jade

Chapter 497: Chapter 497: Physical Examination, Su Ruanruan Pure as Ice and Jade

Su Ruanruan watched carefully. When she lowered her gaze, there was a unique charm to it. Yin Zhao sat behind the desk, staring at her. After about five minutes, Su Ruanruan picked up the pen to sign and fill out the forms. For some reason, Yin Zhao inexplicably blurted out, "Not looking at it anymore?" Su Ruanruan appeared to be in a good mood: "Ive looked over it, theres no problem." Yin Zhao found her handwriting elegant, which somewhat soothed his irritation. He asked her, "I heard you yed cards very wellst night." Su Ruanruanpleted the form and pushed it in front of Yin Zhao. She offered a faint smile: "Thank you, Dean Yin, for giving me this opportunity." Her attitude clearly showed she didnt want to discuss personal matters with him. How proud was Yin Zhao? So he stopped talking and just quietly watched her leave. He knew he had taken his anger out on her. Because she was together with Bao Jingyan. Yin Zhao felt somewhat contemptuous of himself. ... Su Ruanruan reported to Director Feng. Director Feng was very courteous. He said with a smile: "Youre not scheduled for duty today! It coincides with the hospitals annual physical, so you can do your entry examination at the same time." Su Ruanruan nodded and returned to the office. The colleagues were quite happy, especially Gong Xiaohong. She said in a low voice: "I always said Doctor Su is innocent." The others as well, all happy for Su Ruanruan. Just then, Lu Nansheng came in. She tossed a stack of medical records onto the desk and habitually lectured: "What are you all doing here? No need to see patients?" "Were all going for physical exams today." Lu Nansheng scoffed: "So having physical exams means you can chat idly here?" At this point, someone brave remarked: "Lu Nansheng, youre not the team leader now, so it seems you cant control us, right?" Lu Nanshengs face turned pale, then flushed. She forced herself to say to Su Ruanruan: "Doctor Su, congrattions on your return! But surgery isnt done with just a pretty face, it takes real skill." Su Ruanruan simply smiled: "Its rare that I and Doctor Lu share the same view." Lu Nansheng narrowed her eyes: "We shall see." Su Ruanruan smiled lightly with lowered gaze. She didnt pay her any attention and went straight for her physical. Hospital procedures were swift. Thest was the gynecological exam. Su Ruanruan still felt a little shy. Lying down to be examined, the female doctor, finding her pretty and gentle, was particrly kind. At the end, taking off her gloves, she asked softly: "Dont have a boyfriend yet?" Su Ruanruans face was tinged with a faint blush. She replied: "I do." The female doctorughed: "Doctor Sus boyfriend really treasures her." She added chattily: "Nowadays, society is so chaotic, its not new for men and women to hop into bed on the second encounter, but someone like Doctor Su, who maintains her purity, is truly rare." After filling out the form, she added another line: "Particrly healthy." Su Ruanruan could only give a faint smile. She finished her physical and returned to the office, only to be stunned. "Someone sent 9999 roses," Gong Xiaohong said quietly. Su Ruanruan looked at the massive bouquet. She was torn betweenughter and tears. She knew who sent it. Besides Young Master Zhou, there was no one else. ... There, Yin Zhao was in turmoil. Director Feng had returned. Director Feng said smilingly, "How was it? Su isnt bad, right?" Yin Zhao opened the folder of Old Hes case, saying lightly: "She has a boyfriend now." Director Feng, still smiling: "Theyre not married yet; nothing is set in stone." Yin Zhao lit a cigarette. Director Feng did not bring it up again. Yin Zhao was extremely disciplined and seldom smoked. His current action showed his mood was very bad... They discussed Old Hes condition. Director Feng said: "I cant perform this surgery, its too delicate, I think only Zhou Zizhuo has the skill for it." He added: "Zhou Zizhuosb is quite impressive!" "Then invite him! No matter the cost," said Yin Zhao without hesitation. Chapter 498: Darling, You Finally Understand My Heart

Chapter 498: Chapter 498: Darling, You Finally Understand My Heart

Director Feng chuckled. He lit a cigarette before continuing, "But thatb falls under Tongshengs jurisdiction! That means Zhou Zizhuo is now one of Tongshengs people, and per industry rules, we need Tongshengs consent to invite him for the surgery." Yin Zhao couldnt help but remember something. That god-tier public rtions event five years ago! At that time, Tongshengs reputation was damaged, almost to the point of shutting down. A public rtions campaign brought them back from the dead. Yin Zhao had always wanted to meet that person. He acquired Tongsheng partly to rope in such talent. Unfortunately, he could never fully gain control over Tongsheng. Yin Zhao extinguished his cigarette. He said, "Ill call Su Minghua." He had dealt with Su Minghua before and knew him quite well. Soon after the call, Su Minghua was busy. He was in Song Weis hotel suite, vigorously pulling in investments. Song Wei was wearing a long dress that flowed over her like water. Her hair romantically styled. She was pinching a document, reading it. Su Minghua held her delicate feet, serving her. After Song Wei finished reading the investment report, she said, "This is a good n, have you shown it to Ruanruan yet?" Su Minghua put a bit more effort into his massage. He said, "I swear Im doing this to show my results to my younger sister." Song Wei pretended not to understand. She said, "This is good, you should show it to Ruanruan." Su Minghua drew closer, coaxing her: "How about some investment, President Song?" Song Wei scolded him with augh. She kicked him with her foot: "Did youe over early this morning just for this?" Su Minghua hugged her without any reservations. He said cheesily, "I dont care, whatever Mr. Bai has, I must have too." He could have easily asked Su Ruanruan. But he deliberately chose not to. He wanted to talk to Song Wei. If she could invest in a pretty boy, why couldnt she invest in him? It wasnt about the money, it was about her attention towards him. Su Minghua had devotedly served Song Wei for several years; he felt she owed him an exnation. He wanted to get married. But he couldnt have children and feared that Song Wei would despise him after finding out. Song Wei was a shrewd person. By causing such a fuss, she was sure to understand his intentions... He simply wanted a formal status! Song Wei decided to tease him. She leaned over and lightly tugged at his tie. Her gaze was captivating. Su Minghua was utterly mesmerized. After all these years, his interest in her only grew stronger. Song Wei whispered, "Minghua, I give you two choices." He gulped nervously. Song Weis delicate fingers poked him, her allure growing by the second. She said, "Investment of one billion, or a marriage certificate, which do you choose?" Su Minghua immediately answered, "The marriage certificate." He grasped her hand, kissing it desperately. While kissing, he cheesily eximed, "Sweetheart, my love, my treasure, you finally understand my heart." He undid his tie, ready to repay her physically. Song Wei indeed wanted it too. Just as they were about to proceed, Yin Zhaos call came through. Su Minghua pressed one hand on Song Weis shoulder, and picked up the phone with the other. Song Wei heard Yin Zhaos words. After Su Minghua hung up, she whispered, "Business first! You should meet him first." Though unreliable, Su Minghua did have ambition; he knew he earned Song Weis appreciation through his efforts over the years. Thus, he was grateful to Ruanruan. He had to leave, yet Song Wei was reluctant to let him go. She knelt on the sofa to tie his tie, saying, "My man should always look presentable! You need to appear respectable and confident when meeting others." Su Minghua listened attentively to her. He said hoarsely, "Understood." Song Wei kissed him softly and said tenderly, "You handle your business, Ill wait for your return." Su Minghua seized the opportunity to request her to take a bath and change into a nightgown. Song Wei promised him a favorable deal. Chapter 499: My Fourth Sister, Su Ruanruan

Chapter 499: Chapter 499: My Fourth Sister, Su Ruanruan

Su Minghua left the house, full of pride. He had arranged to meet with Yin Zhao at a business coffee shop. Yin Zhao had met with him a few times before and got straight to the point. He specifically requested Zhou Zizhuo to perform surgery on Elder He. Su Minghua was equally straightforward. He said, "Theres no problem on my end, but Zhou Zizhuos status is special and I cant make the call; my youngest sister Ruanruan must agree." Yin Zhao was not convinced. He said, "Dean Sus capability has been witnessed by all over the past few years, how could you be controlled by your younger sister?" He didnt believe it. He thought it was just Su Minghuas way of shirking responsibility. Su Minghua just smiled. He said, "Dean Yin, havent you always been curious about the PR incident behind the scenes? My youngest sister was the one leading it." He spoke of Su Ruanruan with pride on his face. He said, "My youngest sister was pulling the strings at 18, very impressive." Yin Zhaos interest was piqued. He said, "The Su Family has such a talent?" He then asked Su Minghua to introduce her. Su Minghuas face showed surprise. He countered, "Dean Yin doesnt know? My youngest sister is at your hospital! Just a few days ago, she was fired over a personal matter." Yin Zhao was stunned. After a while, he lowered his head to sip some Blue Mountain coffee. Then he softly asked, "Dean Sus youngest sister, is that Su Ruanruan?" Su Minghua smiled and said, "Indeed, its Ruanruan." His attitude shifted drastically, bing very courteous: "Please take good care of my youngest sister, Dean Yin." Yin Zhao kept his emotions in check. His feelings about Su Ruanruan became moreplicated. ... He returned to the hospital. And went straight to Elder Hes VIP ward. Su Ruanruan was there, and so was Sun Jingan. Sun Jingan was talking with Su Ruanruan. Yin Zhao had heard that the Sun Family did not approve of Su Ruanruans matter with Bao Jingyan, otherwise, they would have been married long ago. Yet, Sun Jingan and his wife seemed to be treating her well. Yin Zhao could understand. Su Ruanruan was talented, and Mr. and Mrs. Sun wanted to utilize her. He entered, and Sun Jingan asked him, "Have you found Zhou Zizhuo?" Yin Zhao replied calmly, "I need to ask someone first." Sun Jingan then inquired who. Yin Zhao said, "Doctor Su." Su Ruanruan had just received a call from Su Minghua and was very straightforward. She handed a business card to Yin Zhao. "My senior brothers card." She added, "Hes on vacation abroad." Yin Zhao took the card and nced at her. His gaze was deep. Immediately after, he said to Sun Jingan, "I will fly over personally to talk with him." Elder He felt somewhat guilty, saying, "My condition isnt urgent; a dy of a month or two wouldnt matter!" But Yin Zhao had made up his mind. The next day, he flew directly to France. He went to see Zhou Zizhuo. Unfortunately, Zhou Zizhuo had been injured. His left hand was identally injured, leaving him unable to hold a surgical scalpel for at least half a year. Yin Zhao was disappointed. Zhou Zizhuo said calmly, "This surgery is indeed difficult! My British mentor, Reid, could have done it a couple of years ago, but his eyesight has deteriorated in recent years." Yin Zhao pressed, "So, theres no one else who can perform this surgery?" Zhou Zizhuo thought for a moment. He said, "Reid has taken on a student in thest few years, SU." He added, "Reid doesnt easily take on students; those he epts are highly talented. Dean Yin, you might try to find her. She is in the country." Yin Zhao nodded his thanks. He hurried to Britain. But Reid had left Britain. That SU was untraceable. Yin Zhao had to return home. Fortunately, Elder Hes condition was stable, and there was no urgency. Around this time, Lu Nansheng performed a major surgery on an important patient. The surgery was a sess. Lu Nansheng also published an academic paper. Her reputation soared! She was hailed as the youngest and most promising female doctor! Yin Zhao reassessed her, awarding her a bonus of 200,000 yuan and reinstating her position as head of the surgical team. Lu Nansheng was in high spirits. She bought afternoon tea, and said to all her colleagues in the surgical team, "Thank you all for your hard work recently! Tonight, Dean Yin will be hosting a dinner for our surgery department." Chapter 500 Bao Jingyan, Trust Me!

Chapter 500: Chapter 500 Bao Jingyan, Trust Me!

Lu Nansheng finished speaking. Everyone was quite surprised. Why offer a meal to everyone just because Lu Nansheng is rewarded? Moreover, Dean Yin never participates! A colleague then leaned toward Su Ruanruan and whispered, "Be carefulter, Team Leader Lu is starting to stir things up again." Su Ruanruan gave a faint smile. She was researching. She hadnt been at the hospital for more than a month, yet she had noticed a pattern. Whenever Lu Nansheng was involved, there would be patients whose conditions worsened, suffering organ damage or even failure. Doctor Lus medical skills are extraordinary, able to turn the situation around. Quite the strategist. Also truly audacious. Su Ruanruan quietly shut down theputer. Lu Nansheng, smiling coyly, said, "Doctor Su, why arent you drinking? Are you still holding a grudge against me?" Su Ruanruan also smiled coyly, "Im afraid of gaining weight." Lu Nansheng found it dull. She continued to provoke, "I wonder if Doctor Lu will be attending the dinner tonight? Oh right, Dean Yin also got Boss Yans package, a whole box!" The surgical department cheered collectively. Lu Nansheng once again enjoyed being the center of attention. [Oh my, its Boss Yans y!] [I must go, I definitely will!] [Dean Yin is really looking out for us now!] ... Lu Nansheng revealed a triumphant smile. With Yin Zhao around, the surgical department was still under her, Lu Nanshengs, control. Su Ruanruan was somewhat surprised. Yin Zhao actually got the tickets to Uncle Yans y. She hadnt seen Yan Qing for a long time. Feeling somewhat emotional, she wanted to see him. So, Su Ruanruan smiled faintly, "Boss Yans y is definitely worth seeing." Lu Nansheng smiled reservedly. She said, "Doctor Su is from Jiangcheng, probably hasnt seen Boss Yans y yet." She always tries to outdo others. Su Ruanruan doesnt bother arguing with fools. She went to a secluded spot and called Bao Jingyan. She didnt bring up the dinner at first but discussed Song Wei and Su Minghua. Su Ruanruan spoke cheerfully, "Sister Song Wei and big brother are getting their marriage certificate." On the other end, Bao Jingyan was working. Hearing her, he softly asked, "Do you want to get married?" Su Ruanruan blushed. She said, "Thats not what I mean." Bao Jingyan chuckled, he too, was thinking of getting the marriage certificate with her. That way, they would truly be husband and wife. Su Ruanruan let him feel guilty a bit, then revealed her true intention. She said, "Theres a departmental dinner tonight, and after that, a y! Its Uncle Yans y." She was a bit coquettish, "I want to go." Bao Jingyan felt jealous. He caught the drift. Boss Yans y tickets were hard toe by, likely arranged by Yin Zhao. He then asked her, "Is Yin Zhao also going?" He wasnt being paranoid; it was just that Mrs. Yin had already inquired about Ruanruan from his aunt. Su Ruanruan nodded honestly. She said, "He is going." Then, she bit her lip lightly, "Bao Jingyan, trust me!" It wasnt that she avoided being misunderstood. The problem wasnt with her, so she didnt need to avoid anything. Moreover, her heart belonged only to him. How others were, what did that matter to her? She didnt spell it out, but Bao Jingyan understood. He warned softly, "Dont talk too much with him, understand?" Su Ruanruan obediently hummed in agreement. He then instructed her on a few more matters. Every time he said a word, she hummed in response. Gentle and docile. This side of her was something only Bao Jingyan saw. After hanging up, Su Ruanruan was about to walk down from the rooftop. Yin Zhao was standing at the entrance, smoking. He quietly watched her, asking, "Reporting to President Bao?" Su Ruanruan didnt want to bother with him. In her private time, Yin Zhao meant nothing to her. Yet, Yin Zhao stopped her, whispering, "The restaurant were going to tonight is the ce I first saw you." Su Ruanruan thought he and Lu Nansheng were a match. Lu Nansheng used him. He also used Lu Nansheng. Chapter 501: Yin Zhao Searches for the SU

Chapter 501: Chapter 501: Yin Zhao Searches for the SU

This dinner gathering was particrly lively with Yin Zhao participating. The entire United Hospital was buzzing with rumors that Dean Yin was soon to tie the knot with Lu Nansheng. Lu Nansheng felt a sweet joy upon hearing this. Even Director Feng had caught wind of it and jokingly teased Yin Zhao. He said, "Yin Zhao, I didnt realize youre so fickle." Yin Zhao sat in front of his desk. He was still reviewing Mr. Hes medical condition. If he couldnt find SU, what were the chances of sess if he performed the surgery himself? But Yin Zhao was also aware that over the years, he had leaned towards administrative work. He could handle major operations, but he couldnt perform this one on Mr. He. Yin Zhao gave up. He lit a cigarette, and through the smoke, it was as if he could hear Director Fengs words. He choked. Yin Zhao frowned: "Who said that?" Director Feng chuckled: "Its good youre not entertaining that thought! I see little concern in Lu Nanshengs intentions." Yin Zhao was aware of this. But with the hospital in dire need of staff, he couldnt find anyone to rece Lu Nansheng temporarily. Yin Zhao closed the documents, saying, "We still need to continue looking for this SU." He paused before adding, "If we cant find them, let Lu Nansheng give it a try." Director Feng then understood why Yin Zhao had kept Lu Nansheng around. ... Yin Zhao stood up and asked, "Are you really noting to the dinner?" Director Feng replied with a smile: "Young peoples gatherings, what business does an old man like me have there!" Yin Zhao then went straight to the parking lot. In the surgical department, there were just over twenty medical staff members. They were discussing how to arrange for cars. Su Ruanruan had driven over herself; her car could only take one more person. Gong Xiaohong became the leadingdy. On this side, Lu Nansheng had arranged transport for everyone else, Leaving only her. She said to Yin Zhao, "Senior, my car is off for maintenance." She yfully added, "Hitching a ride with you, no problem, right?" Lu Nanshengs little scheming, Yin Zhao usually indulged. When he drove her to the restaurant, the other colleagues were already there. Many were here for the first time, very excited. Yin Zhao walked inside. The first thing he saw was Su Ruanruan. She was sitting at the edge of a sofa booth, on the phone. Her makeup was lightly applied, and her cheeks were as white as jade. A light purple long dress. Remarkably aesthetic. Yin Zhao had seen her in various states. Her most disheveled was in the elevator of Jiangcheng Drunk. She was very sad; it mustve been after breaking up with Bao Jingyan. Yet she was still very beautiful then. Yin Zhao could tell she loved beauty. He was not interested in pursuing her as she dated Bao Jingyan. Yin Zhao went straight to sit with his colleagues. Lu Nansheng was dressed up particrly carefully, with forest-themed makeup. An exotic dress. It also had its beauty. She sat right next to Yin Zhao, feeling an inexplicable sense of superiority. As Yin Zhao did not push her away, it meant he had her in his heart. Her entry into a wealthy family was just within reach. ... After Su Ruanruan finished her call with the youngdy and sent a message to Bao Jingyan. [I promise not to drink.] [Wont be toote, will leave after meeting Uncle Yan.] [Mm, Ille to your ce in a bit.] Having received her assurance, Bao Jingyan stopped bothering her. They called her over. Su Ruanruan gracefully made her way over and sat down, her movements elegant. Male colleagues sneaked nces at her, finding her attractive. Lu Nansheng was ufortable. She deliberately said, "Doctor Su, that dress youre wearing is a new Dior model, isnt it? Not cheap right?" Su Ruanruan responded with a polite smile. Lu Nansheng, with a tilted head and a smirk-not-smirk, said, "Doctor Sus sry wont get her many dresses, will it?" She intentionally embarrassed her. However, Su Ruanruan nodded generously. She lightly said, "I dont live off my sry." Lu Nansheng was embarrassed. Just then, a waiter approached with the menus. They were in French. No one from the surgical department could understand it. Lu Nansheng recognized a few words, and she suddenly felt distinct from the rest... Chapter 502: Lu Nansheng鈥檚 Old Tricks

Chapter 502: Chapter 502: Lu Nanshengs Old Tricks

Lu Nansheng held the menu, and she rattled off those few French words to the waiter. Indeed, the bystanders eximed in awe. [Group Leader Lu, you speak French!] [Group Leader Lu studied abroad, its not surprising!] Lu Nansheng smiled at Yin Zhao. She said, "Ive had a few meals with Yin Zhao and picked up a little bit." Yin Zhao did not rebut. He still had that much grace. Lu Nansheng looked towards Su Ruanruan and asked delicately, "I heard Doctor Su studied in Britain, I wonder if you can speak French?" Su Ruanruan returned a faint smile. She took the menu andmunicated with the waiter. The entire conversation in fluent French. The ent was very urate. And her voice was soft, very pleasant to the ear. Lu Nanshengs face changed. Yin Zhao watched Su Ruanruan, his expression slightly stirred. At this point, Xiao Hong leaned in and whispered, "Doctor Su, I want to eat this, could you tell him for me?" The others were also worried about not understanding the menu. They all asked Su Ruanruan for help, one after another. Su Ruanruan was very patient and exined each dish. Yin Zhao was quite surprised. He had originally thought the more down-to-earth Lu Nansheng would be more popr. With Su Ruanruans outstanding credentials, he expected she would be ostracized. But the reality was quite the opposite. Everyone seemed to prefer Su Ruanruan a bit more. His gaze fell on Su Ruanruan. Under the spotlight, she sat gracefully. Elegant and beautiful. Like a piece of luxury goods. Dean Yins feelings towards her were both love and hate. Without speaking, he gently sipped his aperitif. He was incredibly handsome himself. And in such a high-end restaurant, he appeared even more distinguished. To ease the previous awkwardness, Lu Nansheng turned to Yin Zhao to talk. She yed with her hair, pretending to be very close to him. As for the rest, they pretended not to see. Ha, ssic Group Leader Lus old tricks. But Dean Yin wasnt taking the bait; he clearly wasnt interested. At this moment, Lu Nanshengs eyes shifted. She spotted the grand piano in front of the restaurant and concocted a malicious scheme. She said with a beaming smile to Su Ruanruan, "Doctor Sues from a well-off family, I wonder if you have ever learned to y the piano?" How could Su Ruanruan not know her? She answered softly, "I learned for a few years as a child." Lu Nansheng then became excited. Having studied for a few years as a child, shes probably forgotten it all by now. Lu Nansheng nced around and noticed guests arriving at the restaurant one after the other. She thought: If I make Su Ruanruan embarrass herself now, she wont be able to keep ying the rich and beautiful woman in the future. Lu Nansheng turned to look at Yin Zhao. She asked tenderly, "Would you like to hear Doctor Su y the piano?" This was subtly using Yin Zhao to corner Su Ruanruan. Everyone felt that Dean Yin wouldnt embarrass Doctor Su. After all, Doctor Sus family background was clear for all to see, and usually, Yin Zhao was quite fair. He wouldnt indulge Lu Nansheng. But Yin Zhao nodded slightly. The crowd was taken aback. They didnt know that the first time Dean Yin met Ruanruan was here, and she was ying the piano. With his consent, Lu Nansheng smiled. She couldnt wait, "Please, Doctor Su, grace us with a piece." No one spoke, all a bit worried. Su Ruanruan typically did not seek the limelight. But this Doctor Lu provoked her at every turn. She gave a slight smile. She invited Lu Nansheng for a duet. Lu Nansheng nched. Su Ruanruan smiled faintly, "Doctor Lu requests me to speak French and y the piano; I thought you were proficient in everything. It seems I was mistaken." Lu Nansheng was somewhat embarrassed. The bystanders snickered. But Su Ruanruan paid no further attention to Lu Nansheng. She didnt mind ying a piece. She sat in front of the piano, lightly brushing the lid. In reality, over these years, she asionally yed the piano. Ziqi would give her pointers, and her piano skills would only be better than a few years ago... Chapter 503: Even the Ascetic Saint is Moved

Chapter 503: Chapter 503: Even the Ascetic Saint is Moved

Su Ruanruan yed a piece of "White Moonlight." A rather obscure song. She was born beautiful, a pleasure for the eyes. Added with her superb piano skills. All the guests were watching her. So was Yin Zhao. He watched Su Ruanruan onstage in silence. The scene before him oveid with one from many years ago. She had grown from a green girl to a woman. He longed for her, yet he despised himself for that longing. Yin Zhao clenched his fingers and suddenly stood up. He took a trip to the restroom. Lu Nansheng was already fuming with jealousy because Su Ruanruan was stealing the spotlight. Yin Zhaos departure yed right into her hands. She thought: As expected, Yin Zhao doesnt like rich heiresses; he appreciates capable women like me. Lu Nansheng regained her confidence. So even though her colleagues praised Su Ruanruan. Lu Nansheng wasnt angry. She had Yin Zhao. When Yin Zhao returned, it was just in time for the meal to be served. Lu Nansheng stopped causing trouble, and the atmosphere improved. At that moment, the restaurant manager personally delivered a bouquet of flowers. white roses. The manager said they were from Young Master Zhou. Su Ruanruan looked around. Indeed, Young Master Zhou was in the restaurant, dining with a famous actress. Su Ruanruan gave him a nod. But she did not go over. Yin Zhao suddenly asked her, "Do you know Zhou Jinhua?" Su Ruanruan hummed in affirmation. Yin Zhao had heard that Young Master Zhou had been passionately pursuing a girl for years, from City B to Britain. Now it seemed, it was Su Ruanruan. His expression turned taut, and he asked no more. On the other side, Zhou Jinhua sent the actress away. He came over to annoy Su Ruanruan, asking in a low voice, "Why didnt you tell me when you returned to the country?" He wasnt ashamed to say, "I even bought a water pipe that day, all excited to help you change it." Su Ruanruan replied softly, "Our department is having a dinner." Zhou Jinhua was in a good mood. He gently patted her shoulder, then said to Yin Zhao, "Lets go have a smoke." They used to be childhood friends, but they had drifted apart. Yin Zhao disliked Zhou Jinhuas yboy lifestyle. Zhou Jinhua found Yin Zhao boring. Yet unexpectedly, they both fell into Su Ruanruans hands. ... Yin Zhao nodded. Five minutester, the two men were in the smoking area, puffing clouds of smoke. Zhou Jinhua nced at Yin Zhao. He scoffed, "Even the saint with a clear heart and few desires is moved?" Yin Zhaos gaze couldnt deceive him. Holding a cigarette, Yin Zhao had a deep and inscrutable look in his eyes. He asked Zhou Jinhua, "What about you?" Zhou Jinhuaughed with an air of refinement. He said, "Whats there to say! Ive chased this girl for five years, shes got a heart of stone." He then patted Yin Zhaos shoulder, "Let me tell you, theres no chance!" Zhou Jinhua sighed, "Shes been with Bao Jingyan since she was very young, and if it wasnt for what happened back then, they might already have two or three children by now. But to think that after all these turns of fate, they are still together." Yin Zhao took a deep drag on his cigarette. He was ready to leave. Zhou Jinhua stopped him, "Wont you tell your story?" Yin Zhaos tone was cool. He said, "Theres no story." It was just him...unrequited, thats all! Yin Zhao returned to the dining room. He wasnt too enthusiastic, sitting there drinking champagne. Lu Nansheng considerately said, "Ill driveter." Yin Zhao did not object. Lu Nansheng restrained a smile. Their colleagues kept quiet, everyone knowing what was unsaid. Su Ruanruan looked down at her phone. She was messaging Bao Jingyan. [The dinner is almost over, I will go to Uncle Yans soon.] Bao Jingyan replied quickly. Su Ruanruan felt a softness at the bottom of her heart. She heard Yin Zhaos voice nearby, "The y at Boss Yans is starting in half an hour." He was going to pay the bill. Lu Nansheng grabbed his wallet and swiftly ran to the front desk. With the posture of a hostess. Yin Zhao looked towards Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan had already left with Xiao Hong. In the parking lot. Su Ruanruan sat in the sports car, Xiao Hong beside her. Xiao Hong said something, and Su Ruanruan giggled softly. She angled her face. When she smiled, she was extremely pretty. Chapter 504: Bao Jingyan, How Did You Get Here?

Chapter 504: Chapter 504: Bao Jingyan, How Did You Get Here?

Yin Zhao stood at the entrance, looking for a long time. Lu Nansheng finished paying and walked over. She handed the wallet to him, asking, "Senior, what are you looking at?" Yin Zhao didnt say anything. He got straight into the car after opening the door. Lu Nansheng chased after him, "Youve had champagne; you cant drive." Yin Zhao ignored her. Lu Nansheng had no choice but to get in the car and considerately asked him, "Are you in a bad mood?" Yin Zhao nodded lightly. Lu Nansheng thought: It must be Su Ruanruan who upset him! She couldnt believe how much Yin Zhao disliked Su Ruanruan. She felt even sweeter inside. When Yin Zhao and Lu Nansheng arrived at the theater box, everyone else was already there. The box was quiterge. But there were about 20 people, all gathered around Su Ruanruan. A male colleague had already bought snacks over, creating a lively atmosphere. Yin Zhao took off his coat and sat down in the back row. Right in front of him was Su Ruanruan. Lu Nansheng quickly sat down next to him. Su Ruanruan gave a faint smile. This Doctor Lu bends over backward for men. She truly loses the dignity of a woman. She didnt say anything, just quietly watched the y. Several years had passed, yet Uncle Yans condition still seemed very good. Su Ruanruan couldnt help thinking about the time they celebrated the olddys birthday, and Uncle Yan was also invited. That year, it was so lively. The olddy was so happy that she refused to go to sleep, propped up a table, and yed cards all night. The y is the same as in those years. But the old friends are no longer here. Su Ruanruans eyes moistened. Afraid of losingposure, she softly said to the person next to her, "Im going to the restroom." But she had only taken a few steps out of the box when a strong arm hooked her. Su Ruanruan was pulled into the adjacent box. She stumbled into a warm embrace. "Bao Jingyan," Su Ruanruans voice was fragile. With a mix of joy. Shey on his shoulder, smelling the pleasant, fresh scent on him. Half sorrowful, half coquettish, she asked, "How did you get here?" Bao Jingyan reached out to touch her small face. He lowered his head and asked her, "Why is my Ruanruan crying?" Su Ruanruan refused to admit it. Bao Jingyan wiped away her tears for her. He gently asked her, "Missing the olddy at home?" Su Ruanruan was somewhat surprised. Then her heart softened. She turned her head and leaned against his chest, obediently nodding. Bao Jingyanforted her like coaxing a child, "Ill take you back to Jiang city to see her during the holiday." Su Ruanruan gave a soft hum. After regaining herposure, she asked him again, "Wheres the beauty?" "She refuses to sleep! Auntie Li is with her," Bao Jingyan murmured lowly, "When will you go back?" Thinking of seeing Yan Qing today, Su Ruanruan figured she might lose herposure. So, she said, "Ill leave with you in advance!" She wanted to go back to the box to say a word. But Bao Jingyan caught her hand. In the spacious box, there were no other people. The lighting was dim. Bao Jingyan couldnt help but feel moved. He pressed her down gently, backing her against the wall. One hand cushioned behind her head, the other squeezing her slender waist. He lowered his head and kissed her. In a public ce, even if the box was private. She couldnt help but feel tense, unable to let go. As Bao Jingyan was kissing her, he coaxed, "Hold me." Helplessly, Su Ruanruan embraced his shoulders and back. She whispered softly, "Bao Jingyan, lets go back before..." He murmured that he couldnt hold back anymore. After saying that, he kissed her again... At the entrance of the box. Yin Zhao stood with a cigarette pinched between his fingers. He silently watched the intimate embrace and kiss through the crack of the door. His face showed difort. He extinguished the cigarette, turned around, and left... On the other side, Bao Jingyan kissed her for a long while before letting go. He said hoarsely, "Ill wait for you here!" Su Ruanruan nodded. She returned to the box. Although it was difficult to speak, she still handed the car keys to a male colleague, asking him to take Xiao Hong home. Just driving the car to the hospital tomorrow would suffice. The male colleague was ecstatic. Who wouldnt want to drive a Bugatti Veyron! Just as Su Ruanruan was about to leave, Yin Zhao spoke up, "Did your boyfriende to pick you up?" Chapter 505: President Bao is my boyfriend!

Chapter 505: Chapter 505: President Bao is my boyfriend!

Everyone turned their attention to Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan could only smile. As her response. Lu Nansheng suddenly remembered that besides that willful girl, there was also a young man in a wheelchair living with Su Ruanruan. That must be her boyfriend! Lu Nansheng intentionally wanted to embarrass Su Ruanruan. With a smile on her face: "Now that everyone is here, Doctor Su, let us meet him." Su Ruanruan hesitated. Bao Jingyan has always been proud. She didnt know if he was willing. Lu Nansheng pressed on, "Doctor Sus boyfriend is not someone who cant be seen in public, right?" As soon as she finished speaking, someone stood at the doorway of the box. It was Bao Jingyan. A light grey shirt, dark trousers. A navy blue British style coat. Mature, handsome, with a cold and noble demeanor. Lu Nansheng was taken aback. She instinctively smiled to please: "President Bao is also here!" Bao Jingyan ignored her. He went straight to Su Ruanruan and asked, "Have you greeted them?" Su Ruanruan was somewhat shy and nodded. People in the box looked at Bao Jingyan... then at Su Ruanruan. President Bao... is Doctor Sus boyfriend? Each year, YR Group celebrates a girls birthday on their big screen. It turned out to be Doctor Su! Su Ruanruan walked over. Bao Jingyan naturally wrapped his arm around her shoulder. He just nodded at Yin Zhao, as a greeting. Yin Zhao had a displeased look. Lu Nansheng felt even worse. She didnt expect Su Ruanruan to be Bao Jingyans girlfriend, President Bao... doesnt he have a child? He must be ying with Su Ruanruan, right? Just as she was about to say something, Yin Zhao said in an indifferent tone: "Doctor Su and President Bao have been together for many years." Everyone was amazed. Xiaohongbabar said: "Doctor Su and President Bao are a perfect match." Yin Zhaos eyes were deep. On the way back, he sat in the car smoking. Lu Nansheng thought their rtionship would go further. She took the cigarette out of his hand. Her tone was very gentle: "Yin Zhao, whats wrong with you?" Looking at the handsome face in front of her, she couldnt suppress it any longer. Lu Nansheng took the initiative to kiss him. Yin Zhao dodged. He sat up straight, his tone indifferent: "Get out of the car." Lu Nanshengs eyes were still hazy. She was 30 years old and had the needs of a woman. But Yin Zhao never responded to her, and she was bing anxious. She didnt realize this was aplete rejection and still wanted to take things further. Yin Zhao shoved her hand away. He looked at her, saying seriously: "I dont have those feelings for you." Lu Nansheng was stunned. She couldnt ept it: "Then... why do you always indulge me." Yin Zhao lit another cigarette. He said indifferently: "Consider it a little benefit for a capable subordinate." Lu Nansheng usually yed it low, but this time she couldnt help it. She got out of the car. She shouted at him: "Yin Zhao, you bastard." Yin Zhaos response was to drive the car away. Lu Nansheng, crying and shouting behind the car. It was very disgraceful. Yin Zhao actually knew that if one day he really needed to marry for an alliance, the woman he would marry would be ady from a prominent family. Definitely not someone like Lu Nansheng. ... On the other side, Su Ruanruan sat next to Bao Jingyan. She looked at him from time to time. Bao Jingyan asked in a low voice, "Do you think Im good-looking?" Su Ruanruan hummed in response. Bao Jingyan smiled. He was still as handsome as before, only the corners of his eyes had more fine lines when he smiled. Not only did it not make him look old, but it also added to his mature charm. Su Ruanruan had always liked his looks. She watched unabashedly! Bao Jingyan couldnt help but swallow. He took her hand gently, whispering, "Behave, well be home soon." He added, "Duonian should be asleep." Su Ruanruans cheeks flushed. She turned her face away prudishly, refusing to listen to his nonsense. Chapter 506: She is Willing to Become a Real Husband and Wife

Chapter 506: Chapter 506: She is Willing to Be a Real Husband and Wife

Bao Jingyan was jealous today and personally caught someone. After returning, he would surely teach her a harsh lesson. Su Ruanruan did not n to hide. He took her to the bedroom and pinned her against the sofa. Su Ruanruan was subdued by his kisses, her eyes and brows drowning in submission. Bao Jingyan kissed her for a long while before he slightly let her go. He caressed her cheek, his voice deep and husky: "Why are you being so obedient?" Su Ruanruan quietly moved behind him and hugged his waist. She knowingly asked: "You dont like it?" Bao Jingyan naturally liked it. Su Ruanruan had already made up her mind. She was reserved, yet meticulous. She asked him softly: "Didnt you have dinner?" Bao Jingyan chuckled lowly, and he pinched her nose. Su Ruanruan pushed him lightly: "Go eat downstairs, Im going to take a shower." Bao Jingyan respected and cared for her. He got up and straightened his clothes. Looking like a schrly rogue. He whispered in her ear: "Ille up to join you in a bit." Su Ruanruan gently bit her tender red lips. After he went downstairs, Su Ruanruan entered the walk-in wardrobe barefoot. In the wardrobe, mens and womens clothes hung together. Masculinity intertwined with gentleness. Su Ruanruan picked a champagne-colored silk slip dress. Its lining was soft and fit snugly. Su Ruanruan never dared to wear it in front of him before. She took it into the bathroom and soaked in a bath. When she came out, Bao Jingyan was already in the bedroom, sitting on the sofa looking at his phone. When Su Ruanruan appeared, he watched her. His Adams apple moved. Then he smiled gently: "Why dress up so fancily?" His tone somewhat teasing. Su Ruanruan blushed; she used a hairdryer to dry her hair. She then sat in front of the vanity to apply skincare. At the age of 24. Young, but with the charm of a woman. Bao Jingyan couldnt resist, and he hugged her from behind. He breathed against her ear: "Not leaving tonight?" Su Ruanruan hummed softly. She was always shy. Bao Jingyan suddenly understood... In his heart, he felt an incredible tenderness; he gently turned her face and kissed her. She was wlessly beautiful. Bao Jingyan couldnt let go. Until he couldnt resist anymore, he picked her up... Su Ruanruans phone rang inappropriately. The hospitals on-call ringtone. She couldnt ignore it and pushed him gently: "Bao Jingyan... Its a call." Bao Jingyan was reluctant to let go. Su Ruanruan was both shy and anxious: "Its from the hospital." He stopped kissing and looked at her intently. After a long moment, hey back on the bed, covering his eyes with a hand. He sighed: "Ruanruan, I regret it! I shouldnt have let you pursue medicine." Su Ruanruan picked up the phone. There was an emergency surgery at the hospital; she needed to assist. Su Ruanruan knew he was disappointed. She assured him next to his ear: "Ille back after the surgery." She was willing, but he was reluctant to part. He pulled her over for a kiss. Bao Jingyan gazed into her eyes: "Im not a beast! A wife is for cherishing." He decisively got up and dressed. He even picked out a set of clothes for her to wear. He drove Su Ruanruan to the hospital, originally intending to wait for her. Su Ruanruan wouldnt allow it. She said: "I still have to go to the office tomorrow morning! You go back to sleep, and just have Uncle Zhao pick me up." Bao Jingyan nodded. His Adams apple moved. In the end, he couldnt help but peck her lips again. Su Ruanruan shyly, she opened the car door and got out. Bao Jingyan watched her intently. Utterly gentle. Meanwhile, Yin Zhao also just arrived at the hospital. Zhou Jinhua had a perforated stomach from drinking alcohol, lying in the emergency room waiting for surgery. Zhou Family is a shareholder of the hospital. Madame Zhou requested Yin Zhao to perform the surgery personally. Normally, Yin Zhao always teamed up with Lu Nansheng. But since Lu Nansheng was possibly emotionally unstable tonight, Yin Zhao had his assistant call Su Ruanruans phone. Chapter 507: The Patient is Young Master Zhou!

Chapter 507: Chapter 507: The Patient is Young Master Zhou!

Yin Zhao actually saw Bao Jingyan. And that kiss. He pretended not to have seen it. Entering the elevator, Su Ruanruan was also inside. Yin Zhao noticed she had changed clothes and her body was fragrant after a shower. His eyes darkened. But Yin Zhao has always been a very calm person. He quickly recovered and informed Su Ruanruan about Zhou Jinhuas condition. Su Ruanruan could never have imagined that the patient was Zhous son, who was still lively and dating a woman just a few hours ago. Yin Zhao nced at her. He asked her, "Are you close with him?" Su Ruanruan did not hide anything. She openly said, "Considered as friends." The elevator reached the emergency floor. Lady Zhou saw Yin Zhaoing over and hurried to greet him. She grabbed Yin Zhaos hands, "I leave Jinhua in your hands." Lady Zhou was very capable, and Yin Zhao respected her. He reassured her a few words. The nurse handed over the documents, and he asked Su Ruanruan to go to his office to research the surgery n. Yin Zhao intended to test her. He went to pour tea, and on returning, he looked at Su Ruanruan. He asked her, "How much should be removed for the best oue?" Su Ruanruan shook her head. She said, "From the scans, it doesnt appear very severe. Minimally invasive cleaning of the lesion point with continuous medication, theres no need for removal surgery." Yin Zhao slowly sipped his tea. He suddenly said, "You perform the surgery. Ill observe by the side." Su Ruanruan looked up at him. She said, "Ive only been at the hospital for a month, this does notply with the regtions." "I make the rules," Yin Zhao said upromisingly. He added, "If anything happens, Ill take responsibility." He decided this, not for other reasons. Only because Su Ruanruans principles aligned with his. In this surgery, if reced by someone else, to y it safe, at least one fourth of Zhous sons stomach would be removed. Not Su Ruanruan. She safeguarded the patients rights to the utmost. This was Yin Zhaos original intention when he began studying medicine! Yin Zhaos decision shocked the onlookers. Assistant nurses all felt this was too risky. Zhou Family was rich and influential, in case something went wrong... Yin Zhao withstood the pressure and let Su Ruanruan perform it. It was Zhous son, who even before anesthesia held Su Ruanruans hand. He shared his pain reluctantly, still wanting to take a little advantage. He said, "My life is in your hands now, if anything goes wrong, Ill cling to you like Bao Ziqi! I also want to stay in your vi." Su Ruanruan was always cold towards him. She said to the anesthetist, "Administer the anesthesia!" Zhou Jinhua secretly pulled her hand again. He had a fear of needles and blood. But not women. Su Ruanruan didnt let go; she gently patted Zhous sons hand. Yin Zhao saw this. He then knew, Su Ruanruan and Zhou Jinhua actually had a fair acquaintance. He felt somewhat jealous. The surgery was very sessful. Zhous son preserved his entire stomach. The result was within Yin Zhaos expectations, but others were quite thrilled. They apuded Su Ruanruan, praising her for a good job! Su Ruanruan smiled faintly. She took off her mask and walked out. Lady Zhou was waiting for her at the door. As soon as Su Ruanruan appeared, she grasped her hand, "Ruanruan, Jinhua is fortunate to have met you." The previous emergency doctor had mentioned, part of the stomach needed to be removed. Unexpectedly, Su Ruanruan performed the surgery. Jinhua kept his whole body intact. Lady Zhou felt her sons years of apanying reading were worthwhile. She was courteous. Su Ruanruan then said, "I will go with Madam to check on him." The two walked into the VIP ward together. Just having passed a great ordeal, Zhous son woke up, at this moment flirting with a young nurse. The young nurse blushed. Lady Zhou lightly coughed. Zhous son turned pale but smiled. Lady Zhou red at him. Su Ruanruan went over to examine him. Zhous son stared at her, bursting out with, "Ruanruan, you look really good in a white coat." Chapter 508: Yin Zhao: Is SU Doctor Su?

Chapter 508: Chapter 508: Yin Zhao: Is SU Doctor Su?

Su Ruanruan retorted, "Do you say that to the nurses too?" Mr. Zhou, shamelessly thick-skinned, replied, "They dontpare to you." Su Ruanruan was sure he was alright. She said lightly, "I should have left a hemostat in your body just now, now we can go back to the operating room and search for it." Mr. Zhou lost all his romantic ideas. Heined about her heart being as hard as iron! Mrs. Zhouughed. She beamed at Su Ruanruan and said, "Only you can cure him!" She couldnt help but feel a pang of regret. But at the same time, she knew that her son was too flirtatious and not worthy of Ruanruan. She gave up hope. Su Ruanruan briefed Mrs. Zhou on some matters and then went to change her clothes. Old Zhaos car was already waiting downstairs. Su Ruanruan got into the car. Old Zhao, feeling sympathetic, said, "Your aunt heard you were working the night shift, so she made some birds nest soup for you and its still warm!" Su Ruanruan lightly hummed in acknowledgment. Old Zhao drove off. Su Ruanruan asked him to stop the car, she went to the mailroom on the first floor to pick up a letter. The mailroom staff arrived early. As soon as Su Ruanruan arrived, the staff member cheerfully said, "Dr. Su came to pick up a postcard again?" Su Ruanruan nodded. She said, "Thank you for the trouble." "Its no trouble at all," the staff member said with a smile, handing her the postcard, then curiously asked, "This person sends postcards every week, is he Dr. Sus boyfriend?" Su Ruanruan smiled faintly, "Hes my teacher." The person responded "Oh." Su Ruanruan took the postcard and got back into the car. It was sent from Austria. Sender: Reid. Recipient: SU. ... Mailroom. Yin Zhaos assistant came to pick up items. She took a few medical journals and was about to leave. Then she saw Su Ruanruan getting into a ck Rolls Royce. It seemed like she had something in her hand. The assistant asked curiously, "Did Dr. Su alsoe to pick up something?" The mailroom staff said, "Yes, shees every Monday! Postcards from all over the world, this person must be very important to Dr. Su." The assistant returned to the main building. She was tidying up Yin Zhaos office. Then she spoke more than she intended. Yin Zhao sat behind his desk, contemting something. Todays surgery, Su Ruanruans performance was beyond his expectations. Her techniques were seasoned, not like a fresh medical school graduate. Rather, she seemed experienced. Yin Zhao, with a cigarette in hand, absentmindedly listened to his assistant speaking. The assistant repeated herself. He didnt take it to heart. He said, "A few years studying abroad, you make some friends." The assistant didnt dare say more. She overheard a conversation between Dean Yin and Director Fengst time, about looking for someone named SU. SUs teacher is Reid. Reid is currently traveling. Dr. Su studied in Britain and receives postcards every week. Isnt that too coincidental? Yin Zhao paid her no mind; he made a decision, "Tell the HR department, from today, let Dr. Su be my assistant." The assistant was surprised, "Every surgery to be assisted by Dr. Su?" Yin Zhaos expression was indifferent. The assistant thought to herself: Wouldnt Dr. Lu Nansheng make a fuss over this? That day. Two personnel changes urred in United Hospital. Su Ruanruan became the surgical assistant to Yin Zhao. Lu Nansheng entered the hospital simtion system training. Aiming specifically at Elder Hes condition. This decision quelled Lu Nanshengs dissatisfaction. She thought it over carefully. Whats so good about being Yin Zhaos assistant? Without spending ten or eight years, its impossible to make it big. While entering the hospitals key training program, as long as she cures Elder Hes illness, she will make a name for herself in one battle. Isnt Director Feng retiring? Lu Nansheng was determined to secure that directors position. After receiving her colleagues congrattions, she heard that Mr. Zhou was hospitalized. Zhou Family, with a fortune of hundreds of billions. Lu Nansheng wanted to curry favor. Besides, that Mr. Zhou... wasnt he very flirtatious? Chapter 509: Seduce Young Master Zhou, Get Slapped in the Face!

Chapter 509: Chapter 509: Seduce Young Master Zhou, Get pped in the Face!

Lu Nansheng deliberately had someone buy a bouquet of lilies. Lilies could enhance her elegance. She entered the ward with the lilies, embodying a white-cor demeanor. At the door, Young Master Zhous bodyguard snatched the flowers away. And threw them into the trash can in the corridor. Lu Nansheng was furious. She argued with them. The bodyguard said, "Young Master Zhou is allergic to lilies." Only then did Lu Nansheng ease her expression. She said, "It was thoughtless of me." She went in, pretending to check on the patient. Madame Zhou was also there. Who hasnt Madame Zhou seen before? A woman doctor bringing flowers to see a patient was abnormal. Thus, Madame Zhous expression was indifferent. Lu Nansheng was overly enthusiastic, talking to Madame Zhou and taking out her professionalism to care for Young Master Zhou. Young Master Zhou had a sleepless night. Now this woman was nonstop talking here. He was quite annoyed. After enduring for a long time, Lu Nanshengs face almost bumped into his. Young Master Zhou lightly chuckled. Suddenly, he grabbed Lu Nanshengs hand. Gently caressed it. Lu Nanshengs face flushed red. She whispered, "Your mother is still here!" But Madame Zhou pretended not to see and sat reading a magazine. With the demeanor of a nobledy. Young Master Zhou nced at his mother, then flirted with Lu Nansheng. Hezily smiled and asked her, "Do you know what type of women I dont touch?" Lu Nansheng pretended to be reserved. Young Master Zhou chuckled. He said, "Just one type; ugly old women." He stared into Lu Nanshengs eyes and gently uttered, "Like Doctor Lu." Lu Nansheng turned pale. She was deeply humiliated! When she straightened up, her whole body was shaking. She wished she could kill this Zhou. But Zhou was powerful and influential. Zhou Jinhua simply waved his hand, he told the bodyguard, "Let no one in except Dean Yin and Doctor Su." Lu Nansheng left in shame and anger. At the entrance, she happened to run into Yin Zhao. Yin Zhao saw her expression and guessed most of it. Inside, Young Master Zhou asked him, "Have you slept with her?" Yin Zhao frowned. Young Master Zhou sighed, "So ugly, I guess not." Yin Zhao coldly said, "Im not you! Treating women as ythings." Young Master Zhou snorted. He retorted, "Youve kept her around for so long, dont you know her feelings? Just because you dont touch her doesnt mean you havent enjoyed her admiration and secret love." Comparing innocence? Who is better than who? In terms of authenticity, Young Master Zhou still admired one person. Bao Jingyan. Once, he also thought Bao Jingyan couldnt control himself and had children with other women. But since Ruanruan returned to the country, always together with that child. He knew things wereplicated. ... Bao Mingyuan missed the young beauty. Aunt Li brought the young beauty back to Jiangcheng. Su Ruanruan saw them off at the airport. She didnt dare to stay at Bao Jingyans vi anymore. Being there, it seemed like she was waiting for him... in that way. She drove back to her ce. As soon as she got out of the car, Bao Jingyuan ran over and hugged her. She excitedly said, "Ruanruan, I sold two of my paintings." Su Ruanruan lifted her down. She was also happy for Bao Jingyuan, "How much was the price?" Bao Jingyuan honestly replied, "Five thousand each." She emphasized, "Ill keep trying hard, Ruanruan, I will definitely provide for your retirement." Su Ruanruan reminded her, "Youre a few months older than me." Bao Jingyuan stuck her tongue out. She hopped around Su Ruanruan, chattering. [Today, second brother could walk ten steps.] [Aunt Gui gave me a birthday gift.] [Ruanruan, you have to give me one too!] ... Only then did Su Ruanruan remember, today was Bao Jingyuans birthday. She felt somewhat guilty, "Ill make it up to you after dinner." Bao Jingyuan hesitatingly said, "Lets make it up tomorrow! Oh, and I forgot to tell you, big brother ising for dinnerter, Aunt Gui is already cooking." She said, close to tears. She was most afraid of her big brother. Chapter 510: Bao Jingyan Won鈥檛 Speak Provocative Words

Chapter 510: Chapter 510: Bao Jingyan Wont Speak Provocative Words

Su Ruanruan understood her best. She red at Bao Jingyuan, "Are you that afraid of him?" Bao Jingyuanined, "Big brother dotes on you, you simply cannot understand my feelings." In an attempt tofort her, Su Ruanruan said, "He wasnt nice to me at first either!" Bao Jingyuan didnt believe it. She eagerly said, "The day you came to our home, big brother was staring at you." She said awkwardly, "I shouldve been suspicious long ago." Su Ruanruan asked her, "Then what?" Bao Jingyuan didnt dare to say. She dashed to the kitchen to find Gui Zhi. Su Ruanruan shook her head. She took off her coat and sat on the sofa, gently massaging her forehead. After all, staying upte at night, she felt somewhat dizzy. Bao Ziqi wheeled over. He handed her a cup of juice. Su Ruanruan opened her eyes and smiled faintly, "Ziqi." Bao Ziqi asked her, "Is work very tiring?" Su Ruanruan sipped the juice and replied, "Not bad! Just operatedst night!" After a pause, she shared, "It was Zhou Jinhua, gastric perforation." Bao Ziqis past with Zhou Jinhua ran deep. They both had been engaged to Su Qionglin. And they both fell for Su Ruanruan. Bao Ziqi remained silent. But Su Ruanruan remembered something and softly said, "I heard from big brother that you send money to... her ce every year." Her referred to Su Qionglin. Bao Ziqi didnt deny it. He said, "Her ending up like this, I inevitably bear some responsibility." Su Ruanruan patted the back of his hand. She said in a low voice, "Dont overthink it! Big brother said shes doing fine in there." Only her mental state has be somewhat abnormal. Su Ruanruan couldnt help thinking: Actually, it might be for the best, otherwise, with my third sisters proud temperament, she would have suffered terribly inside. As she consoled him, Bao Ziqi faintly smiled. Over the years, they had supported each other. They were already like family. Su Ruanruan asked about his rehabilitation. She had been spending a lot of time at Bao Jingyans ce recently, inevitably neglecting him. Yet Bao Ziqi said, "I have Jingyuan keeping mepany! Besides, Jiaren is so young and needs someone with her." Bao Ziqi didnt want her to feel burdened. He made it clear. Su Ruanruan fell silent for a while, continuing to sip her juice. At that moment, car sounds came from the parking lot in the yard. Bao Ziqi said, "Big brother has arrived!" Su Ruanruan hummed in acknowledgment. She looked at Bao Ziqi and saw his fair hand gripping the armrest of the wheelchair. The knuckles turned white. She thought: So Ziqi can get nervous too! In the parking lot. A white Bentley came to a steady stop. Bao Jingyan stepped out; he took out a ratherrge box from the trunk. He walked into the hall. Bao Jingyuan stood up straight, her small hands twisting together. She called out like a kitten, "Big brother." Bao Jingyan looked at her indifferently. Bao Jingyuan grew more anxious. She shuffled towards Su Ruanruan, not daring to sit down. She was terrified big brother would get angry and take Ruanruan away. Seeing her like that, Bao Jingyan snorted coldly, "Shameful." He ced the cake on the dining table. Then, he took out a small box from his pocket and gave it to her. Bao Jingyuan was startled by the favor. She carefully opened it. Inside was a diamond bracelet. Very valuable. She held the box, her slender fingers gripping it tightly. Warmth appeared in her eyes. Bao Jingyan asked her, "What, you dont want it?" "I do," Bao Jingyuan sobbed. She called out big brother again. She said, "I thought you didnt want me and the second brother anymore." Bao Jingyan wouldnt speak sentimental words. He only acted. He came to celebrate her birthday. Bao Jingyuan was always one to burst into enthusiasm when shown a little kindness; given a bit of good grace, she would at once be smug. She threw herself into Bao Jingyans embrace, sobbing softly. Chapter 511: Do I Have to Wait Another Month, Huh?

Chapter 511: Chapter 511: Do I Have to Wait Another Month, Huh?

Bao Jingyan took a look at Su Ruanruan. She was sitting with Ziqi, sipping juice in small sips. Bao Jingyan patted his sister on the back and said, "Okay, enough hugging, or Ruanruan will get jealous." Bao Jingyuan actually agreed. She said, "I also think Ruanruan can get quite jealous." She tried to please her brother, "She has such a strong possessive streak." Su Ruanruan suddenly felt like her five years of youth had gone to the dogs! Fortunately, Gui Zhi came over carrying dishes. Su Ruanruan immediately put down her ss, "Ill help Aunt Gui." Bao Jingyuan hopped and skipped, "Ill go too." The women were doing household chores. In the living room, only Bao Jingyan and his brother Bao Ziqi remained. Their rtionship used to be bad. The atmosphere was delicate. Bao Jingyan sat down as if nothing was amiss. He turned on the TV in a very homely manner and casually asked Bao Ziqi, "Hows your leg?" "I can only walk a few steps." Bao Ziqis voice sounded a bit tense. Bao Jingyan nodded. He lit a cigarette, took a few puffs, then said, "Its good as long as theres hope." Bao Ziqi couldnt hold back. He asked, "Havent you been worried all these years?" Bao Jingyan took off his coat and carelessly threw it on top of Su Ruanruans trench coat. He slowly blew out rings of smoke. He countered, "Arent Jingyuan and you my brother and sister? Isnt it very normal for Ruanruan to take care of you?" Bao Ziqi whitened his knuckles gripping the wheelchair. He contained his emotions. But there was some warmth in his eyes. Bao Jingyan suddenly spoke up, "Ziqi, I should be the one thanking you." Bao Ziqi felt awkward. He was still used to the back-and-forth banter. Bao Jingyan just smiled, not forcing anything! He thought to himself: He was not as sessful a big brother as Ruanruan was. Ziqi always listened to Ruanruans words. The women brought the dinner to the table. Bao Jingyan went out to the car to get two bottles of red wine. Bao Jingyuan hadnt had a proper birthday in years. In Britain, there was only a 12-inch small cake. Tonight, it was both the birthday song and making wishes. Bao Jingyuan was exceptionally content. She urged Su Ruanruan to drink with her. Bao Ziqi also had two sses... After dinner, Su Ruanruan helped Gui Zhi clean up. Bao Jingyan didnt leave, sitting in the living room watching TV. Looking like he intended to stay overnight. Seeing Su Ruanruan lingering in the kitchen, Gui Zhi found it amusing. She said, "Go keep Jingyanpany. He seldomes over." Su Ruanruan was bashful. She slowly washed her hands clean and returned to the living room. Bao Ziqi and Bao Jingyuan had gone back to their rooms, while Bao Jingyan sat there constantly changing channels. As soon as she arrived, he said, "Which bedroom are you staying in?" Su Ruanruan asked him softly, "Arent you going back?" Bao Jingyanughed a little. He pulled her onto hisp, "Would you really drive me away?" Su Ruanruan was afraid of being seen by someone else. So she led him to her bedroom. As soon as the door closed behind them, he couldnt wait to kiss her. Su Ruanruan missed him, too. She wrapped her arms around his lean waist, willing to let him have his way. Submissive and soft! After satisfying each other. Their heartbeats settled down. Su Ruanruan leaned against him, her long hair spread all over. Her lips pressed against his sweaty neck, she whispered, "Its your birthday next month." Her voice trembled as she spoke. Bao Jingyan hummed softly. He probably guessed what she was going to give him! He teased her on purpose, "You want me to wait a whole month?" Su Ruanruan blushed. She turned her back to him, saying with some shyness, "Forget it if you dont like it." "How could I not like it?" Bao Jingyan pulled her into his arms. And kissed her finely and intently. He was ustomed to living a chaste life, so waiting wasnt really an issue! After kissing for a while, he started to settle scores. "I heard youve be Yin Zhaos assistant?" he asked her with narrowed eyes. Su Ruanruan now knew. Bao Jingyans jealousy had spilled over... Chapter 512: Bao Jingyan: I Love You More

Chapter 512: Chapter 512: Bao Jingyan: I Love You More

Su Ruanruan did not argue. She got up from his embrace and sat beside him, sorting through her long hair with her fingers. The waist-length hair was slightly damp. It clung to her thin shoulders. Not dazzling in beauty. Bao Jingyan lit a cigarette. Leaning against the back of the sofa, he slowly smoked, squinting through the haze at her. Her figure was slender. Everything that should be there was unmistakable. Su Ruanruan started to speak. She said: "If you cant stop worrying about me, Ill resign tomorrow." She nced at him, continuing, "I dont want to upset you." Bao Jingyanughed: "Youre really willing?" Su Ruanruan nodded: "Willing." She moved over to him again, hugging him very proactively. Her voice was soft: "There are hundreds of female employees in yourpany, it makes me quite angry too, just thinking of you with them every day is unbearable for me." Bao Jingyan caressed her cheek. His voice became hoarse: "What do you want me to do?" "Fire all of them!" Su Ruanruan said deliberately. Bao Jingyan fell silent. After a long while, he buried his face in her neck. His voice low and hoarse, he said: "Ruanruan, have you ever hated me for a moment? Hated me for using every means to keep you confined by my side?" Clearly, he couldnt give her the best. Yet he dominantly possessed all of her. Su Ruanruan had never seen him like this. She thought: He cares a lot about Yin Zhao. She kissed him, her voice trembling, "Hated! But more than hatred, I have loved you more." Bao Jingyan looked up in her arms. His handsome eyebrows and eyes were filled with tenderness. He gently pressed her down, murmuring softly: "Ruanruan, let me take care of you." In the heat of the moment. The door was abruptly opened. Bao Jingyuan pouted, sounding very smug: "Ruanruan, I found out this bracelet costs more than ten million." Before she could finish. She saw her brother and Ruanruan held in an embrace. Their clothes disheveled. Bao Jingyan gritted his teeth: "Bao Jingyuan, dont you know how to knock!?" Bao Jingyuan fled with her head in her hands! Bao Jingyan went over and locked the door. Su Ruanruan was carried to the bed by him... ... The little beauty didnte back. Bao Jingyan simply stayed at Su Ruanruans ce. He moved out a weekter. Su Ruanruan was severely sleep-deprived. Luckily, Yin Zhao didnt have many surgeries recently. So Su Ruanruan was reviewing documents at the surgical office. Today happened to be payday, and several colleagues were chatting. One colleague said enviously: "Director Lu, youve got full bonus this month, right?" Lu Nansheng smiled modestly. She said, "I got eighty-six thousand." The other colleagues were quite envious. Then that person said: "You performed more than a dozen major surgeries this month, didnt you?" Lu Nansheng quite proudly said: "I did one this morning! Kidney failure, removed one side!" She conservatively said: "If the right side fails, may need a kidney transnt in the future." ... Su Ruanruan quietly listened. She pulled up the patients file on theputer. Admitted six days ago. The admission record was nephritis. In a week, it became severe kidney failure! Su Ruanruan sneered. She put on her white coat, ready to go out. Lu Nansheng called out to her: "Doctor Su." Su Ruanruan turned around: "Director Lu, what is it?" Lu Nansheng walked up. With a sneer, she said: "Dont think that by following Yin Zhao youll get somewhere, being an assistant has no future." Su Ruanruan smiled indifferently. She said: "I dont need a way out." Lu Nanshengs fragile self-esteem was shattered again. She thought, she had to earn more money. To buy a bigger house. To drive a luxury car, she wanted everyone to look up to her. Yin Zhao called. He asked her to go for simtion training. Lu Nansheng curled her lips: The one Yin Zhao truly valued, was her. Su Ruanruan was just a wealthy and foolish heiress after all! Chapter 513: Whenever You Need, I鈥檓 on Call

Chapter 513: Chapter 513: Whenever You Need, Im on Call

Su Ruanruan went to the young master Zhous ward. She checked his condition. Naturally, there was nothing wrong. But young master Zhou was being his usual defiant self again. He gazed at Su Ruanruan and asked her, "Why the tight face? Is Bao Jingyan treating you poorly?" He shamelessly added, "Come to me! Ill make you happy every day." Su Ruanruan sneered, "Youre a disabled person now." Zhou Jinhua noticed that she was quite serious and became serious himself. "Whats the matter?" Su Ruanruan asked him for a favor. Young master Zhou, with both hands behind his head, flirtatiously said, "Call me brother, and Ill help." Su Ruanruan turned around to leave. He hurriedly called out to her,ining, "Youre no fun at all, youre not like this with Bao Jingyan, are you?" Despite hisints, he still took care of the matter. In a short while, his bodyguard brought in a USB drive. Zhou Jinhua handed it to Su Ruanruan, "The nursing stations surveince footage from the past week." Su Ruanruan borrowed aptop from him. She plugged in the USB drive and turned it on. She filtered and filtered again... Finally, she found it! Zhu Xinger! The head nurse of the fifth-floor hospitalization department. In the video, she was secretly adding something else to the medicine of that kidney failure patient. Su Ruanruans face turned grim. Young master Zhou also understood the gravity of the situation. He asked, "What did she do?" After a long time, Su Ruanruan spoke softly, "For her own benefit, she pushed a patient into the abyss!" She was in a bad mood. Young master Zhou wanted to tease her, but he didnt dare! Atst, he said, "Anyway, Im just idling here, Ruanruan, if you need anything, Im at your beck and call." He winked at her. Su Ruanruan nodded. She crossed her arms inside her white coat and walked out. She didnt head back to her office but went to the hospitalization department instead. She arrived outside the kidney failure patients ward. The three-bed ward was not spacious. Su Ruanruan recognized the patient at a nce. The 40-year-old man who should have been in his prime appeared drained of his vitality in theputer records. His jawbones deeply sunken. Hisplexion was dark. The many quietly, hooked up to an IV drip. His woman sat beside the bed, silently shedding tears. Su Ruanruan looked at them, feeling an indescribable sorrow. Another patient came out, surprised to see a beautiful female doctor standing at the door. She closed the door and could not help but tell Su Ruanruan, "They cut out the kidney! Daily dialysis, the family cant afford it, and they already owe the hospital over a hundred thousand!" Su Ruanruans voice tensed up: "Theyre... not locals?" "From Yangcheng! They came because of Doctor Mu Lus reputation, but it got worse once here." After the woman finished speaking, she went to fetch some water. Su Ruanruan stood silently for a while. She walked towards the billing counter. The cashier smiled sweetly upon seeing her, "Doctor Su." Su Ruanruan softly asked her, "How much does bed 502 owe right now?" The cashier checked. "Over 160,000." Su Ruanruan took out her bank card. She said softly, "Put 500,000 on bed 502." The cashier was stunned. It was the first time she had heard of a doctor paying out of pocket for a patients treatment. And such arge sum at that. She hesitantly asked once more, and Su Ruanruan instructed her to swipe the card. The cashier did so. She handed the receipt to Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan ced it in her pocket, ready to leave. As she turned around, she was confronted by Yin Zhao. Yin Zhao was very tall, around 186 cm. He looked down at her from above, his voice cold, "Come with me!" Yin Zhao did not go to his office. He headed to the rooftop instead. The wind on the rooftop of the 20-plus-story hospitalization building was strong. Yin Zhao stood with his back to the entrance. He looked down below. Su Ruanruan called out, "Dean Yin." He suddenly turned around. Chapter 514: Gossip! Doctor Su is still a young girl

Chapter 514: Chapter 514: Gossip! Doctor Su is still a young girl

Yin Zhaos tone was harsh and cold: "Doctor Su, if every doctor were as kind as you, the hospital wouldnt need to do business; it might as well be a charity!" He emphasized: "I do not want medical staff to develop personal feelings with patients, as itpromises their judgment." Ruanruan stared into the distance. Then her gaze returned. She smiled faintly: "Dean Yin is a very good businessman." Yin Zhaos expression soured. In United Hospital, no one had ever dared to talk to him this way. His words came out sternly: "Dont think that just because I like you, I will tolerate your behavior!" Ruanruan mocked with augh. She said: "In my view, Dean Yin is just a superior!" Unyieldingly, she added: "I also ask that Dean Yin does not develop special feelings towards subordinates, or else you will lose basic judgment." Yin Zhao was furious! He pulled out a cigarette. But didnt light it, just held it between his slender fingers. He asked her: "Did you learn these from Bao Jingyan?" Ruanruan did not want to discuss Bao Jingyan with him. She only talked business with him: "Dean Yin can check how many surgeries and how many repeat surgeries Doctor Lu Nanshengs patients have had over these years?" Yin Zhao narrowed his eyes. He questioned: "Are you doubting Doctor Lu?" Ruanruan admitted: "Yes, I suspect that Patient 502s worsening condition is rted to Doctor Lu." "Wheres the evidence?" Yin Zhao pressed. The evidence was naturally insufficient. But Ruanruan would find a way to get it. What she needed to ensure now was that Lu Nansheng no longer had the opportunity to harm anyone. She requested to take over patient 502. Yin Zhao refused. His voice was cold: "The hospital has its rules! Based solely on your word, I cannot agree!" Ruanruan lowered her eyes and smiled faintly. When she looked up again, she said: "Yin Zhao, if your rules harm people, then I dont mind redefining the rules." With that, she turned and left. Without looking back! Yin Zhao put the cigarette on his lips. Then fiercely removed and snapped it. He calmed himself down for a long time before seeking out Director Feng. Director Feng was a trusted confidant of the Yin Family. They talked for a long time and reviewed Lu Nanshengs surgical records from the past few years. Yin Zhao didnt look too good. Director Feng shook his head and said: "That young Lu better not really have any issues! She would bring down our hospital!" Yin Zhao whispered: "Let her carry out a simtion first!" No recement for Lu Nansheng was avable at United Hospital. Perhaps, this would anger Ruanruan! But the reputation of the hospital could not be ruined on Yin Zhaos watch. Yin Zhao left Director Fengs office. His mood was foul, and he went to the smoking area to smoke. He overheard a few female doctors gossiping. The topic was nothing more than romance! Yin Zhao listened casually. He had no intention of intervening... "Have you heard the gossip about Surgeon Doctor Su?" "Master Zhou from the VIP ward has been pursuing her for years!" "Doesnt she have a boyfriend?" "Hah! Let me tell you... Doctor Su is still a virgin! I checked personally, and she was quite embarrassed about it." "No way! Doctor Su, being such a morous beauty, her boyfriend can withstand that?" "She doesnt want to, thats all!" ... He couldnt listen to the rest of the conversation. It was too crude. Just a wall apart. Yin Zhao forgot to smoke. The cigarette nearly burned his fingers before he snapped back to reality. His eyes dark as ink, A touch of rity emerged. Yin Zhao stood alone for quite a while... * Before leaving work, he announced a message. Lu Nansheng was to suspend all duties and focus on training. The announcement made Lu Nansheng both happy and resentful. She was pleased with Yin Zhaos attention. But resentful that her patients had been handed over to Ruanruan. Chapter 515: Slap in the Face! Being Rich is Awesome

Chapter 515: Chapter 515: p in the Face! Being Rich is Awesome

Lu Nansheng was always suspicious. Was it possible that something she had done had been discovered? But she quickly dismissed the thought. Her actions were wless, there was no way they could be discovered. Lu Nansheng deliberately made things difficult for Su Ruanruan. She sneered mockingly: "Dont think youre great just because youve taken over a few patients! Ha, Patient 502 still owes over a hundred thousand, think you can handle the payment issue?" She made nasty remarks: "The rich missy cant aplish anything." Lu Nansheng waited to see the joke unfold. At this moment, her assistant Gong Xiaohong raised her hand. Her voice was very light: "Patient 502 has paid 500,000." Lu Nansheng was shocked. 500,000! She didnt want to give up on this patient. She argued with Yin Zhao, but there was absolutely no room for negotiation on his end. Lu Nansheng hung up the phone. She was seething. Just then, Su Ruanruan tapped lightly on her desk, speaking calmly: "The 500,000 was paid by me on behalf of the patient." Lu Nansheng was instantly embarrassed. She questioned: "Doctor Su, what are you implying? Think youre amazing because you have money?" "Yes! Having money is indeed amazing," Su Ruanruan enunciated clearly. She sneered: "At least I can see Doctor Lu kneel for money!" After saying that, she walked out. Lu Nansheng was so angry that she threw a cup. Inside the office, no one made a sound. They all could see that Lu Nansheng was no longer the person Dean Yin valued the most. And there was... the way Doctor Su unted her wealth. Truly charismatic! ... Su Ruanruan went to Ward 502. She brought a bouquet of lilies with her. The patients family had just found out about the additional 500,000 in their ount, and were extremely grateful. But they didnt know whom to thank. The nurse told them that it was Doctor Su who had paid for them. When Su Ruanruan came over, the woman wanted to kneel to her. But Su Ruanruan wouldnt allow it. She checked on the patient. The situation was grim, and a kidney transnt might be highly likely. As a doctor, she informed the woman. The woman covered her mouth and wept bitterly. The man regained consciousness. He tenderlyforted his wife and even made arrangements for the eventuality of his death... The woman cried inconsbly, clinging tightly to her husband. She then pleaded with Su Ruanruan. She wasnt foolish; the hospital had changed doctors. This female doctor had paid for them; she must be a good person. Su Ruanruan felt a tinge of sourness in her heart. She agreed with Yin Zhaos words; one shouldnt develop special feelings for patients. But this couple was too exceptional. Exceptional enough that she confronted Dean Yin and broke with Lu Nansheng early. She wanted this man to live. Su Ruanruan spoke calmly: "Ive already arranged for a kidney source. If surgery is necessary, it will be directly air-transported from abroad." She added: "As for the cost, dont worry." The woman hugged her arm, sobbing aloud. Their young daughter came over. A 14 or 15-year-old girl, very sensible. Fear was apparent in her eyes; she was afraid her father might die. Su Ruanruan squatted down. She patted the little girls head and said softly, "Daddy will be alright." ... The mans condition was dire! That night, Su Ruanruan decided to proceed with a kidney transnt. She had found the kidney source, and an additional 1.2 million was spent. All the medication and equipment used were top-notch. She sent the patients information to Dean Yin for review. Dean Yin examined it closely. Indeed, a kidney transnt was the only option. He wanted to perform the surgery personally. Because this operation was rted to the hospitals reputation. But Su Ruanruan said: "Let me operate! I will take responsibility if there are any issues." Dean Yin looked at her. His gaze wasplex. For some reason, he was reminded of the gossip some female doctors in theboratory department had mentioned. About her and Bao Jingyan... Dean Yin made a decision: "You lead the operation, Ill be the assistant." Su Ruanruan agreed. But before the surgery, there were some things, some people she still needed to deal with. Chapter 516: Young Master Zhou鈥檚 Handsome Man Plan

Chapter 516: Chapter 516: Young Master Zhous Handsome Man n

Night. Hospital, quiet. 5th floor nurse station in the inpatient department. Zhu Xinger secretly takes out a small pill from her pocket and puts it into a paper medication packet. As instructed by Doctor Lu Nansheng. Mix this medicine into patient 502s medication, and a small ident will ur during surgery tomorrow. Unsurprisingly. It was beyond saving. Thus, the person would die on Doctor Sus operating table. Doctor Lu and she were clean of any involvement. When Zhu Xinger first got involved in this sort of business, she felt somewhat uneasy. But the more she did it, the more numb she became. The higher than usual sry each month, the tips given by Doctor Lu. Her life wasfortable. ... Zhu Xinger was preparing to go with the medication tray. At this moment, the nurse station phone rang. President Zhous son in the VIP ward said he felt unwell and requested a temperature check. Zhu Xinger hesitated, then decided to go to see President Zhous son first. She was quite attractive. She hoped President Zhous son would sleep with her, so she wouldnt have to work so hard. Before going, she pulled down her neckline. Making herself very enticing. ... At the entrance of the VIP ward, there stood four bodyguards. Zhu Xinger took a second look. Last time she came, she remembered there were only two. She thought: The Zhou Family really does things on a grand scale. She intentionally seduced, and as she entered, she twisted her slim waist and her voice was even more alluring: "President Zhou, where do you feel unwell?" President Zhou was wearing a white bathrobe. He leaned against the head of the bed, looking verynguid. He ordered her: "Close the door." With his reputation for being a yboy, Zhu Xinger understood. He wanted to get intimate with her. Although she had a boyfriend, she pretended to be innocent: "Others will gossip." President Zhou patted the spot next to him. Chief Nurse Zhu immediately went over. She kneeled down and kissed President Zhou passionately. Totally ignoring the two bodyguards inside, she was uncontrobly flirtatious. A look of disgust appeared in President Zhous eyes! His hands roamed, and Zhu Xinger became even more impatient. President Zhou was attractive, and besides the benefits, she was also infatuated with him... In her moment of distraction, President Zhou took a medication packet from her pocket. Zhu Xinger was horrified. She demanded it back from him. President Zhou kicked her to the ground. The two bodyguards immediately restrained her, and stuffed a cloth into her mouth. Zhu Xinger made muffled noises. With a look of terror in her eyes, she realized shed been set up. Su Ruanruan walked out from the bathroom. President Zhou immediately boasted: "Ruanruan, I sacrificed my charm for you." Su Ruanruan nced at him: "You seemed to enjoy it just now." President Zhou went to brush his teeth. Meanwhile,ining about her betrayal. Su Ruanruan ignored him, she squatted down to look at Zhu Xinger. The medication packet was opened, a small pill was added. Su Ruanruan asked softly: "What is this?" Zhu Xinger shook her head desperately. She was hoping Doctor Lu Nansheng would save her. Su Ruanruan stood up: "These deals you made with Doctor Lu Nansheng, did you record them? Do you have any evidence? If not, once this gets out, youll be the only one to me." Her voice was soft: "And Doctor Lu will be clean, a good doctor who saves lives and helps the injured." Zhu Xingers face turned pale. Indeed, she had nothing incriminating on Doctor Lu. Su Ruanruan had anticipated this. She forced Zhu Xinger to call in sick. After that, she had Qin Chao knock Zhu Xinger out and take her away. This series of actions left President Zhou stupefied. He said: "You dare to do this in a hospital? At least show some respect for Yin Zhao! Su Ruanruan was expressionless. She said: "If its left to Yin Zhao, he would only try to protect Su Nansheng." After all, Yin Zhao was still relying on her for something important. President Zhou was half convinced: "Can she really interfere with this surgery?" Su Ruanruan nced at him. Unsaid. She left the hospital room. President Zhou startedining about her betrayal again. Seeing her really leaving, he asked: "Are you going to find Bao Jingyan again?" Su Ruanruan hummed affirmatively. President Zhou felt a stab of pain. Chapter 517: Deciding on a Lifetime! She Gave Herself to Bao Jingyan 1

Chapter 517: Chapter 517: Deciding on a Lifetime! She Gave Herself to Bao Jingyan 1

Su Ruanruan drove to the vi. Bao Jingyan had not yet returned; the parking lot was empty. Su Ruanruan hadnt informed him beforehand. She thought about it and made a phone call. Bao Jingyan answered quickly, his voice gentle: "Ill be back soon." Su Ruanruan listened to his voice on the other end. She softly asked, "At the club?" Bao Jingyan chuckled softly. He straightforwardly asked her, "Are you jealous?" Su Ruanruan was quite reserved, "Im going to sleep first." Then, she hung up the phone. She did not actually sleep but instead cooked two servings of pasta. Poured some red wine. In the blue teapot, she ced a white rose. After everything was ready, she went upstairs to take a bath. When she came out, Bao Jingyan had already driven back. He sat on the sofa, resting with his eyes closed. He looked a bit tired. Su Ruanruan, wearing a robe, gracefully walked downstairs. She stood behind the sofa, leaning her body so his head could rest against her abdomen. She gently massaged his forehead. Bao Jingyan didnt open his eyes, only smelling the scent of her shower gel. "Have you taken a shower?" he asked. Su Ruanruan hummed in affirmation. Bao Jingyan reached out, yfully caressing her now and then. Despite being moved, they didnt really do much. Su Ruanruan asked him, "Did you encounter some trouble?" "Just some business troubles! Theyve been dealt with," Bao Jingyan told her softly, "Its been going on and off for two months." Su Ruanruan usually didnt ask much about his business. She only asked him, "Shower first, or dinner?" He attended a lot of social events, but he didnt eat well. She was much younger than him, yet she took good care of people. Bao Jingyan didnt respond. He pulled her head closer and kissed her. In the vi, just the two of them, this shallow kiss fely very intimate. Later, he simply pulled her to lie down together. He asked her, "Howe you obediently came over today?" He figured she had something on her mind. Su Ruanruan then told him about the hospital situation. Bao Jingyan gently stroked her long hair, murmuring softly, "Selfish desire, sometimes it can drive one to lose humanity. Gradually, doing the devils work, one might even consider themselves god." Doctors are human too, and they can be devilish. It wasnt really surprising to him. He just felt that his Ruanruan was tender-hearted. Su Ruanruany in his arms, listening to him talk. A long timeter, she spoke softly, "Bao Jingyan, helping and healing isnt really my ambition! Im not that noble." A yard, two children. Plus Bao Jingyan. And Ziqi, Jingyuan... the people she cares about. That was enough. Su Ruanruan didnt borate. But Bao Jingyan understood somewhat. Su Ruanruan spoke very softly, "All that I do, I just want to be with you openly and rightfully." She murmured, "I just want to be with you! You once said when I am matured to a point where no one else matches me, we would get married." Bao Jingyan felt a pang of heartache. He looked down at her, "That was just nonsense I said before!" But Su Ruanruan took it seriously. She sat up, softly saying, "Anyway, I am very sincere." Tiredness swept away from Bao Jingyan. Over the years, every time he saw her restrained demeanor. He always felt a particr way. He dimmed the lights, starting to kiss her. In the heat of passion, Bao Jingyan suddenly stopped. Su Ruanruan slowly opened her eyes. Her face was lost in reverie. Her lips slightly parted, her voice raspy, "Bao Jingyan, whats wrong?" He hovered over her, his voice hoarse. He said, "Ruanruan, can we celebrate my birthday early?" Su Ruanruan was a bit nervous. Her voice trembled, "I have an important surgery at ten tomorrow morning." Bao Jingyans dark eyes stared at her. After a while, he carried her to the master bedroom... Chapter 518: Settling for Life! She Gave Herself to Bao Jingyan 2

Chapter 518: Chapter 518: Settling for Life! She Gave Herself to Bao Jingyan 2

Su Ruanruan was inexperienced. Under the light, his features were especially captivating. Su Ruanruans voice trembled, "Help me run the water, I want to take a bath." Bao Jingyan put down the towel. And kissed her again. He went to the bathroom to run hot water for her. Su Ruanruan noticed he was still wearing the clothes he came back in. She felt even shyer. The sound of water flowing came from the bathroom, and after a while, Bao Jingyan came to hold her. Su Ruanruan did not refuse. She leaned softly on his shoulder, excessively tender. Bao Jingyan knew she was shy and gently ced her in the bathtub. He said, "Ill go downstairs to heat up the food." Su Ruanruan nodded softly. Yet he didnt leave right away, unable to resist, he leaned down and kissed her. Real intimacy was indeed different. There was an unspoken warmth between them. After kissing for a long time, he reluctantly went downstairs. Door closed, Su Ruanruan then undid her bathrobe. She added essential oils to the water, soaking in the hot bath andfortably sighed. Alone, she couldnt help but think about what just happened. Her face flushed, heart racing. But she liked it, she liked Bao Jingyan holding her. After soaking for ten minutes, she got up, changed into a clean bathrobe, and blow-dried her hair. Bao Jingyan was still downstairs. Su Ruanruan sat in front of the vanity, applying skincare products. She was meticulous, carefully caring for every inch of her skin. Her skin was truly smooth and touchable after the bath. Bao Jingyan had showered in the guest room and changed clothes. He saw her just like that when he came over. His heart stirred. He embraced her from behind, kissing the soft skin behind her ear, "I made a cake, shall we have a bit?" Su Ruanruan knew what he meant. It was an early birthday celebration. She deliberately said, "Its not my birthday yet." Bao Jingyan chuckled lowly, "But Ive received my birthday gift!" He added, "Ruanruan, I really like it." Su Ruanruan was afraid he would continue. She stood up and took his hand, "Didnt you say there was cake? Im actually hungry." But Bao Jingyan didnt move. His dark eyes mysterious and deep. Suddenly, he pulled her into his arms, doing nothing but resting his lips on her hair. Su Ruanruan quietly hugged his waist. "Bao Jingyan, Im hungry," she whispered coquettishly. He hummed. Then, he bowed his head and pecked her lips lightly. After a brief kiss, he finally led her downstairs. A silver candlestick. A bunch of dew-fresh white roses. A small box was ced. Su Ruanruan looked down and suddenly noticed the in ring he was wearing. Their engagement ring. Bao Jingyan didnt let go of her, making her sit on hisp. He gently slipped the pink diamond ring onto her slender finger. It looked very pretty. Dazzling. Su Ruanruan did not refuse. At that moment, her body and mind were soft. They were back to their best times. Bao Jingyan cut the small cake, feeding her. Su Ruanruan only ate two bites then refused to eat more, saying she would get fat. "You wont get fat," Bao Jingyan whispered a coarse word into her ear. Her face flushed, heart raced. ... It was 7 a.m. Bao Jingyan woke Su Ruanruan. She opened her eyes. Glimmers of golden light filled the room. Therge French window across the bed had white curtains gently fluttering. Bao Jingyan stood by the bed, tying his tie. Seeing her awake, he kissed her lips, his voice hoarse, "Dont you have a surgery at ten?" Su Ruanruan hadnt had enough sleep. She closed her eyes, lightly sighed, "Then why are you still like this." Chapter 519: Su Ruanruan was Born to Wield the Surgical Scalpel

Chapter 519: Chapter 519: Su Ruanruan was Born to Wield the Surgical Scalpel

Su Ruanruan felt unwell. Sheined, "My back is about to break." Bao Jingyan sat by the bed and let her lean against him. He massaged her for a while. Su Ruanruan felt much better. He looked down and said, "Ill make breakfast, and after that, Ill take you to the hospital." Su Ruanruan did not refuse. She had to rush to the hospital before 8 oclock, as there were some routine checks to do. Without much fuss, Bao Jingyan took her to the hospital after they had eaten. Once at the hospital, Su Ruanruan had no time to think about him. Patient 502 was not in good shape. She had to give it her all. ... Before the surgery, Yin Zhao also made an assessment. The chance of sess was about 60 percent, and there was also the potential for rejection post-surgery. He called Su Ruanruan into his office. Yin Zhao was direct: "Ill do the surgery." In case of any issues, he could take the responsibility. But Su Ruanruan was adamant: "The patients family trusts me a lot." Yin Zhao pushed the documents toward her. He stared into her eyes: "Are you sure?" Even if he performed the surgery himself, he wasnt 100 percent confident. Su Ruanruan gently touched the documents and said softly, "Sure." She turned and walked out of the office. In the surgical department. Lu Nansheng was excited and agitated. She was most familiar with the condition of Patient 502. Su Ruanruan was overreaching herself; shed get what wasing to her. As Su Ruanruan came to register the surgical record, Lu Nansheng intentionally said, "If the surgery is sessful, we should celebrate for Doctor Su." Su Ruanruan simply ignored her. She walked out with the folder. Lu Nansheng felt humiliated. She was so angry she was grinding her teeth. Why was Su Ruanruan so arrogant? She called Yin Zhao, sounding very understanding. She said to Yin Zhao, "If Doctor Su cant handle it, should I take over?" Yin Zhao rejected the offer. Half an hourter. The red light in the operating room lit up... The moment Su Ruanruan picked up the scalpel, she was extremely calm. She led the surgery withposure, directing the assistants. Suddenly Yin Zhao realized. Su Ruanruan was born for this job. Throughout the surgery, his role as assistant was practically redundant. Shepleted it very well on her own. Even better than expected. Yin Zhao even felt that her technique was even more refined than Lu Nansheng and himself at his peak. hourster, Su Ruanruan finished the surgery. She said to Yin Zhao, "Seal the cavity." Yin Zhao took over, finishing thest part of the work. By now, Patient 502s vitals were stable; everything was normal. Su Ruanruan was exhausted, yet her eyes were moist. Yin Zhao patted her shoulder and said softly, "You did very well." He was the first to leave. Inside, there was a round of apuse. When Yin Zhao walked out of the operating room, he really wanted a cigarette. At the door, Lu Nansheng was anxiously waiting. To see Su Ruanruan make a fool of herself, she had called everyone from the surgical department she could. As soon as Yin Zhao came out, she asked, "Were there any problems?" Yin Zhao nced at her. He countered, "Group Leader Lu, what problems do you think there could be?" Lu Nanshengs face stiffened. She didnt know how to respond. Yin Zhao looked around, "The surgery was very sessful." He added, "Doctor Su was the chief surgeon." After saying that, he left. Lu Nanshengs shoulder was bumped by him, leaving her somewhat dazed. She found it even harder to believe that Su Ruanruan had such skills. The way Yin Zhao treated her just now... Lu Nansheng felt a sense of crisis! ... Patient 502 was observed in the operating room for two hours to ensure there were no problems before being transferred to the intensive care unit. Su Ruanruan removed her mask and walked out. The patients wife was tearfully grateful. She held Su Ruanruans hand, choked with emotion: "Doctor Su, I thank you." Su Ruanruan offered a faint smile. She said, "You cant see him today, go back and rest!" The woman was truly exhausted. She thanked Su Ruanruan profusely and left. Chapter 520: Yin Zhao Likes Su Ruanruan

Chapter 520: Chapter 520: Yin Zhao Likes Su Ruanruan

Beside her, Lu Nanshengs face looked awful. Just before, she was the attending physician for patient 502. Yet the woman acted as if she didnt see her. She watched Su Ruanruan with a cold gaze: "I didnt expect that Doctor Su has some skills! But this is far from enough. When the dayes that youre qualified to operate on Elder He, then you canpete with me!" Su Ruanruan remained calm andposed. Lu Nansheng was furious. Her phone rang. Picking up, it was a womans gentle voice. [Doctor Lu, lets meet up!] Half an hourter, Lu Nansheng appeared in a caf. A well-dresseddy was seated there. Gracefully sipping Blue Mountain coffee. It was none other than Madam Yin, Qin Su! Lu Nansheng walked over and sat across from her, respectfully greeting, "Madam." Madam Yin looked up. Her countenance was gentle, appearing very affable. But having dealt with her, Lu Nansheng knew of her capabilities. Indeed, Madam Yin spoke. She said, "Nansheng, you know I have high hopes for you." Lu Nansheng felt uneasy. Her hand holding the coffee cup was trembling slightly. Madam Yin smiled faintly: "Ive heard Su Ruanruan is quite skilled in medicine. Nansheng, once she bes stable in the hospital, Im afraid youll be out of the picture." Lu Nanshengs face turned pale. She was unconvinced: "She cant surpass me." Madam Yin just smirked. After all,ing from a poor family, she hasnt seen much of the world. Madam Yin further provoked Lu Nansheng. She said, "You probably dont know, Yin Zhao, hes taken a liking to Su Ruanruan." Lu Nansheng was struck as if by lightning. She couldnt believe it, nor did she want to. She asked with difficulty: "Yin Zhao, he clearly... dislikes Su Ruanruan, doesnt he?" "Did Yin Zhao tell you that?" Madam Yin smiled elegantly. Lu Nansheng found it hard to digest. Madam Yin added: "You dont have much time left. A wise person knows what to do." Lu Nansheng left in mental disarray. Staggering. Madam Yin continued to sit there, sipping her coffee. She was an expert at manipting peoples hearts. What she really nned to use was Su Ruanruan. And Lu Nansheng was just a touchstone! ... Lu Nansheng took a long time to calm down. In a secluded spot, she called Zhu Xinger. "Where are you? Why did you ask for leave?" Lu Nanshengs tone was not pleasant. She then said, "Theres a task, are you up for it?" She wanted to cause an incident with patient 502. Of course, the me would fall on Su Ruanruan. Meanwhile, Zhu Xinger was being watched by Qin Chao. Her entire family was in Su Ruanruans hands. She dared not speak rashly: "Theres an issue at my hometown, Im out of town." Lu Nansheng cursed. She hung up the phone. At this moment, Yin Zhao called asking her to go for training. Lu Nansheng showed a look of pride. Once she sessfully operates on Elder He, she will be his benefactor. The position of Chief Surgeon would undoubtedly be hers. The fate of Su Ruanruan, just a word from her. Lu Nansheng was very hardworking. Her familys conditions were not good; she had been scheming since she was young. After a tough day of training, she wanted to dine with Yin Zhao. But Yin Zhao said he had an engagement. He took Su Ruanruan with him. This engagement was not anticipated by Su Ruanruan. Originally, she nned to watch a movie with Bao Jingyan. Bao Jingyan didnt take her to task, he just asked for her location and said hed pick her upter. Su Ruanruan found him considerate. After finishing the phone call, she got into Yin Zhaos car. Out of politeness, she sat in the passenger seat. Yin Zhao withdrew half a cigarette, which she extinguished as soon as she got in. He asked her, "Did you report it to Bao Jingyan?" Su Ruanruan didnt answer; she had no personal rtionship with Yin Zhao. She was cold, and Yin Zhaos face darkened. He drove the car out. Chapter 521: President Bao, It鈥檚 Better to Meet by Chance than by Invitation

Chapter 521: Chapter 521: President Bao, Its Better to Meet by Chance than by Invitation

Yin Zhao invited a few pharmaceutical merchants. To a business club. A very proper ce. Over the past few years, Bao Jingyan has slowly monopolized the market in City B, creating an industry monopoly. Why would Yin Zhao be willing to be controlled by someone else? He invited these people because they are very influential. During the dinner, these people keptining. [Doing business is tough!] [Exactly, even Dean Yin is having a hard time, we are not doing any better.] [Yin Zhao, you should approach Mr. Sun Jingan too.] [If you dont, well have to go look for him!] ... Yin Zhao forced a smile. Although the Yin Family and Sun Jingan have a good rtionship. But Bao Jingyan is Sun Jingans nephew by marriage! Last time, Bao Jingyan caused a huge stir. No one knew why he suddenly exploded! Many peopleined, but what could be done? Sun Jingan took the matter lightly. And nothing came out of it. Bao Jingyan, privately, even more so controlled others tightly, like holding the lifeline of major hospitals. Yin Zhao lit a cigarette. Slowly blowing smoke rings. He nced at Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan was sitting next to him ying with her phone, not drinking. Others spoke to her, and she would briefly respond. Yin Zhao then asked her, "What do you think?" Su Ruanruans tone was indifferent: "Dean Yin, Im just a doctor! I dont know much about medical supplies." Those pharmaceutical merchants had noticed Su Ruanruan early on. Very good-looking. And very young. They thought she was Yin Zhaos girlfriend. Now they know she is a doctor from United Hospital. They could tell from Su Ruanruans dress and demeanour, Shees from a well-to-do family. These people then spoke up for Su Ruanruan. [Miss Su is innocent, how would she know about these things!] [Exactly! Bao Jingyan is literally squeezing us dry, hes inhuman!] [I will go find Mr. Sun tomorrow, to get an exnation.] ... Su Ruanruan then realized. This was a meeting targeting Bao Jingyan. It was not appropriate for her to speak. She felt it odd for Yin Zhao to bring her to such a gathering. She was just about to take her leave. When the door to the room was pushed open. Bao Jingyan stood at the door, holding a ss of champagne. In a ck and white ssic suit. Handsome features. Graceful demeanor. He smiled and said, "I was passing by the door, and it seemed like someone was cursing me!" Those men were doomed. They still tried to deny it. [How could that be! President Bao must have heard wrong!] [Exactly, how could we do such a thing!] ... Bao Jingyan looked at Su Ruanruan. He smiled, "If Miss Su says no, then it didnt happen!" These old fellows were stunned. What, does Doctor Su have a history with Bao Jingyan? Bao Jingyan bluntly stated: "Miss Su is my girlfriend." The men deted. Thats it! They are going to get sorted out. Family Bao holds grudges the most! Su Ruanruan was also surprised at first by Bao Jingyans appearance. Later she understood, he deliberately came to block her. Bao Jingyan hasnt changed at all. Still jealous! Su Ruanruan wasnt annoyed, she simply smiled slightly and said: "Of course not." The men were both surprised and shocked. Then they admired: Miss Su is magnanimous. They owed her a favor! Even though Bao Jingyan knew Su Ruanruan was bluffing, he epted this face from her. He came over, and asked her in a low voice, "When does the dinner end?" Su Ruanruan didnt want to stay and be the subject of scrutiny, she said, "We can leave now!" Yin Zhao slowly stood up. He smiled faintly: "President Bao, bumping into you here is better than if I had invited you." Bao Jingyan gave a smile, and sat down. He said, "Seems like Dean Yin has something to teach me." Yin Zhao had someone serve baijiu. Each poured three sses. Yin Zhao was very polite, "President Bao is a rising star in City B, who wouldnt give face to President Bao! May I ask if President Bao would grant me this favor?" Chapter 522: Am I Not a Man, Huh?

Chapter 522: Chapter 522: Am I Not a Man, Huh?

Bao Jingyan chuckled lightly. His elegant, bone-chiseled fingers toyed with a jade-colored wine ss. Against this backdrop, it was a pleasing sight! He responded to Yin Zhao with a question: "If I get drunk, Ruanruan will drive me home. What about you, Dean Yin?" Yin Zhao replied indifferently, "I have my ways!" "Alright!" Bao Jingyan was indeed refreshing in his response. He took off his coat and handed it to Su Ruanruan. Those pharmaceutical merchants werent fools. Seeing their jealousy and rivalry, they began a drinking contest. They ran off at breakneck speed! Su Ruanruan felt both embarrassed and angry. She pulled Bao Jingyan, "Lets go home!" Bao Jingyan turned to look at her. He said, "Wait for me in the car." Su Ruanruan didnt want to witness this scene either. She took the car keys and went to the parking lot to get into the car. The more she thought about it, the angrier she got. This morning he was all softness and tenderness, yet now his old habits had red up again! She thought angrily: If he drinks too much, she wont take care of him! Then just let him soak in the bathtub! But despite her anger, she still sat in the car waiting for him. About an hourter, Bao Jingyan came over. He indeed had drunk quite a bit. Su Ruanruan got out of the car to help him and with great effort managed to get him into the vehicle. She mmed the car door furiously. Once in the drivers seat, Bao Jingyans hand covered the back of hers. His breathing was slightly rapid, his voice fiery. He asked her, "Dont you want to know what happened to Yin Zhao?" "I dont want to know," Su Ruanruan responded coldly. If he wasnt her man, she wouldnt care about him. She was that heartless. Bao Jingyan chuckled softly. He sat back, leaning his head against the seat. Cursing coarsely, and then said: "That kid Yin Zhao sure can drink!" Su Ruanruan, smelling the alcohol on him, couldnt help asking, "How much did you drink?" "Almost half a kilo," Bao Jingyan said truthfully. Then, ovee by the alcohol, he held her face, attempting to kiss her. Su Ruanruan was livid. She refused, batting his hand away. Bao Jingyan carefully looked into her eyes and said, "Are you angry? When someone lusts after my wife and I remain indifferent, does that still make me a man?" He always had so many twisted justifications! Su Ruanruan ignored him. She started the car, not allowing him to get close. But a drunk man is unreasonable. Once home, as soon as they entered the bedroom, Bao Jingyan lifted her into his arms and enveloped her with a passionate kiss. Su Ruanruan couldnt fight back at all! ... After it was over, it was already three in the morning. Bao Jingyan had sobered up. He cradled her, trying to coax her. Su Ruanruan did not forgive him. He had been truly detestable just now! She took a bath, changed into a bathrobe, and went to the guest room next door... Bao Jingyan brazenly followed her. Regardless of how much she hit and scolded him. Su Ruanruan couldnt be bothered to argue with him any longer, and she fell deeply asleep in his arms. ... A hangover is a terrible thing to endure. When Bao Jingyan woke up, it was already ten in the morning. Su Ruanruan had gone to work. The vi was empty and quiet. Only the sunshine was spilling on his face, warm andforting. Bao Jingyan gave a faint smile, threw back the covers, and got out of bed. Just after he finished washing up, his phone rang. It was a call from Sun Jingan. He sted Bao Jingyan furiously. [Acting big, are you?] [Ive been working hard to cover for you, and there you go, unting her as your girlfriend out in the open! Are you eager for Madam Jiang from the city to find out?!] ... Bao Jingyan was in an excellent mood. As he fastened his shirt buttons, he spoke, "It doesnt matter if the olddy knows, Ill exin it to her." "What kind of exnation can you give?" Sun Jingan was furiously upset! He issued an ultimatum, "You behave yourself, or else get back to Jiang City!" "My childs mother is in B City, where would I roll off to?" Bao Jingyan countered. Sun Jingan was at a loss for words. His tongue was not as agile, "What are you saying? The mother of my sweet darling is in B City?" Bao Jingyan confidently said, "Yes! Ive almost found her!" Sun Jingan pondered: Such feelings for the mother of his child were surely different. Indeed, Bao Jingyan promised, "I will marry her!" Chapter 523: Bao Jingyan: I Want to Marry the Beauty鈥檚 Mother

Chapter 523: Chapter 523: Bao Jingyan: I Want to Marry the Beautys Mother

Bao Jingyan was willing tomit. Sun Jingan should have been happy. But he felt somewhat heavy at heart. An indescribable feeling. He hung up the phone and sat in the study, smoking sullenly. Mrs. Sun Jingan came in. She said to her husband, "Have you been pressuring Jingyan again?" Sun Jingan cried injustice. Mrs. Sun Jingan didnt believe it. She said, "Havent you seen over these years, Jingyan has not had a single woman by his side! And now that theyve finally gotten together, do you have the heart to separate them?" She persuaded her husband, "That child came to our home when she was only 18. How can you bear it in your heart?" Sun Jingan couldnt help saying, "My dear, am I the one who wants to separate them?" He shook his phone, "You say Jingyan has no women by his side, so where did this sweetheart pop out from, a crack in the rocks?" He smiled faintly, "Jingyan just told me that hes found the sweethearts mother! Hes nning to marry her!" Mrs. Sun Jingan was surprised. Jingyan said that? Sun Jingans face was ashen, "What is Jingyan trying to do? Enjoy the happiness of everyone?" In his heart, though, he felt sorry for the child. Such good conditions, yet to be trifled with by Jingyan. He sighed inwardly. Mrs. Sun Jingan, however, was utterly speechless. Her shrewd husband, yed by Jingyan. She didnt want to continue talking to a fool. About to leave, Sun Jingan suddenly felt an impulse. He pulled his wife into his embrace,vishing affection without restraint. Mrs. Sun Jingan was indignant, saying, "I wont share a quilt with a fool." The door gently closed. Sun Jingan was somewhat disheveled. He chased after her into the bedroom. His wife was arranging her clothes in the walk-in closet. Sun Jingan hugged her from behind, his warm breath on her ear, "Whos the fool?" [Can a fool make you this happy?] [Werent you deeply infatuated with me before?] [Who was the one who made such a fuss to marry me?] ... Mrs. Sun Jingan recalled the beautiful days of her youth. She pleaded with her husband, "Weve alsoe a long way, can you please have some sympathy for Ruanruan?" She added, "Anran really likes her! Jingan, do it for Anrans sake." Mentioning his beloved daughter, Sun Jingan fell silent. After a moment, he said hoarsely, "Understood." Shortly after, heined, "Focus, please." ... Sun Jingan had no public duties today. In the afternoon, he went to visit Elder He at the hospital. Mrs. Elder He wouldnt let peoplee in casually, as it would disturb Elder He. The VIP ward was very quiet. Su Ruanruan was there. She was giving Elder He acupuncture and massage. Elder Hey prone, groaning and moaning. Mrs. Elder He scolded him, "If you cant endure the pain like this, how can Doctor Su continue to treat you?" In truth, she was also pained for him. But she feared that Su Ruanruan might refuse toe again, so she scolded her husband to educate him. Su Ruanruan had a good temperament. She said, "It does hurt quite a bit." Mrs. Elder He stopped speaking and went to cheer on her husband. Sun Jingan watched, smiling. He asked his secretary to wait outside, and he went in alone. He didnt disturb them, just sat on the sofa reading a newspaper. After Su Ruanruanpleted the treatment. Elder He broke out in sweat and felt a bit more relieved. He turned over and said, "This old body finally feels at ease." Yet Su Ruanruan said, "This can only dy the onset; surgery is still inevitable." Elder He fell silent. He knew the difficulties faced by Yin Zhao. The surgery was difficult, and even now, there was no certainty of sess. He had seen much and was philosophical about it. He said, "Lets leave it to fate!" Mrs. Elder He disliked hearing such words, but she couldnt bear to scold him. Su Ruanruan packed up her medicine box. She smiled slightly, "With advanced medical science now, Elder Hes illness will get better." Mrs. Elder He foundfort in these words. That was when she noticed that Sun Jingan hade in silently. Chapter 524: Girls, never become a mistress!

Chapter 524: Chapter 524: Girls, never be a mistress!

He Lao was talking to Sun Jingan. Sun Jingan, however, was fixated on Su Ruanruan. His mind was echoing with Bao Jingyans words. He was going to marry the little beautys birth mother. What about Su Ruanruan? Keep her as a mistress? When Su Ruanruan left, Sun Jingan followed her. He called out to Su Ruanruan. "Not even a hello when you see me?" Su Ruanruan smiled faintly: "Mr. Sun." Sun Jingan was displeased: "You used to call me uncle before." Su Ruanruans smile became even fainter. She didnt argue back. Sun Jingan felt it was pointless. Yes, it was the Sun Family that had abandoned her. Now that he was like this, why bother? Feeling pity for the child, he hinted: "Actually, you have quite good prospects, I hear many people are pursuing you!" He helped her sift through them: "Forget about Zhou Jinhua! Too beneath you! Yin Zhao is not bad!" Su Ruanruan watched him quietly. Sun Jingans ck eyes gleamed like jade. He said: "A good girl should never be someones mistress!" Su Ruanruan was perplexed. But she could guess that he had been swayed by Bao Jingyan. ... Before getting off work, she visited the patient in Room 502 again. Still in the intensive care unit. But vitals very stable. Su Ruanruan went in, carefully checked the records. When leaving, she nodded to a tall and strong nurse inside. That female nurse, easily around 175cm tall. Tall and sturdy. Face painted very white. With drawn-on eyebrows and eyeliner. Her nurses uniform was taut over her voluptuous figure. Su Ruanruan gave her a look, and she nodded. In perfect unison! Su Ruanruan finished her work at the hospital and drove back to her vi. It was ate autumn evening. Lights shone faintly from the vi, with the aroma of food in the air. Su Ruanruan felt a softness in her heart. She got out of the car, walked into the hall, only to find Bao Jingyan sitting on the sofa. Assuming the posture of the head of the household. Bao Jingyuan was all smiles, trying to please. Bao Ziqis expression was also quite intriguing. Su Ruanruan looked toward the parking lot. Bao Jingyans car was not there. As if he noticed her confusion, Bao Jingyan said indifferently: "The driver brought me here." Su Ruanruan was still angry. She put down her handbag and said lightly: "Is President Bao very free today?" Bao Jingyan smiled: "I came to see my younger brother and sister, what, does Miss Su have any objections?" His tone was neither here nor there. Su Ruanruan didnt want to deal with him. She picked up her handbag and went straight upstairs, changed into home clothes, and came down. Bao Jingyan was still chatting with his siblings, in no apparent hurry. Su Ruanruan helped Gui Zhi with cooking. Gui Zhi, knowing they hade over, sensed that there was friction. She quietly asked: "Where did he offend you? He came over at three or four in the afternoon." Su Ruanruans face blushed. How could she discuss bedroom matters with Gui Zhi? She simply said: "He drank too muchst night." Gui Zhi guessed it. She said: "You should give him the cold shoulder! Drank too much and lost control, cant indulge him." Su Ruanruans face reddened further. During dinner, Bao Jingyan unceremoniously took the head seat. It was quiet at the table, only Bao Jingyuan was chattering. She said: "My gallery is opening soon, big brother, could youe support the event?" Bao Jingyan agreed. He said to send 50 flower baskets through his secretary. He even wrote her a check as an investment. Bao Jingyuan sweetly: "Thank you, big brother." Bao Jingyan patted her little head and said: "Then you should be more diligent usually, help Ruanruan share more responsibilities." Bao Jingyuan happilyplied: "Im the most diligent." She naively insisted on doing the dishes after dinner. Even Gui Zhi couldnt shoo her away! Bao Jingyan, however, was sitting in the living room with Bao Ziqi, discussing stocks and funds. Su Ruanruan went straight upstairs. Took a bath, and felt somewhat better. Chapter 525: Ruanruan, Are You Still Mad at Me?

Chapter 525: Chapter 525: Ruanruan, Are You Still Mad at Me?

Su Ruanruan was sure that Bao Jingyan woulde, so she did not sleep. She took a medical book and sat by the window to read it. Her long hair was slightly damp. Wrapped in a white bathrobe, her slender body was fragrant and captivating. Bao Jingyan pushed the door open and saw her like this. He moved behind her and closed the window. Then he embraced her from behind: "Are you still mad at me?" Su Ruanruan didnt want to pay attention to him. Bao Jingyan, having rxed, was in a particrly good mood. He said softly, "Let me apply some medicine for you." He lifted her onto hisp and took out a tube of ointment from his pocket. Su Ruanruan was both angry and embarrassed. She refused. Bao Jingyan gazed at her intently. He asked her, "Doesnt your body hurt anymore?" Su Ruanruan turned her face away with restraint. He was asking even though he knew the answer! In the end, afraid to make a fuss, she still let him apply the medicine. The night grew deeper. Bao Jingyans eyes and brows were all tenderness. He admitted his wrongdoing to her: "I went too farst night." Su Ruanruan wasnt so angry; although he wasnt very gentle, he hadnt really hurt her. She was angry about him drinking with Yin Zhao. After the medicine was applied, she kicked him with her foot. Bao Jingyan wove his persuasion tenderly and persistently, refusing to leave. Su Ruanruan leaned on his shoulder to talk business with him. She said, "I always feel that Lu Nansheng wouldnt dare to do such a thing on her own, there is someone behind her." She spoke earnestly. She was beautiful and her body even softer. Bao Jingyan particrly liked her serious demeanor. He held her in his arms. After pondering for a moment, he asked her, "Whom do you suspect?" As he finished speaking, they both mentioned the same name. Su Ruanruans eyes showed a hint of surprise. Their minds were in harmony. Yet she still resented the foolish thing he had done and refused to let him stay the night. Bao Jingyan coaxed her for a long time unsessfully. He had no choice but to go downstairs. Downstairs, Bao Ziqi was still watching TV. He nced at Bao Jingyaning down and asked indifferently, "Were you kicked out after a fight?" Bao Jingyan sat down. He pulled a cigarette from the box on the coffee table but couldnt find the lighter. The cigarette hung from his lips. He red at Bao Ziqi, "What do you know, this is called romance." Bao Ziqi was nomittal. He wheeled himself back to his bedroom. ... Bao Jingyan took the cigarette from his lips. He went upstairs with the cigarette box. Su Ruanruan had locked the door. He gently knocked at the door: "Is my lighter with you?" At first, Su Ruanruan ignored him. After he asked several times, she finally came to open the door. "I came to look for the lighter." He stepped aside and walked into the bedroom. Su Ruanruan wore a bathrobe. She watched him take the lighter from the side table and light a cigarette. Su Ruanruan forbade him from smoking there. Bao Jingyan put out the cigarette and asked her lightly, "Where do I sleep?" Su Ruanruan led him to the guest bedroom. Just as she pushed the door open, he embraced her. The guest room, having been long unupied, had a crisp scent. It was also a bit cold. Bao Jingyans body, however, was warm. She coveted that bit of warmth, but still insisted on pushing him away. Bao Jingyan turned on the light. He chuckled softly, reaching to undo the buttons of his shirt. Su Ruanruan got him a nket. She turned around and saw him in that state. She threw the nket on him, lightly bit her lip, and left. Bao Jingyan was not annoyed. He arranged the nket, closed the door, andy on the bed to quietly smoke. Deep into the night, all the conspiracies came flooding in... ... Su Ruanruan was angry. And itsted a long time. She ignored Bao Jingyan for several days in a row. Bao Jingyan was not urgent; besides being willing to indulge her, he also knew she wasnt feeling well. He wasnt a man who thought only of his own pleasure. Early in the morning, he took her to the hospital. When Su Ruanruan got out of the car, she said softly, "Ill be eating out tonight, I have an appointment with Uncle Yan." Bao Jingyan generously let her go, "Ill pick you up when youre done." Su Ruanruan agreed. Chapter 526: Dinner Party, Chance Encounter with Bai Muye

Chapter 526: Chapter 526: Dinner Party, Chance Encounter with Bai Muye

Su Ruanruan arrived at the surgical department. The atmosphere was off. Xiaohong whispered to her, "Group Leader Lus simtion training is quite effective. I heard theres a 60% chance of sess now." Su Ruanruan smiled faintly, "For someone of Mr. Hes status, a 60% chance is far from enough." Xiaohong was just about to say something. Lu Nansheng entered from the doorway. She sneered, "Dr. Su, do you think just anyone has the qualification to operate on Mr. He?" She looked at Su Ruanruan arrogantly. "Now only I have the capability to operate on Mr. He!" Su Ruanruan was very gracious. She smiled slightly, "Then I shall congratte Group Leader Lu in advance." Lu Nansheng was full of pride. She regarded Su Ruanruan as a formidable rival and trained even harder. That day, she pretended to want to discuss Mr. Hes condition with Yin Zhao. She suggested sweetly, "Why not talk while we eat." Yin Zhao did not object. In the parking lot. When Yin Zhao started the car, he saw Su Ruanruan. She was driving a white BMW. The direction was not the way home. Yin Zhao stared absent-mindedly for a few seconds. Lu Nansheng felt a pang of jealousy, but she didnt point it out. Instead, she said lightly, "It seems Dr. Su has a date." She wished she could catch Su Ruanruan red-handed. To let Yin Zhao know, Su Ruanruan is not a proper woman. Fate was on her side. During the meal, she actually saw Su Ruanruan dining with a strange man. The man was handsome. Around 40 years old. Very intimate with Su Ruanruan, even touching her hair. Lu Nansheng said to Yin Zhao, "I thought Dr. Su was a proper person, but it turns out she also dates behind President Baos back." Yin Zhao spoke indifferently, "Thats Boss Yan." Lu Nansheng was surprised. She blurted out, "Boss Yan... looks like this without makeup?" Yin Zhao was silent. He quietly watched Su Ruanruan. He recalled the conversation he had with Bao Jingyan that night. He said he had liked Su Ruanruan for five years. Bao Jingyan said, he started liking Su Ruanruan when she was 14. years old... Ten years. Yin Zhao scoffed: What about ten years? He still had children with another woman. At that time, Bao Jingyan just smiled faintly. ... Yin Zhao was lost in thought. Lu Nansheng was very dissatisfied. She brought his attention back by discussing the surgery. When settling the bill, she deliberately did it along with Su Ruanruan. In front of Yin Zhao, she said with a smile, "Dr. Su and Boss Yan turn out to be old acquaintances." Before Su Ruanruan could speak. Yan Qing said indifferently, "Ruanruans father and I were close friends!" Lu Nansheng was embarrassed. She stopped talking, filled with jealousy. Yin Zhao paid the bill. He graciously also settled the bill for Yan Qing. Yan Qing felt embarrassed. Yin Zhao then said, "Uncle Yan is also a good friend of my father; its only right to treat him to a meal." He then invited, "Uncle Yan, how about joining me for a cup of coffee?" One who epts favors is beholden. Yan Qing couldnt refuse. Su Ruanruan didnt mind, since Lu Nansheng was eagerly watching Yin Zhao. In the caf. Su Ruanruan was utterly bored. She yed with her phone and didnt talk much. Yan Qing kept talking to Yin Zhao. Lu Nansheng tried to ingratiate herself, but he wasnt very enthusiastic. Lu Nanshengs mood was very poor. With Su Ruanruan there, she felt like a supporting character. Amidst the subtle atmosphere, a few people approached from the opposite direction. The leader was someone Su Ruanruan had seen before. Song Weis invested male celebrity. Bai Muye. Clearly, Bai Muye also remembered Su Ruanruan. He walked over, gracefully called out, "Miss Su." Su Ruanruan stood up, smiling. Bai Muye, a man who knew how to behave, took three invitations from his assistant. "These are meet-and-greet tickets that Mrs. Sun Jingan asked someone to get from me. I was just nning to send someone over but met Miss Su instead, can I trouble Miss Su to make the trip?" Su Ruanruan epted them. She knew Sun Anran liked him very much. The meet-and-greet was on Anrans 18th birthday. Su Ruanruan was quite serious. She smiled, "Rest assured, Ill surely deliver them." Bai Muye added, "I hope to see Miss Su at the event." Su Ruanruan had promised Anran and dly agreed. Bai Muye greeted the others. He came with grace and left with grace. Lu Nansheng didnt even get a chance to speak. Chapter 527: Su Ruanruan鈥檚 Arrangement, A Web of Heaven and Earth

Chapter 527: Chapter 527: Su Ruanruans Arrangement, A Web of Heaven and Earth

Lu Nansheng was jealous of Su Ruanruan. The next day, she was stirring things up in the office. "Doctor Su sure has some wide connections! Even Boss Yan is an old family friend of hers, and the top male star Bai Muye is somewhat acquainted with her." She clicked her tongue and said, "At Bai Muyes fan meeting, she managed to get three admission tickets." Her colleagues were brimming with envy. Su Ruanruan smiled lightly, "Just a young girl in the family who likes Bai Muye." Lu Nansheng was extremely irritated. She liked Bai Muye, too. But Bai couldnt care less about her. Her face beaming with a smile, she said, "Forget the fan meeting since there are limited spots! But for Boss Yans y tickets, Doctor Su couldnt get even one or two, right? Could it be that your rtionship isnt strong enough?" Everyone else was already used to her sour remarks. Su Ruanruan thought for a bit. She took out a handful of season ticket cards from her jacket pocket. "These were given to me by Uncle Yanst night, theyre season tickets! If you want to watch, just go and exchange them for a seat." She distributed the cards among her colleagues. The people were astounded. Season tickets! Boss Yan performed once a month. They could watch 12 times. But that wasnt the point, the point was that possessing such season tickets in City B was a status symbol. Everyones eyes were shining brightly. Extremely grateful to Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan smiled faintly, "Its simply a small gesture!" Lu Nansheng was furious. She didnt ask for the season tickets as that would seem like she was inferior to Su Ruanruan. She went to Yin Zhao and trained desperately. But due to her limited talent, she made no progress. Yin Zhao was disappointed. During the review, Lu Nansheng was making excuses for herself. Yin Zhaos assistant came in. She held a pile of newspapers in her hand and ced them on Yin Zhaos desk. The young assistant said casually, "I saw Doctor Su in the reception again." She added, "Shes received another postcard." Yin Zhao heard the name Su Ruanruan. His heart softened. He casually asked, "Where was it sent from?" "Norway." After the assistant finished speaking, she grinned and pulled out a season ticket card. She said, "Its Boss Yans season ticket, Doctor Su just gave it to me." Yin Zhao gave a smile and took it to look. Indeed, very precious! Lu Nanshengs expression turned very ugly. It was Su Ruanruan again! Why did she always have to show off? Before Su Ruanruan arrived, Lu Nansheng had been riding high. Now, all the attention had shifted to Su Ruanruan. This wont do! She had to deal Su Ruanruan a fatal blow so shed learn her ce. Lu Nansheng turned her attention to patient number 502. But Zhu Xinger was still on vacation, and finding another nurse to coborate with carried some risk. Lu Nansheng needed to find the right opportunity! After work, she drove to Zhu Xingers residence. The front gate was tightly locked. It seemed the woman wasnt lying, there really was trouble back home. Lu Nansheng left the building and quickly drove off. ... Around the corner, a ck van was parked on the side of the road. The driver was Yan Kuan. Su Ruanruan, wearing sunsses, sat beside him. She watched as Lu Nansheng came downstairs. Su Ruanruan gave a slight smile, "This Doctor Lu seems to be losing patience quite quickly." A single season ticket got this team leader so agitated. She truly isnt cut out for big things! She quietly asked Yan Kuan about the situation at the hospital. Yan Kuan smiled, "Miss Su, rest assured, Qin Chao has been keeping a tight watch!" He couldnt help feeling schadenfreude, "Qin Chao really made a big sacrifice this time, dressing up as a woman for several days already." Su Ruanruan gave a hum of acknowledgment. She said, "Qin Chao has indeed worked hard this time! Im nning to reward him with a set of apartments in City B." Yan Kuan was driving. Upon hearing this, the car suddenly swerved. He immediately cried out, "Is that ward still short of female nurses?" Eagerly making his offer, "I make a pretty good woman too! Miss Su, consider me!" Chapter 528: Eating, Drinking, Having Fun, She鈥檚 the Best at It

Chapter 528: Chapter 528: Eating, Drinking, Having Fun, Shes the Best at It

Su Ruanruan nced at Yan Kuan. She took out a bunch of keys from her handbag and handed them to him. With an address included. Su Ruanruan said, "120 square meters, three bedrooms and two living rooms!" Yan Kuan was stunned. Then he said in a low voice, "Miss Su and Ninth Master have treated us so well, Qin Chao and I would die without regrets!" Su Ruanruan then said, "Dont talk like that in the future, you need to live well." Yan Kuan was moved. He said, "Yes, we need to live well." Following Miss Su, they were no longer people who lived on the edge of a knife. They now own properties in Jiang City and City B. They had also be people with status. Su Ruanruan asked him to return to the vi. Yan Kuan couldnt wait to see the new house and left joyfully. ... Su Ruanruan returned to the vi. She had something on her mind. In a few days, it would be Sun Anrans 18th birthday. Mrs. Sun Jingan treated her very well. Bao Jingyan also loved this little cousin very much. Su Ruanruan felt that the birthday gift had to be substantial. She leaned on the sofa, feeling somewhat headache. Bao Jingyuan bounced over. She pleasurably massaged her shoulders: "Ruanruan, havent you forgiven my big brother yet?" Su Ruanruan nced at her. She said, "Adult matters are not for children to worry about!" Bao Jingyuan disagreed. She boastfully said, "I am older than you by a few months though!" Seeing no one around, she whispered to Su Ruanruan, "I know that you and my big brother have be a real couple, thats why youre putting on the airs of a sister-inw!" Su Ruanruans face heated up. But she still had tomand, "Bao Jingyuan!" Bao Jingyuan was always scared of her. She ran off to hide. Gui Zhi came to mediate. Bao Jingyuan insisted, "Whats there to be shy about? My big brother has waited for you for so many years." Su Ruanruan still red at her. Bao Jingyuan was forced toe out and apologize. She took Su Ruanruans hand, "Please dont be angry!" She couldnt change her true nature, "My big brother is good-looking and rich, you are not at a loss!" Su Ruanruan didnt bother to argue with her. She asked Gui Zhi, what should be a good gift. Gui Zhi rubbed her apron,ughing: "This really stumps me! I really dont know what young girls like these days." She looked towards Bao Jingyuan, "Maybe, ask Miss Jingyuan! Shes the expert in dining and entertainment." Bao Jingyuan indignantly protested, "Why am I only good at dining and entertainment?" Su Ruanruan chuckled. Bao Jingyuans eyes swiveled. She sat down beside Su Ruanruan gracefully. She said, "However, I do have a good idea." Su Ruanruan cooperated with her, humbly asking for advice. Bao Jingyuan looked self-assured. She said, "Thest time I bought a manga, one of them was drawn by Sun Anran." She dashed upstairs and brought down a manga. Su Ruanruan flipped through it. "Me and Xiaobai"! A little girl and a cat. Drawn quite adorably. Bao Jingyuan leaned close to her, saying, "If you buy the rights and turn it into an anime, she would definitely be very happy." Su Ruanruan internally approved. But outwardly, she pretended to disagree. She said, "Do you know how much it costs to develop a manga into an anime?" Bao Jingyuan didnt care, "I know you are rich, besides you can ask my big brother for money." She mored, "Big brother loves you the most." Su Ruanruan tapped her on the head softly. She kept silent. She carefully flipped through the manga. After a long while, she asked Bao Jingyuan, "Is it because you like it and want to buy it, but you dont have enough money?" Bao Jingyuan acted coy, "You cant hide anything from me." She sincerely said, "On one hand, I think its good, and on the other hand, I want her to be happy." Su Ruanruans heart softened. She had looked through it once. It was indeed well-drawn. Very healing. However, this matter was not something that could be bought immediately. She didnt own an entertainmentpany. Chapter 529: Bao Jingyan Persists Softly and Firmly

Chapter 529: Chapter 529: Bao Jingyan Persists Softly and Firmly

Su Ruanruan thought carefully. She felt that Zhou Jinhua could help with this. She made a call and spoke to Young Master Zhou about it. She would bear the financial costs, but use Young Master Zhous entertainmentpany to handle it. Young Master Zhou agreed immediately. Su Ruanruan hung up the phone. Bao Jingyuan looked at her eagerly, full of admiration. "Whats up?" Su Ruanruan fiddled with her cellphone, asking casually. Bao Jingyuan eximed. She ttered, "Ruanruan, you are so rich!" Su Ruanruan let out a lightugh. She took out a box from her handbag and handed it to Bao Jingyuan. "For your bted birthday gift." Bao Jingyuan opened it carefully. Inside was a purple diamond ne. Su Ruanruan said, "I know you like my bracelet, but purple diamonds are rare! I looked for a long time and only found this." Bao Jingyuan closed the box. She leaned into Su Ruanruans embrace. Gui Zhi teased her, "You just said Ruanruan is younger than you!" Bao Jingyuan didnt mind. She enjoyed Su Ruanruans kindness. She felt incredibly happy. After a long while, she asked softly, "Ruanruan, can I go see my mom?" Su Ruanruan was startled. After a moment, she replied, "Of course you can!" Bao Jingyuan sobbed, "I wanted to go, but I was afraid youd be upset." Su Ruanruan gave a faint smile. She didnt say much! Bao Jingyuan didnt mention it again. ... After dinner, Bao Jingyan came over. Su Ruanruan was sitting on the sofa reading a book. Beautiful, serene. Bao Jingyan, seeing her ignoring him, pulled the medical book from her hands. One look, and he knew it was for Ziqi. He sat down, leaned back on the sofa, and rested with his eyes closed. Su Ruanruan continued reading the medical book. Bao Jingyan had had some red wine, just enough to be slightly tipsy. She didnt speak for a long time. He couldnt resist cracking one eye open, "I heard youre buying Anrans copyright." Su Ruanruan hummed in response. She thought carefully, then understood why he asked. Su Ruanruan put down the medical book. She looked at him seriously, "Zhou Jinhua and I are just business partners, dont overthink!" Bao Jingyanzily smiled. He retorted, "What is there for me to overthink?" Su Ruanruan ignored him. He then loosened his tie, carefully folded it, and set it aside. Then he began unbuttoning his shirt. Su Ruanruan immediately became alert. She asked him, "What are you doing?" Bao Jingyan as a matter of course, "Going to sleep!" Su Ruanruan wouldnt allow it. She asked him to sleep in the guest room. Bao Jingyan reached out and pulled her onto hisp. He still spoke seriously, "The guest room heater isnt good, I caught a cold this morning." He leaned down, their foreheads lightly touching. His tall nose pressed against hers, their breath intertwining. Su Ruanruan couldnt bear this. Yet she couldnt push him away. She looked up at him. And could no longer divert her gaze. A man at 34 undoubtedly in his prime, and he was exceptionally attractive. His eyes and brows, exuding mature charm. Su Ruanruan felt her heart stir, emotions running high. Bao Jingyan knew her too well. He deliberately lowered his voice, "Are you really mad at me? You havent talked to me for days, huh?" Su Ruanruans voice trembled lightly, "You brought it on yourself." He chuckled softly, "Next time someone has their sights on you, Ill just deal with them quickly." Su Ruanruan felt both embarrassed and angry. He was the same as before, always resorting to violence. Extremely barbaric. Her expression, exactly like it used to be. Bao Jingyan intentionally teased her. He took her hand and wrapped it around his neck. With one hand, he pulled her close to embrace. "I wont hit my wife," he murmured lowly, then began to kiss her. Kissing her softly, bit by bit... As emotions deepened, he ultimately couldnt resist kissing her deeply. Su Ruanruan couldnt break free. Bao Jingyan got his wish and stayed the night in her room... Chapter 530: Big Brother Calls Ruanruan Little Well-behaved

Chapter 530: Chapter 530: Big Brother Calls Ruanruan Little Well-behaved

Su Ruanruan was reserved. Before dawn, she woke Bao Jingyan up. She asked him to go to the guest room to sleep. Bao Jingyan said with amusement, "Who doesnt know about our rtionship? Youre just drawing more attention to it!" Su Ruanruan kicked him out. Bao Jingyan had no choice but to put on his clothes. Before he left, he kissed her again. It made her body go weak, and only then did he leave with a low chuckle. Su Ruanruan felt both angry and embarrassed. She closed the door and leaned against it. She didnt sleep again but went to take a hot bath in the bathroom. Above the bathtub was a mirror. The woman in the mirror had a healthy rosyplexion. Alluring and fragrant. She felt so embarrassed that she hurriedly washed up and put on a bathrobe. ... Su Ruanruan had too many things on her mind and would only fool around with Bao Jingyan when they were together. Now she calmed down. While applying her skincare, she pondered over the things she had to do. She was very familiar with Elder Hes health condition. It couldnt be dyed much longer. Right now, she was just waiting for Lu Nansheng to lose his patience! As for Elder Hes surgery, Zhou Zizhuo had already discussed it with her earlier. Su Ruanruan decided to perform the surgery herself. ... She settled her thoughts. The day had fully brightened. Slow sounds started emanating from the vi, as everyone got up early. Su Ruanruan was in a good mood. She wore a floral long dress. And draped a light coat over it. She seemed softer than usual. As she went downstairs, Bao Jingyan was already sitting in the master seat. He drank his ck coffee while flipping through the morning paper. Hearing footsteps, he looked up. His gaze was clear and bright. Su Ruanruan felt somewhat shy as she gracefully walked over and sat beside him. Bao Jingyuan was still going on about copyright matters. But Bao Jingyan asked Su Ruanruan, "Did you sleep well?" Su Ruanruan gave a light hum. Quite demurely. Bao Jingyuan stopped her chatter, confusedly asking her brother, "Didnt you two sleep in the same roomst night, Big Brother, how could you not know if Ruanruan slept well?" The atmosphere was very subtle. Bao Jingyan stuffed a piece of bacon into her mouth saying, "If you cant speak nicely then just eat!" Tears welled up in Bao Jingyuans eyes. Sheined that Big Brother favored Ruanruan the most... She had heard it all at the doorst night. Big Brother calling Ruanruan... baby, sweetie! He was really wicked in his humor! After Bao Jingyuans reveal, Bao Jingyan simply let go in the following days. He stayed in Su Ruanruans room every night. Su Ruanruan, however, refused to engage in further intimacy with him. He understood her bit of reserve. And didnt press the issue. A few dayster, Su Ruanruan, along with Mrs. Sun Jingan and Sun Anran, attended Bai Muyes fan meeting. At night, without the sunlight. Sun Anran still wore a hat, keeping the overhead lights at bay. Her skin was pale and delicate to an unbelievable degree. Like a deer in the forest, ready to bolt at any scare. She really liked Bai Muye. She gave him aic she drew herself. Because it was her birthday, Bai Muye prepared a small cake for her in advance. He also sang a birthday song for her. Anran held Su Ruanruans hand. It was the happiest time in her 18 years... Su Ruanruan felt a bit wistful. The most ordinary of lives, yet in Anrans case, it was precious beyond measure. On the way back, Bao Jingyan came to pick her up. After getting in the car, she was silent. Bao Jingyan held her hand, gently asking her, "Why arent you happy?" Su Ruanruan leaned onto his shoulder along his arm. She asked him softly, "Cant Anrans illness be cured?" Bao Jingyan hummed in response. He said, "Given my uncles status, he must have sought out all the famous doctors." Su Ruanruan didnt ask further. She just leaned against Bao Jingyan, with a touch of coquettishness. The atmosphere inside the car was soft and tender. On the way back, Bao Jingyan suddenly stopped the car by the roadside. Su Ruanruan was puzzled, "Whats wrong?" Bao Jingyan unbuckled his seatbelt and instructed her, "Wait for me in the car." He got out of the car and walked towards a pharmacy. Chapter 531: Yin Zhao Saw SU鈥檚 Postcard

Chapter 531: Chapter 531: Yin Zhao Saw SUs Postcard

About five minutester. He opened the car door and got in. Su Ruanruan was just about to ask. When Bao Jingyan ced a little box onto the center console. Su Ruanruan blushed. He leaned in for a kiss. She didnt resist, only hugged his neck and trembled slightly: "Lets go to your ce..." ... It dawned. Su Ruanruany on her side. Buried in the snowy white pillows, her delicate profile and soft long hair were exposed. The cellphone rang on the nightstand. Bao Jingyan came out of the bathroom. He saw that it was a call from Qin Chao. He casually answered: "This is Bao Jingyan. Ruanruan is still sleeping." Qin Chao stuttered upon hearing his voice. He immediately said: "I have something to discuss with Miss Su." Coincidentally, Su Ruanruan woke up. Bao Jingyan handed her the phone. He went downstairs to make breakfast. Once the bedroom door closed, Su Ruanruan asked softly: "Is there a situation?" Qin Chao nodded. He said: "Last night, Lu Nansheng made a visit! She inspected the ward and even reviewed the patient records of Room 502." Su Ruanruan clutched the duvet. Sheughed coldly: "That must be because her training isnt going well!" So, shes turned her attention to the patient in Room 502 again. What does she want to do? Nothing more than harming someone again and then ying the savior. Su Ruanruans dislike for her had reached its limit. Su Ruanruan was right in her thinking. Lu Nansheng indeed faced a bottleneck. She couldnt solve the postoperative issues. Meaning, if surgery on Elder He was forced at this time. The surgery would definitely fail! Lu Nansheng was somewhat impatient. If she couldnt operate on Elder He, her position in the hospital would be unstable. Another failure. How much disappointment it would bring to Yin Zhao. After a busy night, his face showed some signs of fatigue. He lit a cigarette and said to Lu Nansheng: "Go rest first." Lu Nansheng was reluctant. Stubbornly she said: "Lets try one more time." Yin Zhao flicked his cigarette, urging her to call it a day. Lu Nansheng had no choice but to change out of her surgical scrubs and leave. ... Director Feng pushed the door and entered. Judging by Yin Zhaos expression, he guessed the oue. Director Feng suggested: "How about sending Elder He abroad for treatment? Maybe we can find a surgeon who is capable." Yin Zhao frowned. Irritated, he stubbed out the cigarette: "If so, thats nearly half the prestige of United Hospital gone." But he couldnt ignore Elder Hes life or death. He lit another cigarette: "Lets wait and see." Director Feng sighed softly. He said: "If it wasnt for that ident a few years ago, you would have been fully capable of performing the surgery." Yin Zhao zoned out for a moment. That ident a few years ago... He happened to encounter Su Ruanruan in Jiangcheng. In his hurry chasing after her, he got his hand caught in a car door. No injury, but for a surgeon, it was lethal. Yin Zhao felt there was no need to discuss this; it was his own business. And it was irrelevant to others. He was talking with Director Feng when the assistant came in. She carried arge stack of morning newspapers and magazines. Dumping them onto Yin Zhaos desk. Yin Zhao was displeased. He was about to scold when his gaze froze. A postcard slipped from between the newspapers... He picked it up. The assistant hadnt seen it clearly and quickly said: "It probably belongs to Doctor Su, got mixed with my things by ident." She wanted to take it. But Yin Zhao gripped it tightly. His expression changed. Director Feng also felt something was off and asked: "Is there a problem?" Yin Zhao, suppressing his emotions. In a gentle tone, he said: "Its from Professor Reid to his student SU." Director Fengs bewildered gaze widened. He asked: "Then why was it sent to our hospital?" Yin Zhao looked down at the postcard. He spoke with unusual tenderness: "Because SU is right here at our hospital." Chapter 532: SU, That鈥檚 Su Ruanruan

Chapter 532: Chapter 532: SU, Thats Su Ruanruan

Yin Zhao finished speaking. Director Feng was startled for a moment. Yin Zhao showed him the postcard. Director Feng took a look. Indeed, the sender was Reid. Recipient: SU. Director Feng pped the table vigorously: "Great! The hospital is saved." He suggested to Yin Zhao: "We need to find this SU and have her perform the surgery for Old He." Yin Zhaos gaze was profound. His assistant told Director Feng: "Unless theres a mistake, this postcard belongs to Doctor Su." "Little Su?" Director Feng was surprised. After a moment, he smiled: "This kid really knows how to keep a secret!" Yin Zhao instructed him: "Ill talk to her." Director Feng nodded. He rxedpletely, ready to go back and rest. Yin Zhao sat in the office for a while longer. His assistant was cking off, shopping online for Singles Day deals. At nine in the morning, Yin Zhao got up. He put on his white coat and left. In Old Hes VIP ward, he found Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan was administering a treatment to Old He. She spoke softly with the elderlydy, asionally breaking intoughter. Yin Zhao had witnessed her grow from a girl into a woman. He already liked her, and now because she was SU. His heart grew fonder. He walked in, stood beside Su Ruanruan, and softly asked: "How is it going?" Su Ruanruan put away the needle. She thought carefully before speaking: "It only relieves pain; surgery is still necessary." Yin Zhao looked down at the medicine box in her hand. That was a tool of traditional Chinese medicine. "Have you studied this?" he couldnt help asking her. Su Ruanruan naturally thought of Su Peiming. She wasnt very keen on talking. Yin Zhao wanted to discuss Old Hes condition with her and invited her to his office to talk. Su Ruanruan guessed as much. She followed him to the office. Yin Zhao always gets straight to the point. As soon as he closed the door, he said: "I hope you will perform the surgery for Old He." Su Ruanruan was not surprised. But she still asked, "Why did the director suddenly decide this?" Yin Zhao took out a postcard from a drawer. Slowly, he pushed it towards her. "Because you are SU," Yin Zhao said. Su Ruanruan gave a faint smile: "A name is just a code." Yin Zhaos gaze was intense. He said: "Change into surgical attire, follow me to the training room." Su Ruanruan agreed. ... Two hourster, Yin Zhao let out a breath. It was Su Ruanruans first training. Completion one hundred percent. His gaze carried admiration and affection. Yin Zhaos voice was hoarse as he said: "I have scheduled the surgery for 20 days from now, get ready." Su Ruanruan nodded and left. Yin Zhao made a phone call, reporting to Director Feng. Director Feng pondered for a moment. He said: "Im about to retire, Yin Zhao its time for you to make a decision! Lu Nansheng cant stay!" Yin Zhao naturally understood. Years of friendship. Yin Zhao wanted to give Lu Nansheng a way out. Leaving the hospital was the way to survive. The next mornings meeting. Yin Zhao attended and calmly announced the decision. [Old Hes surgery will be led by Doctor Su.] [The hospital has decided to dismiss the head of surgery, Lu Nansheng!] ... A single stone stirred up a thousand ripples. The hospitals shareholders disagreed. Old Hes surgery was not a trivial matter! How could the newly arrived Doctor Supare with Head Lu? In the meeting room, there were all kinds of discussions. Yin Zhao had expected this. He calmly said: "I will exin to Head Lu." A female voice sounded at the door: "I dont want to." It was Lu Nansheng. She had rushed over from home upon receiving the news. Her eyes pained as she firmly said to Yin Zhao: "I will not resign." Yin Zhao was resolute. He directly told her, it was a dismissal! Lu Nansheng scoffed and looked around. She addressed the shareholders: "I, Lu Nansheng, have performed countless surgeries, am I inferior to a neer?" She stated bluntly: "No one else can perform Old Hes surgery but me." Chapter 533 Yin Zhao鈥檚 Admiration

Chapter 533: Chapter 533 Yin Zhaos Admiration

Director Feng chuckled lightly. He spoke in a gentle tone: "Lu, your training is only at sixty percent!" Lu Nansheng proudly retorted: "Doctor Su probably doesnt even have ten percent, right?" She was unconvinced. The shareholders also followed her line of thought. Yin Zhao picked up the remote and lightly pressed it. On the projector, a simtion training scenario with Su Ruanruan appeared. She was very skilled andposed. Her movements were professional. ... Until the end, theputer issued a prompt. Surgerypletion: one hundred percent. The shareholders were stunned. Lu Nansheng was shocked. She couldnt believe what she saw. One hundred percent... How could Su Ruanruan achieve this? Yin Zhao spoke in an even tone, "Doctor Su is thest student of Dr. Reid." The shareholders were shocked again. Shes Zhou Zizhuos junior sister! They shifted their opinions and were full of praise. Lu Nansheng stood there, extremely embarrassed. Afterward, Yin Zhao had another deep conversation with Lu Nansheng. She still refused to leave! She requested a month to consider. Yin Zhao agreed. Lu Nansheng was distraught. She went to the surgical office, seeking support from her former colleagues. But due to her poor interpersonal rtions, no one paid her any attention. Lu Nansheng clenched her fingers. Su Ruanruan! It was all because of herself that she ended up like this! She must turn things around! She was determined to make Su Ruanruan suffer. Yes, patient number 502. If something goes wrong with him, can Su Ruanruan still operate on Elder He? Lu Nansheng sneered coldly. Su Ruanruan, how can youpete with me? ... Su Ruanruan went to Yin Zhaos office. Yin Zhao asked her to sit down. He handed over all the information regarding Elder He to her. Su Ruanruan sat opposite him, quietly flipping through the material. A junior assistant brought a cup of coffee and gently ced it beside Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan picked it up and took a sip. She looked good drinking coffee. Yin Zhao couldnt help but get lost in thought. He couldnt help but tell her: "Team leader Lu is not leaving for now." Su Ruanruan was not surprised. Thats just Lu Nanshengs character, not crying until she sees the coffin. She slightly smiled: "It seems she has mistaken Dean Yins kindness." Yin Zhaos expression stiffened. He felt somewhat embarrassed. Su Ruanruan saw through everything. Su Ruanruan looked up, speaking softly: "Dean, you might have guessed what she has done; protecting her at this time means your personal ties are deep." Yin Zhaos gaze turned cold. He had no special feelings for Lu Nansheng. But back then, she joined the hospital with him. After all, there were some hard times. Su Ruanruan continued reviewing the materials, saying lightly: "Hopefully, she can appreciate Dean Yins good intentions." Suddenly, Yin Zhao grasped her hand. Su Ruanruan was not flustered. She asked coldly: "What are you doing?" Yin Zhao pressed her: "Is this how you speak to every man who likes you?" In front of Su Ruanruan, he felt defeated! She did not try to please him like other women. Instead, she was strictly professional, which annoyed him! But she was not like this with Bao Jingyan. Even if that man was a scoundrel, she tolerated him. Yin Zhao lost his rationality. Su Ruanruan did not. She gently pulled her hand away, speaking indifferently: "No, because they are not my boss." She felt there was no need to stay. She stood up and took the materials with her. Inside the office, Yin Zhao pounded on the desk. The junior assistant witnessed everything. She quietly opened the "United Hospital Assistant Group" chat. [The Dean just lost his temper!] [It seems like he likes Doctor Su.] [Doctor Su didnt even care about him...emmm] ... The chat exploded. The news spread immediately. In less than an hour, everyone in United Hospital was aware. Chapter 534: Shall We Have Another Child?

Chapter 534: Chapter 534: Shall We Have Another Child?

Su Ruanruan didnt care about these things. She went to Mr. Hes VIP ward. Sun Jingan and his wife were both there. While Sun Jingan was talking to Mr. He, Mrs. Sun kept the olddy entertained. They were just talking about Su Ruanruan when she arrived. Sun Jingan had already heard the whispers. He pretended to be unhappy: "You child, why didnt you say this earlier?" Su Ruanruan feigned ignorance: "Say what earlier?" Sun Jingan was especially affectionate: "That you are a student of Dr. Reid!" He gently patted her shoulder. His admiration was evident, though not overtly expressed. But Su Ruanruan was indifferent. She spoke to Mr. He and his wife: "The surgery is set for 20 days from now, please take good care of your health during these 20 days." Mrs. He was touched. Sheined that Su Ruanruan had kept it too hidden. Su Ruanruan smiled lightly: "Isnt it more of a surprise now?" Mrs. Sun spoke well of her. She told the olddy: "Ruanruan is always prudent in her actions, she doesnt reveal anything without great certainty!" Mrs. He was surprised. She countered: "How would you and your husband know about Doctor Sus temperament?" The atmosphere became subtle. Mrs. Sun looked reproachfully at her husband. She told the truth: "Ruanruan and Jingyan..." Mrs. He had heard about it. She immediately became furious: "How can you me the girl for things from a past life? Besides, hasnt she been beneficial to the Bao Family?" Mrs. He held a high position. She stated with weight: "Regarding this matter, I will make the decisions!" Sun Jingan saw that the situation was getting out of hand. He said: "Its toote! Jingyan already has a child." Fearful of hurting Su Ruanruan, he did not mention the part about marrying the youngdys mother. Upon hearing this, Mrs. He became unhappy: "If thats the case, then I will help Doctor Su look for a good match." She really liked Su Ruanruan. There were plenty of eligible bachelors in City B, who wouldnt be a match for Doctor Su? Back and forth like this. Su Ruanruan was quite troubled! ... When she returned, she talked about it with Bao Jingyan. Bao Jingyan was leaning on the sofa reading a magazine. Upon hearing her, he pretended to be surprised: "With Mrs. He ying matchmaker, arent you happy?" Su Ruanruan kicked him in frustration. Bao Jingyan chuckled. He pulled her close to him, observing her expression carefully. After a moment, he asked her: "Are you angry?" Su Ruanruan answered seriously: "I dont like jokes like this." She suddenly remembered something. She asked him: "Have you been on any blind dates these past few years?" Bao Jingyan smiled lightly: "No." Su Ruanruan felt somewhat relieved. She leaned gently into his arm and softly said: "I wont go either!" Bao Jingyan tugged at her ear: "Showing loyalty so soon? Have I been making you very happytely?" He was being frivolous again. Su Ruanruan refused to respond. After a while, she suddenly said: "I kind of miss Jiaren." Upon mentioning the little one. Bao Jingyans eyes softened. He said: "Lets bring her over after New Years Day!" Su Ruanruan couldnt help but worry. Sheined to him: "Shes also old enough to be in kindergarten." Bao Jingyan whispered reassuringly: "Isnt it fine to have her little mom teach her?" With no one around. He couldnt resist kissing her. Su Ruanruan, like a kitten in his arms, asked softly: "Bao Jingyan, are we still going to have children?" "Of course," he replied without hesitation: "Lets have one or two more." He asked if she was willing to have children. Su Ruanruan was reserved, unwilling to say. But in her heart, she was willing. She wanted to have a little brother or sister for Jiaren. Moved by the moment, Bao Jingyan couldnt wait to get to the upstairs bedroom, pressing her down on the sofa to kiss her... Right in the heat of the moment. Su Ruanruans phone rang. It was Qin Chao calling. Su Ruanruan half sat up. Her face flushed, she kissed Bao Jingyan. Only then did he let her go... Chapter 535 Su Ruanruan Closes the Net, Masterminding Behind the Scenes!

Chapter 535: Chapter 535 Su Ruanruan Closes the Net, Masterminding Behind the Scenes!

Su Ruanruan picked up the phone. Bao Jingyan flipped over to one side. Later, he simply propped up his head and listened to her talk on the phone. Su Ruanruan looked over at him. Her brows and eyes were tender, her gaze seemed to be soaked in the shimmer of light... Bao Jingyan couldnt help but lean over to kiss her. Su Ruanruan covered the mouthpiece and whispered softly, "Stop it." Bao Jingyan stared at her. His gaze was intense, as if he wanted to clearly see every bit of her skin... Su Ruanruan hung up the phone. She said, "Lu Nansheng has made his move on the patient in room 502." Lu Nansheng thought he had seeded. In fact, the patient in room 502 had awakened long ago. He was now lying in the ICU, simply cooperating. The goal was to pull out this bloodworm. Su Ruanruan lowered her eyes: "The hospital will probably be very lively tomorrow." ... She arranged everything properly. Then looked at Bao Jingyan again. He was lying on his side, his noble brow exuding an unhurried air. Su Ruanruan felt very moved. Besides, she had just snubbed him. She was willing to make up for it. Su Ruanruan took the initiative to sit in his embrace... ... Early the next day. Rumors spread in the hospital that the patient in room 502 was not doing well. The patient in room 502 was treated by Su Ruanruan. For a time, everyone questioned Su Ruanruan. Leading them, naturally, was Lu Nansheng. She smiled coldly, "Doctor Su, looks like youll have to exin yourself to Dean Yin this time." She mocked derisively, "Dean Yin values you so much." Su Ruanruan smiled faintly, eyes downcast. Just then, Yin Zhaos assistant came over. She spoke softly, "Doctor Su, Dean Yin is asking you toe to the ICU." Su Ruanruan nodded, "I know, Ill be right there." As she went, Lu Nansheng followed. She wanted to see Su Ruanruan made aughing stock. Then, Yin Zhao would have to rely on her again! In the ICU, only the patient in room 502y quietly. Director Fengs opinion: there was no need for resuscitation! The patients woman was crying piteously. Yin Zhao clenched his fists. He did not expect the situation to turn out like this. Before, the patients vital signs had been very stable! He personally stepped forward to check, and as he touched the patient in room 502, he unexpectedly raised an eyebrow. Yin Zhaos gaze fell on Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan remained calm andposed. Yin Zhao asked ambiguously, "Doctor Su, can you exin?" Su Ruanruan responded vaguely. She said lightly, "I have no good exnation." Yin Zhaos gaze was probing. Before he could speak, Lu Nansheng did. She spoke before many people, with stern and strict words. [This patient was originally mine, but Doctor Su insisted on taking him away!] [Now such a major medical incident has urred, the patients family wont let us off easy!] [With such medical skills, how could she operate on Old He?] ... Lu Nansheng was stirring up trouble! She hoped the patients family would make a big scene. Best case, they would ruin Su Ruanruans reputation! Everyone knew she was settling personal scores, but they couldnt speak up for Su Ruanruan. That the patient in room 502 was dying was a fact! This time, Doctor Su might not be able to get through! The atmosphere was tense. Lu Nansheng was extremely pleased: What about being a student of Dr. Reid? Still a disgraced figure, arent they? She was arrogant. Thinking victory was within her grasp. But Su Ruanruan walked over to the patient in room 502 and gently said, "Thank you for your hard work, you can get up now." Everyone was shocked. Has Su Ruanruan lost her mind? This person was clearly on hisst legs! How could he get up? Pretending to be dead? Lu Nansheng wanted to ridicule more, but then the shocking scene unfolded. The patient in room 502 slowly sat up. He was visibly moved. He said, "Doctor Su, our whole family bows to you! Youve saved my life twice." His woman and child knelt down together. The woman cried inconsbly. She said, "If it werent for Doctor Su, my husbands life would have been lost here!" Chapter 536: Caught in the Net! Qin Chao Turns into a Woman

Chapter 536: Chapter 536: Caught in the Net! Qin Chao Turns into a Woman

This twist. Everyone was shocked. Only Director Feng smiled lightly, as if he had known all along. Yin Zhaos face turned ashen. Although he had suspected earlier, he never expected Lu Nansheng to be so despicable! Seeing such a scene, Lu Nansheng was scared out of her wits. Yet she still forced herself to stay calm and scolded Su Ruanruan, "Doctor Su, do you find it amusing to y us?" Su Ruanruan helped the pitiful family up. Sheforted the woman and child. Then, she turned to face Lu Nansheng. Su Ruanruan gave a coldugh, "That, I should ask Doctor Lu." Lu Nansheng was racked with guilt. She sought Yin Zhaos protection: "Senior, Doctor Su is ndering me." Su Ruanruan smiled faintly. She said, "I havent said anything yet, what is Doctor Lu hastily denying?" She gently raised her hand. A tall and burly nurse stepped forward. She pulled off the wig from her head and the bulging object in front of her. Removing the nurses uniform, Arge man stood revealed. Everyone gasped! How could there be a male nurse in the hospital? And always hidden in the intensive care unit? Was it arranged by Doctor Su? So, every move of Lu Nansheng was under Doctor Sus control? Now, no one dared underestimate Su Ruanruan! The nurse was actually Qin Chao. Qin Chao stared at Lu Nansheng and said coldly, "Last night, Doctor Lu sneaked into the ward and fed this to patient 502!" In Qin Chaos hand was a small pill. Yin Zhao took it. He recognized it of course. Originally a medicine, but if a person with kidney disease ingested it, Their condition would worsen! He looked at Lu Nansheng, his gaze icy. "Does Doctor Lu have any exnation?" Lu Nansheng refused to admit it. She screamed hysterically, "Its Su Ruanruan framing me! This man mixing in with the nurses, harboring ulterior motives!" She said, "Their words cannot be trusted." Su Ruanruan sneered. Her eyes flitted with breaking light. Yan Kuan brought Zhu Xinger over. Zhu Xinger, having been pressured and manipted over these days, had confessed everything. She only pleaded for leniency. She wept to Yin Zhao. She said, "It was Doctor Lu who enticed me, promising me money to work for her!" Lu Nansheng retorted angrily, "Wretch, youre framing me!" Zhu Xinger smiled lightly. She said, "I am already in this state, Doctor Lu, you cannot escape either." Then, she recounted everything that had happened over the years. Yin Zhaos assistant checked with a notebook. After Zhu Xinger finished, the assistant whispered softly, "It all matches." Colleagues from surgery were all sighing. Lu Nansheng was quite a famous doctor; many patients sought her out. Yet unexpectedly, their lives ended in her hands. Lu Nansheng had no defense. She looked at Yin Zhao and suddenly smiled. Her voice very soft: "Yin Zhao, its all your fault! If not because of you, how could I have fallen to this day?" Yin Zhao wouldnt buy this trick. He said coldly, "The mistakes you made yourself! They are unrted to others!" Lu Nanshengughed loudly. Sheughed until tears came out. "My own mistake?" Her voice sharp: "Yin Zhao, you cant imagine the dirty secrets hidden in this hospital..." Her words abruptly stopped. Mrs. Yin came walking elegantly. Her demeanor was noble, her face kind. Even in such an asion, she remained gentle. She said to Yin Zhao, "I heard Doctor Lu was in trouble, so your father and I rushed over." Yin Zhao frowned. Mrs. Yin turned, she said to Lu Nansheng, "Doctor Lu,mitting such a grave offense, how could you not consider your own mother?" Lu Nansheng swallowed back the words on her lips. She stared at the noblewoman in front of her. Her pupils shrank violently. She dared not speak recklessly, for Mrs. Yin appeared kind but was ruthless. If she said one wrong word, Her mother would not survive either. Chapter 537: Su Ruanruan鈥檚 Jealousy Spills Over

Chapter 537: Chapter 537: Su Ruanruans Jealousy Spills Over

Lu Nansheng made no secret of anything. She was taken away! From start to finish, it was all very strange. Wait for the people to leave. The surroundings grew quiet, and Su Ruanruan looked towards Mrs. Yin. She spoke lightly, "With Lu Nanshengs proud temperament, a single word from Madam subdued her." Su Ruanruan candidly expressed her admiration. Mrs. Yin took her hand. She was very affectionate, "Ive known all along that Doctor Lu was no match for you! I wasnt wrong." After she finished speaking, she suddenly spoke again. "Speaking of which, the Yin Family has quite a fate with Miss Su." Su Ruanruan knew she had ill intentions. But she didnt have an outburst. Mrs. Yin said, "Four years ago, when Yin Zhao and his father went to Jiangcheng, they had another purpose." She bluntly revealed, "Back then, when the old Mrs. Bo was ill and passed away, Mr. Sun Jingan favored our Mingzhu. The entire Yin Family went to Jiangcheng, yet unexpectedly, Bao Jingyan had an additional child out of nowhere." The implication of her words was quite profound. A clear provocation! Su Ruanruan casually retorted, "Back then, Yin Mingzhu wasnt willing to be a stepmother. Why is she regretting it now that shes older?" Mrs. Yins face changed color. Su Ruanruan had a sharp tongue. She smiled radiantly, "I dont believe Miss Su doesnt mind?" Su Ruanruan crossed her arms inside her whiteb coat. She lied to Mrs. Yin, "What I mind is the childs mother." As for the 30-year-old woman Yin Mingzhu, naturally, she minded her as well. Bao Jingyan had never mentioned it. At this moment, Su Ruanruan wanted to strip off ayer of his skin! ... Mrs. Yin had ns. In Yin Zhaos office, she said to him, "I know you like her." Yin Zhao didnt deny it. But he didnt show it either. Mrs. Yin bluntly said, "Dont you understand after today? Marrying Su Ruanruan would bring many benefits to our Yin Family! Yin Zhao, her fate with Bao Jingyan is thin, and that olddy from Jiangcheng has a long life ahead!" Sheughed lightly, "One impassable avenue, on the other a splendid bloom. Which would you choose?" She was almost certain. She was already strategizing for the hospitals anniversary celebration. The Yin Family tradition. The opening dance partner is determined by drawing lots. By then, Mrs. Yin would arrange for all the names to be Su Ruanruan. After the dance, spark a scandal and make the hot search. A forced pce-style official announcement! She firmly believed that no matter how strong Su Ruanruan was, she couldnt beat her. In the circle of Fine Ladies of City B, Su Ruanruan hadnt even set foot in yet! She needed her guidance! The thoughts of ady, Yin Zhao didnt want to guess. But in his heart, he yearned for Su Ruanruan. Her demeanor today as shemanded strategy, her calm and collected appearance. Deeply imprinted in his mind. Yin Zhao rarely thought about male-female matters. But ever since his contact with Su Ruanruan, he frequently couldnt restrain himself in the dead of night! ... Su Ruanruan was dissatisfied with Sun Jingan. At five in the evening, she drove to Sun Jingans office. Sun Jingan was writing. The secretary whispered to him, "Miss Su has arrived." Sun Jingan only nced at Su Ruanruan. As he continued writing, he spoke slowly, "I heard you sent that Doctor Lu surname to the big house." He sneered without smiling, "Thats Yin Zhaos junior sister! Arent you afraid of offending him?" Su Ruanruan took a seat leisurely. She took a sip of fragrant tea and spoke, "I have a question!" Sun Jingan put his pen down, "Go ahead." Su Ruanruan asked directly, "Was my current role originally arranged by Mr. Sun for Bao Jingyan?" Sun Jingan chuckled. He didnt deny it, "Figured that out?" Su Ruanruan stayed silent. Sun Jingan shook his head, looking a bit annoyed, "I did have such a n, but how would I know Bao Jingyan would suddenly have an extra child?" He recalled that day and sneered, "He got himself an illegitimate child and still unts it, only an idiot would be with him!" Sun Jingan thought Su Ruanruan was the idiot. He deliberately tested her, "The Yin Family favors you, what do you think?" Su Ruanruans voice was light, "Marrying Yin Zhao and Bao Jingyan marrying Yin Mingzhu is quite convenient, I could still lie with him every night!" Sun Jingan was quite angered. He thought she understood propriety. Yet unexpectedly, she was on the same wavelength as Jingyan. He pointed towards the door and sneered, "Go, go! Just seeing you two irks me!" Su Ruanruan smiled faintly, "Im quite angered too!" She stood up and walked out. Sun Jingan pointed towards the door, his finger trembling slightly. He asked his secretary, "Is she showing me attitude?" Chapter 538: Are you taking your emotional frustration out on me!

Chapter 538: Chapter 538: Are you taking your emotional frustration out on me!

Secretary bowed his head gently, "It seems so." Sun Jingan was furiously livid, "What right does she have to give me attitude? Im the one covering up all those nasty things for her and Jingyan!" The secretary tried to soothe him, "Miss Su has a noble character; she is upset that you took advantage of her feelings." Sun Jingan looked innocent. He hummed lightly, "I even sympathize with the Yin siblings, falling into the hands of these bastards." The secretary soothed him for quite a while. Then he suddenly mentioned, "Actually, Miss Su is an excellent doctor. Why not let her have a look at Anran?" Sun Jingan waved his hand, "I dont want Anrans mother to be disappointed again." After having consulted so many renowned doctors, he was somewhat resigned. As long as Anran was happy. She seemed quite infatuated with someone surnamed Bai recently. ... Yin Mingzhu had her heart set on Bao Jingyan. Upon knowing this, Su Ruanruan did not react. But she refused to visit his vi anymore. Previously, Bao Jingyan was ascetic, but he had recently developed interests. Suddenly cut off, he found it quite unbearable. He stayed over at Su Ruanruans, and she let him into her bedroom. But she refused to be intimate with him. Bao Jingyan understood her, knowing he had offended her. After some inquiries, he med it all on Mrs. Yin. Within three days, the medical market in City B was shaken again. Sun Jingan summoned Bao Jingyan and berated him once more. Bao Jingyan sat on the sofa, smiling lightly. He said, "Uncle, think carefully about what youve done." Sun Jingan scoffed, "Youre taking your romantic frustrations out on me!" Bao Jingyan continued, "I did indeed like Yin Mingzhu initially, but havent you met her?" Bao Jingyans slender fingers held a cigarette that he slowly inhaled. Sun Jingan couldnt bear it and asked him, "You care so much for Su Ruanruan, how dare you marry the mother of a beauty? Arent you afraid she will cut ties with you?" Bao Jingyan gave him a profound look. He said, "I will handle that matter myself." Sun Jingan was disbelieving. Give me a break! I dont believe you at all! Its just baseless rumors now, and that girl is already making a fuss with you! Thinking of making her a mistress, what nonsense! Sun Jingan wanted to add a few more remarks dripping with sarcasm. Bao Jingyans phone rang. It was from Bao Jingyuan. [Big brother, Ruanruans hand is injured.] [We are at the hospital,e quickly.] Bao Jingyan hung up the phone. His expression was tinged with anxiety. Sun Jingan instinctively asked, "What happened?" "Ruanruans hand is injured." Bao Jingyan took the car keys and left. Readplete version only at findnovel Sun Jingan stopped him. He said, "Ill go with you, let the driver take us." Bao Jingyan nced at him. He agreed. Half an hourter, Bao Jingyan and Sun Jingan met Su Ruanruan in the emergency room. Her arm had a cut. Not deep, but about ten centimeters long. Bao Jingyuan and Bao Ziqi were with her. Yin Zhao was also present. There was also a middle-aged woman there. Hands covered in blood. Two uniformed officers were restraining her. That was Lu Nanshengs mother. The woman was still shouting, "All your fault for ruining Nansheng! Im going to fight you to the death." Su Ruanruan wasposed. Bao Jingyan was not. He kicked the woman in the chest. The woman, lying on the ground, took a long time to recover. The officers restraining her were about to react. Sun Jingan gave them a look. Bao Jingyan pointed at the woman on the floor and said, "Your daughters life matters, but others lives are worthless, right?" He asked her, "What about those patients who went bankrupt because of her; their lives, their futures, doesnt Lu Nansheng need to pay a price?" The woman stammered, "My daughter was saving people." "She is a scourge in the medical field!" Bao Jingyans tone was fierce. The woman burst into tears. She refused to believe that her excellent daughter could do such things. Bao Jingyans kick brutally woke her up. Chapter 539: It Doesn鈥檛 Matter How Tough My Life Is; I Accumulate Blessings for My Wife and Daughter

Chapter 539: Chapter 539: It Doesnt Matter How Tough My Life Is; I umte Blessings for My Wife and Daughter

Bao Jingyan didnt bother with her anymore. He felt heartache for Su Ruanruan. He walked over and touched her hair, asking quietly, "Does it hurt a lot?" Su Ruanruan shook her head. She said softly, "Its not too bad." ording to Bao Jingyans temperament, Lu Nanshengs mother was in for a bad fate. But he held himself back. He handed her over to the uniformed officer to take away. Bao Jingyan had things to discuss with Yin Zhao. He instructed his younger siblings, "Take good care of Ruanruan." Bao Jingyuan hummed in acknowledgment. She blew gently on Su Ruanruan. Her silly antics made Su Ruanruanugh. Yet Bao Jingyuans eyes brimmed with tears, and she cried out with a sobbing tone, "Youre stillughing! Second brother and I were terrified!" Then, she began to weep. She didnt care that many people were watching. Sun Jingans gaze was deep. He recognized this pair of siblings; they were Qi Meiyus children. They were so dependent on Ruanruan. ... Yin Zhaos office. Yin Zhao had a headache. Lu Nansheng was a grave offender, but Yin Zhao held some affection for her. Bao Jingyan bowed his head and lit a cigarette. The mist rose. Bao Jingyan said indifferently, "You can hire awyer for her. Whatever the sentence should be, it will be. But dont think about getting her out." Yin Zhao was surprised. He knew somewhat of Bao Jingyans temperament. He wasnt someone who was easy to talk to. He frowned, ready to ask questions. Bao Jingyan spoke first, "Ive been ruthless and tough, and I can handle it. But now I have a wife and daughter, I need to umte blessings for them." Yin Zhao squinted his eyes. He countered, "Doctor Su doesnt seem to be your wife yet!" That childs origins were unclear. She might not be able to ept it. Bao Jingyan couldnt be bothered to exin to him. He returned to the emergency room and took Su Ruanruan along with his siblings away. The driver brought the recreational vehicle. The RV had special features to facilitate Bao Ziqis wheelchair entry. Bao Ziqi was envious. He looked towards Bao Jingyan. Bao Jingyan replied indifferently, "Just ordered it recently, just got it." He personally pushed Bao Ziqi onto the RV. The driver drove the vehicle back to Su Ruanruans vi. Gui Zhi was heartbroken to death. She brought birds nest soup and ginseng. Su Ruanruan reassured her, "Im okay." Gui Zhi feigned anger, "Still saying youre okay! Such a big wound!" She examined it carefully to make sure there was nothing wrong. Gui Zhi added, "Youll have to be more careful in the future!" She scolded Lu Nanshengs mother, speaking very protectively. Bao Jingyan was overwhelmed listening to this! He brought up a bowl of birds nest soup and took Su Ruanruan to the upstairs bedroom. He fed her the birds nest soup, his expression was very gentle. Su Ruanruan sat in hisp somewhat coquettishly. Bao Jingyan pretended to say, "Not avoiding me anymore?" Su Ruanruans gaze was intent. Bao Jingyan knew what she wanted to ask, so he repeated what he had said to Yin Zhao. Su Ruanruan was silent. After a moment, she gently hugged him. She said softly, "Bao Jingyan, its for me, right?" Bao Jingyan pretended to say, "Huh, you know? I thought youd overthink about some Tom, Dick, or Harry again!" Su Ruanruan was both annoyed and amused. She said seriously, "Yin Mingzhu is a socialite, not some Tom, Dick, or Harry!" Bao Jingyan put down the bowl and cup. He pulled her onto hisp. Onerge hand gripped her uninjured slender wrist, pressing, "Im talking about Yin Zhao! Dont think I cant see that guys intentions!" He had already received an invitation from the Yin Family. That evening, thedy of the house was bound to cause trouble. Su Ruanruan smoothed his brow. She said softly, "That night is your birthday." Su Ruanruan yed with the buttons on his shirt, her voice low, "After the banquet ends, well spend the night outside." Bao Jingyan was instantly mollified! He asked her softly, "Really?" ???s ??????? ?s ?????? ?? FindN()vel She demurred, turning her face away. Bao Jingyan held her cheek and kissed her. Still being mindful of her injury, he did not go too far. Chapter 540: Elder He Wishes to Take Su Ruanruan as His Daughter

Chapter 540: Chapter 540: Elder He Wishes to Take Su Ruanruan as His Daughter

Mr. Hes surgery was scheduled for a weekter. Yin Zhao was slightly worried. Fortunately, Su Ruanruan was essentially unscathed. Before the surgery, Su Ruanruan met Mr. Hes only son. He Jitang. years old. A renowned schr and also the president of a certain university in City B. He Jitang signed the consent form for the surgery. After putting down the pen, he gazed at Su Ruanruan. His eyes were profound. He courteously said, "Thank you very much, Doctor Su, for this time." Su Ruanruan didnt treat him any differently because he was from the privileged ss; she indifferently replied, "Its not toote to give thanks after the surgery is sessful." She then turned and left. He Jitangs gaze became even more distant... Mr. Hes surgery was extremelyplicated. It went on for over 6 hours, from beginning to end. The surgical gown on Su Ruanruans back was drenched with sweat. Newest update provided by find[f]ovel The surgery was a great sess. Mr. He was wheeled back to the VIP ward. All her colleagues congratted Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan became famous in one go! The name of United Hospital was polished anew. Yin Zhao was internally thrilled. With restrained emotion, he said, "Congrattions, Doctor Su." Su Ruanruan gave a slight smile. Yin Zhao invited her to his office for coffee. Su Ruanruan declined, saying, "Im going to check on Mr. He!" Yin Zhao was somewhat disappointed. These days, he had been pursuing her subtly. He didnt believe she hadnt felt it, yet she acted as if unaware. ... Su Ruanruan had a shower and changed back into her clothes. She made a trip to the VIP ward. Mr. He hadnt woken up; his wife was by his side. He Jitang had already left. Mrs. He sighed softly, "Jitang doesnt have a good rtionship with his father!" Su Ruanruan didnt pry into others private matters. Taking her as one of her own, Mrs. He said, "Back then, Jitang defied his father over a woman. He did marry her, but in the end, didnt that woman desert her husband and child?" Su Ruanruan had seen He Jitang. He truly was a person of radiance and grace. She was surprised C such a man could be abandoned? Mrs. He didnt continue, and Su Ruanruan didnt ask. Mr. Hes condition wasplex; Su Ruanruan stayed in the hospital for the night. Mrs. He was deeply moved. She quietly discussed with Mr. He. "Doctor Su is capable and outstanding, but she always seems tock some foundation in City B. I think shell suffer for it sooner orter." Mr. He nced at his wife. He asked, "What do you want to do?" Mrs. He huffed, "Dont y dumb! Such a good child, if we could bring her into our family, who wouldnt be envious of us?" Mr. He did not immediately agree. Mrs. He became unhappy. She said, "Shes currently with Bao Jingyan, and look at how much shes suffering? He family people, if you dont feel for the child, I do." Mrs. He came from a prestigious family. She said forcefully, "I dont care! I want to take her in." Mr. He lifted his eyelids, "What mischief are you nning now?" Mrs. He scoffed coldly and said, "Once she bes my daughter, she will be above others! Sun Jingan is stubborn now, but when the timees, Ill have the Sun Familys men lined up for my daughter to choose from." Mr. He rested his hands behind his head. Mrs. He then made another bold statement. She said, "Have you seen Bao Jingyans child? You dont know how adorable she is. If we take in Ruanruan and she wins over Bao Jingyan, wouldnt that child be like our own granddaughter?" Mr. He was tempted! Su Ruanruan waspletely unaware of Mrs. Hes ns. The next morning. City Bs major media outlets began to spread the news about a goddess doctor from United Hospital. "Zhou Zizhuos Junior Sister" "Reids Disciple" "The Yin Familys Rising Star" These were Su Ruanruans new titles! Su Ruanruan didnt care for these; what she wanted was to truly prate the Yin Familys inner circle. She wanted to strip away the facade of Mrs. Yin! Chapter 541: Playing Tricks with Su Ruanruan, Courting Death!

Chapter 541: Chapter 541: ying Tricks with Su Ruanruan, Courting Death!

Two days passed. Madame Gu headed north. Not only did shee herself, but she also brought Mrs. Gu Ze. Su Ruanruan had not seen them for a long time and missed them terribly. Bao Jingyuan also knew how to please others. In front and behind the scenes, she was especially sweet-talking around Mrs. Gu. Madame Gu hadnt liked her in the past, but this time she felt quite impressed. When alone, Madame Gu quietly asked, "Has Jingyuan not been dating anyone?" Su Ruanruan was having tea with her mother. She nodded slightly, speaking softly, "Jingyuan is now fully devoted to her career." Madame Gu let it be. She said, "Song Wei called, said youre going to attend the Yin Familys banquet!" Su Ruanruan smiled faintly, "Indeed, Ive been invited by Mrs. Yin." Her beautiful eyes twinkled with wisdom, "She definitely has ns to use me. There will be some tricks at the banquet." Madame Gu brought another piece of news. Yin Mingzhu has returned to the country, and she will also attend the banquet! Mrs. Gu Ze was worried that Su Ruanruan wouldnt be able to cope. Su Ruanruan just smiled lightly, "I would actually be worried if she didnte!" Mrs. Gu trusted her daughter. She patted her hand, saying, "You just enjoy yourself, leave other matters to me." ... Yin Mansion. Autumn was thick, and the courtyard was deep. Inside the luxurious hall, severalrge trunks were scattered. Miss Yin, Yin Mingzhu, had returned to the country. Yin Zhao personally weed her. At this moment, Mrs. Yin was holding her stepdaughters hand, speaking heartfelt words. Mrs. Yin had two ns in mind. On one hand, she wanted to win over Su Ruanruan. On the other hand, she wanted to use Yin Mingzhu to pressure Su Ruanruan. Yin Mingzhu was the number one socialite of B city. In a confrontation with Su Ruanruan, she was sure to lose! Mrs. Yin took Yin Mingzhu to rest. Once she was well-rested and radiant, Mrs. Yin apanied her to a well-known salon in B city. When selecting a dress. Mrs. Yin was very attentive. She wanted her stepdaughter to outshine everyone, including Su Ruanruan. Yin Mingzhu was born beautiful and alluring, and was also a cellist. She usually maintained her dignity. Seeing Mrs. Yin putting on such a disy, she smiled nonchntly, "Aunt Qin, what kind of person deserves such attention from you?" Mrs. Yin then mentioned Su Ruanruan. She said, "Although she is liked by your brother, Mingzhu, you must not let her overshadow you." Su Ruanruan? Yin Mingzhu recalled the past. She had countless admirers, yet the only one she lost to was Bao Jingyan. That man didnt even spare her a nce. The Yin Family intended a marriage alliance, yet he ended up having a child with someone else. Yin Mingzhu felt insulted! Deep down, Yin Mingzhu was not pleased. She wanted to regain her honor. She wanted Bao Jingyan to realize that she, Yin Mingzhu, was a thousand times better than Su Ruanruan. From then on, Yin Mingzhu started to take things seriously. Mrs. Yin used her connections to bring in several off-season designer pieces. Yet Yin Mingzhu still felt something was missing! At that moment, she saw a dress hanging inside a ss showcase. A pale blue strapless long dress. The hem was light as feathers. Exquisitely romantic. The manager, noticing her gaze,plimented, "Miss Yin has great taste! This DIOR replica dress is a full-handmade custom piece, taking 722 hours to make, its invaluable." Yin Mingzhu smiled. She said, "I want it!" The manager looked troubled. He hesitated before saying, "This dress isnt part of our stores inventory, its being stored here for a distinguisheddy." Yin Mingzhu was used to pride. She told the manager, "Call her and say I want the dress, no matter the cost." Believing her celebrity status would sway them, she added, "Mention my name, and surely thisdy will agree." Mrs. Yin smiled. She felt Yin Mingzhu had great style. The manager forced a smile. After making the call and speaking to thedy, once the manager hung up, Yin Mingzhu smiled faintly, "How much does she want for it?" The manager apologized, "Im truly sorry, Miss Yin! Its custom-made for her daughter, and she said no amount of money would persuade her to part with it." Checktest chapters at FindN()vel Yin Mingzhu sat on the sofa. She tasted her British tea, inquiring as if casually, "Did you mention my name?" The manager smiled. Yin Mingzhu became slightly annoyed. She contemted: Someone actually didnt take her seriously. She really liked the dress. But her status didnt allow her to wear a knockoff. In the end, she chose a white gown. Elegantly grand. Yin Mingzhu was confident this dress would be enough to outshine Su Ruanruan. She didnt take Su Ruanruan seriously at all C those hailing from Jiangcheng were simply inferior! Chapter 542: All Are Thousand-Year-Old Foxes, What鈥檚 the Point of Pretending to Be Supernatural

Chapter 542: Chapter 542: All Are Thousand-Year-Old Foxes, Whats the Point of Pretending to Be Supernatural

Street corner cafe. Mrs. Gu, Chen Anan, and Su Ruanruan were sitting and chatting. Chen Anan was three months pregnant. Mrs. Gu took great care of her and ordered a juice for her. After chatting for a while, the conversation turned to the family business. Mrs. Gu took a passbook out of her handbag. She pushed it to Su Ruanruan. She said, "Your father and Gu Ze will handle thepany shares, this is my own cash! You and Anan both get 5 billion." Su Ruanruan was surprised. She refused to ept it. Mrs. Gu gave her a stern look: "If you dont take it, how can Anan dare to ept?" She patted her daughters hand back: "Take it with peace of mind!" Chen Anan smiled: "Mom said, you cant do without money in City B! Ruanruan, you must not refuse." Su Ruanruan then epted it. Mrs. Gu also mentioned that Gu Ze was nning to expand the business to City B. Su Ruanruan actually had some connections. ... The three women were conversing lively. Mrs. Yin and Yin Mingzhu, having picked their dresses, also came over for coffee. They bumped into each other, creating a delicate atmosphere. Readplete version only at FindN()vel Mrs. Yin smiled and approached. She introduced everyone. Holding her status, Yin Mingzhu did not shake hands with Su Ruanruan. She only said, "Ive long heard of Miss Sus renown!" The remark was not friendly. Su Ruanruan smiled slightly: "I have also heard of Miss Yin from Mr. Sun Jingan." Su Ruanruan, even less friendly! Yin Mingzhu was displeased. Mrs. Yin only smiled, finding these merely childs y. They sat at the same table. To showcase her taste, Mrs. Yin ordered two Blue Mountain coffees. After ordering, she looked surprisingly at Mrs. Gu. "Young Mrs. Gu, why are you drinking juice?" Chen Anan smiled lightly, "Im not suited for coffee!" Mrs. Gu beamed and picked up the conversation: "Anan is pregnant!" She said intimately to Mrs. Yin: "Youve never been a mother, you might not notice these things!" Mrs. Yin looked stiff. She haughtily said, "A womans value is not reflected in childbearing!" Mrs. Gu sipped her coffee. She said, "Just like Anan and I, we have no great ambitions! We dont meddle in mens business; we just think about drinking tea, ying cards, or perhaps shopping." Sheplimented Mrs. Yin: "Not as hard-working as you." Mrs. Yin restrainedly smiled. She held a grudge against Mrs. Gu, wanting to embarrass her. So, she invited Mrs. Gu for tea and cards. Mrs. Gu dly agreed. ... Yin Mingzhu grew impatient. She haughtily said she wanted to leave. Mrs. Yin indulged her and got up to leave. Just then, Bao Jingyan and Gu Ze came to pick them up. Deep blue shirt, grey trousers. Wearing a dark blue overcoat. Handsome and mature. Yin Mingzhu regretted a bit. She called out very reservedly: "Bao Jingyan!" Bao Jingyan actually knew her. But he pretended not to recognize her. Instead, he asked Su Ruanruan, "Ruanruan, is this your colleague?" Su Ruanruan knew him best. He was acting, and she yed along. Su Ruanruan introduced earnestly, "This is Dean Yins sister, Yin Mingzhu." Bao Jingyan nodded. Then, there was no follow-up. Yin Mingzhu felt disappointed. But she wasnt discouraged; instead, she felt all men who knew her couldnt resist her charm. She skipped Su Ruanruan and directly invited Bao Jingyan. "Theres a dinner at the Yin family, I wonder if President Bao has time?" This offer was hard to refuse. A slight misstep could lead to a faux pas. Yin Mingzhu was showing off to Su Ruanruan! Shes the honored daughter of the Yin family, an artist. Bao Jingyan wouldnt embarrass himself! Su Ruanruan was not angry, nor did she intervene. She elegantly picked up her porcin cup, sipping coffee. She let Bao Jingyan deal with the outside woman himself! Chapter 543: Gu Ze, Is It Her Call?

Chapter 543: Chapter 543: Gu Ze, Is It Her Call?

This little trick, how could it trap Bao Jingyan? He doesnt refuse, nor does he ept the invitation. He turned to Mrs. Gu, saying, "Mom, please go ahead with Anan and Gu Ze! Ruanruan and I have something to deal with." Mrs. Gus face was full of smiles. She left with her son and daughter-inw. Yin Mingzhus face stiffened. She didnt expect Bao Jingyan to embarrass her like this. She was left with no recourse. Bao Jingyan took the opportunity to conclude, "I have already received Dean Yins invitation, thank you Miss Yin for your invitation again." With that, he gently supported Su Ruanruans waist. And left directly. Yin Mingzhu couldnt believe it. She asked Mrs. Yin, "Can he... not see me?" Mrs. Yin softlyughed, "Men are all the same; once they have it, its no longer fresh!" Yin Mingzhu felt jealous again. She had just closely observed Su Ruanruan. Extremely beautiful. And shes only 24, six years younger than herself. Mrs. Yin didnt feel defeated, she said, "Once they hit a wall in City B, theyll know the benefits of turning to the Yin Family!" She reminded her stepdaughter, "Mingzhu, Madam He loves you very much, Sun Jingan has also always thought highly of you." She said haughtily, "With this support, what do you have to be afraid of?" Yin Mingzhu lowered her eyes. After a moment, she said, "Yes, I am his best choice!" Moreover, she believed on the day of the banquet. She would be much more dazzling than Su Ruanruan. Any man would know how to choose! ?? ??? ???? ?? ???? ???? ???????s, ????s? ??s?? f?ndnovel ... On the other side, Mrs. Gu did not ride in her sons car. She asked the driver to pick her up. Gu Ze then took Chen Anan to stay in a hotel. While driving, he held Chen Anans hand. Chen Anan had been with him for several years, yet her face still heated up. She softly said, "Gu Ze, focus on driving." Gu Ze let go of her and focused on the road ahead, but still spoke to her, "Its been three months, right?" Chen Anan nodded. Gu Ze lightly coughed. His voice suddenly hoarse, "Ive asked the doctor, after three months its possible..." Chen Anan blushed profusely. But she couldnt bear to refuse him. After she got pregnant, they had only been intimate on their wedding night. Counting it up, they had both been abstinent for two months. How could they not desire? Half an hourter, Gu Ze drove to a five-star hotel. The secretary had booked a presidential suite long ago. The spouses, who had not been intimate for a long while, pleasured each other with the nightlight on. Just as they were lost in passion, Gu Zes phone rang. Gu Ze nced at the caller ID. He expressionlessly pressed the phone off. "Continue." He came back to her again. Chen Anan had thoughts on her mind. She nuzzled lightly against his shoulder, whispering, "It was her who called, wasnt it?" Who she was, both of them knew clearly. Over the years, when Bao Jingse got drunk, she used to call Gu Ze. Initially, Gu Ze would asionally answer. Later on, he just didnt care anymore. Gu Ze pressed his forehead against hers, his breath slightly unstable, "Does it make you ufortable?" Chen Anan didnt speak. She had always been a good-tempered woman, even if she cared about Bao Jingse she never spoke unpleasantly. Gu Zes long palms slid down. He gently stroked her lower abdomen. There, was their shared little life fermenting. Gu Ze reached out. The phonended in his hand, he pulled up Bao Jingses number. Permanently blocked. After finishing, he raised his eyes, his dark pupils intensely staring at his wife. A bit fiery. Chen Anan lightly bit her red lip, "Gu Ze, I didnt mean that!" "I meant it!" Gu Ze quickly replied. His high nose pressed against the side of her face, his breath mingling with hers. His voice raspy and whispery, "Anan, we cant wait for our child to grow up and ask directly who Auntie calling was, right?" He was always authoritative. What he said, wasw! Chen Anan trembled in his arms. Afterward, no one spoke again. They wrapped in each others arms, kissing tenderly... Chapter 544: Ruanruan, Let鈥檚 Stay Like this For a Lifetime

Chapter 544: Chapter 544: Ruanruan, Lets Stay Like this For a Lifetime

Later, the bar owner found Bao Jingyan. Gu Ze didnt care. But Bao Jingyan had to. He parked his car at the entrance of the bar. As he unbuckled his seatbelt, he said to Su Ruanruan, "Wait for me in the car!" He was worried she might feel ufortable. Su Ruanruan didnt offer help proactively or pretend to be generous. She nodded, obediently. Bao Jingyan entered the bar. About ten minutester, he brought out Bao Jingse. Her driver had already arrived, with the car parked at the door. Bao Jingyan opened the car door, trying to get her inside. Bao Jingse was heavily drunk. But when she opened her eyes, she saw Su Ruanruan in another white Bentley. She violently broke free from Bao Jingyan and stumbled towards that car. The car door opened. Su Ruanruan was surprised, but not panicked. She smiled, "Jingse." Polite, distant. Like a distant rtive. Bao Jingse took a step back. The tip of her nose was red, and her eyes were moist as if she had cried. She called out, "Ruanruan." Su Ruanruan didnt get out of the car. She calmly said, "Youve drunk too much." "Yes!" Bao Jingse pressed her hand against her forehead: "Ive drunk a lot! Ive had a lot of alcohol!" Bao Jingyan came over. He called her name sternly, "Bao Jingse!" Bao Jingse smiled with a lost expression, "Big brother, can I finish what I want to say, okay? Dont worry, I wont bully her, and I cant bully her anyway!" Her gaze shifted to Su Ruanruan. She spoke softly, "Look, youre still the same! Alwaysposed, never embarrassing like me! After all these years, big brother only has you in his heart, dad values you, Ziqi, Jingyuan, they all respect you... and me, Ive lost everything! Ruanruan, sometimes I hate why my illness doesnt recur. If it did, would dad ask you to treat me, and then I could stick by you for life, never getting better like Ziqi!" Tears formed in the corners of Bao Jingses eyes. All these years, she had been longing for Su Ruanruan to return. But when Su Ruanruan did return, she realized they could never go back. Su Ruanruans attitude toward her was neither loving nor hateful. This made Bao Jingse even more distressed! Su Ruanruan smiled faintly. She sighed, "Jingse, youve simply never seen me in a mess!" Its just that she loved Bao Jingyan. She wouldnt allow herself to be self-deprecating. Original content can be found at ?ovelFind That was all. Su Ruanruan told Bao Jingyan, "Take her home! Ill drive myself back!" Bao Jingyan refused. He stuffed Bao Jingse into the back seat of the car and had the driver take her away! When he returned, his shirt was wrinkled. There was a smell of alcohol on him. Bao Jingyan was in a bad mood. He leaned against the seatback, eyes closed, resting. Su Ruanruan grasped his hand, "Is it difficult for you?" "No!" Bao Jingyan opened his eyes and said quietly, "These past few years, dad hasnt treated her as well as before." He turned to her and touched her cheek, "Eventually, its because shes heartless!" Su Ruanruan refrained frommenting. Bao Jingyan then asked her softly, "Ruanruan, why can you ept Jingyuan and Ziqi?" Su Ruanruan leaned back in her chair, too. Their eyes met, fingers intertwined. Filled with affection. She said, "Compared with hatred, whates after is more important." She moved a bit closer, leaning against his neck. Su Ruanruans voice was soft, "If I can forgive you, Bao Jingyan, what else cant I let go of?" Bao Jingyan remained silent. She clung to him, and he rested against her. After a long time, he said softly, "Ruanruan, can we stay like this for a lifetime, is that okay?" She hummed lightly in agreement. He continued, "Those unrted people, dont worry about them." She hummed again. Obedientlypliant. He kissed her forehead, "Shall I take you to see your birthday present?" In a soft voice, Su Ruanruan said, "Its your birthday, why are you giving me a present?" Bao Jingyan fastened her seatbelt for her. He said, "Youll know once we get there." Chapter 545: I鈥檒l Supply You

Chapter 545: Chapter 545: Ill Supply You

Deep into the night. Bao Jingyans car stopped in front of a vi. The vi was simr inyout to the Bao Mansion in Jiangcheng. The ck carved gate opened, and Bao Jingyan drove in. The car passed a musical fountain and stopped. Su Ruanruan opened the car door, looking around at everything. She was surprised, "Bao Jingyan, when did you buy this?" Bao Jingyan walked over and encircled her slim waist. Together, they gazed at the main house. He said, "I developed this area; this building was reserved early on, and just recently had the elevator installed." Su Ruanruan excitedly asked, "Will Ziqi and Jingyuan be living with us?" Bao Jingyan smiled, "Old Zhao and his wife, Aunt Li, Gui Zhi are alsoing! They will all take care of the little beauty together." Su Ruanruan realized he was giving her a home. Her heart was pleased. But she kept a reserved expression on her face. Bao Jingyan said in a husky voice, "Lets go inside and have a look." Su Ruanruan nodded. Bao Jingyan turned on all the lights, and the interior decoration also greatly pleased Su Ruanruan. She looked around everywhere. Finally, they toured the master bedroom on the third floor. The bedroom had tworge terraces. One facing south, the other north. Su Ruanruan liked it very much. Bao Jingyan held her from behind and brushed aside her long hair. He said softly, "How about spending the night here on your birthday?" Su Ruanruan was very moved. Bao Jingyan whispered again, "That night was too hurried, let me make it up to you." Before Su Ruanruan could say anything, he turned her face towards him. A gentle kiss. Their breaths mingled, both deeply moved. After kissing for a long time, Bao Jingyan still controlled himself. He softly coaxed her, "Ruanruan, hold on a bit longer." Su Ruanruan felt both angry and embarrassed. It was clearly him... * Early in the morning, Su Ruanruan woke up on the sofa. She was lying in Bao Jingyans arms. A wool nket on her body had slid down to her waist. Bao Jingyan was still asleep. He was lying t, one hand behind his head and the other hooked around Su Ruanruans waist. Because it was the weekend, they were not in a hurry to get up. Su Ruanruan looked up at him. His facial features were handsome, and there was a scent of tobo on him. It made her blush. Su Ruanruan pressed her cheek against his chest. She quietly hugged his waist. Very coquettish. Bao Jingyans hoarse voice sounded, "Miss Su, are you this infatuated with me?" He lowered his head, gazing at her. His dark eyes brimming with tenderness. Su Ruanruan moved up a bit and passionately kissed him... After kissing for a while. She talked with him, "My brother is nning to develop in City B, and Anan ising too." Bao Jingyan hummed, "I heard from Gu Ze." Su Ruanruan said, "Anan is pregnant, so I n to let them live in the vi I currently reside in; it has an elevator installed, which is convenient for Anan." Read full story at FindN0vel Bao Jingyan looked at her. When Su Ruanruan felt bashful under his gaze, he finally said, "Actually, you just want to live together with me, right?" Su Ruanruan hated him for this. He always liked to speak out the little things in her heart. She sat up, her fingers brushing her long hair. Very proper and reserved. Bao Jingyan from behind grasped her slender shoulders and chuckled, "Angry?" He coaxed her, "Still like when you were little, getting angry at every turn?" Su Ruanruan felt even more embarrassed. But he found her bashful look extremely beautiful... ... They spent the morning together. In the afternoon, Su Ruanruan went to the hospital to visit Mr. He. Everything was normal with Mr. He, so she felt relieved. Old Mrs. He, seeing her, was happy, saying, "Qin Su came over this morning, saying she wanted to invite your mother for tea?" Su Ruanruan nodded. Old Mrs. He then said, "When Mr. Hes health improves, we should meet her as well." Su Ruanruan knew the proprieties. She immediately said, "It should be my mother who visits you." Old Mrs. He smiled, her eyes squinting. Su Ruanruan went back and talked to Mrs. Gu. Mrs. Gu was astute. She inferred the intentions and also very much admired this Mrs. He. But having not met her yet, it would be rude to visit her in the hospital abruptly. So, Mrs. Gu prepared valuable health supplements. She had someone send them to the hospital. Old Mrs. He appreciated the gesture. She said to Mr. He in the hospital bed, "Look at their propriety! No wonder they could raise such a wonderful person like Ruanruan!" She also said, "Mrs. Yin came in the morning, but she just wanted me to help Mingzhu a bit." Old Mrs. He smiled faintly, "Mingzhu is excellent, but Ruanruan is your actual lifesaver!" Meanwhile, Yin Mingzhu had returned. She didnt even visit the hospital! Old Mrs. He has a scale in her heart! Chapter 546: Madam Gu Presents Tea Ceremony

Chapter 546: Chapter 546: Madam Gu Presents Tea Ceremony

Su Ruanruan emerged from the VIP ward. She encountered Yin Zhao. He gazed at her whiteb coat and asked, "Youre off today, why did youe over?" Su Ruanruan kept work and private life separate. She replied with a light smile, "I came to see Mr. He; Ill be leaving now." Yin Zhao heard about it from Yin Mingzhu. He suggested, "Going to Aunt Qins ce for tea? Let me give you a ride!" Su Ruanruan shook her head, whispering, "Im going with my mother." Yin Zhao didnt quite understand the strife among the societydies. He only watched her. Su Ruanruan did not linger; she left straight away. She proceeded to the hotel where Madam Gu was staying and briefed her on the vis matter. Madam Gu happily agreed. By three in the afternoon. They were invited for tea at Mrs. Yins mansion. Mrs. Sun Jingan was also there. Besides, there were several other well-knowndies from the social circles. The doorkeeper opened the door. Inside, romantic piano music filled the room. It was Mrs. Yin ying the piano. Madam Gu apuded, "I never expected Mrs. Yin to possess such great talent." Others offered theirpliments as well. But Mrs. Sun Jingan, sitting and sipping tea, told Madam Gu, "Dont praise her too much, or shell get too cocky!" She, with her esteemed status, personally stood up to introduce Madam Gu. Which was much more face-saving than Mrs. Yins introduction. Madam Gu was beautiful and noble, dressed in exceptional garments. Her demeanor was extremely refined. Moreover, upon introduction, she was known to be Miss Sus mother. Miss Su had recently performed surgery on Mr. He, gaining tremendous fame. At that moment, no one dared to underestimate her. ... Mrs. Yin stood up. She sneered. Enjoy your pride while itsts; youll be humiliated soon. Servants brought the afternoon tea, cing it on a tall tea table. Mrs. Yin beamed with a smile. She announced, "The afternoon tea is served!" It was directed at Madam Gu. Now, if this unsophisticated woman took a seat at the tea table. She would immediately lose her status. In the B city circle of socialites, she would no longer have a ce to stand. Madam Gu gently fanned herself. She smiled faintly. Without a hint of agitation or moving an inch. Mrs. Yin was shocked. This woman didnt fall for the trap! Of course, Madam Gu wouldnt be tricked. She quietly instructed her daughter, "British nobles sit at low tea tables for afternoon tea; these tall tables are for servants to rest their feet! If I had sat down just now, I wouldve be aughing stock!" Su Ruanruan gave a soft nod. Indeed, the mansions servants were now seated there having tea. Mrs. Yins n had failed. She was slightly annoyed! She led thedies to the low tea tables to drink tea. Intending to once again embroil Madam Gu in difficulty. ?????? ???? FindNovel But Madam Gu was impable in every aspect and couldnt be faulted. On the contrary, Madam Gu shared stories of her time at Oxford University with a smile, then casually mentioned, "I wonder which university Mrs. Yin attended for her studies?" Mrs. Yin forced a smile, "It was a domestic university." Madam Gu just smiled without ament. The bystanders could see. Thisdy ranked very high, likely above Mrs. Yin. Today, Mrs. Yin invited them here to iste this Madam Gu. But Madam Gu was Miss Sus mother. Miss Su was highly sought-after. Some of their men had cursed Bao Jingyan that evening in the club. Miss Su had extricated them. They owed her that favor. So in their speech and behavior, they did not treat Madam Gu coldly. Mrs. Yin lost her advantage. But she remainedposed, saying with a smile, "I wonder if Madam Gu would be interested in ying a few rounds of cards?" "Why not?" Madam Gu was very gracious. Mrs. Yin thought she was skilled at cards. Desirous of winning others money, she would offend people! Little did she know, Madam Gu purposely lost round after round. Eight games in, she was down about five to six million. She didnt seem to mind; her grandeur was undiminished. The societydies all liked to associate with her. At this moment, Madam Gu had gifts brought out. She said, "Its my first time meeting everyone, so here are some humble presents." Box by box was opened. To everyones surprise, they were all exquisite jewels. Chapter 547: Awesome! Qin Su Has Met Her Match!

Chapter 547: Chapter 547: Awesome! Qin Su Has Met Her Match!

Mrs. Gus beautiful eyes swept over the crowd and she said, "My Ruanruan has received everyones care! This is a token of my gratitude to you all." Everyone was amazed! This noblewoman is indeed generous! They were eager to form an association and did not decline. For others, it was all nes. But what was given to Mrs. Yin was a pair of ruby stud earrings. Those rubies, crimson like blood. Extremely precious. Mrs. Gu took out the earrings with a smile, "Mrs. Yin is beautiful, and these suit you better than anyone else." She appeared very humble. She said to Mrs. Yin, "Let me put them on for you." Mrs. Yin nodded reservedly. She thought to herself: This woman is finally bowing down to me. Mrs. Sun Jingan watched, her eyes clear. She thought to herself: Qin Su has met her match! Indeed, Mrs. Gu removed Mrs. Yins original earrings. She took out the pair of rubies from the box. The posts were very thick | strong. Three times thicker than ordinary posts. Mrs. Yin was shocked when she saw them. But she couldnt lose herposure, barely managing a smile, "Ill wear them another day." Mrs. Gu pressed her shoulder with one hand. Her eyes burning intensely, "Theyre already out, why not give them a try?" A mother, her hand was very strong. Mrs. Yin, slender in stature, could not break free. The other noblewomen were frightened, their faces turning pale. They wanted to speak. Mrs. Gu smiled and spoke, "These earrings have a story, would Mrs. Yin like to hear it?" Mrs. Yin, angry and scared, "I dont want to hear it." Mrs. Sun Jingan took a sip of tea calmly and with poise. She smiled, "I always love hearing stories." Mrs. Gu moderated her expression, she said, "Long ago, there was a noblewoman who had just had a daughter, whom she treasured like a precious jewel! On the day of the childs birth, her husband gave her a pair of ruby earrings." Mrs. Yins body trembled. She struggled to maintain herposure and not lose itpletely. Mrs. Gu continued, "The woman wore these earrings, and the infant also loved to gaze at them." Her tone shifted, "But just a few dayster, the infant was stolen! The woman cried every day, the tears mixed with blood and the pigeons blood rubies turned even redder..." At this point, several noblewomen had teary eyes. [So tragic!] [Who could have imagined such a heartbreaking story!] [I wonder who could be so cruel as to tear a mother from her daughter!] ... Mrs. Gu smiled lightly. Her eyes and eyebrows softened, "Later, the infant was found." She said, "I give these earrings to Mrs. Yin, hoping she too can have the same good fortune." Mrs. Gu applied force with her hand. The earring forcefully pierced into Mrs. Yins earlobe. Crimson blood trickled down her fair, delicate flesh. A horrifying sight! Mrs. Gu eximed, "Oh dear, my apologies, that was careless of me." She removed the earrings, her tone indifferent, "It seems, Mrs. Yin does not suit these earrings." Mrs. Yin trembled with anger. Was this a deliberate insinuation? But she could not ask. If she asked, she would be under suspicion. She covered her bleeding ear and proudly said, "I must take my leave." Mrs. Gu nodded slightly. She bid goodbye to Su Ruanruan. Seeing Mrs. Gus elegance for the first time, Ruanruan felt admiration. Mrs. Gu gently stroked her cheek. She clenched her teeth, "Sooner orter, Ill strip the hide off this witch!" Just then, Mrs. Sun Jingan came over. She praised, "I knew Mrs. Gu was clever, but only today did I see it for myself." Mrs. Gu was very perceptive. This content belongs to Find1Novel Knowing Mrs. Sun Jingan was courting her. Sweeping away her earlier ferocity, she yfully said, "I wonder if Mrs. Sun has the time for a cup of coffee?" Mrs. Sun Jingan linked her arm, speaking softly, "For you, theres always time." Chapter 548: With such a grand invitation, how could I not go?

Chapter 548: Chapter 548: With such a grand invitation, how could I not go?

Su Ruanruan had not gone for coffee with Mrs. Gu and Mrs. Sun Jingan. She made a trip to Zuichunzhao. A stylish office. Su Ruanruan sat there sipping tea. Yan Kuan brought two pretty youngdies over. These youngdies were well-trained. They respectfully addressed her as "Miss Su." Su Ruanruan put down her tea cup, and with a slight smile said, "Youve had a hard time this time." The two handed her a slip of paper. Su Ruanruan opened it. On a white background, ck letters. It read "Doctor Su Ruanruan" in five characters. One of the youngdies was very articte. She said, "On the day of the Yin Familys annual meeting, each slip for the opening dance will have Miss Sus name on it." She paused, "At that time, Miss Su is to dance with Young Master Yin. Its said Mrs. Yin has already prepared the draft, just waiting to be released." Su Ruanruan casually asked a question. For original chapters go to ?ovelFind The youngdy cautiously said, "Something like Secrets of a Cindere Entering the Wealthy n! Anyway, it will definitely trend that day." Su Ruanruan was both amused and annoyed. Yan Kuan, a crude man. He had already started cursing, "Does this woman have something wrong with her brain! On one hand, she hopes someone else marries into the Yin Family, while on the other she wants to crush her thoroughly." But Su Ruanruan was not surprised. She instructed Yan Kuan, "Shes afraid Ill steal her limelight, she wants to suppress me first!" Yan Kuan sneered, "She dreams of eating farts!" He eagerly said, "Miss Su might as well not go." Su Ruanruan smiled. She said, "With such a grand invitation from Mrs. Yin, how could I not go?" She called the two youngdies over, whispering in their ears. Both nodded repeatedly. They said softly, "Well do as Miss Su told us." Yan Kuan promised, "Do your job well, Miss Su wont let you down." While speaking, he took out 200,000 yuan. 100,000 yuan for each. The two were naturally overjoyed. After they left. Su Ruanruan asked Yan Kuan, "Why havent I seen Brother Nely?" Yan Kuan scratched his head, pretending to be dumb. He said, "Why should Miss Su ask!" Su Ruanruan smiled, "Brother Nine has some secrets? Even I cannot be privy?" Yan Kuan was clearly Su Ruanruans confidant. He quietly told Su Ruanruan, "Song Wei and Dean Su are getting married, Song Wei wants to meet Ninth Brother, and Ninth Brother is avoiding her!" Su Ruanruan chuckled. She said, "Brother Nine is such a coward!" Yan Kuan did not continue. Su Ruanruan did not pursue further. She left the club and went to a designer boutique. It was Bao Jingyans birthday, and she wanted to give a gift. After much consideration, she chose a pair of cufflinks. As she was leaving after making her purchase, she ran into Yin Mingzhu. Yin Mingzhu was choosing jewelry, clearly for wearing at the banquet. Su Ruanruan very gracefully nodded her head. But Yin Mingzhu appeared slightly arrogant. She stared at the bag in Su Ruanruans hand, recognizing it was from a mens designer store. It must have been a gift for Bao Jingyan. Yin Mingzhu lowered her eyes and smiled lightly. No matter how good the birthday gift is, she would still outshine her at the banquet! ... Su Ruanruan observed her expression. And also smiled lightly. ... Time flew by swiftly. Soon, it was the day of the Yin Familys banquet. Regent Hotels luxurious banquet hall. Soft music yed slowly. Crystal lights cast a luxurious glow. Everywhere, there were elegantly dresseddies. Mrs. Yin and her husband Yin Changhe were receiving guests. Yin Zhao and Yin Mingzhu stood by their side. Tonight, Yin Mingzhu was dazzlingly beautiful. Dressed in white Giorgio Armani haute couture. Adorned with expensive jewelry. She was the citys top socialite, the dream girl of countless men. Countless men adored her. Women, envied her. At this moment, Yin Mingzhu was looking forward to Su Ruanruaning over, ready to show her what a true socialite was like. Chapter 549 Su Ruanruan Astonishes Everyone

Chapter 549: Chapter 549 Su Ruanruan Astonishes Everyone

p.m. Yin Zhao was somewhat anxious. The banquet was about to start, but Su Ruanruan had not yet arrived. He was smitten with her, and everyone in the Yin family knew it. Just like him, Madame Yin also expressed regret. She said, "Mingzhu is too dazzling; Miss Su probably fears being overshadowed and dares not toe." Yin Mingzhu smiled faintly. She demurely rebutted, "Aunt Qin, those words are unkind! They make it sound like Im deliberately targeting Miss Su." Their voices were not low. Thedies in the banquet hall heard everything. Sun Jingan and his wife, who had just arrived, also heard everything. Mrs. Sun frowned. She whispered to her husband, "Mingzhusment is frivolous." Sun Jingan used to admire Yin Mingzhu, but at this moment, he couldnt help feeling disappointed. Yin Mingzhu had lost herposure! He asked his wife, "Does Ruanruan truly not dare toe?" Mrs. Sun gave him a nce. Her gaze was enchanting and seductive. She countered, "Have you ever seen Ruanruan afraid of anyone?" Sun Jingan nodded, "Indeed." But others did not think the same way. Thosedies whispered among themselves. [In City B, no one can steal Mingzhus limelight!] [Its wise for Miss Su to avoid this!] [After all, Jiangcheng is no match for City B! She probably hasnt seen much of the world and was intimidated momentarily!] ... Hearing these words, Yin Mingzhu felt quite pleased. However, Madame Yin was quite disappointed. This text is hosted at f?dnvel Originally, this had been a perfect opportunity to bring Yin Zhao and Su Ruanruan together. She called the manager over, ready to change the ns. Amotion arose at the entrance. Surprised exmations filled the banquet hall. [Oh my! Its a DIOR couture replica.] [Such a great figure! That waistline, that skin...] [She looks so familiar!] Madame Yin and Yin Mingzhu exchanged looks! A DIOR couture replica? Was it the same dress they had seen before? Impossible! Among the people they knew, no one could pull off that gown. Then, another exmation arose. [Its Miss Su!] Yin Mingzhu was in disbelief. How could a girl from Jiangcheng get her hands on a DIOR couture replica? But just as she was still doubting, Su Ruanruan gracefully walked into the banquet hall. The blue couture gown. The hem as light as a feather. Her long hair swept up, revealing her tender neck. Around her neck, a rare diamond ne. Her peerless beautypletely overshadowed Yin Mingzhu. Yin Mingzhu clenched her fingers tightly. She couldnt believe that someone in City B actually outshone her. All around her, there was nothing but praise for Su Ruanruan! Yin Mingzhu was very displeased. She struggled to maintain herposure. Madame Yin was more shrewd than her. She whispered, "After all, she will still have to dance with your brother; a bit of beauty does no harm! Once the press release is out, her Cindere image will stick in peoples minds, and everyone will specte that hervish dress is a gift from the Yin family!" Yin Mingzhu felt a bit better in her heart. She said softly, "Aunt Qin, you orchestrate everything so well; no one is more capable than you." Madame Yin smiled slightly. ... Su Ruanruan nodded slightly to Yin Zhao and Yin Changhe. Then she greeted Madame Yin and Yin Mingzhu. Soon after, she entered the main hall. She picked up a ss of red wine. Thedies of high society in City B became restless. They all inquired about the background of Miss Su, hoping to match her with their sons. Master Zhous mother was also present at the banquet. With a smile, she told everyone, "Shes the precious daughter of the Gu family from Jiangcheng! Beautiful and intelligent, and she is also the lifesaver of Old He!" Everyone gasped in awe. So it really was Miss Su. Madame Zhou added, "Miss Su is veryposed; Jinhua has been chasing her for years and now they have be friends." Thedies felt relieved. Madame Zhou then led Su Ruanruan over to them. With a sly smile, she said, "You all missed the opportunity long ago! Miss Sus..." Just as she was about to mention Bao Jingyan, Madame Yin took the stage to announce the start of the banquet. Madame Zhou had to stop there! Chapter 550 Yin Zhao: He Wants Her

Chapter 550: Chapter 550 Yin Zhao: He Wants Her

On stage, Yin Changhe and his wife were speaking. Su Ruanruan didnt like listening to that. She held a wine ss, admiring the famous paintings hanging on the wall. Yin Zhao silently stood behind her. He was very tall, and he stood close to her. From behind, it looked as though Su Ruanruan was leaning on his shoulder. Yin Zhao was dazzled by Su Ruanruan. He used to be somewhat arrogant, but now he was willing to kneel before her. He wanted to have her. Wanted to possess herpletely. This craving caused him pain. Yin Zhaos voice was hoarse: "This one is Ms Water Lilies." Su Ruanruan turned around. ?? ??? ???? ?? ???? ???? ???????s, ????s? ??s?? find{n}ovel Yin Zhao looked down at her, his gaze deep. He asked her, "Do you like it?" Before Su Ruanruan had a chance to say anything, he added, "If you like it, Ill give it to you." He was pursuing her. Su Ruanruan realized it. She decided to make things clear to him just this once. After pondering for a moment, Su Ruanruan spoke softly, "Dean Yin, I already have someone in my heart." "Bao Jingyan?" Yin Zhaos thin lips pressed into a straight line. Su Ruanruan didnt speak. Which was as good as a confirmation. Yin Zhao took a step forward. He said in a low voice, "You and he havent... reached that stage, you still have choices!" Su Ruanruan was surprised. Why would Yin Zhao say that? She was very smart and quickly figured out that it must be the medical exam that had caused some misunderstanding. She was always decisive. She told him, "Not so! He and I are already truly husband and wife." Yin Zhao was both shocked and angry. But he did not want to give up on her. He didnt care about the onlookers, suddenly grabbing her slender wrist. He pressed, "I can disregard it! But Bao Jingyan has a child, can you?" Yin Zhao made quite a scene. Many eyes had already turned their way. But everyone seemed pleased with the development. [Yin Zhao has finally fallen for someone!] [They really are well-matched!] ... Some people had already begun congratting Yin Changhe and Madame Yin. Yin Mingzhu sneered. Su Ruanruan, its your good fortune that my brother has taken a liking to you! Madame Yin seized the moment. She smiled and asked everyone to quiet down. She said, "ording to Yin Family tradition, Yin Zhao shall open the dance! Now I will draw the name of tonights luckydy." Madame Yins smile was full of confidence. Her gaze held schemes. Soon she would announce the name Su Ruanruan. The draft news and hot searches would go up together. There would be no use in Su Ruanruans exnation! A slip of papernded in her hand. Madame Yin, full of confidence, handed the slip to the emcee to announce. The emcee had not been briefed by Madame Yin. She took the slip and with a smile said, "Thisdy and Mr. Yin really are fated!" Everyone assumed it was Su Ruanruan. They both envied and pitied Su Ruanruan. Yin Zhao was excellent, not one to engage in casual rtionships. But the Yin family... was a deep pool; Miss Su might not be able to handle it! The crowd was anxiously concerned. However, Su Ruanruan remained calm andposed. She pulled away from Yin Zhao. She then saw Bao Jingyan, who had arrivedte at the entrance of the banquet hall. Dressed in a ssic ck and white suit. His facial features were striking. He truly looked good tonight! She locked eyes with him. Their affection was palpable. At the same time, the emcee called out the name. [Thisdy is... Yin Mingzhu!] The whole ce was shocked! How could it be Yin Mingzhu? Whats so exciting about a brother and sister dancing? Madame Yin was startled. She asked the emcee, "Did you read the wrong name?" The emcee was a celebrity, and she had her own temper. She said to Madame Yin, "Are you questioning my professionalism?" Of course, Madame Yin was not. It was because... she had arranged it all so that every slip had Su Ruanruans name on it! How did it be Mingzhu now? She was furious, and so was Yin Mingzhu. They both looked toward Su Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan raised her wine ss to them lightly. Her smile was graceful, very elegant. Madame Yin narrowed her eyes. She had actually been outyed by Su Ruanruan... Chapter 551: Fight, Fight!

Chapter 551: Chapter 551: Fight, Fight!

The banquet hall. Everyone was waiting for Yin Zhao to invite Yin Mingzhu. Yin Zhao noticed Su Ruanruan moving. He followed her gaze. He saw Bao Jingyan. Before his reason returned, he caught Su Ruanruans slender wrist. Su Ruanruan struggled. But she couldnt break free. Yin Zhao lost hisposurepletely. He asked her in a lowered voice, "He already has a child, and has the Sun Family agreed to ept you yet?" Su Ruanruan was already displeased. She reminded him, "Today is the Yin Familys banquet, do you want to make a scene in front of so many people?" But Yin Zhao didnt let go. He didnt care about the drawing results. He grasped her hand, intending to forcibly start a dance with her. All the people on-scene were stunned. What was this situation? Just at the critical moment, a voice sounded. "Excuse me Dean Yin, Miss Su is my dance partner tonight." As the words fell, Bao Jingyan appeared gracefully. He gently took Su Ruanruans hand from Yin Zhaos, then drew her close to his side. His expression was not merely one of jealousy. Instead, it had a husbands particr tenderness. Yin Zhao was taken aback. Bao Jingyan then said, "Regardless of whether the Sun Family agrees or not, she is mine, and so is my child." Yin Zhaos face grew cold: "Doesnt President Bao think hes being too selfish?" Bao Jingyan had a fierce temperament. He had mellowed a lot over the years. But Yin Zhao kept provoking him. He saw no need to keep giving face. He pushed Su Ruanruan to Mrs. Zhous side, then took off his coat and threw it to her. Yin Zhao didnt back down either. Just a fight, no? He was never afraid! Yin Zhao didnt bother removing his clothes either, and went straight with a punch. Bao Jingyan dodged, then counterattacked. They were both men of high status. And in the prime of their years. The fight was actually quite a spectacle. Crystal cups and precious china fell to the floor. In the banquet hall, the screams of thedies rose and fell... Yin Changhe was furious. Mrs. Yins face looked terrible. Yin Mingzhus face was even worse. Bao Jingyan paid her no heed, and her brother had only Su Ruanruan in his eyes. In contrast, Su Ruanruan, despite feeling somewhat irritated, didnt stop them. A fight in exchange for Yin Zhaos non-entanglement was also a valuable deal. Mrs. Zhou beside her smiled: "Being able to make two excellent men fight over oneself is also quite an honor." She sighed again: "Its been a long time since City B has been this lively." ... Bao Jingyan and Yin Zhaos brawlsted five minutes. The banquet was ruined. Everything was smashed! Bao Jingyan had the upper hand slightly. But he too had minor cuts on his face, his hair a bit disheveled. Yet his handsomeness was undiminished. He said to the manager, "Write an inventory list and send it to YR Groups finance department." The manager smiled wryly. He couldnt afford to offend this big Buddha. After Bao Jingyan finished giving instructions, He looked at Su Ruanruan, his whole demeanor like that of a victorious male animal. He reached out to her with a tender voice: "Lets go!" In the banquet hall, all eyes were on Su Ruanruan. At this moment, Sun Jingan spoke. His tone was indifferent, but made a lot of sense. He said, "Think carefully! Yin Zhao truly likes you, and there is a whole lot of trouble that hasnt been cleaned up on Jingyans side!" He had just finished speaking, When Su Ruanruan said softly, "No need to think." She slowly walked towards Bao Jingyan. She said softly, "At your age and still learning to fight!" Bao Jingyan smiled faintly. He took the coat from her hands, and draped it over her. He took her away. The tall and upright man, leading a touch of blue. Romantically enchanting. Su Ruanruan followed him, with no thought of turning back... Mrs. Suns eyes brimmed with tears. She said to her husband, "Jingan, are you still going to oppose them?" Original content can be found at find~novel Sun Jingan was about to say something, but then saw the tears in his wifes eyes. He said helplessly, "Howe youve be so sentimental all of a sudden?" Mrs. Sun Jingan didnt speak. She gently took her husbands arm. They were a loving couple, and Sun Jingans heart softened. Chapter 552: Where is My Birthday Gift?

Chapter 552: Chapter 552: Where is My Birthday Gift?

Bao Jingyans white shirt. Wrinkled and stained with a few strands of blood. The car door opens, and Su Ruanruan gets into the car. Bao Jingyan walks around to the other side and gets in. Just as Su Ruanruan is about to say something, he has already leaned over. Grasping the back of her head. Kissing her deeply. He has a fiery manly scent about him. And his kissing is very skillful. Su Ruanruan is very moved. After a long kiss, he lifts his head slightly to gaze at her, his voice low and hoarse: "Thest time I fought, it was with your second brother." Su Ruanruan trembles gently in his arms. She doesnt speak. Bao Jingyans gaze is lingering. He says, "My Ruanruan is so beautiful." Later, he drives the car to their new home. Inside the vi, all is quiet. Bao Jingyan turns on all the lights, bright as daylight. He carries her to the third floor. The northern terrace has fireworks prepared early on. A white cigarette hangs from Bao Jingyans lips as he strikes a lighter. He leans in and lights it with a flick of his thin lips. Fireworks bloom in the night sky. He walks back to Su Ruanruans side and embraces her for a kiss. In a daze of passion, he carries her back to the bedroom. On the snowy white bed, rose petals are scattered. Su Ruanruan hugs him, trembling lightly: "How did you manage all this?" Bao Jingyan presses against her forehead, "Wheres my birthday gift?" Su Ruanruan turns her small face away, "Its in the bedside table." He then carries her and sits down. Holding her with one arm, he opens the drawer with the other. Inside lies a velvet box. ??? ????? ???????s ??? ?????s??? ?? find?novel Bao Jingyan opens it with one hand. A pair of Green Crystal Stone cufflinks. Quite unique. Su Ruanruan asks, "Do you like it?" Bao Jingyan absentmindedly hums a response, then pursues her for another kiss. Su Ruanruans phone rings. She takes a nce; its Yin Zhao. Su Ruanruan doesnt want to answer. But Bao Jingyan takes the phone from her. His gaze is deep: "Why not answer?" Su Ruanruan props herself up and kisses the corner of his mouth. Her eyes are wet and alluring. Bao Jingyan doesnt ask again. He lightly presses the answer button and then tosses the phone aside. In the bedroom, love wraps them in its embrace. ... On the other side, Yin Zhao stands in front of the hotels floor-to-ceiling window. Listening to the sounds of passion from the other end of the call. His fingers gripping the phone turn white, his tall and slender body taut as a bowstring. The phone suddenly gets hurled against the opposite wall. Shattering into countless pieces. At the door, Yin Mingzhu exims in shock. "Brother." Shees over, taking his hand. Yin Zhaos palm is bleeding, but he seems oblivious. Yin Zhao pushes his sister away. He grabs his car keys and heads out. Yin Mingzhu is stunned. She has never seen her brother like this before. Yin Zhao drives away and heads to Zui Jin Zhao. Qin Chao brings him a few girls. Yin Zhao doesnt spare them a nce, telling them to scram. Master Mu Jiues over. He sits beside Yin Zhao, speaking smugly with a smile: "Dean Yin, youre also a youth of talent. You could like anyone, why set your heart on my little sister!" Yin Zhao, holding a ss of alcohol, looks at him coldly. Master Mu Jiu is enjoying the schadenfreude. He coughs lightly: "Many are fond of Ruanruan, but youre the first one to make such a scene!" He doesnt mind sharing his thoughts with Yin Zhao. He says, "That girl has a heart of stone; she only softens up with Bao Jingyan! Give it up, Dean Yin. Shes been with Bao Jingyan since she was 18. If they could split, they would have done so long ago." Yin Zhaos voice is cold: "She doesnt care about that child?" Master Mu Jiusugh is full of reserve. He says, "Thats where Bao Jingyans skill lies!" Yin Zhao remains silent, continuing to drink. Master Mu Jiu offers to find him a girl whos the same type. Yin Zhao doesnt even look, reclining on the sofa he swears, "Im not that interested in this nonsense!" Hes only interested in Su Ruanruan. If ites to intimacy, he only wants her. Master Mu Jiu is genuinely sympathetic: tsk tsk tsk, nearly mad! Chapter 553: I Can鈥檛 Let Ruanruan Be Wronged

Chapter 553: Chapter 553: I Cant Let Ruanruan Be Wronged

Mu Jiu left. Qin Chao followed him and asked worriedly, "Is Dean Yin alright?" "Whats the worst that could happen? At most hell sleep here overnight! Hes a seasoned doctor." Mu Jiu lit a cigarette in the corridor. Smoke rose up. He lowered his gaze and smiled. He had justughed at Yin Zhao, but wasnt he doing the same? Over the years, he had always held onto hope. He was afraid of having even the slightest hope. Hed cleared all the women from his life, afraid of wronging her. But in the end, that was just a pipe dream of his own. Su Ruanruan woke up. Latest content published on find?novel Bao Jingyan had already gotten up. He was downstairs making breakfast, and after finishing, he lit a cigarette. While smoking, he surveyed everything around him. Su Ruanruan, wearing a bathrobe, descended the stairs lightly. She hugged his waist from behind. "What are you thinking about?" Bao Jingyan patted the back of her hand, "Waiting for you to get up." He added, "Ive made breakfast." Su Ruanruan leaned forward and whispered, "Bao Jingyan, let me cook you a bowl of noodles." He turned his head, gazing at her. His eyes were that of a husband looking at his wife. Su Ruanruans tea-colored hair cascaded down to her waist. Beautiful and soft. His heart stirred, and he kissed her for a while. After finishing his cigarette, he said, "Add two eggs." Su Ruanruans cheeks were slightly flushed. He went to read the newspaper at the dining room, while she cooked noodles for him in the kitchen. A handful of verdant bok choy. A few plump and tender mushrooms. Topped with two golden sunny-side up eggs. Drizzled with a bit of sesame oil. Bao Jingyan liked it a lot. He held her slender hand with one hand and ate the noodles with the other. He praised her noodle-making skills, saying she had great prospects as a wife. Su Ruanruan retorted, "Is the value of being a wife reflected in the kitchen?" Bao Jingyan justughed. Hisugh was meaningful. Su Ruanruan, with thin skin, understood his meaning. But Bao Jingyan didnt let her off: "Of course not! Youre my wife, and everything we do together is meaningful." His voice grew huskier, "Of course, its also very interesting." Su Ruanruan blushed modestly. She said the noodles must not be delicious enough, otherwise, he wouldnt be thinking of anything else. Bao Jingyan smiled without answering. It wasnt that the noodles werent tasty, it was her... too enticing. And so, the morning was filled with sweetness. In the afternoon, Bao Jingyan took Su Ruanruan back to Jiang City. Su Ruanruan had a few days off. She missed the darling child. Bao Jingyan agreed to bring the child back this time. The private nended at Jiang City Airport. Su Ruanruan was not yet awake, and Bao Jingyan gently woke her: "Ruanruan... weve arrived." Su Ruanruan opened her eyes. She hadnt had enough sleep, as he had entangled her the previous night. Bao Jingyan felt a tinge of pity. He wanted to carry her, but Su Ruanruan, conscious of her dignity, refused. Just as she had sorted herself out, Bao Jingyans phone rang. It was Sun Jingan calling. Sun Jingans tone was grave; he said, "Jingyan, what you told me before must have been to cate me! With themotion youve caused in City B, the olddy already knows, and shes at the airport waiting to intercept you!" He suggested, "Dont go through the VIP passage, try to avoid her for a bit!" Bao Jingyans expression turned solemn. He chuckled lightly, "Thank you for the heads-up, Uncle! But I cant wrong Ruanruan, I cant have her sneak around like a mistress." Su Ruanruan was the woman he loved. The mother of his child. He couldnt avoid this forever. Since the olddy hade, it was just as well. Bao Jingyan said this and was about to hang up. Sun Jingan became anxious: "Jingyan, what are you doing? Are you going to disregard the olddys feelings?" Bao Jingyan had already hung up. In City B. Sun Jingans wife was anxious. She said, "This is going to cause a bigmotion! Jingan, I need to ask someone to go to Jiang City." Chapter 554: Bao Jingyan Confronts the Sun Family Head-On

Chapter 554: Chapter 554: Bao Jingyan Confronts the Sun Family Head-On

Airport. Bao Jingyan felt guilty. He was prepared to reveal the identity of the little beauty. Su Ruanruan shook her head. She softly said, "The matter isnt settled yet; revealing her identity just puts her in more danger!" Bao Jingyans gaze was profound. Su Ruanruan gently said, "Youve been good to me, so I wont feel wronged." Their hands intertwined. Bao Jingyan said hoarsely, "Lets go." VIP passage. The old Madam Sun was indeed waiting there. Sun Jingyu and his wife were also present. Seeing Bao Jingyan, Sun Jingyu gave a bitter smile, "Jingyan!" Bao Jingyan smiled coldly, "So it was the little rumors spread by my second uncle." Old Madam Sun said sternly, "Jingyan, have you forgotten the promise you made five years ago?" Her tone was severe. Sun Jingyu eased the atmosphere, "Lets talk about it back at home, the airport is a public ce." Bao Jingyan retorted, "Ruanruan and I are both unmarried; whats there to be ashamed of? We can clear it up right here." Sun Jingyu assumed the stance of an elder, "Jingyan, you should also hold back a little." He took charge to handle the matter back at the Sun Mansion. ... Sun Mansion hall. The old Madam Sun treated Su Ruanruan as an honored guest. She said, "Miss Su has no shortage of suitors in B City, why bother with our Jingyan?" Bao Jingyan spoke openly, "Its me whos been pestering her! Im the one who insists on marrying her, the one who wants to spend the rest of my life with her." His eyes zed, "Why wouldnt the olddy me me?" The old Madam Suns face turned sour. She said gravely, "Have you forgotten how your mother died? Shes still with that wretched womans child till now." Bao Jingyan smiled faintly. He said, "That wretched womans child is also my brother and sister! Ziqi saved Ruanruan with his life, Jingyuan has been with Ruanruan all these years. If I couldnt let go and hold grudges, the Bao Family would have fallen apart." He asked, "Does the olddy want to see my family destroyed, my wife and children separated?" Sun Jingyu interjected, "That child is not born of Miss Su! Maybe she isnt close?" He had barely finished when a crisp voice sounded. "Ruanruan." The little beauty hopped and ran in. She threw herself into Su Ruanruans arms. Hugging and nuzzling affectionately. That loving enthusiasm, like a lost puppy finding its owner. The other people, who usually doted on her to the bone. The little beauty acted as if they didnt exist. The Sun Family members looked displeased. They were just about to vent on Bao Jingyan when Bao Mingyuan followed in. Bao Mingyuan came to defend his own. He said to the old Madam Sun, "Mom, take your anger out on me! Dont make things hard for the children." He brazenly dered, "Ruanruan has been with Jingyan since she was 18, they cant be separated." The old Madam Sun sneered, "You think you still have a say?" She angerly lifted her cane to hit him. Bao Jingyan and Su Ruanruan moved to intervene. Bao Mingyuan stopped them. He knelt to the ground with a thud, "Mom, you can hit me however you like, killing me would be better to go apologize to Weilian!" The old Madam Sun was furious. She harshly brought down the cane twice. Bao Mingyuan took it. The little beauty felt heartbroken, she ran over andy on Bao Mingyuans body. The old Madam Sun could no longer bring herself to hit him. She also doted on the little beauty, suggesting that she should go to Great-Grandma. The little beauty refused. She was close to Bao Mingyuan. The old Madam Sun was livid with anger. Read full story at find~novel She turned to Bao Jingyan and said, "You think I am just driven by hatred?" Her gaze swept over Su Ruanruan, she said coldly, "Marrying any of those prestigiousdies would have made for a fine story, but being with her, have you considered your reputation? Your uncle Jingan has been grooming you, how will you inherit his connections if you debase yourself?" Bao Jingyan smiled lightly. He said, "If life isnt good, whats the use for those hollow reputations?" He took out a document. It was a share certificate of Dijing Group. The thirty percent that originally belonged to Sun Weilian. Bao Jingyan said lightly, "These shares were left to me by my mother, now do with them as you please! Sell them, or give them to Jingse." Chapter 555: From Now On, Ruanruan Will Be the Young Madam

Chapter 555: Chapter 555: From Now On, Ruanruan Will Be the Young Madam

This movement of his shook old Madam Sun to her core. She asked him softly, "Jingyan, are you choosing to sever ties with me?" Bao Jingyan responded with a faint smile. He said, "Grandmother, should you be ill or in distress, I will, of course, be by your side to serve. But if Grandmother finds it necessary to make things difficult for my wife and daughters, then theres no need tomunicate further." With these words, he astonishingly abandoned the line of the Sun Family. Old Madam Sun shuddered all over. She pointed at Bao Mingyuan, "Are you letting him run amok? Di Jing was left by Weilian, and he doesnt care about it at all!" Bao Mingyuan was calm. He said, "If Di Jing goes under because of this! I wont me Jingyan." He continued, "I also have some savings; its not a problem to support a few children." Su Ruanruan had tears in her eyes. She had long known how well Bao Mingyuan treated her. But she never expected that he would let go of the entire Di Jing. She held back her tears and said softly, "Lets go back first and look at the injuries." Bao Mingyuan nodded. He lifted up the little beauty and handed her to Bao Jingyan. Su Ruanruan supported him. The three adults and one child walked out of the Sun familys main hall. Old Madam Sun deted, "Jingyan is so cruel-hearted!" Sun Jingyu hurried to reassure her, "Jingyan was just speaking out of anger! Everyone is hot-headed right now; its better to each take a step back." He went on to say, "Besides, that child must have a birth mother, right? If we find the birth mother, I dont believe Jingyans feelings wont waver." Old Madam Sun shook her head. She said, "Jingyan never mentions it; Im afraid her status isnt high." Sun Jingyu said no more. He lit a cigarette and silently pondered. ... Bao Jingyan and his party returned to Bao Mansion. Unexpectedly. Gui Zhi, Jingyuan, and Ziqi had also returned. Bao Mingyuan said, "I asked them toe back to make up for your birthday! And also to clear things for you and Ruanruan." Bao Jingyans throat twitched. He truly knew how difficult this decision was. Bao Mingyuan was open-minded. He patted his eldest son, "Jingyan, dads getting old, the household will rely on you and Ruanruan in the future." Bao Jingyan remained silent. Su Ruanruan, meanwhile, supported Bao Mingyuan over to the sofa. She ordered someone to bring the medicine over. Housekeeper Wang immediately came over with a small medicine box. He eagerly called out, "Young Masters Wife, here it is." Su Ruanruan couldnt help but feel a bit shy. Bao Mingyuan lit a cigarette and said, "Its been a long time since the house was this lively; ask the kitchen to prepare a few more dishes that the kids like." He then remembered the olddy. He told Bao Jingyan and Su Ruanruan, "Later, you two go offer incense to Grandmother and tell her about this happy event." After some thought, he added, "Take the little beauty with you!" He hated that his son couldnt control his lower half, "Also, beg Grandmother to forgive Jingyan once more." Bao Jingyan coughed lightly, "Grandmother sees things clearer than you." Bao Mingyuan choked on a puff of his cigarette. He told his son, "Dad understands these kinds of situations!" Bao Jingyan thought: What do you understand? Su Ruanruan was at a loss for words. She took the little beauty to offer incense and kowtow to the old Madam. If the old Madam has a spirit in heaven, she would naturally understand. ... After a long time without cheer, Bao Mingyuan was happy. Each servant received a red envelope of 10,000 yuan. Bao Mingyuan told them, "From now on, Ruanruan will be the Young Masters Wife. You should respect her, and listen to her regarding household affairs." He added, "Master Ziqi, Miss Jingyuan, and both I and the little beauty will also listen to her." The servants of Bao Mansion were beaming with joy. They started the feast, all toasting to Bao Jingyan and Su Ruanruan. Bao Jingyan inevitably drank too much. Even Bao Ziqi had a few extra drinks; father and sons talked deep into the night. Su Ruanruan did not interfere. She took the little beauty and stayed in Bao Jingyans bedroom. The little beauty wanted to take a bath. Su Ruanruan washed her until she was squeaky clean, and they huddled together under the quilt chatting. The little beauty hadnt seen her for a long time and was very clingy. She asked in a soft voice, "Ruanruan, why did Grandpa have to be hit by Great-Grandma today?" Chapters first released on f?i?n?d?n?o?v?e?l? Su Ruanruan told her, "Grandpa was putting on a y!" The little beauty pped her hands, "Tomorrow Ill have Jingyu Little Imperial Uncle put on a y too!" Su Ruanruan: ... The little beauty talked a lot; after an hour or so, she finally couldnt stay awake any longer and fell asleep. Su Ruanruan finally had some free time. She was sure Bao Jingyan wouldnt return to the room, so she went to take a bath in the bathroom. She changed into a real silk nightgown. It was fragrant, soft, and delicate. Under the dim yellow light, she sat at the vanity table and carefully tended to her skin. Herplexion was fair. Bao Jingyan always loved to touch her skin and could hardly let go. Su Ruanruan was hence even more diligent in her skincare. She knew very well the importance of a womans appearance in marriage. After finishing her skincare routine. She was about to get up when arge hand pressed down on her shoulder. Chapter 556: Once in a Lifetime

Chapter 556: Chapter 556: Once in a Lifetime

Bao Jingyans voice was husky: "Still waiting for me?" Su Ruanruan smelled the alcohol on him and said softly, "Why have youe back?" Bao Jingyan came to his senses. He lifted her onto the dressing table and kissed her. He said intermittently: "If I knew you were waiting like this, I wouldvee back earlier." Su Ruanruan was considerate. She leaned on his shoulder: "My love is asleep." Bao Jingyan looked up from the side of her neck. His gaze was unfathomably deep... It took a long while before he hoarsely said: "Ruanruan, there will only be this one time in this life." Afterwards, they would still have a wedding. But the meaning of tonight was different. He and she had taken the proper path in the eyes of everyone. From now on, no need to hide and sneak around. Bao Jingyan had drunk alcohol. His desire was intense. He gently carried Su Ruanruan to the living room... ... The next morning. The Bao Family members sat neatly having breakfast. Bao Mingyuan had a hangover but was in an excellent mood. He surveyed his children and felt very satisfied. After breakfast, he called Su Ruanruan into the study. Su Ruanruan went and sat down, "Uncle, did you want to see me for something?" Bao Mingyuan bent down and opened a drawer. He countered while asking: "Still calling me uncle?" Su Ruanruan smiled faintly and did not argue. Bao Mingyuan took something out, cing it on the desk. He said: "Over the years, your temperament has also not changed." He really wanted to ask her how she managed to tolerate the presence of the darling girl. But after all, he didnt have the courage to ask, fearing it would ruin his sons good fortune. Bao Mingyuan pushed what was in front of him towards Su Ruanruan: "You and Mingyuan have taken the proper path, from now on these things will be handled by you." Su Ruanruan did not refuse. She gently opened them and reviewed. Thesend deeds and properties, and the jewelry, were previously managed by the olddy. Since the olddy passed, Bao Mingyuan did not entrust them to others. Su Ruanruan was always the daughter-inw of his heart. Su Ruanruan looked over them once. She said to Bao Mingyuan: "Bao Jingyans properties in City B are just as they were! Thesend deeds and properties naturally need to be well-managed, as for these pieces of jewelry, it would be better to divide them between Jingse and Jingyuan." Bao Mingyuan lit a cigarette. Su Ruanruan continued: "Jingse has her own shares in Emperor Scenery, and she has the Sun Family to rely on! But Ziqi and Jingyuan are in more difficult circumstances, they should be given more consideration." Bao Mingyuan smiled faintly: "I said to let you manage them, so I will listen to you." Su Ruanruan also smiled. With her small white teeth, she was very adorable. Looking at her, Bao Mingyuan felt affectionate. He thought: No matter how capable Ruanruan is outside. She is always the child of the Bao Family. Jingyans good fortune! Su Ruanruan called for Housekeeper Wang: "Please ask Jingyuan, Ziqi, and Auntie Gui Zhi toe to the hall." She took the keys herself and went to the storeroom. Half an hourter. Su Ruanruan returned to the hall. The servant carried five safes following her. The five safes were opened in front of everyone. All of them were valuables umted by the Bao Family over the years. Bao Jingyuan was unhappy andined: "Ruanruan, are you trying to split the family?" She was afraid in her heart: "Do you not want me and my second brother anymore?" Su Ruanruan sat. She took a sip of fragrant tea, very much thedy of the house. She said: "Does this look like splitting the family to you?" Bao Jingyuan did not dare to challenge her. Su Ruanruan deliberately said: "Your elder brother has prepared arge vi in City B, it seems you dont want to live together." Bao Jingyuan immediately perked up. N?w ?ovel chapt?rs are published on ?ovelFind She boasted: "Is there a room for me and my second brother?" Su Ruanruan gave her a sidelong look, "What do you think?" Bao Jingyuan immediately dered: "I dont want any of these jewels, just consider it as board expenses." She was generous, but Su Ruanruan wouldnt let it happen. She pointed to a safe for her: "Take this portion! There are five sets of jewelry in total, all of which are presentable, you can also show them off when you get married!" Chapter 557: Mistress of the Bao Family

Chapter 557: Chapter 557: Mistress of the Bao Family

Bao Jingyuans eyes were red. She murmured, "I dont want to get married, I just want to be with you." Su Ruanruan felt both annoyed and amused. She countered, "What if you meet someone you really like?" Bao Jingyuan fell silent. Su Ruanruan also gave a portion to Ziqi. She knew Bao Ziqi didntck money, but this was elder sisters fairness. As for Jingses portion, she handed it over to Bao Jingyan to pass on. She took one portion for herself. The remaining portion, everyone looked on puzzled, not understanding whom she intended it for. The youngdy pped, "This is for grandfather! Grandfather also has to get married!" Su Ruanruan had a headache. She asked Aunt Li to take the youngdy out to the neighboring vi to borrow a dog to y with. Once the atmosphere calmed down. She opened that chest. Inside were jewelry that the olddy had used. There were also some items that Su Ruanruan had added herself. She handed this chest to Gui Zhi. She said, "Gui Zhi has been with the olddy all her life; its only right for her to have these." Besides that, she took out a property deed. It was for a 400 square meterrge shop. Su Ruanruan softly said, "This is left for Aunt Guis retirement." Gui Zhi refused to ept it. Bao Mingyuan spoke up, "Take it! The olddy never saw you as an outsider, Ruanruans arrangement couldnt be more appropriate." Su Ruanruan called the house servants. She told them, "You cannot take these, but those who work well in Bao Family, the benefits will reflect on your children." She asked Aunt Fu, "I heard your daughter just graduated recently and hasnt found a good job yet." Aunt Fu rubbed her apron, embarrassed, "Her major is too niche, a minornguage." Su Ruanruan softly said, "Jingyanspany is currently in need of such talent." Aunt Fu was overjoyed. She couldnt believe it, "Does this mean going to City B for career development? Madam, this is really... thanks to you." Su Ruanruan smiled, "There are more opportunities in City B." Aunt Fu nodded vigorously. She said, "Ill make sure my daughter does her job well." With her setting an example, all the other servants were energized. The meaning from the youngdy was clear: as long as their children studied diligently, future arrangements would be made. In the past, where could such good fortunes be found? They all felt grateful to her. Su Ruanruan arranged everything properly. Read full story at find{n}ovel Bao Mingyuan smiled, "Dont say, she really has the grace of the olddy." Su Ruanruan modestly replied, "Just borrowing flowers to offer Buddha." She said to Bao Mingyuan, "Eventually our family will have to rely on City B, and here we cannot offer reductions, offering them benefits ensures solid work. Only one thing remains, if someone makes a mistake, the penalty must be heavier." Bao Mingyuan deeply agreed. ... With Su Ruanruan at home, He was free from worries and prepared to go to thepany. At the parking lot. Bao Jingyuan caught up with him. Bao Mingyuan looked at his young daughter, "Whats wrong, Jingyuan?" Bao Jingyuan hesitated before saying, "I and elder brother wanted to visit mom." Afraid that he wouldnt agree, she added, "Ruanruan has agreed." Bao Mingyuan felt somewhat mncholic. He restrained himself. He purposely said, "Now you know to bring Ruanruan into this?" Saying that, he waved his hand, "Its a small matter, just decide on your own." Bao Jingyuan was extremely happy. That day she went to City C with Bao Ziqi. Qi Meiyu was serving her sentence here. Her behaviour was good, reducing her sentence by four years. All things considered, she would be out in five or six years. Under escort, she went to the visiting room. This treatment was actually arranged by Bao Mingyuan. Qi Meiyu came out. In gray clothes and in face, she looked much older than before. Bao Jingyuan held back her tears, softly calling out, "Mom." Chapter 558: Qi Meiyu Seeks Shorts for Her Children

Chapter 558: Chapter 558: Qi Meiyu Seeks Shorts for Her Children

Qi Meiyu was also ovee with sadness. She covered her face and wept low, "Its mom who has wronged you, Ziqi, Jingyuan, youve suffered." Bao Jingyuan quickly hugged her tofort her. She said, "Not at all, not at all, my second brother and I are doing well." Bao Ziqis Adams apple moved. He had a very introverted nature and never used to be close with his mother. But she had, after all, turned herself in for his sake. He held Qi Meiyus hand and softly said, "Everything at home is good." Hearing this, Qi Meiyu cried even harder. She kept nodding her head, "As long as everythings good, thats all that matters." This included Bao Mingyuan. Her husband. She was too ashamed to see him and had no way to learn news of him over these years. Mother and child are connected by heart; Ziqi knew what she was thinking. Once her emotions had stabilized, she had time to properly look at her children. Bao Jingyuan hadnt seen her for a long time and babbled away. She said, "These past few years, we and Ruanruan lived in Britain, and only returned two months ago! Ruanruan and big brother are still together; Ruanruan said big brother bought a big vi in City B, just as big as our house. Me, second brother, and Gui Zhi all are going to move in. Oh, and big brother also has a kid now." Qi Meiyu was dumbfounded. Bao Ziqi softly said, "Its big brother and Ruanruans child." Bao Jingyuan jumped up, "Ruanruans child?" Bao Ziqi looked at her with disdain. He told Qi Meiyu, "They are doing well, its just that the Sun Family hasnt agreed yet." Qi Meiyus lips trembled. Bao Jingyuan recovered from the shock. She hugged Qi Meiyu and whispered, "Mom, dont be sad! They are together after all. Dad has left the Bao Family under Ruanruans charge. This morning, Ruanruan gave me a lot of jewelry, same as what Jingse got! Dad also said that in the future, Di Jing would also belong to me and second brother! I know Ruanruan asked for this favor." Qi Meiyu silently shed tears. She was filled with shame, "After I treated her so harshly in the past, she could still..." Bao Jingyuan was also saddened. She said, "Ruanruan is very good, truly very good." After thinking, she dared to say, "Mom, after you get out, second brother and I will buy you a house to live in, Ruanruan and dad wont oppose it." Qi Meiyu nodded vigorously. Her son Ziqi could walk slowly now, and Jingyuan had also be sensible. Original content can be found at F?nd-Novel What more could she ask for? The better Su Ruanruan became, the less Qi Meiyu could return. She couldnt hinder that childs future, and also Mingyuan. Without her, Mingyuan could also find another good woman to spend his life with. ... Qi Meiyu made up her mind. That night, she took her own life in prison. When the news reached the Bao Family, it was already deep into the night. It was Bao Mingyuan who answered the call. He held the phone, silent for a long time. The person on the other end spoke a few more words softly, and he finally responded in a hoarse voice, "I see." He put down the phone. He sat alone in the bedroom for a long time. He hated her for causing Weilians death, and formitting so many misdeeds. But after all, she was the woman who had given birth to his children; if not for love then out of respect. Deep into the night. Bao Mingyuan woke his children. Bao Ziqi was shocked. Bao Jingyuan cried uncontrobly, "How could she? She was just fine today." Bao Mingyuans mind was clear as a mirror. It was precisely because the children were doing well that Qi Meiyu could leave without worries. He said nothing, then took his children to City C to handle the arrangements. The body was cremated there, and the ashes were brought back. Bao Ziqi purchased a burial plot with good feng shui for her. From start to finish, it took less than a day. At dusk, by the grave. Bao Mingyuan patted his son on the shoulder and said, "Ziqi, dont me me." Bao Ziqi shook his head. He said, "This is the best resting ce for mom." With her kind of identity, an borate funeral might have caused more trouble than we can imagine. Bao Mingyuan then gently embraced his younger daughter. Bao Jingyuan cried hard in his arms. From now on, she no longer had a mother. Bao Mingyuan softlyforted her, "Jingyuan, you still have dad, big brother, second brother, and Ruanruan." He wasnt worried. With Ruanruan there, the Bao Family would not fall apart. Chapter 559 Sun Jing鈥檃n: Don鈥檛 You Feel Bad for Jingyan?

Chapter 559: Chapter 559 Sun Jingan: Dont You Feel Bad for Jingyan?

Jiangcheng. Zuijinzhao Club. Sun Jingan sat in the private room, drinking tea. He was waiting for someone. After half a moment, the ssically luxurious copper floral gate gently opened. Qin Chao led the way. Su Ruanruan entered gracefully. Sun Jingan lifted his eyelids, his tone unhurried: "You girl, always make quite the entrance wherever you go." Su Ruanruan gestured for Qin Chao to leave. The door closed. She poured more tea for Sun Jingan and filled a cup for herself. She sipped lightly. Sun Jingan couldnt contain his impatience: "I heard that youve practically be part of Bao Mingyuans family. Have you set your heart on staying with Jingyan?" Su Ruanruan put down her teacup. She countered: "Does Mr. Sun have any advice?" Sun Jingan got straight to the point: "Jingyan is my nephew. I naturally have some say in his marriage." Su Ruanruan smiled faintly. Sun Jingan observed her. He sighed softly: Indeed, she isposed! Yin Mingzhu is not at her level. Yet his face remained stern. He discussed a deal with her: "I heard the woman surnamed Qi has left?" Su Ruanruan didnt want to speak ill of the dead. She nodded. Sun Jingan picked up his teacup, sipped some tea, and then slowly said, "I have a suggestion. You might want to hear it." Su Ruanruan watched him. Sun Jingan already admired her and was willing to offer her a way out. He said, "Qi Meiyu is dead. Half of that affair from many years ago has been settled! As long as you cut ties with her two children and cease your connections, I can mediate for you with the olddy at home." He dangled the bait: "And then Jingyan wont have to struggle between both sides anymore!" Not only that, he threw a stack of documents onto the table. He asked Su Ruanruan to look at them. He added: "Jingyan shouldnt have had to endure such hardship! Single-handedly confronting the Sun Family and the entire B city pharmaceutical industry, Ruanruan, think carefully about whats more important!" Su Ruanruan flipped through the documents. Sun Jingan said: "Hes like a single person dragging a rocket." He poked at her weak spot: "Doesnt it hurt you?" Su Ruanruan naturally felt pained. She thought of the time at the vi when he said that a business matter had been troubling him for two months. For a moment, she couldnt refuse. But she did not agree either. Sun Jingan gave her time to consider it, confident that she would agree. He said: "Ill wait for you at the mansion tomorrow afternoon! Your aunt is also here, and Anran really misses you." He pulled out a small notebook from his pocket. Su Ruanruan gently took it. It was filled with drawings by Anran, all of Su Ruanruan. ... Su Ruanruan returned to the Bao Mansion. The mansion was quiet. Housekeeper Wang told her: "The master has gone to thepany! Young Master Ziqi and Miss Jingyuan just left the house; I dont know who invited them out." Su Ruanruan asked further: "What about Bao Jingyan?" Housekeeper Wang smiled: "Young Master Jingyan took the young beauty to visit his inws; Mr. Gu wanted to see her." Su Ruanruan nodded. She held onto the railing and slowly ascended the stairs. Housekeeper Wang watched from below, feeling that she seemed somewhat out of sorts. Su Ruanruan didnt go to Bao Jingyans bedroom. Instead, she went to the room she used to upy. Official source is f?ndnovel She sat on the sofa in front of the floor-to-ceiling window, lost in thought. On the coffee table, there was a box of cigarettes. Probably left behind by Bao Jingyan, she trembled as she pulled one out. The me flickered. She lit the cigarette. She didnt smoke it, just watched the pale smoke slowly rise. After seven or eight cigarettes, the bedroom was filled with smoke. Chokingly painful. Su Ruanruan just sat there until dusk descended. The door, gently opened. Bao Jingyuans small face appeared. She called out softly, "Ruanruan." Su Ruanruan snuffed out the cigarette, her voice light: "Youre back?" Bao Jingyuan nodded. She came in and gently closed the door. Su Ruanruan stood up and opened the windows to disperse the smell of smoke. Chapter 560 Su Ruanruan鈥檚 Choice

Chapter 560: Chapter 560 Su Ruanruans Choice

Bao Jingyuan stared at her back. She had many questions she wanted to ask Ruanruan. But when the words came to her lips, she swallowed them all. She only said, "My second brother and I are nning to go back to Britain." Su Ruanruan stiffened. It took her a while to close the window. She slowly turned around, her tone very gentle, "Why are you suddenly going back to Britain? Didnt we agree to live together in B city?" Bao Jingyuan remained silent. Her eyes were reddening. There were too many words she could not say. Mr. Sun had told her and her second brother that as long as she and her second brother left, their eldest brother would not have such a hard time, and Ruanruan would be very happy. She couldnt bear to leave Ruanruan. But she couldnt be selfish any longer. Her second brother said they should go to Britain, and she thought it was a good idea. They would still live in that apartment, which was filled with memories of them and Ruanruan. Su Ruanruan came over. She sat down in front of Bao Jingyuan. Bao Jingyuans eyes were red-rimmed, and she quietly wiped away her tears. Her second brother forbid her from crying. After a long time, Su Ruanruan finally spoke softly, "Jingyuan, what did you promise me when you went to Britain five years ago?" Bao Jingyuan was taken aback. She stammered, "How can I remember something from five years ago?" Then Su Ruanruan said, "Back then, you promised to listen to me." She countered, "What, youve grown wings now and dont want to listen?" Bao Jingyuan couldnt keep her words hidden. She blurted out, "Its not that I dont want to listen!" She caught herself and said, "Second brother told me not to tell." Su Ruanruan scolded her, "Silly thing! All your worries are written on your face." Bao Jingyuan felt better after being scolded. With reddened eyes, she whispered, "Actually, I want to stay!" She knelt on the carpet, holding Su Ruanruans hand and pleading softly, "Ruanruan, let me ask my eldest brother! Maybe he cant bear to part with me." Su Ruanruan called her annoying. She stood up and said, "Dont tell Bao Jingyan about this! His rtionship with the Sun Family is already bad enough." The rightful source is find?novel Bao Jingyuan responded with a hm. Obedient andpliant. Su Ruanruan urged her to leave, "Im changing clothes; I have to go out for a bit." Bao Jingyuan eagerly said, "Ill go with you." Su Ruanruan said, "Im visiting the Sun Mansion, do you want toe?" Bao Jingyuan shrank back. And ran off swiftly. Su Ruanruan shook her head, her mood suddenly lifting. If Bao Jingyan is suffering, she would share the hardship with him. She is capable and wouldnt let him struggle alone. Su Ruanruan made up her mind. She washed her face, put on light makeup, and changed her clothes. Downstairs, Bao Mingyuan was waiting for her. He was holding keys, "Ruanruan, dont go! Ill deal with that Sun." He cursed furiously, "He uses people in B city behind closed doors, yet hes so heartless! Who does he think he is, still expecting people to live their lives!" Su Ruanruan stopped him. She softly said, "This is between Mr. Sun and me! Dont interfere, please." Bao Mingyuan was stunned. Su Ruanruan continued softly, "Jingyan and I are in a de facto marriage; our child Xiaojia is already several years old. The formal title is not important." Bao Mingyuan felt like his world was spinning. He was incoherent. "What are you saying? You and Jingyans child?" Bao Mingyuan couldnt believe it. How could it be Ruanruans child? Su Ruanruan spoke seriously, "Youve forgotten; Bao Jingyan is a medical doctor." Bao Mingyuan wanted to curse. Damn! He always said Jingyan was daring since birth, daring to do such a thing! Immediately he said, "No way, I have to go to the Gu Family." Su Ruanruan stopped him once more. She said, "After I visit the Sun Mansion Ill go pick them up." ... Sun Mansion. The atmosphere wasnt good. Sun Jingan was convinced Su Ruanruan would follow his n and was trying to persuade his mother. The elderly Mrs. Sun was not pleased. But her sons words made sense. As they spoke, the butler announced, "Miss Su has arrived." Sun Jingan was astonished. Hadnt they agreed to meet tomorrow? Why had shee now? Could it be that she had figured it out earlier and couldnt wait to express her feelings? Chapter 561 Su Ruanruan鈥檚 Choice 2

Chapter 561: Chapter 561 Su Ruanruans Choice 2

Entrance to the hall. Su Ruanruan slowly walked in. She was beautiful and had an extraordinary temperament. Even if the Sun Family disagreed, they had to admit that she was a worthy match for Jingyan. She walked straight up to Sun Jingan. She said, "Mr. Sun, Im here to tell you the result." Sun Jingan had a firm belief in his heart. He calmly took a sip of tea: "Have you made up your mind?" Su Ruanruan gave a hum. She gently said, "Ive decided!" Sun Jingans expression softened, he said to his wife, "You handle things reliably, leave their marriage matters to you." Mrs. Sun took a sip of tea. She didnt speak. She knew Su Ruanruan very well, how could she possibly agree? Indeed, Su Ruanruan gently interrupted her husband. Su Ruanruan said, "I came to tell Mr. Sun... I will still take care of Ziqi and Jingyuan." She said, "Ziqi once saved my life, they are Bao Jingyans younger siblings, they are my family." She slightly nodded her head and was about to leave. "Wait a minute!" Sun Jingans voice was heavy. Su Ruanruan was not afraid of him. She stood in the illustrious Sun Mansion, not showing the slightest fear. ?? ??? ???? ?? ???? ???? ???????s, ????s? ??s?? fin?novel Sun Jingan slowly stood up. His wife, knowing that he was about to get angry, pleaded for Su Ruanruan. "Jingan, speak kindly." Sun Jingan lowered his eyes. His tone was slightly chilly, "I have spoken kindly to her, has she listened at all?" He pointed at Su Ruanruan and said, "They are important, but what about your Aunt Shuci and Anran? Do you not care about them at all?" He was always a dominant person. Quite lenient towards Su Ruanruan. But this child did not appreciate it, she was determined to live with that womans children. Su Ruanruan was not having an easy time either. She was not ungrateful. But, in her heart. Old Mrs. Bao was kind to her. Bao Mingyuan had a father-daughter rtionship with her. Ziqi and Jingyuan have been like family for five years. She couldnt let go. Su Ruanruan didnt cry orin, instead she calmly said, "Mr. Sun, Im sorry!" Having said that, she resolutely walked out of the Sun Mansions gate. Sun Jingan smashed a cup. He genuinely got angry. Old Mrs. Sun sighed, "Jingan, this child is not meant for our family." Sun Jingans eyes dark as ink. He slowly sat down. Mrs. Sun, afraid that he would hold a grudge against Su Ruanruan, softly persuaded, "I will have a good talk with herter." Sun Jingan gestured with his hand. He said, "Its no use! Shes determined to go down this path to the end." ... Old Mrs. Sun had disagreed from the start, now she let out a sigh of relief. She said, "Bring little Jiaren over to y for a couple of days tomorrow." With resentment, she added, "Mingyuan must have spoken ill of me in front of the child, making the child distant from me." Sun Jingan felt it was inappropriate. He said, "At this critical moment, lets not go and fetch her." Old Mrs. Sun missed the child, very insistent. Sun Jingan had to agree. ... Su Ruanruan left Sun Mansion. She took Zhaos car to the Gu Family. Mrs. Gu and Gu Ze were in B City, only Gu Yuanpei was at home. When Su Ruanruan arrived, Bao Jingyan was smoking in the courtyard. Gu Yuanpei was ying with little Jiaren. Little Jiaren especially liked her grandfather, giggling joyfully. Su Ruanruans heart softened. Bao Jingyan stopped her. He was considerate, softly asking, "Why are your eyes red?" Su Ruanruan did not want to talk. She leaned on Bao Jingyans shoulder. Bao Jingyan patted her back: "What happened?" Su Ruanruan simply hugged his waist, still not speaking. Bao Jingyan chuckled lowly: "Just like when you were little, liking to act spoiled." "I wasnt like that back then," Su Ruanruan retorted. Chapter 562: Ruanruan, Call Me Hubby

Chapter 562: Chapter 562: Ruanruan, Call Me Hubby

Bao Jingyan crushed out the cigarette butt. He took her out to eat at the restaurant. Upon seeing Gu Yuanpei, Su Ruanruan felt a bit embarrassed: "Dad." Gu Yuanpei nced at Bao Jingyan. "Did he bully you?" "No, Bao Jingyan treats me really well." Gu Yuanpei smiled meaningfully: "Then it must have been someone else who upset you." His words seemed casual. But Bao Jingyan took them to heart. Later, he quietly asked Old Zhao, who told him. Su Ruanruan cared about saving face, so Bao Jingyan didnt expose her. Just felt even more pity for her. After eating at Gu Yuanpeis, Bao Jingyan said he needed to walk off the meal. So, he carried the little darling. Su Ruanruan looped her arm through his. Old Zhao followed far behind with the car. The night was quiet on the private road. Bao Jingyan spoke softly to Su Ruanruan: "In two days, when we go back to B City, lets take the little darling to enroll in kindergarten." The little darling was thrilled. She pped her hands: "I like going to school." Bao Jingyan kissed her. Then he turned his head and asked as if it was an afterthought: "When shall we get our marriage certificate?" Su Ruanruan was taken aback. She hadnt expected Bao Jingyan to bring this up, and for a moment didnt know how to respond. Bao Jingyan held the child with one arm. The other hand held hers. He said with unbelievable tenderness: "The little darling is already so big, it wouldnt be right to not have a formal status, would it?" Su Ruanruan knew, this wasnt a good time. He just wanted to cheer her up. Her heart softened, and she intertwined her fingers with his. She said: "Theres no rush! Its better if people outside the family dont know about the little darlings background." Bao Jingyans gaze was intense: "Because of that, Ive had to bear quite a lot of criticism." They say he cant control himself. He eagerly said to her: "Whether I can control myself or not, Ruanruan, you know best, dont you?" Su Ruanruan couldnt handle him being like this. She reminded him: "The little darling is here." The little darling, hearing them express their affection, was very generous: "Act like Im not here! I want five little brothers and sisters." Su Ruanruan: ... Bao Jingyan stopped in his tracks. He said: "Lets get in the car, its getting cold." He was being absolutely serious. Su Ruanruan had no doubts. But once they reached the Bao Mansion, Bao Jingyan handed the little darling over to Aunt Li. He pulled Su Ruanruan upstairs. Downstairs, Bao Mingyuan, Bao Ziqi, and Bao Jingyuan were all present. Su Ruanruan was both embarrassed and annoyed. She lowered her voice: "Bao Jingyan, there are so many people here!" But Bao Jingyan lifted her in his arms. Su Ruanruan was too embarrassed to face anyone. Once in the bedroom and the door closed, he pressed her down for a kiss. Su Ruanruans body went weak. She was intensely embarrassed: "Bao Jingyan!" Get full chapters from f?ndnovel He coaxed her in a low voice: "Call me husband." Su Ruanruan refused to say it. Bao Jingyan had his ways to make her say it... Downstairs, Bao Mingyuan was holding the little darling. He said somewhat ufortably to others: "Haha, theyre young!" No one spoke. The atmosphere turned even more awkward. Bao Mingyuan then told his granddaughter: "Dont be like your dad in the future." He snorted: "Dad has no shame!" The little darling nodded. She said: "Auntie said dad learned it from grandpa, so I wont learn from dad." Bao Mingyuan looked at Aunt Li: "Is that what you told her?" Aunt Li yed dead. She picked up the child and ran off quickly. Bao Mingyuan could only say to his children: "Dont follow your elder brothers example." He wasnt a great role model himself. He touched his nose and went upstairs. The next morning. The Sun Family sent someone to pick up the little darling. They said they wanted to take her for the next couple of days. Bao Jingyan did not agree. But he couldntpletely disregard the Sun Familys face, so he said he would bring her back in the evening. The Bao Family adored the little darling. They had Old Zhaos car take her over. When Su Ruanruan woke up, the little darling had already gone to the Sun Family. Bao Jingyan was sitting on the sofa by the window. With a morning paper in hand. He looked up: "Awake?" Chapter 563: The Little Beauty is Su Ruanruan鈥檚 Own Child

Chapter 563: Chapter 563: The Little Beauty is Su Ruanruans Own Child

Su Ruanruan hummed in acknowledgement. She was reserved, afraid of beingughed at by the servants if she went downstairs. Bao Jingyan put down the newspaper and walked over to sit by the bed. He told her that Xiaojiaoren was going to visit the Sun Family for a day. Mentioning that the old Mrs. Sun wanted to see her. Su Ruanruan changed the topic. She said, "My elder brother and Sister Song Wei are having a wedding in Jiangcheng, and it will definitely take a few more days!" Bao Jingyan asked for the date. He made a phone call to Xiao Ran. After making arrangements, he urged her to get out of bed. Bao Jingyan said, "It seems we havent really dated properly yet." Su Ruanruans expression was tender and soft. She held one of his hands and asked him, "Where do you want to go?" Bao Jingyan mentioned a ce and asked her if she dared to go. Su Ruanruan was surprised. After a moment, she nodded, "Ill go with you." Bao Jingyan took her to a cemetery. They visited Sun Weilian. Bao Jingyan said to her, "We can dy collecting the certificate, but mother-inw must be met." Su Ruanruan held onto his arm. Apanying him, they stood for a long time. Leaving the cemetery, Bao Jingyan was in a rather good mood. He took her to eat famous dishes in Jiangcheng. In the afternoon, they watched a movie. Su Ruanruan was very satisfied. Seeing that it was gettingte, Bao Jingyan prepared to pick up Xiaojiaoren. Su Ruanruan didnt really want to go. Bao Jingyan buckled up the seatbelt, then turning to her said, "You dont have to get out of the car." Su Ruanruan agreed. Half an hourter, a golden Bentley Continental slowly stopped in the Sun Mansions parking. The Sun Familys housekeeper came to greet them. Seeing Su Ruanruan, he said, "Miss Su, pleasee in and have a seat." Su Ruanruan smiled lightly. The housekeeper, not insisting further, led Bao Jingyan inside. The Sun Family was displeased when Bao Jingyan came to pick up Xiaojiaoren. Sun Jingan sat drinking tea, saying, "Everyone in our family loves her dearly, why, dont you trust us?" The old Mrs. Sun had someone bring the child over. She said to Bao Jingyan, "Youre a grown man, how can you take good care of a child!" Bao Jingyan hadnt taken off his coat. He replied indifferently, "Ruanruan will take care of her." Old Mrs. Sun was displeased. Now her idea had changed. She said, "A child cant be without her biological mother. Jingyan, you should still bring Xiaojiaorens mother back and reunite the family." Sun Jingan kept quiet. He sipped his tea. In his mind, he spected: The childs mother must be not so good, otherwise Jingyan wouldnt ignore her inquiries. Yet, Bao Jingyan said, "I indeed want to get married, but Im afraid my uncles wont agree toe." Sun Jingan pointed at him and said, "Hopeless! Dont even try to persuade him!" Bao Jingyan was also very cold. Just then, a servant hurried over, holding Xiaojiaoren. Her voice trembling slightly, "The little miss is injured." Bao Jingyan immediately stood up and took Xiaojiaoren in his arms. Indeed, her knee was scraped. Bleeding quite a bit. Xiaojiaoren, in pain and feeling wronged, buried herself in her fathers arms and sobbed. "They said Im a wild child!" "They said no one wants me because I dont have a mother." ... Old Mrs. Sun was shocked. Sun Jingan was also angered. At this moment, Mrs. Sun Jingyu came over leading a little boy. He was a distant rtive of the Sun Family. She said to the boy, "Apologize to your sister quickly!" The little boy, defiant, said, "I wont apologize! She is a wild child, I wont y with her." Mrs. Sun Jingyu was furious, "But you should not have pushed her." "The push has already happened," the boy stubbornly insisted. ... ???? ????s? ???????s ?? F?ndNovel Bao Jingyanforted his daughter. He lifted his gaze. His eyes held a thin ice. The Sun Family knew his temper well, realizing he was very angry now. Bao Jingyan spoke with a cold tone, "Since he doesnt understand manners and his parents wont teach him! Then let me teach him properly." The Novel will be updated first on this website. Come back and continue reading tomorrow, everyone!